summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authornfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-02-04 02:47:48 -0800
committernfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-02-04 02:47:48 -0800
commit8116e204c73e48c8ad5bfa0acc4d6f56d39262fe (patch)
tree6b77e6a999883e6866a3ef8857d2713043b724ec
parent0a63fd4a7ea5e384efe96386366d0d87c51afa90 (diff)
NormalizeHEADmain
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/62837-0.txt19073
-rw-r--r--old/62837-0.zipbin409983 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h.zipbin2022712 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/62837-h.htm22360
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/author1.jpgbin11019 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/author2.jpgbin13476 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/big_right_bracket.pngbin3245 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/cover.jpgbin72347 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/fn377.jpgbin15510 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/illo001.jpgbin41532 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/illo059.jpgbin54645 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/illo079.jpgbin54169 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/illo099.jpgbin50989 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/illo118.jpgbin40770 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/illo131.jpgbin57340 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/illo160.jpgbin47795 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/illo176.jpgbin57035 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/illo186.jpgbin46516 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/illo207.jpgbin45317 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/illo223.jpgbin55254 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/illo246.jpgbin48526 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/illo270.jpgbin52987 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/illo301.jpgbin56276 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/illo348.jpgbin46869 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/illo372.jpgbin53514 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/illo385.jpgbin41305 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/illo394.jpgbin53353 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/illo411.jpgbin60252 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/illo424.jpgbin55745 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/illo436.jpgbin57286 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/illo455.jpgbin60001 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/illo477.jpgbin52531 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/illo504.jpgbin60998 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/illo_ix.jpgbin53106 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/illo_v.jpgbin55759 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/illo_xvii.jpgbin41523 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/title1.jpgbin19714 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/title2.jpgbin26748 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/title2a.jpgbin4014 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62837-h/images/title2b.jpgbin1243 -> 0 bytes
43 files changed, 17 insertions, 41433 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..fa78b94
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #62837 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/62837)
diff --git a/old/62837-0.txt b/old/62837-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 472ab97..0000000
--- a/old/62837-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,19073 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of Ecclesiastical History of England, from the
-Opening of the Long Parliament to the Death, by John Stoughton
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll
-have to check the laws of the country where you are located before using
-this ebook.
-
-
-
-Title: Ecclesiastical History of England, from the Opening of the Long Parliament to the Death of Oliver Cromwell
- Volume 1--The Church of the Civil Wars
-
-Author: John Stoughton
-
-Release Date: August 3, 2020 [EBook #62837]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Emmanuel Ackerman, Karin Spence and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by The Internet Archive)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
- Ecclesiastical
-
- HISTORY OF ENGLAND.
-
- VOLUME I.
-
-
-
-
- BY THE SAME AUTHOR.
-
-
- In one volume, crown 8vo.
-
- Church and State Two Hundred Years Ago:
-
- Being a History of Ecclesiastical Affairs from 1660 to 1663.
-
- "A volume that, regarded from every point of view, we can
- approve--contains proof of independent research and cautious
- industry. The temper of the book is generous and impartial
- throughout."--_Athenæum._
-
- "Mr. Stoughton's is the best history of the ejection of the
- Puritans that has yet been written."--_North British Review._
-
- "The thanks, not only of the Nonconforming community, but
- of all who are interested in the religious history of our
- country, are due to Mr. Stoughton for the ability, the
- impartiality, the fidelity, and the Christian spirit with
- which he has pictured Church and State two hundred years
- ago."--_Patriot._
-
-
- In crown 8vo., cloth.
-
- Ages of Christendom: Before the Reformation.
-
- "We know not where to find, within so brief a space, so
- intelligent a clue to the labyrinth of Church History before
- the Reformation."--_British Quarterly Review._
-
- LONDON: JACKSON, WALFORD, & HODDER,
- 27, PATERNOSTER ROW.
-
-
-
-
- Ecclesiastical
-
- HISTORY OF ENGLAND,
-
- FROM THE OPENING OF THE LONG PARLIAMENT TO THE
- DEATH OF OLIVER CROMWELL.
-
- BY
-
- JOHN STOUGHTON.
-
- VOLUME I.
-
- THE CHURCH OF THE CIVIL WARS.
-
- [Illustration]
-
- London:
- JACKSON, WALFORD, AND HODDER,
- 27, PATERNOSTER ROW, E.C.
- MDCCCLXVII.
-
-
-
-
- UNWIN BROTHERS, GRESHAM STEAM PRESS, BUCKLERSBURY, LONDON, E.C.
-
-
-
-
- [Illustration]
-
- ADVERTISEMENT.
-
-
-English literature includes valuable histories of the Church, some of
-them prominently exhibiting whatever relates to Anglicanism, others
-almost exclusively describing the developments of Puritanism. In
-such works the ecclesiastical events of the Civil Wars and of the
-Commonwealth may be found described with considerable, but not with
-sufficient fullness. Many persons wish to know more respecting those
-times. The book now published is designed to meet this wish, by telling
-the ecclesiastical part of England's story at that eventful period
-with less of incompleteness. In doing so, the object is not to give
-prominence to any single ecclesiastical party to the disadvantage of
-others in that respect; but to point out the circumstances of all, and
-the spirit of each, to trace their mutual relations, and to indicate
-the influence which they exerted upon one another. The study of
-original authorities, researches amongst State Papers and other MS.
-collections, together with enquiries pursued by the aid of historical
-treasures of all kinds in the British Museum, have brought to light
-many fresh illustrations of the period under review; and the author,
-whilst endeavouring to make use of the results so obtained, has reached
-the conclusion, that the only method by which a satisfactory account of
-a single religious denomination can be given, is by the exhibition of
-it in connexion with all the rest.
-
-His purpose has been carefully to ascertain, and honestly to state
-the truth, in reference both to the nature of the events, and the
-characters of the persons introduced in the following chapters.
-He is by no means indifferent to certain principles, political,
-ecclesiastical, and theological, which were involved in the great
-controversy of the seventeenth century. As will appear in this
-narrative, his faith in these is strong and unwavering: nor does he
-fail to recognize the bearing of certain things which he has recorded,
-upon certain other things occurring at this very moment; but he cannot
-see why private opinions and public events should stand in the way of
-an impartial statement of historical facts, or a righteous judgment
-of historical characters. For the principles which a man holds remain
-exactly the same, whatever may have been the past incidents or the
-departed individuals connected with their history. Happily, a change is
-coming over historical literature in this respect; persons and opinions
-are now being distinguished from each other, and it is seen, that
-advocates on the one side of a great question were not all perfectly
-good, and that those on the other side were not all thoroughly bad.
-The writer has sought to do honour to Christian faith, devotion,
-constancy, and love wherever he has found them, and never in any case
-to varnish over the hateful opposite of these noble qualities. And he
-will esteem it a great reward to be, by the blessing of God, in any
-measure the means of promoting what is most dear to his heart, the
-cause of truth and charity amongst Christian Englishmen.
-
-The plan of the work, and the various aspects under which the public
-affairs, the principal actors, and the private religious life of
-England from the opening of the Long Parliament to the death of Oliver
-Cromwell are exhibited, may be discovered at a glance, by any one who
-will take the trouble to run over the table of contents.
-
-Many defects which have escaped the Author will doubtless be noticed
-by his critics, and in this respect he ventures to throw himself
-upon their candour and generosity. One omission, however, may be
-explained. The theological literature of the period needs to be studied
-at large, for the purpose of making apparent the grounds upon which
-different bodies of Christians based their respective beliefs. Most
-ecclesiastical historians fail to exhibit those grounds. The Author is
-fully aware of this deficiency in his own case; but it is his hope,
-should Divine Providence spare his life, to be enabled, in some humble
-degree, to supply that deficiency at a future time.
-
-He begs gratefully to acknowledge the valuable assistance rendered
-him by the Very Reverend the Dean of Westminster, in what relates to
-Westminster Abbey and the Universities--by Mr. John Bruce, F.S.A.,
-for information and advice on several curious points--and by Mr.
-Clarence Hopper, who has collated with the originals, almost all the
-extracts from State Papers. Nor can he omit thankfully to notice the
-special facilities afforded him for consulting the large collection of
-Commonwealth pamphlets in the British Museum, and the polite attention
-and help which he has received from gentlemen connected with Sion
-College and with Dr. Williams' Library. He has also had other helpers
-in his own house--helpers very dear to him, whom he must not name.
-
-
-
-
- [Illustration]
-
- CONTENTS.
-
-
- INTRODUCTION.
-
- PAGE.
- Opening of Long Parliament 1
-
-
- ANGLICANS.
-
- Under Elizabeth 4
-
- Under the Stuarts 6
-
- Spirit of Anglicanism 9
-
- Intolerance 17
-
- Ecclesiastical Courts 18
-
- High Commission Court 20
-
- Star Chamber Court 26
-
- Strafford 29
-
- Laud 31
-
-
- PURITANS.
-
- In the reign of Elizabeth 40
-
- Change in the Controversy 45
-
- Puritan dislike of Ceremonies 48
-
- Sufferings 49
-
- Emigration 50
-
- Bolton and Sibbs 53
-
- Puritanism a Reaction 55
-
- Its defects 56
-
-
- CHAPTER I.
-
- MEMBERS OF THE LONG PARLIAMENT.
-
- Lenthall 59
-
- Holles--Glynne--Rudyard 60
-
- Vane 61
-
- Fiennes 62
-
- Cromwell 63
-
- St. John 64
-
- Haselrig--Pym 65
-
- Hampden 66
-
- Marten 68
-
- Selden 69
-
- Falkland 72
-
- Dering 74
-
- Digby 75
-
- Hyde 77
-
-
- CHAPTER II.
-
- Grand Committee for Religion 79
-
- Petitions from Prynne, Burton, and Bastwick 79
-
- Debates on Religion 83
-
- Pym's and Rudyard's Speeches 83-85
-
- Committee appointed to prepare
- a Remonstrance 86
-
- Debates respecting Strafford 87
-
- Strafford impeached by Pym 89
-
- Impeachment of Laud 91
-
- Puritan Petitions 93
-
- Debate on the Canons 95
-
-
- CHAPTER III.
-
- Presbyterianism in England 100
-
- Root and Branch Petition 103
-
- Presbyterianism in Scotland 104
-
- Scotch Commissioners in London 107
-
- Petition and Remonstrance presented to the House 109
-
- Other Petitions 110
-
- Debate touching Root and Branch Petition 112
-
-
- CHAPTER IV.
-
- Lords' Committee on Innovations 119
-
- Williams, Dean of Westminster 119
-
- Meetings in Jerusalem Chamber 121
-
- Ceremonial Innovations 123
-
- The Prayer Book 124
-
- Episcopacy 124
-
- Resolutions for Reforming Pluralities and removing
- Bishops from the Peerage 126
-
- Star Chamber and High Commission Courts 127
-
- The Smectymnus Controversy 128
-
-
- CHAPTER V.
-
- Marriage of the Princess Mary 131
-
- The Solemn Vow and Protestation 133
-
- Conference between the two Houses 134
-
- No Popery Riots 136
-
- Trial of Strafford 137
-
- His Execution 141
-
- Deans and Chapters 142
-
- Bill for Restraining Bishops 144
-
- Bill for Abolition of Episcopacy 146
-
- Debated by the Commons 148
-
- Conference between the two Houses 150
-
- Further Debate 152
-
- Discussion on Deans and Chapters 154
-
- Discussions respecting Episcopacy 157
-
- Complaints against the Clergy 158
-
-
- CHAPTER VI.
-
- Laud sent to the Tower 160
-
- Bishop Wren arrested 161
-
- Montague's Death 162
-
- Davenant's Death 163
-
- Impeachment of the Thirteen Prelates 163
-
- Correspondence between English and Scotch Clergy 163
-
- Visit of Charles to Scotland 165
-
- Dislike of the Lower House to the Expedition 166
-
- Charles departs for Edinburgh 166
-
- Letters from Sidney Bere 167
-
- Conduct of Charles in Scotland 169
-
- Church Reforms 170
-
- Innovations discussed 171
-
- Parliament adjourns 172
-
- Parliament less popular 173
-
- Causes of the Reaction 174
-
-
- CHAPTER VII.
-
- Bill for excluding Bishops from Parliament 176
-
- Dering's Speech 176
-
- The Grand Remonstrance 179
-
- Debated by the Commons 182
-
- Discussion about the Printing of it 183
-
-
- CHAPTER VIII.
-
- Return of the King 186
-
- Vacant Bishoprics filled up 186
-
- Reception of Charles in London 187
-
- The Remonstrance presented 191
-
- His Majesty's Answer 192
-
- Arrest of the Five Members 193
-
- Royalist Version of the Affair 193
-
- Fatal Crisis in the History of Charles 196
-
- Reaction in favour of the Puritans 197
-
- Westminster Riots 198
-
- Protest drawn up by Twelve Bishops 203
-
- Presented to the King 204
-
- Prelates sent to the Tower 205
-
- Their Unpopularity 205
-
- Dismissed on Bail 206
-
-
- CHAPTER IX.
-
- Bishops excluded from the Upper House 207
-
- Those who died before 1650 209
-
- Wright--Frewen--Westfield Howell 209
-
- Coke--Owen--Curle--Towers 210
-
- Prideaux--Williams 211
-
- Irish Rebellion 212
-
- Protestant Churches in Ireland 216
-
- Popish Massacre 218
-
- Fears of the English 220
-
-
- CHAPTER X.
-
- Episcopacy 223
-
- Seceders from the Popular Party 224
-
- Opponents of Episcopacy 227
-
- Sectaries 228
-
- Flight of the King 229
-
- Charles at Windsor 230
-
- Charles at York 231
-
- Attempts at Mediation 231
-
- Manifestoes 233
-
- The Coming Conflict 237
-
- Hostile Preparations 239
-
- The Parliamentary Army 240
-
- Royalist Army 242
-
- Nature of the Struggle 243
-
-
- CHAPTER XI.
-
- Outbreak of the War 246
-
- Puritan Troops on the March 248
-
- Barbarity of the Cavaliers 251
-
- Battle of Edge Hill 253
-
- Church Politics in London 255
-
- Popular Preachers 259
-
- The Scotch advocate a thorough Reformation 261
-
- The Fate of Prelacy 262
-
- Negotiations at Oxford 264
-
- Proposals from Parliament 265
-
- Royal Answer 266
-
- Scottish Petition 267
-
-
- CHAPTER XII.
-
- Westminster Assembly 271
-
- Its Constitution 273
-
- Meeting of the Members 275
-
- Parliamentary Directions 278
-
- Death of Brooke 280
-
- Death of Hampden 281
-
- Success of the Royalists 283
-
- Bradford Besieged 283
-
- Gloucester Besieged 284
-
- Effect of the War upon the Assembly 287
-
- Commissioners sent to Scotland 289
-
- The Solemn League and Covenant 292
-
- Taken by the Assembly 294
-
- Battle of Newbury 296
-
- Treaty with the Scotch 297
-
-
- CHAPTER XIII.
-
- Death of Pym 301
-
- Court Intrigues 305
-
- Corporation Banquet 307
-
- Marshall's Discourse 308
-
- Iconoclastic Crusade 312
-
- Cromwell at Ely 319
-
- League and Covenant set up 319
-
- Covenant imposed upon the Irish 323
-
- Meetings of Westminster Assembly 326
-
- Presbyterians 329
-
- Erastians 330
-
- Dissenting Brethren 332
-
- Toleration--Chillingworth 335
-
- Hales 336
-
- Jeremy Taylor 337
-
- Cudworth--More 339
-
- John Goodwin 343
-
- Busher--Locke 346
-
-
- CHAPTER XIV.
-
- Early Congregational Churches 348
-
- Browne 349
-
- Barrowe--Greenwood 353
-
- Penry 356
-
- Jacob 357
-
- Lathrop 358
-
- Independents and Brownists 365
-
- Spread of Congregationalism 369
-
- Presbyterians and Independents 371
-
-
- CHAPTER XV.
-
- Charles at Oxford 372
-
- Royalist Army 373
-
- Reports Respecting the King and the Court 374
-
- Conduct of his Majesty 376
-
- Bishops at Oxford 378
-
- Clergy at Oxford 379
-
- Chillingworth and Cheynell 381
-
- Barwick 383
-
-
- CHAPTER XVI.
-
- Ecclesiastical Affairs 385
-
- Committee for Plundered Ministers 387
-
- Tithes 389
-
- Local Committees 390
-
- Church and Parliament 391
-
-
- CHAPTER XVII.
-
- Laud's Trial 395
-
- Accusations against him 396
-
- His Defence 397
-
- Bill of Attainder passed 399
-
- His Execution 401
-
- His Character 402
-
- The Directory 404
-
- Sanctioned by General Assembly and House of Lords 406
-
- Ordinance enforcing the Directory 407
-
- Dissatisfaction of the Scotch 408
-
- Irish Loyal to Prayer Book 409
-
- Forms of Devotion for the Navy 409
-
-
- CHAPTER XVIII.
-
- Treaty at Uxbridge 412
-
- Debate between Royalists and Parliamentarians 414
-
- Charles makes a shew of Concession 415
-
- Debates at Westminster about Ordination 417
-
- Debates on Presbyterian Discipline 418
-
- Presbyterians and Independents 419
-
- Committee of Accommodation 421
-
-
- CHAPTER XIX.
-
- Long Marston Moor 425
-
- Naseby 428
-
- Sufferings of the Clergy 431
-
- Alphery--Alcock--Alvey 433
-
-
- CHAPTER XX.
-
- Jealousy of Presbyterian Power 436
-
- Unpopularity of Scotch Army 437
-
- The Power of the Keys 439
-
- Toleration 443
-
- Divine Right of Presbyterianism 446
-
- Assembly threatened with a Præmunire 448
-
- Confession of Faith drawn up by Assembly 450
-
- Revision of Psalmody 451
-
- Character of Assembly 452
-
-
- CHAPTER XXI.
-
- New modelling of the Army 455
-
- Richard Baxter 456
-
- Religion in the Camp 457
-
- Army Chaplains--Sprigg 459
-
- Palmer 461
-
- Saltmarsh 462
-
- Preaching in the Army 464
-
- Conference between Charles I. and Henderson 469
-
- Newcastle Treaty 471
-
- Letters to the Queen 474
-
-
- CHAPTER XXII.
-
- Ordinances for establishing Presbyteries 477
-
- Final Measures with regard to Episcopacy 479
-
- Ecclesiastical Courts 481
-
- Registration of Wills 483
-
- Tithes 485
-
- Church Dues 487
-
- University of Cambridge 490
-
- Ordinance for its Regulation 491
-
- Commissioners appointed to administer the Covenant 491
-
- Sequestrations 493
-
- Revival of Puritanism 494
-
- Oxford 496
-
- Military Occupation of the University 497
-
- Parliamentary Commissioners 497
-
- Dr. Laurence and Colonel Walton 499
-
- Resistance to the New Authorities 500
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIII.
-
- Presbyterians and Independents 504
-
- Contentions at Norwich 505
-
- Presbyterian Policy 508
-
- Attack on the Sectaries 509
-
- Supernatural Omens 511
-
- Negotiations between the Parliament and the Scotch 513
-
- The King at Holdenby 514
-
- Presbyterians jealous of the Army 515
-
- Earl of Essex 517
-
- False Step of the Presbyterians 518
-
- The King in the Hands of the Independents 519
-
- Cromwell's attempt at reconciling Parties 520
-
- Royalist Violence 522
-
- Laws against Heresy 523
-
- Newport Treaty 526
-
- Concessions made by the King 527
-
- Military Remonstrance 528
-
- Presbyterian Efforts to save the King 529
-
- Pride's Purge 531
-
- Trial of Charles 531
-
- Execution 532
-
- Burial 535
-
-
-
-
- [Illustration]
-
- CORRIGENDA.
-
-
- VOL. I.
-
- Page Line
- 114 29 _for_ Simon _read_ Symonds.
- 192 note _for_ Horton _read_ Hopton.
- 207 1 _insert_ Bishops.
- 210 7 _for_ in 1646. He died _read_ He died in 1646,
- 215 19 _for_ Rauthaus _read_ Rathhaus.
- 453 22 _for_ condition _read_ erudition.
- 521 heading _for_ Denominations _read_ Demonstrations.
-
-
- VOL. II.
-
- 125}
- 127} headings read _Sir Harry Vane_.
- 133 7 _for_ Naylor _read_ Nayler.
- 146 3 _the word_ been _is dropped into line_ 4.
- 151 31 _for_ Bordura _read_ Bodurda.
- 262 note _for_ according _read_ accordingly.
- 361 heading for _Fox and Cromwell_ read _Fox's Disciples_.
- 409 10 _for_ Isaac _read_ Isaak.
- 427 1 & 13 _for_ Francis _read_ Frances.
-
-
-
-
- [Illustration]
-
- INTRODUCTION.
-
-
-On the third of November, 1640, at nine o'clock in the forenoon, the
-Earl Marshal of England came into the outer room of the Commons'
-House, accompanied by the Treasurer of the King's Household and other
-officers. When the Chancery crier had made proclamation, and the
-clerk of the Crown had called over the names of the returned knights,
-citizens, burgesses, and barons of the Cinque-ports; and after his
-Lordship had sworn some threescore members, and made arrangements for
-swearing the rest, he departed to wait upon his Majesty, who, about one
-o'clock, came in his barge from Whitehall to Westminster stairs. There
-the lords met him. Thence on foot marched a procession consisting of
-servants and officers of state.[1]
-
-The King, so accompanied, passed through Westminster Hall and the Court
-of Requests to the Abbey, where a sermon was preached by the Bishop of
-Bristol. The King's Majesty, arrayed in his royal robes, ascended the
-throne. The Prince of Wales sat on his left hand: on the right stood
-the Lord High Chamberlain of England and the Earl of Essex, bearing
-the cap; and the Earl Marshal and the Earl of Bath bearing the sword
-of state occupied the left. Clarence, in the absence of Garter, and
-also the gentleman of the black rod, were near the Earl Marshal. The
-Earl of Cork, Viscount Willmott, the Lord Newburgh, and the Master of
-the Rolls, called by writ as assistants, "sat on the inside of the
-wool-sacks;" so did the Lord Chief Justices, Lord Chief Baron, and
-the rest of the judges under them. "On the outside of the woolsack"
-were four Masters of Chancery, the King's two ancient Serjeants, the
-Attorney-General, and three of the puisne Serjeants. To the Lords
-Spiritual and Temporal, apparelled in their robes, and seated in their
-places, and to the House of Commons, assembled below the bar, his
-Majesty delivered an address, declaring the cause of summoning this
-parliament. Then the Lord Keeper Finch made a speech; after which, the
-Commons having chosen William Lenthall, of Lincoln's Inn, as Speaker,
-that gentleman, being approved with the usual ceremonies, added another
-oration, in which he observed: "I see before my eyes the Majesty of
-Great Britain, the glory of times, the history of honour, Charles
-I. in his forefront, placed by descent of ancient kings, settled
-by a long succession, and continued to us by a pious and peaceful
-government. On the one side, the monument of glory, the progeny of
-valiant and puissant princes, the Queen's most excellent Majesty. On
-the other side, the hopes of posterity, the joy of this nation, those
-olive-branches set around your tables, emblems of peace to posterity.
-Here shine those lights and lamps placed in a mount, which attend your
-Sacred Majesty as supreme head, and borrow from you the splendour of
-their government."
-
-Thus opened the Long Parliament; knowing what followed, we feel a
-strange interest in these quaint items extracted from State Papers and
-Parliamentary Journals.[2] With such ceremonies Charles I. once more
-sat down on the throne of his fathers; and once more, too, clothed in
-lawn and rochet, the prelates occupied their old benches. Great was
-their power: Laud, Archbishop of Canterbury, might be said to discharge
-the functions of Prime Minister; Juxon, Bishop of London, clasped the
-Lord Treasurer's staff; and Williams, Bishop of Lincoln, had some years
-before held the great seal. They and their reverend brethren sat as
-co-equals with scarlet-robed and coroneted barons. They represented the
-stately and ancient Church of England, in closest union with the senate
-and the throne; suggesting, as to the relations of ecclesiastical and
-civil power, questions, which are as ancient as mediæval times, and
-as modern as our own. Thus too again the Commons' Speaker, in florid
-diction congratulated the monarch on the prosperity of his realms.
-That day can never be forgotten. Outwardly the Church, like the State,
-looked strong; but an earthquake was at hand, destined to overturn
-the foundations of both. To understand the crisis in reference to the
-Church we must look a little further back.[3]
-
-The Anglo-Catholic and Puritan parties stood face to face in the
-National Church, at the opening of the Long Parliament. They had
-existed from the time of the Reformation.
-
-Anglo-Catholics, while upholding with reverence the three creeds of
-Christendom, did not maintain any particular doctrines as distinctive
-of their system. Neither did they, though their peculiarities were
-chiefly ecclesiastical, propound any special theory of Church and
-State. Under Queen Elizabeth they maintained theological opinions
-different from those which they upheld under Charles the First. At the
-former period they were Calvinists. Before the civil wars they became
-Arminians. Preaching upon the controversy was forbidden; and Bishop
-Morley, on being asked "what Arminians held," wittily replied, "the
-best bishoprics and deaneries in England!"[4]
-
-Whereas in reference to doctrine there was change, in reference to
-ecclesiastical principles there was progress. The constitution of
-the Protestant Church of England being based on Acts of Parliament,
-and the supremacy of the Crown in all matters "touching spiritual
-or ecclesiastical jurisdiction"[5] being recognized as a fundamental
-principle of the Reformation--the dependence of the Church upon the
-civil power appeared as soon as the great ecclesiastical change took
-place. The Act of Uniformity in the first year of Elizabeth was passed
-by the lay Lords alone--all the Bishops who were present dissented--and
-the validity of the consecration of the first Protestant Archbishop had
-to be ratified by a parliamentary statute.[6]
-
-Of the successive High Commissions--which formed the great spiritual
-tribunals of the land--the majority of the Commissioners were
-laymen.[7] The Anglo-Catholics of Elizabeth's reign were obliged to
-accept this state of things, and sometimes to bow before their royal
-mistress, as if she had been possessed of an absolute super-episcopal
-rule.[8] Yet gradually they shewed a jealousy of parliamentary
-interference, and rose in the assertion of their authority and the
-exercise of their power. Whitgift availed himself of the lofty
-spiritual prerogatives of the Crown to check the Commons in what he
-deemed their intrusive meddlings with spiritual affairs.[9] He strove
-to lift the Parliamentary yoke from the neck of the Church, and to
-place all ecclesiastical matters in the hands of Convocation. He
-preferred canons to statutes, and asked for the royal confirmation of
-the first rather than the second. But, after Whitgift and under the
-Stuarts, Church power made considerable advances. Anglo-Catholics,
-under the first James and the first Charles, took higher ground than
-did their fathers. Their dislike of Parliaments went beyond what
-Whitgift had dared to manifest. The doctrine of the divine origin
-of Episcopacy, which was propounded by Bancroft, when Whitgift's
-chaplain, probably at Whitgift's suggestion, certainly with his
-concurrence--though it startled some English Protestants as a novelty,
-and roused the anger of a Puritan privy councillor jealous of the
-Queen's supremacy,[10] became a current belief of the Stuart Anglicans.
-At the same time the power of Convocation was widely stretched, as
-will be seen in the business of the famous canons of 1640. The
-encroachments of the High Commission upon the jurisdiction of the
-Civil Courts, and the liberties of the subject, produced complaints in
-everybody's mouth, and served, as much as anything, to bring on the
-great catastrophe. What is now indicated in a few words will receive
-proof and illustration hereafter.
-
-Looking at changes in the doctrine and at progress in the policy
-of Anglo-Catholics, perhaps, on the whole, the persons intended by
-that denomination may be best described as distinguished by certain
-principles or sentiments, rather than by any organic scheme of dogma or
-polity. They formed a school of thought which bowed to the decisions
-of the past, craved Catholic unity, elevated the episcopal office,
-exalted Church authority, suspected individual opinion, gave prominence
-to social Christianity, delighted in ceremonial worship and symbolism,
-attached great importance to order and uniformity, and sought the
-mysterious operations of divine grace through material channels. The
-Anglo-Catholic spirit in most respects, as might be expected, appears
-more shadowy and in less power amongst the Bishops connected with the
-Reformation than amongst those who succeeded.[11] Parker, Whitgift, and
-Laud represent stages of advancement in this point of view. But from
-the very foundation of the Reformed Church of England this spirit, in a
-measure, manifested itself, and in no respect, perhaps, so much as in
-reverence for early patristic teaching. No one can be surprised that
-such tendencies remained with many who withdrew allegiance from the
-Pope, and renounced the grosser corruptions of Rome. It is a notable
-fact that out of 9,400 ecclesiastics, at the accession of Elizabeth,
-less than 200 left their livings.[12] Many evaded the law under shelter
-of powerful patrons, or escaped through the remoteness and poverty of
-their cures. And it cannot be believed that, of those who positively
-conformed, all or nearly all became real Protestants.
-
-The divines of this school, drawn towards the Fathers by their
-venerable antiquity, their sacramental tone and their reverence for
-the episcopate, did not miss in them doctrinal tendencies accordant
-with their own. Even the Calvinistic Anglican of an earlier period
-could turn to the pages of Augustine and of other Latin Fathers, and
-find there nourishment for belief in Predestination, and Salvation
-by faith. But the Arminian still more easily found his own ideas of
-Christianity in Chrysostom, Clement of Alexandria, and other Eastern
-oracles. The Greek Fathers were favourites with the Anglican party
-of the seventeenth century. Whether the study of that branch of
-literature was the cause or the effect of the Arminian tendencies of
-the day--whether a taste for the learning and rhetoric of the great
-writers of Byzantium and Alexandria paved the way for the adoption of
-their creed, or sympathies with that creed led to the opening of their
-long neglected folios, may admit of question. Certainly the formation
-of theological beliefs is always a subtle process, and is subject to so
-many influences that, in the absence of conclusive evidence, it is
-hazardous confidently to pronounce a judgment.
-
-The fairest side of Stuart-Anglicanism presents itself in the writings
-of Dr. Donne, and Bishop Andrewes. In the first of these great
-preachers there is a strong "patristic leaven,"--a lofty enforcement of
-church claims, a deep reverence for virginity, and an inculcation of
-the doctrine of the Real presence--such as we notice in the writings
-of the Fathers before the schoolmen had crystallized the feeling of
-an earlier age into the hard dogma of Transubstantiation. But there
-are also in some of his quaint and beautiful sermons statements of
-Christian truth, resembling the theology of Augustine; and at the
-same time, from the very bent of his genius, he was led to illustrate
-practical duty in many edifying ways. As to Bishop Andrewes, his "Greek
-Devotions" present him as a man of great spirituality; and we are not
-surprised to learn that he spent five hours every day in prayer and
-meditation. The formality of method in his celebrated manual, the
-quaintness of his diction, and his artificial but ingenious arrangement
-of petition and praise are offensive to modern taste; and, it must be
-allowed, his catholic _animus_ is betrayed every now and then, so as
-to shock Protestant sensibilities; yet there are Protestants who still
-use these Devotions, and find in them helps to communion with God, aids
-to self-examination, and impulses to a holy life. On turning to his
-sermons, we discover expressed in his sententious eloquence (which has
-been rather too much condemned for pedantry and alliteration) doctrinal
-statements respecting the Atonement and Justification by Faith, quite
-in harmony with evangelical opinions. Though not a Calvinist, he was
-free from Pelagian tincture. Andrewes, Donne and others, however,
-are not--any more than the Fathers--to be judged by extracts. A few
-passages do not accurately convey their pervading sentiments. Orthodox
-and evangelical in occasional statements of doctrine, still they are
-thoroughly sacramentarian and priestly in spirit. And, no doubt, their
-works, especially those of Andrewes, contributed in a great degree to
-foster that kind of religion which so much distressed, alarmed, and
-irritated the Puritans at the opening of the Civil War.
-
-The admirable George Herbert, too, had strong Anglo-Catholic
-sympathies, on their poetical and devotional side. His hymns and
-prayers are in harmony with his holy quiet life, and may be compared
-to a strain of music such as he drew from his lute or viol, or to a
-deep-toned cathedral antiphony, in response to notes struck by an angel
-choir.
-
-The type of character formed under such culture partook largely of a
-mediæval spirit. The saints of the Church were cherished models. The
-festivals of the Church were seasons for joy, its fasts for sorrow. The
-liturgy of the Church stereotyped the expressions of devotion, almost
-as much in its private as in its public exercise. The ministers of the
-Church were regarded more as priests than teachers, and their spiritual
-counsel and consolations were sought with a feeling, not foreign to
-that in which Romanists approach the confessional. The sacraments
-of the Church were received with awe, if not with trembling, as the
-mystic vehicles of salvation; and the whole History of the Church,
-its persecution and prosperity, its endurance and achievements, its
-conflicts and victories, were connected in the minds of such persons
-with the ancient edifices in which they worshipped. The cathedral and
-even many village choirs told them of "the glorious company of the
-Apostles," "the goodly fellowship of the prophets," and "the noble
-army of martyrs," and "the Holy Church throughout all the world."
-They loved to see those holy ones carved in stone and emblazoned in
-coloured glass. A dim religious light was in harmony with their grave
-and subdued temper. The lofty Gothic roof, the long-drawn aisle, the
-fretted vault, and the pavement solemnly echoing every footfall,
-had in their eyes a mysterious charm. The external, the visible,
-and the symbolic, more exalted their souls than anything abstract,
-argumentative, and doctrinal: yet, though their understanding and
-reason had little exercise, it must not be forgotten, that, through
-imagination and sensibility awakened by material objects, these
-worshippers might rise into the regions of the sublime and infinite,
-the eternal and divine.
-
-Such religion existed in the reign of Charles I. amongst the
-dignitaries of the Church. Occupying prebendal houses in a Cathedral
-close, they found nourishment for their devotion in "the service of
-song," as they occupied the dark oak stalls of the Minster choir. It
-was also cherished in the Universities. Heads of houses, professors,
-and fellows carried much of the Anglican feeling with them, as they
-crossed the green quadrangle, to morning and evening prayer. Town
-rectors and rural incumbents would participate in the same influence.
-Devout women, in oriel-windowed closets, also would kneel down, under
-its inspiration, to repeat passages in the Prayer book, or in Bishop
-Andrewes' devotions. And some English noblemen, free from courtly vice,
-would embody the nobler principles of the system. Yet, probably, the
-larger number of religious people in England were of a different class.
-
-The following extract from a letter, belonging to the early part of
-the year 1641, giving an account of the death of the Lady Barbara
-Viscountess Fielding, affords an idea of Anglican piety in the last
-hour of life, more vivid than any general description:--
-
-"About twelve of the clock this Thursday, the day of her departure, Dr.
-More being gone, I went to her, and by degrees told her of the danger
-she was in, upon which she seemed as it were to recollect herself,
-and desired me to deal plainly with her, when I told her Dr. More's
-judgment of her, for which she gave me most hearty thanks, saying this
-was a favour above all I had ever done her, &c.; and when she had, in
-a most comfortable manner, given me hearty thanks, she desired me to
-spend the time she had to live here, with her in praises and prayers
-to Almighty God for her, desiring me not to leave her, but to pray
-for her, when she could not, and was not able to pray for herself,
-and not to forsake her until I had commended her soul to God her
-Creator. After which, some time being spent in praising God for her
-creation, redemption, preservation hitherto, &c., we went to prayers,
-using in the first place the form appointed by our Church (a form
-she most highly admired), and then we enlarged ourselves, when she
-added thirty or forty holy ejaculations;--then I read unto her divers
-of David's Psalms, after which we went to prayers again; then she
-desired the company to go out of the room, when she made a relation of
-some particulars of her life to me (being then of perfect judgment),
-desiring the absolution our Church had appointed, before which nurses
-and others were called in, and all kneeling by her, she asked pardon of
-all she had offended there, and desired me to do the like for her to
-those that were not there; and when I had pronounced the absolution,
-she gave an account of her faith, and then after some ejaculations she
-praised Almighty God that He had given her a sight of her sins, giving
-Him most humble thanks that He had given her time to repent, and to
-receive the Church's absolution; and then she prayed in a very audible
-voice, that God would be pleased to be merciful to this our distressed
-Church of England for Jesus Christ his sake. After this she only spoke
-to my Lord, having spoken to her father, Sir J. Lambe, two or three
-hours before, and then at last of all, she only said, 'Lord Jesus,
-receive my soul;' but this was so weakly, that all heard it not, nor
-did I plainly, but in some sort guessed by what I heard of it."[13]
-
-But the Anglo-Catholicism of the Stuart age presented other aspects.
-In a multitude of cases, ritual worship degenerated into mere
-ceremonialism. An ignorant peasantry, who could neither read nor write,
-and who were destitute of all that intellectual stimulus which, in a
-thousand ways, now touches the most illiterate, would derive little
-benefit from reading liturgical forms, unaccompanied by instructive
-preaching--against which, in the Puritan form, the abettors of the
-system were much prejudiced. Though the prayers and offices of the
-Church of England be incomparably beautiful, experience is sufficient
-to show that, familiar with their repetition, the thoughtless and
-demoralized, being quite out of sympathy with their spirit, fail to
-discern their excellence. And, when it is remembered, that the Book
-of Sports, instituted by King James, was the rule and the reward for
-Sabbath observance; that after service in the parish church (not
-otherwise), the rustics were encouraged to play old English games on
-the village green, to dance around the May-pole, or to shoot at butts;
-we ask what could be the result, but religious formalism scarcely
-distinguishable from the lowest superstition? Should it be pleaded,
-that a pious and exemplary clergyman would impart life to what might
-otherwise have been dead forms, and restrain what otherwise would have
-been riotous excess; it may be replied, that a very considerable number
-of the holders of livings were not persons of that description; they
-sank to the level of their parishioners, and had no power to lift their
-parishioners to a level higher than their own.
-
-The sympathies of the Church were with the people in their amusements;
-a circumstance which contributed to the strong popular reaction in
-favour of the Church, when Charles II. was restored. In the reign of
-Charles I. the wakes, or feasts, intended to celebrate the dedication
-of churches had degenerated into intemperate and noisy gatherings, and
-were, on that account, brought by the Magistrates under the notice of
-the Judges. But the Archbishop of Canterbury and the Bishop of Bath
-and Wells, backed by the King, came to the rescue. The complaints were
-attributed to Puritan "humourists." Alleged disorders were denied. The
-better sort of clergy in the diocese of Bath and Wells,--seventy-two
-in number, likened to the Septuagint interpreters, "who agreed so soon
-in the translation of the Old Testament,"--came together, and declared
-that these wakes were fit to be continued for a memorial of the
-dedication of churches, for the civilizing of the people, for lawful
-recreation, for composing differences, for increase of love and amity,
-for the relief of the poor, and for many other reasons.[14]
-
-The charge has been brought against the high Churchmen of that day,
-that they were _papistically_ inclined. If by this term be meant any
-disposition to uphold the Papacy, and to acknowledge the authority
-of the Bishop of Rome over other Churches, even though modified by
-a charter of liberties like the Gallican, the charge is unfair. A
-distinct national establishment was always contended for by those
-who were suspected of the strongest papal leanings. They advocated
-an authority not derived from any foreign potentate, but, as they
-conceived, of immediate divine origin, and this authority they
-considered to be entitled to uncontrolled jurisdiction within the
-shores of the four seas. They wished for a Pope--to use the current
-language of the times--"not at Rome but at Lambeth." A reconciliation
-with the Church of Rome not involving submission, might have been
-agreeable to some of the party; yet, it must be acknowledged that, in
-solemn conclave, the Anglicans accused the Romanists of idolatry.[15]
-If, however, by _papistic_ be meant a tendency to Catholic worship,
-and so ultimately to Romish conformity, then may the imputation be
-supported by facts. The history of Christendom shews that the Church
-gradually passed from its primitive simplicity to the corruptions
-of the papacy; that ante-Nicene innovations, with post-Nicene
-developments and traditionalism, were stepping-stones in the
-transition. The process, on a wide scale, requires many centuries for
-its accomplishment; but partially and in individual cases a few years
-may suffice for the experiment. Ecclesiastical annals, from Constantine
-to Hildebrand, may be epitomized in a brief chronology. Movements may
-rapidly pass through stages, like those of the Nicene and Mediæval. And
-sharp speaking, in order to maintain a certain ecclesiastical position
-against Rome, may immediately precede, and in fact, herald the approach
-of pilgrims to the very gate of the seven-hilled city.[16] What has
-occurred within our own time in individual instances, was likely to
-occur, to a large extent, in the first half of the seventeenth century.
-
-Mediæval sympathies, at the period now under our review, are obvious
-not only in the rigorous enforcement of fasting and abstinence,[17]
-which had continued ever since the Reformation, but in certain
-monastic tendencies, and in slurs cast on the reformers. A document,
-prepared in 1633--no doubt under the influence of Laud--by Secretary
-Windebank, for the direction of Judges of assize, urged obedience to
-the proclamation for the better observance of Lent and fish-days,
-because their neglect had become very common, probably in many cases
-on Puritan grounds.[18] Monastic tendencies, about the same time,
-appeared in the famous Monastery at Gidding, in Huntingdonshire. While
-the devotions of the pious family there excited the admiration of Isaak
-Walton,--in whose account of it is reflected the more spiritual phase
-of the proceeding,--the superstitions, mingled with better things,
-provoked the severest animadversions of Puritan contemporaries,[19] who
-wondered at nothing more than, that in a settled Church government,
-Bishops could permit "such a foundation so nearly complying with
-Popery." In connection with this may be mentioned the preface to the
-new statutes for the University of Oxford, published in Convocation,
-which "disparaged King Edward's times and government, declaring, that
-the discipline of the University was then discomposed and troubled by
-that King's injunctions, and the flattering novelty of the age, and
-that it did revive and flourish again in Queen Mary's days, under the
-government of Cardinal Pole, when by the much-to-be-desired felicity of
-those times, an inbred candour supplied the defect of statutes."[20]
-
-In the sixteenth century, and far into the seventeenth, intolerance,
-inherited from former ages, infected more or less all religious
-parties. Few saw civil liberty to be a social right, which justice
-claimed for the whole community, whatever might be the ecclesiastical
-opinions of individuals. This position of affairs shewed how little
-dependent is spiritual despotism upon any particular theological
-system, and how it can graft itself upon one theory as well as upon
-another; for, while under Elizabeth persecution allied itself to
-Calvinism, in the first two of the Stuart reigns, Arminianism--at
-that time in Holland wedded to liberty of conscience--appeared in
-England embracing a form of merciless oppression. But, though without
-special theological affinities, intolerance certainly shewed kinship
-to certain forms of ecclesiastical rule. It fondly clung to prelacy
-before the Civil War. The relation in which subsequently it appeared to
-other Church organizations will be disclosed hereafter. Whitgift and
-Bancroft, inheriting intolerance from their predecessors, persecuted
-Nonconformists. They silenced and deprived many; whilst others they
-excommunicated and cast into prison. The Anglican Canon Law--which must
-be distinguished from the Papal Canon Law[21]--remained a formidable
-engine of tyranny in the hands of those disposed to use it for that
-purpose. That law, of course, claimed to be not law for Episcopalians
-alone but for the people at large, who were treated altogether as
-subject to Episcopal rule; and neither creed nor worship inconsistent
-with canonical regulations could be tolerated for a moment. Only
-one Church was allowed in England; and for those who denied its
-apostolicity, objected to its government, disapproved of its rites and
-observances, or affirmed other congregations to be lawful churches,
-there remained the penalty of excommunication, with all its alarming
-consequences.[22]
-
-Anglicanism allowed no exercise of private judgment, but required
-everybody to submit to the same standard of doctrine, worship, and
-discipline. Moderate Puritans were to be broken in, and Nonconformists
-"harried out of the land." It might seem a trifle that people should
-be fined for not attending parish churches; but imprisonment and exile
-for nonconformity struck most Englishmen as a stretch of injustice
-perfectly intolerable.[23]
-
-Ecclesiastical Courts, not only consistory and commissary, but
-branching out into numerous forms, carried on actively and continuously
-the administration of canon law after the Reformation. Discipline
-was, perhaps, not much less maintained after that event than
-before.[24] Such activity continued throughout the reigns of Elizabeth,
-James, and Charles; and so late as 1636 the Archdeacon of Colchester
-held forty-two sessions at four different towns during that single
-year. The object of the canon law and the ecclesiastical courts being
-_pro morum correctione et salute animæ_, immoralities such as the
-common law did not punish as crimes, came within the range of their
-authority, together with all sorts of offences against religion and the
-Church. The idea was to treat the inhabitants of a parish as members
-of the Anglican Church, and to exercise a vigilant and universal
-discipline by punishing them for vice, heresy, and schism. Intemperance
-and incontinence are offences very frequently noticed in the records of
-Archidiaconal proceedings in the latter part of the sixteenth and the
-early part of the seventeenth centuries, suggesting a very unfavourable
-idea of public morals at that time; and a long catalogue also appears
-of charges touching all kinds of misconduct. Some appear very
-strange,--such as hanging up linen in a church to dry; a woman coming
-to worship in man's apparel; a girl sitting in the same pew with her
-mother, and not at the pew door, to the great offence of many reverent
-women; and matrons being churched without wearing veils. Others relate
-to profaning Sundays and holidays, setting up maypoles in church time,
-and disturbing and even reviling the parish ministers. Certain of them
-point distinctly to Puritan and Nonconformist behaviour, such as
-refusing to stand and bow when the creed was repeated, and to kneel
-at particular parts of divine service. Brownists are specifically
-mentioned, and extreme anti-sacramental opinions are described.
-
-The method of proceeding _ex officio_ was by the examination of the
-accused on his oath, that he might so convict himself if guilty, and
-if innocent, justify himself by compurgation[25]--a method, it may be
-observed, totally opposed to the criminal jurisprudence of our common
-law, and one which became increasingly offensive in proportion to the
-increase of national attachment to the English Constitution on the side
-of popular freedom. Though, as we look at the moral purpose of these
-institutions, and the cognizance they took of many vicious and criminal
-irregularities of conduct which did not come under the notice of civil
-magistrates, we are quite disposed to do justice to the motives in
-which the courts originated, and to admit that in the rude life of the
-middle ages they might possess some advantages--we must see, looking at
-them altogether, that they became the ready instruments of intolerance
-when great differences in religious opinion had appeared; that they
-were certain, in Puritan esteem, to attach odium to the old system of
-Church discipline; and that they were completely out of harmony with
-the modern spirit of Protestant civilization.
-
-In the Tudor and Stuart days, there also existed two tribunals of
-a character which it is difficult in the nineteenth century to
-understand. The High Commission Court was doubtless intended to
-promote and consolidate the Reformation on Anglo-Catholic principles,
-by exterminating Popery on the one hand, and checking Puritanism on
-the other. According to the terms of the Act of Uniformity, Elizabeth
-and her successors had power given them "to visit, reform, redress,
-order, correct and amend all such errors, heresies, schisms, abuses,
-contempts, offences and enormities whatsoever, which, by any manner
-of spiritual authority or jurisdiction, ought, or may be lawfully
-reformed, ordered, redressed, corrected, restrained or amended." Her
-Majesty became invested with authority to correct such heresies of the
-clergy as had been adjudged to be so by the authority of the canonical
-Scripture, or by the first four general councils, or any of them, or
-by any other general council, or by the High Court of Parliament, with
-the assent of the clergy in convocation.[26] Many Commissions were
-successively issued by the Queen.[27] Neal gives an abstract of that
-one which was issued in the month of December, 1583. After reciting
-the Act of Supremacy, the Act of Uniformity, the Act for the assurance
-of the Queen's powers over all states, and the Act for reforming
-certain disorders touching ministers of the Church, her Majesty
-named forty-four commissioners, of whom twelve were bishops, some were
-privy councillors, lawyers, and officers of state, the rest deans,
-archdeacons, and civilians. They were authorized to enquire respecting
-heretical opinions, schisms, absence from church, seditious books,
-contempts, conspiracies, false rumours, and slanderous words, besides
-offences, such as adultery, punishable by ecclesiastical laws. In the
-first clause command is given to enquire, "as well by the oaths of
-twelve good and lawful men, as also by witnesses, and all _other means
-and ways you can devise_."[28] With this power of enormous latitude,
-instituting enquiry over vague offences, was connected a power of
-punishment, qualified by the word "lawful," and by reference "to the
-power and authority limited and appointed by the laws, ordinances, and
-statutes of the realm." Liberty was given to examine suspected persons
-"on their corporal oath"--in fact, the _ex officio_ oath.[29] Any
-three of the members had authority to execute the commission.[30]
-
-The Court so constituted extended its range, and increased its
-activity, and pressed beyond the boundaries of statute law, so as
-to become, in the reign of Charles the First, a means of arbitrary
-government intolerable to the country.
-
-Records of the Court are still preserved in the State Paper Office,[31]
-shewing the modes of proceeding, the charges of which the Commissioners
-took cognizance, and the punishments they pronounced upon the
-convicted. Counsel for office--counsel for defendants--appearance
-and oath to answer articles--appearance, and delivering in of
-certificate--orders for defendants to give in answers--motion for
-permission to put in additional articles--commissions decreed for
-taking answers and examining witnesses--commissions brought in and
-depositions of witnesses published--and orders for taxation of
-costs--are forms of expression and notices of proceeding very frequent
-in these old Books. Some of them conveyed, no doubt, terrible meanings
-to the parties accused. We meet also with "suppressions of motion,"
-"agreements for subduction of articles," petitions to be admitted
-in "_formâ pauperis_," and reference of causes to the Dean of Arches.
-Collecting together heads of accusation, we find the following in the
-list--holding heretical opinions, contempt of ecclesiastical laws,
-seditious preaching, scandalous matter in sermons, using invective
-speeches unfit for the pulpit, nonconformity, publishing fanatical
-pamphlets, profane speeches, schism, blasphemy, raising new doctrines,
-preaching after deposition, and simoniacal contracts. Descending to
-minute particulars, we discover such items as these:--"locking the
-church door, and impounding the archdeacons, officials, and clergy," in
-the exercise of ecclesiastical jurisdiction; wearing hats in church;
-counting money on the communion-table; saying, "A ploughman was as
-good as a priest," and asking, "What good do bishops in Ireland?;"
-profane acts endangering parish edifices; praying that young Prince
-Charles might not be brought up in popery; and submission performed in
-a slight and contemptuous manner.[32] Entries of fines and imprisonment
-frequently occur.
-
-It should be stated that occasionally other religious offences are
-noticed in these volumes, such as possessing a Romish breviary, and
-refusing the oath of allegiance. Enquiries also appear, as to persons
-who secreted young ladies "going to the nunneries beyond seas."
-There are, too, monitions "to bring to the office popish stuff and
-books."[33] But such instances are few compared with those relating
-to Puritans. Also now and then occur cases of flagrant clerical
-immorality, acts of violence, and of criminal behaviour.[34] But it
-was the persecution, the intolerance, the irritating control over
-so many persons and things, and the harsh treatment, and severe
-sentences of this absorbing jurisdiction, emulating as it did the worst
-ecclesiastical tribunals of the middle ages, and of Roman Catholic
-countries, that so roused the wrath of our forefathers against it.
-
-It is very curious, after inspecting the records of the High
-Commission, to open Dr. Featley's _Clavis_, and there to find
-sermons, preached by him at Lambeth before the Commissioners, on such
-subjects as "The bruised reed and smoking flax," and "The still small
-voice,"--sermons filled with the mildest and gentlest sentiments. More
-curious, to light on other discourses in the same volume, bearing the
-very appropriate titles of "Pandora's box," and "The lamb turned into
-a lion." But for the knowledge we have of the preacher and of the
-contents of his discourses, we should suppose the former titles were
-ironical hits, and the latter outspoken truths. They are neither; but
-are chosen, it is plain, with perfect simplicity.[35]
-
-The Star Chamber is commonly associated in the minds of Englishmen with
-the High Commission Court. Unfettered by the verdict of juries, not
-guided by statute law, and irresponsible to other tribunals, it claimed
-an indefinable jurisdiction over all sorts of misdemeanours--"holding
-for honourable that which pleased, and for just that which profited."
-Though not a constituted ecclesiastical court, like the High
-Commission, bishops as privy councillors sat amongst its judges, and it
-took cognizance of religious publications. Whilst the High Commission
-confined its penalties to deprivation, imprisonment, and fines, the
-favourite punishments of the Star Chamber were whipping, branding,
-cutting ears, and slitting noses. The barbarous treatment of Leighton,
-Prynne, Burton, and Bastwick, will shortly be noticed.
-
-These two arbitrary courts, which, in spite of their difference, were
-almost invariably linked together in the thoughts of our countrymen,
-concentrated on themselves an amount of public indignation equal to the
-fury of the French against the Bastile; and at last, like that prison,
-they fell amidst the execrations of a people whose patience had been
-exhausted by such prolonged iniquities.[36]
-
-Nor was it only the intolerance of the Church which exasperated
-the people, its secular intermeddling did so likewise. Before the
-Reformation Churchmen had held the highest offices in the State,
-indeed, had controlled all civil affairs; and Laud was now imitating
-the Cardinals of an earlier age. But the English Reformation had shaken
-off from itself the civil power of the Church; laymen, not the clergy,
-now claimed to guide the helm. The Puritanism of the seventeenth
-century, and the civil war which grew out of it, were practical
-protests against the attempts of Charles, Strafford, and Laud to
-revive what the Reformation in this country had destroyed. The modern
-spirit of civilization was seen rebelling against the intrusion of the
-spiritual on the secular power. It was a stage in the great European
-conflict which ended in the French Revolution; it was an assault upon a
-system which has now expired everywhere except in the city of Rome.
-
-As was only consistent, the party supporting ecclesiastical intolerance
-also supported civil despotism. Never since the English Constitution
-had grown up were the liberties of the people so threatened as during
-the earlier part of the seventeenth century. The two checks on the
-tyranny of the Crown, the aristocracy and the Church, had long been
-enfeebled--the aristocracy by the wars of the Roses; the Church by
-the loss of independence at the Reformation. The nobles of England had
-wasted their strength in the fifteenth century; the Church of England
-had prostrated herself before the throne in the sixteenth. Neither of
-them had now the power, any more than they had now the will, to defend
-popular freedom against the invasions of regal prerogative. It is true,
-that the same causes, which weakened them as the possible friends of
-the people, weakened them also as actual friends of the Sovereign.
-What they did for the Crown in the Civil Wars, was far less than they
-might have done at an earlier period: even as what remained in their
-power to accomplish on behalf of popular rights was far less. But the
-malign aspect of the Church, then the chief power next the throne,
-towards the nation at large, and the Commons in particular, was most
-manifest and most alarming at the epoch under consideration. Old
-English liberties indeed had never been extinguished. The spirit of
-English self-government asserted under the house of Lancaster, though
-seemingly held in abeyance in the times of the Tudors, so far from
-expiring, had come out with renewed youth in the days of the Stuarts,
-through the parliamentary career of those eminent statesmen who formed
-the vanguard of the Commonwealth army. But against the illustrious Sir
-John Eliot, with his noble compeers, High Church contemporaries stood
-in defiant hostility. That kings are the fountains of all power; that
-they reign "by the grace of God," in the sense of divine right; that
-they are feudal lords--the soil their property, and the people their
-slaves--were doctrines upheld by sycophants of the Court, and endorsed
-and defended by doctors of the Church. Dr. Sibthorpe, a notorious
-zealot for passive obedience and non-resistance, monstrously declared,
-"If princes command anything, which subjects may not perform, because
-it is against the laws of God, or of nature, or impossible; yet
-subjects are bound to undergo the punishment, without either resisting,
-or railing, or reviling; and so to yield a passive obedience where they
-cannot exhibit an active one. I know no other case, but one of those
-three wherein a subject may excuse himself with passive obedience, but
-in all other he is bound to active obedience."[37] Another preacher
-of the same class, Dr. Manwaring, was brought before Parliament for
-maintaining, "That his Majesty is not bound to keep and observe the
-good laws and customs of this realm; and that his royal will and
-command in imposing loans, taxes, and other aids upon his people,
-without common consent in Parliament, doth so far bind the consciences
-of the subjects of this kingdom, that they cannot refuse the same
-without peril of eternal damnation."[38]
-
-The Church of the middle ages had commonly thrown its shield over
-subjects against the oppression of rulers: but in contrast with
-this, the Anglo-Catholic Church of the Stuart times stood in closest
-league with Government for purposes the most despotic. The tyranny
-of Buckingham in 1624, with his forced loans, became insupportable,
-and the obloquy of it all--alas for the Church of England!--fell
-largely upon its dignitaries, because favour had been strongly shown
-to the policy of that arrogant minister by such men as Sibthorpe and
-Manwaring. Strafford went beyond Charles in imperious despotism; and
-Strafford found in Archbishop Laud not only a helper in his "thorough"
-policy, but an example of even more violent measures, and a counsellor
-instigating him to still greater lengths.[39]
-
-Besides all this intolerance and oppression, it must be acknowledged
-that there was in the ministry of the Church of England a large amount
-of ungodliness and immorality. To believe that all the charges of
-clerical viciousness and criminality were true, would be to imbibe
-Puritan prejudice; whilst, on the other hand, to believe that all
-were false, would betray a strong tincture of High Church partiality;
-so much could not have been boldly affirmed, and generally believed,
-without a large substratum of fact. But more of this hereafter.
-
-Rigid ceremonialism, desecration of the Sabbath, sympathy with
-Roman Catholicism, fondness for imitating popish practices, cruel
-intolerance, alliance with unconstitutional rule, and the immorality
-of clergymen, will serve to explain what gave such force to the
-antagonistic puritan feeling which surged up so fearfully in 1640.
-The Church had become thoroughly unpopular amongst the middle and
-lower classes in London and other large places; in short, with that
-portion of the people, which in the modern age of civilization, must
-and will carry the day. They did not then, with all their fondness
-for theological controversy, care so much for any abstract idea of
-Church polity as for the actual working of ecclesiastical machinery,
-and the character and conduct of ecclesiastical men before their eyes.
-It was not any Presbyterian or Independent theory, as opposed to the
-Episcopalian system of the Church of England, that swept the nation
-along its fiery path in the dread assault which levelled the Episcopal
-establishment; but it was the indignation aroused by corruption,
-immorality, and intolerance, which kindled the blazing war-torch
-destined to burn to the ground both temple and throne. Had the Church
-of England been at that time a liberal and purely Protestant Church,
-and its rulers wise, moderate, and charitable men; whatever might have
-been the influence of ecclesiastical dogmas, its fate must have been
-far different from what it actually became.
-
-The person who carried Anglo-Catholicism to its greatest excess,
-and who, by other unpopular proceedings, did more than anybody
-else, to alienate from the State religion a large proportion of his
-fellow-countrymen, was William Laud. Ritualism ran riot under the rule
-of this famous prelate. Alienated from the theology of Augustine,
-but relishing the sacerdotalism of Chrysostom, he delighted in a
-gorgeous worship such as accorded with the Byzantine liturgy, and was
-penetrated with that reverence for the priesthood and the Eucharist
-which the last of the Greek orators, in his flights of rhetoric, did
-so much to foster. Whatever might be the extravagances in Byzantium,
-they were nearly, if not quite, paralleled when Archbishop Laud held
-unchecked sway. A church was consecrated by throwing dust or ashes
-in the air.[40] The napkin covering the Eucharistic elements was
-carefully lifted up, reverently peeped under, and then solemnly let
-fall again: all which performances were accompanied by repeated lowly
-obeisances before the altar. This ceremony was quite as childish and
-far less picturesque than the dramatic doings in the Greek Church,
-when choristers aped angels by fastening to their shoulders wings of
-gauze.[41] Into cathedrals, churches, and chapels, were also introduced
-pictures, images, crucifixes, and candles, which, with the aid of
-surplices and copes,[42] bowing, crossing, and genuflections, produced
-a spectacle which might be taken for a meagre imitation of the mass.
-Had not public opinion, which was beginning to be a mighty power,
-checked such proceedings, there can be no doubt they would speedily
-have reached such lengths, that an English parish church would have
-differed scarcely at all from a Roman Catholic chapel.[43]
-
-Laud's size was in the inverse ratio of his activity--for he had the
-name of "the little Archbishop," though his capacities for work were of
-gigantic magnitude. His influence extended everywhere, over everybody,
-and everything, small as well as great--like the trunk of an elephant,
-as well suited to pick up a pin as to tear down a tree. His articles
-of visitation traversed the widest variety of particulars, descending
-through all conceivable ecclesiastical and moral contingencies, down
-to the humblest details of village life. Churchwardens were asked,
-"Doth your minister preach standing, and with his hat off? Do the
-people cover their heads in the Church, during the time of divine
-service, unless it be in case of necessity, in which case they may
-wear a nightcap or coif?" These functionaries were also required to
-state, how many physicians, chirurgeons, or midwives there might be
-in the neighbourhood; how long they had used the office, and by what
-authority; and how they demeaned themselves, and of what skill they
-were accounted in their profession.[44] A report of the state of his
-province he presented to the King year by year.[45] Every bishopric
-passed under his review, and the substance of the information he
-obtained and digested, affords a bird's-eye view of the religious
-condition of each diocese, in the Archbishop's estimation. Oxford,
-Salisbury, Chichester, Hereford, Exeter, Ely, Peterborough, and
-Rochester, were in a tolerably fair condition, although furnishing
-matter here and there for some complaint. But in his own see of
-Canterbury there were many refractory persons, and divers Brownists
-and other separatists, especially about Ashford and Maidstone, who
-were doing harm, "not possible to be plucked up on the sudden."[46]
-London occasioned divers complaints of nonconformity. Factious and
-malicious pamphlets were circulated, Puritans were insolent, and
-curates and lecturers were "convented." From Lincoln came complaints,
-that parishioners wandered from church to church, and refused to come
-up to the altar rail at the holy communion; Buckingham and Bedfordshire
-also abounded in refractory people. Norwich had several factious men:
-Bridge and Ward are named, and it is said there was more of disorder
-in Ipswich and Yarmouth than in the cathedral city. Lecturers were
-abundant, and catechising neglected. In the diocese of Bath and Wells,
-lectures were put down in market towns, and afternoon sermons were
-changed into catechetical exercises. Popish recusants appeared fewer
-than before, and altogether the bishop had put things in marvellous
-order.
-
-As Laud's eye--that ferret-like eye, which under its arched brow,
-looks with cunning vigilance from Vandyke's canvas--ran over his whole
-province, and his busy pen recorded what he learned, he sent to the
-Inns of Court--the benchers having betrayed Puritan tendencies--and
-insisted upon surplice and hood, and the whole service prescribed for
-the occasion being used in chapel before sermon. He claimed rights
-of ecclesiastical visitation in the two universities, and inspected
-cathedrals and churches, as to their improvements and repairs;
-condescending even to order the removal of certain seats employed for
-the wives of deans and prebendaries, and directing them to sit upon
-movable benches, or chairs.[47]
-
-English residents in Holland;[48] chaplains of regiments amongst the
-Presbyterian Dutch; Protestant refugees in this country; and the
-ecclesiastical affairs of Scotland, all came under his vigilant notice,
-and within his tenacious grasp.[49]
-
-In his own diocese and province[50] Laud's hand fell heavily on those
-beneath his sway. "All men," it is remarked, "are overawed, so that
-they dare not say their soul is their own." The clergy of his cathedral
-muttered their dissatisfaction. Reports circulated that they were "a
-little too bold with him;" and his remedy was, "If upon inquiry I do
-find it true, I shall not forget that nine of the twelve prebends are
-in the king's gift, and order the commission of my visitation; or
-alter it accordingly."[51] Dean and prebendaries were soon humbled
-under such discipline.
-
-In court and country, in Church and State, Laud, next to the Earl of
-Strafford, must be considered to have been the most powerful minister
-in England.[52] Pledged to a thorough policy of arbitrary kingship, he
-helped in all things his royal master, and his able fellow-councillor.
-When Strafford was in Ireland as Lord Lieutenant, the Archbishop was
-the great power at home behind the throne. "He is the man," said
-courtiers, when they would point out the most favourable medium for
-approaching royalty.[53] His own power availed for the province of
-Canterbury; by the help of his archiepiscopal brother, Neil of York,
-it sufficed for all England. Such a man, so bigoted, so imperious, and
-so marvellously active, was sure to make many more foes than friends.
-He had also ways, altogether his own, of making enemies. As he himself
-tells us, he kept a ledger, in which he preserved a strict account of
-the theological and ecclesiastical bias of clergymen, for the guidance
-of his royal master in the distribution of patronage. O and P were the
-letters at the heads of two lists. On the _Orthodox_ all favours were
-showered. From those favours all _Puritans_ were excluded.[54]
-
-The Anglicanism of Laud was dear to Charles I. for two reasons. First,
-it harmonized with his own despotic principles. The King had been,
-ever since he assumed the crown, working out a problem in which the
-direst mischief was involved--whether it were not possible for an
-English sovereign, without casting away constitutional forms, to grasp
-at absolute dominion, to make the Commons a mere council for advice,
-or a Court to register decrees, rather than an integral branch of the
-Legislature; and, while conceding to them the office of filling the
-country's purse, to claim and exercise an independent power of managing
-the strings. He disliked parliaments, if they exercised their rights.
-"They are of the nature of cats," said he, "they ever grow curst with
-age, so that if you will have good of them, put them off handsomely
-when they come to any age, for young ones are ever most tractable."[55]
-His remedy for troublesome parliaments was dissolution. He preferred
-ship money to legal taxation: Anglicanism, from its maintenance of
-the Divine right of Kings, favoured his views in this respect, and
-divines of that stamp were after his own heart. But there was a
-second reason why Charles was drawn towards Laud. It would be unjust
-to the King to represent him merely as a politician. Grave, cold,
-reserved and haughty--qualities indicated in the countenance which the
-pencil of Vandyke has made familiar to us all--he was also a man of
-sincere religious feeling; but that feeling appears in harmony with
-his natural character. Stately ceremonialism, court-like prelacy,
-priestly _hauteur_, and a frigid creed corresponded even more with
-the idiosyncracy of the man than with the prejudices of the monarch.
-From a youth he had shown a leaning towards the Roman Catholic form of
-worship, and this tendency had been nourished by the education received
-from his father. "I have fully instructed them," King James observed in
-a letter touching his sons, "so as their behaviour and service shall,
-I hope, prove decent, and agreeable to the purity of the primitive
-Church, and yet as near the Roman form as can lawfully be done, for
-it hath ever been my way to go with the Church of Rome _usque ad
-aras_."[56]
-
-As we proceed in our review of parties, we feel the difficulty of
-defining the boundary between them. The majority of divines were
-thoroughly Anglican or thoroughly Puritan; yet a great many had only
-partial sympathies with the one or the other. Nor did they form a
-class of their own. In no sense were they party men, except so far
-as they were prepared to support episcopacy and defend the Common
-Prayer. Amongst these may be mentioned Dr. Jackson, sometime vicar of
-Newcastle, (afterwards Dean of Peterborough,) known in his own time as
-an exemplary parish priest, and very popular with the poor, relieving
-their wants "with a free heart, a bountiful hand, a comfortable
-speech, and a cheerful eye;" better known in our day as the author
-of a goodly row of theological works, including discourses on the
-Apostles' Creed.[57] He was a decided Arminian, and a rather High
-Churchman. Bishop Horne acknowledged a large debt to Dean Jackson, and
-Southey ranks him in the first class of English divines.[58] But his
-writings present strong attractions for those who have no High Church
-sympathies, because the reasonings and contemplations of such a man
-rise far above sectarian levels, and are suited to enrich and edify the
-whole Church of God. Dr. Christopher Sutton, prebendary of Westminster,
-the learned author of two admirable practical treatises, "Learn to
-Live" and "Learn to Die,"--in which patristic taste and a special
-regard for the Greek Fathers appear in connection with a highly devout
-spirit--is another theologian of the same period and the same class,
-in whom, with some Anglican elements, others of a Puritan cast are
-combined. The well-known Bishop Hall is a still more striking example
-of the Puritan divine united with the Anglican ecclesiastic.
-
-If Puritanism cared for antiquity it would be possible to make out
-for it a lineage extending back to the first ages of Christendom. As
-soon as the Church betrayed symptoms of backsliding, persons arose,
-jealous for her honour, who recalled her erring children to paths
-of pristine purity. When, boasting of numbers, the many who were
-predominant relaxed severity of discipline, and conformed to the
-world in various ways--a few zealous Novations and Donatists set up
-a standard of reform. In some cases they proceeded at the expense
-of charity, and in a narrow spirit; but they aimed ultimately at
-restoring what they deemed primitive communion. At a later period the
-name, and some of the ecclesiastical sympathies of the Puritans, were
-anticipated by the _Cathari_: and in the Lollards and Wickliffites
-of England, we may trace the spiritual ancestors of the men who
-revolutionized the Church in the seventeenth century. Several of our
-Reformers went beyond their brethren in ideas of reform; and in the
-reign of Elizabeth--particularly amongst those who returned from the
-continent, where they had been brought into close fellowship with
-Zwinglians and other advanced Protestants--there were persons holding
-opinions substantially the same with those adopted by Puritans under
-Charles I.; and those who had no doctrinal tenets or ecclesiastical
-preferences to separate them from their contemporaries, but had become
-somewhat distinguished by objections to certain forms, and more so by
-superior religiousness and spirituality of life, were, on that account,
-reproached by laxer men as bigoted precisians. As was natural, this
-treatment drove such persons into the arms of others who had embraced
-distinctive views of polity, between which and the strict habits of
-these new allies there existed obvious harmony. The anti-hierarchical
-temper of Puritanism, and its presumed favourableness to the broad
-principles and popular spirit of the British constitution secured for
-it, on that side, countenance from such as were far from adopting its
-religious principles. Leicester and Walsingham looked on it with some
-favour as a counterpoise to prelatical arrogance, if not for other
-reasons. Burleigh shielded the persecuted from the violence of the High
-Commission. Raleigh defended the cause in Parliament. Connection with
-these politicians gave political significancy to a movement originating
-entirely in spiritual impulses.
-
-Whenever any vigorous revival of religious life occurs, a tendency
-to "irregular proceedings" will be sure to appear in the movement
-party. Accordingly, one peculiarity of the early Protestants is seen
-in a love of meeting together for Christian culture and edification,
-apart from the formalities of established worship. The proceedings of
-these good people were such as would be now pronounced intensely Low
-Church. One neighbour conferred with another, and "did win and turn
-his mind with persuasive talk." "To see their travels," exclaimed our
-old martyrologist, "their earnest seeking, their burning zeal, their
-readings, their watchings, their sweet assemblies, their love and
-concord, their godly living, their faithful marrying with the faithful,
-may make us now, in these days of our free profession, to blush for
-shame."
-
-Somewhat resembling those meetings in the commencement of Henry VIII.'s
-reign were the prophesyings in the time of Elizabeth. A number of
-junior divines, present on these occasions, delivered in the order of
-seniority discourses on a portion of scripture appointed for the day,
-and then an elder brother, of learning, experience, and influence,
-reviewed what had been advanced, and terminated the engagement by
-prayer. Some of Elizabeth's bishops favourably regarded this practice
-as good discipline for preachers, and as affording edification to the
-people. Grindal incurred the royal displeasure for not putting down
-these prophesyings, for her Majesty would tolerate no innovations
-in the Established Church. Nor did she look with favour on popular
-preaching at all. Theological questions she reserved to be investigated
-by her learned divines. Only moral duties, the most elementary truths
-of Christianity, and the worship of God, belonged in her opinion to
-the people in general. "The liberty of prophesying," indeed, in those
-days so much resembled the liberty of the press--preachers so often
-spoke as the tribunes of the people, bringing divers public questions
-within the range of pulpit criticism, that the Queen had political as
-well as religious objections to the freedom of such orators.[59] To
-check Puritan tendencies, uniformity was pressed with rigour; The Queen
-assumed the initiative in the proceeding. Pilkington, Bishop of Durham,
-disliked the cap and surplice. Grindal, Bishop of London, was reluctant
-to force the prescribed habits. Even Archbishop Parker was slow in the
-business. At length the Queen's zeal carried all before it; Parker
-and his commission set to work, and shewed no want of earnestness.
-Aylmer, when he succeeded Grindal in the see of London, though once a
-friend to the Puritans, made up for his predecessor's lukewarmness by a
-rigorous suppression of all Nonconformity;[60] and Whitgift, tolerant
-in his Cambridge days, showed himself a stern persecutor when he became
-Primate, and Archbishop Bancroft went beyond them all. The minutest
-ceremonies were enforced; clerical garments, odious because of their
-Popish fashion, were imposed.[61] Such things were held by one party
-to be in themselves indifferent, and by the other party to involve a
-grave dereliction of Protestant principle. Yet the former imposed these
-things upon the latter. What was only excused by the imposer as an
-affair in itself of little moment, except for the sake of uniformity,
-was condemned by victims of the imposition as a perilous concession
-to superstitious ceremonialism. The cause of conscience on the one side
-came into collision with the cause of order on the other; part of the
-zeal manifested against Puritanism no doubt proceeded from a desire to
-gratify the Queen and prevent her from favouring Popery, and therefore
-originated in Protestant policy, but the policy was very short-sighted,
-and its injustice was equalled by its folly. Able, faithful, and
-learned ministers were silenced. In London especially, where Puritan
-ministers were numerous, multitudes of quiet steady citizens, with no
-love for schism, were alienated from the Established Church, and a long
-account of persecution began to be kept, which, when produced at the
-day of reckoning, had to be paid in the endurance of similar sufferings.
-
-The strong leaven of Puritanism in the reign of Elizabeth fermented
-in different ways. It produced the memorable controversies between
-Cartwright and Whitgift, and between Travers and Hooker: curiously
-enough, in both cases, the combatants were unequally matched;
-Cartwright being a much abler man than Whitgift, and Hooker vastly
-surpassing Travers. In the first of these polemical encounters, the
-Puritan maintained the exclusive authority of Scripture against the
-Anglican, who appealed to the Fathers: and in his opposition to
-prelacy, the Puritan developed views of Church government, hereafter
-to be noticed, which the Presbyterians of the seventeenth century for
-a while, and in a measure, succeeded in practically carrying out. We
-see the battle between Travers and Hooker fought on a wider field,
-including points of doctrine as well as matters of polity. The Puritan
-contended for the Scriptural authority of Church government, while the
-Churchman, looking more to the spirit than the letter of God's law
-and holy order, sought to lay the corner-stones of ecclesiastical
-polity in general principles. Beyond this difference, as preachers
-at the Temple where Travers was Lecturer and Hooker was Master, they
-presented rather dissimilar phases of theological doctrine; for it was
-said "the forenoon sermon spoke Canterbury, and the afternoon sermon
-Geneva." The preachers could not agree upon Predestination.[62] They
-had not precisely the same idea of Justification by faith. And further
-still--and in an age when the Popish controversy excited such deep
-feeling, the difference was of great consequence,--Hooker maintained,
-that the Church of Rome, though not a pure and perfect Church, was
-a true one, so far that such as live and die in its communion, upon
-repenting of their sins of ignorance, may be saved; but Travers said,
-that the Church of Rome is no true Church at all, so that such as
-live and die therein, holding justification in part by works, cannot,
-according to the Scriptures, be regarded as saved. Whatever now may be
-thought of this latter teaching, most Churchmen then would agree with
-Hooker, most Puritans with Travers.
-
-Puritanism opened its lips in parliament. An effort was made in 1584
-to curtail the power of bishops, to supersede or control canon law by
-common law, to give the people a share in the election of ministers,
-and to erect an eldership which, conjointly with the clergy, should
-manage the spiritual affairs of a parish. Attempts also were made at
-Sabbath reform; but the whole of this Puritanical movement was stopped
-by the Queen. Whitgift wrote to his royal mistress, condemning the
-interference of Parliament with ecclesiastical matters, and advising
-that whatever alterations were made in the Church should come in form
-of canon law from the clergy by _her Majesty's authority_. In this
-business we recognize an anticipation of the subsequent relative
-position of parties. Anglicanism stood on the side of prerogatives
-claimed by the Crown, Puritanism on the side of power claimed by
-Parliament.[63]
-
-With the Anglican change of doctrine came a change in Puritan
-controversy. Under Elizabeth, both parties in the Church of England
-were Calvinistic in their creed. When High Churchmen in the reign of
-James I. adopted Arminian views, this naturally excited the opposition
-of Low Churchmen, and the battle which had before been waged against
-caps and canons assumed a character of higher importance, and
-discussions were carried on involving creeds.
-
-The Puritans were the champions of predestination, and _identified_
-it with the doctrine of salvation by grace. Whether right or wrong
-in this respect, it is necessary that such an identification in
-their minds should be remembered, for the just appreciation of their
-character and conduct. They did not consider themselves as contending
-for mere abstractions, but for truths of the highest practical moment
-to the interests of mankind: and certainly many of their opponents in
-their anti-Calvinistic zeal shewed little sympathy with Evangelical
-sentiments, and contented themselves too generally with a hard, dry,
-Nicene orthodoxy, coupled with strong ritualistic predilections.
-There may certainly be found not a little of powerful moral teaching,
-like Chrysostom's, amongst the Anglican divines of that day, and a
-firm inculcation of such views as he held on the person of Christ; but
-there is a lack, as in his case, of that teaching which exalts the
-atoning work of the Redeemer, and the regenerating and sanctifying
-agency of the Holy Spirit. The Calvinistic decisions of the Synod of
-Dort--whither King James sent English representatives--did not at all
-allay the furiousness of the controversy: and if, in consequence of
-the Court instructions of 1622, "that no preacher under a bishop or
-dean should meddle with the dispute,"[64] the flame here and there
-might smoulder, assuredly the fire was by no means extinguished.
-It may be added, that many excellent men in the Church of England,
-who were far from embracing the theory of government espoused by
-Cartwright and Travers, and who considered as trifles the habits and
-ceremonies against which the earlier Puritans so earnestly protested,
-nevertheless joined with all their heart in opposing the doctrinal
-tenets of the Anglicans. Hence arose the distinction between doctrinal
-and ecclesiastical Puritans. To Puritans of both kinds James I. had a
-strong antipathy. Though at one time a sturdy Calvinist, he abandoned
-the system when it became a Puritan badge, but his most intense
-dislike fell on the ecclesiastical peculiarities of the party. When
-once he had come across the border, he identified Presbyterianism with
-republicanism, declaring that a kirk and a monarchy could no more agree
-than God and the Devil; and with a coarse insolence and vulgar spite,
-far more intolerable to his subjects than the temper of Elizabeth in
-her most imperious proceedings--for the two sovereigns were of totally
-different natures--the Scotch King of England declared, "I will harry
-the Puritans out of the land, or worse."
-
-We have already noticed the prayer-meetings and the prophesyings of
-the sixteenth century. Puritan lectureships, proceeding from the
-same spirit, were very much in advance of the other associations.
-They sprung from a desire to promote spiritual edification by means
-extraneous to the old parochial system, and in fact they practically
-anticipated the popular rights of election, and the principles of
-ecclesiastical voluntaryism taught at the present day. The lectureships
-depended on the free contributions of the people, who exercised the
-privilege of choosing as their lecturer the man whose doctrines and
-manner of life they approved. As parochial duties did not attach to
-the office, the lecturers were relieved of certain ceremonies, and,
-consequently, such ministers as felt Puritan scruples preferred to
-minister in this more limited capacity. The origin of the institution
-is obscure. It was first legally recognized by the Act of Uniformity
-at the Restoration; but a Friday evening lecture existed in the parish
-of St. Michael Royal as early as the year 1589. Whatever might be the
-exact nature of the beginning, the extensive progress of lectureships
-is apparent in the seventeenth century. The lecturers stood somewhat in
-the same relation to parish priests as the friars of the middle ages
-to the secular clergy, and, like them, they exercised large popular
-influence; like them too, they received large popular contributions;
-and also like them, in some cases, they were found in painful rivalry
-and collision with parochial incumbents.
-
-Another form of Puritan activity appeared in the institution of a
-body of trustees for the purchase of impropriations, with a view to
-secure as many livings as possible for ministers of Puritan opinions--a
-proceeding closely imitated in recent times by religious laymen, who
-buy advowsons for Evangelical clergymen. Fuller, who, in his own droll
-style, tells us of the twelve trustees, that four were "divines to
-persuade men's consciences; four lawyers to draw all conveyances; and
-four citizens who commanded rich coffers"--goes on to observe what
-incredibly large sums were advanced in a short time, and that it was
-verily believed, "if not obstructed in their endeavours, within fifty
-years, rather purchases than money would have been wanting."[65]
-
-Puritans disliked ceremonies. Earnest as to the spirit of worship, they
-cared little--often not enough--about forms. These men did not study,
-and could but imperfectly understand, the æsthetics of religion--as
-some people now call that which relates to seemly and expressive
-modes of divine service, dictated by propriety, common sense, and
-good taste. But beyond this, and chiefly, they had conscientious
-scruples respecting observances, to which, no doubt, with equal
-conscientiousness, the rulers of the Church attached importance. If
-conscience, on the one side, had been content to practice and not
-impose; conscience, on the other side, would have been saved the pain
-of resistance, if not the trouble of protest. The two parties were
-ever coming into dogged antagonism--prelates, zealous for uniformity,
-and Puritans as zealous against it. The latter, if ministers, would not
-wear the surplice, or read the whole liturgy; if people, they would
-not recite the creed after the minister, nor repeat the responses in
-the Litany and after the Ten Commandments; they would sit when they
-ought to stand, or stand when they ought to kneel, or remain erect
-when they ought to bow; ministers would preach when they were required
-to catechise; people wanted lecturers when they had only rectors or
-curates. Rather than yield in these matters they would suffer anything.
-Their oppressors called them "proud," "self-conceited," "malapert,"
-"puffed up by popular vogue," "indiscreet," "hollow pillars of
-Puritanism."[66] They retorted that Popery was overflowing the land,
-and they prayed that the Spirit of the Lord would lift up a standard
-against it.
-
-To repress these disorders, articles of visitation were drawn up more
-carefully than ever, with an increase of minuteness and stringency;
-and these were sent to churchwardens and sidesmen. But the power of
-spiritual courts, and episcopal and archidiaconal authority were set at
-nought by Puritan Protestants. It was asserted by some of the stiffer
-sort that bishops have no right to hold visitations without express
-commission under the great seal, or to tender articles unless made by
-Convocation and ratified by Parliament. People were advised to keep
-the visitation articles "for waste paper, or to stop mustard-pots."
-Citations to spiritual courts should be disregarded, it was said,
-unless the courts were held by royal patent and the processes were
-in the King's name. "Depart without more ado," advised these hasty
-disposers of ecclesiastical law; "if they excommunicate you it is
-void--you may go to Church notwithstanding. If all subjects will take
-this course, they will soon shake off the prelates' tyranny and yoke
-of bondage, under which they groan through their own defaults and
-cowardice."[67]
-
-Such was the spirit shown by some; but in many cases the ecclesiastical
-powers could not be so trifled with, and Puritans suffered fines
-and imprisonment. Rather than endure this injustice many preferred
-exile; some retired to Holland; others to the shores of New England.
-Six-score passengers, it was reported, were going out in two ships,
-and six hundred more were prepared to follow. Such swarms of emigrants
-alarmed their neighbours, who complained of the decrease of the
-king's people, the overthrow of trade, and the augmented number of
-those who were disaffected towards episcopacy.[68] But the drain went
-on, the Puritans saying, "The sun of heaven doth shine as comfortably
-in other places; the sun of righteousness much brighter; better to go
-and dwell in Goshen, find it where we can, than tarry in the midst of
-such an Egyptian darkness as is falling on this land."[69] This was in
-the spirit of Dante, who, when an exile from his beloved home on the
-Arno, asked, "Shall I not everywhere behold the light of the sun and of
-the stars?--Shall I not everywhere under Heaven be able to enjoy the
-most delightful truths?"
-
-Baxter has embodied the sentiment in one of his hymns:--
-
- "All countries are my Father's lands,
- Thy sun, Thy love doth shine on all;
- We may in all lift up pure hands,
- And with acceptance on Thee call.
-
- "No walls, nor bars, can keep Thee out,
- None can confine a holy soul;
- The street of heaven it walks about,
- None can its liberty control."
-
-Such men were not likely to be subdued by persecution; they had caught
-a spirit which all the violence in the world could not crush; and the
-only results of that violence were the increase of their own constancy,
-surrounded by the honours of spiritual heroism, and the infamy which
-will for ever rest on the memory of their cruel oppressors.
-
-It must not be supposed that their cause was unpatronized by men of
-influence, or their case unheard in the halls of Parliament. They had
-friends amongst the noble; and patriotic tongues were eloquent on their
-behalf in the House of Commons. Though for a while protest did not
-avail against their persecution, in the end it bore for the persecutors
-bitter fruit. It made way for the exposure and chastisement of their
-guilt, and was neither forgotten nor found to be ineffective, when, in
-the dispensations of a righteous Providence, a day of retribution came.
-
-Puritanism was a reaction against Anglicanism. It was an assertion
-of the right of private judgment against Church decisions, of the
-exclusive authority of Scripture against tradition, and of the
-simplicity of worship against elaborate ceremonialism. The intense
-horror of Popery felt by the Puritans was deepened by the papistic
-practices of the Anglicans. The strict observance of the Sabbath was
-made still more strict by the publication of the "Book of Sports," and
-by the practical depreciation of the Lord's day through the immense
-importance attached to Church festivals. The defection of the High
-Church party from the Evangelical creed, and still more from the
-evangelical spirit of the Reformers, riveted closely the attachment of
-the Puritans to the articles and homilies, as distinguished from the
-liturgy and rubric; and made them more full and earnest in exhibiting
-the freedom of salvation through the atonement of Jesus Christ, and
-the new birth of the Spirit of God. Also the working out of Arminian
-principles in unevangelical ways drove the Puritans into sharper and
-more rigid forms of Calvinistic speculation. But, happily for the fame
-of the latter, they were led, by the persecution they suffered, to
-connect themselves with the friends of political liberty; and thus to
-share in the honour belonging to the noble band of patriots, who, not
-without some mistakes but with a wisdom and heroism--which it would
-be idle to question and unthankful to forget--secured for us those
-national privileges which distinguish Englishmen from the rest of
-Europe.
-
-Taking Andrewes and Donne as exponents of Anglican theology, the reader
-may take Bolton and Sibbs as representatives of Puritan teaching. Their
-works were exceedingly popular with the Evangelicals of Charles I.'s
-reign. In rough leather binding they might have been seen on the humble
-library shelf of the yeoman's house, or in his hands well thumbed,
-as he sat in his window-seat or walked in his little garden. "The
-Four Last Things" led many to prepare for the future life; and "The
-Bruised Reed" became honoured as the chief means of Richard Baxter's
-conversion. The tone of piety in these men partook of a glow and ardour
-which made their spiritual life, at times, appear like a rapture, and
-rendered their death "a perfect euthanasia." "By the wonderful mercies
-of God," said Bolton, "I am as full of comfort as my heart can hold,
-and feel nothing in my soul but Christ, with whom I heartily desire to
-be." Asked by a friend in his last moments on a sharp December day,
-"Do you feel much pain?" "Truly no," he replied, "the greatest pain I
-feel is your cold hand." If, to use a figure of Coleridge, the Cross
-shines dimly in certain Anglican authors, that Cross is all-radiant in
-Puritan theology. If, in the one case, the cloudy pillar hovers in the
-neighbourhood of the promised land without entering it, in the other,
-it conducts those who follow its guidance straight into a land flowing
-with milk and honey.
-
-Let it not be supposed that the doctrinal Puritans in Stuart times were
-perpetually preaching, or writing on doctrinal subjects; or that they
-had the least sympathy with the sectaries. Thomas Adams is an eminent
-doctrinal Puritan of that age, but no sermons can be more eminently
-practical than his; they are the furthest removed from Antinomian
-tendencies. He is ever combating the vices around him, and insisting
-upon a solid scriptural morality; whilst his allusions to Brownists are
-caustic enough to have satisfied, in that respect, the taste of the
-most decided Anglican.
-
-Puritanism was not so much a creed, or a code, as a life. Though a
-reaction, the movement was no superficial phenomenon thrown up by the
-chafing together of obstinate minds on opposite sides. The causes
-were some of them ancient, and all of them deep. It is possible even
-that peculiarities of race and blood might have somewhat to do with
-the strong sympathies of the middle and lower classes, in a simple
-and unostentatious kind of religious worship. The plain and sturdy
-nature of the Anglo-Saxon was still pure, in a multitude of cases,
-from Norman admixture in those ranks of society where Puritanism most
-prevailed; and the Anglo-Saxon had ever shown himself unfriendly to
-that ecclesiastical pomp of architecture and glittering ritual which
-delighted the Norman. Traditional opinions and sentiments, opposed
-to the spirit of Romanism, had been handed down through the middle
-ages, from one generation to another of the English commonalty in
-their homesteads and cottages; and, probably, as those opinions and
-sentiments had contributed to the outbursts of Lollardism, and helped
-on the cause of the Reformation, so also they ministered to the later
-development of principles, proceeding further in the same direction.
-Beyond all doubt, the Puritan under James was the religious son and
-heir of the reformer under Elizabeth; he inherited, and expressed
-more boldly and more truly, his father's spirit. Puritanism came only
-as the second stage in a progress of which the Reformation was the
-first. Such an impulse as Protestantism could not be resisted--set,
-as it was from the beginning, decidedly in the direction of change
-beyond what the compromise under the Tudors allowed. The pent-up
-waters of Protestantism found a vent through Puritanism. Besides,
-the persecutions under Mary rendered Rome more hateful to Englishmen
-during the last half of the sixteenth century than during the first;
-the children who heard of the Smithfield fires were more exasperated
-even than the parents who saw them, and they hated with a bitter hatred
-everything in the Church which, in their opinion, pointed Romewards.
-The Puritan reaction against Popery is to be regarded as also aided
-by its alliance with the reactions, moral and political, against
-despotism; freedom appeared to the Puritan not merely as something
-expedient, and to be desired for temporal ends, but as a heaven-born
-right, a gift of God, which it was man's duty to claim and assert, in
-the face of earth and hell: and thus kindred forces bore toward the
-same point. Puritanism, moreover, presented a strong attraction to
-religious minds of a certain class. Multitudes were sinners of a coarse
-type, and wanted something infinitely stronger than forms, ceremonies,
-orthodox abstractions, and moral advice to put things right between
-their souls and God, and to give them holiness and peace. The Puritan
-exhibition of the love of God in Christ, of the wonders of redemption,
-and of the abounding mercy of Heaven through the Cross for the chief
-of sinners, supplied just what such persons required. Nor to these
-alone, but to numbers beside, not coarse-minded transgressors, the
-full, clear, and unmixed manifestation of the Gospel plan of saving the
-lost came as the most blessed and welcome of messages. And finally, in
-enumerating the causes of Puritanism, devout minds, at all in sympathy
-with it, will assuredly include that mighty wind which "bloweth where
-it listeth."
-
-Being in some respects a reaction, I may venture to observe, it had
-in it what all reactions have--much onesidedness. It betrayed narrow
-views of many subjects, straining at trifles, magnifying unimportant
-points, and not seeing that the avoidance of superstition in one
-quarter is no security against being overtaken by it in another.
-There also often occurred a want of charity in judging other people,
-and those who did not adopt the Puritan type were in danger of being
-put down as publicans and sinners. Puritans were also prone to use
-irritating language to their opponents, and shewed at times little
-of that meekness and gentleness, the want of which they bitterly
-condemned in others.[70] They were intolerant,--with the exception of
-a few separatists,--and cannot be regarded as having understood the
-principles of religious liberty. They asserted freedom on their own
-behalf, but if they could have had the power, they would have imposed
-their own peculiarities on all their fellow-countrymen. They were too
-apt to be rigid and precise in their methods of theology, and to take
-"tithe of mint, anise, and cummin," though not so as to be unmindful
-of "the weightier matters of the law." Their scruples as to liturgical
-forms were carried to excess, and they evinced a want of that kind
-of taste which marked the Anglican churchman by excluding, as Jeremy
-Taylor says, "the solemn melody of the organ, and the raptures of
-warbling and sweet voices out of cathedral choirs."[71] And finally,
-they did not sufficiently recognize the need of providing innocent
-and healthy recreations for the people. Man was regarded by them as a
-creature made to work and worship, but hardly to play. Some Anglicans
-were ascetic, but they were gleesome at times, and conceded, if they
-did not enjoin, rather uproarious amusement in connection with their
-festivals. They had their fast-days and lenten seasons, but they
-had also the merry feasts of Christmas and Easter, Whitsuntide and
-Michaelmas. They went daily to church, were fond of the Prayer Book and
-oratory, but they had no objection to revels, masques, May-poles, and
-village games. These sudden transitions from what was grave to what
-was gay, and this mixing up of things sacred with things trifling, had
-a hurtful effect, and the religion thus fostered closely approached
-that of France and Italy. Hence the Puritans rushed to the extreme of
-putting down many manly sports, and discouraging national pastimes,
-which, purified from immorality, were adapted to promote national
-vigour, cheerfulness, and good fellowship. While, however, they
-abolished church festivals they appointed holidays of another kind,
-and had relaxations of their own, hereafter to be recounted. Yet the
-restraints they placed upon society in the day of their power were
-such, perhaps, as more than any thing else tended to alienate from
-them the sympathies of a large portion of their fellow-countrymen.
-The broken May-pole and deserted village green had no small share in
-bringing about some of the worst resentments of the Restoration.
-
-Blind homage is no honour. To acknowledge the defects of Puritanism
-gives all the more force to an exhibition of its excellencies. There
-clung around it the imperfections of humanity, but it had in it a germ
-of lasting life, a divine element of grace and power.
-
-
-
-
- [Illustration]
-
- CHAPTER I.
-
-
-We meet with statements, on the authority of Lord Clarendon, to the
-effect that the members of the Long Parliament "were almost to a man
-for episcopal government," and "had no mind to make any considerable
-alteration in Church or State."[72] On the other hand, we are told that
-at the beginning, "the party in favour of presbyterian government was
-very strong in the House of Commons, and that they were disposed to be
-contented with no less than the extirpation of bishops."[73] Neither
-statement conveys a correct idea of this remarkable assembly.
-
-[Sidenote: 1640, November.]
-
-Let us enter St. Stephen's chapel after the ceremony described in our
-Introduction, and see for ourselves.
-
-Dressed mostly in short cloaks, and wearing high-crowned hats,
-grave-looking men were seated on either side the speaker's chair, which
-was occupied by William Lenthall, a person of dignified aspect, arrayed
-in official robes, as represented by the picture in the National
-Portrait Gallery. Behind the chair were the Royal arms, and above it
-was the grand Gothic window, rendered familiar to us by old quaint
-woodcuts. The mace lay on the table by which the clerks of the House
-sat, busy with books and papers; and it may be stated, once for all,
-that the forms of the House were rigidly observed, during the memorable
-war of words through which this history will conduct the reader.
-
-Denzil Holles, younger son of John, first Earl of Clare, sat for
-Dorchester. Foremost amongst those afterwards known as Presbyterian
-leaders, his influence in part was owing to his rank, and early court
-associations--for he had been on terms of intimacy with the King--but
-still more his power proceeded from the firm and somewhat fiery
-decision of his views, as well as from a reputation for integrity and
-honour, which raised him above the suspicion of self-interest or of
-factious animosity. Even in the days of James, he had resisted the
-encroachments of prerogative; and, in the reign of Charles, he had,
-through his adherence to the same course, been not only mulcted in a
-large fine, but imprisoned during the Royal pleasure.[74]
-
-[Sidenote: _Members of Long Parliament._]
-
-Glynne, Recorder of London, and a Member for the City, was also
-ultimately a decided Presbyterian; and the same may be said of Maynard,
-who represented the borough of Totness. In the same class may be
-included Sir Benjamin Rudyard, member for Wilton, and Surveyor of His
-Majesty's Court of Wards and Liveries, an accomplished gentleman, "an
-elegant scholar," and a frequent speaker. In earlier parliaments he had
-hotly debated religious questions, though he was conspicuous for loyal
-protestations as sincere as they were fervid. At first he advocated
-some qualified form of episcopal superintendence, but, from the opening
-of the Long Parliament, he condemned existing prelacy, and thus
-prepared himself for adopting presbyterian tenets.
-
-All these, and others less known, were from the first not only
-doctrinal but ecclesiastical Puritans, and were inspired by an intense
-detestation of Popery, and of everything which they believed paved the
-way to it. Beyond them, we find another group of men further advanced
-in the path of Church politics.
-
-[Sidenote: 1640, November.]
-
-[Sidenote: _Members of Long Parliament._]
-
-Few have been more unfairly represented than Sir Harry Vane the
-younger, member for Hull. Though son of the Comptroller of His
-Majesty's household, and brought up at Court, he was, when a youth,
-reported to the King as "grown into dislike of the discipline and
-ceremonies of the Church of England." Not long after this, it was
-stated in a letter, that he had left his father, (old Sir Harry Vane,)
-his mother, and his country, and that fortune which his father would
-have left him, and for conscience' sake was gone to New England.[75]
-There he became Governor of Massachusetts, and, in that capacity,
-carried out the principles of religious toleration with a consistency
-and an equity so unique, as to offend many of the colonists, who,
-while advocates of religious freedom, persecuted, through mistaken
-fears, a sincerely religious woman, only because she was obstinate
-and fanatical. Returned to England, young Vane became not only member
-of the Short Parliament, but received knighthood from Charles I., and
-joined Sir W. Russel in the Treasurership of the Navy--a proceeding
-which indicated at the time something of a conciliatory disposition
-on both sides. With a philosophical temperament of the imaginative
-cast, and with strong religious tendencies in a mystical direction;
-smitten also with the charms of Plato's republic, and longing for
-the realization of his ideal within the shores of England, Vane
-seemed to many of his sober-minded contemporaries an enthusiast and
-a visionary; yet it would be difficult to disprove the testimony of
-Ludlow, that "he was capable of managing great affairs--possessing,
-in the highest perfection, a quick and ready apprehension, a strong
-and tenacious memory, a profound and penetrating judgment, a just and
-noble eloquence, with an easy and graceful manner of speaking. To
-these were added a singular zeal and affection for the good of the
-Commonwealth, and a resolution and courage not to be shaken or diverted
-from the public service."[76] Probably no man, at the beginning of the
-Long Parliament, so thoroughly grasped or could so well advocate the
-principles of religious liberty as Sir Harry Vane. There he sat in old
-St. Stephen's, with a refined expression of countenance, most pleasant
-and prepossessing; a person, says Clarendon, "of unusual aspect, which
-made men think there was somewhat in him of extraordinary."[77]
-
-Nathaniel Fiennes, Lord Say and Sele's son, who represented Banbury,
-also held rank in the vanguard of religious liberty. Educated at
-Geneva--where also Vane had spent some of his early years--he had
-imbibed in some degree the spirit of that renowned little republic;
-and his opposition to the ecclesiastical establishment of his native
-country was, on his entering public life, soon roused by the working
-out of Anglo-Catholic principles. He agreed with Vane in his broad
-views of freedom, and when the Presbyterian and Independent parties
-assumed a definite form, he took his place with the latter. Clarendon
-admits his "good stock of estimation in the House of Commons," his
-superior "parts of learning and nature," and speaks of his being "a
-great manager in the most secret designs from the beginning."[78]
-
-[Sidenote: 1640, November.]
-
-Another individual there--according to the report of a courtly young
-gentleman, Sir Philip Warwick--wore a suit which seemed made by a
-country tailor; his linen was plain, and not very clean; a speck or two
-of blood stained his little band, which, very uncourtier-like, was not
-much larger than his collar; his hat had no hat-band, and his sword
-stuck close to his side. The man appeared of good stature, but his
-countenance looked swollen and reddish, and his voice sounded sharp and
-untunable; but he spoke with fervour, and much to the vexation of the
-royalist observer, this shabby-looking member was "very much hearkened
-unto." "Pray who is that man, that sloven who spake just now?" said
-Lord Digby--one who _then_ took the patriotic side--to another, John
-Hampden,--who afterwards died for it.--"That sloven whom you see before
-you hath no ornament of speech; that sloven, I say, if we should ever
-come to a breach with the King, which God forbid, in such a case I say,
-that sloven will be the greatest man in England." The speaker was the
-sloven's cousin, and, with the intuitive perception of a kindred mind,
-saw in that rough piece of humanity some of the rarest elements of
-power which this world has ever felt.
-
-Oliver Cromwell began his parliamentary career in 1628, as member for
-Huntingdon. In the Long Parliament he represented Cambridge, being
-returned by a majority of only one. As early as 1628 he distinguished
-himself in a debate respecting the pardon of certain religious
-delinquents, by charging some leading Churchmen with Popery; and though
-we can see nothing in his speeches but a rough, rude energy, they were
-jerked out by his untunable voice in such a fashion that they were
-remembered and talked of when many eloquent orations had glided into
-oblivion. His house at Huntingdon afforded a refuge to persecuted
-Nonconformist ministers. At St. Ives he achieved an unequalled
-reputation for "piety and self-denying virtue." And at Ely--whence he
-had now come to London, over bad roads in the foggy month of November,
-travelling on horseback in humble style--at Ely, dwelling at the glebe
-house, near St. Mary's Churchyard, he maintained the same character and
-influence, though there he suffered dreadfully from hypochondria. In
-part it rose from seeing his brethren forsake their native country to
-seek their bread among strangers, or to live in a howling wilderness.
-
-[Sidenote: _Members of the Long Parliament._]
-
-Oliver St. John, member for Totness, was on terms of friendship with
-Oliver Cromwell, more so in the later than in the earlier portion of
-his history. Eminent for qualities such as help to make the good lawyer
-and the useful statesman, there hung round his ways a mystery--the
-effect of reticence and moroseness--which impaired his influence, and
-gave him the name of "the dark-lantern man!" At first chiefly known in
-a legal and political capacity, as time advanced, and events rolled
-into ecclesiastical channels, he became active in religious affairs,
-and took a foremost place amongst political independents.
-
-Sir Arthur Haselrig represented Leicestershire. He had married the
-sister of Lord Brook, and probably shared in what were considered the
-extreme ecclesiastical opinions of that nobleman. What these opinions
-were will be seen as we proceed, together with the course which the
-Leicestershire baronet took, as well on State as on Church questions.
-He, at an early period of the Long Parliament, showed himself decidedly
-opposed to Episcopacy, and ultimately became a thorough Republican.
-With much warm-heartedness and generosity, he had also the rashness
-and prejudice which are the dark shadows of such virtues, so that his
-enemies said he had "more will than wit," and gave him the nickname of
-"hare-brained."
-
-But far more influential at first than any of these were other men whom
-we must describe.
-
-[Sidenote: 1640, November.]
-
-Of the Parliamentary leaders, the most renowned and influential at the
-commencement of the struggle was John Pym. That "grave and religious
-gentleman"--burgess for the good town of Tavistock--appeared as
-conspicuously in religious business as in that which was strictly
-political. His countenance had a lion-like dignity, and, with a
-touch of melancholy in eyes and lips, there blended an expression of
-invincible firmness, while his shaggy mane-like hair, disarranged,
-as he spoke with tremendous energy, were in keeping with the rest of
-his majestic appearance. For eight and twenty years he had struggled
-against the policy of King, Court, and Church. Wise in council, and
-eloquent in speech, though quaint and tedious in the style of his
-oratory--a trifling drawback, however, in that age--he stood forward
-the most formidable antagonist with whom the High Church party had to
-deal. So closely at one time did John Pym connect Church and State--in
-this respect widely differing from Sir Harry Vane--that in 1628, he
-declared, "It belongs to the duty of a Parliament to establish true
-religion and to punish false; we must know what Parliaments have
-done formerly in religion. Our Parliaments have confirmed General
-Councils."[79] This now would be called a thoroughly Erastian style of
-speaking. It proceeded on the theory of the Church being subject to
-the State, and in this view many of the ecclesiastical reformers of
-that age were _practically_ agreed, however diversified their notions
-of Church government might be. Pym, though never a Nonconformist, but
-simply professing himself "a faithful son of the Protestant religion,"
-from the beginning of his career opposed the spirit and proceedings of
-Anglican prelacy; and as to the questions affecting Episcopacy, he at
-last acted with those who sought its overthrow. He had a large share
-in calling the Long Parliament, as he prepared the petition for that
-purpose, and went to York to present it to the King. After the writs
-had been issued, Pym and others proceeded on an electioneering crusade,
-urging the voters to support representatives who would maintain the
-liberties of their country, then so threatened and imperilled. As
-popular opinion counted him the author of the Long Parliament, so
-common consent assigned to him the position of its leader.
-
-[Sidenote: _Members of the Long Parliament._]
-
-Next to John Pym comes John Hampden--the illustrious member for
-Buckinghamshire, universally known for his resistance of ship-money,
-and for his brief but brilliant military career. His religious
-character and the part he took in ecclesiastical affairs have,
-however, been much overlooked; yet, in early life, as the friend of
-Sir John Eliot, he had followed that single-minded and unflinching
-patriot in his noble resistance of ecclesiastical as well as regal
-despotism, and was one of the leaders of the advanced party which
-sought to promote reforms in Church and State. In 1629 he was engaged
-in preparing bills for enlarging the liberty of hearing the Word of
-God, and for preventing corruption in the collation to benefices,
-headships, fellowships, and scholarships in Colleges, besides other
-measures of less importance in a similar direction. "He was," says
-Clarendon, "not a man of many words, and rarely began the discourse,
-or made the first entrance upon any business that was assumed; but
-a very weighty speaker, and after he had heard a full debate, and
-observed how the House was like to be inclined, took up the argument,
-and shortly, and clearly, and craftily, so stated it, that he commonly
-conducted it to the conclusion he desired; and if he found he could
-not do that, he never was without the dexterity to divert the debate
-to another time, and to prevent the determining anything in the
-negative which might prove inconvenient in the future."[80] All this,
-when stript of its manifest unfairness, means neither more nor less
-than that this persistent enemy of ship-money must have been also a
-skilful parliamentary tactician, possessing a rare insight into men
-and motives. His modesty and moderation are acknowledged even by
-this prejudiced historian; and the rapid progress of his opinions on
-ecclesiastical affairs made him what the same authority truly calls,
-"a root-and-branch man"--a fact which, though doubted by one of
-his biographers, is correctly maintained by another.[81] His high
-intellectual forehead, his delicately chiselled features, his eyes so
-calmly looking you through, his lips of compressed firmness, with a
-kind of melancholy presentiment imprinted on his whole face--betoken
-a man born to a great but sad destiny; and we do not wonder at
-the confidence he inspired, whether he appealed to the patriotism
-of his tenantry and neighbours in the old family mansion down in
-Buckinghamshire, at the back of the Chiltern hills, or stood up to
-address the grave assembly in St. Stephen's Chapel, Westminster.[82]
-Perhaps it is right here to mention a man of a very different stamp,
-who sat near these illustrious statesmen and acted with them. Henry
-Marten, member for Berks--and, after his father's death, renowned
-through the county for his hospitable entertainments in the vale of
-"White Horse"--was as gay and humorous, and as fond of fun as the other
-two were serious and dignified. Nor can it be denied that he seems to
-have been as licentious as they were virtuous--as "far from a Puritan
-as light from darkness," and as destitute of religious faith as they
-were diligent in its cultivation. Strongly republican, he steadily
-opposed the Court policy, and, perhaps through religious indifference,
-became tolerant of the religious opinions of others. He belongs to a
-considerable class of men who from political feeling are attached to
-ecclesiastical reformers, and who join with them in aspirations after
-the widest liberty, though incapable of entering into their loftier
-purposes. Marten's name does not occur in the early ecclesiastical
-debates of the Long Parliament, but he is found afterwards in
-connection with political Independents.
-
-John Selden, member for the University of Oxford, must not be dropped
-out of this roll. Merely to mention his name is to suggest the idea
-of marvellous learning. His reputation--now exalted by distance of
-time, and widened by the flow of ages--reached in his own day almost
-surprising magnitude, and must have imparted immense authority to his
-opinions. Those opinions, in reference to Church affairs, were what are
-commonly called Erastian. In the early conflicts of Puritanism, Selden
-fought in its ranks against the domineering spirit of prelacy, though
-no Puritan himself, and not having any objection to bishops, provided
-they were kept in subjection to the State.[83] His strength in public
-affairs seems to have shewn itself more in the way of opposition than
-in constructive skill. If he did not positively help to pull down
-Episcopacy he hindered the setting up of Presbyterianism. Nor should it
-be forgotten that, student-like, he preferred his library to the arena
-of debate, and notwithstanding his sacrifices at one time to liberty,
-he had too great a love of ease--if we are to believe Clarendon, who
-knew and admired him[84]--to take much trouble in guiding the helm of
-public affairs.
-
-[Sidenote: 1640, November.]
-
-[Sidenote: _Members of the Long Parliament._]
-
-Anecdotes are related serving to shew that even after the opening
-of the Long Parliament, the reformers had not definitely made up
-their minds as to what should be done. One "fine evening," Nathaniel
-Fiennes, after dining at Pym's lodgings with Mr. Hyde, afterwards
-Lord Clarendon, rode out with him on horseback "in the fields between
-Westminster and Chelsea." Hyde, in the course of conversation, asked
-Fiennes, "what government do you mean to introduce if the existing
-constitution of the Church were altered?" To this he replied "there
-will be time enough to think of that;" but he "assured him, and wished
-him to remember what he said, that if the King resolved to defend
-the bishops, it would cost the kingdom much blood, and would be the
-occasion of as sharp a war as had ever been in England; for that there
-was so great a number of good men who resolved to lose their lives
-before they would ever submit to that government."[85] These words
-were uttered in the summer of 1641, when the Long Parliament had
-been sitting seven or eight months. At an earlier period, Sir Philip
-Warwick--the Court gentleman who quizzed Cromwell's clothes--met the
-rough-looking man in the lobby of the House, and wished to know what
-the real objects of his party were. "I can tell you," he bluntly
-replied, "what I would _not_ have, if I cannot what I _would_." We are
-convinced that Cromwell spoke the truth in relation to his views of
-both the political and ecclesiastical changes on the brink of which
-the nation stood. Changes hovered not in the distance but at hand, and
-amongst them some which must modify the ecclesiastical establishment;
-but how far, looking at the different opinions of the country, reform
-ought to be carried, did not at once appear. Some few had republican
-theories--for example, Vane and Marten--and possibly at an early
-period they contemplated the overthrow of the monarchy, and with it
-the Episcopal Church. The latter of these gentlemen blurted out as
-much, with regard to monarchy, only two days after Fiennes' talk with
-Hyde, intimating his design to employ certain persons up to a certain
-point, and then to use them "as they had used others." But there is no
-solid ground for believing that the greater number of the reformers
-had at first any further object than that of effectually curbing
-kingly prerogative in the state, and bringing down the pomp and pride
-of episcopacy in the Church. The course which they actually pursued
-shaped itself according to the discipline of circumstances. Their
-views widened as they went along. As is often the case in times of
-change, these reformers in the end were forced to seek more than they
-originally imagined. First denied the little which might have contented
-them, they felt prompted to a further struggle, and naturally claimed
-more and more: it was but the story of the Sybil, with her books,
-repeated once again. Easy is it to point out apparent inconsistencies
-in the career of men so influenced, and plausible too are the charges
-against them of concealment, treachery, and breach of faith; but an
-impartial consideration of facts, and honest views of human nature,
-will lead to conclusions at once more favourable and more just. The
-truth is, that the members of the Long Parliament were not theorists
-intent on working out some perfect ideal, but practical men who looked
-at things as they were, and with upright intentions endeavoured to mend
-them as best they could. They aimed at reforming institutions much
-in the same plodding way as that in which their fathers had founded
-and reared those institutions. The opening of the States General in
-France presents in this respect a contrast to the opening of the
-Long Parliament in England; the brilliant theoristic Frank cannot be
-confounded with the sober, practical Saxon. The defiance or treachery
-of opponents filled our religious patriots of the seventeenth century
-with alarm, drove them to take up a higher position than they at first
-assumed, and to encamp themselves behind more formidable entrenchments
-than it then entered into their minds to raise.
-
-Another class in the House of Commons requires attention. Many were
-favourably disposed to the Church of England, advocating a moderate
-episcopacy and approving the use of the Common Prayer, with a few
-alterations. They had no liking for Presbyterian schemes of government,
-much less for a congregational polity. Their sympathies went with the
-Church of their fathers, the Church of the Reformation, the Church
-which was built over the ashes of Ridley, Latimer, and Cranmer. They
-cannot be called Anglican Catholics; but they were to the heart
-English Churchmen. Despising the mummeries of Laud, and not liking the
-instructions of his school, then so common in parish churches--these
-persons loved the old Gothic and ivy-mantled edifices where they had
-been baptized and married, and by whose altars their parents slept
-under quaint old monuments, which touched their hearts whenever they
-worshipped within the walls. They wished to see the Church of England
-reformed, not overturned.
-
-[Sidenote: _Members of the Long Parliament._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1640, November.]
-
-Lucius Carey, Viscount Falkland, member for Newport, stood among
-the chief of this description. His early fate, as well as his high
-esteem for John Hampden, must ever link their names in affecting
-companionship. For a time they fought a common battle. What Hampden
-said at the commencement of the strife about bishops and Anglican High
-Churchism we do not know; but we know what Falkland said, and shall
-have occasion to record some of his words, which for fiery sharpness
-against prelatical assumptions were not surpassed by the speeches of
-any Puritan. Attempts had been made to bring him over to Popery, which
-had led to his reading the Fathers and pursuing the controversy for
-himself.[86] Thus skilled in the knowledge of the whole question, the
-result of his studies was not only an aversion to the finished system
-of Popery, but a healthful horror of all those insinuating principles
-and practices which lead to it. A sounder Protestant did not tread
-the floor of the House than Viscount Falkland. Virtuous and brave,
-with honour unimpeachable, and with patriotism unsuspected, he wins
-our heart, even though we lament the course he ultimately pursued.
-His full-length character, drawn by Clarendon, true and faithful no
-doubt, though the hand of friendship laid on the colours, inspires
-the reader with admiration and love: but we are somewhat startled at
-what the historian says of the _physique_ of his honoured friend: his
-stature low, his motion not graceful, his aspect far from inviting,
-with a voice so untuned that none could expect music from that tongue,
-he was so uncomely that "no man was less beholden to nature for its
-recommendation into the world." The portrait of Falkland, by Vandyke,
-hardly confirms this unfavourable description of his appearance by
-Clarendon, though even there, in spite of cavalier silk and slashed
-doublet, ample collar tassel-tyed, and flowing locks, the face of the
-young nobleman wears a somewhat rustic simplicity, albeit, tinged with
-an expression of sincere good-nature.
-
-[Sidenote: _Members of the Long Parliament._]
-
-A chief place amongst Church reformers during the first few months
-of the Long Parliament must be assigned to Sir Edward Dering. He
-represented the Kentish yeomen, the majority of whom had been driven
-into Puritanism by the Anglo-Catholic zeal of Laud; and he expressed
-the predominant feeling of the county, when he quaintly said, "he
-hoped Laud would have more grace, or no grace at all." Chairman of
-a sub-committee for religion, and a frequent and ardent speaker,
-he gathered round him the sympathies of the party opposed to the
-government, and was hailed by the citizens of London with "God
-bless your worship!" while the people--who in those days gathered
-about the doors of the House of Commons, as crowds do still, to
-cheer their favourite members--pointed to him as the man of the
-day, exclaiming, "There goes Sir Edward Dering!" This he tells us
-himself--an indication of his egotism. Vanity, no doubt, and weakness
-mixed themselves with his impetuous but persistent pursuit of an
-object, of which many laughable examples are furnished in the story
-of his life.[87] Impetuous and rash, flexible to flattery, neither
-firm nor courageous under opposition, he was, nevertheless, amiable,
-well-meaning, patriotic, gentlemanly, and even chivalrous. He could
-reason with force, and declaim with eloquence, being no less fervent in
-his religious affections than in his political sentiments. The comely
-person of the Kentish baronet aided his popularity, and so did his
-genial manners, in spite of his hasty temper.[88]
-
-Posthumous fame is often not at all in proportion to contemporary
-influence. Sir Edward Dering is now by many forgotten, and, even John
-Pym, perhaps, does not hold the place in history which he did in life;
-yet, in the early days of the Long Parliament, these persons were more
-conspicuous in debate, and had more weight with the populace than John
-Hampden or Oliver Cromwell.
-
-Amongst the class at first favourable to extensive ecclesiastical
-reforms was also that mercurial royalist, Lord Digby, who represented
-Dorsetshire, and afterwards became Earl of Bristol. He soon diverged
-very far from his early compatriots, and played a part which must
-always affix dishonour to his name, whatever opinion may be formed of
-the cause he espoused.
-
-[Sidenote: 1640, November.]
-
-All the persons now mentioned acted together in ecclesiastical affairs,
-more or less intimately, at the opening of Parliament. Those who came
-nearest to one another in opinion had meetings for conference. Pym,
-Hampden, Fiennes, and Vane the younger, with some liberal noblemen
-of the Upper House, were wont to assemble at Broughton Castle,
-Oxfordshire, the seat of Lord Say, Fiennes' father, and at Tawsley, in
-Northamptonshire, the mansion of Sir Richard Knightley, father-in-law
-to Hampden. A story is related--not a very likely one--that in certain
-old stone-walled and casemated rooms, shown in the castle, the
-worthies[89] used to meet lest they should be detected; and, which
-is more probable, that a printing-press, established in the mansion by
-Sir Richard's father, was applied to their purposes. Perhaps about the
-same time, meetings of a similar kind were also held at Kensington, in
-the noble mansion of Lord Holland, one of the statesmen who took part
-in these conferences. There were gatherings in Gray's Inn Lane, too,
-whither reports came up from the country, and whence intelligence was
-distributed amongst the city patriots. After the opening of Parliament,
-Pym's lodgings at Westminster became a place of rendezvous, at least
-for a select few. But though these consultations so far obtained
-amongst certain chiefs, it must not be supposed that there existed
-a large organized party, resembling the phalanx which till of late
-years used compactly to follow some great leader. The two parties into
-which the House of Commons fell did by no means distinctly divide at
-first. How, on ecclesiastical questions they formed, and took up their
-position, will be seen as we proceed.
-
-[Sidenote: _Members of the Long Parliament._]
-
-Certainly there can be traced nothing like an organized party for
-defending the Church. The King and the bishops, with many of the
-nobility and a number of the people, were sincerely attached to the
-Establishment, and were prepared to admit only slight changes in its
-constitution. In the House of Commons, however, where its battle had
-to be fought, and its fate decided, there did not appear any strong
-alliance, or any distinct advocacy in its favour. It is surprising
-that in the early debates, when so many voices fiercely proclaimed its
-corruptions, so few made themselves heard in its defence. No chivalrous
-spirit stepped forward to resist the band of assailants. The tide
-flowed in. Not one strong man attempted to build a breakwater.
-
-Edward Hyde, who did so much for the Church of England at the
-Restoration, did little for it in this crisis of its fate. It is true
-he was a young man, and without great influence, but he shewed no
-heroism on its behalf; indeed, heroism was foreign to his nature. What
-he attempted he himself describes, and that the reader will discover to
-be paltry enough.
-
-In the Upper House were the bishops, who might naturally be esteemed
-as guardians and defenders of the Church in the hour of need. But
-there were none of them possessed of that statesman-like ability,
-without which it would have been impossible to preserve the Episcopal
-Establishment in the shock of revolution. Laud, no doubt, had great
-talents and abundant courage, but the blunders he had made in driving
-the ship on to the rocks, gave no hope that he would have skill enough
-to pilot the ship off, even if granted the opportunity. But he had
-not even the opportunity. Hardly did the Long Parliament open when
-his indignant enemies thrust him from the helm. The conduct of other
-bishops had only served to strip them of the last chance of saving
-their order. The best on the bench shared in the obloquy brought on
-all by the intolerance and corruption of the worst, while none of them
-possessed the mental and moral calibre necessary for dealing with those
-huge difficulties amidst which the Church of England had now been
-dashed.
-
-[Sidenote: 1640, November.]
-
-Puritans too, it should be remembered, sat in the Upper as well as
-in the Lower House. Amongst them may be numbered Devereux, Earl of
-Essex; Seymour, Earl of Hertford; Rich, Earl of Warwick; Rich, Earl of
-Holland; Viscount Say and Sele, Viscount Mandeville, Baron Wharton,
-Greville, Lord Brook, and others. Some of these will appear in the
-following pages, and of them in general we may observe that they did
-not lack astuteness, courage, and power. Anglicanism might be stronger
-in the House of Lords than in the House of Commons; but Puritanism, on
-the whole, appeared stronger than Anglicanism even there.
-
-One man alone could be found capable of doing aught to preserve the
-Church in this hour of her adversity. Could Lord Strafford have carried
-out his thorough policy, had he been left free to pursue his course,
-had no _coup d'etat_ come in the way to arrest his daring ambition, and
-crush his despotic projects; he might, with his subtle brain, brave
-heart, and iron hand, have defeated the patriots once more, and so have
-saved the Anglican Establishment awhile. Another dissolution, or some
-arbitrary arrests, would, for a season, have crushed Pym and his party.
-That, however, was not to be.
-
-
-
-
- [Illustration]
-
- CHAPTER II.
-
-
-Shortly after the opening of Parliament, Pym met Hyde in Westminster
-Hall, and showed unmistakeably, by his conversation, the course which
-he intended to pursue. "They must now," he told him, "be of another
-temper than they were the last Parliament; that they must not only
-sweep the house clean below, but must pull down all the cobwebs which
-hung in the top and corners, that they might not breed dust, and so
-make a foul house hereafter. But they had now an opportunity to make
-their country happy, by removing all grievances, and pulling up the
-causes of them by the roots, if all men would do their duties."[90]
-
-[Sidenote: 1640, November.]
-
-On the 6th of November, the Commons, in pursuance of precedent,
-appointed a grand Committee of religion,[91] consisting of the whole
-House, to meet every Monday afternoon, at two o'clock. The next morning
-came a petition from Mrs. Bastwick, and another from Mrs. Burton, on
-behalf of their husbands--"close prisoners in remote islands"--after
-having stood in the pillory, and lost their ears, by a Star Chamber
-sentence. Immediately upon this, another petition followed from John
-Brown, on behalf of his master, Mr. Prynne--"close prisoner in the
-Isle of Jersey"--who also had suffered mutilation by authority of the
-same tribunal. Scarcely had this arrived when another appeared from
-John Lilburne--"close prisoner in the Fleet"--also under Star Chamber
-condemnation. A fifth was read from Alexander Leighton, complaining
-of his sentence by the same court, in pursuance of which he had been
-whipped, slashed in the nose, branded on both cheeks, and deprived of
-his ears, and then closely imprisoned.[92]
-
-[Sidenote: _Debates on Religion._]
-
-The presentation of these petitions produced an impression most adverse
-to the Church. The offences of the prisoners had been the publishing of
-books, which virulently assailed prelacy, superstitious worship, and
-ecclesiastical despotism. The tone in some of these writings is quite
-indefensible, and scarcely to be excused,[93] and had they been passed
-over in silence, sympathy might have turned towards those assailed;
-but after the liberty of the Press had been violated, and a merciless
-punishment had been inflicted on the assailants, the tide of popular
-feeling ran in their favour, and they were honoured as martyrs in their
-country's cause.
-
-[Sidenote: 1640, November.]
-
-The House of Commons at once overrode the authority of the Star
-Chamber, and sent for the prisoners. Even in the pillory, and the
-prison, Burton and Prynne had received testimonies of sympathy, and
-now their return to London was a perfect ovation. They arrived on
-the 28th of November, and were "nearly three hours in passing from
-Charing Cross to their lodging in the city, having torches carried to
-light them." The parish churches had rung merry peals as the liberated
-prisoners reached town after town, and their escort into London
-consisted of a hundred coaches, some with six horses, and two thousand
-horsemen, with sprigs of rosemary in their hats--"those on foot being
-innumerable."[94] Afterwards the House resolved that the proceedings
-against these sufferers had been illegal and unjust--that their fines
-should be remitted--that they were to be restored to liberty, and
-that their persecutors should make reparation for the injuries they
-had inflicted.[95] Prynne--when vacancies in Parliament occurred
-through the secession of royalist members--was elected to a seat; and
-thenceforth in the Long Parliament his mutilated ears became constant
-mementoes of Star Chamber cruelty, stimulating resistance to arbitrary
-government, if not provoking retaliation for past offences. And here
-it may be noticed that many members on the patriotic side had suffered
-from the despotic doings of past years. Hampden, Holles, Selden,
-Strode, Sir Harbottle Grimston, Long, and Hobart had all been in
-prison, and some also had paid fines.[96] They would have been more or
-less than human if their memories had not aroused indignation against
-the despotism of the King and his ministers. Such members seated on
-the opposition benches, backed by a majority, were enough to make the
-hearts of courtiers quail.
-
-[Sidenote: _Debates on Religion._]
-
-Not only did Pym's spirit pervade the House, and manifest itself in
-these early proceedings, but his voice was heard enumerating the main
-grievances in Church and State. Scarcely had the session of the Commons
-commenced, when--according to the Puritan habit of the times--he
-denounced the encouragement given to Papists, because their principles
-were incompatible with other religions, and because with them laws
-had no authority, nor oaths any obligation, seeing that the Bishop of
-Rome could dispense with both. He complained further of their being
-allowed offices of trust in the Commonwealth, of their free resort to
-Court, and of their having a Nuncio in England, even as they had a
-congregation of Cardinals in Italy. It would be unreasonable to apply
-to a statesman maintaining these views in the seventeenth century,
-a standard of opinion belonging to the nineteenth, and also it is
-unnecessary to expose the fallacies which underlie such specious
-coverings. We must admit that there were special circumstances then
-existing, and recent facts in fresh remembrance--some of them will be
-hereafter seen--which rendered the position of the friends of freedom
-very different from what it is now. Though principles of righteousness
-and charity are immutable, the recollection of old evils just escaped,
-and the apprehension of new perils just at hand, may well be pleaded
-in excuse of measures then adopted for self-preservation. The fear of
-the restoration of Popery at that period cannot be pronounced an idle
-apprehension. The Reformation was young. Rome was busy. The Queen was
-a Papist. Roman Catholics were in favour at Court. Anglo-Catholicism
-unconsciously was opening the gates to the enemy. And further, in
-connection with this speech by Pym, it is only fair to quote what he
-said on another occasion:--"He did not desire any new laws against
-Popery, or any rigorous courses in the execution of those already in
-force; he was far from seeking the ruin of their persons or estates,
-only he wisht they might be kept in such a condition as should restrain
-them from doing hurt."[97]
-
-[Sidenote: 1640, November.]
-
-From the subject of Popery, Pym turned at once to Anglican innovations,
-which he regarded as the bridge leading to it. He pointed out the
-maintenance of Popish tenets in books and sermons, together with the
-practice of Popish ceremonies in worship--which he compared to the
-dry bones in Ezekiel, coming together, and being covered with sinews,
-flesh, and skin; to be afterwards filled with breath and life. First
-the form and finally the spirit of the old apostacy were creeping over
-the Church of England, and the corpse buried at the Reformation even
-how seemed rising from the grave. The speaker proceeded to complain of
-the discouragement shown to Protestantism by prosecuting scrupulous
-persons for things indifferent--such as not coming to the altar rails
-to receive the communion,[98] preaching lectures on Sunday afternoons,
-and using other Catechisms than that in the prayer book. This part of
-Pym's speech concluded with a notice of alarming encroachments made by
-ecclesiastical jurisdiction. Accused persons were fined and punished
-without law. A _jure divino_ authority was claimed for Episcopal order
-and proceedings, and articles were contrived and published, pretending
-to have the force of canon laws, which the orator declared was an
-effect of great presumption and boldness, not only in the bishops, but
-in their archdeacons, officials, and chancellors, who thus assumed
-a kind of synodical authority. Such injunctions might well partake,
-in name, with "that part of the common law which is called the
-extravagants."[99] This last charge referred to what had been done in
-the late convocation.
-
-[Sidenote: _Debates on Religion._]
-
-Other speakers followed Pym, and all adopted the same tone. Sir
-Benjamin Rudyard complained of disturbances made on account of trifles,
-"where to place a metaphor or an altar," and of families ruined for not
-dancing on Sundays; and he asked what would become of the persecutors
-when the master of the house should return and find them beating their
-fellow-servants? These inventions were but sieves for the devil's
-purposes, made to winnow good men. They were meant to worry diligent
-preachers, for such only were vexed after this fashion. So it came to
-pass that, under the name of _Puritan_, all religion was branded, and
-under a few hard words against Jesuits, all Popery was countenanced;
-whoever squared his actions by any rule, either divine or human, he
-was a _Puritan_; whoever would be governed by the King's laws, he was
-a _Puritan_; he that would not do what other men would have him to do,
-was a _Puritan_. The masterpiece of the enemy was to make the truly
-religious suspected of the whole kingdom.[100]
-
-Sir John Holland, member for Castle Rising, also insisted on
-ecclesiastical grievances. Bagshaw, Culpeper, and Grimston proceeded in
-a similar strain. Even Lord Digby complained of prelates, convocations,
-and canons, the last being "a covenant against the King for bishops
-and the hierarchy."
-
-[Sidenote: 1640, November.]
-
-Perhaps there is not on record another great debate in which such
-unanimity found expression, and such volleys of grape-shot rattled
-into a regiment of abuses. No question, however, affecting the
-fundamental principles of the Establishment was at present raised;
-but the corruptions which had covered and choked it were unsparingly
-threatened. Towards them nothing but indignation was shown.
-
-When the debate had closed with the appointment of a Committee to
-prepare a remonstrance, the House, well knowing that the right way to
-obtain a blessed issue was to implore the divine assistance, resolved
-to desire the Lords to join with them in requesting his Majesty to
-allow so holy a preparation, and, further, to appoint a general fast.
-
-What the next day witnessed is most memorable for its political
-consequences, yet it also involved ecclesiastical results of the
-greatest importance. The Earl of Strafford, though suffering from the
-gout to which he was a martyr, had hastened to London, and reached it
-on the 10th of November; fully comprehending the state of affairs,
-and meditating measures for stopping the tide of revolution. People
-believed he had a project for accusing the patriots of a share in the
-Scotch invasion; and that, failing other schemes, there remained the
-old expedient of dissolving Parliament.
-
-The Earl, the morning after his arrival in London, went down to the
-House and took his seat; being received with all the "expressions of
-honour and observance, answerable to the dignity of his place, and the
-esteem and credit which he had with the King as the chief Minister
-of State. But this day's sun was not fully set before his power and
-greatness received such a diminution as gave evident symptoms of his
-approaching ruin."[101]
-
-[Sidenote: _Debates on Religion._]
-
-His fellow-counsellor and trusty adherent, Archbishop Laud, moved that
-from a Committee of the two Houses, to be held that afternoon, he and
-four other bishops might be spared their attendance, on account of a
-meeting of Convocation. The Prime Minister and the Archbishop left
-the House, little dreaming of what would happen before sunset on that
-November day.
-
-Pym had heard of Strafford's arrival. Knowing the man, regarding his
-return as ominous, and with a keen eye piercing into the heart of his
-policy, he felt that he must grapple with him at once. Not merely for
-himself had it come to be a question of life or death, but all reform
-in Church and State depended on an immediate defeat of Strafford. If
-suffered to do what he pleased but for another day, he might render all
-the work of the last few months abortive, and bring back absolutism in
-triumph. Men said of him, "he had much more of the oak than the willow
-about his heart." To bend the oak was impossible, and therefore Pym
-resolved to cut it down. Another such instance of timely sternness
-there is not in English history.
-
-[Sidenote: 1640, November.]
-
-Twelve years before, at Greenwich,--when Strafford, faithless to his
-party, thought of accepting a coronet,--Pym had said to him, "You
-are going to leave us, but I will never leave you while your head is
-upon your shoulders." Did those words cross the mind of the patriotic
-statesman as he passed through the lobby to take his accustomed seat on
-the morning of the most memorable day of his life? Suddenly he rose,
-looked round on the well-filled benches, and said he had matter great
-importance to bring forward. "Let the strangers' room be cleared," he
-went on to ask, "and the outer doors be locked, and the keys laid on
-the clerk's table." This done, breathless silence followed. Before the
-Parliament of England, now sitting in secret conclave, Pym spoke out
-boldly what was in his heart. The kingdom had fallen into a miserable
-condition. "Waters of bitterness" were flowing through the land; he
-must enquire, he said, "from what fountain? what persons they are who
-have so far insinuated themselves into the royal affections, as to be
-able to pervert His Majesty's excellent judgment, to abuse his name,
-and apply his authority to support their own corrupt designs?"
-
-Pym's speech occupied some hours in delivery. In the midst of it came
-interruption. With the usual formalities, a message arrived from the
-House of Lords, touching the conference to which the Archbishop had
-referred that morning. Though the message itself could not at first
-have been contrived with a view of getting at the secret, about which
-outside curiosity had risen to fever heat; yet it might have been sent
-at that moment, with the hope of worming out what His Majesty's Commons
-were doing within locked doors. But the messengers, as they walked
-slowly up to the clerk's table, making their measured obeisances, were
-none the wiser for their visit. Pym, suspecting some other object
-than the professed one, had them quickly dispatched with the answer,
-"that as the House was engaged on very weighty business it could not
-meet the Lords just then." At the same time, he managed to "give such
-advertisement to some of the Lords," that their House might be kept
-from rising till his project should be fully accomplished.
-
-[Sidenote: _Debates on Religion._]
-
-The messengers dismissed, the doors re-locked, the buzz of conversation
-hushed, Pym resumed, and at length ended his speech by demanding that
-Strafford should be impeached. The demand found "consent from the whole
-House;" nor in all the debate did one person offer to stop the torrent
-of condemnation by any favourable testimony respecting the Earl. Lord
-Falkland only counselled that time should be taken to digest the
-accusation. Pym immediately replied such delay would blast all hopes,
-for Strafford, hearing of their intentions, "would undoubtedly procure
-the Parliament to be dissolved."
-
-The House at once appointed a committee of seven to draw up the
-charges. They retired, and soon returned with their report. The House
-at once solemnly resolved to impeach the Earl at the bar of the Lords.
-
-The clock had struck four. The doors were thrown open. "The leader of
-the Commons issued forth, and followed by upwards of three hundred of
-the members, crossed over in the full sight of the assembled crowd,
-to the Upper House." Standing at the bar, with the retinue of members
-pressing round, Pym, in the name of the Commons, accused Strafford of
-high treason.[102]
-
-[Sidenote: 1640, November.]
-
-Strafford's seat was empty. The Commons withdrew. After consideration
-of the message by the peers, the Lord-keeper acknowledged its receipt,
-gave credit for due care taken in the business, and promised a further
-answer. The Earl was sitting at Whitehall with the King. Swift as
-the wind, tidings of the impeachment began to travel, and reached
-the accused amongst the first. He had been out-manœuvred. While
-preparing for an attack on the enemy's camp he found his own citadel
-assailed, stormed, taken. Still dauntless, he coolly remarked, "I will
-go and look mine accusers in the face." Then going to the court gate
-he took coach, and drove to the House. Advancing to the threshold, he
-"rudely" demanded admission. James Maxwell, keeper of the Black Rod,
-opened the door. His lordship, with a "proud glouming countenance,"
-made towards his seat as well as his lameness would allow. He sat down,
-heard[103] what was going on, and, in spite of orders to withdraw,
-"kept his confidence and his place till it raised a vehement redoubling
-of the former scorn, and occasioned the Lord-keeper to tell him that
-he must withdraw, and to charge the gentleman usher that he would look
-well to him."[104]
-
-The proud minister found himself detained in the lobby of the House in
-which once his word had been law.
-
-The Lords debated further on the message of the Commons, and came to
-the conclusion that the Earl, for this accusation of high treason,
-should be committed to the safe custody of the gentleman usher, and be
-sequestered from coming to Parliament until he cleared himself. Called
-in, he was commanded to kneel at the bar. Completely vanquished, he
-did so on the very spot where his great antagonist an hour before had
-stood a conqueror. He now had formal information of the charge brought
-up by Pym, and was taken into custody. Master Black Rod, proud of his
-business, required his prisoner to deliver up his sword, and told a
-waiting-man to carry it. As the prisoner retired, all gazed, but no man
-"capped to him before whom, that morning, the greatest of England would
-have stood discovered."[105] Discourteous speeches followed--for
-an English mob has little pity for fallen greatness--and, to add to
-his humiliation, when at last, amidst the bustle, the Earl found his
-carriage, Master Maxwell insolently remarked, "Your lordship is my
-prisoner, and must go in my coach."
-
-[Sidenote: _Debates on Religion._]
-
-That day sealed Strafford's fate; the only impediment in the patriot's
-path lay crushed. Now Pym could do his will, and carry out some great
-reform in Church and State. It was time.
-
-"The strong man armed kept his palace, and his goods were in peace. But
-now a stronger than he came upon him and overcame him, and took from
-him all his armour, wherein he trusted, and divided his spoils."
-
-To some readers, there may appear little or no connection between Pym's
-death-wrestle with Wentworth, and the overturning of the Episcopal
-Church, the setting up of Presbyterianism, and what followed; yet
-really without that death-wrestle the things which happened afterwards
-appear impossibilities.
-
-When Strafford had been in the Tower a month, Laud was impeached, and
-followed his friend into the custody of James Maxwell.[106]
-
-On the 17th November, a public fast took place, when the House of
-Commons assembled in the Church of St. Margaret, Westminster, and
-continued in divine worship for _seven hours_.[107]
-
-[Sidenote: 1640, November.]
-
-A few days after the fast[108] the Commons, according to precedent,
-received the Holy Communion, and also according to precedent resolved
-that none should sit in the House who did not partake of the
-Sacrament.[109] A measure of policy was connected with their piety on
-this occasion, which from its having been misunderstood has led to a
-misapprehension of the whole proceeding. The fact of its having been
-resolved that all should participate in the Lord's Supper has been
-cited as a proof that the members were all attached to the Church of
-England;[110] but Rapin[111] adopts the subtle theory that, bent upon
-assailing the Bishops, the Commons resolved on this communion, to save
-themselves from being suspected of Presbyterianism,--as in the reign of
-Henry V., the Commons prefaced their assault on the clergy by passing
-a Bill for burning heretics, to save themselves from being suspected
-of heresy. Yet amidst these speculations upon the subject, the real
-purpose of the House--beyond its following a precedent and gratifying
-religious feelings--is frankly expressed in the Journal to have been
-the discovery of papists amongst the members. The committee who
-reported on the subject conceived that some confession of faith and a
-renunciation of the Pope should be required from such as were suspected
-of popery. At the same time two members of the House were directed to
-convey to the Dean of Westminster a desire that "the elements might be
-consecrated upon a communion-table, standing in the church, according
-to the rubric, and to have the table removed from the altar."[112]
-
-[Sidenote: _Debates on Religion._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1640, November.]
-
-The Long Parliament, in its early sittings, occupied much time in
-hearing Puritan petitions. Such petitions came from sufferers under
-ecclesiastical oppression; from people dissatisfied with Anglican
-clergymen; from individuals scandalized at ceremonial innovations; and
-from different counties praying for redress of grievances in Church
-and State. The latter petitions were brought up to town by troops of
-horsemen. Such documents, accompanied by the denunciations of members
-who presented them, occasioned searching inquiries into Anglican
-superstition and intolerance. Persons alleged that communion-tables
-were set altar-wise; that anthems and organs were superseding plain
-and proper psalm-singing; that wax candles were burnt in churches in
-honour of our Lady; that copes of white satin were worn by ministers;
-that boys with lighted torches went in procession and bowed to the
-altar; and that Puritans were roughly handled for refusing to make
-a like obeisance. Further, such persons declared "flat Popery" had
-been preached, as well as performed; transubstantiation, confession,
-and absolution, being doctrines maintained in Anglican pulpits.[113]
-Cases were brought up of clergymen unrighteously suspended for
-refusing to read the "Book of Sports," and for similar offences. The
-private gossip of the day touching church matters reached the House
-through members anxious to stimulate their partizans. Though such
-reports appear undignified enough in senatorial speeches, they are
-welcome to the historian, because indicative of the staple talk round
-firesides in those boisterous days. Alderman Pennington told how an
-archdeacon's son had said, "God take the Parliament for a company of
-Puritanical factious fellows, who would wiredraw the King for money,
-when a Spanish don would lend him two millions. The King would never
-have quiet until he had taken off twenty or more of their heads." In
-petitions, according to the Diurnals, very odd references occurred
-to the sayings and doings of High Churchmen. One declared "the
-Commissaries were the suburbs of heaven, and the High Commission the
-Archangels, and that to preach twice a day, or to say any prayers but
-the Common Prayers, was a damnable sin." Moreover, the same newspaper
-states, that a minister in Shoreditch stood charged with preaching on
-the man who went down to Jericho--saying, the King was the man, the
-Scots the thieves, the Protestant the priest, the formal Protestant the
-Levite, and the Papist the Good Samaritan.[114] Another, being asked
-how he could maintain by Scripture the turning of the communion-table
-altar-wise, replied, "the times were turned, and it was fit the tables
-should be turned also."
-
-A petition came from a churchwarden cited and punished for not
-prosecuting parishioners who refused to stand while hearing the
-creed, to bow at the name of Jesus, to kneel at public prayer, and
-to sit uncovered during sermon time. These breaches of prescribed
-ecclesiastical decorum were taken as proofs of Puritan irreverence; but
-when Puritans were threatened in consequence with legal penalties, such
-acts appeared to them to be full of heroic virtue.
-
-[Sidenote: _Debates on Religion._]
-
-The growth of popery formed a fruitful topic of quaint declamation.
-The approach of any great personage, it was said, may be known
-by the sumpter mules sent on before. And when the Pope travels,
-altars, copes, pictures, and images precede his progress. High
-Church ceremonies announced the coming Mass. Clerical tricks of this
-description prepared for the revival of papal domination. Resistance
-had provoked persecution. Fire had come out of the bramble, and
-devoured the cedars of Lebanon.[115]
-
-Stories, too, were told of a parsonage worth three hundred a year,
-where not even a poor curate remained to read prayers, catechise
-children, or bury the dead; and of a vicarage, where the nave of
-the church had been pulled down, the lead sold, the bells profaned,
-the chancel made into a dog-kennel, and the steeple turned into a
-pigeon-house.[116]
-
-The debate of the 14th and 15th of December, on the canons, was
-conducted in the same spirit as other proceedings. Convocation had met
-in April, at the opening of the Short Parliament; one of the first
-measures adopted being an imposition on the clergy of six subsidies
-of four shillings in the pound for six years. Canons had then been
-prepared, relative to the regal power for suppressing popery, also
-against Socinianism and sectaries, and further, for preventing
-Puritan innovations and for promoting uniformity. While discussions
-on these subjects were proceeding, Parliament had been dissolved, but
-Convocation had unconstitutionally determined as a royal synod, to
-persevere sitting until it should be dissolved by the King's writ.[117]
-Some of the clerical body had protested against this procedure, but
-the King, with the opinion of certain judges, had confirmed it, and
-Convocation, then acting as a synod under royal sanction, had completed
-the new canons.[118]
-
-[Sidenote: 1640, November.]
-
-Parliament poured out vials of wrath on all these canons. They included
-protests against popery--the third being for the suppression of its
-growth, and the seventh charging the Church of Rome with "idolatry
-committed in the mass for which all popish altars were demolished," but
-the Puritans overlooked or regarded all this as only a pretence for
-covering assaults upon themselves. To have done so seems to us unfair,
-though considering the character of the men framing the canons, with
-whom members of the House of Commons were well acquainted, everybody
-must believe the authors of the new laws hated Puritanism more than
-Popery. The truth is, Anglicanism, though thoroughly opposed to papal
-supremacy, and to some of the dogmas and superstitions of Rome,
-fostered sympathy with much of the faith and worship characteristic
-of that church, while it had not a breath of kindness for Puritan
-sentiments. Such a state of things drove the two parties wide as the
-poles asunder, and we cannot wonder that on the question of the canons
-the House of Commons, revolting at Anglo-Catholicism, read all which
-Convocation had done in the light of those well-known principles by
-which Convocation was actuated. Whatever the bishops and clergy there,
-might honestly say about popish ceremonies and the idolatry of the
-mass, they were chiefly bent on crushing the Puritans, and accordingly
-the Puritans grappled with the Anglicans as in a struggle for life.
-Matter enough existed in these new laws to provoke destructive
-criticism. The first propounded the divine right of kings, and claimed
-for them powers inconsistent with the English constitution. The canon
-against sectaries was extremely intolerant, and was so ingeniously
-contrived as to turn statutes for suppressing popery against all sorts
-of nonconforming Protestants.
-
-[Sidenote: _Debates on Religion._]
-
-No one, however, of this ill-fated assembly's enactments had to run
-the gauntlet, like the canon relative to the et cetera oath.[119] It
-speedily sank under torrents of argument and invective, ridicule, and
-satire. Also, the prolonging of convocation as a synod, after the
-dissolution of Parliament, incurred condemnation as wholly illegal; the
-canons were pronounced invalid; and the entire proceedings subversive
-of the laws of the realm.[120]
-
-Heylyn declares that the _et cetera_ was introduced in the draft to
-avoid tautology, and that the enumeration was to be perfected before
-engrossment, but the king hastened its being printed, and so occasioned
-the mischief.--_Heylyn's Life of Laud_, 444.
-
-Archbishop Laud had to bear, in no small measure, the odium of the
-new ecclesiastical measures. Doubtless, he had a leading hand in
-their origin, but it is also a fact, that before the opening of the
-Long Parliament, he wrote by His Majesty's command to the bishops of
-his province, to suspend the operation of the article respecting the
-et cetera oath.[121] And when the House had been sitting a little
-more than three weeks, after Pym, Culpeper, Grimston, and Digby, had
-attacked this unpopular clerical legislation, and when a still more
-distinct and violent assault was seen to be approaching, the Archbishop
-wrote a letter to Selden, member of a committee for enquiry upon the
-subject, requesting that the "unfortunate canons" might be suffered to
-die quietly, without blemishing the Church, which had too many enemies
-both at home and abroad.[122]
-
-[Sidenote: 1640, November.]
-
-The vote of the House of Commons administered a blow to Convocation
-from which it could not recover. That assembly, indeed, again appeared
-as the twin sister of the new Parliament. Representatives of the
-province of Canterbury met on the 3rd November, the day on which
-the Lords and Commons assembled. The usual formalities having been
-observed, a sermon preached, and a prolocutor chosen--Archbishop Laud
-addressed the clergy in Henry the Seventh's chapel, in a manner which
-shewed that he heard the sound of the brewing storm, and had sense
-enough to discern the impending danger. So had others of the assembly.
-Accordingly, some one proposed in the Lower House, that "they should
-endeavour according to the Levitical law to cover the pit which
-they had opened, and to prevent the designs of their adversaries by
-condemning the obnoxious canons." But the majority, not willing to
-be condemned till formally accused, heeded not this warning; yet the
-members avoided giving further provocation, and, feeble themselves,
-they only watched the proceedings of their parliamentary neighbours.
-When the resolution of the Commons was passed it paralyzed them. The
-Upper House did not meet again after Christmas, nor the Lower after the
-following February.[123] The assembly of the Convocation of York had
-been prevented by the death of the Archbishop, and the new writ issued
-came to nothing.
-
-Here we shall pause for a moment to watch other forces coming into
-play.
-
-
-
-
- [Illustration]
-
- CHAPTER III.
-
-
-Two ideas of Church reform evolved themselves: one already
-indicated,--that of separating from simple primitive Episcopacy all
-prelatical assumptions,--and another, which amounted to a decided
-revolution in the Church, including the extinction of Episcopacy
-altogether. While the former rose out of reverence for the Reformation
-under Elizabeth, combined with disgust at the history of prelatical
-rule,--the latter had a deeper and wider cause.
-
-When Episcopacy strove to maintain itself in England, after the shock
-given to ecclesiastical power in the days of Henry VIII. and Edward
-VI., Presbyterianism made good its position at Geneva under Calvin, and
-at Edinburgh under Knox. The connexion between the two cities and the
-two Reformers, and between them both and our own country, everybody
-knows. The exiles who had found a home, not only on the shores of the
-beautiful Lake Leman, but also on the scarcely less beautiful banks of
-the Lake of Zurich, brought with them, when they returned home after
-the Marian persecution, strong Presbyterian predilections. Calvin,
-also, exercised a direct influence on some of the English Reformers;
-and the system of John Knox, in such close neighbourhood as the north
-of the Tweed, could not fail to affect those who were studying the
-question, "what ought to be the Church of the future?"
-
-[Sidenote: 1567.]
-
-Indications of Presbyterian sentiments in the England of Elizabeth are
-very numerous.[124] They wrought within the Episcopal establishment
-without producing a severance. Cartwright was a Presbyterian. He
-contended for the abolition of archbishops, and archdeacons, and
-would retain only bishops or presbyters to preach the word and pray,
-and deacons to take care of the poor. Every Church, by which he
-meant a "certain flock," was to be governed by its own ministers and
-presbyters, and these were not to be created by civil authority, but
-chosen by popular election. The directory of government, found in the
-study of that eminent Puritan after his death, said to be composed by
-Travers, is in perfect harmony with this Presbyterian scheme. Certain
-clerical meetings, under the auspices of Cartwright and Travers, took
-a decided synodical shape.[125] This element continued in the Church
-under the Stuarts, notwithstanding the efforts of bishops to extinguish
-it.[126]
-
-[Sidenote: _Presbyterianism._]
-
-Certain Puritans of a Presbyterian turn, formally separated themselves
-from the Establishment so early as 1567, and met together for
-Nonconformist worship in Plumber's Hall.[127] An organized Presbytery
-appears at Wandsworth in 1572,--in the Channel Islands, where the
-Government of England could not reach it, the system was fully
-established in 1577; and Presbyterian classes may be traced in Cheshire
-and Lancashire, Warwick and Northampton, during the last few years
-of the Tudor dynasty. Organized Presbyterianism is seen but faintly
-in the early part of the seventeenth century, but Presbyterianism,
-as a sentiment within the Established Church, is distinctly visible.
-Nonconformity of another kind was also on the increase at this period.
-Churches of the Independent and Baptist order may be discovered in
-Tudor times, but they became more apparent and numerous in the days of
-the Stuarts. Their rise and progress will be afterwards described.
-
-[Sidenote: 1640.]
-
-How Puritanism glided into a state of separation, and the nonconformist
-in the Church became a dissenter outside its pale, is curiously
-illustrated in the Records of the Church assembling in Broadmead,
-Bristol. In those records is a story of a certain zealous lady of
-that city named Kelly.[128] "She kept a grocer's shop in High Street,
-between the Builders' Inn and the High Cross," and that she might bear
-a testimony against superstitious observances, "she would keep open her
-shop on Christmas Day, and sit sewing in the face of the sun, and in
-the sight of all men." Afterwards, when she heard a clergyman she did
-not like at the parish church, "away she went forth before them all,
-and said she would hear no more, and never did." Puritan emigrants to
-New England embarked at Bristol, and would abide with Mrs. Hazzard "if
-they waited for a wind." Women actually sought to be confined in the
-parish of a Puritan clergyman, to avoid the ceremonies of "churching
-and crossing." "The consciences of the good people began to be very
-weary." Then "it pleased the Lord to stir up some few of the professors
-of this city to lead the way out of Babylon." "Five persons began to
-go further, and scrupled to hear common prayer, even four men and one
-woman." So that in the year 1640, those five persons met together at
-Mrs. Hazzard's house, "at the upper end of Broad Street, in Bristol,
-and came to a holy resolution to separate from the worship of the world
-and times they lived in, and that they would go no more to it."[129]
-In this case, we see how dissatisfaction with the Established Church
-gradually led to positive separation, and how extremely feeble, in some
-instances, was the commencement of organized dissent. But the spirit
-working in the way just indicated, slowly, and without much notice,
-came suddenly and boldly on the surface, soon after the Long Parliament
-had opened.
-
-[Sidenote: _Presbyterianism._]
-
-Though the incumbents of the metropolis were almost all High Churchmen,
-there were many Puritan lecturers in the city with strong Presbyterian
-sympathies, supported by wealthy citizens, and in high repute with the
-multitude. Amongst them, Dr. Cornelius Burgess is a very noticeable
-man--already mentioned as the fast-day preacher--who, in connection
-with a lectureship at St. Paul's, held other Church preferment. To
-him and his brother lecturers may be ascribed the inspiration of much
-intense public feeling against prelatical assumptions, and against
-Episcopacy itself,[130] out of which arose an extraordinary memorial,
-which has attained no small notoriety under the name of the _Root and
-Branch_ petition.
-
-This petition complained that the offices and jurisdictions of
-archbishops were the same as in the papal community, "little change
-thereof being made, except only the head from whence it was derived;"
-that there was great conformity of the English Church to the Church
-of Rome in vestures, postures, ceremonies, and administrations; that
-the liturgy, for the most part, is framed out of the Romish Breviary,
-Ritual, and the Mass Book; and that the forms of ordination and
-consecration were drawn from the Romish pontifical.[131] Whoever
-prepared this document, it was soon submitted to Mr. Bagshawe, of the
-Inner Temple, member for Southwark, who had obtained great popularity
-by his lectures against the temporalities of bishops--lectures which
-brought on him the displeasure of Laud. But Bagshawe, though zealous
-for the reform of Episcopacy, did not desire to see it abolished. He
-therefore declined to take charge of the petition, when Mr. John White,
-his fellow-burgess for Southwark--afterwards the famous chairman of
-the committee for scandalous ministers--arranged its delivery to the
-Commons, not however by his own hands, but through Alderman Pennington,
-a citizen well known for his extreme dislike to the Episcopal
-Bench.[132]
-
-[Sidenote: 1633.]
-
-A still more effective agency on the Presbyterian side appeared in
-London at the same time.
-
-[Sidenote: _Presbyterianism._]
-
-Scotland had silently fostered the Presbyterianism of England for many
-years. Head quarters for that polity had been there established. In
-the neighbourhood of the Highlands, synods found even a kindlier soil
-and a more congenial climate than under the shadow of the Alps. True
-to its old French sympathies, Scotland did not follow the example of
-reformation set in England or in Germany; it eschewed Saxon examples,
-and adopted that form of Protestantism which had been embraced by such
-of the Gallic nation as had seceded from Rome, and which bore the
-impress of the piety and genius of one of the most illustrious sons of
-France. Edinburgh, during the ministry of Knox, saw as complete a work
-accomplished as Geneva had witnessed during the ministry of Calvin.
-Episcopacy was thoroughly rooted out, and the attempts under Charles
-I. to replant it only exasperated the husbandmen of the vineyard, and
-made them love the more what they counted "trees of the Lord's right
-hand planting." Presbyterianism became doubly dear to Scotchmen when
-the grandson of Mary sought to destroy that, which, in the days of his
-grandmother, their forefathers had cultivated with toil and tears. To
-make the matter worse, when Charles went to Scotland in 1633, and took
-with him Laud, then Bishop of London, everything seemed to be done
-which was likely to arouse Scotch prejudices against episcopal order
-and the English liturgy. Instead of reducing the Anglican ceremonies
-to as simple a form as possible, the most elaborate pomp of worship
-appeared in Holyrood Chapel. The _Dreadnought_, a good ship, well
-victualled, "appointed to guard the narrow seas," was engaged to
-transport from Tilbury Hope to the Firth of Forth, twenty-six musical
-gentlemen of the Royal Chapel at Whitehall, with their goods and
-paraphernalia to perform the cathedral service, so as to impress the
-Presbyterians of Edinburgh.[133] A more thorough mistake could not
-have been made in a city where even the sight of a surplice and the
-reading of the common prayer, a few years afterwards, occasioned the
-world-known episode of "Jenny Geddes and her wonderful Folding Stool."
-
-The attempt to impose Episcopacy and its associations on Presbyterian
-Scotland provoked a Covenant war, and roused a determination in the
-hearts of her sons to carry Presbyterianism over the border, and to
-make the two countries one pure Kirk. How the strong Presbyterianism
-on the other side the Tweed re-inforced what was comparatively weak at
-first on this side the border,--how the Scotch made the system amongst
-Englishmen what it became,--how, like a loadstone, it attracted and
-brought together the scattered particles of Presbyterian sentiments
-throughout England,--how the Church of the North greatly augmented the
-mass of Puritanism in the South, and welded it for a while into form
-somewhat like its own, will appear as this narrative proceeds.
-
-Meanwhile some passing notice must be taken of the enthusiasm of the
-Scotch army in support of Presbyterianism, and it cannot better be done
-than in the words of a worthy minister who visited the camp, and whose
-_naïve_ and graphic notes on other subjects, we shall have frequent
-occasion to use.
-
-[Sidenote: 1639.]
-
-"It would have done you good," the writer says, "to have cast your
-eyes athwart our brave and rich hill as oft as I did, with great
-contentment and joy; for I (quoth the wren) was there among the rest,
-being chosen preacher by the gentlemen of our Shyre, who came late with
-my Lord of Eglintoun. I furnished to half-a-dozen of good fellows
-muskets and picks, and to my boy a broadsword. I carried myself, as the
-fashion was, a sword, and a couple of Dutch pistols at my saddle; but
-I promise, for the offence of no man, except a robber in the way; for
-it was our part alone to pray and preach for the encouragement of our
-countrymen, which I did to my power most cheerfully." The troops were
-commanded by noblemen; the captains, for the most part, were landed
-proprietors; and the lieutenants, experienced soldiers, who had been
-employed in the wars of Gustavus Adolphus. The colours flying at the
-entrance of each captain's tent bore the Scottish arms, with the motto,
-'For Christ's Crown and Covenant,' in golden letters. There were some
-companies of Highlanders, "souple fellows, with their playds, targes,
-and dorlachs." But the soldiers were mostly stout young ploughmen, who
-increased in courage and experience daily; "the sight of the nobles and
-their beloved pastors daily raised their hearts; the good sermons and
-prayers, morning and evening, under the roof of heaven, to which their
-drums did call them for bells; the remonstrances very frequent of the
-goodness of their cause; of their conduct hitherto, by a hand clearly
-divine; also Leslie's skill and fortune made them all so resolute for
-battle as could be wished. We were feared that emulation among our
-nobles might have done harm, when they should be met in the fields, but
-such was the wisdom and authority of that old, little, crooked soldier,
-that all, with one incredible submission, from the beginning to the
-end, gave over themselves to be guided by him, as if he had been great
-Solyman. Certainly the obedience of our nobles to that man's advices
-was as great as their forbears wont to be to their King's commands." He
-further adds: "Had you lent your ear in the morning, or especially at
-even, and heard in the tents the sound of some singing psalms, some
-praying, and some reading scripture, ye would have been refreshed. For
-myself, I never found my mind in better temper than it was all that
-time frae I came from home, till my head was again homeward; for I was
-as a man who had taken my leave from the world, and was resolved to die
-in that service without return."[134]
-
-[Sidenote: _Presbyterianism._]
-
-The writer of this description was Robert Baillie, and he, in company
-with two other distinguished clergymen, Alexander Henderson and Robert
-Blair, visited London just as the "Root and Branch" petition was being
-prepared. They came with a commission from Scotland, under the broad
-seal of the Northern Parliament, to settle the quarrel which had led to
-the encampment of the covenant army--a quarrel in which the Puritans
-and the Long Parliament took part with the Scotch against the King and
-his Bishops. Three noblemen, three barons and three burgesses were
-commissioned for the same purpose. With the treaty of peace there was
-to be the payment of the Scotch troops by the English nation. The
-clerical commissioners hoped that there would follow the inauguration
-of goodly presbyteries throughout the fair land of the South, an object
-which was dearer to them than any political alliance, or than any
-amount of money.
-
-[Sidenote: 1640, November.]
-
-On Monday morning, November 16th, long before dawn, after spending
-their Sabbath in the little town of Ware, the three clergymen started
-for London. They had travelled from Edinburgh on horseback, surprised
-at the inns, seeming to them "like palaces," which they thought
-accounted for exorbitant charges for coarse meals. In the dark they
-trotted forth from Ware, all well, "horse and men, with divers
-merchants, and their servants on little nags," the road "extremely
-foul and deep;" and by sunrise that cold morning,--as the light
-woke up the slumbering city, as the smoke rose through the quaint
-chimneys from ten thousand hearths,--the three presbyters entered the
-metropolis.[135] They lodged in the city close to London Stone,[136]
-in a house which was wont to be inhabited by the Lord Mayor, or by one
-of the Sheriffs. St. Antholin's (or St. Anthony's) Church, connected
-with the mansion by a gallery, became their place of worship. There
-they soon had throngs as great as at their own communions, and daily
-the crowds increased to hear Mr. Henderson, so that "from the first
-appearance of day to the shutting in the light, the church was never
-empty." The lodgings by London Stone became the scene of many an
-earnest conference, and there Baillie wrote the letters and journals
-which afford us such an insight into public proceedings and religious
-life in London during that eventful winter.
-
-The Scotch Commissioners soon saw the famous petition, from "the town
-of London, and a world of men, for the abolition of bishops and deans
-and all their appurtenances," and were consulted about the time of its
-presentation.[137] They seem to have recommended delay, till Parliament
-should pull down "Canterbury and some prime bishops;" and Convocation
-should be visited with a _præmunire_ for its illegal canons; and
-preachers have further opportunity of preparing the people to root out
-Episcopacy. "Huge things," Baillie told his friends, were working in
-England. God's mighty hand was raising a joyful harvest from long sown
-tears, but the fruit was scarcely ripe.
-
-[Sidenote: _Presbyterianism._]
-
-The tide of excitement could not be stayed. The London petitioners had
-not more desire, but they had less patience than the prudent ministers.
-On the 11th of December, as Baillie tells us, the honest citizens,
-in their best apparel and in a very modest way, went to the House of
-Commons, and sent in two aldermen with the document, bearing 15,000
-signatures. It was well received. They who brought it were desired to
-go in peace, and Alderman Pennington laid the huge scroll upon the
-table.
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, January.]
-
-Another petition, prepared at the same time,[138] came under Baillie's
-notice, who speaks of it as drawn up by the well-affected clergy
-for the overthrow of the bishops, and posted through the land for
-signatures, and as likely to be returned in a fortnight, with "a
-large remonstrance." "At that time," he exultingly adds, "the root of
-Episcopacy will be assaulted with the strongest blast it ever felt
-in England. Let your hearty prayers be joined with mine, and of many
-millions, that the breath of the Lord's nostrils may join with the
-endeavours of weak men to blow up that old gourd[139] wicked oak."
-Whether the Presbyterian Commissioner had been misinformed respecting
-the Petition and Remonstrance, or whether the paper had undergone
-alterations after its first issue, this is certain, that when
-presented to the House on the 23rd January, it differed materially
-from that of "the Root and Branch," inasmuch as it prayed not for the
-subversion, but only for the reform of Episcopacy. It contained the
-names of seven hundred beneficed clergymen. Other petitions had been
-brought to the House. On the 12th of January several arrived, and that
-from Kent may be taken as a sample, in which the government of the
-Church of England by Archbishops, Bishops, Deans, and Archdeacons, was
-deplored as dangerous to the Commonwealth, and it was earnestly prayed
-that this hierarchial power might be totally abrogated, if the wisdom
-of the House should find it could not be maintained by God's word, and
-to His glory.[140]
-
-Petitions afterwards flowed in on the other side from Wales,
-Lancashire, Staffordshire, and other counties.[141] High Churchmen
-talked about the way in which the Puritans and Presbyterians got up
-these documents. The signatures were fictitious. People were cajoled
-into writing their names--intended for one purpose, they were perverted
-for another. Such things might not be altogether without truth. But we
-are safe in believing, if tricks were played by one party they were
-played by the other also; and as at present, so then, whatever was done
-by either faction came in for an unmerciful, and often unrighteous,
-share of criticism from exasperated opponents.[142]
-
-[Sidenote: _Petitions._]
-
-While petitioners were busy, and the House of Commons had enough to
-do to hear their grievances, and debates were earnest, and two potent
-principles were embodied in the strife, the King watched it all with
-alarm for Episcopacy rather than with any apprehensions for his
-own personal safety. For his subjects were loyal and dutiful, and,
-according to Baillie, "feared his frown." He summoned both Houses
-of Parliament to Whitehall, on the 25th January, 1641, and, after
-professing willingness to concur in the reformation of the Church,
-added the following characteristic sentences: "I will show you some
-_rubs_, and must needs take notice of some very strange (I know
-not what term to give them) petitions given in the names of divers
-counties, against the present established Government, and of the great
-threatenings against the bishops, that they will make them to be but
-cyphers, or, at least, their voices to be taken away. Now I must tell
-you, that I make a great difference between reformation and alteration
-of Government, though I am for the former, I cannot give way to the
-latter. If some of them have overstretched their power, I shall not be
-unwilling these things should be redressed and reformed--nay, further,
-if upon serious debate you shall show me that bishops have some
-temporal authority inconvenient to the State, I shall not be unwilling
-to desire them to lay it down. But this must not be understood, that
-I shall in any way consent that their voices in Parliament should be
-taken away; for in all the times of my predecessors since the Conquest,
-and before, they have enjoyed it, and I am bound to maintain them in it
-as one of the fundamental constitutions of this kingdom."[143]
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, February.]
-
-After petitions from the people, consultations with the Scotch,
-cautions from the Crown, and preparatory proceedings in the House, the
-grand debate came on respecting the "Root and Branch" Petition. The
-debate lasted throughout the 8th and 9th of February, 1641. In the
-course of it, the mercurial royalist, Lord Digby, observed, he had
-reason to believe that some aimed at a total extirpation of Episcopacy,
-yet, whilst opposing such extreme views, he was for clipping the wings
-of the prelates; and, though condemning the Petition, he thought no
-people had ever been more provoked than England of late years, by the
-insolence and exorbitance of the bishops. "For my part," declared he,
-"I profess I am inflamed with the sense of them, so that I find myself
-ready to cry out with the loudest of the 15,000, "down with them, down
-with them, even to the ground!" Let us not, however," he added, "destroy
-bishops, but make bishops such as they were in primitive times." The
-independent Nathaniel Fiennes opposed Episcopal rule, maintaining
-that until the Church Government of the country could "be framed of
-another twist," and more assimilated to that of the commonwealth,
-the ecclesiastical would be no good neighbour to the civil: for as
-with children afflicted with the rickets, all nourishment goes to the
-upper parts, so in the rickety condition of the Church, while the
-hierarchy became monstrously enlarged, the lower clergy pined away.
-Bishoprics, deaneries, and chapels, he compared to wasters in a wood.
-The official Sir Benjamin Rudyard condemned bishops unsparingly, yet
-advocated episcopal superintendence: and afterwards the learned Mr.
-Bagshawe pedantically distinguished between Episcopacy primitive _in
-statu puro_, and Episcopacy _in statu corrupto_, pleading, at the
-same time, for a thorough reformation of abuses, and an alteration
-of Ecclesiastical government into a Presbyterian form. Sir Harbottle
-Grimstone also asked for a diminution of prelatical power.
-
-[Sidenote: _Petitions._]
-
-The speakers who carried the greatest weight in this debate were Pym
-and Falkland. We have only a faint echo of the words delivered by
-the former. They were to the effect that he thought it was not the
-intention of the House to abolish either Episcopacy or the Book of
-Common Prayer, but rather to reform both, so far as they gave offence;
-and if that improvement could be effected with the concurrence of the
-King, Parliament would accomplish a very acceptable work, such as had
-never been done since the Reformation.[144] Falkland's speech is fully
-reported. Very severe upon the conduct of the bishops generally, he
-made exceptions, and expressed himself content to take away what he
-said begot the mischief, such as judging wills and marriages, and
-having votes in Parliament. He denied the divine right, but would
-allow the human expediency of Episcopal rank. His opinion was, "that
-we should not root up this ancient tree, as dead as it appears, till
-we have tried whether by this, or the like lopping of the branches,
-the sap which was unable to feed the whole may not serve to make what
-is left both grow and flourish. And, certainly, if we may at once take
-away both the inconveniences of bishops and the inconveniences of no
-bishops, this course can only be opposed by those who love mutation for
-mutation's sake."
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, Feb.]
-
-The only person who boldly defended Episcopacy, and spoke in an
-Anglican tone, was Mr. Pleydell, member for Wootton Bassett. "Sir,"
-said he, addressing Mr. Speaker, "there is as much beyond truth as on
-this side it, and would we steer a right course we must be sure to keep
-the channel, lest we fall from one extreme to another, from the dotage
-of superstition to the frenzy of profaneness, from bowing to idols
-to worship the calves of our own imagination." This honest gentleman
-lamented libellous pamphlets, Puritan sermons, irreverence in churches,
-and the like; called himself a dutiful son of his distressed mother,
-the Church of England; pleaded for referring matters of doctrine to
-learned divines; and declared that to venture on any alteration was to
-run a risk, the consequences of which no man could foresee.[145]
-
-[Sidenote: _Petitions._]
-
-A scene unnoticed by our historians, but brought to light by the
-careful examination of Sir Symonds D'Ewes' journal, occurred during the
-debate.[146] Alderman Pennington, Member for London, vindicated the
-character of the anti-Episcopal petitioners, and maintained that in
-obtaining signatures there "was no course used to rake up hands, for
-if that had been done, 15,000 might have mounted to fifteen times
-15,000." Then Sir John Strangways, Member for Weymouth, offered a
-few words in favour of Episcopacy, observing that "if we made parity
-in the Church, we must at last come to a parity in the Commonwealth,
-and that the bishops were one of the three estates of the kingdom,
-and had a voice in Parliament." Upon this Cromwell rose, and declared
-that "he knew no reason of those suppositions and inferences which the
-gentleman had made that last spoke." At this point some interruption
-occurred, and divers members "called him to the bar." After which Pym
-and Holles referred to the orders of the House, that if a gentleman
-said anything objectionable, he might explain himself in his place.
-D'Ewes followed this up by saying, "to call a member to the bar is the
-highest and most supreme censure we can exercise within these walls,
-for it is rending away a part from our body, because if once a member
-amongst us is placed at yonder bar, he ceaseth to be a member." He then
-moved, that if this offence of calling to the bar should be repeated,
-the offender should be well fined. Cromwell, who thus appears to have
-already become obnoxious to the Church party, must have still more
-annoyed his interrupter, when he proceeded to observe, "He did not
-understand why the gentleman that last spake (before the interruption)
-should make an inference of parity from the Church to the Commonwealth,
-nor that there was any necessity of the great revenues of bishops. He
-was more convinced, touching the irregularity of bishops, than even
-before; because, like the Roman hierarchy, they would not endure to
-have their condition come to a trial."[147] This debate resulted in
-the petition being referred to a Committee which had been appointed to
-prepare subjects to be submitted to the House--the House reserving to
-itself the main point of Episcopacy, which was to be afterwards taken
-into consideration. The speeches had shewn a remarkable coincidence
-of opinion as to the necessity of abridging prelatical power and
-Church influence; but they had also brought out discordant views
-in relation to Episcopacy itself, though few at present advocated
-its total abolition. As yet, it did not seem wise to the Commons to
-decide one way or the other on this important point, or to entrust
-the consideration of the question to a Committee; but as we look at
-the general complexion of the debate, together with the terms of the
-resolution, the exceptive clause would appear simply to mean that
-Parliament was not yet prepared to abolish Episcopacy.[148]
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, Feb.]
-
-[Sidenote: _Petitions._]
-
-The Committee divided the grievances complained of into nineteen
-heads, of which the principal were the inequality of benefices, the
-claim of the hierarchy to be a divine institution, the assumption of
-an exclusive power to ordain, the temporal power of the bishops, the
-holding of pluralities, and the scandalous lives of the Clergy.[149]
-The challenge of the divine right of Episcopacy, though it seems to
-have come very near to the subject excepted in the resolution, was
-pronounced to be a proper point for enquiry; and a long and minute
-discussion followed, in which texts of Scripture and passages from
-the Fathers were cited and canvassed. It was voted at length that the
-"challenge of the divine right of Episcopacy is a question fit to be
-presented;"--the Committee in this respect indicating a desire that the
-House would proceed to discuss the point reserved, and also shewing by
-the tenor of their private conference, the strong Presbyterian element
-then at work amongst them. All the nineteen particulars were examined,
-and evidence collected respecting each--especially that which bore
-upon the conduct of scandalous bishops, whose speeches and quotations
-of Scripture are given at length, some in an incredible strain of
-impious levity. The Committee sat from the 10th to the 19th February.
-No formal discussion of the abstract question about the divine right of
-Episcopacy immediately followed the report of the Committee; but the
-influence of the report probably told upon the House, and prepared for
-an attack upon the bishops, which was made in the month of May.
-
-
-
-
- [Illustration]
-
- CHAPTER IV.
-
-
-[Sidenote: _Lords' Committee on Innovations._]
-
-Whilst the Commons were receiving Puritan petitions, the Lords were
-presented with others of a different kind. The presence in the Upper
-House of Anglican bishops and noblemen, encouraged the Church party
-to make complaints to them of Puritan irreverence and interruption;
-and these complaints indicated very plainly, how the revolution of
-affairs had emboldened certain individuals to commit some very unseemly
-acts.[150] At the same time, the gracious reception given by the peers
-to anti-Puritan memorials manifested a temper quite different from
-that which prevailed in the Lower House. Yet there was not altogether
-wanting on the part of their lordships a disposition to make some
-small concession to Puritan demands, with the view of saving the
-Church of England from changes of a more serious nature. Hence, in the
-early spring, they appointed a committee to consider the subject of
-innovations. This committee was empowered to consult with any divines
-whom they might wish to select; and when the selection had been made, a
-theological sub-committee was formed.[151]
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, March.]
-
-Williams, Bishop of Lincoln, and Dean of Westminster, became convener
-of this committee of divines, and he presided over all the meetings.
-Though possessed of considerable knowledge and ability, and of an
-active turn of mind, this remarkable person had not the qualities
-necessary for ecclesiastical statesmanship in troubled times such as
-those in which his lot was thrown. His whole history supports the
-opinion that selfish policy formed the guiding star of his life; and
-there is little doubt that a key to such of his proceedings as favoured
-Puritanism may be found in his remark that "the Puritans were many,
-and strong sticklers; and if his Majesty would but give private orders
-to his ministers to connive a little at their party, and shew them
-some indulgence, it might, perhaps, mollify them a little, and make
-them more pliant, though he did not promise that they would be trusty
-long to any government."[152] Williams cannot be honoured for any high
-moral or religious principle; he was very much of a time-server, and
-fondly loved popularity; indeed his whole history is in keeping with
-the keen and cunning expression of his handsome countenance seen in
-that portrait of him, with black hat and close ruff, which hangs in the
-dining-room of the Westminster Deanery.
-
-[Sidenote: _Lords' Committee on Innovations._]
-
-We can believe what his biographer says respecting his management of
-the Committee:--
-
-"The Bishop had undertaken a draught for regulating the government
-ecclesiastical, but had not finished it. The sudden and quiet dispatch
-of all that was done already was attributed to the Chairman's
-dexterity, who could play his prize at all weapons, dally with crooked
-humours, and pluck them straight; bring all stragglers into his own
-pound, and never drive them in; foresee a tempest of contradiction the
-best that ever I knew, and scatter it before it could rise; and won all
-his adversaries insensibly into a compliance before they were aware.
-To this day they of the Nonconformists that survive, and were present,
-will tell you that they admired two things in him, in their phrase--his
-courtesy and his cunning."[153]
-
-The members met for a week in the Jerusalem Chamber, and were daily
-entertained by the hospitable Dean. This circumstance Fuller could
-not record without the witticism, that it was "the last course of all
-public episcopal treatments--whose guests may now even put up their
-knives, seeing soon after the voider was called for, which took away
-all bishops' lands, and most of English hospitality."[154]
-
-Just as Williams was summoning the divines to meet together to enquire
-into innovations since the Reformation, and to "examine the degrees and
-perfections of the Reformation itself," Laud wrote down in his diary,
-"This Committee will meddle with doctrine as well as ceremonies, and
-will prove the national synod of England to the great dishonour of the
-Church, and what else may follow upon it, God knows."[155]
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, March.]
-
-Though Laud was wrong in the importance which he attached to this mixed
-conclave, he was right enough in concluding that it would meddle with
-doctrines as well as ceremonies. This appeared very early; for it is
-alleged in the memoranda prepared for the Committee that there were
-some ministers who preached justification by works, the efficacy of
-penance, confession, and absolution, and the sacrificial character of
-the Lord's supper; that prayers for the dead were used, and monastic
-vows defended; also, "that the whole gross substance of Arminianism was
-avowed, and original sin absolutely denied:" and together with these
-notices of Romanist tendencies on the one hand, there appear references
-to Socinianism on the other. The introduction of these charges could
-not but lead to doctrinal controversy, and rumours soon got abroad
-that changes in the theological standards of the Church were under
-consideration.[156]
-
-[Sidenote: _Lords' Committee on Innovations._]
-
-The ceremonial innovations complained of were more numerous than the
-doctrinal. They included turning the holy table altar-wise; bowing
-to the east; the use of candlesticks upon the altar, so called; the
-construction of a canopy over it, with curtains on each side; the
-display of crucifixes and images upon the parafront or altar-cloth;
-reading some parts of the morning service at the table, when the
-communion is not celebrated; the employment of credence tables; the
-introduction of an offertory distinct from giving alms to the poor;
-and "singing the 'Te Deum' in prose, after a cathedral church way,
-in divers parochial churches where the people have no skill in such
-music." The last of the practices here enumerated might seem to
-occasion censure only on the ground of unfitness and want of taste,
-such as High Churchmen would disapprove; but all the other particulars
-in the paper, of which we have given only specimens, demonstrate
-that Puritan, if not Presbyterian pens were employed in drawing it
-up. Another proof of this circumstance is found in the reference to
-"standing up at the hymns in the church, and always at 'Gloria Patri.'"
-The finding fault with that shews the extreme length to which the
-Puritans went in their objections; and it is curious to observe, that
-standing up to sing, which was in the seventeenth century complained
-of as an innovation upon the reformed discipline of the Church,
-is now an almost universal practice in all communities of English
-Christians.[157] A memorandum follows--which might have proceeded
-from the Episcopal portion of the Committee--to the effect that two
-sermons should be preached in all cathedral and collegiate churches on
-Sundays and holydays, and that there should be at least one lecture
-a week; but, again, Puritan influence appears in the expression of a
-desire that music should be arranged with less curiosity, and that no
-"ditties" should be "framed by private men."
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, March.]
-
-In reference to the Prayer Book, suggestions to the number of
-thirty-five occur, of which the following may be mentioned: expunging
-the names of some departed saints from the calendar; the disuse of
-apocryphal lessons; omitting the Benedicite; the making some discreet
-rubric to take away the scandal of signing the cross in baptism, or the
-abolition of that sign altogether; the enlargement of the Catechism;
-and certain changes in the Marriage[158] and Burial Services, and also
-in that for the Visitation of the Sick,--changes of a kind such as have
-been commonly proposed by those who advocate a revision of the Prayer
-Book.[159]
-
-A proposal for reforming the Episcopate which was volunteered by
-Williams, and was submitted by him on his own responsibility, without
-success, to the House of Lords,[160] does not belong to the schemes of
-the Committee. It went no further than to propose that bishops should
-preach every Sunday under penalty for default; that none should be
-justices of the peace except the Dean of Westminster; and that prelates
-should have twelve assistants besides Deans and Chapters. Four of these
-assistants were to be appointed by the King, four by the Lords, and
-four by the Commons; and in the case of a see being vacant, they were
-to present three able divines to His Majesty, who was to nominate one
-of them to the Episcopal chair; no Dean or Prebendary was to absent
-himself from his cathedral above sixty days.
-
-[Sidenote: _Lords' Committee on Innovations._]
-
-Other plans were drawn up by different persons with a view to the
-reconciliation of opposite parties, and there were moderate men who
-believed that, "but for some hot spirits who would abate nothing of
-episcopal power and profit," a compromise might have been effected.
-Perhaps it might; yet supposing some likelihood of peace through mutual
-concession at an earlier period, it admits of a question whether any
-possibility of it remained, now that the pent-up animosities of many
-years had burst out like the fires of a volcano. Theologians of a
-spirit like that of Ussher and others might have discovered grounds
-of union in spite of different views on some subjects; but a large
-majority of the divines who formed the two parties which then divided
-the Church, had reached conclusions irreconcilably opposed to each
-other. At all events, the semi-Puritan scheme of accommodation came to
-nothing. By the middle of May, the Committee had broken up, and when
-the reader reflects upon the crisis which affairs had reached, he will
-not wonder that the members abandoned the project in despair.
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, April.]
-
-The Committee of the Commons appointed for considering the Ministers'
-Remonstrance of the 27th of January, had not been idle. They had made
-reports and submitted questions for discussion. The House consequently
-passed resolutions for reforming pluralities, removing bishops from
-the Peerage and Privy Council, and for excluding all clergymen
-from the commission of the peace. Orders were given to frame Bills
-accordingly.[161]
-
-One of these Bills, which was introduced on the 9th of March, provided
-that no minister should have more than one living; that if he absented
-himself from his cure for forty days, he should forfeit his preferment;
-and that no member of the University should hold a benefice ten miles
-distant from his College, without living in the parish.[162]
-
-[Sidenote: _Debates respecting Bishops._]
-
-Another Bill, founded on the resolutions excluding clergymen from
-secular offices, came before the House on the first of April, when
-it was read a second time, and committed.[163] The supporters of it
-argued:--"That there was so great a concurrence towards the passing
-this Bill, and so great a combination throughout the nation against the
-whole government of the Church, in which the Scots were so resolutely
-engaged, that it was impossible for a firm peace to be preserved
-between the nations, if bishops were not taken away, and that the army
-would never march out of the kingdom till that were brought to pass."
-Mr. Hyde, who afterwards, as Lord Clarendon, became his own reporter,
-replied that--"It was changing the whole frame and constitution of
-the kingdom, and of the Parliament itself; that, from the time that
-Parliaments began, there had never been one Parliament when the bishops
-were not part of it; that if they were taken out of the House there
-would be but two estates left, for that they, as the clergy, were the
-third estate, and being taken away, there was nobody left to represent
-the clergy, which would introduce another piece of injustice, which no
-other part of the kingdom could complain of, who were all represented
-in Parliament, and were, therefore, bound to submit to all that was
-enacted, because it was upon the matter with their own consent:
-whereas, if the bishops were taken from sitting in the House of Peers,
-there was nobody who could pretend to represent the clergy, and yet
-they must be bound by their determinations." Lord Falkland, who sat
-next to Hyde, then started up, and declared himself "to be of another
-opinion, and that, as he thought the thing itself to be absolutely
-necessary for the benefit of the Church, which was in so great danger,
-so he had never heard that the constitution of the kingdom would
-be violated by the passing that act, and that he had heard many of
-the clergy protest that they could not acknowledge that they were
-represented by the bishops. However, we might presume, that if they
-could make that appear, that they were a third estate, that the House
-of Peers (amongst whom they sat, and had yet their votes) would reject
-it."[164]
-
-What became of this measure we shall see before long. In March and
-April, Bills were brought before the Commons for removing the Star
-Chamber and High Commission Courts, but they were not presented to the
-Lords till the fate of Strafford had been sealed. After a fruitless
-attempt by the Peers to modify the Bill respecting the Star Chamber,
-that and the measure for extinguishing the other despotic tribunal were
-allowed to pass.[165]
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, April.]
-
-Before entering on the principal events of the month of May, it is
-proper to glance at a controversy, pending about that time, between
-bishops Hall and Ussher on the one side, and certain Presbyterians,
-together with John Milton, on the other. Hall had, at an earlier
-period, written his "Episcopacy by divine right." Now he appeared as
-the author of "An Humble Remonstrance," in defence of liturgical forms
-and diocesan Episcopacy. He was answered by five Presbyterian divines,
-the initials of whose names formed the word _Smectymnus_, under which
-ugly title their polemical production figures in literary history.[166]
-The prelate insisted on the antiquity of liturgical forms, and on
-the apostolical origin of diocesan bishops. The Presbyters contended
-that free prayer was the practice of the early Church, and that no
-genuine liturgy can be traced up beyond the third century. They
-further maintained that the primitive bishop was a parochial pastor,
-or preaching presbyter, without superiority of order or any exclusive
-jurisdiction; that Presbyters of old ordained, and ruled, and that
-what they did at the beginning they had a right to do still. Hall
-published a rejoinder in defence of the Remonstrance. The Presbyters
-soon produced a Vindication. The Bishop now sought assistance from his
-friend Ussher, entreating him to bestow "one sheet of paper in such
-distracted times on the subject of Episcopacy." Ussher complied, and
-entitled his tract, "The original of Bishops and Metropolitans briefly
-laid down." This, as well as another tract from the same pen, on the
-position of the bishops of Asia Minor, issued from the Oxford press
-in the course of the year, in a collection which further included
-extracts from the writings of Hooker and Andrewes. Ussher argued, that
-from the writings of the Fathers a succession of bishops may be shown
-to have existed ever since the age of the Apostles; and that the Seven
-Angels of the Seven Churches were "seven singular bishops who were the
-constant presidents" over them.[167]
-
-[Sidenote: _Debates respecting Bishops._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, April.]
-
-Milton, with characteristic ardour and eloquence, plunged into this
-warfare, and published no less than five treatises on the subject,
-advocating ecclesiastical reform, condemning prelatical Episcopacy,
-reasoning against its government, animadverting on the "Defence," and
-apologizing for Smectymnus. The poet's genius, and his mastery of
-English prose, are conspicuous in these pamphlets; but the ferocity
-of temper with which he here uses his scalping-knife is hardly less
-than what it was in his onslaught upon Salmasius. Andrewes and
-Ussher are treated as dunces by the imperious scholar, and Lucifer
-is called the "first prelate angel," by this violent Nonconformist.
-Yet, behind his bitterest invectives,--with which mercenary feeling or
-personal grudge had nothing to do--may be seen a virtuous indignation
-against superstition, formality, and despotism; and it is in the very
-midst of this stormy assault, that he pauses to speak of that more
-congenial work--the great poem which even then floated before his
-imagination--which was "not to be obtained by the invocation of Dame
-Memory and her syren daughters, but by devout prayer to that Eternal
-Spirit who can enrich with all utterance and knowledge, and sends out
-His seraphim with the hallowed fire of His altar to touch and purify
-the lips of whom He pleases."
-
-
-
-
- [Illustration.]
-
- CHAPTER V.
-
-
-The May-day of 1641 was as merry as usual, save where Puritan opinions
-interfered with its time-honoured festivities. The May-pole was
-brought into the City and reared at St. Andrew's Undershaft with the
-accustomed honours. The morris-dancers, with Robin Hood, Maid Marian,
-Friar Tuck, and the other appurtenances of the show, made sport for
-those citizens who were attached to the old order of things. And in
-spite of Stubbs' "Anatomie of Abuses," which exposed these sports as
-heathenish practices, such persons looked on them as the symbols of an
-anti-Puritan loyalty, and of an old-fashioned affection for Church and
-State. At the same period, preparations were being made at Whitehall
-for the nuptials of the Princess Mary and the Prince of Orange; and the
-next day, being Sunday, the bride was led into the Chapel by the Prince
-of Wales and the Duke of York, "convoyed with a number of ladies of her
-own age of nine and ten years, all in cloth of silver," when the King
-gave away the bride, and "good Bishop Wren made the marriage."[168] The
-destinies of England were mysteriously connected with the consequences
-of this royal union, and little could the brilliant party before the
-altar, dream that from the wedded pair would spring a son, destined
-to cut off one branch of the Stuart dynasty for ever from the British
-throne; to complete the series of revolutionary events beginning to
-arise at the time of the marriage; and to establish for ages the civil
-and religious liberties of the English Constitution.
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, May.]
-
-The month so inaugurated proved most eventful. During April the perils
-of the nation had been on the increase. Plots were contrived by the
-King's friends to bring up the army to London and force a dissolution
-of Parliament. Pym, on the 3rd of May, declared that "combinations at
-home" corresponded with "practices abroad," and that the French were
-drawing their forces towards the English shores; that divers persons
-of eminence about the Queen were deeply engaged in these plots; that
-it was necessary for the ports to be closed, and that it was time to
-ask His Majesty to forbid any one who attended Court to leave these
-shores without special permission. Sir John Wray, member for the county
-of Lincoln, made a speech immediately after Pym had spoken, in which
-he urged, that if ever it was meant to perfect and finish the great
-work begun, the right way must be followed, which was to become holy
-pilgrims, not Popish ones. This he explained as meaning that they were
-to be loyal Covenanters with God and the King; binding themselves by
-a national oath to preserve religion in this country, without mixture
-of superstition or idolatry, and to defend the Defender of the Faith,
-his person, crown, and dignity. Doing this, and making Jerusalem their
-chiefest joy, the nation would be blessed; but if the people let go
-their Christian hold, and lost their Parliament-proof and old English
-well-tempered mettle, let them take heed lest their buckler break, and
-their Parliaments melt away, and their golden candlestick be removed
-for ever.[169]
-
-[Sidenote: _Debates in the House of Commons._]
-
-In consequence of these appeals, the Commons resolved upon a solemn
-Vow and Protestation, to defend, as far as lawful, "with life, power,
-and estate, the true reformed Protestant religion" of the Church of
-England, against all popery and popish innovations; to maintain the
-privilege of Parliament, and the liberties of the subject; and to
-endeavour to bring to condign punishment any person who should engage
-in conspiracy, or do anything contrary to this Protestation.[170] It
-was forthwith taken by every member, and then the document was sent
-up to the Lords. The peers present, except the Earl of Southampton
-and Lord Roberts, followed the example of the Commons. In two days
-the formulary had passed the lips of eighty temporal lords, seventeen
-bishops, nine judges, and four hundred and thirty-eight commoners. It
-was then printed and sent to the magistrates throughout the kingdom,
-with an order that it should be solemnly adopted on the following
-Sunday by heads of families and all persons of proper age.[171]
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, May.]
-
-Of course, questions arose as to the meaning of the words, in many
-cases, no doubt, after they had been sealed by oath. Episcopalians took
-the declaration to mean defending the Protestant religion, as in the
-Church of England by law established. No such thing, said the Puritan
-majority of the Lower House; it includes not the hierarchy. It is
-_against_ all popery and popish innovations, not _for_ the discipline
-worship and ceremonies of the Church as they stand at present.[172]
-The Commons, having so explained their own measure, afterwards passed
-a Bill for its universal enforcement, which however was objected to by
-the Lords. A conference between the two Houses followed, conducted by
-Denzil Holles, who defended the imposition of the oath, as a shibboleth
-to distinguish Ephraimites from Gileadites. With his reasons, "after
-some debate, the Lords seemed satisfied."[173] The proceeding shewed
-the alarm of the representatives of the people, lest they should be
-checkmated by their opponents. It indicated a determination to abide
-by what had been done, and further to grapple with all Papistical
-tendencies; whilst the Protestation itself anticipated the more famous
-Covenant of an after year, much to the joy of Robert Baillie, who,
-writing from his house in St. Antholin's, on the 4th of May, informed
-a Scotch brother: "After much debate, at last, blessed be the name of
-the Lord, they all swore and subscribed the writ, which here you have,
-I hope in substance, our Scottish covenant."[174] The intolerance and
-injustice of the imposition could not be seen in those days as it
-is in ours. Intended to secure liberty for such as were counted its
-only friends, it in fact partook of that very injustice, which, when
-exercised on the other side, appeared intolerable.
-
-[Sidenote: _Debates in the House of Commons._]
-
-The resolute temper of the House of Commons, in resolving upon
-the enforcement of the Protestation in spite of the Lords, is to
-be ascribed very much to the new position in which the House had
-placed itself. Mistrusting the intentions of the King, fearful of
-another dissolution, which would frustrate all patriotic plans, the
-representatives of the people had passed a Bill to render Parliament
-indissoluble until it should dissolve itself. The Bill was read a third
-time on the 7th of May, and such was the ascendancy of the Commons,
-that the King--either struck for a moment, as if by the eye of a
-basilisk, or intending to violate the Act, should it be in his power;
-or influenced by "his own shame and the Queen's consternation at the
-discovery of the late plot"[175]--gave his assent to the fatal measure
-only two days after it had passed the Lords.
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, May.]
-
-During the progress of the Protestation, the Londoners manifested the
-greatest excitement; crowds assembled in Palace Yard, and the King
-sent a message to the House of Lords to say, that, taking notice of
-the great tumult and concourse of people, he had called a council to
-advise what should be done, and it was his pleasure that Parliament
-should adopt some speedy course for preserving peace.[176] A laughable
-circumstance occurred amidst this panic. Two fat citizens, in the
-gallery of the Commons, stood earnestly listening to Sir Walter Erle,
-whilst he was descanting on the dangers of the times. Just then, an
-old board gave a loud creak, and Sir John Wray, imagining a second
-Guy Fawkes concealed in the cellar, called out, "he smelt gunpowder."
-This was enough. Knights and burgesses rushed out and frightened the
-people in the lobby, and the people in the lobby ran into Westminster
-Hall, crying, "the Parliament House was falling, and the members were
-slain." A few, scampering as fast as they could to Westminster Stairs,
-took water, and rowing at the top of their speed, reached the City,
-where they caused the alarm drums to beat, and the train bands to march
-as far as Covent Garden. All this arose from the creaking of a rotten
-board.[177]
-
-The exposure of these idle fears did not, however, compose the House;
-for, on the 10th of May, members were in such consternation about a
-gunpowder plot, that the Serjeant-at-arms received an order to get the
-holes of the floor examined and stopped up; also a committee of five
-proceeded carefully to search the building to discover and prevent
-the designs of any ill-affected persons who might be imitating the
-example of Guy Fawkes. Whilst we smile at these unfounded terrors,
-we must believe some real danger to have been in the wind, to make
-strong hearts, such as beat in the Long Parliament, thus flutter with
-apprehension.
-
-[Sidenote: _Debates in the House of Commons._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, May.]
-
-About the same time London echoed with "No popery riots." The presence
-of Marie de' Medicis in England excited immense uneasiness; and the
-zeal of that lady and her daughter, Queen Henrietta Maria, on behalf of
-the interests of the Roman Catholic religion, came to be regarded by
-Puritan citizens as a fountain of intrigue. At the end of April, the
-London apprentices--a class always foremost in city frays--catching
-the spirit of their sires and elders, gave it violent expression,
-by assaulting the Spanish ambassador's house in Bishopsgate Street,
-threatening to pull it about his Excellency's ears, and to take
-his life in revenge for permitting English Papists to frequent his
-chapel.[178]
-
-Other tumults and a deeper excitement appear in connexion with the
-trial of Strafford. Though the charges against him were chiefly of a
-political character, and his overthrow was accomplished mainly for
-political reasons, yet the religious feelings of the Puritans were
-intensely excited against this arbitrary chieftain, as the friend of
-Laud, and the abettor of his High Church policy. They saw in him the
-evil genius of the past, and his removal seemed to them essential for
-accomplishing the ecclesiastical reforms which they desired.[179]
-The conclusions which a student will reach, or the doubts that he
-will entertain touching the righteousness of Strafford's attainder
-and sentence, depend entirely upon the point of view from which he
-may regard the question. No wonder that lawyers now pronounce the
-attainder infamous.[180] Looking at the statutes of treason, it is
-impossible to bring the conduct of the Earl within their scope.
-The subversion of the fundamental laws of the kingdom, with which
-Strafford was charged, can never be fairly construed into an act of
-treason against the King. But politicians, examining the subject on
-grounds of expediency, may regard the proceeding as one of necessity
-to save the liberties of England. They may also think, as some did at
-the time, that "stone dead hath no fellow"--that the only effectual
-way of getting rid of so formidable an enemy was at once to put him in
-his coffin; and, as a matter of state policy--overriding all statute
-and common law--such persons will pronounce the execution of Strafford
-perfectly justifiable. But when the moralist comes to investigate the
-matter, it assumes a different aspect. He will admit--unless he be
-under the influence of strong political prejudices--that the Earl was
-guilty of high crimes and misdemeanours; and that, though not guilty
-of treason at common or statute law, he was guilty of subverting the
-principles of the constitution. On grounds therefore of moral equity,
-it was right to inflict some punishment on the offender. But to what
-extent? Perpetual imprisonment, with proper precautions against rescue,
-might have sufficed to meet all which political expediency required.
-Sent out of the way, shut up in some strong castle, the Earl might
-have been rendered perfectly innocuous; and it may fairly be contended
-further, that such a proceeding would have accomplished the ends of
-justice--that such an expiation ought to have satisfied the moral
-indignation of the country. Yet, when that point is settled, another
-arises, which demands consideration from the historian.
-
-[Sidenote: _Lord Strafford._]
-
-While, free from the excitements of the seventeenth century, we
-calmly look at Strafford's deserts, is it fair to apply our standard
-of judgment to the patriots and Puritans of 1641 who took part in
-his condemnation? Right and wrong, it is true, in themselves are
-unalterable and eternal, but there are almost infinite degrees in the
-blameworthiness of men doing wrong, as there are in the meritoriousness
-of men doing right. Allowance being made for different ideas of
-criminal jurisprudence in the times of the Stuarts from those now
-current; and excuses being admitted for stern severity provoked by
-long oppression,--the patriots and Puritans who put Strafford to death
-must not be condemned as men would be who had done such a thing in
-our own times. If it be allowed that the Puritans acted under a sense
-of mistaken justice; that, standing before the bar of Heaven, they
-could lay their hands on their breasts, and plead the convictions of
-conscience and the impulses of patriotism; then, however condemnatory
-the deed, lenient should be the sentence on the offenders. I am not
-however prepared to contend for the absence of all vindictiveness
-in the men who brought Strafford to trial, and then sent him to the
-scaffold. One cannot but fear that a large amount of alloy was mixed
-up with the purity of their justice. But that must be left for the
-decision of a far different tribunal from any which we can erect.
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, May.]
-
-Every reader of English history is aware of the perplexity of Charles
-when required by Parliament to sanction the death of his Minister.
-He did not believe Strafford guilty of treason, and he consequently
-regarded his execution as unjust. Yet he sought for some method of
-pacifying his conscience, and consulted certain Bishops[181] as to the
-course that he should pursue. The general advice they gave is reported
-by the most distinguished of the counsellors. Ussher puts it thus:
-The matter of fact must be distinguished from the matter of law; of
-the matter of fact the King may judge; if he do not conceive the Earl
-guilty, he cannot in justice condemn him; but as for law, what is
-treason, and what is not, the King must rely on the opinion of the
-judges.[182]
-
-[Sidenote: _Lord Strafford._]
-
-This casuistry of Charles's advisers indicated the timid expediency of
-politicians rather than the grave righteousness of God's ministers. But
-what followed was much worse. One of them--probably Williams--suggested
-a distinction between the public capacity of Charles as a king, and
-the private capacity of Charles as a man; a distinction worthy only
-of a Jesuit, and such as, if allowed, would tear up the roots of all
-morality in official life.[183] It appears that the other prelates
-were not responsible for this suggestion. Still reserve is seen on the
-part of the best men amongst the monarch's advisers, very unlike the
-outspoken habits of old Hebrew prophets. In their conduct there is much
-to provoke censure, though in their circumstances there is something to
-suggest excuse.
-
-In justice to Ussher, let it be added, that he recommended the King
-not to consent to the Earl's condemnation unless he was convinced of
-his guilt. Charles himself declared, "After the bill was passed, the
-Archbishop came to me, saying, with tears in his eyes, 'Oh, Sir, what
-have you done? I fear that this act may prove a great trouble to your
-conscience, and pray God that your Majesty may never suffer by the
-signing of this Bill.'" The Episcopal party, though they did nothing
-decidedly against the execution of Strafford, ever afterwards regarded
-it as a dark spot in their royal master's history. They were certainly
-themselves not free from blame, for if they regarded the proceeding
-as they said they did, it became them to do their utmost to save
-Strafford's life. But the truth is, as the Minister was made a Jonah
-to still the storm, so the Monarch was made a scape-goat to bear the
-responsibility of throwing him overboard. With the superstition natural
-to a man wanting in straightforward principle, Charles, in the midst of
-his after troubles, promised to expiate his offence by public penance,
-should he ever be restored to his throne. That day of penance never
-came: but the moral effect of Strafford's dignified conduct in prison
-and on the scaffold has been such as to soften the opinion of posterity
-respecting his character, and to increase the condemnation pronounced
-by history upon Charles for consenting to his death. Strafford's last
-moments were the noblest of his life. The scene, as he knelt under
-Laud's window in the Tower to receive his benediction, touches English
-hearts to this very hour; pity is felt for the man going to his doom on
-the adjoining hill, which would never have been inspired had his fate
-been imprisonment instead of death. Both injustice and impolicy are
-sure to meet revenge, as Providence slowly knits up the threads of time.
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, May.]
-
-Strafford fell on the 12th of May. Amidst the mingled awe and
-exultation of the moment--whilst the name of the nobleman who had
-perished passed from lip to lip through London, and the sawdust on the
-scaffold continued moist with blood--the House of Commons calmly sat to
-hear an appeal respecting Deans and Chapters. The men, who unconscious
-of guilt had brought Strafford to the block, and had thus swept from
-their path a huge obstacle, were at this awful moment quietly pursuing
-their measures of ecclesiastical reform. The event of the morning,
-however, one would imagine, came too vividly before them to allow
-of perfectly serene attention to the pleadings carried on in their
-presence.
-
-[Sidenote: _Deans and Chapters._]
-
-Great alarm had been felt for the safety of cathedral establishments,
-although no measure at present had appeared in either House affecting
-their dignity or diminishing their revenues. But reports of approaching
-danger were rife, which did not at first alarm and arouse the
-"prelatical court clergy" so much as it did some others. They waited
-to see distinctly what impended before attempting a defence. Now they
-bestirred themselves and prepared petitions, and being informed that
-the order of the House would not permit of their employing counsel,
-they delegated Dr. John Hacket, Prebendary of St. Paul's and Archdeacon
-of Bedford, to plead their cause. On this 12th of May, Hacket came up
-to the bar of the House to fulfil an office which, he said, had been
-assigned to him only the afternoon before. He pleaded, that cathedrals
-supplied the defects of private worship, though he quaintly admitted
-that--through the super-inquisitiveness of the music--what was intended
-for devotion vanished away into quavers and airs, whereof he wished
-the amendment; and passing to what he termed "the other wing of the
-cherubim," he expatiated on the excellent preaching supplied by these
-establishments; refuting, by the way, slanders on lecturers as an
-upstart corporation, and shewing that the local statutes of most
-cathedrals required week-day lectures. The advocate urged further, that
-Deans and Chapters advanced the cause of learning, and provided persons
-for defending the Church. Moreover, he said, the institute comported
-with primitive usage, being in fact a _senatus episcopi_, and therefore
-meeting a want of which some of his reverend brethren complained.
-Warming with his subject, he praised the magnificence of cathedral
-buildings, mentioned the number dependent on the foundations, insisted
-on the excellence of Deans and Chapters as landlords, and their
-enrichment of cities by their residence and hospitality. The Doctor
-proceeded to uphold cathedral revenues as prizes to stimulate lawful
-ambition, and contended for a better maintenance of the clergy than in
-neighbouring reformed Churches--that they might not be like "Jeroboam's
-priests, the basest of all the people." To destroy Deans and Chapters,
-he added, would please the Papists--to preserve them would benefit the
-nation. He concluded by observing that the honour of God was at stake
-in this matter, that alienation of church property would be sacrilege,
-and that "on the ruins of the rewards of learning no structure can be
-raised but ignorance; and upon the chaos of ignorance nothing can be
-built but profaneness and confusion."[184]
-
-Dr. Cornelius Burgess, a London lecturer of Presbyterian principles,
-appeared in the afternoon of the same eventful day, and indulged in
-"a vehement invective against Deans and Chapters," their want of
-Scripture authority, and their utter unprofitableness. He charged
-some of the singing men with debauchery, and all with uselessness.[185]
-Yet he considered it unlawful to convert the revenues to private uses.
-In his opinion they ought to be consecrated to public purposes of a
-religious kind. After hearing the arguments of Hacket and Burgess, the
-House allowed the matter to stand over for a while. Hereafter we shall
-have to notice its re-appearance.
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, May.]
-
-The Commons a few days afterwards (May 17) gave signs of coming
-under Presbyterian influence. Having debated certain propositions
-presented by the Scotch commissioners, they reciprocated by resolution
-the affectionate regards of their brethren, and their desires for
-uniformity in Church government. They went so far as to pledge
-themselves to proceed in due time with reformatory measures, such as
-should "best conduce to the glory of God and the peace of the Church."
-Three days subsequently, the House set aside the oath of canonical
-obedience, by voting that no minister should be obliged to take any
-oath upon his induction, except _such as Scripture warranted_.[186] In
-all this, a current of feeling against Episcopacy is distinctly visible.
-
-[Sidenote: _Abolition of Episcopacy._]
-
-The Bill for "Restraining Bishops from intermeddling with Secular
-Affairs" came again under debate. It had been sent to the Upper House
-on the 1st of May, when Bishop Hall made a speech against it.[187] The
-Bill reached a second reading, and was committed on the 14th. Whatever
-idea of compromise by passing this measure might have existed among the
-Commons, no such idea was entertained by the Lords. They disputed
-the question with all the logic and eloquence they could master;
-evidently regarding the overthrow of this measure as of vital moment.
-The Right Reverend bench stood firm, and the Bishop of Lincoln--to
-shew that his committee of accommodation meant nothing prejudicial to
-the order--boldly defended it in a speech which was full of learning
-and rhetoric. Lord Viscount Newark also strenuously opposed the Bill;
-but it received earnest support from the Puritan Lord Say and Sele.
-Yet the latter wished their lordships not to regard it as introduced
-with any ulterior view,--telling them, it meant not the taking away
-of Episcopacy _root and branch_, but only the lopping off exuberant
-and superfluous boughs which now wasted the juices of the tree. The
-Lords feared the consequence of passing the bill, and deemed the
-episcopal status amongst them as of ancient and inalienable right. So
-they resolved, that Archbishops and Bishops should have "suffrage and
-voice as ever;" but to the other propositions they agreed, viz:--that
-prelates should have nothing to do with the Star Chamber Court or the
-Privy Council, and that no clergyman should be any longer a Justice of
-the Peace. These points a year before--had Strafford and Laud conceded
-them when they were in power--would have been counted an immense
-concession. But ecclesiastical as well as political matters had since
-passed through a whole heaven of change; therefore the three articles
-granted by the Lords were by the Commons deemed trifles unworthy of
-acceptance apart from the first.
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, May.]
-
-On the 24th of May, the resolution described passed the House of Lords.
-The impression which it made on the Commons is plain from what ensued.
-The patriots knitted their brows when the tidings reached them, and
-compressed their lips in firm determination to subdue the lordly
-prelates. We now reach an important crisis.
-
-The Commons assembled as usual on the 27th of May. A petition came from
-the Lincolnshire farmers and burghers, with many hands to it, praying
-for the abolition of the government of Archbishops and Bishops, and
-their numerous subordinates.[188] As the gentlemen in broadbrimmed hats
-and scanty cloaks with goodly neck-ruffs or ample collars sat gravely
-pondering these ominous petitions,--suddenly, from a well-known voice,
-a short speech broke on their ears like the explosion of a bombshell.
-On the southern, or right-hand corner of St. Stephen's Chapel, a ladder
-might have been discovered, leading up to a gallery where certain
-members were accustomed to sit. Sir Arthur Haselrig commonly took his
-place there. That morning Sir Edward Dering was seen striding up the
-ladder to a seat next Sir Arthur. The member for Leicestershire held
-close and earnest conference with the Kentish knight. A paper was
-pressed into his hands, and after a hasty perusal, with a good-natured
-air of importance, he rose, leaned over the gallery, and made the
-following impromptu remarks:--
-
-[Sidenote: _Abolition of Episcopacy._]
-
-"Mr. Speaker--The gentleman that spake last, taking notice of the
-multitude of complaints and complainants against the present government
-of the Church, doth somewhat seem to wonder that we have no more
-pursuit ready against the persons offending. Sir, the time is present,
-and the work is ready perhaps beyond his expectation. Sir, I am now
-the instrument to present unto you a very short but a very sharp Bill,
-such as these times and their sad necessities have brought forth. It
-speaks a free language, and makes a bold request. It is a purging
-Bill. I give it you as I take physic, not for delight but for a cure.
-A cure now, the last and only cure, if as I hope all other remedies
-have been first tried, then--_immedicabile vulnus, &c._, but _cuncta
-prius tentanda_. I never was for ruin so long as I could hold any
-hope of reforming. My hopes that way are even almost withered. This
-Bill is entitled, 'An Act for the utter abolishing and taking away of
-all Archbishops, Bishops, their Chancellors and Commissaries, Deans,
-Deans and Chapters, Archdeacons, Prebendaries, Chanters, and Canons,
-and all other their under officers.' Sir, you see their demerits have
-exposed them, _publici odii piaculares victimas_. I am sorry they are
-so ill. I am sorry they will not be content to be bettered, which I
-did hope would have been effected by our last Bill. When this Bill
-is perfected I shall give a sad aye unto it; and at the delivery in
-thereof, I do now profess beforehand, that if my former hopes of a full
-Reformation may yet revive and prosper, I will again divide my sense
-upon this Bill, and yield my shoulders to under-prop the primitive,
-lawful, and just Episcopacy; yet so as that I will never be wanting
-with my utmost pains and prayers to root out all the undue adjuncts and
-superstructures on it. I beseech you read the Bill, and weigh well the
-work."[189]
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, May.]
-
-It was an odd speech for any man to make who had undertaken so grave a
-business, and it looked doubly odd that Sir Edward Dering should father
-such a motion; seeing that, though he was a Puritan, he professed to
-love the Episcopal Church. Men stared and wondered. A pause followed.
-Then some one moved, that the Bill might not be read:--
-
-"That it was against the custom and rule of the House that any
-private person should take upon him, without having first obtained
-the leave and direction of the House to bring in a new Act, so much
-as to abrogate and abolish any old single law; and therefore that it
-was wonderful presumption in that gentleman, to bring in a Bill that
-overthrew and repealed so many Acts of Parliament, and changed and
-confounded the whole frame of the government of the kingdom."[190]
-
-The Bill, however, was then read a first time. On the motion for the
-second reading, Sir John Culpeper, one of the popular party, opposed
-it on the ground, that Episcopal government was not beyond all hope of
-reformation. He advised the House to see what the Lords would yet do
-with the Bill sent up to them. D'Ewes supported the second reading.
-Sir Charles Williams, member for Monmouthshire, opposed it, declaring
-that he would divide the House, though there should be "but six noes."
-For this he was called to account, and compelled to apologize, to "the
-good satisfaction of the House." The second reading passed by 139 to
-108. On a resumption of the debate, Pleydell and Hyde took the lead
-in opposing the measure. The latter argued that Church and State had
-flourished many centuries under the present ecclesiastical rule, and
-that the Bill must not be hastily adopted, since it contained matter of
-great weight and importance. D'Ewes promptly replied, that the existing
-ecclesiastical rule had hardly reached its hundredth year. Hyde would
-have rejoined, but the House did not allow him so to do. Holles and Pym
-followed, contending that bishops had well nigh ruined all religion,
-and complaining that they had determined to continue in the Upper
-House, despite the opposition of the Lower. The Commons ordered the
-Bill to be committed on the 3rd of June. It was then deferred to the
-11th of the same month.[191]
-
-[Sidenote: _Abolition of Episcopacy._]
-
-Dering's conduct at the time appeared a mystery. Afterwards he
-explained,[192] that he had nothing to do with the preparation of
-the measure--that it was entrusted to him by Sir Arthur Haselrig,
-who had received it from Sir Harry Vane and Oliver Cromwell. It
-further appears, that he scarcely read the motion before moving its
-adoption. Haselrig's connection with this bold proceeding, as well as
-with Strafford's attainder, are proofs of his having then assumed a
-prominent position amongst ultra-politicians; but the character of the
-measure would rather suggest that Sir Harry Vane must really have been
-its author. Cromwell's relation to it is also worthy of notice, as it
-indicates his advanced opinions at the period, and his already active
-and influential statesmanship. According to Clarendon, the Solicitor
-General, Oliver St. John, "the dark-lantern man," had drawn up the
-Bill--a statement, which, if true, shows another of the republican
-commonwealth men taking up an extreme position at the outset of the
-strife.[193]
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, June.]
-
-No doubt the concocters of this design considered that it would meet
-with better acceptance if presented by a merely doctrinal Puritan; and
-it indicates the excited temper of the Commons at the moment, and how
-the resistance of the Lords had wrought them up to a resolution of
-frightening mitred heads--that the Bill immediately came to a second
-reading, and that too by such a majority. Moreover, it expressed
-growing indignation against the course of oppression with which
-Episcopacy stood identified. For long years the Church had been sowing
-the wind--now, in a few short hours, it reaped the whirlwind. To those
-who wished to get rid of Episcopacy altogether, the proceedings of the
-Lords, although very exasperating, would not be altogether unwelcome,
-as advanced politicians might gather from it an argument against what
-they deemed to be half-measures. They asked--since bishops cling so
-tenaciously to their temporalities, would it not be as easy to get rid
-of both, as to tear one from the other? Some moderate men, discouraged
-and annoyed, were thus thrown into the arms of excited companions.
-Policy led them on to extremes, hoping that the boldness of the
-people's representatives now in the ascendant, would alarm the Lords,
-especially the spiritual ones, and induce them to give way, even on a
-point where they had staked their fortunes and planted the defence of
-their order.
-
-[Sidenote: _Debates by the Commons._]
-
-As the business of Dering's bill was under debate, a message arrived
-from the Upper House, signifying a readiness to concur in the Bill
-which they had already received, excepting only the clause for taking
-away the bishops' votes. "This message," we are told, "took little
-effect with the Commons."[194]
-
-A conference followed on the 3rd of June, when the peers were as
-decided as the Commons. They contended that there could be no question
-of the bishops' right to sit in Parliament, as well by common and
-statute law as by constant practice; and they further declared, that
-they knew of no inconveniences attending the privilege; still, if there
-were any, they were ready to consider them.[195] In reply the Commons
-alleged, that intermeddling with secular business hindered the exercise
-of ministerial functions, and that bishops should devote themselves
-entirely to their spiritual vocation. They added, that councils and
-canons forbid their engaging in secular affairs--that the twenty-four
-bishops are dependent on two archbishops--that with a peerage only
-for life, they are ever hoping for translation--that of late several
-prelates had encroached on the liberty of conscience belonging to His
-Majesty's subjects, and would still do so--and that they were pledged
-in their parliamentary character to maintain a jurisdiction grievous
-to the three kingdoms, and already abolished in Scotland, while it was
-petitioned against both in England and Wales. Finally, the Commons
-urged that rank as peers placed the prelates at too great a distance
-from the rest of the clergy. The arguments of neither House satisfied
-the other. The Commons could not accept the answer of the Lords. We
-will, declared they, have the whole Bill or none. Then, replied the
-Lords, you shall have none; and threw it out altogether. A wedge had
-before entered the oak of the English constitution. This blow split the
-two branches asunder, and they stood apart wider than before.
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, June.]
-
-The Commons went on their way, and framed a piece of Sabbath
-legislation, by prohibiting bargemen and lightermen from using their
-barks on the day of rest. Further, they separated ancient usages from
-parish perambulations, by requiring that no service should be said, nor
-any psalms sung when such perambulations took place. And then--perhaps
-to cover the measure against the bishops with some show of zeal for
-clerical order--the House reproved some poor people brought before them
-for schismatical irregularities.[196]
-
-[Sidenote: _Debates by the Commons._]
-
-Needing themselves a lesson on religious liberty, the Commons resolved
-to follow up their attack on those whom they considered to be its
-greatest enemies. "We fell upon the great debate of the Bill of
-Episcopacy," observes D'Ewes, in his Diary, June 11. "Robert Harley,
-as I gathered, Mr. Pym, Mr. Hampden, and others, with Mr. Stephen
-Marshall, parson, of Finchingfield, in the county of Essex, and some
-others, had met yesternight and appointed, that this Bill should be
-proceeded withal this morning. And the said Sir Robert Harley moved
-it first in the House, for Mr. Hampden out of his serpentine subtlety
-did still put others to move those businesses that he contrived."[197]
-From this passage it appears, that Pym had within six months made a
-considerable advance in his advocacy of ecclesiastical reform. It will
-be recollected, that in January he "thought it was not the intention
-of the House to abolish Episcopacy," but now before Midsummer he
-seems to agree in opinion with the "root and branch men." Hampden,
-probably, entered the Long Parliament with at least a deep suspicion
-of the inexpediency of upholding episcopal rule: and both he and
-Pym were now in close conference with Stephen Marshall, the famous
-Presbyterian divine: who, by the way, affords an instance of the active
-part in political movements for the overthrow of bishops, which even
-then had begun to be taken by clergymen of his order. D'Ewes further
-reports:--"So after a little debate the House was resolved into a
-committee, and Mr. Edward Hyde (a young utter-barrister of the Middle
-Temple), upon the speaker's leaving his chair, went into the clerk's
-chair, and there sat also many days after." The making Hyde chairman
-was a stroke of policy--so he says himself--on the part of those who
-were favourable to the Bill, on the ground that thus he would be
-prevented from speaking against it.
-
-According to his own account, he amply revenged himself, and proved
-no small hindrance, by mystifying questions and frequently reporting
-"two or three votes directly contrary to each other," so that after
-nearly twenty days spent in that manner, the Commons "found themselves
-very little advanced towards a conclusion."[198] The trick indicates
-the character of the man; and the confession of it years afterwards,
-is a sign of his effrontery; indeed, the whole of his conduct on this
-occasion proves how little he could have had at heart the interests of
-Episcopacy, not to speak boldly on its behalf, and vindicate that which
-he professed was venerable in his eyes, in this the crisis of its fate
-and the hour of its humiliation.
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, June.]
-
-In the course of debate, Sir Harry Vane advocated the abolition of
-Episcopacy, inveighing against it as a plant which God's right hand
-had not planted, but one full of rottenness and corruption, a mystery
-of iniquity fit to be plucked up and removed out of the way. Yet he
-did not advocate what would now be called the separation of Church
-and State; nor did he enter upon the defence or exposition of any
-broad principle of religious liberty. At the same time, Waller, the
-poet--a lively speaker, who, even at the age of eighty, could amuse
-the House with his badinage and wit--protested against further attacks
-on Episcopacy, now that its horns and claws were cut and pared. He
-was, he said, for reform, not for abolition. Upon the close of the
-debate on the 11th--which lasted from early in the morning till late
-at night--the committee, in spite of Mr. Hyde's expedients, resolved
-on the preamble of the Bill: "Whereas the government of the Church of
-England by archbishops, bishops, their chancellors, and commissaries,
-deans, archdeacons, and other ecclesiastical officers, hath been found,
-by long experience, to be a great impediment to the perfect reformation
-and growth of religion, and very prejudicial to the civil state and
-government of this kingdom."[199]
-
-[Sidenote: _Debates by the Commons._]
-
-On the 15th June, during an earnest discussion relative to the
-abolition of cathedral chapters, Mr. William Thomas, member for
-Carnarvon, related to the House the history of Deans, tracing them
-up to the time of Augustine, who describes each as having the care
-of ten monks; and then he asked, "whether the office, as now it is
-exercised, be the same as then?" "They are deceived that urge it,"
-the Welsh representative proceeded to say, "and they should know that
-this judicious House is able to discern and distinguish a counterfeit
-face of antiquity from the true. In vain do they, with the Gibeonites,
-labour to deceive us by old sacks, old shoes, old garments, old boots,
-and old bread that is dry and mouldy; therefore to no purpose and
-causelessly do they charge us to affect novelty, by our offering to
-take away church governors and government." He narrated stories of
-wicked deans; and said much about church music, as tickling the ear,
-without touching the heart, "whilst, as Augustine complaineth of
-himself, most were more moved by the sweetness of the song, than by
-the sense of the matter--working their bane like the deadly touch of
-the asps in a tickling delight--or as the soft touch of the hyena,
-which doth infatuate and lull asleep and then devoureth." Sir Benjamin
-Rudyard, who had before declared himself for Church reform, and still
-advocated it, offered some defence of cathedral establishments on the
-ground of their being conducive to the promotion of piety and learning.
-He deplored the selfishness which, in certain cases, led to the
-alienation of ecclesiastical property at the time of the Reformation;
-he warned his hearers against looking on Church lands with a carnal
-eye, and he besought them to search their hearts, that they might
-pursue sincere ends, without the least thought of saving their purses.
-Mr. Pury, alderman and member for Gloucester, produced the statutes
-which ordained that Deans and Canons should always reside within the
-cathedral's precincts, exercising the virtues of hospitality; that they
-should preach the Word in season and out of season, especially in the
-cathedral church and attend to the education of the young; and that
-they should have a common table in the Common Hall, where the canons,
-scholars, choristers, and subordinate officers should meet together.
-The Alderman then proceeded to observe, that not one of the statutes
-was kept, that the Dignitaries came once a year to receive the rents
-and profits of the lands, but did not distribute to the poor their
-proportion; that they neither mended the highways and bridges, nor kept
-any common table; and instead of preaching the gospel, they neglected
-it themselves, and did not encourage the discharge of the duty by
-others.[200] Throughout this debate the unpopularity at the time of
-that class, commonly termed the dignified clergy, appears in a very
-distinct and serious form. They had so completely identified themselves
-with the High Church party; they had become so imbued with the spirit
-of pride and intolerance; they had been so selfish in the exaction and
-enjoyment of their revenues; and they had been so unmindful of their
-spiritual duties, as to separate themselves from public sympathy:--a
-consequence which no class of religious ministers, whatever may be
-their legal and social position, can long afford to brave; a result
-which the highest privileged orders have never at last been able to
-face with impunity.
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, June.]
-
-The discussion ended with a resolution that Deans and Chapters, and
-all Archdeacons should be utterly abolished, and that their lands
-should be employed for the advancement of learning and piety, competent
-maintenance being afforded to those who might thereby suffer loss,
-provided that they were not delinquents. The House further resolved,
-that the forfeited property should be entrusted to feoffees, that
-the bishops' lands should be given to the King, except advowsons
-and impropriations, and that competent funds should be reserved for
-supporting preachers in cathedrals, and for repairing the sacred
-edifices.
-
-[Sidenote: _Debates by the Commons._]
-
-Proceeding with the business respecting Deans and Chapters, the
-committee did not drop the question of Bishops. On the 21st of June
-no change had come over the pleadings of the originator of the whole
-discussion. Dering's anti-prelatical zeal had not yet begun to
-wane, although he now complained of his adopted Bill as defective,
-and insisted on the importance of deciding on a future form of
-government before abandoning the present. He still alluded to existing
-Episcopacy in disrespectful terms, and advocated the introduction of a
-Presbyterian element into ecclesiastical rule. Dioceses, he said, were
-too large, and diocesans needed grave and able divines, assessors and
-assistants, amongst whom they were entitled to have the first place
-and to exercise the chief power. Then turning to the chairman for an
-illustration, the lively baronet observed: "Mr. Hyde, yourself are now
-in this great committee; Mr. Speaker is in the House the bishop of
-our congregation." "You,"--addressing himself to both gentlemen--"are
-in yourselves but fellow-members of the same House with us, returned
-hither (as we also are) to sit on these benches with us, until by our
-election, and by common suffrage, you are incathedrated. Then you
-have (and it is fit and necessary that you should have) a precedency
-before us and a presidency over us. Notwithstanding this, you are not
-diversified into a several and distinct order from us. You must not
-swell with that conceit. You (Mr. Chairman and Mr. Speaker) are still
-the same members of the same House you were, though raised to a painful
-and careful degree among us and above us. I do heartily wish that
-we had in every shire of England a bishop such and so regulated for
-Church government within that sphere, as Mr. Speaker is bounded in, and
-limited by the rules of this House."[201]
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, June.]
-
-The comparison was as amusing as it was pertinent, and fell in with the
-prevalent opinion of the Puritan party, that if bishops were retained
-in England it must be according to a greatly reduced standard of
-authority and power, and one that should resemble the dimensions of the
-Episcopal office, as many believed it to have existed in the first and
-second centuries of the Christian era.
-
-Before we terminate this chapter, another subject requires notice.
-The Long Parliament, at an early period, turned its attention to the
-character of the clergy. So many complaints were made against them,
-that the committee for religion, in the month of May, divided itself
-into sub-committees, whose business it was to investigate clerical
-scandals. Their proceedings have been subjected to severe criticism.
-It is said by Nalson, that accusations against the best ministers,
-by malicious persons, were invited and encouraged, and then admitted
-without any proof.[202] But this statement receives contradiction
-from the evidence which was laid before the Committees, and is still
-preserved; and though some portion of it might be untrustworthy, as is
-the case in every kind of judicial trial, other parts of it appear of a
-nature not to be gainsayed. In conducting these enquiries the practice
-was to receive written evidence, a practice borrowed from the Court
-of Arches, where the method of procedure is by libel and affidavit.
-Englishmen prefer the _vivâ voce_ testimony of witnesses before a jury;
-yet there are not wanting men of judgment, in modern times, who favour
-a written statement of fact. At any rate, the Committees could plead
-precedent for the course which they pursued, and as the causes which
-came before them were ecclesiastical, they did but adopt the usages
-of ecclesiastical courts. The constitution of the tribunal, rather
-than the mode of trial, is open to exception. There is no vindicating
-the former but on the fundamental principle of all revolutions, that
-old authorities having become thoroughly corrupt, new ones must be
-constituted by the popular power--in such cases the supreme power--to
-meet emergencies arising out of previous derangement.
-
-[Sidenote: _Debates by the Commons._]
-
-Cases which came under the notice of White's committee were published
-at a later period in his "Century of Scandalous Ministers."[203] On
-comparing that extraordinary volume with the proceedings of the Kent
-and Essex Committees, we must be struck with the large proportion
-in the former, not merely of allegations touching immorality, but
-of charges respecting the foulest and most atrocious crimes. Most
-of the complaints before Sir Edward Dering[204] related mainly
-to delinquencies of a theological, ecclesiastical, or political
-description; and the same may be said of the accusations brought
-against the Essex ministers: but on turning over White's pages we
-are nauseated with the filthiest accusations and the most abominable
-stories. If only half of them be true, he assuredly was supplied with
-abundant proofs of the extensive and utter degradation of the clergy.
-But some of the narratives seem to us so absurd as almost to defy
-belief; yet supposing that they are truthfully related, it is evident
-there existed in the parishes of England, at that time, incumbents who
-must be regarded as no less thoroughly mad than radically immoral.
-
-
-
-
- [Illustration]
-
- CHAPTER VI.
-
-
-While so much of argument and eloquence was expended upon Episcopacy
-in the abstract, it is natural to ask what became of the bishops
-themselves? At the opening of the Long Parliament a committee had been
-formed to prepare charges against Laud. The Scotch busied themselves
-with the same matter as soon as they reached London, being exasperated
-by the attempts of the prelate to force Episcopacy upon their
-countrymen. On the 18th of December the Commons voted the Archbishop
-a traitor, and sent up a message to the Lords desiring that he might
-be committed to custody, stating also that their accusation would be
-established in convenient time.[205]
-
-On the 24th of February articles were voted, and then presented to
-the Lords by Mr. Pym. He charged the Archbishop with subverting the
-constitution, by publications which he had encouraged; by influence he
-had used with ministers of justice; by his conduct both in the High
-Commission Court and in reference to the canons; by his tyrannical
-power in ecclesiastical and temporal matters; by setting up Popish
-superstition and idolatry; by abusing trust reposed in him by his
-Majesty; by choosing chaplains disaffected to the reformed religion;
-by attempting to reconcile the Church of England and the Church
-of Rome; by persecuting orthodox ministers; by causing division in
-England, and between the two kingdoms; and, finally, by subverting the
-rights of Parliament. Mr. Pym read these articles, and supported them.
-A few days afterwards the Archbishop was sent to the Tower.[206]
-
-[Sidenote: _Bishops._]
-
-Bishop Wren, who, according to a witticism of the age, is called the
-least of all these birds, and the most unclean among them, was early
-arrested (December 22), yet he was allowed to remain at large on bail.
-On the 20th of July the articles of his impeachment were presented
-by Sir Thomas Widdrington. The bishop--it was alleged, amongst
-other things--had ordered that the Communion-table should be placed
-altar-wise with steps and rails, and that communicants should kneel as
-they received the sacrament. He had enjoined the reading of the "Book
-of Sports," and had deprived godly ministers for refusing to submit to
-that unscriptural injunction. Prayers had been forbidden by him before
-sermon; and clergymen had been required to preach in hood and surplice.
-He had also been the means of excommunicating as many as fifty
-faithful pastors, and had been guilty of appointing Popishly-affected
-chaplains.[207]
-
-[Sidenote: 1641.]
-
-One bishop escaped the enquiry of the Long Parliament by being called
-to appear before a higher tribunal. We refer to Richard Montague, a man
-of learning, well read in the Fathers, an ecclesiastical antiquary,
-but a thorough Anglo-Catholic. Adopting Arminian views, supporting
-the encroachments of ecclesiastical power, loving ceremonial worship,
-and hating Puritanism with a perfect hatred, this prelate was just
-the person to please Archbishop Laud and Charles I. He had written,
-as early as 1623, a book against Popery, entitled "A new gag for the
-old goose," in which he was considered by many Protestants to have
-betrayed the cause he pretended to serve. For publishing this book,
-containing sundry propositions tending to the disturbance of Church and
-State, the author had been cited before the bar of the Commons, and,
-on the same account--and for the contents of his "Appeal to Cæsar,"
-and his "Treatise upon the Invocation of the Saints"--articles of
-impeachment had afterwards been presented against him. He was charged
-with fomenting the King's hatred of the Puritans, abusing them as
-"Saint-seeming," "Bible-bearing," and "Hypocritical;" representing
-their churches as "Conventicles," and their ministrations as mere
-"prating:" and also with sneering at Reformers as well as Puritans,
-affirming that the Church of Rome was the spouse of Christ. Yet,
-notwithstanding Montague's Popish tendencies and his unpopularity
-with all but very High Churchmen, Charles elevated him to the see of
-Chichester--the worst episcopal appointment he ever made, next to his
-promotion of Laud to the Archiepiscopate. The death of this bishop, in
-April, 1641, alone prevented Parliament from instituting very severe
-proceedings respecting his conduct.
-
-Davenant, who presided over the diocese of Salisbury, died the same
-month. Totally unlike Montague, he had fallen into trouble for contempt
-of King James's injunctions relative to preaching on predestination.
-His humble and peaceable life, his strict observance of the Sabbath,
-his condemnation of clerical pomp and luxury, and his disapproval of
-certain court proceedings, had secured for him the sympathies of the
-Puritans, and excited the displeasure of the High Church party. His
-death corresponded with his life; for in his last illness "he thanked
-God for this Fatherly correction," because in all his life-time he
-never before had one heavy affliction; which made him often much
-suspect with himself whether he was a true child of God or no, until
-this his last sickness. "_Then_," says Fuller--whose words we have
-followed--"_he sweetly fell asleep in Christ, and so we softly drew the
-curtains about him_."[208]
-
-[Sidenote: _Bishops._]
-
-On the 4th of August, 1641, Serjeant Wylde carried up to the House
-of Peers a series of articles prepared by a Committee of the House
-of Commons, impeaching thirteen bishops of certain crimes and
-misdemeanours. The accused were allowed till the 10th of November to
-prepare their answer, when they put in a Demurrer; after which the
-prosecution was superseded by other events hereafter to be described.
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, July.]
-
-Shortly before the impeachment of the thirteen prelates, a remarkable
-correspondence took place between certain Presbyterian clergymen
-of London and their brethren beyond the Tweed. It shows the high
-spirits of the former excited by recent events, their expectation of a
-speedy union with their neighbours in ecclesiastical polity, and the
-inspiration of fear from quarters opposite to those which had given
-them alarm a few months before. In a letter dated 12th July, 1641, the
-London ministers observe, that Almighty God having now of His infinite
-goodness raised their hopes of _removing the yoke of Episcopacy_, under
-which they had so long groaned, sundry other forms of Church government
-were projected to be set up in the room thereof; one of which was, that
-all power, whether of electing and ordaining ministers, or of admitting
-or excommunicating members, centred in every particular congregation,
-and was bounded by its extent. Independency in fact is meant by this
-passage, and the writers wished to know the judgment of their Scotch
-compeers on the point, as this would conduce by God's blessing to the
-settlement of the question. All the more earnestly was this entreated,
-because of a rumour that some famous and eminent brethren in the North
-were inclined to that form of government. In reply to this, an epistle
-arrived from the General Assembly, in which that reverend body assured
-their London brethren, that since the Reformation--especially since
-the union of the two kingdoms--the Scotch had deplored the evil of
-Great Britain having two kirks, and did fervently desire one confession
-and one directory for both countries. This they considered would be
-a foundation for durable peace, and the two Churches welded into one
-would be strong in God against dissensions amongst themselves, and
-also against the invasion of foreign enemies. The Assembly grieved to
-learn that any godly minister should be found not agreeing with other
-reformed kirks in point of government as well as doctrine and worship;
-and they feared that if the hedge of discipline were altered, what it
-contained would not long preserve its character. After laying down
-Presbyterian principles, the writers conclude by declaring themselves
-to be of one heart and of one soul; and to be no less persuaded that
-Presbyterianism is of God than that Episcopacy is of men.[209]
-
-Other circumstances about the same period encouraged the Scotch. Their
-army was to be disbanded, and their troops were to be paid--a point
-respecting which the commissioners had been very solicitous--and a
-promising treaty between the two countries appeared on the eve of
-ratification. To the desire of the northern brethren respecting unity
-of religion, it was answered in the treaty, that his Majesty, with
-the advice of both Houses, approved of the desire of ecclesiastical
-conformity; and since Parliament had already taken it into their
-consideration, they would proceed in a manner conducive to the glory
-of God and the peace of the two kingdoms.[210] This passage is
-equivocal, for it might signify conformity to Episcopal or conformity
-to Presbyterian government. The King, no doubt, meant in his heart the
-former, but was quite willing at the same time that his subjects in the
-North should understand the latter.
-
-[Sidenote: _Royal Visit to Scotland._]
-
-When affairs were coming into this posture, Charles determined to
-visit his native land. Into his political motives for so doing this
-is not the place to enter--whether he hoped thereby to procure an
-adjournment of Parliament; or thought that he should break up the
-combination between the northern and southern patriots; or expected
-to obtain evidence and assistance against the latter by conference
-and co-operation with the antiCovenanters under Montrose. But most
-certainly his intention in reference to religion, as appears from his
-conduct, was to conciliate his countrymen and to throw them off their
-guard by veiling his strong attachment to Episcopacy, under an assumed
-friendliness for Presbyterianism.
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, August.]
-
-Charles had determined to start on the 10th of August, and therefore,
-having passed certain bills on Saturday, the 7th, he then bid his
-Parliament farewell. The House of Commons greatly disliked this
-expedition. On the same day they requested the Lords to join them in
-petitioning his Majesty to delay his departure at least a fortnight
-longer. Only a strong reason could have induced Puritans to meet for
-business on the following day, being Sunday, but they did so meet. On
-that summer morning the members went down to Westminster, first to
-worship at St. Margaret's, and then to debate at St. Stephen's. But
-before entering on political affairs they were careful to guard against
-this Sunday sitting being drawn into a precedent. Often likened to the
-Pharisees for rigid formalism, these men, on this occasion, really
-shewed that--with their devout reverence for the holy season--they had
-caught the spirit of Him who said, the Sabbath was made for man, and
-not man for the Sabbath. Their attempt--on a day they so much loved to
-honour by religious exercises--at staying the King's journey northward,
-showed how much mischief they apprehended from that visit. But their
-effort did not succeed. On Tuesday, the 10th, Charles came to the House
-of Lords, and sending for the Commons, gave his assent to the Scotch
-Treaty and to certain Bills; after which he again took leave of the
-Houses, and started for Edinburgh, at two o'clock in the afternoon,
-accompanied by the Elector Palatine and the Duke of Lennox. On the 18th
-the Commons despatched commissioners to watch the ratification of the
-treaty, and "keep up a good correspondence between the two kingdoms."
-Mr. Hume calls them spies; their public appointment and legal
-credentials refute that representation; yet it cannot be a question
-that their intended business was to keep a sharp eye on his Majesty's
-proceedings, and to thwart any sinister design of his which they might
-be able to discover.
-
-[Sidenote: _Royal Visit to Scotland._]
-
-By the help of certain letters from Sidney Bere--afterwards Under
-Secretary of State, who formed one of the royal suite during this
-Scotch visit--we are able to follow the King into some of the religious
-and social scenes of the northern capital, which the courtier watched
-with much curiosity, and in his own fashion thus describes:--
-
-"The chaplains' places are supplied by Mr. Henderson and another,
-who say grace, but I cannot say read prayers, they being likewise
-extemporary, one in the beginning, then a chapter or two, after that
-another prayer, then a psalm, and so the benediction. This is in the
-Chamber of Presence at the usual hours; the sermons have been hitherto
-in the parish church, though the chapel here be fitted up, but after
-their fashion, without altar or organs."[211]
-
-"His Majesty is neither wanting in pains nor affection, going every
-morning to their Parliament, and this Sunday was in two of their
-churches, and daily takes the prayer and preachings according to
-their form, which gains much on the people. In a word, his Majesty is
-wholly disposed to settle both Church and State before he leaves this
-place."[212]
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, August.]
-
-"I will only add a relation of a feast, made by this town unto the
-King and the Lords in the Great Hall of the Parliament this day,
-August 30th. The King and the Prince Elector sat at one table, the
-Lords at another, but both in one room. The Duke of Richmond on one
-side, General Leslie over against, and next him the Marquis Hamilton,
-who gives him the place ordinarily, in respect, (I take it), that his
-commission of General is not yet delivered up. The mayor of the town,
-like a plain Dutch host, bestirred himself bravely, drank a health
-to the King, to the Queen, and the royal Children, and afterwards
-insisted with his Majesty to pledge; and so, in this Scotch familiar
-way, but with a great deal of familiarity, bid the King and the
-Lords welcome, with such hearty expressions as it served both for
-mirth and satisfaction. The glasses went liberally about, and the
-entertainment was great; indeed, over the whole town there was nothing
-but joy and revelling, like a day of jubilee; and this in token of
-the union, which, doubtless, is more firm than ever, by reason of the
-happy intervention of the unity of form of religion, at least for
-the present; and in the King's own practice, which wins much upon
-this people. Yesterday his Majesty was again at the great church
-at sermon, where the bishops were not spared, but put down in such
-language as would a year ago have been at the least a Star Chamber
-business, imputing still all that was amiss to ill counsellors, and so
-ingratiated his Majesty with his people, who indeed show a zeal and
-affection beyond all expression."[213]
-
-[Sidenote: _Royal Visit to Scotland._]
-
-While reading these extracts we cannot help noticing that the services
-in Edinburgh, attended by the Anglo-Catholic King, in 1641, were as
-different as possible from the ceremonial exhibitions arranged
-for Holyrood in 1633, by an Anglo-Catholic bishop, when the musical
-servants, with their chapel goods and paraphernalia were despatched
-by the Dreadnought for the Firth of Forth.[214] Experience since then
-had taught some little wisdom in such matters. Defiance having failed,
-conciliation was now attempted, and it would seem that the whole
-political bearing of Charles whilst in Scotland was in keeping with
-his social and religious conduct at that time. He ratified the Acts
-of June, 1640, by which Presbyterianism had become the established
-religion of the country; he bestowed fresh titles and dignities on
-certain noblemen who had opposed him at the council table, and arrayed
-themselves against him in the field; and he consented to the partition
-of ecclesiastical revenues amongst Presbyterian claimants, when, as
-it was said, "leading men, cities, and universities cast lots for the
-garments which had clothed the Episcopal establishment." Such was the
-conduct of the Sovereign on the whole, that he alarmed his friends and
-encouraged his foes; some on both sides concluding that he meant to
-establish Presbyterianism throughout his dominions; but of that idea,
-however, he took care to disabuse "his servants," assuring them of
-his remaining "constant to the discipline and doctrine of the Church
-of England established by Queen Elizabeth and his father," and his
-resolution "by the grace of God to die in the maintenance of it."[215]
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, September.]
-
-When the pacification had been effected, the English Parliament
-solemnly celebrated the event on the 7th of September, by attending
-divine worship.[216] But the two Houses did not agree in the manner of
-service. Bishop Williams, as Dean of Westminster, had prepared for the
-occasion a form of prayer. The Commons pronounced this to be beyond
-his power, and ordered the prayer not to be read in the liberties of
-Westminster or elsewhere. When the Lords met in the Abbey, the Commons
-went to Lincoln's Inn Chapel, where Burgess and Marshall preached, and
-prayers were offered _extempore_.
-
-[Sidenote: _Proceedings of the Commons._]
-
-The Commons, conscious of strength, perhaps a little over-estimating
-it, were not slow in pressing Church reforms, though they proceeded
-with some caution. At the end of August, they resolved that
-churchwardens should remove communion-tables from the east end of
-churches where they had stood altar-wise, and that they should take
-away the rails, level the chancel floors, and altogether place
-the buildings in the same state as they were in before the recent
-innovations. Perhaps excitement in our own day, respecting usages
-adopted at St. George's in the East, may serve as an illustration of
-the feeling awakened in the middle of the seventeenth century, by
-Anglican worship. Only it is to be remembered that instead of one St.
-George's in the East at that time, there were a hundred in different
-parts of the country. In villages and towns with High Church clergymen,
-and Low Church congregations, where semi-Popish arrangements had been
-adopted in the chancel, while rigid and ultra-Protestant Puritans sat
-in the nave, or absented themselves altogether--such feuds arose,
-that, to preserve the peace, as well as to check "innovations," the
-Lower House deemed it necessary to interfere. The opposition to
-Sunday afternoon lecturing, and the refusal of incumbents to admit
-lecturers into their pulpits, increased the strife; and, in reference
-to this, the Commons interfered by declaring it lawful for the people
-to set up a lecturer at their own charge.[217] Bishops inhibited such
-proceedings; but the Commons declared the inhibition void. As bishops
-were members of the Upper House, all this tended to make the breach
-between the two branches of the legislature wider than before.
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, September.]
-
-The question of worship could not be allowed to rest. "Innovations"
-were still discussed; it was resolved in the Lower House, on the 1st
-September, that scandalous pictures and images should be removed from
-sacred edifices, and candlesticks and basins from the Communion-table,
-that there should be no "corporal bowing" at the name of Jesus, and
-that the Lord's Day should be duly observed.[218] The Peers did not
-agree with the other House in all these proceedings; they were prepared
-to command, that no rails should be erected where none existed already;
-that chancels should be levelled if they had been raised within the
-last fifteen years; that all images of the Trinity should be abolished;
-and that any representation of the Virgin set up within twenty years
-should be pulled down. But the Lords declined to forbid bowing at the
-name of Jesus; and--omitting any direct reply to the message on the
-subject from the Lower House--they simply resolved to print and publish
-the order of the 16th of January, commanding that divine service
-should be performed according to Act of Parliament; that those who
-disturbed "wholesome order" should be punished; and that clergymen
-should introduce no ceremonies which might give offence.[219] The
-Commons were highly displeased at this, and immediately published their
-own resolution on their own authority, adding, that they hoped their
-proposed reformations might be perfected; and that, in the mean time,
-the people "should quietly attend the reformation intended," without
-any disturbance of God's worship and the public peace.[220]
-
-The Houses, on the 9th of September, adjourned their sittings for six
-weeks. When the conflicting orders of Parliament respecting worship
-came before the nation, the Anglicans adhered to the one issued by
-the Lords for preserving things as they were, the Puritans upheld
-the other published by the Commons in favour of reformation: party
-strife consequently increased, leading to fresh disturbances of the
-peace. Resistance to the order of the Commons burst out in St. Giles'
-Cripplegate, St. George's Southwark, and other parishes. There the
-High Church party defended the threatened communion-rails, as though
-they had been the outworks of a beleaguered citadel. On the other
-hand, where Puritanism had the ascendancy, violent opposition was made
-to the reading of the liturgy, service books were torn and surplices
-rent.[221]
-
-[Sidenote: _Reaction._]
-
-A considerable reaction in the state of public feeling began to appear
-in many quarters. There were persons who, having hailed with gratitude
-and delight the earlier measures of the Long Parliament, now felt
-disappointed at the results, and at the further turn which affairs
-were taking. Always, in great revolutions, a multitude of persons
-may be found in whose minds sanguine hope has been inspired by the
-inauguration of change; but, being moderate in their opinions and quiet
-in their habits, they are so terribly alarmed at popular excitement,
-and by the apprehension of impending extravagances of procedure, that
-they call on the drivers of the chariot of reform to pull up, as
-soon as ever the horses have galloped a few yards and a little dust
-begins to rise around the vehicle. Want of skill, reckless haste, even
-mischievous intentions, are sure to be imputed to those who hold the
-reins, and the conviction gains ground that speedily the coach will be
-overturned.
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, September.]
-
-So it happened in this instance. People who had cheered on Pym and
-his compatriots a few months before, were now becoming thoroughly
-frightened. Semi-Puritans, and other good folks, who wished to see
-matters mended very quietly, thought changes were going a great
-deal too far; also self-interest aided the reaction. Bishops had
-been assailed, but bishops as yet had neither been dethroned in the
-cathedral nor dismissed from the Upper House. They were provoked
-without being deprived of power, irritated without being divested of
-influence. They still lived in palaces, and had the establishments of
-noblemen, and at the same time they retained the means of attaching to
-them such of the clergy as waited for preferment. Persons of the latter
-description naturally dreaded the impoverishment of the prelates, and
-deprecated taking away the rewards of learning and piety.
-
-They did what they could to make Parliament odious. Many, too, were
-"daily poisoned by the discourses of the friends, kindred, and
-retainers to so many great delinquents, as must needs fear such a
-Parliament." This is stated by a candid contemporary, Thomas May,
-secretary to the Parliament, who dwells at large upon the reaction at
-this period, and points out its causes. Besides those now mentioned,
-he adds: "daily reports of ridiculous conventicles, and preachings
-made by tradesmen and illiterate people of the lowest rank, to the
-scandal and offence of many, which some in a merry way would put off,
-considering the precedent times, that these tradesmen did but take up
-that which prelates and the great doctors had let fall,--preaching the
-Gospel; that it was but a reciprocal invasion of each other's calling,
-that chandlers, salters, weavers, and such like, preached, when the
-archbishop himself, instead of preaching, was daily busied in projects
-about leather, salt, soap, and such commodities as belonged to those
-tradesmen."
-
-[Sidenote: _Reaction._]
-
-He then proceeds: "but I remember within the compass of a year after,
-(when this civil war began to break out over all the kingdom, and men
-in all companies began to vent their opinions in an argumentative
-way, either opposing or defending the Parliament cause, and
-treatises were printed on both sides,) many gentlemen who forsook
-the Parliament were very bitter against it for the proceedings in
-religion, in countenancing, or not suppressing, the rudeness of people
-in churches--acting those things which seemed to be against the
-discipline of the English Church, and might introduce all kinds of
-sects and schisms. Neither did those of the Parliament side agree in
-opinions concerning that point; some said it was wisely done of the
-Parliament not to proceed against any such persons for fear of losing
-a considerable party; others thought and said, that by so doing, they
-would lose a far more considerable party of gentlemen than could be
-gained of the other sort. They also affirmed, that laws and liberties
-having been so much violated by the King, if the Parliament had not so
-far drawn religion also into their cause, it might have sped better;
-for the Parliament frequently at that time, in all their expressions,
-whensoever they charged the corrupt statesmen of injustice and tyranny,
-would put Popery, or a suspicion of it, into the first place against
-them."[222]
-
-This reaction should be kept in mind, as it will serve to explain some
-things which followed.
-
-
-
-
- [Illustration]
-
- CHAPTER VII.
-
-
-[Sidenote: _Debates by the Commons._]
-
-After the Commons had resumed their sittings on the 20th of October,
-the difference which had arisen amongst the Puritan members became
-very apparent. The very next day, Sir Edward Dering questioned the
-legality of the recent order of the House respecting Divine worship;
-and the day after that, he indicated a still wider divergence from
-the policy of his former political friends. Upon a new bill being
-then introduced for excluding Bishops from Parliament--a bill which
-was, in fact, a reproduction of the old measure which the Lords had
-rejected--the Commons resolved to have a conference with the Upper
-House, respecting the thirteen accused prelates, and to request that
-the other occupants of the episcopal bench should be prevented from
-voting on this particular question, which so vitally affected their
-own personal interests. All this so alarmed the member for Kent that
-he hastily rose, and delivered a speech indicative of a still more
-decided veering toward the conservative point of the compass; for
-he went so far as to say that he did not conceive the House to be
-competent and fit to pronounce upon questions of Divinity. It seemed
-to him, he remarked, a thing unheard of, that soldiers, lawyers, and
-merchants should decide points which properly belonged to theologians.
-Laymen, he considered, should maintain only those doctrines which
-were authorized and established, and should leave the exposition and
-advocacy of what was new to a regularly constituted ecclesiastical
-assembly, in short, "a synod of Divines chosen by Divines." Whether or
-not he was animated in his retrograde course by cheers which came from
-the conservative benches, Sir Edward the following day bewailed the
-miseries of the Church between "Papism" on the one hand, and "Brownism"
-on the other; and instead of dwelling, as he had been wont to do, on
-"Puritan sufferings," his sympathies were now entirely bestowed on the
-opposite party. He related a story of two clergymen who had preached
-thousands of excellent sermons, but who now, like other deserving men,
-saw their infected sheep, after long pastoral vigilance, straggling
-from the fold, and mingling with the sects. Government, he complained,
-had begun to permit a loose liberty of religion; and, amidst varieties
-of opinion, and the perils of unity, what, he asked, could be thought
-of but a council--"a free, learned, grave, religious synod?"[223] Such
-a style of address seems strangely at variance with the speaker's
-earlier speeches in this very Parliament, and also with proceedings
-which the House had adopted in accordance with his own impetuous
-appeals. The course which he now pursued was in decided opposition to
-his conduct when he spoke from the gallery of the House on behalf of
-the bill for the abolition of Episcopacy; and subsequent proceedings by
-this gentleman, in the same new direction, are yet to come under our
-notice. But, after all, the lapse of four months had not essentially
-altered his character. He was in October only the same versatile and
-impetuous, but well-meaning person, which he had shewn himself to be in
-May.
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, September.]
-
-Another member, who expressed his alarm at the distractions of the
-times, was Mr. Smith, of the Middle Temple. While denouncing the "Book
-of Sports" and the persecutions inflicted by the Anglican party, he
-deplored existing differences of religious opinion, and besought his
-countrymen to worship God with one mind, and not go every one a way
-by himself. In the stilted euphuism of the day, he lamented that
-uncertainty staggers the unresolved soul, and leads it into such a
-labyrinth, that, not knowing where to fix for fear of erring, it
-adheres to nothing, and so dies ere it performs that for which it was
-made to live. Uniformity in religious worship, he proceeded to say, is
-that which pleaseth God, and, if we will thus serve Him, we may expect
-His protection; and then, passing over to the constitutional question,
-the orator declared both prerogative and liberty to be necessary, and
-that like the sun and moon they gave a lustre to the nation, so long
-as they walked at proper distances. But, he added, when one ventures
-into the other's orbit, like planets in conjunction, they then occasion
-a deep eclipse. "What shall be the compass, then, by which these two
-must steer? Why, nothing but the same by which they subsist--the law,
-which if it might run in the free current of its purity, without being
-poisoned by the venomous spirits of ill-affected dispositions, would
-so fix the King to his crown that it would make him stand like a
-star in the firmament, for the neighbour world to behold and tremble
-at."[224] Smith did not plunge into that ecclesiastical reaction which
-had carried Dering completely away; but he contended for some measure
-of uniformity and for the suppression of increasing sects, whilst in
-political matters he recommended a course of moderation.
-
-[Sidenote: _Debates by the Commons._]
-
-Another individual--far different from this pedantic adviser, and
-incapable of the tergiversations of the representative for Kent, though
-he is not to be confounded with reckless revolutionists--was still
-inflexibly pushing forward those ecclesiastical and political reforms
-which he had inaugurated by the blow he struck at Strafford, the patron
-and upholder of arbitrary power. Pym supported the new bill against
-Bishops, and managed the conference respecting the impeachment of
-the obnoxious thirteen prelates, and the prevention of the remaining
-occupants of the Bench from voting upon this question. He asked whether
-those who had made the hateful canons, who had endeavoured to deprive
-the subject of his liberties, and who were accused of sedition, were
-fit to be continued as legislators? St. John, the Solicitor General,
-and "dark-lantern man," supported Pym, and supplied an erudite legal
-argument to shew that bishops did not sit in the Upper House as
-representatives of the clergy; and that their right of peerage differed
-from the claim of temporal lords--they having no vote in judgments
-touching life and death, and their consent not being essential to the
-integrity of an Act of Parliament.[225]
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, October.]
-
-Change and reaction went on. There had long been much talk about some
-"Grand Remonstrance," and a committee had been appointed as soon
-as Parliament assembled, to draw up such a document. In April the
-committee had been directed to collect a list of grievances, and on
-the 22nd of November the long delayed paper came before the House,
-to be "briskly debated." This remarkable production deals largely
-with ecclesiastical affairs; and the intimate connection between the
-religion and the politics of the times is apparent throughout its
-various contents. In a series of numbered propositions, amounting
-altogether to 206, the history of arbitrary government is carefully
-traced from the beginning of Charles' reign; religious grievances are
-made distinct and prominent; complaints appear of Papists, bishops,
-and courtiers, who had aimed at suppressing the purity and power of
-religion, and who had cherished Arminian sentiments; prelates and
-the rest of the clergy are depicted as triumphing in the degradation
-of painful and learned ministers; and the High Commission Court is
-compared to the Romish Inquisition. The vexatiousness of episcopal
-tribunals shares in the general censure, and the exile and depression
-of Puritans are noticed with the deepest sorrow;--preaching up the
-prerogative, sympathy with Papists, superstitious innovations, the late
-canons, the toleration of Papists, and the permission of a Papal nuncio
-at court, are all deplored as very great evils, whilst an opinion is
-expressed that there is little hope of amendment so long as Bishops
-and recusant Lords remain numerous, and continue to misrepresent the
-designs of the patriots.[226]
-
-[Sidenote: _Debates by the Commons._]
-
-Yet it is affirmed that there exists no intention of loosing the golden
-reins of discipline, and of leaving to private persons and particular
-congregations the right to take up what Divine service they pleased.
-Horror respecting a general toleration is plainly confessed, and
-the remonstrants advocate Conformity "to that order which the laws
-enjoin according to the Word of God," even while they are desirous
-of unburdening the conscience from superstitious ceremonies and are
-taking away the monuments of idolatry. A general synod is suggested as
-the remedy for ecclesiastical evils, and care is advised to be taken
-for the advancement of learning, and the preaching of the Gospel. The
-two Universities are referred to as fountains of knowledge which should
-be made clear and pure.
-
-The sting of the Remonstrance is found in its head, not in its tail. In
-the petition prefixed, the King is asked to concur with his subjects
-in depriving the bishops of their votes in Parliament, in abridging
-their power over the clergy and people, in staying the oppression of
-religion, in uniting loyal Protestants together against disaffected
-Papists, and in removing unnecessary ceremonies, which were a burden
-to weak and scrupulous consciences. Such requests were opposed to
-his Majesty's ideas of the constitution of the Church, though the
-remonstrants were prepared to rebut the charge of there being anything
-whatever revolutionary in their proposals and requests.
-
-Looking at the current of Parliamentary debates for the last twelve
-months, the Remonstrance may be regarded as presenting to us the
-sentiments of the patriotic party. Sir Edward Dering, in May,
-had gone beyond this remonstrance, far beyond it; but Sir Edward
-Dering, in November, though the same character that he ever was,
-had become another kind of politician. The same remarks will apply
-to others. He now disputed some of the statements in this famous
-political instrument, vindicated several of the accused bishops and
-clergy, protested against the spoliation of ecclesiastical estates,
-and intimated his apprehension of the perilous consequences which
-would follow the changes now set on foot. Other members pronounced
-the measure to be unnecessary and unreasonable, because several of
-the grievances now complained of were already redressed; and they
-declared that the King, after his concessions, ought not on his return
-from Scotland to be received by his loyal subjects with ungrateful
-reproaches.
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, November.]
-
-More was lying underneath the Remonstrance than appeared upon the
-surface. Looking at the character of the King, his obvious want of
-sincerity, and his manifest intention to recover what he had lost of
-arbitrary power whenever he should have the opportunity; considering
-also the reinvigorated spirit of the party opposed to constitutional
-reforms; further, taking into account the reaction going on, which
-had withdrawn from the remonstrants certain active confederates;
-and pondering, too, the unsettled and disturbed condition of the
-country at large--the authors of this important measure foresaw that
-matters could not rest where they were, and that more must be done,
-or everything would be lost. Breaches made in the Constitution by its
-enemies, rendered extraordinary efforts necessary for the preservation
-of popular freedom. Calculating, therefore, on further and more serious
-struggles, the advanced party determined to make their instrument
-in question a manifesto, to which they might afterwards appeal in
-self-justification when that day of battle should come, which appeared
-to them then, both so likely and so near. This must be remembered, or
-the Remonstrance will not be understood.
-
-[Sidenote: _Debates by the Commons._]
-
-Regarded by its supporters as their palladium, it was strenuously
-opposed by courtiers and reactionists. The debate upon the measure,
-which took place on Monday, November the 22nd, lasted beyond midnight.
-After lights had been brought in, the members--amidst the gloom of St.
-Stephen's chapel and the glimmer of a few candles--continued hotly
-to dispute respecting this great question, with looks of sternest
-resolution; very distinct to us even now, although upon the darkness
-made visible, there also rest the shadows of two centuries and a
-half. Puritans and High Churchmen that night uttered sharp words
-against each other, as they stood face to face and foot to foot in
-conflict. A division arose on the clause for reducing the power of
-Bishops, when 161 voted for it and 147 against it. On the grand
-division soon afterwards, respecting the Remonstrance itself, 159
-voted that it should pass, 148 took the opposite side. This gave but a
-scant majority. Immediately on the announcement of the result, there
-arose a discussion as to the printing of the document--a discussion
-which became more violent than the former ones.[227] The printing of
-the Remonstrance at once, prior to its being adopted by the Upper
-House, and prior to its being presented to the Sovereign, could not
-but be regarded as a step indicative of the elements of the English
-Constitution being thrown into a state of lamentable derangement. Hyde
-declared that he was sure the printing of it would be mischievous, and
-also unlawful: and then proceeded to assert for himself the right of
-protest, which, in a member of the Lower House, was an act as irregular
-as even the printing of the Remonstrance could be. Up started Jeffrey
-Palmer, "a man of great reputation," and likewise claimed that he
-might protest "Protest, protest," rung in wrathful tones from other
-lips; and some members, in the storm of their excitement, were on the
-point of bringing dishonour upon themselves and upon the House. "We had
-catched at each other's locks," says Sir Philip Warwick, "and sheathed
-our swords in each other's bowels, had not the sagacity and calmness of
-Mr. Hampden, by a short speech, prevented it, and led us to defer our
-angry debate until next morning."[228]
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, November.]
-
-In corroboration of this general statement, and for the filling up of
-this graphic outline, happily we can turn to the journal of D'Ewes, the
-Puritan, who, like Warwick, was present, but who took the other side in
-the controversy. In answer to a question, as to who claimed the right
-of protest, there were loud cries of "All! All!!" This reporter, who
-took part with the patriots, goes on to say: "And some waved their hats
-over their heads, and others took their swords in their scabbards out
-of their belts, and held them by the pummels in their hands, setting
-the lower part on the ground, so as if God had not prevented it, there
-was very great danger that mischief might have been done. All those
-who cried, 'All! all!' and did the other particulars, were of the
-number of those that were against the Remonstrance."[229] Whether or
-not D'Ewes was right in attributing these acts of warlike defiance
-_exclusively_ to his opponents--in the faint rays of the candle-light
-he could not have seen very distinctly all which was going on--he
-certainly substantiates the account given by Warwick of extensive
-violent confusion, a Parliamentary tempest in short, calmed by the
-wisdom and moderation of John Hampden. Before the Commons broke up,
-on that memorable night, it was resolved by 124 against 101, that the
-declaration should "not be printed without the particular order of the
-House," a conclusion which left the publication of the Remonstrance
-open for the present.
-
-[Sidenote: _Debates by the Commons._]
-
-"The chimes of St. Margaret's were striking two in the morning," as
-Oliver Cromwell came down stairs, and, according to rumour, recorded by
-Clarendon, met Lord Falkland, and whispered in his ear, "that if the
-Remonstrance had been rejected, he would have sold all he had the next
-morning, and never have seen England more; and he knew there were many
-other honest men of the same resolution."[230]
-
-
-
-
- [Illustration]
-
- CHAPTER VIII.
-
-
-Charles returned from the North improved in spirits, fancying he
-had made a favourable impression upon his Scottish subjects, and
-pondering sanguine schemes for crushing the power of Pym, and of all
-the patriots. The reaction towards the close of the summer of 1641,
-which we have already described, was decidedly in his favour--and there
-seemed room to expect that Parliament, after the course which the King
-now seemed disposed to pursue, might, in its eagerness for victory,
-place itself altogether in a false position.
-
-During his stay in Edinburgh, he had been anxious to fill up
-certain vacant bishoprics, but delayed doing so at the request of
-Parliament. Soon after his return, he made Williams,--then Bishop of
-Lincoln,--Archbishop of York; and appointed Dr. Winniffe to succeed
-Williams. Dr. Duppa was translated from Chichester to Salisbury; King,
-Dean of Rochester, was promoted to Chichester; Hall had the See of
-Norwich presented to him in the room of Exeter; where he was followed
-by Brownrigg, who had been Master of Catherine Hall, Cambridge; Skinner
-went from Bristol to Oxford; Westfield had the former See conferred on
-him, and Ussher received the Bishopric of Carlisle _in commendam_. A
-conciliatory temper appeared in the episcopal arrangements thus made
-by His Majesty, inasmuch as all the prelates whom he now appointed and
-advanced were popular men, and were well esteemed by the Puritan party.
-
-[Sidenote: _The King's Reception._]
-
-Charles, on his arrival in town on the 25th of November, received a
-welcome which vied in splendour with the renowned receptions given to
-our Edwards and Henries. The Lord Mayor and Aldermen in their robes;
-citizens in velvet coats; and noblemen richly apparelled, with a goodly
-array of trumpeters, pursuivants, equerries, and sheriffs' men, wearing
-scarlet coats, and silver-laced hats crowned with feathers, marched
-to meet the Royal party at Moorgate, whence they proceeded--the King
-on horseback, the Queen in her richly embroidered coach,--by way of
-Bishopsgate, Cornhill, and Cheapside, to Guildhall; the streets being
-lined by the livery companies, and adorned with banners, ensigns, and
-pendants of arms. The conduits in Cheapside ran with claret, and along
-the line of procession the people shouted "God bless, and long live
-King Charles, and Queen Mary."[231] A grand banquet followed on the
-hustings of the Old City Hall; the floor being covered with Turkey
-carpets, and the walls hung with rich tapestry. Their majesties sat
-in chairs of state, under a grand canopy, and the royal table was
-covered with "all sorts of fish, fowl, and flesh, to the number of
-120 dishes, of the choicest kinds," with "sweetmeats and confections,
-wet and dry." After a short repose, at about four o'clock, the Royal
-party advanced towards Whitehall; and as the evening shadows fell upon
-the spectacle, the footmen exchanged their truncheons for flambeaux,
-"which gave so great a light, as that the night seemed to be turned
-into day." Trumpets, bands of music, and the acclamations of the
-people,--according to the chroniclers--made the streets ring again.[232]
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, November.]
-
-This exhibition so artistically contrived, which had been a subject
-of much correspondence with the King, as well as of deliberation on
-the part of the citizens, had a no less religious than political
-significancy. A year before, Presbyterians and Sectaries had made
-themselves conspicuous by "Root and Branch petitions," and since then,
-their activity had not declined, or their numbers diminished. On the
-contrary, the sectaries had increased, and had given alarming signs of
-zeal, in purifying certain Churches from the abominations of idolatry,
-and in organizing ecclesiastical societies of their own quite apart
-from the establishment.
-
-In this state of things, the conservative portion of the corporation,
-and the citizens who sympathized with them, had, for the purpose of a
-party demonstration, elected a Lord Mayor who was a decided Royalist
-and a High Churchman. "The factious persons," remarks Sir Edward
-Nicholas, writing on this subject to the King, "were making a noise,
-and would not proceed to the election, when the sheriff proposed
-Alderman Gourney (who I hear is very well-affected and stout) and
-carried it; and the schismatics who cried 'no election,' were silenced
-with hisses, and thereupon the Sheriff dismissed the Court."[233] This
-victory equally gratified Sir Edward and his master, and placed at
-the head of the costly civic reception, a gentleman in whom the King
-had the fullest confidence. More indeed was intended, both of loyal
-and religious demonstration, by the party who now took the lead in
-the City, than they were able to accomplish. A present of money and
-an address in favour of Episcopacy had been proposed, but without
-success.[234] Notwithstanding, the King took care, in answer to the
-address of the recorder and corporation--as they stood by Moorgate,
-bare-headed,--to assure them of his determination, at the hazard of
-his life and of all that was dear to him, to maintain and protect the
-Protestant religion, as it had been established by his two famous
-predecessors, Queen Elizabeth and his father King James.
-
-[Sidenote: _The King's Reception._]
-
-Some significancy is to be attached to a little display at the south
-door of St. Paul's Cathedral, where "the quire in their surplices,
-with sackbuts, and cornets, sung an anthem of praise to God, with
-prayers for their Majesties' long lives, that his Majesty was extremely
-pleased with it, and gave them very particular thanks."[235] For
-unobjectionable as this kind of music might now-a-days appear even
-to a staunch nonconformist, it had a look, at that period, of stern,
-jealous, and watchful controversy, very obvious and very annoying to
-presbyterians and "sectaries;" so that, altogether, this City affair
-became a decided success for the King and the Church party, and as
-such, Royalists and Anglicans greatly rejoiced in it.
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, December.]
-
-"Londoners are a set of disaffected schismatics, bent upon upsetting
-the godly order of things which they received from their fathers,"
-was the opinion of many a country knight and yeoman, as he turned his
-attention to the metropolis, and thought of the current stories of the
-day. "No," said one, who sympathized with the Court, in a letter he
-wrote to a friend just at that time, "you much mistake, if you think
-that those insolent and seditious meetings of sectaries, and others
-ill affected, who have lately been at the Parliament House, to cry for
-justice against the delinquent bishops, are the representative body of
-the city. They are not. The representative body of the city is the Lord
-Mayor, Aldermen, and Common Council, who gave the entertainment to the
-King, and will stick to him to live and die in his service. As for the
-rest, when the House of Commons please to give laws to suppress them,
-we shall quickly see an end of these distractions both in Church and
-Commonwealth, and, therefore, I pray give no ill interpretation to our
-actions."[236] These words show what capital the clique, to which the
-writer belonged, was determined to make out of the grand pageant which
-had just come off with so much _éclat_.
-
-The King himself, who was disposed to construe the conduct of the
-citizens as having a political and ecclesiastical signification, had
-on the occasion of his entry, knighted the Lord Mayor and Recorder,
-doubtless with a feeling which made it more than a formal ceremony. He
-had also conferred a like honour, a few days afterwards, at Hampton
-Court, upon certain Aldermen, who had come to thank him for accepting
-their entertainment.
-
-The reception of these civic dignitaries in the old palace of Cardinal
-Wolsey occurred on the 3rd of December.[237] A very different kind of
-audience had been held within the same walls two days before.
-
-[Sidenote: _The Remonstrance._]
-
-A committee for presenting the Remonstrance had been appointed by the
-Commons, composed of persons not likely to be offensive to the King,
-including Sir Edward Dering, who, in spite of his opposition to the
-measure, was requested to read and present the document; but, when the
-time came, he "being out of the way," Sir Ralph Hopton took his place.
-The deputation started in the afternoon, and their object being well
-understood by the populace, they would attract much attention, as they
-travelled along under leafless trees, and a wintry sky, and drew up at
-last before the old gates at Hampton Court. After they had waited a
-quarter of an hour in the anteroom, the King sent a gentleman to call
-them to his presence, with an order that no one besides the deputation
-should be admitted. He received his "faithful Commons" with some
-anxiety, but in addition to his other encouragements, at that moment
-there remained the halo thrown round him by the late entry; and it
-would not be forgotten by the monarch as the members knelt before him,
-that the Remonstrance which they brought--(as obnoxious to royalty as
-it was dear to the patriots)--had been after all carried only by a
-scant majority. Sir Ralph Hopton, who headed the deputation, commenced
-reading the document on his bended knees, when his Majesty commanded
-all the members to rise: and as soon as that passage was reached, which
-alluded to the desire of the malignants to change the religion of the
-country, the King exclaimed, "The devil take him, whomsoever he be,
-that had a design to change religion." Upon reference to the disposal
-of the estates of the Irish rebels, he added, "We must not dispose of
-the bear's skin till he be dead." His Majesty proceeding to put some
-questions, the wary members replied, "We had no commission to speak any
-thing concerning this business." "Doth the House intend to publish this
-declaration?" Charles afterwards asked--thus touching the core of the
-matter. "We can give no answer," persisted the reticent diplomatists.
-"Well then," he rejoined, "I suppose you do not now expect an answer
-to so long a petition." A very reasonable remark, looking at the two
-hundred and more clauses which the petition contained.[238] When the
-answer did come, it included this carefully-worded paragraph:--
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, December.]
-
-"Unto that clause which concerneth corruptions (as you style them) in
-religion, in Church government, and in discipline, and the removing of
-such unnecessary ceremonies as weak consciences might check, that for
-any illegal innovations, which may have crept in, we shall willingly
-concur in the removal of them. That if our Parliament shall advise us
-to call a national synod, which may duly examine such ceremonies as
-give just cause of offence to any, we shall take it into consideration,
-and apply ourself to give due satisfaction therein, but we are very
-sorry to hear in such general terms, corruption in religion objected,
-since we are persuaded in our conscience, that no church can be found
-upon the earth that professeth the true religion with more purity of
-doctrine than the Church of England doth; nor where the government and
-discipline are jointly more beautified, and free from superstition,
-than as they are here established by law; which by the grace of God, we
-will with constancy maintain (while we live) in their purity and glory,
-not only against all invasions of popery, but also from the irreverence
-of those many schismatics and separatists, wherewith of late this
-kingdom and this city abound, to the great dishonour and hazard both of
-Church and State, for the suppression of whom we require your timely
-aid and active assistance."[239]
-
-[Sidenote: _Arrest of the Five Members._]
-
-After the Remonstrance had been presented, affairs remained hopeful to
-the Royal eye; and as the Commons had issued their ordinance touching
-religious worship, the King on the 10th of December published one of
-his own, enjoining strict conformity to the form of divine service as
-by law established. But whatever advantages he might possess at the
-close of 1641, all were forfeited by the monstrously rash attempt to
-arrest the five members at the beginning of 1642. That fatal act rung
-the death-knell of his hopes throughout the country, startling at
-once friends and foes. A letter by Captain Robert Slingsby to Admiral
-Pennington gives a Royalist version of the affair, which happened on
-the 4th of January.
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, December.]
-
-"All parts of the court being thronged with gentlemen and officers
-of the army, in the afternoon the King went with them all, his own
-guard and the pensioners, most of the gentlemen armed with swords and
-pistols. When we came into Westminster Hall, which was thronged with
-the number, the King commanded us all to stay there; and himself, with
-a very small train, went into the House of Commons, where never king
-was (as they say), but once, King Henry VIII." The writer, who remained
-in the lobby, then proceeds to report what occurred inside the House;
-depending for his information, it appears, on some member, from whose
-lips he had eagerly caught up the following account:--"He came very
-unexpectedly; and at first coming in commanded the Speaker to come
-out of his chair, and sat down in it himself, asking divers times,
-whether those traitors were there, but had no answer; but at last an
-excuse, that by the orders of the House, they might not speak when
-their Speaker was out of his chair. The King then asked the Speaker,
-who excused himself, that he might not speak but what the House gave
-order to him to say, whereupon the King replied, 'it was no matter, for
-he knew them all if he saw them.' And after he had viewed them all,
-he made a speech to them very majestically, declaring his resolution
-to have them, though they were then absent; promising not to infringe
-any of their liberties of Parliament, but commanding them to send the
-traitors to him, if they came there again. And after his coming out,
-he gave orders to the Serjeant-at-arms to find them out and attach
-them. Before the King's coming, the House were very high; and (as I
-was informed), sent to the city for four thousand men to be presently
-sent down to them for their guard: but none came, all the city being
-terribly amazed with that unexpected charge of those persons; shops all
-shut, many of which do still continue so. They likewise sent to the
-trained bands in the Court of Guard, before Whitehall, to command them
-to disband, but they stayed still."
-
-[Sidenote: _Arrest of the Five Members._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, December.]
-
-The same correspondent then relates what he had himself witnessed in
-London. "Yesterday it was my fortune, being in a coach, to meet the
-King with a small train going into the City; whereupon I followed him
-to Guildhall, where the Mayor, all the Aldermen, and Common Council
-were met. The King made a speech to them, declaring his intention to
-join with the Parliament in extirpation of popery and all schisms and
-sectaries; of redressing of all grievances of the subject, and his
-care to preserve the privileges of the Parliament: but to question
-these traitors, the reason of his guards for securing himself, the
-Parliament, and them from those late tumults, and something of the
-Irish; and at last had some familiar discourse to the Aldermen, and
-invited himself to dinner to the Sheriff. After a little pause a cry
-was set up amongst the Common Council, 'Parliament, privileges of
-Parliament;' and presently another, 'God bless the King'--these two
-continued both at once a good while. I know not which was louder.
-After some knocking for silence, the King commanded one to speak, if
-they had anything to say; one said, 'It is the vote of this Court
-that your Majesty hear the advice of your Parliament'--but presently
-another answered--'It is not the vote of this Court, it is your own
-vote.' The King replied, 'Who is it that says, I do not take the
-advice of my Parliament? I do take their advice, and will; but I must
-distinguish between the Parliament and some traitors in it;' and those
-he would bring to legal trial. Another bold fellow, in the lowest rank,
-stood up upon a form, and cried, 'The privileges of Parliament;' and
-another cried out, 'Observe the man, apprehend him.' The King mildly
-replied, 'I have, and will observe all privileges of Parliament, but no
-privileges can prevent a traitor from a legal trial'--and so departed.
-In the outer hall were a multitude of the ruder people, who, as the
-King went out, set up a great cry, 'The privileges of Parliament.' At
-the King's coming home, there was a mean fellow came into the privy
-chamber, who had a paper sealed up, which he would needs deliver to
-the King himself--with his much importunity he was urged to be mad or
-drunk, but he denied both. The gentleman usher took the paper from him
-and carried it to the King, desiring some gentleman there to keep the
-man. He was presently sent for in, and is kept a prisoner, but I know
-not where."[240] The arrest, which with its accompanying circumstances
-is vividly brought before us in this letter by Slingsby, was a fatal
-crisis in the history of Charles I. He thought by one stroke of policy
-to crush his enemies, but the avenging deities, shod in felt, were
-turning round on the infatuated prince, who could not perceive his own
-danger, but was in a fool's paradise, dreaming of restored absolutism.
-The liberties of the country having now become more obviously, perhaps
-more completely, than before, imperilled by the sovereign's misconduct,
-the national indignation was immediately aroused; and whatever Anglican
-and Royalist reaction might have set in from Michaelmas to Christmas,
-the tide turned, and furiously rushed in the opposite direction after
-New Year's Day. Such a defiance of the Constitution by the King, such a
-manifestation of despotism, after promising to rule according to law,
-left no doubt as to his character, his principles, and his motives.
-
-[Sidenote: _Westminster Riots._]
-
-The arrest was interpreted as an assault upon the interests of
-Puritanism, no less than upon the liberties of the nation; because the
-one cause had become identified with the other, and the friends of
-reformation in the Established Church, and the separatists who stood
-outside of it, saw that their hopes would be entirely cut off if the
-King were permitted to re-establish his despotic rule, or if he were
-allowed to perpetrate with impunity such a political crime as the
-arrest involved.
-
-Other circumstances had helped forward the political reaction in favour
-of the Puritan cause. Not only had the popular dislike to Bishops
-continued in London, Southwark, and Lambeth, in spite of all which
-might appear to the contrary in the civic doings on the King's return,
-but the revived spirit of ecclesiastical conservation roused afresh
-the spirit of ecclesiastical revolution. After petitions had flowed
-in from different parts of the country in favour of Episcopacy, the
-Aldermen,[241] Common Council, and other inhabitants of London, went
-down to Westminster in sixty coaches, carrying a counter petition for
-removing prelates and popish peers from their seats in Parliament.
-Crowds also assembled on Blackheath for a similar purpose; and the
-Puritan clergy of London again addressed the House, for taking
-away whatever should appear to be the cause of those grievances
-which remained in existence.[242] The Prayer Book--said these
-ministers--continued to be vexatiously enforced, and what remedy, asked
-they, for this and other evils could there be but the debate of a free
-synod, and till that was held some relaxation on matters of ceremony?
-The London apprentices at such a time could not be quiet, and impelled
-by their own zeal, and perhaps also guided by their masters' commands,
-they in large numbers put their hands to a farther "Root and Branch"
-petition.
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, December.]
-
-Every day the lobbies of the Houses were thronged by people eagerly
-watching the fate of the documents which expressed their opinions.
-Every day the area of Westminster Hall echoed with the tramp of
-jostling crowds and the loud buzz of angry talk touching Church and
-Bishops. Episcopalians came face to face with Puritans and Separatists.
-Staid and sober citizens anxious for reform, were elbowed by rollicking
-country squires, who wished to see things restored to the state in
-which they had been in the days of Lord Strafford. Cavaliers, full of
-pride and state, crossed the path of patriots whom they denounced as
-the enemies of their country. Soldiers, with swords by their side,
-marched up and down amidst the rabble, who carried staves or clubs.
-Roistering apprentices, with idlers and vagabonds of all descriptions,
-putting on a semblance of religious zeal, shouted at the top of their
-voice favourite watchwords as they went along, and delighted in all
-sorts of mischief.[243]
-
-[Sidenote: _Westminster Riots._]
-
-December the 27th, being the Monday after Christmas Day, Colonel
-Lunsford, just appointed Lieutenant of the Tower--much to the
-disquietude of the Londoners, who denounced him as a Papist, and as
-being on that account utterly unfit for such a trust--came into the
-Hall; when some of the citizens beginning to abuse him, he and his
-companions drew their swords. The same day, Archbishop Williams walked
-towards the House of Peers with the Earl of Dover, when an apprentice
-lad, seeing his Grace, vociferated the popular cry of "No Bishop."
-This so aroused the Welshman's ire, that, leaving his noble friend,
-he rushed toward the vulgar urchin, and laid hands on him. This
-unbecoming act,--for "a Bishop should be no striker,"--made the wrath
-of the populace boil up afresh; and hemming in the prelate so that
-he could not stir, they continued shouting in his ears, "No Bishop,"
-"No Bishop:" until they proceeded to an act of violence, and tore his
-gown "as he passed from the stairhead into the entry that leads to
-the Lords' House."[244] It is also stated that he was beaten by the
-prentices. A blustering "reformado," named David Hide, mingled in
-the fray, and looking savagely on the apprentices with their cropped
-hair, declared that he would cut the throats of "those round-headed
-dogs that bawled against bishops."[245] "Round-headed,"--the words so
-aptly fitted to the London lads--took with the Cavalier gentlemen;
-they forthwith applied it to the whole Puritan party, and so David
-Hide's impromptu became Court slang, and rose into the dignity of a
-world-known appellation.
-
-The next day, certain people in the Abbey, who said that they were
-tarrying there a little while for some friends, who had just brought up
-a petition, but who were charged with coming to commit depredations
-in the sacred edifice, were attacked by the retainers of Archbishop
-Williams--who continued Dean of Westminster--and a sort of siege and
-assault followed. Amidst the riot and uproar several persons were
-hurt, and a stone thrown from the battlements[246] fatally injured Sir
-Richard Wiseman, who appeared conspicuous amongst the anti-episcopal
-citizens.
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, December.]
-
-[Sidenote: _Westminster Riots._]
-
-On Wednesday, the 29th, between three and four o'clock in the
-afternoon, when "the scum of the people[247]" had floated down to
-Westminster, there occurred a disturbance which, in a confused way,
-is apparent in the records of the period, but which becomes more
-luminous when examined in the light of the depositions of witnesses,
-still preserved amongst the State papers.[248] The tumult seems to
-have commenced by Whitehall Gate. Some military gentlemen were walking
-"within the rails," in the direction of Charing Cross. The difficulty
-is to make out who commenced the quarrel. One deponent says, the
-apprentices called the "red coats a knot of Papists," meaning, of
-course, the Royalist officers. Another declared, the gentlemen within
-the rails cried, "If they were the soldiers they would charge the mob
-with pikes and shoot them." Thereupon--so it was affirmed--the people
-replied, "You had best do it, red coats," and threw at them clots of
-dry dust. Then the cavalier swordsmen leaped over the rails, and, sword
-in hand, dashed into the midst of the mob. Other gentlemen came out
-of the Court gate and joined their friends; upon which the parties
-fell to, pell-mell. One witness says, that he saw but one sword drawn
-on the citizens' side, but he saw many of the citizens wounded by
-the gentlemen. Another affirms, that one of the gentlemen received a
-wound in the forehead. It is manifest that the disturbance was made
-the very most of by each party, so as to reflect discredit upon the
-opposite side: for in a letter written the next morning, the writer,
-after recording how apprentices were wounded, and how they lost
-their hats and cloaks, gravely states, "It is feared they will be at
-Whitehall this day to the number of _ten thousand_." The City was in
-an uproar on account of the outrage on the apprentices, and the Court
-gentry were full of indignation at the abuse which the apprentices
-had heaped on the Bishops. The High Church Lord Mayor and Sheriffs,
-who rode about all night to preserve peace, had the City gates shut,
-the watch set, and the trained-bands called out. By those of a
-different class in politics this was thought quite unnecessary; as they
-implicitly believed that the citizens would commit no act of violence
-if the courtiers would but keep their swords in their scabbards. The
-majority of the Commons, too, were jealous of interfering with those
-whom they hailed as friends to reform; while the King, the Court, and
-the Archbishop, exaggerated the disturbance, and were for coercing the
-people as enemies of order. The whole story, as it appears from the
-documents we have mentioned, indicates rudeness and insolence on the
-part of the populace, but not any disposition in the first instance to
-proceed to violence. Their opponents sought to bolster up their own
-cause by highly-coloured reports of the uproar; the irritated pride and
-hot revenge of a few royalist officers having really brought on the
-bloodshed, to be followed by the blackest recrimination on the Puritan
-side.[249] The squabble would be beneath our notice, were it not for
-the consequences which followed it;[250] and for its significance as
-illustrating the way in which religious questions became mixed up with
-political ones, and how both, in some cases, sunk down to the most
-vulgar level.
-
-[Sidenote: _Protest of the Bishops._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, December.]
-
-Bishop Hall relates, in connection with the riot, that in the afternoon
-of the 28th of December, the Marquis of Hartford came up to the
-Bishops' bench, and informed their lordships that they were in danger,
-because the people were watching outside with torches, and would
-look into every coach to discover them; he adds that a motion made
-for their safety was received with smiles; and that some sought the
-protection of certain peers, whilst others escaped home by "secret
-and far-fetched passages."[251] From the same authority--corroborated
-by other witnesses--we also learn, that Archbishop Williams, with the
-cry of "No Bishop" ringing in his ears, with a still more unpleasant
-recollection of the apprentice's attack, and also alarmed by the
-Marquis of Hartford's story, determined to protest against this state
-of things, not simply as a violation of his personal liberty, but as
-a violation of the freedom and rights of the Upper House. We Bishops,
-he argued, can no longer perform our Parliamentary duties if this be
-the case, and without the bishops the House of Lords is a nullity in
-the legislature. Upon this view being taken, twelve prelates, Williams
-being one of the number, repaired to the "Jerusalem Chamber in the
-Dean's lodgings"--that room which has witnessed so many ecclesiastical
-discussions, and which is so linked to the fortunes of the Church of
-England--and there drew up a protest against whatever should be done
-during the absence of their order from the House of Lords.[252]
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, December.]
-
-To this protest signatures were hastily procured. On the 27th, Williams
-was assaulted; on the 29th, the protest reached the house of the Bishop
-of Lichfield, between six and seven o'clock at night, he not having
-heard of it before.[253]
-
-The document had been drawn up without proper deliberation, and after
-being signed, it was immediately presented to the King.[254] Much as
-he might sympathize with the prelates, he had prudence enough now to
-do nothing more than at once refer the matter to the House of Lords,
-who, in their turn, invited the Commons to a conference on the subject.
-The Lower House promptly resolved to impeach the prelates;--only one
-member offering any opposition, and that simply on the ground that
-he did not believe they were guilty of high treason, but were only
-stark mad, and ought to be sent to Bedlam. Upon receiving a message,
-notifying the impeachment, the Upper House immediately despatched Black
-Rod to summon the accused Spiritual Lords to the bar, where they soon
-appeared. The same night saw ten of the prelates safe in the Tower.[255]
-
-[Sidenote: _Protest of the Bishops._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, December.]
-
-The protest produced an "immense sensation." Unpopular before with
-the Puritans and the patriots, the bishops now became more unpopular
-than ever, with the former, on account of their alleged pride and
-arrogance; with the latter, on account of their esteeming themselves
-essential to the integrity of Parliament; and with all, on account
-of their obstinately obstructing the paths of reform. Still, the
-party most in advance felt rather glad than otherwise at this act of
-Episcopal imprudence, since it made the bench increasingly odious; and
-therefore afforded another and still stronger argument for hastening
-forward its overthrow.[256] Even Episcopalians blamed the protesters,
-considering they had much hindered the cause they should have helped;
-and Clarendon pronounces their proceedings to have been ill judged.
-But an excuse has been offered, on the ground that the conduct of the
-Bishops if not constitutional was chivalrous. It has been said, "To go
-out in smoke and smother is but a mean way of coming to nothing."
-"To creep and crawl to a misfortune is to suffer like an insect." "A
-man ought to fall with dignity and honour, and keep his mind erect,
-though his fortune happens to be crushed."[257] Without staying to ask
-whether there be not concealed under this plea a spirit out of harmony
-with the religion professed by the prelates, we may remark that no one
-could have blamed them for courageously defending what they deemed
-the rights of their order. They might justly have protested against
-the tumultuous conduct of the people, and have sought protection in
-attending the House; but to protest against what was done in the
-Legislature during their absence was quite another thing, and appears
-to have been as unconstitutional as any violence employed in order
-to hinder their discharge of Parliamentary duties. An accusation of
-treason, however, brought against them for their strange proceedings,
-appears extravagant; although sufficient grounds existed for censure,
-and the imposition perhaps of some kind of penalty: but the lawyers
-were spared all trouble with reference to this subject by the abolition
-of the Episcopal bench, and the political insignificance to which the
-order had been reduced by their extreme unpopularity. The protesting
-Bishops remained in confinement until the 5th of May following, when
-they were dismissed on bail.[258]
-
-
-
-
- [Illustration]
-
- CHAPTER IX.
-
-
-The bill of October for removing Bishops from the House of Peers had
-hung fire. On its reaching the Upper House it had been once read,
-and then laid aside. The conduct of the bishops, which led to their
-impeachment, also induced the Commons to urge upon the Lords the
-passing of this measure. After some hesitation, they read the bill
-a third time, on the 5th of February; and the Commons, now become
-impatient, expressed their sorrow, three days afterwards, that the
-royal assent had not been immediately given. The King's reluctance was
-at the same time expressed at a conference on the 8th of February,
-by the Earl of Monmouth, who said, "that it was a matter of weight
-which his Majesty would take into consideration, and send an answer in
-convenient time."[259] On the 14th of February came the tardy "Le Roy
-le veult." No prelate now remaining to read prayers, the Peers ordered
-that the Lord Chancellor's or the Lord Keeper's chaplain should "say
-prayers before the Lords in Parliament," and in his absence, the Lord
-Chancellor or Lord Keeper should appoint some other person for that
-service. The vacant benches, staring their lordships in the face,
-appeared unsightly; in consequence of which they named a committee to
-consider "how the peers should sit in the House, now that the Bishops'
-seats were empty."[260]
-
-[Sidenote: 1642, February.]
-
-Thus fell, after threatening assaults for fourteen months, the temporal
-power of the prelates. Their exclusion from the Upper House is opposed
-to the ancient laws and customs of the realm, and it does violence
-to those ideas of the English Constitution which are based upon the
-history of the middle ages. Then Church and State were bound in the
-closest ties, and Churchmen, from their presumed superior intelligence,
-were esteemed amongst the fittest men to make laws and to direct public
-affairs. But matters had undergone a vast change by the middle of the
-seventeenth century, and many persons of enlarged minds had come to
-perceive, that there was no more necessity for seeking senators than
-seeking chancellors from the clerical ranks; that neither the liberties
-of the subject, nor the prerogatives of the crown, appeared to be in
-danger from the change; and that the removal of the bench of Bishops
-would not destroy the integrity and completeness of the Upper House,
-or put out of working gear the machinery of the Constitution. On
-political grounds they saw no valid objection to the measure, whilst in
-a religious point of view they deemed it highly desirable.
-
-The Act which deprived Bishops of their legislative functions did not
-touch their revenues; but there followed, within a little more than two
-months, an ordinance which absolutely deprived some amongst them of
-their estates, personal as well as real, and placed the possessions of
-all the rest in jeopardy; so that from affluence they were reduced to
-poverty, or to the imminent hazard of losing whatever they had.
-
-Those who lived beyond the year 1650 will be noticed hereafter. Those
-who died before that time are recorded now.
-
-[Sidenote: _Bishops._]
-
-Robert Wright, bishop of Coventry and Lichfield, one of the protesters,
-remained in the Tower eighteen weeks; and when set at liberty, retired
-to his episcopal castle of Eccleshall, in Staffordshire, which
-he--like a military Churchman of the middle ages--defended against the
-Parliament. He died during a siege in the summer of 1643.
-
-Dr. Accepted Frewen, nominated by the King as successor to Wright,
-derived but little from his see before the Restoration.[261]
-
-Thomas Westfield, bishop of Bristol, who died in 1644, won the good
-opinion of all parties; so that the Puritan committee, appointed by
-the ordinance for sequestering delinquents' estates, on being informed
-that his tenants refused to pay their rents, ordered them to yield to
-him the revenues of his bishopric, and gave him and his family a safe
-conduct to Bristol. It is said of him, that "he made not that wearisome
-which should be welcome; never keeping his glass (the hour glass in the
-pulpit), except upon extraordinary occasions, more than a quarter of an
-hour: he made not that common which should be precious, either by the
-coarseness or cursoriness of his manner. He never, though almost fifty
-years a preacher, went up into the pulpit but he trembled; and never
-preached before the King but once, and then he fainted."[262]
-
-[Sidenote: 1641-1650.]
-
-His immediate successor in the see, Thomas Howell, consecrated at
-Oxford during the siege of that city, is reported to have been
-treated at first by the people of Bristol with great indignity and
-violence--his palace being turned into a malt-house and a mill--but
-the mildness of his disposition overcame all enemies, and though he
-found few well-affected on his appointment to the diocese, he left few
-ill-affected towards him at his death. He died in 1646, and was buried
-in his own cathedral.
-
-George Coke, bishop of Hereford, forfeited his estate, like the other
-protesters. Colonel Birch, a Parliamentary officer, took possession of
-his palace on the surrender of the episcopal city in 1645. His wife and
-children had an exhibition granted for one year out of his sequestered
-estate at Eardsley, on condition that neither she nor her husband
-should assist the malignants. He died in 1646.
-
-Morgan Owen, bishop of Llandaff--said to be under the influence of
-Laud, and connected with him by the Puritans, in a story respecting
-some popish image of the virgin at Oxford--was a protester, and
-imprisoned accordingly. His death occurred towards the end of 1644.
-
-Walter Curle, bishop of Winchester, resided in that city when the
-Parliamentary forces besieged it. Upon its surrender, he retired
-to Subberton, in Hampshire, where he died in 1647, after suffering
-the sequestration of his own proper estate for refusing to take the
-covenant.
-
-John Towers, bishop of Peterborough, having been confined for his
-connection with the protest, subsequently repaired to the King, at
-Oxford, and remained there till its surrender to the Parliament, when
-he returned to Peterborough, and there found himself, as a delinquent,
-stripped of his revenues. He died in 1649.[263]
-
-[Sidenote: _Bishops._]
-
-John Prideaux, a man of eminent learning, promoted to the bishopric
-of Worcester amidst the troubles of 1641, excommunicated all in his
-diocese who took up arms on the Parliament's behalf. By such conduct
-of course he subjected himself to penalties; and it is related, that
-he turned his books and everything else into bread for himself and his
-family, so that, when he was saluted in the usual way, "How doth your
-lordship do?" he facetiously replied, "Never better in my life, only
-I have too great a stomach, for I have eaten that little plate which
-the sequestrators left me; I have eaten a great library of excellent
-books; I have eaten a great deal of linen, much of my brass, some of
-my pewter, and now I am come to eat iron, and what will come next I
-know not."[264] This humorous prelate died in 1650, leaving to his
-children--"no legacy but pious poverty, God's blessing, and a father's
-prayers."
-
-John Williams, archbishop of York, who has appeared prominently in
-this volume, after the imprisonment and sequestration which he brought
-upon himself by the conduct which we have already described, took, by
-royal command, the charge of Conway Castle and the government of North
-Wales, in which country he was born; and, at last--either in accordance
-with his established character for trimming his sails according to the
-wind, or to gratify a personal grudge against the Royalist captain, by
-whom he had been violently displaced--he joined a Parliamentary troop
-in order to recover his old fortress; after which military transaction
-he ended his strange and chequered career, in 1650, at Glodded, in the
-house of his kinswoman, Lady Mostyn. It is related of him, that during
-the last year of his life, he rose out of bed regularly at midnight
-for one quarter of an hour, when he knelt on his bare knees, and prayed
-earnestly, "Come, Lord Jesus, come quickly, and put an end to these
-days of sin and misery."[265]
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, October.]
-
-On returning to the complicated web of religious interests and
-excitements at the close of the year 1641, some dark threads remain to
-be unravelled.
-
-The following letter was written in London on the 4th of November,
-1641, and indicates the alarm excited by intelligence just received
-from Ireland:--[266]
-
-[Sidenote: _Irish Rebellion._]
-
-"This week hath brought forth strange discoveries of horrible treasons
-hatched by the Papists in Ireland, and that upon the 23rd of October
-past, they should have been put in execution throughout the north of
-that kingdom upon all the Protestants at one instant, who were then
-designed to have their throats cut by them; but, God be thanked, the
-night before, being the 22nd October, one Owen Connellie, a servant
-of Sir John Clotworthy, a member of the House of Commons, being then
-newly made acquainted with the wickedness of the plot, by a friend of
-his, that the next day should have been an actor in it, went (though
-with much ado) to the Lords the Justices in Dublin, and revealed it:
-whereupon the gates were instantly commanded to be shut, and a matter
-of thirty-eight that were in town of the conspirators taken, whereof
-the Lord Marquis and Mac Mahon are the chief, and have since confessed,
-that by the next morning they expected to come to their aid twenty well
-armed Papists, out of every county in Ireland, that they might all,
-upon a sudden, have surprised the castle with the ammunition, and so
-commanded the city and the lives of all the inhabitants. The treason
-being thus discovered did spread apace throughout the north of Ireland,
-where the rebellion first began, and in several places in several
-bodies are of the Papists up in arms above 10,000 men, which doth much
-perplex the poor Protestants, and [there is] great fear whether they
-shall be able to suppress or resist them. Whereupon our Parliament
-hath ordered my Lord of Leicester, Lord Lieutenant, and all other
-commanders here, speedily to repair thither, and do furnish £50,000 to
-carry along with them, which the City of London advances for providing
-of men and arms to secure that kingdom. Some blood the villains have
-shed, and committed great outrages, and taken some castles and places
-of strength; but if they had taken Dublin, upon the rack divers have
-confessed, in a short time they would not have left a Protestant alive
-in the whole kingdom; but God, in His mercy, hath prevented that
-slaughter, and hath turned part of it upon themselves. The traitors
-give out the late tyranny of the Lord of Strafford upon them moved them
-to it; and that, by the example of the Scots, they hoped to purchase
-such privileges, by this means, in their religion, as otherwise they
-never expected to have granted to them. You see the distempers of the
-three kingdoms--God forgive them that have been the cause of it, and
-then to be despatched into the other world, that they may trouble us no
-more in this again."[267]
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, October.]
-
-[Sidenote: _Irish Rebellion._]
-
-It is difficult for us--now that the reformation has become a remote
-event, and Protestantism holds undisputed supremacy; now that the
-principles of liberty are well understood, and the asperities and
-virulence of old controversies, except in a few cases, have, been
-softened down--to enter into the anti-papal feelings which moved our
-stout-hearted fathers more than two centuries ago. At that period, the
-Reformation, under Elizabeth, had lasted little more than eighty years.
-The parents of some who were now living had witnessed the cruelties
-of the Marian persecution; the men and women under Charles the First,
-had, as boys and girls, in ingle-nook at Christmas-tide, felt their
-blood run cold whilst listening to stories of the Smithfield fires
-from eye-witnesses. A few, then in London, had actually beheld with
-their own eyes a scene which stirs our hearts when only represented
-by the pencil--Elizabeth haranguing her troops at Tilbury Fort. More
-had heard, with their own ears, the current contemporary talk about
-the Spanish Armada, as it sailed up the channel, and had caught the
-first tidings of the proud armament being scattered to the winds--just
-after the subsiding of the storm which sunk the accursed ships--and
-they could never forget how the nation drew breath after a gasp of
-most awful suspense in 1588. These last events were about as near to
-the times we are describing, as the Battle of Waterloo is to our
-own. The gunpowder plot was an incident of no very distant occurrence;
-only as far back in the memory of members of the Long Parliament, as
-the Bristol riots, and the Swing rick burning in our own. Numbers of
-the gentlemen in high-crowned hats and short cloaks, who walked into
-the House of Commons in 1641, filled with alarm respecting Popery,
-had participated in the sensation produced by that discovery, which
-is celebrated now only by a few boys on the 5th of November. Besides
-all this, the sufferings of French Huguenots were fresh in everybody's
-mind. Refugees who had escaped the galleys were still in London. The
-massacre at Paris, commemorated by the Pope's medal, hardly fell
-beyond the recollections of existing persons, whilst new religious
-conflicts in France, and the siege of Rochelle, had occurred but a
-few years before. The thirty years' war in Germany was not concluded;
-and the battle of Prague, the execution of the Protestant patriots in
-front of the Rathhaus, the expulsion of the disciples of Huss, and
-the barbarities of the Papists throughout Bohemia, were in everyone's
-memory.
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, October.]
-
-With so many alarming events recently connected with Popery, and
-while the question of the Reformation in Europe appeared unsettled,
-and Jesuits were intriguing, and catholic tendencies had reached
-such a height in the Church of England, it is no wonder that staunch
-Protestants at home, who made common cause with staunch Protestants
-abroad, had such an intense dread of their old enemy. It was then with
-the Puritans of England, as it has ever been, and still is, with the
-Protestants of France. The latter have never forgotten the massacre
-of St. Bartholomew, and the revocation of the Edict of Nantes. They
-have cherished, more than we have, the traditions of a suffering
-Church, a Church struggling to keep its ground against neighbours
-as powerful as they are antagonistic. Catholic tendencies do not
-appear amongst the descendants of the Huguenots; the line is distinct
-between the two Churches, and the trumpet of defiance, in the case
-of French Protestantism, gives no uncertain sound. A like relative
-position to papal Europe was maintained by the Puritans of 1641, with
-animosities even more intense, inasmuch as the tragedies remembered
-were more recent, and the danger apprehended seemed just at hand: and
-it explains how the outburst of a neighbouring rebellion on the part of
-the spiritual subjects of the Pope, struck terror in all Protestants
-throughout this kingdom, from the Orkneys to the Land's End.
-
-[Sidenote: _Irish Rebellion._]
-
-The Protestant Church never flourished in Ireland. Bedell, Bishop
-of Kilmore, and Bramhall, then Bishop of Derry, laboured to produce
-reform. Bedell, seeing that the native Irish were little regarded
-by the Protestant clergy and were left almost entirely in the hands
-of the Popish priests, aimed at instructing them in the truths of
-Christianity; a wise method, which however did not meet the views of
-Strafford, whose policy was "to enforce religious unity by Church
-discipline, and to invigorate Church discipline with the secular
-arm."[268] Bramhall, in 1633, gave a deplorable account of the Irish
-Church to Archbishop Laud. It was hard to say whether the fabrics
-were more ruinous, or the people more irreverent. One parochial
-church, in Dublin, had been turned into a stable, a second into a
-dwelling, and a third into a tennis court, the vicar acting as keeper.
-The vaults of Christchurch, from one end to another, were used as
-tippling rooms, and were frequented for that purpose at the time
-of Divine service. The very altar had become a seat for maids and
-apprentices. The bishop also doubted the orthodoxy of his clergy. The
-inferior sort of ministers (he said) were below contempt in respect
-of poverty and ignorance, and the boundless heaping together of
-benefices by _commendams_ and _dispensations_ was but too apparent.
-Rarely ten pounds a year fell to the incumbent, and yet one prelate
-held three-and-twenty benefices.[269] Such a state of things, not
-described by an enemy but by a friend, speaks volumes. Bramhall, in
-meditating reform, followed too much Laud's method, first looking at
-the external condition of the Church, striving to improve edifices, to
-preserve and rightly administer emoluments, to regulate worship and
-secure uniformity--doubtless with far higher ultimate aims--instead of
-going at once to the root of the evil, and promoting the spread of the
-Gospel of Christ, and the revival of spiritual religion. Some outward
-improvement followed the Churchman's endeavours, but very little of
-that pure vital piety, and that Christian love, without which a Church,
-no less than an individual, is but as "sounding brass and a tinkling
-cymbal." Protestantism, even with the best endeavours of its advocates,
-had not laid hold on the Irish heart; and Papists, who were immensely
-in the majority, looked with bitter feeling on the chronic disease of
-Ireland--the absorption of ecclesiastical emoluments by a sect in the
-minority. Puritanism too was active. People complained of "the unblest
-way of the prelacy," of fines, fees, and imprisonments, of silencing
-and banishing "learned and conscionable ministers," and of the prelates
-favouring popery.[270] Moreover, political heart-burnings mingled with
-all this ecclesiastical strife.
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, October.]
-
-The Popish rebellion broke out in October. On the 1st of November,
-Mr. Pym rose in the House of Commons, and stated that a noble lord, a
-Privy Councillor, with other noble lords, stood at the door, waiting
-to deliver important intelligence. Chairs were ordered to be placed
-for these distinguished visitors, who entered uncovered--the serjeant
-carrying the mace before them. The Commons doffed their hats till
-the strangers were seated; when, having covered their heads again,
-each, in breathless silence, with eager inquisitive eye, perhaps with
-pressed ear, listened to the Lord Keeper, as he proceeded to tell them
-the purpose for which he had come. The alarm increased as the Earl of
-Leicester, Lord Lieutenant of Ireland, one of the deputation from the
-Lords, took off his hat, and said: That letters and papers had been
-sent from Ireland by the Lord Justices, communicating information of
-the shedding of much blood; that all Protestants were to be cut off;
-that no British man, woman, or child was to be left alive; that the
-horrid deed had been fixed for Saturday, the 23rd of October, being the
-feast of St. Ignatius; that the King's forts were to be seized, and
-the Justices and Privy Council slain. A timely supply of men and money
-therefore was needed to save the country.
-
-[Sidenote: _Irish Rebellion._]
-
-These vague tidings ran through England like wildfire, and then there
-followed details of unparalleled barbarities. It was reported, that in
-the county of Armagh alone, a thousand Protestants were forced over
-the Bridge of Portadown, and drowned in the River Bann. A wife was
-compelled to hang her own husband. Two-and-twenty people were put into
-a thatched house, and burned alive. Women, great with child, had their
-bellies ripped up, and were then drowned. Three hundred Protestants
-were stripped naked, and crowded into the Church of Loghill, a hundred
-of whom were murdered, one being quartered alive, whose quarters
-were flung in the face of the unhappy father. A hundred men, women,
-and children were driven like hogs for six miles to a river, into
-which they were pitched headlong with pikes and swords.[271] These
-instances are only a few taken from the reports: page after page in
-Rushworth, and other collections, is filled with the like enormities.
-The computation was that between one and two hundred thousand persons
-perished in these massacres. Common sense, knowledge of human nature,
-and the recollection of rumours in our own time respecting Indian
-massacres and Jamaica atrocities, must lead us to suspect the accuracy
-of these reports.
-
-Allowance should be made for exaggeration at a time of maddening
-terror, and in the case of an excitable and imaginative people like
-the Irish. It should also be remembered that our poor sister island
-had endured wrongs from a Protestant Government; that the Puritans had
-alarmed the Papists; that the Papists had exasperated the Puritans;
-and that mutual intolerance increased mutual hatred. But, after all
-fair abatements, that Irish Rebellion must be regarded as one of the
-blackest crimes recorded in history, as an outburst of demoniacal fury,
-which nothing could excuse, and which the utmost provocation could but
-slenderly palliate.[272] If, as supposed by some, it was a desperate
-stroke for Popish ascendancy in Ireland, encouraged by the example
-of the Scots, who by rising in arms had asserted their right to a
-Presbyterian Government, it must be admitted by all to have been, as
-Carlyle says, "a most wretched imitation."
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, October.]
-
-It is not our business to investigate the sources of the Irish
-rebellion, or to weigh evidence as to its horrors. Enough is admitted
-by historians of every school to shew that it was a very great
-calamity, and all to be done here is to indicate the impression it made
-in England, and how it further complicated the already intricate causes
-which conspired to complete the great ecclesiastical revolution of the
-age.
-
-Puritans in England were terror-stricken. Fasts were held, and young
-people were worn out by abstinence and prayer. Amidst a crowded
-congregation, near Bradford, where all were groaning and weeping, there
-came a man, who cried, "Friends, we are all as good as dead men, for
-the Irish rebels are coming; they are come as far as Rochdale, and
-Littleborough, and the Batings, and will be at Halifax and Bradford
-shortly."[273] Upon hearing this, the congregation fell into utter
-confusion, and began to run for their lives,--screaming about the
-bloody Papists, and expecting every moment to meet the cut-throats.
-Not only were ignorant multitudes thus panic-stricken, but Richard
-Baxter believed that the Irish had threatened to come over, and, he
-remarks, that such threats, "with the name of 200,000 murdered, and
-the recital of the monstrous cruelties of those cannibals, made many
-thousands in England think that nothing could be more necessary than
-for the Parliament to put the country into an armed posture for their
-own defence."[274]
-
-[Sidenote: _Irish Rebellion._]
-
-Not only did aversion to Popery proper increase through what had
-happened in Ireland, but that aversion regarded much which bore but a
-very partial resemblance to Popery. It was not easy then, with cool
-discrimination, to distinguish between things which differed; and some
-things, it must be remembered, were more alike then than they are at
-present. What would be folly in one age may be something like wisdom in
-another; what would be groundless fear now might be caution then; that
-which all would pronounce insanity in a Protestant of the nineteenth
-century was probably only a reasonable apprehension in a Puritan of the
-seventeenth. At that time there not only rose a stronger determination
-to resist the power of Rome, but also a stronger determination to put
-an end to the power at Lambeth. The tiara became more hateful than
-ever, and not less so the mitre: images of the Virgin were pronounced
-intolerable, so were all superstitious ornaments in churches. The
-Popish rebellion helped on the measure for removing Bishops from
-amongst the rulers of the country, and imparted a fresh impulse to the
-desire for abolishing Episcopacy.
-
-[Sidenote: 1641, October.]
-
-The actual plot in Ireland gave countenance to the belief of imaginary
-plots in England. One day in November, John Hampden went up to the
-Lords to let them know that a man had come to the door of the House
-of Commons, and sent in word how he had matters of a high nature to
-reveal concerning certain noble Peers and honourable Commons. They had
-therefore sent the man to their Lordships' House, for examination.
-Upon this, one Thomas Beal, a tailor of Whitecross Street, appeared,
-who told a long rambling story to the effect, that on that very day,
-at twelve o'clock, as he went into the fields near the Pest House, and
-was walking on a private bank, he heard some people talking warily.
-Going nearer, he heard somebody say, "it was a wicked thing that the
-last plot did not take," but that one now was going on which would be
-the making of them all. A hundred and eight conspirators were to kill
-one hundred and eight members of Parliament--all Puritans--and the
-sacrament was to be administered to the murderers. Beal was commanded
-to withdraw, and an order followed to arrest certain Jesuits on
-suspicion. This conspiracy, as might be expected from the man's story,
-turned out to be mere smoke.[275] Yet we relate the circumstance as an
-illustration of the excitement of the period; and to exemplify how men,
-like the inhabitants of the Hartz mountains looking at the clouds, saw
-their own fears reflected in gigantic shadows, which they mistook for
-most awful and threatening realities.
-
-
-
-
- [Illustration]
-
- CHAPTER X.
-
-
-The cause of English Episcopacy sank into a hopeless condition.
-Whatever streaks of light had just before been flickering on its
-horizon had now totally vanished; not that the removal of the prelates'
-bench from the House of Peers sealed its fate, for, apart from
-legislative authority and political position, Episcopal office and
-influence might have been retained. But the policy of Laud and Montague
-had been such as to estrange from the Order the affections of the
-Puritans, then the most active and influential part of the religious
-population of the country. The complicity of Church rulers in the
-unpopular proceedings of the High Commission and Star Chamber Courts,
-and their sympathy in Strafford's scheme of arbitrary rule, had torn
-away from them the last ties of attachment on the part of the middle
-classes, which, in modern England, form the only trustworthy stays
-of power in Church or State. The effect of the protest of Archbishop
-Williams and his associates had confirmed the mean opinion in which
-all the bishops were held, and had now rendered a case before very
-doubtful, wholly desperate. Charles, who from the beginning had been
-ready to stake the crown in his struggle for the Episcopal Church,
-had by his arrest of the five members exasperated to the utmost the
-supporters of the Constitution, and placed himself in a false position
-towards the House of Commons; so that, while imperilling his own
-prerogatives, he also injured the Church, with which he identified the
-interests of his throne.
-
-[Sidenote: 1641-2.]
-
-Even the secession of certain conspicuous advocates from the ranks of
-ecclesiastical reform to the opposite side served to weaken, not to
-help, the cause of ecclesiastical conservatism.
-
-Sir Edward Dering's course has been described. We have seen him to be
-one of those men, who, after looking at both sides of a question, and
-endeavouring to keep the mean between extremes, at length come to look
-at one side so much more than the other, that they unconsciously swerve
-in a direction divergent from their original career, and then, with
-exquisite simplicity, wonder that they are charged with vacillation.
-Such persons are also apt to be impetuous, and to speak unguardedly
-in the heat of debate; and, while honestly hating the character of
-turn-coats, they expose themselves to that odious accusation. Sir
-Edward had looked at Anglicanism and at Nonconformity, trying to
-steer a middle course; but circumstances of late having brought
-before him most prominently the dangers of schism, he now inveighed
-against it with the same zeal, which, in the spring and summer of
-1641, had inflamed his anti-prelatical orations. It is very easy to
-make good against this honest but shallow politician the charge of
-self-contradiction. It is curious to see in his "Defence" how one who
-courted popularity winced under the accusation of being an apostate,
-and how he parried the charge of going over to the enemy's camp. At an
-hour when parties were plunging into a mortal struggle, a much wiser
-man, counselling moderation, would have had little chance of making
-himself heard; and certainly Dering's laboured distinction between
-ruin and reform did as little toward preventing the first as promoting
-the second; and it could only produce a grim smile in the iron face of
-a Puritan, when the recent church reformer cautioned his friends, in
-classic phrase, against "breaking asunder that well ordered chain of
-government, which from the chair of Jupiter reacheth down by several
-golden even links to the protection of the poorest creature that now
-lives among us."[276]
-
-[Sidenote: _Secessions from the Popular Party._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1641-2.]
-
-Another seceder was Lord Falkland, who though a far different man from
-Dering, yet possessed an amount of impetuosity which at times mastered
-his wisdom; for instance, when on one occasion the Speaker desired the
-Members of the House to concur in a vote of thanks by a movement of
-the hat, Falkland, with a sort of childish irritability, "clasped his
-hands together upon the crown of his hat, and held it close down to his
-head."[277] It is somewhat singular that such a man should be held up
-as an example of moderation--that one so impulsive and demonstrative
-should have won renown for calmness and caution. The truth is, that he
-had looked even more closely than Dering had done at the two sides of
-the great controversy, and by dwelling exclusively first on the one
-and then on the other, had incurred, like his parliamentary friend,
-the charge of tergiversation. He saw more strongly the objections to
-a question than the grounds of its support. "The present evil always
-seemed to him the worst--he was always going backward and forward;
-but it should be remembered to his honour, that it was always from
-the stronger to the weaker side that he deserted: while Charles was
-oppressing the people, Falkland was a resolute champion of liberty.
-He attacked Strafford, he even concurred in strong measures against
-Episcopacy; but the violence of his party annoyed him and drove him
-to the other party, to be equally annoyed there."[278] Falkland
-deserted his former friends in October, on the reintroduction of the
-Bill for taking away the bishops' votes; on the ground, that, though
-at first he thought it might prove an effectual compromise, and might
-save Episcopacy by sacrificing its political power, yet he afterwards
-entertained the opinion that it would have no such effect. The charge
-of dishonesty never can be brought against him; his character in this
-respect, like polished armour, could not be dimmed for more than a
-moment by the breath of scandal. A perfect Bayard in his chivalrous
-career, _sans peur et sans reproche_, however he might diverge from
-his previous path, he can never be justly regarded as a renegade.
-The persuasion of his friend Hyde, his sympathies as a tasteful and
-accomplished gentleman with the cavalier party, and beyond all, perhaps
-a sort of religious reverence for royalty, had more than anything to do
-with his change of policy in October, and his acceptance of office in
-the King's councils in January. And it does not appear, that, though
-he dreaded extreme measures against the Church, he had any more zeal
-for prelates after than before his separation from his old friends.
-It was for the crown rather than the mitre that he threw his weight
-into the royal scale. He approved of moderate Episcopacy, but for that
-he did not make his great sacrifice. He could not say with Sir Edward
-Verney, "I have eaten the King's bread, and served him near thirty
-years;" but he could adopt the veteran's declaration, "I will not do
-so base a thing as to forsake him." He was not prepared to exclaim, "I
-chose rather to lose my life, which I am sure I shall do, to preserve
-and defend those things which are against my conscience;" but he
-might have adopted the words of the same brave soldier, "I will deal
-freely with you, I have no reverence for Bishops for whom this quarrel
-subsists."[279] The heart of many a Royalist went more with King than
-Church.[280]
-
-[Sidenote: _Secessions from the Popular Party._]
-
-These changes left the staunch opponents of Episcopacy more unfettered
-in action, and served to consolidate party elements which, for a
-long time, had been held in a state of solution. Though it would be
-inaccurate to speak of two distinct and compact parties before the end
-of 1641, such parties are to be recognized after the beginning of 1642.
-Men were then forced to take a side, to assume a definite position.
-A grand issue was joined. Half measures were no longer possible.
-Questions became distinct. The device and cognizance on each of the
-opposite banners might be as unmistakably understood as they were
-plainly emblazoned--on the one side, "Church and King," on the other,
-"Constitutional Reform in Church and State." There may be quibbles
-about the accuracy of such watchwords, but those now mentioned are
-as applicable to the two parties of the seventeenth century, as any
-familiar ones now are to the political distinctions of the nineteenth.
-
-[Sidenote: 1642, January.]
-
-Politicians who remained staunch in the defence of Parliamentary
-power against Kingly despotism were much more agreed in reference to
-the State than in reference to the Church. On the negative side of
-ecclesiastical revolution they pretty well understood each other. What
-should be put down they knew; but not precisely what should be set
-up. That prelacy of the Stuart type should be expelled was a foregone
-conclusion in 1642; but what sort of rule should take its place,
-whether very moderate Episcopacy, or thorough Presbyterianism like
-that of Scotland, the leaders of the movement had not determined. It
-is, however, quite evident that great modifications in the direction
-of Presbyterianism were under contemplation: for Presbyterians were
-numerous in London; their leaders were active amongst the citizens;
-and the Scotch, through their commissioners, were earnestly doing
-all they could to promote the cause which was dear to their hearts.
-But the sectaries, who were hated equally by the Presbyterian and
-Prelatist, were also on the increase. So numerous indeed had they
-become that Bishop Hall, in his last speech in the House of Lords,
-declared with spleen unworthy of so good a man, that there were eighty
-congregations of them in London, "instructed by guides fit for them,
-cobblers, tailors, felt-makers, and such like trash, which all were
-taught to spit in the face of their mother, the Church of England,
-and to defy and revile her government."[281] Letters of the Royalists
-at that period abound in complaints respecting the increased activity
-and boldness of people who were condemned as schismatics. Those so
-designated had views of ecclesiastical polity very different from
-Presbyterian opinions, and were destined to check the progress of the
-latter much more effectually than to contribute to the downfall of
-Episcopacy. Some of them even (but only some) went so far as to cry,
-"Away with the thought of a national Church. It is impossible for a
-national Church to be the true Church of Christ. Let us have no Church
-but Congregations, and let them be without superintendency." To this
-we may add that the separatists in general objected to the distinction
-between clergy and laity, and maintained that the Church is a body, all
-the members of which are kings and priests.[282]
-
-[Sidenote: _Royal Flight._]
-
-Charles and his Queen left London on the triumphant return of the five
-members to Westminster. So hasty was the royal flight, that befitting
-accommodation for their Majesties could not be provided. They first
-journeyed to Hampton Court, but their subsequent movements were so
-secret, that even courtiers did not know whither the royal pair were
-bending their steps.[283]
-
-Under Secretary Bere, writing to Admiral Sir John Pennington, on the
-13th of January, thus speaks of the startling events then taking
-place:--
-
-[Sidenote 1642, January.]
-
-"Sir--The last week I told you but the beginning of those bad ensuing
-news we must now daily expect, unless it please God to give a strange
-if not miraculous change whereby to settle the distraction of affairs.
-The committees, sitting all last week in the city, returned again to
-Parliament on Tuesday, and the persons accused with them; for whom
-both City and county have shewn so much affection, that they came
-accompanied with such multitudes, as had as much of the triumph as
-guard: and by water the seamen made a kind of fleet of boats, all armed
-with muskets and murdering pieces, which gave volleys all the way they
-went. The King and Queen took the day before a resolution to leave
-this town, which was also so sudden, that they could not have that
-accommodation befitting their Majesties. They went to Hampton Court
-that night, next day to Windsor; whence it is conceived they will also
-depart as this day, but whither is uncertain. The Prince and Prince
-Elector is with them; but few Lords, Essex and Holland being here, who
-offered up both their places before his going, but his Majesty would
-not accept the surrender. Mr. Secretary Nicholas is likewise gone, and
-hath left me to attend such services as shall occur, which, if the King
-shall persist in his resolution to retire, will not be much. However,
-I will expect the issue, and, if I be not sent for, think myself not
-unhappy in my stay, to be freed of an expenseful and troublesome
-journey. My Lady Nicholas is much afflicted, and, I believe, as well
-as he, would for a good round sum he had never had the seals. My
-Lord-Keeper, refusing to put the great seal to the King's proclamation
-against the persons accused, did also make tender of his charge, but
-howsoever remains still with it; and thus, Sir, you see to what height
-of distempers things are come. The public voice runs much against
-Bristol and his son, as great instruments of these misunderstandings.
-In the meantime they are united in the Houses, and the accord between
-the Upper House and Commons grows daily more easy; so that it is hoped
-some good and moderate resolutions will be taken for the procuring his
-Majesty's return with his contentment (which I pray God may be), for
-otherwise there can be expected nothing but confusion.
-
- * * * * *
-
-"I understand even now that the King is remained this day at Windsor,
-and it is hoped will not go further; the French Ambassador having been
-there, and offering to interpose for an accommodation between his
-Majesty and the Parliament, in the King his master's name, whence it is
-hoped may ensue some good effect. This day divers Lords are going to
-Court with a message from the Houses. I had almost forgotten to tell
-you of a new Secretary of State made last Saturday, to wit, the Lord
-Falkland, and he hath the Diet."[284]
-
-From Windsor, Charles went to York, which now became a focus of
-political and ecclesiastical activity and intrigue. Declarations,
-manifestoes, and commands were issued by royal authority from the
-North to be contradicted and disobeyed by such members of the two
-Houses as continued at their posts in the South.[285] The Puritan
-patriots flocked to St. Stephen's with petitions complaining of Popish
-malignants, Irish rebels, and other hindrances to reform; while
-Royalist Churchmen as eagerly besieged the King's presence chamber in
-the ancient archiepiscopal city with addresses lamenting the disorders
-of the times, and praying for the support of old-fashioned loyalty,
-with Prayer Book, Cathedrals, and Bishops.
-
-[Sidenote: _Attempts at Mediation._]
-
-Attempts to mediate between the two contending powers were made
-in vain: for no mediator existed possessing such a character for
-impartiality as was needful to reconcile, or even mitigate the
-quarrel. Louis XIII. of France offered his services, but his
-relationship to Henrietta Maria, and his being a Popish and absolute
-monarch, disqualified him for the office of peace-maker.
-
-[Sidenote: 1642.]
-
-The Scotch, with the best intentions, but with even more
-unfitness--having taken up arms against Episcopacy, having been in
-the pay of Parliament, and having fostered a Presbyterian spirit in
-England--proffered their help. The Commissioners, who had just returned
-to London, and had taken umbrage at the treatment which they had
-received from the Royalist and High Church Lord Mayor--complaining that
-he had assigned to them lodgings in a plague-stricken house[286]--made
-their appearance at Windsor Castle, in the month of January, to tell
-his Majesty, that the liberties of England and Scotland must stand and
-fall together, and to ascribe the existing disorders of the country to
-the plots of Papists and prelates, who aimed at subverting the purity
-and truth of religion.[287] Yet, while thus manifestly taking the
-Parliament side in the controversy, the Scotch coolly offered their
-services to compose the difference between the King and his subjects.
-Nothing could come of this, nor of a renewal of the offer in May sent
-from the Council in Edinburgh to Charles, at York, through the hands
-of their Chancellor. Even the most impartial advice and the wisest
-diplomacy now must have been too late, for the dispute had gone beyond
-any healing power, since both parties laid their hands on the scabbards
-of their swords, and, in fact, the blade was already half drawn by each.
-
-[Sidenote: _Manifestoes._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1642.]
-
-It is not our province to enter upon the question between King and
-Parliament, touching the militia. It is sufficient to observe that,
-when such a question arose, war could not be far off. Nor does it
-become us to notice the simply political aspects of those voluminous
-papers belonging to the Civil War which have been collected by
-Rushworth,[288] containing the manifestoes of the two belligerents,
-who--like all belligerents down to the Prussians and Austrians this
-very summer--writing what they know would be read by the whole world,
-sought to throw the whole blame of the quarrel on each other; and
-while both were buckling on their armour, neither liked to be seen
-striking the first blow. It must be confessed, that in these patiently
-prepared, and able, though tedious documents, the thrusts at the enemy
-are more effective than the counter-thrusts. Both King and Parliament
-wished to be thoroughly constitutional in the form of everything which
-they said and did; and on the side where justice lay it was far more
-easy for them to be so, when assailing their antagonists than when
-they were defending themselves. In other words, it was easy for the
-Parliament to prove that the King had violated the Constitution; but
-it was not so easy to prove that, when taking all power into their own
-hands--especially when taking up arms--they kept within the formal
-lines of the English Constitution. The legal fiction of arming in the
-King's name against the King's person; the separation of Charles Stuart
-and the Sovereign of England into two entities; the defence of the
-abstract rule by violence against the concrete ruler, are refinements,
-which, however sound they may be in political metaphysics, do not
-carry conviction to plain English understandings.[289] Besides, the
-reasonings of the great Parliamentary lawyers,--which were learned,
-profound, and subtle in the extreme,--require much more of erudition
-and perspicacity, that they may be followed and appreciated, than
-people commonly, either in that age or this, could be supposed to
-possess.[290] But putting legal technicalities aside; looking at the
-matter on broad grounds of justice; viewing the government of England
-at that period as already unconstitutionalized, by the King's aiming to
-rule without Parliaments; considering also that a regal revolution had
-in fact been going on for twenty years, the vindication of the popular
-party is triumphant. To save what was free in the Constitution, there
-was a necessity perforce for breaking down, at all hazards, whatever
-of arbitrary power had crept into the working of affairs. The King had
-been striving to destroy Parliamentary action, and nothing which he had
-conceded could remove the suspicion that he remained the same despot
-in spirit which he had ever been, and that now he only waited for a
-convenient season, when he might withdraw his concessions, lock up
-the doors at Westminster, and, with the key in his pocket, entrench
-himself at Whitehall, as absolute a tyrant as his brother of France.
-Parliament then was compelled, if it would save the liberties of the
-country, to work by itself for the repair of mischief already done. The
-State had reached a revolutionary crisis; and only by revolutionary
-means could it be brought back to a constitutional and normal
-condition. What Quin said to Warburton of the execution of Charles, may
-be more fitly applied to the taking up arms against him. When asked by
-what law he would justify the deed? The witty actor rejoined, "By all
-the laws he had left them." "It is the sum of the whole controversy,"
-says Walpole, "couched in eight monosyllables."[291]
-
-[Sidenote: _Manifestoes._]
-
-With the religious points of the declarations we have alone to do. On
-the 9th of April, the Lords and Commons declared that they intended a
-reformation of the Church; and that, for the better effecting thereof,
-they wished speedily to have consultation with godly and learned
-divines; and because this would never of itself attain all the end
-sought therein, they would use their utmost endeavours to establish
-learned and preaching ministers with a good and sufficient maintenance
-throughout the whole kingdom; wherein many dark corners were miserably
-destitute of the means of salvation, and many poor ministers wanted
-necessary provision.[292]
-
-[Sidenote: 1642.]
-
-On the 3rd of June, the King stated that he was resolved to defend the
-true Protestant religion established in the reign of Queen Elizabeth,
-to govern by law for the future; and that he had no intention to
-make war with his Parliament, except it were in the way of defence. In
-June the Parliament presented to the King certain propositions. Those
-relating to religion were:--That the laws against priests and Popish
-recusants be strictly put in execution, and a more effectual course
-be taken to disable them from making any disturbance; that the Popish
-lords in the House of Peers be deprived of their votes, and a Bill be
-drawn for the education of the children of Papists in the Protestant
-religion; that his Majesty do consent to such a Reformation of the
-Church as Parliament shall devise, and be pleased to give consent
-to the laws for removing innovations, pluralities, and scandalous
-ministers.[293] The King replied, that as to the Popish peers he was
-content that they should give their votes by proxy through Protestant
-lords; as to the education of Papists by Protestants, it was the very
-thing he wished: but, touching the Reformation to be made of the Church
-Government and Liturgy, he told them he hoped that what he had formerly
-declared had been sufficiently understood. He had said, in his answer
-to the petition presented at Hampton Court, that, for any illegal
-innovations which might have crept in, he should willingly concur
-in their removal, and that if Parliament should advise the calling
-a national synod he should take it into consideration: but he was
-persuaded that no Church upon the earth could be found with more purity
-of doctrine than the Church of England, that nowhere did government and
-discipline exist more free from superstition; and that he would with
-constancy maintain them in their purity and glory, not only against
-all invasions of Popery, but also from the irreverence of schismatics
-and separatists, for the suppression of whom he required their timely
-assistance.[294] Much of the royal reply had a specious look, and, if
-honestly meant, might have served as a ground for reconciliation; but
-to the Parliament, with their deep conviction of the King's insincerity
-founded on the experience of years, all his honied phraseology only
-seemed to cover hidden stings: and to persons bent on securing
-toleration for the sects--a daily increasing party--there was nothing
-in the King's words but what shewed the hopelessness of their cause if
-left to him.
-
-[Sidenote: _Manifestoes._]
-
-All these documents considered in reference to what they professed,
-were so much waste paper. Ostensibly they spoke of peace--virtually
-they meant war.
-
-Indications of a coming conflict were visible. The people divided into
-two parties, and gave signs by hoisting colours. Tawny ribbons were
-mounted in the hats of the Royalists,[295] the Parliamentarians wore
-orange. Cavaliers insulted roundheads, and roundheads retaliated on
-cavaliers. The latter, it was reported, put the former to the test by
-requiring them to swear "a round oath." Pamphlets were published in
-vindication of taking up arms. In one of these publications, bearing
-the title of "Powers to be Resisted," it is declared, that if it be
-lawful in any case to contend with the sword it is in this; and, in
-reply to the objection, "No, not with the sword, but with prayer,"
-comes the curious _reductio ad absurdum_, "contend against swine
-and dogs with prayer! I never heard the like since I was born; a
-vain thing, it is sure, to pray the swine not to trample the pearl
-under foot, to pray the dogs not to rend you."[296] Disturbance and
-insecurity appeared already. The quaint little newspapers of the day
-make complaints of assaults and pillage. The Kent waggoners, for
-example, were stopped on the road to London, and the well-laden wains
-robbed by cavalier banditti.
-
-[Sidenote: 1642.]
-
-Fearful times had already come, and times still more fearful were
-at hand. The people of England trembled at the idea of a civil war;
-the insurrection of Wyat, and Kett's rebellion, had left grave
-recollections in London and Norfolk; but the blood shed in the wars of
-the Roses--a more terrible memory--now rose before peaceful households
-in crimson colour. Mental agitation increased at the sight of natural
-phenomena, which that agitation interpreted as supernatural portents;
-omens were detected in slightly unusual incidents, with a feeling akin
-to ancient Greek and Roman hope or terror under the augur's divination.
-Signs blazed in heaven--noises burst through the air--people talked
-of "a celestial beating of drums," and "discharging of muskets and
-ordnance for the space of an hour and more." Not satisfied with a
-recognition in the skies of the excitements on the earth, each of
-the two parties claimed the Divine Being on their own side, and had
-wonders to tell of judgments smiting opponents. Royalist churchmen
-related a story of a certain Puritan churchwarden who had taken down
-a painted glass window, and within two days his wife was exceedingly
-tormented in her limbs, raging and crying most fearfully. Parliamentary
-Puritans, with equal extravagance, declared how some wicked Royalist
-had stuck on the top of a pole a man in a tub to be shot at, and soon
-afterwards the Royalist was seized with convulsions. One who drank to
-the confusion of Roundheads, on beginning to dance, broke his leg.
-The divine indignation on account of setting up May-poles was equally
-apparent.[297]
-
-[Sidenote: _The Coming Struggle._]
-
-In connection with all this, hostile preparations were made on both
-sides. Members of the House of Commons contributed horses, money,
-and plate for the service of Parliament,[298] whilst clergymen and
-their families sent spoons, cups, and beakers of silver, to be turned
-into money for the payment of the forces.[299] On the other hand, the
-friends of the King manifested their loyalty and devotion; but they did
-not make sacrifices with the same ardour, and to the same extent, as
-their fellow-countrymen who embraced the cause of the opposite party.
-Clarendon bitterly complains of the lukewarmness of the Royalists, and
-observes, that if they had lent their master a fifth part of what they
-afterwards lost, he would have been able to preserve his crown, and
-they would have retained their property.
-
-[Sidenote 1642.]
-
-The enlistment of soldiers was still more important than filling the
-military chests; and here again the advantage was on the side of the
-Parliament; the militia increased more rapidly than the forces
-gathered by the King's commission of array.[300] Hampden, as the wheat
-ripened in the Chiltern Hundreds, was engaged in raising volunteers;
-Cromwell made himself useful in Cambridge and the Fen Country after
-a similar fashion; Lord Brooke, too, rode up and down amongst the
-fields and orchards of Worcestershire on the same business; and soon
-England bristled all over with officers beating up recruits. As
-cavalier nobles and squires assembled their tenantry under the royal
-standard, there were other landed proprietors who espoused the popular
-cause, and who were still more successful in securing followers. At
-the same time, town halls and market-places echoed with appeals to
-citizens and burgesses to fight for the liberties of their country;
-whilst in various places ammunition and stores were collected with
-corresponding activity and zeal. Castles and manor-houses were stripped
-of armour which had hung for years upon the time-stained walls; and
-parish churches yielded up from the tombs of ancient knights rusty
-helmets and hauberks. Old bills and bows, matchlocks and pistols,
-pikes and lances, and even staves and clubs, were piled up as part of
-the extemporised equipment. After a little while, military matters
-took something of artistic form, and regiments well accoutred might
-be seen marching under the flags of their respective colonels.
-Redcoats, following Denzil Holles, tramped along the streets of
-London; purple rank and file drew up at Lord Brooke's command under
-the tower of Warwick Castle; Hampden saw with pride his green coats
-winding through the vales of Buckinghamshire; and Lord Say and Sele
-appeared at the head of a regiment in jackets of blue. Haselrig led
-on his troops of "lobsters"--so called from the cuirasses worn by
-his horsemen; and last, but not least, Cromwell rode at the head
-of cavalry, who, from the completeness of their armour, as well as
-the invincibleness of their courage, have always been known as his
-"Ironsides."[301] The Parliamentary officers tied an orange scarf over
-their accoutrements, and the standard of each regiment bore on one side
-the colonel's device, and on the other the Parliament's watchword,
-"God with us." Presbyterian divines became Parliamentary chaplains, in
-which capacity Dr. Spurstow was attached to John Hampden, and Simeon
-Ash--"good old Ash," as afterwards he used to be called--followed
-Lord Brooke. Marshall and Burgess attended upon the Earl of Essex,
-commander-in-chief.
-
-[Sidenote: _Character of the Army._]
-
-The character of the Parliamentary army was not at first what it
-afterwards became. When the war commenced, as Cromwell subsequently
-remarked, "there were numbered among the soldiery, old, decayed
-serving men and tapsters," who dishonoured the cause; Papists,
-too, were reported to be in the ranks, strange as that report may
-appear. Charles, after the battle of Edgehill, flung the reproach in
-the face of his enemies, and declared that all men knew the great
-number of Papists who fought under their banner.[302] The Parliament
-indignantly repelled the accusation, as utterly inconsistent with
-their avowed opinions and designs. So undoubtedly it was, and if any
-adherents of the popish religion actually existed in the patriot camp,
-they could be there only as Jesuits in disguise, in order to corrupt
-the good affection of their comrades; still, it would appear that such
-a charge could never have been hazarded but for the miscellaneous
-character of the troops at the commencement of the outbreak. Religious
-instruction and discipline, however, were speedily instituted; the men
-were furnished with copies of the Scriptures;[303] the preaching of
-the Gospel prevailed in every place where the forces were quartered;
-and various means were employed to improve the moral and spiritual
-condition of the soldiers.
-
-[Sidenote: 1642.]
-
-Turning to look for a moment at the Royalists, we observe that there
-were sound-hearted Protestants and truly religious men amongst them,
-but there were also considerable numbers of Roman Catholics;[304]
-others--we fear they were the majority--cared very little, if at
-all, for religion, either in substance or form. Some scoffed at sacred
-things, and made a boast of their profanity and licentiousness. If
-Puritans quoted Scripture, sometimes with more reverence than wisdom,
-Royalists could use it with a blasphemous kind of vulgar wit which
-it is shocking to record. For example, on an ensign captured in
-Dorsetshire, a cannon was painted, with this motto: "O Lord, open thou
-my lips, and my mouth shall shew forth thy praise."
-
-[Sidenote: _Nature of the Struggle._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1642.]
-
-The ecclesiastical aspects of the civil war may be seen in the State
-Papers issued at the time. For the present, it suffices to observe
-that the English and the Scotch differed in their views respecting the
-relation in which the religious and political questions of the day
-stood to each other. The Scotch entered the field under the banner
-of Church, Crown, and Covenant, to carry on a contest, if not purely
-religious, yet one which was so in the main. Political considerations
-were subordinate: the flag was unfurled, and the sword drawn for
-Presbyterianism against Popery and against Prelacy. The rights of
-synods, and the interests of pure and undefiled religion, more than the
-privileges of Parliament, constituted the precious national treasure,
-to secure which the veteran General Leslie encamped with that great
-host, which Baillie so graphically describes. In the case of the
-Parliamentary army of England, it was otherwise. In the beginning,
-indeed, the Lancashire Puritans, when taking up arms, proceeded
-entirely on religious grounds, and emulated their more northern
-neighbours in that respect. They dreaded the Papists living amongst
-them; and it was against those Papists, not against the King, as they
-expressly declared, that they threw themselves into the civil war.
-During the siege of Manchester, the inhabitants, in their answer to the
-Royalist Lord Strange, identified his proceedings with the cause of
-the Roman Catholics, many of whom were marching under his flag.[305]
-And in connection with this prominence, in one part of the country
-at least, given to the religious phase of the conflict, it should be
-remembered that English Puritans never counted religion in any of its
-relations as less than supreme; that they always professed obedience to
-Christianity as the supreme law of life; and that they were thoroughly
-religious, as to motive and spirit, in all their military service.
-So completely was this the case, that no Crusader could be more
-devout, as he buckled on his sword to fight for the rescue of the Holy
-Sepulchre, than the Roundhead was, when he buttoned his 'souldier's
-pocket bible' in his waistcoat, and shouldered his musket to fight
-against Rome and the devil--as well as against political despotism.
-But still, this latter object appears most conspicuous in our civil
-war. Pym and his associates were emphatically Parliament men: they
-engaged in a Parliament struggle, to save the English Constitution from
-the absorbing encroachments of the King's prerogative. Ecclesiastical
-questions necessarily connected themselves with such as were political,
-but the former were kept subordinate; and, when appearing in State
-documents, they occupy a far less space, and are treated with much less
-minuteness and fulness than the latter. The previous history of our
-country had given this shape to the controversy. As prior circumstances
-in Scotland had made the war for the Scotch principally one on behalf
-of the rights of the Church, prior circumstances in England made it for
-the English principally a war on behalf of civil liberty. Through a
-victory achieved for the Church, the Scotch intended to establish the
-political well-being of their country; through a victory obtained for
-the Parliament, the English meant to promote the spiritual interests of
-the Church. The relation between the two aspects of the conflict, in
-each case, came to be regulated accordingly.
-
-
-
-
- [Illustration]
-
- CHAPTER XI.
-
-
-To employ an apt but homely figure used by Mrs. Hutchinson, the
-smoke ascended from the tops of the chimneys before the flame broke
-out. As early as April, the King appeared at the gates of Hull,
-where he was denied entrance by Sir John Hotham. In the middle of
-June, the Commission of Array at Leicester came into collision with
-the Parliamentary militia. In August, the brave Lord Brooke set out
-from Warwick Castle with three hundred musketeers and two hundred
-horse, gathering round him recruits to the number of three thousand;
-the country sending "six loads of harrows to keep off horses, and a
-cart-load of bread and cheese, and great store of beer."[306] Reluctant
-to shed blood, the Puritan commander charged his soldiers, for the
-kingdom's sake, not to fire a single pistol except in self-defence.
-Happily, there arose no occasion for firing at all, as the Royalists,
-under the Earl of Northampton, threw down their arms, and ran away.
-The King, in revenge of Brooke's conduct, bestowed that nobleman's
-castle as an escheat on the Lord of Compton-Winyates, after which the
-patriot, in defiance of this injustice and insult, planted ordnance at
-the gate and keep of his feudal fortress, and on the top of Cæsar's
-tower. Lord Compton, forcibly claiming the royal grant, assailed the
-stronghold left under the charge of Sir Edward Peto, and planted cannon
-on the church to bombard the castle. Dislodged by shots, the besieger
-endeavoured to starve out the garrison; but Sir Edward, with grim
-Puritan resolution, hoisted a flag displaying the figures of a Bible
-and a winding sheet, which presented very significant symbols of the
-objects and spirit of the rising war.[307]
-
-[Sidenote: _Outbreak of War._]
-
-On the afternoon of Monday, the 22nd of August, there occurred the
-world-famous act of setting up the King's standard at Nottingham. After
-dinner, he with his company rode into the town from Leicester Abbey.
-The standard was taken out of the castle and carried into a field
-behind the castle wall. It resembled one of the city streamers used
-at the Lord Mayor's show; it had about twenty supporters; on its top
-hung a flag with the royal arms quartered, and a hand pointing to the
-crown, with the motto, "Give Cæsar his due." It was conducted to the
-field in great state by the King, Prince Rupert, and divers Lords. A
-proclamation respecting the war had been prepared, which his Majesty
-read over, and, seeming to dislike some expressions, called for pen and
-ink, and with his own hand crossed out or altered them; after which,
-when the paper was read, the multitude threw up their hats and cried,
-"God save the King." It was now late in the month of August, the days
-were closing in, and the evening shadows fell on the King and his
-staff as they engaged in this act which finally plunged England into a
-civil war. A violent storm of wind arose and blew down the standard,
-almost as soon as it was unfurled.[308] As the cavaliers, in the dim
-twilight, wheeled off from the spot, did not their hearts beat with a
-sense of something very awful done that night?
-
-[Sidenote: 1642, August.]
-
-As from one end of England to the other rumours of war were current,
-pious men betook themselves to the exercises of devotion; and the two
-Houses of Parliament, on hearing that the standard had been set up at
-Nottingham, published an ordinance for observing, with more than usual
-humiliation, the monthly fast, the services of which were to last from
-_nine in the morning till four in the afternoon_. At the same period,
-a religious service in London, known as "the Morning Exercise," was
-commenced, in connection with which special intercessions were offered
-up on behalf of the Parliamentary forces.[309]
-
-But whilst peaceable Puritans were praying, their armed brethren were
-marching through the country. In the State Paper Office there are
-letters, probably intercepted ones, written by a Roundhead soldier
-named Wharton, reporting to a friend the adventures of the regiment to
-which he belonged. They are so curious and interesting, and throw such
-light on the feelings of a religious nature which existed in the hearts
-of the Parliament soldiers, that we cannot forbear making use of them
-largely in this part of our narrative.
-
-[Sidenote: _Troops on the March._]
-
-He informs us, that in the month of August, 1642, he and his comrades
-marched to Acton, and were belated. Many were constrained to lodge in
-beds "whose feathers were above a yard long." They sallied out into
-the town, and coming to the house of one Penruddock, a Papist, they
-were "basely affronted by him and his dog;" whereupon they entered
-and pillaged the dwelling; and then proceeded to the church, where
-they "defaced the ancient and sacred glazed pictures, and burned the
-holy rails;" the soldiers brought more holy rails to be burnt, and
-abstained from pillaging Lord Portland's house, together with another
-inhabited by Dr. Ducke, only in consequence of a prohibition from their
-commanders. Mention is made of converting the surplice at Hillingdon
-into handkerchiefs, of burning the rails and also a service book at
-Uxbridge, and of similar outrages, perpetrated in other places; as well
-as of soldiers visiting Papists by stealth, and forcing them to give
-loaves and cheeses, which the captors triumphantly carried away on the
-points of their swords. Colonel Hampden, accompanied by many gentlemen
-well-horsed, welcomed these detachments to Aylesbury with great joy;
-after which they marched out with 400 musqueteers and a hundred horse,
-to Watlington, in Oxfordshire. At Great Missenden they had noble
-entertainment from the whole town, and especially from Sir Bryan
-Ireson, and the minister. On Sunday, a pulpit was built in the market
-place of Aylesbury, where they heard "two worthy sermons." Grievous
-complaints are made of their Lieutenant-Colonel, who is described in no
-measured terms, as one whom they all desired that the Parliament would
-depose or God convert, or "the devil fetch away quick."[310]
-
-[Sidenote: 1642, September.]
-
-From Northampton the same correspondent writes informing his friend
-that on Wednesday a fast was kept at Coventry--which is described as
-a city, having four steeples, three churches, and two parishes, and
-not long since, but one priest--where they heard two sermons, but
-before the third was ended an "alarum" came for them to march. By
-ten o'clock they got their regiments together, and about two in the
-morning proceeded towards Northampton.[311] The military pillaged the
-parson of Barby, and brought him away prisoner with his surplice and
-other relics. At Long Buckby the soldiers had hard quarters, insomuch
-that they were glad to "dispossess the very swine, and as many as
-could quartered in the church." Some stragglers sallied into the
-neighbourhood of the town, and returned "in state, clothed in surplice,
-hood, and cap, representing the Bishop of Canterbury." On Friday
-morning, Mr. Obediah Sedgwick "gave a worthy sermon," and Wharton's
-company marched rank and file to hear him. Mr. John Sedgwick had been
-appointed to preach in the afternoon, but news having arrived that
-Prince Rupert had plundered Harborough, and fired some adjacent towns,
-this circumstance spoiled the service. On Sabbath morning Mr. Marshall,
-"that worthy champion of Christ," preached, and in the afternoon Mr.
-Ash officiated. These by their sermons "subdued and satisfied more
-malignant spirits than 1,000 armed men could have done, so that we have
-great hopes of a blessed union."
-
-[Sidenote: _Troops on the March._]
-
-Writing from Worcester (September 26th), Wharton complains of the
-barbarity practised by the cavaliers--relating how they stripped,
-stabbed, and slashed the dead, and then states that on Sabbath morning,
-his fellow-soldiers entered a vault of the college where his Excellency
-was to hear a sermon, and found secreted there eleven barrels of
-gunpowder and a pot of bullets. It is added that his Excellency
-prohibited any soldier to plunder churches or private houses under pain
-of death. In another communication, (dated September 30th), after an
-interesting account of the situation, buildings, and curiosities of the
-city, he paints its moral and spiritual condition, in most frightful
-colours, as so vile, and the country so base, so papistical, so
-atheistical, and abominable that it resembled Sodom, and was the very
-emblem of Gomorrah, and doubtless worse than either Algiers or Malta,
-a very den of thieves, and a refuge for all the hell-hounds in the
-country. Though the citizens cried _peccavi_ their practical motto was
-_iterum faciam_; but they only did as they were taught by Dr. Prideaux,
-lately made bishop, and by other popish priests, who had all run away.
-
-[Sidenote: 1642, October.]
-
-Respecting Hereford, he remarks, October the 7th, "On Sabbath day,
-about the time of morning prayer, we went to the minster, where the
-pipes played and the puppets sang so sweetly, that some of our soldiers
-could not forbear dancing in the holy quire, whereat the _Baalists_
-were sore displeased. The anthem ended, they fell to prayer, and
-prayed devoutly for the King and the bishops, and one of our soldiers
-with a loud voice said, 'What! never a bit for the Parliament,' which
-offended them much more. Not satisfied with this human service we went
-to divine, and, passing by, found shops open and men at work, to whom
-we gave some plain dehortations, and went to hear Mr. Sedgwick, who
-gave us two famous sermons, which much affected the poor inhabitants,
-who wondering, said they never heard the like before, and I believe
-them. The Lord move your hearts to commiserate their distress, and to
-send them some faithful and painful minister, for the revenues of the
-college will maintain many of them. I have sent you the gods of the
-cavaliers enclosed, they are pillage taken from Sir William Russel, of
-which I never yet got the worth of one farthing."
-
-The writer of these letters was a stern Puritan, with an almost equal
-hatred of Prelacy and Popery, and also a fierce Iconoclast, with
-not an atom of regard for what is æsthetical in worship--tearing up
-surplices as the rags of the mother of harlots, and looking with
-grim satisfaction on altar rails crackling in the fire as so much
-superstitious refuse and defilement swept out of the Church of God, and
-meet only to be destroyed.
-
-Contemporary with these epistles is one from a minister at Berwick,
-which presents to us another illustration of what happened in those
-times, by revealing to us his secret troubles--thus indicating the
-violence of feeling prevalent amongst the Roman Catholics of the wild
-Border Country, towards zealous apostles of Puritanism: "Never had
-I more need of your prayers than at present: the Papists are very
-insolent, use me most basely by railing on me, &c. But especially the
-Scottish fugitives, Mr. Sideserfe and his adherents, are so exasperated
-against me for my fidelity, that there is no small fear of my life
-and safety. One in his cups said yesterday, that they would not be
-satisfied until they had my life; but I say with the apostle, my life
-is not dear unto me, that I may finish my course with joy and fulfil
-the ministry which I have received of the Lord Jesus. They rail upon
-the Parliament, and threaten to send for a troop of horse to fetch me
-from Berwick, but my times are in the Lord's hands. I have one hundred
-pounds in London: I would the Parliament had it for and towards the
-defence of the kingdom, if it would be accepted. The Lord maintain His
-own cause, go out with His armies, and make a good end for us, for I
-know your prayers will not be wanting."[312]
-
-As the Parliamentary soldiers were marching up and down the country,
-after the fashion described in Nehemiah Wharton's letters, Royalists
-were working out their will in another kind of lawless way. They had no
-psalm-singing or prayer, they built no pulpits in market-places, and
-if they did not retaliate upon conventicles the puritan treatment of
-parish churches, it was simply because conventicles did not exist, or
-were not within their reach. Royalist excesses were of another order.
-Whitelocke, describing the plunder of his own house, tells us that
-the enemy consumed whatever they could find, lighted their pipes with
-his MSS., carried away his title deeds, littered their horses with
-his wheat sheaves, broke down his park pales, killed his deer, broke
-open his trunks and chests, cut his beds and let out the feathers,
-and seized his coach and horses. In a word, they committed "all the
-mischief and spoil that malice and enmity could provoke barbarous
-mercenaries to commit."[313]
-
-[Sidenote: _Battle of Edgehill._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1642, October.]
-
-The first serious conflict between the two armies happened at Edgehill,
-on Sunday, October the 23rd. The Puritan forces were marching to
-worship at Keynton church, when news reached them of the enemy being
-only two miles distant. Upon hearing this, they proceeded that
-morning--as the autumnal tints dyed the landscape--to a broad field at
-the hill foot, called the Vale of the Red Horse, where, as they took
-up their position, the Royalists came down and arranged their forces
-in front of them. Amongst the cavaliers rode Sir Jacob Astley, whose
-prayer and charge were so characteristic of the bluff piety of the
-best of that class, "O Lord, Thou knowest how busy I must be this day.
-If I forget Thee do not forget me. March on, boys!" Then began the
-rush of pikes, the crack of musketry, and the roar of cannon, which
-lasted till dark. Richard Baxter was preaching that day at Alcester,
-and heard the tumult of the distant fight. Some fugitives ran into the
-town, startling and alarming the inhabitants with the news, that the
-Parliament had been defeated; but early next morning other messengers
-relieved the panic-stricken inhabitants by the assurance that while
-Prince Rupert's men were plundering the waggons of Lord Essex's routed
-wing, the main body with the right wing had prevailed and won the
-day. The preacher walked over to the spot next morning, and found the
-Parliamentary General in possession of the field.[314]
-
-The battle decided nothing, but it nourished the hopes of Parliament.
-A few days afterwards, the House of Lords ordered the Lord Mayor of
-London to summon a Common Hall at five o'clock, when a committee of
-peers and commons met the citizens, and amidst the gathering shadows of
-the afternoon, told the eagerly-listening crowd the story of the fight;
-Lord Say and Sele closing his speech with the exhortation, "Up and be
-doing, and the Lord be with you."[315]
-
-On the 8th of November, the citizens again assembled. Charles was
-moving up to London, Rupert was scouring the suburbs, and within the
-walls there was general alarm. Lord Brooke, who attended the meeting,
-after giving a confused report of what had been done at Edgehill, urged
-his audience to stand up for liberty and religion. "When you shall hear
-the drums beat," he exclaimed, "say not, I beseech you, I am not of the
-train band, nor this, nor that, nor the other--but doubt not to go out
-to the work, and fight courageously, and this shall be the day of your
-deliverance."
-
-[Sidenote: _Church Politics in London._]
-
-A few days later the Royalist forces were at Brentford. The City
-volunteers now rallied round old General Skippon, whose homely words
-went to their hearts: "Come, my boys, my brave boys, let us pray
-heartily and fight heartily. I will run the same fortunes and hazards
-with you. Remember the cause is for God, and for the defence of
-yourselves, your wives, and children." The train bands marched out on
-Sunday, the citizens, after sermon, carrying them provisions.[316]
-At the time when the cavaliers were spurring their horses toward the
-metropolis, a declaration of the two Houses appeared in answer to one
-by his Majesty. In the course of a general argument which the document
-contained, there occurred a disavowal of any intention to reject the
-Book of Common Prayer. It was intended, they said, only to take out
-of it what was evil and justly offensive, and what was considered
-unnecessary and burdensome. They also protested against Brownists and
-Anabaptists, entirely disavowing any sympathy with such persons; though
-they said they agreed with many who were falsely designated by such
-opprobrious appellations. These references were made to the Separatists
-because the King and the Anglicans were always reviling them, sometimes
-in strong terms; for example, the Earl of Newcastle declared that they
-were worse than Papists, and deserted a heavier punishment.[317] Such
-abuse really was pointed at the Commons themselves, who were not only
-suspected but often broadly accused of schismatical predilections. His
-Majesty's wrath also boiled over, and in one of his many declarations
-he told his "loving subjects" of seditious members, who being joined
-with the Anabaptists and Brownists of London, first changed the
-government of the city, and then by their pride and power would fain
-undo the whole kingdom. Pennington, who now occupied the mayoralty, was
-described as guilty of treason, and also as reviling the Prayer Book;
-and as robbing and imprisoning whomsoever he thought fit, and with the
-rabble who composed his faction giving law to Parliament.
-
-[Sidenote: 1642, November.]
-
-The quarrel between the King and the City now became still darker
-and deeper. A letter from the Hague, directed to Secretary Nicholas,
-and brought to London in a Gravesend boat--which was stopped at
-the moment of shooting London Bridge--contained evidence of the
-King's negotiations for bringing over foreign troops: this letter
-consequently was soon printed and circulated through the city. The
-two Houses ordered the clergy to read it in their churches; and the
-devoted Lord Mayor requested them to make it a ground of appeal to the
-parishioners respecting a sum of £30,000 which was about to be raised
-for Parliament. Churchwardens were to hold meetings after service in
-the afternoon on the 27th of November, to raise "a proportionable
-fund,"[318] which we may well imagine that we see accomplished by dim
-candle-light in churches, vestries, and other places, on that wintry
-Sunday night.
-
-[Sidenote: _Church Politics in London._]
-
-The City and the Parliament were thoroughly united this midwinter; and
-therefore the City and the Sovereign continued in violent opposition.
-At a Common Hall, held on the 13th of January--when all the companies
-came in their city habits, and there were present the Committee of both
-Houses, the Lord Mayor and Aldermen, and such a confluence of liverymen
-as had not been seen in the memory of the oldest man--a petition to the
-King was read, and then the royal answer, in which his Majesty asked
-his petitioners whether they believed that the indignities done to the
-Prayer Book, the violent treatment of Episcopal clergymen, and the
-cherishing and countenancing of all manner of sectaries, were likely
-to defend and maintain the Protestant religion. Mr. Pym, being present
-at the meeting, delivered a speech, in which he denied his Majesty's
-allegations, maintaining that the magistrates did not give countenance
-to the sectaries; adding this home-thrust, which Charles so often had
-to meet, that if they did, his Majesty could not consistently object,
-inasmuch as, having sworn to support the Protestant religion, he, in
-the meantime, raised an army of Papists.[319]
-
-[Sidenote: 1643, January.]
-
-Another City meeting followed on the 17th, when Alderman Garroway
-appeared as an advocate of the Episcopal Church; and it will be
-instructive to notice his speech, as shewing the line of remark which
-at the time was adopted on that side of the controversy. "Mr. Pym told
-us," said the Alderman, "there was no proof that my Lord Mayor and the
-other persons named were countenancers of Brownists, Anabaptists, and
-other sectaries. Where should this proof be made? Do we not all know
-this to be true? Are they not all so much countenanced, as there is no
-countenance left for anybody else? Did not my Lord Mayor first enter
-upon his office with a speech against the Book of Common Prayer? Hath
-the Common Prayer ever been read before him? Hath not Captain Venn said
-that his wife could make prayers worth three of any in that book? Oh,
-masters, there have been times that he that should speak against the
-Book of Common Prayer in this city, should not have been put to the
-patience of a legal trial. We were wont to look upon it as the greatest
-treasure and jewel of our religion; and he that should have told us he
-wished well to our religion, and yet would take away the Book of Common
-Prayer, would never have gotten credit. I have been in all the parts
-of Christendom, and have conversed with Christians in Turkey. Why,
-in all the reformed churches there is not anything of more reverence
-than the English liturgy; not our Royal Exchange, or the name of Queen
-Elizabeth, so famous. In Geneva itself I have heard it extolled to the
-skies. I have been three months together by sea, not a day without
-hearing it read twice. The honest mariners then despised all the world
-but the King and the Common Prayer Book. He that should have been
-suspected to wish ill to either of them would have made an ill voyage.
-And let me tell you, they are shrewd youths, those seamen. If they
-once discern that the person of the King is in danger, or the true
-Protestant professed religion, they will shew themselves mad bodies
-before you are aware of it."[320]
-
-Whilst the Alderman was speaking, there arose, according to the
-reporter, much interruption. Citizens hissed, and cried, "No more, no
-more!" It was an hour after he rose to speak ere the uproar ceased. He
-was not to be put down, however, but patiently continued repeating
-the same sentence till people were quiet. At last the Court broke up,
-and every man departed--"so great a company going before and following
-after Alderman Garroway to his house, that the streets were as full
-as at my Lord Mayor's show." Some one recommended them to act with
-discretion. "Discretion!" exclaimed a butcher, "we shall be undone
-with it. Let us proceed as these people have taught. When we asked
-them what we should have in the place of bishops, they told us bishops
-were naught we all knew, and, when they were gone, we should think of
-somewhat that is better in their room. Let us now take away what we
-know is naught, and we shall do well enough after. I owe them a good
-turn for the honour they have done my trade."
-
-[Sidenote: _Popular Preachers in London._]
-
-Whatever truth there might be in the charge that the sectaries were
-encouraged by Pennington and others, certainly Presbyterianism
-received the support of by far the majority of the London citizens.
-Two Presbyterian clergymen at this time enjoyed great popularity in
-the metropolis--Stephen Marshall and Edmund Calamy. Marshall held the
-lectureship of St. Margaret's Church, Westminster. His pulpit talents
-were of a superior order, and were employed in the exhibition of truths
-dear to Puritan affections; but, like others of his age and creed,
-he introduced into his sermons the absorbing questions of the day.
-Knowing that they filled the minds of his hearers, and deeming them of
-vital interest to his country and the Church, he judged that by such
-preaching he really walked in the footsteps of old Hebrew prophets.
-We find Calamy, the historian, admitting that Marshall encouraged the
-taking up arms for securing the Constitution, when it appeared, not
-only to him and his brethren, but to a number of as worthy gentlemen
-as ever sat in St. Stephen's chapel, to be in no small danger.[321]
-Men, in those troublous times, must not be judged by such standards of
-propriety as are upheld amidst the comfortable respectability of our
-own peaceful era; and the same allowance must be made for both sides.
-If we do not wonder at the stern animosity of the Royalist churchman,
-neither should we be surprised at the martial zeal of Parliamentary
-presbyters.
-
-[Sidenote: 1643, January.]
-
-The lectureship at St. Margaret's brought Marshall into close
-connection with the Commons, which naturally, under the circumstances,
-imparted a political tinge to his oratory. But Calamy,[322] being
-perpetual curate of Aldermanbury, had to do with parishioners whose
-spiritual wants came immediately under his notice; and he delighted
-in that experimental strain of discourse which ever touches the
-hearts of men. What made him acceptable to the citizens in his own
-neighbourhood, made him acceptable to the citizens generally. No church
-was so thronged as his. Admired by the Puritan, he was lampooned by
-the Royalist. "Well, who's for Aldermanbury?" asked the latter, in
-one of the scurrilous party tracts, of which some are reprinted in
-well-known collections, and many more are preserved in the British
-Museum. "You would think a phœnix preached there. A foot-ball in
-cold weather is as much followed as Calamy by all his rampant dog-day
-zealots." Reporters, not for the press, but for private edification,
-waited on the divine, as we learn from the pamphleteer, who proceeds to
-exclaim, "Instead of a dumb shew, enter the sermon daubers. Oh! what a
-gracious sight is a silver ink-horn. How blessed a gift is it to write
-short-hand! What necessary implements for a saint are cotton wool
-and blotting-paper. These dabblers turn the Church into a scrivener's
-shop. A country fellow, last term, mistook it for the six clerks'
-office."[323] This vulgar ridicule at once testifies to the popularity
-of Calamy, illustrates the manners and customs of the time in places of
-worship, and shews that, whatever might be the religious extravagances
-of some Presbyterians, they were more than matched by the godless
-ridicule of people who claimed to be exceedingly zealous for Episcopacy.
-
-[Sidenote: _Popular Preachers in London._]
-
-Coincident with the increasing popularity of these preachers, the
-actual outbreak of the Civil Wars, and the excitement in London
-respecting ecclesiastical affairs, were certain measures adopted by
-Parliament for abolishing Episcopacy. The Scotch did not fail to
-press this subject most earnestly upon their English brethren. They
-looked at it in the lurid light which their own annals had thrown on
-the institution, and in their view it had become identified with the
-arrogance and intolerance of Popery and Anglicanism. Unable to rest
-till England was saved from what they considered to be the secret of
-its weakness, and the precursor of its ruin, the General Assembly of
-Scotland sent a letter to Parliament, urging a thorough reformation,
-with a view to "one confession of faith, one directory of worship, one
-public catechism, and one form of Church government."[324]
-
-The answer of the English Parliament was both cautious and promising.
-No assurance was returned that organic unity with the Scotch should be
-attempted, but a hope was expressed of more free communion in worship,
-of security against Papists and "other sectaries," and of the gathering
-together in England of an Assembly of learned Divines. The fate of
-prelacy, however, was sealed by the following important declaration,
-which was embodied in the answer:--
-
-"That this Government by Archbishops, Bishops, their Chancellors and
-Commissaries, Deans and Chapters, Archdeacons, and other ecclesiastical
-officers depending upon the hierarchy, is evil, and justly offensive
-and burdensome to the kingdom, a great impediment to reformation and
-growth of religion, very prejudicial to the State and Government of
-this kingdom; and that we are resolved that the same shall be taken
-away."[325]
-
-[Sidenote: 1643, January.]
-
-On the 30th of the following December, a Bill for the utter abolition
-of Episcopacy was read a first time;[326] and on the 26th of January
-following, 1643, the Bill was reported in the House of Lords as having
-been approved by the committee and read the third time. What had been
-threatened for nearly two years was done at last in a few hours. The
-emergency of the moment, and the critical state of the war, caused now
-the hasty passing of the measure, for which a long train of events had
-opened the way.
-
-Other acts of a like complexion gather around this central one. On the
-23rd of December, an order was given to secure the library, writings,
-and goods in Lambeth House, belonging to the see of Canterbury, and to
-take the keys of the palace, which was now to be used as a prison. On
-the 3rd and 5th of January, a similar disposal was made of Ely House
-and the palace of the Bishop of London, near St. Paul's. On the 30th
-of December, the Lords and Commons, ignoring altogether the laws and
-customs of the Episcopal Church, ordered a clergyman to be instituted
-to the vicarage of Chard, in Somersetshire; and on January the 7th, a
-Bill against pluralities and non-residence received a third reading by
-the Lords.[327]
-
-[Sidenote: _Negotiations at Oxford._]
-
-Be it remembered, that all these Bills, after passing both Houses,
-remained without Royal assent; and therefore could not be regarded
-as Acts of Parliament according to the principles of the English
-Constitution: a circumstance which, of course, the Sovereign and the
-Royalist party took care to urge against them.
-
-The Scotch Presbyterians, after having failed in their attempts at
-the beginning of the year 1642 to mediate between the King and the
-Parliament, continued anxiously to watch the progress of affairs in
-England, with a view to the accomplishment of that union between the
-two countries upon which they had already set their hearts. Willing,
-and even anxious, to take a part in the war, they waited until such
-applications for aid should be made by either of the belligerents as
-might seem most likely to terminate the strife in favour of their
-own Church schemes. Doubtless they would have helped the King, if,
-on the one hand, he would have renounced Episcopacy and embraced
-Presbyterianism, or if, on the other hand, Parliament had opposed
-Presbyterianism and maintained Episcopacy. But Charles despaired of
-their assistance, knowing well the religious antipathies existing
-between himself and them; and Parliament at first forbore to solicit
-their military help, not then feeling their very great need of it.
-
-Even when a turn in affairs made it appear valuable, Parliament did
-not ask for it with as much earnestness as the northern brethren
-would have wished. It is plain, from Baillie's letters, that he and
-his friends were readier to draw the sword for the true Kirk on this
-side the Tweed than the English at present were to enter on a military
-alliance with Scotland for ecclesiastical objects. After a diplomatic
-lull--in which for a long time, says the worthy man, we "lay verie
-calm and secure,"[328] and when intrigues amongst the Scotch Royalists
-filled the Presbyterian magnates with alarm--they turned their thoughts
-towards Oxford, and sent Commissioners to treat with the King.
-
-[Sidenote: 1643, January.]
-
-The Earl of Loudon, now Chancellor of Scotland, came to Oxford as the
-principal lay commissioner, and Alexander Henderson accompanied him
-as an ecclesiastical one. The latter bore a petition from the General
-Assembly, prepared by himself. This petition dwelt upon the insolence
-and presumption of Roman Catholics, and entreated that there might
-be an established uniformity in religion. It was urged that, since
-prelatical government had been taken away, a government by assemblies,
-as in other reformed kirks, should follow.[329]
-
-[Sidenote: _Negotiations at Oxford._]
-
-Another embassy, with somewhat different designs, reached the same
-place soon afterwards. It included the Earl of Northumberland, with
-other noblemen and gentlemen, Bulstrode Whitelocke, who relates
-particulars of the visit, being one of them.[330] They were sent by
-the Parliament to confer with the King for an ultimate peace with an
-immediate cessation of arms, upon terms which were strictly prescribed
-in their commission. These ambassadors were not plenipotentiaries,
-but they were selected for their known moderation, as persons likely,
-on that account, to be acceptable to the monarch. They travelled with
-the King's safe conduct in a style which was no doubt very superior to
-that of the emissaries from the North. They had "six gallant horses in
-every coach," and the whole party was attended by a number of servants
-on horseback. This imposing procession, however, failed to awe the
-"rascality of the town;" for they, and even "some of better rank but
-like quality," reviled the distinguished visitors as so many rebels
-and traitors. However, Charles received them all in the gardens of
-Christ Church very graciously, and held out his hand for each to kiss.
-Immediately they proceeded to business, and the Earl of Northumberland,
-"with a sober and stout carriage," read to the King the propositions
-of the two Houses. The Monarch began to interrupt. The Earl smartly
-replied, "Your Majesty will give me leave to proceed." Charles
-stuttered out, "I--I," and then paused, allowing the bold nobleman to
-have his way.
-
-[Sidenote: 1643, February.]
-
-The ecclesiastical proposals were as follows:--[331]
-
-(1) "That your Majesty will be pleased to give your royal assent unto
-the Bill for taking away superstitious innovations;
-
-(2) "To the Bill for the utter abolishing and taking away of all
-archbishops, bishops, their chancellors and commissaries, deans,
-sub-deans, deans and chapters, archdeacons, canons and prebendaries,
-and all chanters, chancellors, treasurers, sub-treasurers, succentors
-and sacrists, and all vicars choral and choristers, old vicars, and
-new vicars of any cathedral or collegiate church, and all other their
-under officers out of the Church of England;
-
-(3) "To the Bill against scandalous ministers;
-
-(4) "To the Bill against pluralities; and
-
-(5) "To the Bill of consultation to be had with godly, religious, and
-learned Divines. That your Majesty will be pleased to promise to pass
-such other good Bills for settling of Church government, as, upon
-consultation with the Assembly of the said Divines, shall be resolved
-on by both Houses of Parliament, and by them be presented to your
-Majesty."
-
-To these five propositions no explicit reply was given by the King;
-but, in reference to religion generally, he said that, as he would
-"readily consent (having done so heretofore) to the execution of all
-laws already made, and to any good Acts to be made for the suppressing
-of Popery, and for the firm settling of the Protestant religion, now
-established by law; so he desired that a good Bill might be framed for
-the better preserving of the Book of Common Prayer from the scorn and
-violence of Brownists, Anabaptists, and other sectaries, with such
-clauses for the ease of tender consciences as his Majesty hath formerly
-offered."
-
-Such an answer virtually negatived what the Parliament proposed. It
-does not seem that any debate arose on the ecclesiastical points
-between the King and the Commissioners. Their diplomacy entirely
-referred to the question of a cessation of arms, which, after all,
-could not be effected; and the embassage returned to Westminster
-without accomplishing any part of their object.
-
-The Scotch were not more successful; but in the King's council their
-petition created much discussion, the main question being, "What answer
-shall be given to these gentlemen from the North?"
-
-[Sidenote: _Answer to the Scottish Petition._]
-
-"Many of the Lords," says Clarendon, "were of opinion that a short
-answer would be best, that should contain nothing but a rejection of
-the proposition, without giving any reason; no man seeming to concur
-with his Majesty, with which he was not satisfied, and replied with
-some sharpness upon what had been said. Upon which the Lord Falkland
-replied, having been before of that mind, desiring that no reasons
-might be given; and upon that occasion answered many of those reasons
-the King had urged, as not valid to support the subject, with a little
-quickness of wit (as his notions were always sharp, and expressed
-with notable vivacity), which made the King warmer than he used to
-be; reproaching all who were of that mind with want of affection for
-the Church; and declaring that he would have the substance of what he
-had said, or of the like nature, digested into his answer; with which
-reprehension all sat very silent, having never undergone the like
-before. Whereupon, the King, recollecting himself, and observing that
-the Chancellor of the Exchequer had not yet spoken, called upon him to
-deliver his opinion, adding, that he was sure he was of his Majesty's
-mind with reference to religion and the Church."[332]
-
-[Sidenote: 1643, February.]
-
-From Clarendon's narrative we discover, that with all Falkland's
-vivacity, he shewed lukewarmness in the cause of Episcopacy, and that
-the zeal of the King on its behalf went beyond that of his advisers.
-The historian reports his own speech, in which he recommended that
-reasons should be given, but not in the way his royal master wished.
-The result may be seen in a paper in the King's name, probably drawn
-up by the Chancellor.[333] No concessions, it was stated, could be
-made until propositions in a digested form should be submitted to the
-free debate of both Houses. The King would not be unwilling to call a
-synod of godly and learned Divines, regularly chosen according to the
-laws and constitutions of the kingdom, to which representatives from
-Scotland might be admitted--an Assembly which, in fact, would be a
-Convocation, whose spirit and proceedings were very well known. He gave
-no opinion on any Bills offered to him, but only expressed his wonder
-that the royal judgment should be prejudged, and that the Divine anger
-should be threatened for his non-consent. A sentence occurred towards
-the end which, though by no means agreeable to those for whom it was
-intended, certainly contained a large amount of truth. "Nor are you a
-little mistaken, if either you believe the generality of this nation to
-desire a change of Church government, or that most of those who desire
-it, desire by it to introduce that which you only esteem a reformation,
-but are as unwilling to what you call the yoke of Christ and obedience
-to the Gospel, as those whom you call profane and worldly men, and so
-equally averse both to Episcopacy and Presbytery; for if they should
-prevail in this particular, the abolition of the one would be no let
-to the other, nor would your hearts be less grieved, your expectations
-less frustrated, your hopes less ashamed, or your reformation more
-secured."
-
-[Sidenote: _Treatment of the Scotch._]
-
-The Scotch mission ended in disappointment. Much hope had been built
-upon the King's friendliness towards Mr. Henderson during the royal
-visit to Edinburgh. All remembered the minister's standing next the
-royal chair in sermon time, and the loving cup which passed round
-at the banquet. People fancied "Mr. Henderson would do wonders with
-the King;" and perhaps the King thought he could do wonders with Mr.
-Henderson, for he strove to persuade him of the justice and necessity
-of taking up arms against the Parliament. But as that gentleman did
-not find the King so pliable as he wished; neither did the King find
-that gentleman so "credulous as he expected." Charles "did at once
-change his countenance," we are informed, when he discovered that his
-Scotch chaplain had written the petition which he had received, and
-that the document had been already circulated throughout the kingdom.
-Reports also had reached the royal ears of certain violent sermons
-and prayers uttered in Edinburgh, which tended to make the visitors
-at Oxford "verie unsavourie." Their life in the University city--so
-they complained--was uncomfortably spent. They were wearied out with
-delays; they had no private nor familiar conference, but all was done
-"in public, in a very harsh way;" letters sent to them by their friends
-were opened; and, in addition to this great insult, they were abused by
-all sorts of people, and they even feared that they should be poisoned
-or stabbed. "This policy," adds Baillie, "was like the rest of our
-unhappy malcontents' wisdom extremely foolish; for it was very much for
-the King's ends to have given to our Commissioners far better words and
-a more pleasant countenance."[334]
-
-
-
-
- [Illustration]
-
- CHAPTER XII.
-
-
-[Sidenote: _Westminster Assembly._]
-
-Some desire for a conference of Divines manifested itself immediately
-after the opening of the Long Parliament. Baillie had scarcely reached
-London, on his first mission, in 1640, when he began to speak of an
-Assembly in England, which was to be called together to perfect the
-work of reform; though, with characteristic wariness, the Scotch
-Commissioner said that such an Assembly "at this time would spoil
-all," because the clergy were so "very corrupt."[335] Dering, in the
-debates of October, 1641, as we have seen, recommended a synod of grave
-Divines; and the same measure was sanctioned by the grand Remonstrance
-in the winter of the same year. The Puritan clergy also, in a petition
-presented on the 20th of December, intreated that the consideration of
-ecclesiastical matters might be entrusted to a free synod, differing
-in constitution from the Convocation of the clergy.[336] Other proofs
-of the prevailing wish might be adduced. At length, on the 15th of
-October, 1642, a Bill was introduced into Parliament for the purpose
-so much desired; and on its passing through a committee of the Commons
-two significant resolutions were adopted; first, that the vote
-against Bishops should be appended to the Bill; and secondly, that the
-Parliament did not intend wholly to abrogate the Prayer Book. These
-additions indicated the existence of an anti-episcopal spirit, together
-with a lingering love for the ancient liturgy. Revolutionary ideas were
-still kept in check by conservative instincts, and whilst the tide of
-change was at the flood, sweeping the Church forward to a new position,
-the legislators were not prepared to let it drift away entirely from
-its ancient moorings. For want of the royal assent, this Bill for
-an assembly, after having passed both Houses, was, constitutionally
-considered, a dead letter. So, to remedy as far as possible the
-defect--the country having reached the crisis of a revolution, and the
-King's concurrence in the measure being hopeless--Parliament, convinced
-of its urgent importance, boldly issued an ordinance, bearing date
-the 12th of June, 1643, commanding that an Assembly of Divines should
-be convened at Westminster on the 1st of July following. The document
-recognized the Church of England as still undestroyed, by alluding
-to "many things in its liturgy, discipline, and government requiring
-further and more perfect reformation." The theory of proceeding was not
-to overturn and ruin one establishment first and then to create and
-fashion another, but only to alter that which continued in existence;
-yet the resolution to abolish prelatical government as soon as
-possible, being cited in the ordinance, that instrument, though it did
-not in itself go so far as formally to extinguish episcopal rule, left
-no doubt of a foregone conclusion in the mind of the legislators that
-an end must be put to the ancient hierarchy. Ecclesiastical government
-was to be settled so as to be most agreeable to God's Word, and most
-adapted to procure and preserve the peace of the Church at home, as
-well as to promote nearer agreement with the Church in Scotland, and
-other reformed communions abroad. This document, without mentioning
-Presbyterianism, plainly pointed to it.
-
-[Sidenote: 1643, July.]
-
-Thirty lay assessors were named first, and the priority of their
-enumeration indicates that the lay element occupied no subordinate
-place.[337]
-
-Some of the persons selected were so eminent that it was impossible
-they should not occupy a very influential position in the conference to
-which they were called. John Selden, Bulstrode Whitelocke, Oliver St.
-John, Sir Benjamin Rudyard, John Pym, and Sir Harry Vane were of the
-number. Selden and Whitelocke frequently attended, and took a leading
-part in some of the debates.
-
-[Sidenote: _Constitution of the Assembly._]
-
-Lay names were followed by those of one hundred and twenty one Divines.
-Episcopalians were not excluded. Ussher, of world-wide celebrity,
-Archbishop of Armagh and Bishop of Carlisle; Brownrigg, Bishop of
-Exeter; Westfield, of Bristol; and Prideaux, of Worcester, are to be
-found on the roll, with five more persons included, who afterwards
-became Bishops.[338] These appointments would fall in with the views of
-such Members of Parliament as still wished for a modified Episcopacy.
-But names of this order, whilst they saved appearances and gave
-additional weight to the convention, were too few to tell in divisions;
-nor could any Episcopalians, identified with a sinking cause, and
-unbacked by any strong party amongst the Commons, expect to have much
-influence in the proposed deliberations. A small band of persons,
-called _Independents_, of whom we shall have to speak at large, were
-also amongst the theologians summoned: but what they lacked in numbers
-and in position was compensated for by force of character and vigour of
-intellect, and by what availed even more--the enjoyment of friendship
-with those who were destined ere long to guide the entire affairs of
-the kingdom. Indeed, according to Calamy--a safe authority for the
-statement--one of the Independent brethren, Philip Nye, had "a great
-concern in choosing the members of the Assembly of Divines who were
-summoned from all parts."[339]
-
-The decided, nay, the overwhelming majority of those summoned to
-Westminster were Presbyterians. For that party in England had by this
-time been greatly multiplied, and it had also much power in Parliament,
-and derived advantage from the favour naturally manifested towards it
-by the Scotch.
-
-[Sidenote: 1643, July.]
-
-The Assembly of Divines was appointed by secular authority: in this
-respect, however, it only resembled other ecclesiastical conventions.
-Œcumenical synods, as they are ostentatiously called, have in
-point of fact been "Imperial gatherings."[340] That they owed their
-existence to the civil power was a necessity arising from the union
-between Church and State; and the necessity is recognized in the
-twenty-first Article of the Church of England, where it is said that
-"General councils may not be gathered together, but by the commandment
-and will of princes." Convocations of clergy according to this
-Article, and according to the fundamental principles of the English
-constitution, are entirely dependent upon the Crown. Parliament,
-therefore, by constituting the Westminster Assembly, so as to make it
-rest on a political basis, did not invade the ecclesiastical rights
-of the Establishment, it only usurped the ecclesiastical power of
-the Crown. And it may be worth observing that the same authority,
-in selecting the place and time of meeting, in making provision for
-those whom it called together, and in paying their expenses,[341]
-did but adopt the policy of Constantine at the Council of Nicæa. But
-the Parliament went still further in the appointment and control of
-the Westminster Assembly than emperors and kings had ever done in
-reference to Œcumenical councils and national convocations.[342] It
-first nominated the individuals who were to be members, and then it
-took the direction of affairs entirely into its own hands, without
-relaxing its hold for a moment: the carefully-worded warrant allowing
-no liberty beyond this--that the Divines should consult and advise
-on matters and things _proposed to them_ by both or either of the
-Houses, and give their advice and counsel as often as required; and
-in all cases of difficulty refer to the authority which had called
-them together. A clause is inserted forbidding the assumption of any
-ecclesiastical jurisdiction, or any power whatever, except that which
-the ordinance carefully defined. And also--in this respect, exceeding
-the regal control over Convocation--Parliament chose the Prolocutor of
-the Assembly, and filled up vacancies when they occurred. Nor should it
-be forgotten that the State exercised in reference to ecclesiastical
-matters all the functions which we have described, not because there
-remained no Episcopal clergy to elect members of Convocation, nor
-because there existed no Presbyteries to delegate members to a General
-Assembly, but simply because a perfect horror of ecclesiastical
-despotism had taken possession of the minds of those who had now become
-the civil rulers of the realm.
-
-[Sidenote: _Meeting of the Assembly._]
-
-On the day appointed (Saturday, July 1, 1643), many of the Assembly,
-together with a large congregation of other persons, gathered within
-the walls of the grand national abbey of Westminster, "both Houses
-of Parliament being present."[343] The Prolocutor, Dr. Twiss--of
-whom it was said that the school, not the pulpit, was his proper
-element--preached from John xiv. 18, "I will not leave you
-comfortless, I will come to you;" from which text he exhorted his
-hearers faithfully to discharge their high calling to the glory of God
-and the honour of His Church; and, whilst lamenting that the royal
-assent was wanting to give them comfort and encouragement, the preacher
-hoped through the efficacy of their prayers that the sanction of his
-Majesty might in due time be obtained, and that a happy union might be
-accomplished between King and Parliament. After the conclusion of the
-discourse, the Divines and other members ascended the broad flight of
-steps leading to Henry the Seventh's chapel, where, upon the roll being
-called over, sixty-nine persons answered to their names.
-
-[Sidenote: 1643, July.]
-
-[Sidenote: _Meeting of the Assembly._]
-
-The vaulted roof springing from the clustered pillars in the
-walls--like branches of lofty trees interlaced together, forming
-a rich canopy of leaves, while the bossed pendants resemble
-stalactites--though appearing to most persons now, even those who
-feel strong Puritan sympathies, a monument of exquisite taste and
-consummate skill--would be regarded by those who on this occasion
-assembled beneath its shadow, as mainly, if not exclusively, a symbol
-of that "petrifaction of Christianity" which to their great grief had
-over-arched mediæval Christendom. Dressed in black cloaks, and wearing
-bands, and skull caps, as they walked over pavements heretofore trodden
-by prelates and priests in mitres and copes, they would be reminded
-of what they deemed superstitious and idolatrous worship; and as
-they now met in assembly where Convocations had before been wont to
-gather,[344] they would think of obnoxious canons, and of Archbishop
-Laud, with feelings of pain--if not of bitterness--such as the charms
-of Gothic architecture had no power to subdue. Their principles,
-and the principles of the Church before the Reformation, were in
-mutual opposition. And, as we watch the Divines entering within those
-gates--well described by one who himself came from the land of the
-Pilgrim Fathers, as "richly and delicately wrought, and turning heavily
-upon their hinges, as if proudly reluctant to admit the feet of common
-mortals into this most gorgeous of sepulchers"[345]--we may fancy that
-the gates, if they had sympathy with those who caused them to be hung
-there, would open that morning more reluctantly than they had ever done
-before. Altogether, the scene and the purpose for which the Assembly
-met marked a new era, not only in the history of the Abbey but in the
-annals of the Church and the nation.
-
-[Sidenote: 1643, July.]
-
-Westfield, Bishop of Bristol, and some few other Episcopalians out
-of the number summoned, were present at this first meeting; and, as
-Fuller says, they "seemed the only Nonconformists amongst them for
-their conformity, whose gowns and canonical habits differed from
-all the rest."[346] The majority of the Episcopal Divines, however,
-declined to attend, because the Assembly had been prohibited by royal
-proclamation; and because, not being chosen by the clergy, it had no
-proper representative character. They objected to it also on account of
-its containing a mixture of the laity; whilst all its members, whether
-divines or laymen, were of the Puritan stamp, and were, according to
-the terms of the ordinance which gave it existence, virtually pledged
-to the demolition of the hierarchy. The reply which was afterwards
-given by the Parliament to the objection that the Assembly had not been
-ecclesiastically elected, instead of mending the matter in the eyes of
-a High Churchman, would only make it appear all the worse; for the
-Parliament plainly declared the Assembly to be no national synod or
-representative body at all, but only a committee of advice;--adding
-that the civil power had a right to choose its own counsel, and ought
-not to be dependent for that upon the nomination of clergymen.[347] For
-the reasons just indicated, the few Episcopalians who at first appeared
-in the Assembly speedily dropped off. Brownrigg, Bishop of Exeter,
-sent a letter on the 12th of July, excusing absence in consequence of
-"the tie of the Vice-Chancellorship in the University that lay upon
-him:" probably there were other ties which hindered his Lordship's
-attendance, but what they were he did not care to specify.
-
-[Sidenote: _Parliamentary Directions._]
-
-On Thursday, July the 6th, the Divines and lay assessors assembled
-again, when they received further directions from Parliament of a
-very precise description. The directions were, that two assessors or
-vice-chairmen should be associated with the Prolocutor to supply his
-place in case of absence; that scribes or secretaries should keep a
-record of the proceedings; and that these officers should be Henry
-Roborough and Adoniram Byfield, Divines not members of the Assembly;
-that every member, on his entrance, should make a solemn protestation
-not to maintain any thing but what he believed to be truth; that
-no question should be resolved on the day it was propounded; that
-whatever any one undertook to prove to be necessary, he should make
-good from Scripture; that no one should continue to speak after the
-Prolocutor had silenced him, unless the Assembly desired him to
-proceed; that the members should have liberty to record their dissent
-from the conclusions adopted by the majority; and that all things
-agreed upon and prepared for the Parliament should be openly read and
-allowed.[348] The bye-laws which were to regulate their proceedings
-were thus so minutely prescribed, that very little indeed was left
-for the Divines to perform in the way of preliminary arrangement. All
-which they actually did in this respect was to nominate Mr. White[349]
-and Dr. Burgess as assessors, and to resolve that the sittings should
-be opened with prayer; that afterwards the names of members should
-be called over; that the hour of meeting in the morning should be
-ten o'clock, the afternoon being reserved for committees; and that
-three of the Divines should officiate weekly as chaplains--one to the
-House of Lords, another to the House of Commons, and a third to the
-Committee of both kingdoms. Still further, to illustrate how, with this
-modicum of liberty in relation to the management of its own business,
-the Westminster Assembly found itself under the authority of its
-neighbouring masters, especially those in St. Stephen's Chapel--we may
-observe that on the 27th of July an order from both Houses was read,
-requiring a letter to be written to the United Provinces in behalf of
-Ireland. On the 28th of July an ordinance from the Commons followed,
-for appointing a committee to examine plundered ministers, with a
-view to their admission into sequestrated livings; and on the 14th of
-August there came a command to send divers metropolitan divines up and
-down the country, to stir up the zeal of the people in the cause of
-patriotism, and to vindicate the justice of Parliament in taking up
-arms for the defence of its liberties.[350]
-
-[Sidenote: 1643, October.]
-
-The first subject of a strictly theological kind submitted to
-the Assembly was the revision of the Thirty-nine Articles of the
-Church of England. A sub-committee spent ten weeks in debating upon
-the first fifteen; and the result appeared in a draft of proposed
-alterations.[351] In the middle of October, we discover the Divines,
-through the dim light thrown on their proceedings by Lightfoot's
-Journal, "busy upon the sixteenth Article," and upon "that clause of it
-which mentioneth departing from grace," when an order came from both
-Houses of Parliament, commanding them speedily to take in hand the
-discipline and liturgy of the Church.
-
-The circumstances of the country shaped the proceedings of the Divines
-no less than those of the Legislators. It may be said of the new system
-they were engaged to construct that--"the street" of the city was
-built again, and "the wall, even in troublous times." War had begun to
-kindle its fires far and wide; and it is necessary for us to turn our
-attention to military affairs and the fortunes of the battle-field, in
-order that we may understand what followed in the Westminster Assembly.
-
-A heavy blow had befallen the Parliament in the month of March, 1643,
-when Lord Brooke had been killed at the siege of Lichfield. He had
-prepared for an assault on the Royalist troops, who were in possession
-of the cathedral; and just as he was standing under the porch of
-a house, and directing a battery against the Close gate--the spot
-is still pointed out to the visitor in that quiet little city--the
-Puritan commander was shot by a musket ball. His death created a great
-sensation, and was differently interpreted by contemporaries, according
-to their political and ecclesiastical opinions. Laud pronounced it a
-Divine judgment for Brooke's sins. Parliamentarians celebrated it as a
-glorious sacrifice offered up in the cause of patriotism and religion.
-
-[Sidenote: _John Hampden._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1643, June.]
-
-Another loss had to be sustained in the month of June. Early one
-Sunday morning, Prince Rupert, with a skirmishing party, drew up his
-men in order of battle amidst the standing corn of Chalgrove Field.
-John Hampden, who had spent the night in the immediate neighbourhood,
-adventured, contrary to the wishes of his friends, to throw himself
-into this at first apparently unimportant action. With characteristic
-bravery, he led an attack, and, on the first charge at the head of his
-troops, received in his shoulder two carbine balls. He rode off the
-field, "his head bending down, and his hands resting on his horse's
-neck." Though fainting with pain, he cleared a brook on the road to
-Thame, and on reaching that town had his wounds dressed. Conscious
-of danger, he first despatched letters of counsel to Parliament, and
-then prepared for his departure from the world. After six days of
-severe suffering, and about seven hours before his death, he received
-the Lord's supper, declaring that, "though he could not away with
-the governance of the Church by bishops, and did utterly abominate
-the scandalous lives of some clergymen, he thought its doctrine in
-the greater part primitive and conformable to God's word, as in
-holy Scripture revealed." Dr. Giles, the rector of Chinnor, and Dr.
-Spurstow, the chaplain of his regiment, attended him in his last
-moments. He died in prayer, uttering, "O Lord, God of Hosts! great is
-Thy mercy, just and holy are Thy dealings unto us sinful men. Save
-me, O Lord, if it be Thy good will, from the jaws of death; pardon my
-manifold transgressions. O Lord, save my bleeding country. Have these
-realms in Thy special keeping. Confound and level in the dust those
-who would rob the people of their liberty and lawful prerogative. Let
-the King see his error, and turn the hearts of his wicked counsellors
-from the malice and wickedness of their designs. Lord Jesus, receive
-my soul! O Lord, save my country! O Lord, be merciful to...." As he
-uttered these words, his speech failed, and then, falling backwards, he
-expired. His remains were conveyed to the churchyard of Great Hampden,
-close beside the old family mansion, where the patriot had spent so
-much of his life in the studies and the sports of a country gentleman.
-Through lanes under the beech-covered chalk hills of the Chilterns,
-a detachment of his favourite troops, bare-headed, carried him to
-his last resting-place--their arms reversed, their drums and ensigns
-muffled--mournfully chanting, as they slowly marched along, the dirge
-from the Book of Psalms: "Lord, thou hast been our dwelling-place in
-all generations;--thou turnest man to destruction;--thou carriest them
-away as with a flood;--they are as a sleep; in the morning they are
-like grass which groweth up, in the morning it flourisheth and groweth
-up, in the evening it is cut down and withereth." When the funeral
-was over, the soldiers, returning from the village church to their
-quarters, made the green woods and the white hills that summer day
-resound to the beautiful prayer and the cheerful song, so appropriate
-to their present circumstances: "Judge me, O God, and plead my cause
-against an ungodly nation. O, deliver me from the deceitful and unjust
-man! For thou art the God of my strength, why dost thou cast me off?
-Why go I mourning because of the oppression of the enemy? O send out
-thy light and thy truth: let them lead me; let me bring them unto thy
-holy hill, and to thy tabernacles. Then will I go unto the altar of
-God, unto God my exceeding joy: yea, upon the harp will I praise thee,
-O God, my God. Why art thou cast down, O my soul? and why art thou
-disquieted within me? Hope in God, for I shall yet praise him, who is
-the health of my countenance and my God."[352]
-
-[Sidenote: _John Hampden._]
-
-The death of Hampden was bewailed even more than that of Brooke. "The
-memory of this deceased Colonel," said the _Weekly Intelligencer_, "is
-such that in no age to come but it will more and more be had in honour
-and esteem; a man so religious, and of that prudence, judgment, temper,
-valour, and integrity, that he hath left few his like behind him." The
-old newspaper was right in its prediction of Hampden's growing fame.
-
-Other calamities overtook the Parliament cause. From the spring of the
-year, success had followed the King's banners. Royalists occupied Devon
-and Dorset; and the Earl of Wilmot had beaten Waller at Lansdowne and
-at Devizes. Summer saw the defeat of Lord Fairfax in Yorkshire. But
-Charles' victories at that period culminated in the taking of Bradford,
-after the battle of Atherton Moor, and in the capture of Bristol just
-before the siege of Gloucester.
-
-Bradford and Gloucester were Puritan towns, beleaguered by what they
-looked upon as prelatical armies; and the incidents connected with
-the siege of each serve at once to bring out some curious features
-in the memorable strife, and to shew the declining condition of the
-Parliament, at the time when the Westminster Assembly held its first
-sittings. Bradford had suffered assault so early as December, 1642.
-The Royalists, who were encamped at Bowling Hill, had selected Sunday
-morning, as the Puritans were attending church, to plant their guns
-against the steeple; but a snowfall, the bursting of a cannon, and
-other misadventures on the part of the besiegers, for a time saved
-the besieged. The following midsummer, the church, which was still
-the prize in dispute, endured "many a shake," whilst the people hung
-up wool-packs by the side of the building, only to see, however,
-almost immediately afterwards, the ropes cut down by the shots of the
-enemy.[353]
-
-On Lord's-day morning, the Royalists beat drums for a parley, and spent
-all the day in removing their guns "into the mouth of the town," the
-inhabitants being so reduced that they had little ammunition, and for
-their matches were compelled to use "untwisted cords dipped in oil."
-About sunset the parley ended, when a shot killed three men who were
-sitting on a bench; and during all night the valley shone with the
-flash of artillery. When resistance became useless, the vanquished
-thought that the Earl of Newcastle, who commanded the King's troops,
-would shew them no mercy; but he gave them quarter, on the ground, as
-was superstitiously rumoured, that an apparition on a Sunday night had
-pulled the clothes from off his bed several times, crying in tones
-of lamentation, "Pity poor Bradford." "A young Puritan gentleman,"
-reported as having attempted to break through the enemy's lines, became
-famous in after days as David Clarkson, the Nonconformist divine.[354]
-
-[Sidenote: 1643, August.]
-
-[Sidenote: _Siege of Gloucester._]
-
-The siege of Gloucester was commenced on August the 10th, 1643. The
-Parliamentary committee, believing that the metropolis would not be
-safe if Gloucester were taken, sent a strong force for its relief,
-under the Earl of Essex, for the better furtherance of the service,
-and required all persons "dwelling within the lines of communication"
-immediately to shut up their shops, and to keep them closed till
-the beleaguered should be delivered. The King, sitting down about a
-quarter of a mile distant from the old cathedral city, despatched two
-heralds to demand surrender. They returned to the royal camp with two
-men, lean and pale, of "bald visages," and in such strange garb and
-carriage--according to Clarendon[355]--that the merriest were made sad,
-and yet even the grave were provoked to laughter. These poor Puritan
-envoys, whom the Royalist historian saw with jaundiced eyes, manifested
-not a little bravery and firmness, when they delivered a message from
-their fellow-townsmen in these memorable words--"We do keep this city
-according to our oath and allegiance, to and for the use of his Majesty
-and his royal posterity; and do accordingly conceive ourselves wholly
-bound to obey the commands of his Majesty, signified by both Houses
-of Parliament; and are resolved, by God's help, to keep this city
-accordingly."[356]
-
-[Sidenote: 1643, September.]
-
-The Gloucester men, made of this sturdy mettle, forthwith set to
-work and raised entrenchments; and the Gloucester women seem to have
-caught the spirit of their husbands and fathers, for matrons and
-maids wrought all the afternoon in the little mead, fetching in turf
-to repair the works, whilst the soldiers, on the other side, cut off
-the pipes which supplied the city conduits, and diverted the waters
-which drove the mills. On Sunday, which seems to have been with the
-Royalists a favourite day for such work, the engineers planted pieces
-of ordnance on a battery at Gawdy Green, and thence plied their shots;
-but breaches were no sooner made in the fortifications than they were
-mended, through the untiring energy and courage of the inhabitants, who
-employed wool-sacks in repairing the damage done. From day to day for
-three whole weeks, some incident occurred to alarm or encourage the
-people, till, on Sunday, September the 3rd, when they were at church,
-news came that the besiegers had planted a store of cannon-baskets at
-the east gate, and that it was supposed they intended there to spring
-a mine. The Puritan preacher hearing this, dismissed his audience
-without any sermon, when the men, equally prepared to pray or fight,
-immediately began to line the houses over the east gate, and to make a
-strong breastwork across the street.
-
-The renowned William Chillingworth, we may observe in passing, "was
-in Charles's camp, engaged in bringing his classical knowledge to
-bear upon the contrivance of engines ("after the manner of the
-Roman _testudines cum pluteis_.") They ran upon cart wheels, we are
-told, with a musket-proof covering to conceal the assailants, who
-shot through holes; and these machines--which were odd things for
-a clergyman to make--were also furnished with a protection to rest
-on the breastworks, and so to form a complete bridge over the ditch
-into the city. The employment of a divine in military matters was
-then by no means a peculiar circumstance; for it is a little curious
-that his antagonist, Francis Cheynell, Fellow of Merton College,
-Oxford, accompanied the Earl of Essex into Cornwall, where he shewed a
-soldierly courage, and where it was said his commands were as readily
-obeyed as the general's own.[357]
-
-After much suffering by the citizens of Gloucester, the siege was
-raised by the Earl of Essex, on the 5th of September.
-
-[Sidenote: _Effect of War on the Assembly._]
-
-These military events at the very beginning powerfully influenced the
-Westminster Assembly. As the members mourned the loss of illustrious
-captains, reports of disastrous turns in the fate of war would be
-brought to London from Yorkshire, by the letter-carriers, who rode
-along the dusty roads in those long summer days; and the Divines,
-amidst their theological discussions, would anxiously listen to tidings
-respecting the army. The success of their cause, if not their personal
-safety, depended upon the acquisition of some military advantages
-at that critical juncture, and therefore--whilst feeling that only
-God could help them--they presented, on the 19th of July, to the two
-Houses, a petition, in which--after expressing their fear of the
-Divine wrath, manifested by the sad and unexpected defeats in the
-north and west--they implored, as watchmen set on the walls of the
-Church and the kingdom, that a day of solemn fasting and humiliation
-might be fixed for universal observance throughout the cities of
-London and Westminster: and with a further view of removing Divine
-displeasure, they entreated, that Parliament would speedily set up
-Christ more gloriously in all His ordinances within the kingdom, and
-remove throughout the land all things which were amiss. Then followed
-a painful enumeration of national evils, including brutish ignorance,
-pollution of the Lord's Supper, corruption of doctrine, profanation of
-the Sabbath, blind guides and scandalous ministers, and finally, the
-prevalence of vice, idolatry, and superstition.[358]
-
-[Sidenote: 1643, August.]
-
-The fall of Bristol on the 26th of July, preparing as it did for the
-siege of Gloucester, further alarmed the Assembly, who would not fail
-also to watch with trembling anxiety the progress of the assaults on
-the latter city. In the month of August, all London too was in a state
-of excitement, as disastrous news from the west reached it day by day.
-Some of the citizens were in favour of propositions of peace voted
-in the House of Lords; others--the majority--influenced by Alderman
-Pennington and by Pym, who eventually prevailed on the Commons to
-reject the Peers' propositions, were for resisting the royal army to
-the utmost, though the waves of war should surge up to the very walls.
-In the strife the pulpits had a share; and on the Sunday after the
-propositions were submitted to the Commons, the Divines of the popular
-party eloquently appealed to their disheartened hearers in favour of
-opposing the overtures of the Upper House, at a moment when the Monarch
-was successful in the field, and persisted in his proclamations against
-the freedom of the Parliament.[359]
-
-In the midst of these untoward events, help from Scotland had become
-more than ever necessary, and the eyes of Statesmen, Divines, and
-Citizens were turned in that direction. Yet some even of the staunch
-Presbyterians of England were reluctant in this extremity to rely
-upon their neighbours; and Calamy, in a speech at Guildhall, when the
-question was mooted, pronounced it a great shame that Englishmen should
-stand in need of others to aid them in the preservation of their own
-lives and liberties.[360] Repeated references to the unwillingness
-of the nation to ask and receive assistance from the north occur in
-Baillie's letters.[361]
-
-[Sidenote: _Commissioners sent to Scotland._]
-
-But Parliament, being compelled by circumstances, resolved, as early as
-July, to send Commissioners to negotiate a treaty of assistance with
-their brethren of the north. Sir Harry Vane was one of the number.[362]
-With this embassy the Westminster Assembly determined to unite an
-ecclesiastical deputation, and chose for the purpose Stephen Marshall,
-the Presbyterian, and Philip Nye, the Independent. Letters were sent
-through their hands both to the Convention of States, and to the
-General Assembly, seeking succour for the war and the addition of some
-Scotch Divines to the meeting at Westminster. The letter to the General
-Assembly of Scotland set forth the deplorable condition of England, as
-on the edge of a precipice, ready to plunge into the jaws of Satan; and
-the perils of the Church, as threatening the safety of Protestantism
-at large. Prayers and advice were implored with a view to promote the
-kingdom's peace with God, and to strengthen the people in standing up
-against Antichrist.
-
-On Monday, the 7th of August, the English Commissioners landed at
-Leith; and Baillie reports that the Lords went down to welcome them at
-the harbour, and then conveyed them up to Edinburgh in a coach.
-
-[Sidenote: 1643, August.]
-
-The General Assembly shewed how impressed it was with the idea that
-the visit now paid was no ordinary one. "We were exhorted," says our
-informant, in all these minute matters "to be more grave than ordinary;
-and so, indeed, all was carried to the end with much more awe and
-gravity than usual." With a punctilious formality, borrowed, it was
-said, from the like usage in the reception of their own Commissioners
-by the English Parliament, the Scotch arranged that the access of the
-delegates to the Assembly should be at first only that of private
-spectators; "for which end a place commodious above in a loft, was
-appointed for them." Then followed an interview between them and a
-deputation from the General Assembly, to whom were presented the
-documents brought from London. One paper, subscribed by above seventy
-English Divines, supplicating help "in a most deplorable style," as
-soon as it was read drew tears from many eyes. The loss of Bristol
-was reported, and fear was expressed lest his Majesty might march to
-London. Cautiously did the Scotch consult sundry times with the prime
-nobles, in the Moderator's chamber, before taking any decided step. One
-night all present were bent on peaceful mediation, proposing to act
-as friends between the belligerents, and not to espouse exclusively
-the side of either. Lord Warristone "alone did shew the vanity of that
-motion and the impossibility of it." Words now would come too late, and
-the Scotch must arm or do nothing; they must cross the Tweed with pike
-and gun, or leave English Puritans to their hard fate. The Assembly
-at length decided on recommending military aid on these grounds:--the
-war was a religious one; the Protestant faith was in danger; gratitude
-for former assistance required a suitable return; both Churches were
-embarked on the same bottom; the prospects of uniformity between the
-two kingdoms would strengthen the Protestant cause all over Europe;
-and, finally, the English Parliament stood in friendly relation to the
-Scotch, who felt that they could never trust King Charles.[363]
-
-[Sidenote: _Commissioners in Scotland._]
-
-Terms of union now became the absorbing question, and hard debates
-ensued. The English Commissioners preferred a civil league, and the
-Scotch were earnest for a religious covenant. The former wished for
-a bond of reciprocal aid between nation and nation to maintain the
-interests of civil liberty; the latter longed for a holy confederation
-between church and church, for the maintenance of Protestant truth and
-worship, against papal and prelatic superstitions. As Vane and Nye
-belonged to a party in England which advocated religious toleration,
-and as the latter avowed himself an Independent, they would both
-be averse to the establishment of such uniformity as was advocated
-by Presbyterians, and would be anxious to keep a door open for the
-admission of congregational liberty. "Against this," Baillie states,
-"we were peremptory." What was to be done? Succour from the Scotch
-was indispensable, but the Scotch had determined not to grant it save
-on their own conditions. The English Commissioners therefore felt
-compelled to enter into a compromise; and stipulating that it should be
-a _League_ to meet their own views of it as a civil compact, they yet
-allowed it to be a _Covenant_ for the satisfaction of those who chiefly
-valued its religious character and bearings. Without impugning the
-motives of either party, we must say, now that the lapse of more than
-two centuries has hushed to silence the tempestuous controversy, that
-this modification of the compact seems very much like playing at a game
-of words, and that, after all this hair-splitting, the two contracting
-powers became equally bound to the whole agreement, however they
-might choose to interpret the phraseology. The English Commissioners,
-by accepting the Covenant, pledged themselves to the cause of which
-the Scotch Presbyterians regarded it as the symbol; and looking at
-the ecclesiastical opinions of Vane and Nye, we cannot defend their
-conduct on this occasion against the charge of inconsistency. The
-Commissioners believed they had accomplished an important object by
-what they had done; and when the Solemn League and Covenant came before
-the General Assembly, a hearty affection toward England was "expressed
-in tears of pity and joy by very many grave, wise, and old men," as
-the moderator, Mr. Henderson, after making an oration, read over the
-document twice amidst loud applause.
-
-[Sidenote: 1643, August.]
-
-Three Scotch Commissioners, with Philip Nye, set sail on the thirtieth
-of August; but eight days before they started, the English had
-despatched a ketch, with a duplicate copy of the famous instrument, and
-on the first of September it reached the Westminster Assembly.
-
-Some of the members, especially the Scotch Divines, were prepared
-to receive it exactly as it was, cordially sympathizing in all its
-sentiments, but others, particularly Dr. Twiss, the Prolocutor, Dr.
-Burgess, and Mr. Gataker, stumbled at the condemnation of _prelacy_.
-They were averse "to the English diocesan frame," and if that was
-meant by the word prelacy they could agree in the condemnation of it;
-nevertheless they were advocates for the ancient and moderate form
-of Episcopacy, with some admixture of Presbyterian rule, and could
-not agree to the use of any expression which, with regard to that
-rule, might seem to convey any censure. To meet this difficulty, a
-parenthesis was introduced describing the exact nature of the prelacy
-opposed viz., "Church government by Archbishops, Bishops, Deans and
-Chapters, Archdeacons, and all other ecclesiastical offices depending
-on that hierarchy."[364]
-
-[Sidenote: _The Covenant._]
-
-Covenants were, of old, favourites with the nation of Scotland,
-and they present in their spirit, though not their form, a strong
-resemblance to that very noble Hebrew one, in the days of Asa, the king
-of Judah, when "the people entered into a covenant to seek the Lord God
-of their fathers with all their heart and with all their soul"--"and
-they sware unto the Lord with a loud voice"--"and all Judah rejoiced at
-the oath."[365]
-
-The first Scotch Covenant was taken in 1557, "to establish the most
-blessed word of God and His congregation," and to "forsake and renounce
-the congregation of Satan;" by which, of course, we are to understand
-the apostate Church of Rome. Another succeeded in 1581, protesting
-against Popish doctrines and rites, as being full of superstition and
-idolatry. In 1638, a third is found, including a transcript of the
-confession of 1581, a summary of Parliamentary acts condemnatory of
-the Papal religion, and a new declaration drawn up by Henderson; the
-subscribers to which swore they would continue in their Protestant
-profession, defend it against errors and corruptions, and stand by the
-King in support of the religion, laws, and liberties of the realm.[366]
-
-[Sidenote: 1643, September.]
-
-The New League and Covenant of 1643, the origin of which we have just
-described, differed from former ones by the addition of an express
-resolve to extirpate _prelacy_ as well as popery. It consisted of six
-articles, pledging subscribers to preserve the established religion
-of Scotland, to endeavour to bring the Church of God in the three
-kingdoms to the nearest possible uniformity and conjunction, to
-aim at the extirpation of popery and prelacy, superstition, heresy,
-schism, profaneness, and whatsoever is contrary to sound doctrine and
-the power of godliness, to preserve the privileges of Parliament and
-the liberties of the kingdom, to search out malignants, and promote
-peace, and to defend every one belonging to the brotherhood of the
-Covenant.[367]
-
-With intense ardour was the engagement entered into by the Scotch,
-who venerated and loved these symbols of confederation. The Covenant
-passed from city to city, from town to town, from village to village,
-gathering together the men of the plain and the men of the mountain,
-like the fiery cross, which summoned the clan round their chieftain's
-banner.
-
- "O'er hill and dale the summons flew,
- Nor rest nor pause the herald knew,
- Not faster o'er thy feathery braes,
- Balquidder speeds the midnight blaze,
- Rushing in conflagration strong,
- The deep ravines, and dells along.
- Each valley, each sequester'd glen,
- Mustered its little horde of men
- That met, as torrents from the height,
- In highland dales, when streams unite,
- Still gathering as they pour along,
- A voice more loud, a tide more strong."
-
-[Sidenote: _Taking of the Covenant._]
-
-The Scotch wished to see the Covenant embraced with the same love
-and zeal in the cities, towns, and villages of England, but in this
-they were disappointed. The adoption of the Covenant, however, at
-Westminster, was a very solemn ceremony. The Assembly met on Monday,
-September the 25th, 1643, in St. Margaret's Church--an edifice almost
-lost in the shadow of the neighbouring Abbey, but deeply interesting
-as the place of worship still used on special occasions by the Houses
-of Parliament. The building then was somewhat different from what
-it is now, for it did not possess at that time the antique centre
-window of stained glass; but the graves of Sir Walter Raleigh, and of
-Caxton, the printer, existed beneath the pavement, and their names
-were symbolical of the art and the enterprise which had contributed
-largely to the great revolution betokened by this notable gathering.
-Besides the Divines, and the rest of the Assembly, the House of
-Commons, and the Commissioners from Scotland attended the service.
-White of Dorchester commenced the service by offering prayer to the
-Almighty. Then Philip Nye read and explained the terms of the Covenant,
-commending it as a defence against popery and prelacy, and a stimulus
-to further reformation.[368] Dr. Gouge presented a second prayer.[369]
-Mr. Henderson, the Scotch Commissioner, described the deliverance of
-his countrymen from prelatical domination, declared the purity of their
-intentions in what they had done, and gratefully acknowledged the
-blessings of heaven upon their work and service. After the Covenant
-had been read, the Assembly rose, and with that solemnity which marked
-the Puritan mode of performing such acts, they lifted up their right
-hands to heaven, worshipping the great name of God; by their gesture
-reminding us of another oath, less spiritual but not less solemn, sworn
-by the Swiss patriots, under the shadow of the Seelisberg, on the rich
-green slope by the shore of the lake of Uri. After this ceremony,
-the Commons and the Divines adjourned to the chancel, and there
-wrote their names on the parchment rolls, containing the words of the
-Covenant.
-
-[Sidenote: 1643, September.]
-
-On the 20th of September, being the Wednesday before the Monday on
-which the Covenant was sworn, a battle was fought at Newbury; and the
-particulars of this action must have reached the Assembly before they
-held up their hands to heaven; perchance some held them up all the
-more firmly in consequence of what they had just been told respecting
-the persistent valour of the army. For all along the valley, more than
-half a mile in length, Essex's men, wearing fern and broom in their
-hats, had fought from four o'clock in the morning until ten at night.
-After a struggle, hand to hand, in the darkness, the King's forces
-stood in order on the further side of the Green, and Essex expected
-a fresh engagement next day; but the enemy retreated in the night,
-and consequently the Parliament claimed the victory. One fell in that
-engagement, whose death, with its never to be forgotten touches of
-sadness, deeply affected some who faced him in battle, after sitting
-beside him in council. Lord Falkland, on rising that morning, had
-put on a clean shirt, saying he would not be found in foul linen
-amongst the slain; and when his friends attempted to dissuade him from
-fighting, replied, "I am weary of the times, and foresee much misery to
-my country, and believe I shall be out of it before night." And so he
-was.[370]
-
-[Sidenote: _Treaty with the Scotch._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1643, November.]
-
-The Covenant prepared in Scotland having been adopted in England, the
-two countries entered into a treaty on the 29th of November, 1643.
-The first of the Articles declared, that the Covenant now to be sworn
-throughout both kingdoms was "a most noble near tie and conjunction
-between them against the papist and prelatical faction, and for
-pursuance of the ends expressed in the said Covenant." The Scotch
-agreed to levy and send an army of 18,000 foot, 2,000 horse, and 1,000
-dragoons, to be ready at some general rendezvous near the borders of
-England; and the English promised that the charges so incurred should
-be refunded when peace was settled, with Scotch consent. The money
-was to be raised out of the forfeited estates of papists, prelatists,
-malignants, and their adherents; and £100,000 was to be paid at
-Leith or Edinburgh with all convenient speed, half of the sum being
-conveyed at once by the bearers of the treaty.[371] English solicitude
-respecting this compact oozes out in the quaint old diurnals of that
-day. "The Covenant," say they, "will doubtless give more life to the
-preparations of their brethren, if they be not already on their march
-into this kingdom, which we have good grounds to surmise they be; but
-no letters as yet come to confirm the same." A communication from the
-north is joyfully quoted, to the effect that the artillery, ammunition,
-arms, and men were all in readiness; and it is added, "upon the first
-notice of your agreement in the Covenant and propositions, they will be
-setting forward without doubt."[372] On the 6th of September we read of
-a consultation about the Scotch Covenant, and the advance of moneys,
-and of letters sent to hasten forward their preparations. The northern
-rulers stipulated that the war should be carried on for the sake of
-the Covenant; and bleeding England, accepting help on such terms, and
-agreeing to pay expenses, the journalists waited eagerly for tidings
-of the advancing troops. Baillie, in his manse at Kilwinnin, writing a
-news-letter which would make some columns in the _Times_, informed his
-reverend dear cousin, Mr. William Spang, about a fortnight after the
-newspaper had circulated rumours of Scotch preparations, that so soon
-as the Covenant was signed by any considerable number in England, and a
-certain amount of money remitted to Scotland, he and his friends would
-turn to God by fasting and prayer, and promote the levy of 32,000 foot
-and 4,000 horse. This number far exceeded what had been stipulated for
-in the treaty; but no doubt the exaggeration was simply owing to the
-heated zeal of the honest news-writer. In the same quaint and lively
-pages, which, while they reflect passing events, also indicate what
-the Scotch thought of their own proceedings and of the condition of
-the English, we find Baillie saying, "Surely it was a great act of
-faith in God, and huge courage and unheard-of compassion, that moved
-our nation to hazard their own peace and venture their lives and all,
-for to save a people so irrecoverably ruined both in their own and in
-all the world's eyes." In December, writing from Worcester House, in
-the Strand--a mansion which had been fitted up by Parliament for the
-Commissioners with furniture taken out of the King's wardrobe--the same
-writer alludes to the undecisive conduct of the English war, adding,
-"they may tig tag on this way this twelvemonth. Yet if God send not in
-our army quickly, and give it not some notable success, this people
-are likely to faint; but it is the hope of all the godly, it is the
-confidence and public prayers of all the good ministers here, that God
-will honour the Scots to be their saviours." "All things are expected
-from God and the Scots."[373]
-
-[Sidenote: _Treaty with the Scotch._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1643, November.]
-
-The articles of the treaty, together with these waifs and strays sifted
-out of early newspapers and old letters, enable us to comprehend how
-matters stood in relation to the Covenant. The Scotch contingents were
-to march across the border for ends set forth in that document: and
-the adoption of it in England was demanded before a single pikeman
-would cross the Tweed. The feeling of our neighbours, in short, had
-culminated to this point, that England resembled the man fallen among
-thieves, and that they themselves were playing the part of the good
-Samaritan. And so much of truth lay at the bottom of this assumption,
-that it must be admitted our fathers did most surely need the military
-assistance of their brethren; and that not without a sufficient
-consideration--partly religious and partly pecuniary, for the whole of
-which a careful stipulation was made--could the assistance be secured.
-Without charging the North with a huckstering policy, or representing
-the South as over-driven in the bargain; we must regard the taking
-of the Covenant, and the affording of the required supplies, as so
-much payment rendered for so much help. Nor does it seem at all less
-plain, that the army marched under the banner of the Covenant for
-the establishment of uniformity. The Assembly in Edinburgh, and the
-Parliament under its control, shewed as strong a zeal for a single
-form of religion as English Kings and English Bishops had ever done.
-The contrast between the duplicity of Charles and the honesty of
-Henderson--between the ritualism of Laud and the simple worship of
-Baillie--certainly ought to be recognized; but then, also, it must
-be admitted that all these persons had their hearts fixed on the
-establishment of one Church, one creed, and one service, without the
-toleration of a second; in other words, the enjoyment of full liberty
-for their own consciences, but not the bestowment of a shred for the
-conscience of any one besides. The Church of the Covenant is not
-specified by name, it is simply described as meant to be "according
-to the Word of God and the example of the best reformed churches;"
-but as we know the persons who drew up the instrument, what but
-Presbyterianism can be understood as the ecclesiastical system intended
-by these expressions?
-
-
-
-
- [Illustration.]
-
- CHAPTER XIII.
-
-
-In the month of December, 1643, just after the Scotch treaty had been
-ratified, and while the Puritans waited for their allies, a great man
-passed away from the scene of strife. A journal reported how some at
-Oxford drank "a health to his Majesty, by whom we live and move and
-have our being; and to the confusion of Pym, his God, and his Gospel."
-Whether the report be an exaggeration of fact, or, as we would hope,
-a pure fiction, certainly Pym was an object of intense dislike to the
-Royalists, and his death removed a formidable antagonist. Crushed by
-toil and anxiety, his health had rapidly failed; and, while his body
-suffered from disease, and his mind from anxiety, he had to endure
-the fury of a populace which now sought to dash in pieces the god of
-its former idolatry. As the patriot lay on his death-bed, men, in
-women's clothes, instigated by those who wished to thwart the rigorous
-prosecution of the war, besieged the House of Commons, madly crying
-out, "Give us the traitor, that we may tear him to pieces, give us the
-dog Pym!"[374] The brutality of the mob had its match in the malignity
-of the Royalists, who, if rumour be true, kept horses idle in the
-stables, waiting to carry down to Oxford tidings of the wished-for
-stroke.[375] Report further spoke of knighthood as promised to the
-first who should bring the news. It was also stated that the night
-after Pym's decease, bonfires were blazing in the University streets to
-celebrate the event.[376]
-
-[Sidenote: 1643, December.]
-
-[Sidenote: _Burial of Pym._]
-
-Westminster Abbey has witnessed many noble funerals. The pavement has
-but just closed over the remains of a renowned parliamentary chief,
-and we have a fresh remembrance of the long procession and the solemn
-service, the crowds of spectators and the general mourning at the
-burial of Lord Palmerston. The obsequies of John Pym were perhaps still
-more imposing. Preceded by servants and friends, by numerous persons of
-distinction according to their rank, and by the Westminster Assembly
-of Divines, attended also by some little pomp of heraldry, the remains
-of that illustrious statesman were borne on the shoulders of certain
-of his fellow-commoners up the nave of the cathedral, followed by his
-family, and by the members of both Houses of Parliament.[377] They
-crowded the vast building, whilst Stephen Marshall preached a sermon
-describing the virtues of the deceased. "He maintained," said the
-minister, "the same evenness of spirit which he had in the time of his
-health, professing to myself, that it was to him a most indifferent
-thing to live or die; if he lived, he would do what service he could,
-if he died, he should go to that God whom he had served, and who would
-carry on his work by some others. To others he said that if his life
-and death were put into a balance he would not willingly cast in one
-drachm to turn the balance either way. This was his temper all the time
-of his sickness." "Such of his family or friends who endeavoured to be
-near him (lest he should faint away in his weakness) have overheard him
-importunately pray for the King's Majesty and his posterity, for the
-Parliament and the public cause, for himself begging nothing. And a
-little before his end, _having recovered out of a swound_, seeing his
-friends weeping around him, he cheerfully told them he had looked death
-in the face, and knew, and therefore feared not the worst it could
-do, assuring them that his heart was filled with more comfort and joy
-which he felt from God, than his tongue was able to utter, and (whilst
-a reverend minister was at prayer with him) he quietly slept with his
-God."[378]
-
-[Sidenote: 1643, December.]
-
-This incident--in an early stage of our Civil Wars--of Pym carried to
-the grave by his fellow patriots, forcibly reminds us of the interment
-of Mirabeau with similar honours, at the beginning of the French
-Revolution. Unlike as to moral and religious character, these two
-eminent men, as to ability for guiding public affairs, and swaying a
-nation's destinies, had much in common: and whilst we speculate on
-the probable consequences of the lengthened life of the brilliant
-Frenchman in curbing party excesses and preventing terrible scenes, we
-may also conjecture that happy consequences would have followed, had
-the illustrious Englishman been longer spared. The loss of John Hampden
-is often deplored, as of one whose wise counsel and force of character
-might have saved his country a series of mistakes and much suffering,
-had Divine providence lengthened his days. The loss of John Pym, for
-reasons of the same kind, is probably still more to be lamented.
-
-[Sidenote: _Court Intrigues._]
-
-At this period, plots were of frequent occurrence.[379] Basil Brooke,
-a noted Royalist and Roman Catholic, planned a scheme for detaching
-the City of London from the cause of the Covenant, and from the Scotch
-alliance. By means of defeating Presbyterian schemes, he aimed at
-procuring peace favourable to the King. Propositions from his Majesty,
-and signed by his hand, were to be presented to the Lord Mayor, so
-that the latter should be obliged to convene a meeting to petition
-Parliament to treat with the monarch: upon which, should Parliament
-refuse, "a party in both Houses would appear with the City, and so
-either carry all to the King, or put all in confusion." The utterly
-idle conception of achieving a desired result by means in themselves
-impracticable, or, if even carried out, not such as to ensure the
-effect contemplated, only led to exposure and defeat. Keen-witted men
-in Parliament and in the City discovered the plot, and turned it to an
-account the very opposite of that which the plotters intended.
-
-[Sidenote: 1643, December.]
-
-The court party at the same time endeavoured to intrigue with the
-Independents, whose want of sympathy in Presbyterian projects had
-become obvious to all. Flattering offers were made to them if they
-would break with the Scotch, abandon the Covenant, join the Royalists,
-and agree to the establishment of a moderate Episcopacy. Toleration
-was promised upon these conditions, and it was said: "Mr. Nye should be
-one of the King's chaplains, and several other Independents should be
-highly preferred and rewarded."[380] With these larger intrigues were
-mixed up certain minor ones for the purpose of inducing officers of
-the garrison at Windsor Castle and Aylesbury to betray those places
-into the King's hands. The person who appears most prominently among
-the Royalist agents in these schemes was one Serjeant-major Ogle, who
-had been taken prisoner by the Parliament, and who was lodged in
-Winchester House. References to him, as a notorious plotter in the
-service of his Majesty, occur in the publications of that day, and
-he also figures in that capacity upon the pages of the Parliamentary
-journals.[381] His own version of the part he played comes to light in
-the following letter found in the State Paper Office. Giving an account
-of himself at a later period, he says:--
-
-"It pleased his Majesty," that blessed martyr, my ever-blessed master,
-to give his express orders unto me (then a prisoner in Winchester
-House, only upon his Majesty's interest), to proceed with Mr. Nye,
-Goodwin, Homstead, Grafton, Moseley, Devenish, and some other of the
-Independent faction, according to a letter of mine unto the Earl of
-Bristol, intimating their desires to his Majesty, on their own and all
-the rests' behalf, in order to their plenary satisfaction and freedom
-from pressure of conscience in point of worship, which they judged
-might more easily and safely be obtained, and by them more honestly
-and honourably accepted from the King than the Covenant then in its
-triumphant career in London, they having failed of their expectation
-from the address they made to his Majesty by Sir Basil Brooke. Upon
-receipt of which warrant from his Majesty, I did conclude upon certain
-articles, or rather propositions, in order to a treaty upon their
-coming to Oxford, for which purpose I received a safe conduct from his
-Majesty, with a blank for such names as I thought fit to insert, and
-a hundred pounds out of his Majesty's county, towards relief of my
-necessities.
-
-[Sidenote: _Court Intrigues._]
-
-"The general, upon which all particulars were founded, was, that if
-his Majesty pleased to give them assurance of liberty of conscience,
-upon their submission to the temporal authority, they would employ
-their whole interest in opposition to the Scotch Covenant, to serve his
-Majesty against the two Houses, and submit to a moderate Episcopacy,
-which they judged to be far more tolerable than the other, and, indeed,
-the only way to settle the nation: and from this general one particular
-was, that they would deliver to the King Aylesbury and Windsor
-garrisons as pledges for performance of their future assistance upon
-his Majesty's command, after their coming to Oxford, and satisfaction
-received."[382]
-
-It is to be observed that Ogle's letter plainly implicates the King as
-a prime mover in these wished-for intrigues with the Independents.
-
-[Sidenote: 1644, January.]
-
-In the midst of these contrivances, and immediately after the detection
-of that in which Sir Basil Brooke was the chief actor, the corporation
-of London, (according to civic custom on occasions of great public
-interest), invited the Houses of Parliament to a grand banquet, as a
-proof of union in one common cause, and as a celebration of recent
-victory over common enemies. The invitation was formally accepted, and
-entered in the journals, and the Commons added to their acceptance
-of the invitation a request that, on the morning of the festive day,
-there should be in such place as the City might think fit, and by such
-a minister as the City might choose, a sermon for the commemoration
-of the recent deliverance. The Assembly of Divines also received an
-invitation to the festival; and further, the sheriff and aldermen, in
-chains and gowns, called on Baillie and his colleagues at Worcester
-House to join the other notabilities who were to be present at the
-municipal entertainment. On Thursday, the 18th of January, the
-Parliament, the Assembly, and the Scotch Commissioners met between nine
-and ten o'clock in the morning at Christ Church in the City, to hear
-Stephen Marshall, the preacher selected by the corporation to deliver a
-sermon at the request of the Commons.
-
-The exordium to his discourse was ingenious.
-
-[Sidenote: _Stephen Marshall's Discourse._]
-
-"Right honourable and well-beloved in our Lord,
-
-"This day is a day purposely set apart for feasting, and it is like one
-of the Lord's feasts, where you have a feast and an holy convocation,
-and you are first met here to feast your souls with the fat things of
-God's house, with a feast of fat things, full of marrow; and wine on
-the lees well refined; and afterwards to feast your bodies with the
-fat things of the land and sea, both plenty and dainty. But if you
-please you may first feast your eyes. Do but behold the face of the
-assembly. I dare say it is one of the excellentest feasts that ever
-your eyes were feasted with. Here in this assembly you may first see
-the two Houses of Parliament--the honourable Lords and Commons, who
-after thus many years wrestling with extreme difficulties, in their
-endeavouring to preserve an undone kingdom, and to purge and reform a
-backsliding and a polluted Church, you may behold them still not only
-preserved from so many treacherous designs, and open violences, but
-as resolved as ever to go on with this great work which God hath put
-into their hands. Here you may also see his excellency my most honoured
-lord, and near him that other noble lord the commander of our forces
-by sea, as the other is by land; and with them abundance of lords and
-resolute commanders; all of them with their faces like lions, who after
-so many terrible battles, and abundance of difficulties, and charging
-in the faces of so many deaths, are yet all of them preserved, and not
-a hair of their head fallen to the ground. Here also you may behold the
-representative body of the City of London, the Lord Mayor, the Court
-of Aldermen, the Common Council, the militia, and in them the face and
-affection of this glorious city; this city which, under God, hath had
-the honour of being the greatest means of the salvation of the whole
-kingdom, and after the expense of millions of treasure, and thousands
-of their lives, still as courageous and resolute to live and die in the
-cause of God as ever heretofore. Here you may likewise see a reverend
-assembly of grave and learned divines, who daily wait upon the angel in
-the mount, to receive from him the lively oracles and the pattern of
-God's house to present unto you. All these of our own nation, and with
-them you may see the honourable, reverend, and learned commissioners of
-the Church of Scotland, and in them behold the wisdom and the affection
-of their whole nation, willing to live and die with us; all these may
-you behold in one view. And not only so, but you may behold them all of
-one mind, after so many plots and conspiracies to divide them one from
-another. And, which is yet more, you may see them all met together this
-day on purpose both to praise God for this union, and to hold it out
-to the whole world, and thereby to testify that as one man they will
-live and die together in this cause of God. Oh, beloved, how beautiful
-is the face of this assembly! Verily, I may say of it, as it was said
-of Solomon's throne, that the like was never to be seen in any other
-nation. I question whether the like assembly was ever to be seen this
-thousand years upon the face of the earth. Methinks I may call this
-assembly the host of God; I may call this place Mahanaim, and I believe
-there are many in this assembly that would say as old Jacob did when he
-had seen his son Joseph's face, 'Let me now die, seeing my son Joseph
-is yet alive.' And for mine own part, I am almost like the Queen of
-Sheba, when she had seen the court of Solomon, it is said that she had
-no spirit in her; and I could send you away and say that you had no
-cause to weep to-day or to-morrow, but to eat the fat and drink the
-sweet, and send portions one unto another; and I should send you away
-presently, but that I have first some banqueting stuff for your souls,
-such as the hand of God hath set before you for your inward refreshing;
-the ground whereof you shall find in the twelfth chapter of the first
-book of Chronicles, and three last verses:--'All these men of war, that
-could keep rank, came with a perfect heart to Hebron, to make David
-king over all Israel: and all the rest also of Israel were of one heart
-to make David king. And there they were with David three days, eating
-and drinking; for their brethren had prepared for them. Moreover, they
-that were nigh them even unto Issachar, and Zebulun and Naphtali,
-brought bread on asses, and on camels, and on mules, and on oxen, and
-meat, meal, cakes of figs, and bunches of raisins, and wine, and oil,
-and oxen, and sheep abundantly: for there was joy in Israel.'"[383]
-
-[Sidenote: 1644, January.]
-
-After the preacher had delivered a pertinent discourse from this text,
-which was felicitously chosen, the guests who had attended the church
-marched in long and imposing procession to Merchant-Taylors' Hall,
-where the banquet was served.
-
-[Sidenote: _Corporation Banquet._]
-
-Train bands lined the streets. Common Councilmen in their gowns
-walked first. The Mayor and Aldermen, arrayed in scarlet, followed
-on horseback. The General and Admiral of the Parliament, with the
-rest of the Lords and the Officers of the Army, trudged on foot. Then
-came the Commons, with their Speaker and his mace-bearer; and next to
-these the Westminster Divines. It had been appointed that the Scotch
-Commissioners, clerical and lay, should have a post of honour between
-the Commons and the Assembly, but as Lord Maitland went with the other
-lords, the modesty of his clerical companions would not let them take
-precedence of the English brethren. So Baillie and his colleagues
-"stole away to their coach," and when there was no room for coaches
-along the thronged streets, they went on foot, "with great difficulty
-through huge crowdings of people." Passing through Cheapside they
-saw,--where the Cross used to stand,--a great bonfire kindled, "many
-fine pictures of Christ and the saints, of relics, beads, and such
-trinkets," being piled up for the special entertainment of the reverend
-gentlemen, and kindled into a blaze just as they marched by. The feast
-cost £4,000, though, in the spirit of Puritan moderation, it included
-neither dessert, nor music, only "drums and trumpets." The Mayor sat
-on the dais. Two long tables supplied the Divines; Dr. Twiss the
-Prolocutor, sitting at the head. The Speaker of the Commons proposed
-the health of the Lords. The Lords stood up, every one with his glass,
-and drank to the Commons. The Mayor toasted both in the name of the
-citizens. The sword-bearer, wearing his cap of maintenance, carried the
-loving cup from the chief magistrate to the Commissioners. The whole
-ceremony was to them a "fair demonstration" of union between those
-whom the Oxford plotters endeavoured to divide. The feast ended with
-the singing of the 67th Psalm, "whereof Dr. Burgess read the line."
-"A religious precedent," says Vicars, in his Chronicle, "worthy to
-be imitated by all godly Christians in their both public and private
-feastings and meetings."[384]
-
-[Sidenote: 1644, January.]
-
-[Sidenote: _Iconoclastic Crusades._]
-
-The Cheapside bonfire of papistical trinkets illuminated the spot where
-once stood the famous cross. That cross, also the one at Charing,
-and even the venerable building of a like description in St. Paul's
-Churchyard--although so rich in memories of the Reformation--had
-been destroyed by the axes of puritanical zeal. In his honest hatred
-of superstition, the Puritan did not perceive that objects once
-devoted to its service, if intrinsically beautiful, might yet deserve
-preservation, and that monuments of antiquity, though they may not
-advance the cultivation of taste, may render valuable aids to the
-study of history. But the use and appreciation of ancient art is of
-modern growth, and the Puritan must not be blamed for being, in this
-respect, only on a level with the reformers of an earlier age, and
-with many of his own contemporaries of a different creed.[385] The
-House of Commons had early taken in hand the destruction of what were
-deemed relics of idolatry, although, being unsupported by the Lords,
-they accomplished little. But in the spring of 1643, by order of the
-two Houses, Sir Robert Harlow executed the iconoclastic crusade just
-noticed, which proved the beginning of a wholesale destruction which
-continued throughout the following winter. Acting under the advice of
-the Assembly, as well as in accordance with their own impulses, the
-Commons, in the month of August, issued an ordinance for demolishing
-altars, for removing tapers, candlesticks, and basins, and for defacing
-crosses, images, and pictures of the persons of the Trinity, and of
-the Virgin Mary.[386] Monuments of the dead, not commonly reputed
-for saints, were to be spared. Accordingly, in December, images in
-Canterbury Cathedral were dashed down, and stained windows broken
-in pieces. Something of the same wilful destruction followed a few
-days afterwards in Westminster Abbey; copes and surplices, it may be
-observed, having been taken away in the previous October, up to which
-time they had been in use even there.[387] St. Paul's Cathedral[388]
-shared a like fate, and sacred articles of silver belonging to it
-were sold for the replenishment of the war treasury.[389] As to the
-defacement of churches, the Puritans have been blamed for things in
-which they had no concern. What was really owing to the violence of
-reformers, the depredations of Royalists, and the neglect and folly
-of churchwardens has been put to their account. Yet when all this is
-allowed for, enough remains to sustain serious indictments against the
-accused, and little mercy would they find at the hands of a tribunal of
-antiquaries.
-
-[Sidenote: 1644, January.]
-
-[Sidenote: _Iconoclastic Crusades._]
-
-In the city of Norwich, (January, 1644) the Puritan corporation
-appointed a committee to repair several churches, and take notices of
-scandalous pictures, crucifixes, and images:[390] whereupon they went
-to work, breaking windows, filing bells, tearing down carved work,
-stripping brasses off monuments, and pulling down the pulpit with
-its leaden cross in the green yard. Popish paintings, taken from the
-cathedral and other churches, were burnt in the old market-place, "a
-lewd wretch" (according to Bishop Hall) walking before the train
-with his cope trailing in the dust, and a service book in his hand,
-"imitating in an impious scorn the tune, and usurping the words of the
-litany."[391] There is further evidence of remorseless destruction
-in the journal of William Downings, of Stratford, a parliamentary
-visitor, appointed under a warrant from the Earl of Manchester, for
-demolishing superstitious pictures and ornaments within the county of
-Suffolk, in the years 1643 and 1644. But in some places the populace
-opposed the execution of the Parliamentary decree. At Kidderminster the
-Puritan churchwarden set up a ladder, which was too short to enable
-him to reach the crucifix on the top of the town cross; and, while
-he was fetching another, a mob assembled to defend what many admired
-only for the reason that their neighbours disliked it.[392] Baxter,
-then minister in the town, calls these defenders of crucifixes and
-images "a drunken crew," and declares that they beat and bruised two
-neighbours who had come to look after him and the churchwardens, and
-would have belaboured both in the same way, could they but have caught
-them.[393] If sometimes the iconoclasts were defeated, at other times
-they overcame their adversaries. A church near Colonel Hutchinson's
-house at Owthorpe, in Nottinghamshire, had a painted window with a
-crucifixion, the Virgin Mary and the Evangelist John. The clergyman
-took down the heads of the figures, and laid them by carefully in his
-closet, and tried to persuade his churchwardens to certify that the
-Parliamentary order was executed; but they took care to call on the
-Colonel and bring him to see the church and the minister, who was at
-last compelled to blot out all the paintings and break all the glass
-which was tainted with superstition.[394]
-
-[Sidenote: 1644, January.]
-
-[Sidenote: _Iconoclastic Crusades._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1644, January.]
-
-The amount of damage done in different parts of the country would
-depend on circumstances, on the disposition of the magistrates, and
-especially on the conduct of the military. It is certain that the
-havoc of Downings' iconoclasm is not a specimen of what generally took
-place. The state of numerous churches throughout the kingdom shews
-that Puritanism in many places touched them lightly, if at all. We
-know more about the cathedrals. These suffered severely. Peterborough,
-perhaps, was treated worse than any, the choir being stripped of its
-carved fittings and coloured glass, the cloisters being completely
-pulled down.[395] Part of the nave at Carlisle was destroyed, in order
-that guard houses and batteries might be constructed. The chapter house
-of Hereford was ruined, and 170 crosses torn up.[396] At Chichester,
-ornaments, monuments, and windows were destroyed. Sawpits were dug in
-the nave of Rochester. The lady chapel of Ely was cruelly shattered.
-Norwich Cathedral sustained much injury; and so did Lichfield,
-which the cavaliers turned into a citadel. Monuments were smashed
-at Gloucester and Lincoln. But, in Winchester, though Waynflete's
-chantry was defaced, the cathedral is said to have suffered less than
-it otherwise would have done, from the circumstance of the captain of
-the troop stationed there being an old Wykehamist. Though stalls were
-pulled down at Worcester, numerous monuments and effigies still remain
-within that edifice. Only painted windows were taken down at Exeter
-and Oxford; some of the latter being preserved after their removal.
-Notwithstanding what is reported in the _Mercurius Rusticus_, the
-ornaments of Westminster Abbey, which at the beginning of the conflict
-fell into Puritan hands, so far escaped violence, that it is said "a
-history of ecclesiastical sculpture, from the reign of Henry III. to
-the present day, might be fairly illustrated from the stores of that
-Church alone."[397] Other noble cathedrals were but slightly damaged.
-Salisbury was free from "material profanation."[398] There is no
-mention of harm done at Bristol, Durham, Chester, and York. Throughout
-England, tradition is constant in her story, that the violation of
-churches was the work of soldiers.
-
-The excess to which ceremonial worship had been carried by the
-Laudian clergy, and the almost Popish reverence with which images
-and pictures had been regarded by some of them, inspired an intense
-Protestant indignation in numbers of Englishmen. They prized the
-Reformation, and thought they saw in the Anglo-Catholicism of their
-day a national defection from the faith of their fathers, like setting
-up the calves in Bethel and Dan, or the idolatrous service of Baal
-in Samaria. And whilst fearing the return of Romanism, with Romanism
-they identified things which have no necessary connection with it.
-Their zeal, though religious and disinterested, lacked wisdom, and had
-mixed up with it such alloy as commonly adheres to that passion in the
-breasts of mortals. It resembled the fierceness and fury of a noted
-reformer of Israel, who "brought forth the images out of the house
-of Baal and burned them;" nor was it untouched by a spirit of proud
-self-complacency like his when he cried: "Come see my zeal for the Lord
-of Hosts." Again and again, as we mark Puritan doings in cathedrals and
-churches, we are ready to exclaim: "The driving is like the driving of
-Jehu the son of Nimshi, for he driveth furiously."[399]
-
-[Sidenote: _Cromwell at Ely._]
-
-A broad construction was given to the meaning of orders for suppressing
-superstition and idolatry. In the month of January, 1644, when
-Oliver Cromwell was Governor of Ely, a Mr. Hitch officiated in the
-cathedral in the usual way. No express law, as yet, had been made
-against the Prayer Book or choral worship. But, interpreting the
-latter as "superstitious," and apprehending that its continuance would
-irritate his soldiers, Cromwell wrote to this clergyman and required
-him to forbear a service which he styled "unedifying and offensive."
-The clergyman persisted. The Governor,--wearing his hat according
-to custom,--with his men, entered the church, and found Mr. Hitch
-chaunting in the choir. "I am a man under authority," said Oliver, "and
-am commanded to dismiss this assembly"--the only authority, in fact,
-being the order about superstition, backed by the probability of a
-disturbance in case the service was continued. When Hitch determinately
-went on, Cromwell's words, "Leave off your fooling and come down, sir,"
-broke up the cathedral worship, and shewed the sort of man the clergy
-had to deal with.
-
-[Sidenote: 1644, February.]
-
-While crosses, images, and choral services were put down, the Solemn
-League and Covenant was set up. The zeal with which the Parliament
-attempted the last, scarcely fell below that with which they
-accomplished the first. An exhortation on the subject by the Divines
-at Westminster publicly appeared. It contains no threatenings of
-penalty in case of refusal, but only an abundance of argument and
-rhetorical persuasion. Various objections are answered--one especially,
-which, read in connexion with the events of the Restoration, is rather
-curious:--
-
-"As for those clergymen who pretend that they, above all others, cannot
-covenant to extirpate that Government because they have, as they say,
-taken a solemn oath to obey the bishops _in licitis et honestis_, they
-can tell, if they please, that they that have sworn obedience to the
-laws of the land, are not thereby prohibited from endeavouring by all
-lawful means the abolition of those laws when they prove inconvenient
-or mischievous; and if yet there should any oath be found into which
-any ministers or others have entered, not warranted by the laws of God
-and the land, in this case they must teach themselves and others that
-such oaths call for repentance, not pertinacity in them."[400]
-
-Though no threats are found in the exhortation, Parliament sent
-instructions to commanders-in-chief and governors of towns and
-garrisons, that the Covenant should be taken by all soldiers under
-their command. The committees of the several counties had to see
-that copies were dispersed over the country, its contents read in
-the churches, and the oath tendered to ministers, churchwardens, and
-constables. Law officers under the Crown were subjected to loss of
-office, and lawyers to restraint from practising in the Courts, if
-they did not submit to the new test.[401] If a minister refused to
-present it to his parishioners, the committee was to appoint another
-minister to do so in his place.[402] It was ordered, at an earlier
-date, that no one who declined the Solemn League should be elected a
-common-councilman of London, or have a vote in such election, or hold
-any office of trust in the City.[403] Every congregation was to obtain
-a copy of the document fairly printed in large letters, fit to be hung
-up in the place of worship.[404]
-
-[Sidenote: _The Solemn League and Covenant._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1644, March.]
-
-Sermons were preached and published, containing numerous scriptural
-quotations, pertinent and impertinent, in favour of covenanting. The
-Presbyterians regarded it as a symbol of their Church, and made it
-a bulwark of their system; and others, who had no sympathy with
-them, and who afterwards opposed their proceedings, were, at first,
-scarcely less extravagant in extolling its merits.[405] The devices
-of the engraver came under contribution, and there may be seen a
-curious series of plates executed at that period, one representing
-the Divines swearing to the Covenant with uplifted hands; and another
-exhibiting Prelatists in gowns and caps coming out of Church, whilst a
-Puritan is shutting the door upon them, saying, "Every plant that my
-heavenly Father hath not planted shall be plucked up."[406] Copies of
-the instrument, with a long array of names appended to it, sometimes
-present themselves amongst corporation records and parish archives,
-suggestive of scenes once enacted in church-porches and chancels.[407]
-Other written vows belong to that covenanting age. At Nottingham, the
-governor and garrison took between them a mutual oath to be faithful
-to each other, and to hold out until death, without listening to any
-parley, or accepting any terms from their enemies. Lucy Hutchinson
-describes how women as well as men entered into such pledges;[408] and
-an instance of a female adherent to the famous bond is found in a MS.
-life of Mrs. Stockton, preserved in Dr. Williams' library.
-
-[Sidenote: _The Solemn League and Covenant._]
-
-Parliament imposed the Covenant upon the Irish. The Royalist
-authorities did all in their power to resist the imposition. The
-Lords-Justices and the Council laid an embargo on its adoption by the
-military, and condemned it as seditious. But old Scotch officers,
-commanding troops in the sister island, heeded not the mandate, and the
-proscribed symbol received a warm welcome in the camp, and also in the
-northern cities, where the Protestants rallied around it. With great
-solemnity, the soldiers swore to it in the church of Carrickfergus.
-Throughout Down and Antrim it became popular. At Coleraine it contended
-with opposition, but at Derry, which place abounded in anti-prelatists,
-it won a tumultuous victory over the opposite party.[409]
-
-[Sidenote: 1644, March.]
-
-As it has been from the beginning in the history of tests,[410] so it
-was with the Covenant. It bore the character of a compromise; and,
-accordingly, that which was meant at the same time to declare truth and
-to accomplish union, received different explanations from different
-persons. First, the Presbyterians thought themselves bound by it to
-oppose schism as well as prelacy; next, the Independents, it was said,
-deeming Presbyterianism superstitious, conceived that the Covenant gave
-authority to oppose that system; and, thirdly, the cavaliers, swearing
-by it to preserve and defend the King's majesty, concluded they might
-lawfully oppose both the other parties. In this way the subject is
-represented in a publication of later date, written by one who had no
-sympathy whatever with the movement; and there is much truth, no
-doubt, in the representation, as well as in the following remark by
-the same writer, in reference to the ambiguity of the terms employed
-in the symbol: "It must needs own almost anything, especially seeing
-the sense of it hath never been plainly demonstrated, but left to men's
-own interpretation in several particulars."[411] But whilst each could
-discover something in the Covenant of a negative kind, which he could
-turn to account in opposing his adversaries, nearly all persons in
-England, except the most advanced Presbyterians, saw there were things
-in it of a positive kind, which they knew not how to adopt.
-
-Hence, in spite of its various interpretations, and also in spite of
-Parliamentary orders and Presbyterian activity, great numbers refused
-or evaded the test.[412] Where zealots were able, they enforced it
-rigorously; but in unsettled times the imposition of anything of the
-kind is sure to be encumbered by great difficulties. Some even who
-held Presbyterian opinions disliked this form of expressing them; and
-we find that Richard Baxter prevented his flock at Kidderminster from
-submitting to the Covenant, lest, as he said, it should ensnare their
-consciences; and also he prevailed on the ministers of Worcestershire
-not to offer it to their people.
-
-[Sidenote: _The Solemn League and Covenant._]
-
-The truth is, that while the Covenant in Scotland was a reality,
-inasmuch as it sprung from the hearts of the people, and expressed a
-sentiment to which they were devoted, the case was far otherwise in our
-own country. Imported here, it never rallied around it the sympathies
-of the nation. Exasperating High Churchmen, it did not please the
-Puritans. Many could not go so far as it went and many were anxious
-to go much further still. Moderate Episcopalians were reluctant to
-adopt it, because they were not prepared for the total abolition of
-Episcopacy; and, on the other hand, many Independents disliked it,
-because its condemnation of schism, they knew, was regarded in some
-quarters as a condemnation of themselves. They were advocates for
-a liberty and a toleration to which the spirit of the Covenant was
-thoroughly opposed. That the Scotch should insist upon its adoption by
-the English, and that the rulers of this country should accept the
-condition, and endeavour to enforce it upon all their subjects, was
-an unfortunate mistake, destined to be attended in some instances by
-failure, in others by mischief, in all by disappointment.
-
-[Sidenote: 1643, September.]
-
-The adoption of the Covenant by the Westminster Assembly will be in
-the reader's remembrance; and to the subsequent proceedings of that
-venerable body his attention is now to be directed.
-
-The Divines first met in Henry the Seventh's Chapel. That stone
-building, pleasantly cool in summer, became too cold for them as autumn
-drew on. They then, by order of Parliament, adjourned to the Jerusalem
-Chamber.[413] "What place more proper for the building of Zion, as
-they propounded it," asks Fuller, "than the Chamber of Jerusalem, the
-fairest of the Dean's lodgings where King Henry IV. died?" Romance
-and poetry, through the pens of Fabian and Shakespeare, have thrown
-their hues over this memorable room; other and higher associations now
-belong to it as the birth-place of a confession of faith still dear to
-the Church of Scotland, and as the spot where the Puritan advocates of
-religious liberty fought one of its early and most earnest battles.
-
-[Sidenote: _The Westminster Assembly._]
-
-The Chamber adjoins the Abbey, at the south corner of the west front.
-There is a painted window on the north side, and two plain ones give
-light on the west. The walls are hung with tapestry, representing
-the Circumcision, the Adoration of the Magi, and, apparently, the
-Passage through the Wilderness. A portrait of Richard II.--generally
-considered the oldest extant picture of an English sovereign--hangs at
-the south end of the apartment; and a curiously-carved chimney-piece,
-put up by Williams, Dean of Westminster, spans the fire-place. The room
-was rather different in appearance at the time of the Assembly. The
-situation of the fire-place was the same, and the mantel-piece had but
-just been erected. The arras, however, was brought into the Chamber
-after the coronation of James II., on which occasion it had been used
-in the Abbey; and the portrait of Richard II. did not come there till
-1755, when it was removed from the Abbey choir.[414]
-
-[Sidenote: 1643, September.]
-
-Baillie paints the place and the Assembly as he saw it. Near the
-door, and on both sides, were stages of seats; the Prolocutor's chair
-being at the upper end, "on a frame." In chairs before him were the
-assessors. Before them, through the length of the room, ran a long
-table, at which sat the secretaries, taking notes. The house, says
-Baillie, was well hung with tapestry, and a good fire blazed on
-the hearth--"which is some dainty at London." Opposite the table,
-to the right of the president, on the lowest of the three or four
-rows of forms, appeared the Scotch Commissioners, Baillie himself a
-conspicuous individual of the group. Behind were Parliament members
-of the Assembly. On the left, running from the upper end to the
-fire-place, and at the lower end, till they came round to the seats
-of the Scotchmen, were forms for the Divines, which they occupied as
-they pleased, each, however, commonly retaining the same spot. From the
-chimney-piece to the door was an open passage; the Lords who now and
-then dropped in, filling chairs round the fire. There must have been
-plenty of room in the Chamber for the accommodation of the Assembly, as
-ordinarily there were not present above threescore members. Everything
-proceeded in perfect order, and each meeting commenced and closed
-with prayer. As we read Baillie's description, we can see the Divines
-divided into committees, can watch them preparing matters for the
-Assembly, and can hear them speak without interruption, as each one
-addresses the reverend Prolocutor. The harangues are long and learned,
-and are well prepared beforehand with "replies," "duplies," "triplies."
-Then comes the cry, "Question--question;" the scribe, Mr. Byfield,
-immediately rises, approaches the chair, and places the proposition
-in Dr. Twiss's hand, who asks, "As many as are in opinion that the
-question is well in the stated proposition, let them say Aye;" "As many
-as think otherwise, say No." Perhaps Ayes and Noes "be near equal;"
-then the Prolocutor bids each side stand up, and Mr. Byfield counts.
-When any one deviates from the point in hand, there are exclamations of
-"Speak to order." Nobody is allowed to mention another by name, but he
-must refer to him as "the reverend brother who lately or last spoke, on
-this hand, on that side, above, or below." These methods of proceeding
-deeply interested Robert Baillie, who, by his minute description of
-them, greatly interests us. The Prolocutor, far too quiet a man for the
-Scotch delegate, is represented by him as "very learned, but merely
-bookish, and among the unfittest of all the company for any action;
-so after the prayer he sits mute." This, most persons will think, a
-chairman ought to do; but Baillie wished to have a President with more
-zeal for Presbyterianism, and therefore he preferred Dr. Burgess--in
-his estimation "a very active and sharp man," who supplied, so far as
-was "decent, the Prolocutor's place."[415]
-
-[Sidenote: Members of the Assembly.]
-
-Twiss did not long retain the office which his modesty and infirmities
-had made him reluctant to accept. He fell down one day in the
-pulpit, and "was carried to his lodgings, where he languished about
-a twelvemonth," and then expired, July the 20th, 1646.[416] His
-preference of a contemplative to an active life appeared in his
-exclamation after the attack which proved his death-stroke: "I shall
-have at length leisure to follow my studies to all eternity," and
-throughout he seems to have been as loyal as he was religious; for he
-often wished the fire of contention might be extinguished, even if it
-were in his own blood. A funeral in Westminster Abbey marked the public
-opinion of his worth; and there Dr. Robert Harris preached a sermon for
-him on Joshua i. 2, "Moses my servant is dead." The Assembly and the
-House of Commons followed his remains to the grave. Mr. Charles Herle,
-educated at Exeter College, Oxford, succeeded him in the office of
-Prolocutor.
-
-[Sidenote: 1643, September.]
-
-There was an overwhelming majority of Presbyterians in the Jerusalem
-Chamber. Amongst the most eminent were Burgess and Calamy, Marshall and
-Ash. In the notes of the Assembly's proceedings taken by Lightfoot,
-these names repeatedly occur, together with the less familiar ones of
-Herle, Seaman, Cawdry, and others. The Scotch Commissioners, Henderson
-and Baillie--with whom were associated George Gillespie, a young man
-of rich promise, and Samuel Rutherford, whose "Letters" on religious
-subjects are well known--likewise took a prominent part in the debates.
-It is proper here also to remember that Presbyterianism, predominant
-in the Assembly, was at the time supreme in the Senate. All the
-staunch Prelatists, and many moderate Episcopalians, had left the Long
-Parliament in St. Stephen's Chapel to join Charles's mock Parliament at
-Christ Church, Oxford. Advocates who exposed ecclesiastical abuses with
-the view of simply reforming the old establishment had disappeared. Of
-those who remained it would be uncandid to deny that some were sincere
-converts to the new system; and it would be credulous to believe that
-there were not others who, seeing which way the stream flowed, struck
-in with the current. At any rate, a Presbyterian policy prevailed in
-1644. Holles, Glynne, Maynard, Rudyard, Rouse, and Prynne, together
-with Waller, Stapleton, and Massey, were the most distinguished members
-of the party; yet, though possessing amongst them considerable ability
-and learning, they were none of them men of great intellectual power or
-of any political genius.
-
-[Sidenote: _Members of the Assembly._]
-
-The Erastians, as they are called, must not be overlooked. John
-Selden, already noticed, led the van, and his learning and reputation
-made him a formidable opponent. To gain any advantage when breaking a
-lance with such a person was counted a high distinction in theological
-chivalry, and this honour has been duly emblazoned by Scotch heralds
-more than once in favour of young George Gillespie, whom we have just
-mentioned. The solid and industrious Bulstrode Whitelocke, and St. John,
-"the dark-lantern man," helped to form a small body of reserve on the
-same side, who, on special occasions, behaved themselves valorously
-in the Westminster field. The chief Divine who thoroughly advocated
-Erastianism was Thomas Coleman, Vicar of Blyton, in Lincolnshire, of
-some considerable note in his own day. But a far greater man--acting,
-however, only occasionally in connexion with the party--was the
-renowned Dr. Lightfoot, who in rabbinical lore may be regarded as
-equal, if not superior, to John Selden.[417]
-
-But another class, entertaining different views, claim our
-attention: the five dissenting brethren--Nye, Goodwin, Bridge,
-Burroughs, and Simpson.[418]
-
-[Sidenote: 1643, September.]
-
-Philip Nye, a man of ability in some respects, and of bustling habits,
-stands out as chief of the five. Zealous in his commendations of the
-Covenant, he with equal zeal opposed Presbyterianism: the very thing
-which, according to the fairest rules of interpretation, it must be
-held to symbolize. He has been charged with disingenuousness; but
-experience in the matter of subscription makes charitable people slow
-to urge the charge. Those who vindicate subscription in "non-natural
-senses" ought to be the last to fling a stone at Philip Nye; and those
-who take the opposite side can hardly praise him for consistency of
-conduct. How the Covenant could be adopted by any one professing
-Independency is a puzzle, and the puzzle in Nye's case is the greater,
-because, not content with quietly assenting to it as many others did,
-he appears to have been a chief instrument in bringing it over the
-border, and in enforcing it upon his companions.
-
-Thomas Goodwin surpassed Nye in learning and in other respects.
-His writings present him to us as an accomplished theologian, and
-a many-sided thinker, and shew that scarcely any forms of thought
-in metaphysical divinity escaped his notice.[419] The breadth and
-excursiveness of his reflective powers are the more remarkable when
-viewed in connexion with his rigid Calvinism. He joined Philip Nye
-in a preface to "Cotton's Keys," and in it expounded ecclesiastical
-opinions, in accordance with those of the New England churches.
-
-[Sidenote: _Members of the Assembly._]
-
-William Bridge--once a Norwich clergyman, then a refugee in
-Holland--won a reputation for learning as well as piety. His library,
-well stocked with fathers, schoolmen, and critics, so attracted him,
-that he rose at four o'clock both winter and summer, that he might have
-time for reading these favourites. Being a man of broad sympathies, he
-accustomed himself to enquiries beyond the range of his profession, and
-boldly handled constitutional questions. Adopting the opinion, that
-"the people formed the first subject and receptacle of civil power;"
-an opinion which was the mainstay of the Parliament's policy, Bridge
-shrunk not from declaring, "In case a prince shall neglect his trust,
-so as not to preserve his subjects, but to expose them to violence, it
-is no usurpation in them to look to themselves, but an exercise of that
-power which was always their own."[420] He had suffered under Laud,
-and knew what it was to walk in paths of confessorship, so that his
-exhortations had no little power to comfort, when he said to his people
-in trouble: "Certainly, if God's charge be your charge, your charge
-shall be His charge, and being so, you have His bond that they shall
-never want their daily bread."
-
-[Sidenote: 1643, September.]
-
-Jeremiah Burroughs seems to have possessed singular candour, modesty,
-and moderation, and probably was the gentlest of the five; perhaps he
-was not always quite consistent,[421] being no lover of controversy,
-but a man who felt himself at home in devotional meditations. He died
-before the Westminster Assembly broke up,[422] and one of the last
-sermons which he preached was entitled "_Irenicum_, or an Attempt to
-heal Divisions among Christians."
-
-Sydrach Simpson bore a character for learning, piety, and moderation
-though at one time he was silenced by the Assembly, for differing from
-them in matters of discipline.
-
-[Sidenote: _Toleration._]
-
-The discussions in which the Independents engaged with their brethren,
-turned upon the office of Apostles, the distinction between pastors and
-teachers, the character of ruling elders, ordination, the election of
-ministers, and the like; but their main controversy hinged on a deeper
-question. The Presbyterians were anxious to meet the difficulties
-felt by the Independents, so far as the establishment of one uniform
-religion would allow; the former were prepared to permit in their large
-and carefully ramified scheme of ecclesiastical government some little
-liberty of action, provided that on the whole there was obedience to
-the established system. Freedom from synodical censure upon certain
-points was to be conceded to those who upon others submitted to
-Presbyterian authority. The Assembly would build a huge cathedral
-for the nation, with small side chapels here and there for the use
-of certain crotchety people, who might privately pass in and out if
-they would but always enter through the great door, and walk up the
-main aisle. This is not what men, calling themselves 'Independent,'
-have ever liked. The five dissenting brethren did not object to the
-cathedral being built for those who wished it--but for their own parts,
-they desired their own places of worship to be quite outside.
-
-[Sidenote: 1643.]
-
-It will be instructive here to pause a moment, and to compare the
-ground taken by the Independents in this controversy with that occupied
-by other advocates of toleration of a different class at the same time.
-Chillingworth, in his famous work on the "Religion of Protestants,"
-observes in a passage of singular eloquence, that the imposing of the
-senses of men upon the words of God, and the laying of them upon the
-conscience under penalty of death and damnation--involving the vain
-conceit that we can speak of the things of God better than in the words
-of God--is the only fountain of all the schisms of the Church, and
-that which makes these schisms immortal. He brands the practice as the
-common incendiary of Christendom, and that which tears into pieces, not
-merely the coat, but the members of Christ. "Take away," he says, in
-burning words, "these walls of separation, and all will quickly be one.
-Take away this _persecuting_, _burning_, _cursing_, _damning_ of men,
-for not subscribing to the _words of men_ as the words of God; require
-of Christians only to believe Christ and to call no man Master but Him
-only; let those leave claiming infallibility that have no title to it,
-and let them that in their words disclaim it, disclaim it likewise in
-their actions; in a word, take away tyranny, which is the devil's
-instrument to support errors, and superstitions, and impieties, in the
-several parts of the world, which could not otherwise long withstand
-the power of truth--I say take away tyranny, and restore Christians
-to their just and full liberty of captivating their understanding to
-Scripture only; and as rivers, when they have a free passage, run
-all to the ocean, so it may well be hoped, by God's blessing, that
-universal liberty, thus moderated, may quickly reduce Christendom to
-truth and unity."[423]
-
-John Hales, in his little tract on "Schism," complains that it has
-been the common disease of Christians from the beginning, not to
-content themselves with that measure of faith which God and Scriptures
-have expressly afforded us, but to attempt devising things, of which
-we have no light, either from reason or revelation; "neither have
-they rested here, but upon pretence of Church authority (which is
-none) or tradition (which for the most part is but feigned) they have
-peremptorily concluded, and confidently imposed upon others a necessity
-of entertaining conclusions of that nature; and, to strengthen
-themselves, have broken out into divisions and factions, opposing man
-to man, synod to synod, till the peace of the Church vanished, without
-all possibility of recall."
-
-[Sidenote: _Toleration._]
-
-The object of both these great reasoners was, without violating
-conscience, to secure union. They aimed at comprehension, but it was
-comprehension such as all Puritans condemned. Chillingworth would have
-had "the public service of God conducted so that all who believe the
-Scriptures and live accordingly, might without scruple, or honesty,
-or protestation against any part, join in it;" and Hales went so
-far as to say: He did not see that men of different opinions in
-religion might not hold communion in sacred things, and both go to
-one church. "Why may I not go," he asks, "if occasion require, to an
-Arian Church, so there be no Arianism expressed in their liturgy? And
-were liturgies, and public forms of service so framed as that they
-admitted not of particular and private fancies, but contained only
-such things as in which all Christians do agree, schisms on opinion
-were utterly vanished." It is needless to say that this is a species
-of latitudinarianism which most religious men would consider to be
-inconsistent with a definite doctrinal belief.
-
-[Sidenote: 1643.]
-
-The most remarkable treatise on the subject of toleration belonging
-to that age is Jeremy Taylor's "Liberty of Prophesying." In point of
-eloquence no other work of the kind can be compared with it; and though
-defective it is still worthy, for the sake of its reasoning as well as
-its rhetoric, to be a text book for the student of religious liberty.
-The author dwells, in his own matchless way, on the difficulties of
-Scripture, the uncertainty of tradition, the insufficiency of councils,
-the fallibility of popes and fathers, the incompetency of the Church,
-in its "diffusive character," to be judge of controversies, and the
-impertinence of any pretence to such a possession of the spirit as
-preserves from error. Reason is pronounced the best interpreter, and,
-though some causes of error in the exercise of reason are culpable,
-many are innocent.[424]
-
-[Sidenote: _Toleration._]
-
-To base toleration on the uncertainty of truth is a very insecure
-method of proceeding. The alliance of scepticism damages the cause
-of freedom. Colour is given to the charge, that religious liberty
-springs from religious indifference. It has cost two centuries of
-experience and discipline to indoctrinate society with the lesson,
-that the decision of religious questions without any imposition of
-human authority is a right of conscience; and that the more earnest
-we are in the love of truth, the more careful we should be not to
-sully its sanctity by the unrighteous enforcement of its principles.
-Taylor fought manfully for freedom, but he did not see the highest
-vantage ground within his reach. Moreover, in his Essay, comprehension
-within the Church often seems confounded with religious liberty in the
-State. No clear distinction is maintained between principles which
-regulate the one, and principles which vindicate the other. Yet the
-reader of the treatise may pick out and sort them, for there they are.
-Taylor teaches the doctrine--that the duty of faith is completed in
-believing the Articles of the Apostles' Creed; that to multiply tests
-of orthodoxy and to require assent to points of doubtful disputation
-"is to build a tower on the top of a bulrush;" and "that the further
-the effect of such proceedings doth extend, the worse they are." With
-an amiable self-delusion, characteristic of his pure and child-like
-nature, he dreamed of a church, combining all varieties of belief
-consistent with faith in the fundamental verities of the gospel.
-Though protesting against persecution, he contended for discipline,
-but confined excommunication simply to an act of spiritual severance.
-It is difficult to catch exactly what he means by "communicating with
-dissenting churches"--yet the tone of his remarks, and his reference
-to the Greek Church, prevent us from supposing that he used the
-appellation in the way it is commonly employed at present. The division
-of kingdoms seems to have been with him the only justification of a
-division of churches; and probably his theory of a national church
-would not be very different from Dr. Arnold's. He, at the same time,
-claims toleration for all _opinions_, not expressed in overt acts
-injurious to the State; and though he hampers his principle with
-certain qualifications, which threaten the civil rights of some persons
-hostile to Christianity, yet his views, if consistently carried out
-in his own gentle and charitable spirit, would leave little to be
-complained of by any one. On the whole, Jeremy Taylor was fuller and
-more satisfactory in his views of comprehension and liberty than was
-either Chillingworth or Hales.
-
-[Sidenote: 1643.]
-
-Dr. Ralph Cudworth and Dr. Henry More, though they did not propound
-any theory of toleration, advocated principles and breathed a spirit
-in their teaching such as could not fail to promote the interests of
-religious liberty. There is a beautiful sermon by the former of these
-Divines preached before the House of Commons, in 1647, in which the
-following characteristic passage occurs:--"The golden beams of truth
-and the silken cords of love, twisted together, will draw men on with
-a sweet violence, whether they will or no. Let us take heed we do not
-sometimes call that zeal for God and His Gospel, which is nothing else
-but our own temptations and stormy passions. True zeal is a sweet,
-heavenly, and gentle flame, which makes us active for God, but always
-within the sphere of love. It never calls for fire from heaven to
-consume those that differ a little from us in their apprehensions. It
-is like that kind of lightning (which the philosophers speak of) which
-melts the sword within, but singeth not the scabbard. It strives to
-save the soul, but hurteth not the body."[425]
-
-More, who went beyond Cudworth in decided attachment to Episcopacy;
-sharing in the spirit of his great contemporary, strongly condemned
-rancour and persecution. "He thought," observes his biographer, "that
-all persons making conscience of their ways, and that were themselves
-peaceable and for granting a liberty unto others, ought not to be
-severely used or persecuted, but borne with as befits weak members till
-God shall give them greater light."[426]
-
-[Sidenote: _Toleration._]
-
-The groundwork of toleration selected by the Independents differed
-from that of the Episcopalians. The Independents had ideas of
-Christian faith, Christian worship, and Christian discipline far more
-definite and fixed than those of Chillingworth or Hales, or even
-Taylor; and could not join in any acts or associations inconsistent
-with their deeply-formed and devout opinions. Arianism, for example,
-might be deemed simply an intellectual error by men like Hales; but
-no Athanasian could be stronger in his maintenance of the doctrine
-of the Trinity, and the importance attached to it, than were these
-dissenting brethren. They were as remote as possible from anything like
-latitudinarian theology. Christian dogmas, so called, were held by them
-with an intense tenacity. Toleration is sometimes reckoned a daughter
-of indifference, but most certainly in their case toleration can be
-ascribed to no such parentage. Moreover, the very general kind of
-devotion in the house of God which would have satisfied Chillingworth,
-would have starved the spiritual cravings of Jeremiah Burroughs and his
-companions.
-
-[Sidenote: 1643.]
-
-Nor did the brethren wish for only one church, as did those eminent
-Episcopalians. They could not, for it was their primary principle
-that "churches" or "congregations"--with them identical terms--ought
-to be many. In the existence of one holy Catholic Church, embracing
-all true Christians, they firmly believed; but they held in perfect
-consistency with this, that there must be numerous and distinct
-organized communities, not only in the world, but in the same realm,
-to be united only by common Christian sympathies. On this point they
-would be at issue with Jeremy Taylor, as well as with Chillingworth and
-Hales. They would object to his notion of national churches, as well as
-to his standard of Christian faith. Their ideas of communion were much
-more strict, though the extent of their toleration in some respects was
-more comprehensive. With Taylor's Catholic predilections they would
-have no sympathy, nor could they agree with him in all he said about
-Anabaptists. When they came to the same conclusion with the eloquent
-Churchman, it was by a different course of reasoning.
-
-[Sidenote: _Toleration._]
-
-The fundamental principles of Independency, consistently carried out,
-could not but lead to the advocacy of a perfect freedom of profession
-and worship. If churches be select communities composed of Christian
-believers, standing apart from political powers, and independent of
-each other in their organization, then it clearly follows that no
-ecclesiastical authority can touch those who are outside the pale of
-all particular churches that no temporal penalties can be inflicted
-on those who are within any such pale and that full liberty of action
-must be allowed to religionists of every class, and to those also who
-have no religion at all. Accordingly, Mr. Hallam, an unprejudiced
-enquirer into this subject, has declared that "the congregationalist
-scheme leads to toleration, as the national church scheme is adverse to
-it, for manifold reasons which the reader will discover."[427] A few
-Independents at an early period discerned the legitimate consequences
-of their principles. A Brownist petition prepared in the year 1640
-prays, "that every man may have freedom of conscience," not excepting
-Papists; and in a pamphlet published in 1644 it is asked, "whether if
-security be taken for civil subjection, Papists might not be tolerated?
-Otherwise," it is added, "if England's government were the government
-of the whole world, not only they, but a world of idolaters of all
-sorts, yea the whole world, must be driven out of the world."[428] But
-the five brethren did not advocate the cause of liberty to that wide
-extent; and afterwards, during the civil wars and the Protectorate,
-many Independent Divines, including the leaders of the party, carefully
-limited their conception of religious freedom.[429]
-
-[Sidenote: 1643.]
-
-But there was one Independent clergyman--John Goodwin--not a member of
-the Westminster Assembly--who with pre-eminent perspicuity and force
-expounded the doctrine of toleration. Justice has not been often done
-to this very able man, owing, perhaps, to the prejudice against him
-on account of his Arminianism, and to his bold defence of Charles's
-execution. Calvinists and Royalists were likely to look at him with
-jaundiced eyes; and it cannot be denied that when assailed, as he often
-was, Goodwin could give a Roland for an Oliver; and that in a way such
-as severely galled the victims of his criticism.[430] He remained until
-1645 vicar of St. Stephen's, Coleman Street, and at the commencement
-of the sittings of the Westminster Assembly, though suspected by
-some of holding Calvinism very loosely, he had not yet entirely
-abandoned that system. Open and earnest in his advocacy of Independent
-principles, defending them both from the pulpit and from the press,
-he also, whilst remaining vicar and discharging his parochial duties,
-gathered in his parish an Independent church; not, however, preaching
-separately to that community, but in his more private relationship as
-an Independent pastor, praying and holding religious conversation with
-them in his own house--whilst the doors were thrown open for any one to
-attend the meetings who pleased.
-
-Goodwin heartily approved of the "Narration," though he had no part in
-the composition of that performance, and when it came under the attack
-of Presbyterians, he broke a lance on its behalf with the assailants,
-in a very chivalrous fashion. We do not remember any other statement of
-the doctrine of toleration in the writings of the Independents of that
-day so unequivocal as his, expressed in the following words:[431]
-
-[Sidenote: _Toleration._]
-
-"The grand pillar of this coercive power in magistrates is this angry
-argument: 'What, would you have all religions, sects, and schisms
-tolerated in Christian churches? Should Jews, Turks, and Papists be
-suffered in their religions, what confusion must this needs breed both
-in church and state!' I answer: If, by a toleration, the argument means
-either an approbation or such a connivance which takes no knowledge
-of, or no ways opposeth such religions, sects, or schisms as are
-unwarrantable, they are not to be tolerated; but orthodox and able
-ministers ought in a grave, sober, and inoffensive manner, soundly
-from the Scriptures to evince the folly, vanity, and falsehood of all
-such ways. Others, also, that have an anointing of light and knowledge
-from God, are bound to contribute occasionally the best of their
-endeavours towards the same end. In case the minister be negligent,
-or forgetful of his duty, the magistrate may and ought to admonish
-him that he fulfil his ministry. If a person, one or more, being
-members of a particular church, be infected with any heretical or
-dangerous opinion, and after two or three admonitions, with means of
-conviction used to regain him, shall continue obstinate, he ought to
-be cast out from amongst them by that church. If it be a whole church
-that is so corrupted, the neighbour churches, in case it hath any,
-ought to admonish it, and to endeavour the reclaiming of it. If it be
-refractory, after competent admonition and means used for the reducing
-of it, they may and ought to renounce communion with it, and so set a
-mark or brand of heresy upon the forehead of it.
-
-If, by a toleration, the argument means a non-suppression of such
-religions, sects, and schisms by fining, imprisoning, disfranchising,
-banishment, death, or the like, my answer is--_That they ought to be
-tolerated; only upon this supposition, that the professors of them be
-otherwise peaceable in the state, and every way subject to the laws and
-lawful power of the magistrate_."[432]
-
-[Sidenote: 1643.]
-
-[Sidenote: _Toleration._]
-
-There is a good deal of controversy as to who was first in the field
-of toleration. The honour most likely belongs to Leonard Busher. He
-will be noticed hereafter in connection with the early Baptists. But
-the controversy is of little importance in relation to the general
-interests of mankind, compared with the fact that John Locke, at a
-later period, was the apostle to teach the doctrine effectively to the
-English nation. He discovers who proves, and the merit of discovery
-is due to him who first establishes a principle; but he, who adopting
-what was established before, is more successful in his advocacy of
-it than his predecessors were, will and ought to be regarded as a
-superior benefactor of his race, though he may have attributed to him
-more of the merit of originality than he deserves. Locke brought the
-doctrine of toleration out of the domain of theology, and placed it on
-the basis of political righteousness;[433] he established it by common
-sense reasoning adapted to the English understanding; besides, he did
-this in the exercise of a peculiar and independent genius; and, what
-is a more important consideration, his contemporaries were prepared
-for his instructions by preceding struggles and by possessing already
-an instalment of legal toleration. Locke is to be distinguished from
-Busher, Goodwin, and Owen, and from Chillingworth, Hales, and Taylor.
-He comes more in a line with the first than with the second three
-names; but he did what they had none of them the power to do--he made
-the doctrine popular. A parallel may be drawn in this respect between
-the history of the principle of government non-interference with a man
-and his conscience, and the principle of government non-interference
-with commercial interests and the natural laws of demand and supply.
-Long after the discovery and illustration of the latter principle,
-a great statesman made plain to the common understanding of his
-fellow-countrymen what had been before apprehended by only a few
-philosophers. John Locke occupies a position in the history of
-toleration like that of Richard Cobden in the history of free trade.
-
-After all, the Independents must be reckoned the chief and most
-influential of the early apostles of toleration, and to their rise and
-progress we shall direct attention in the following chapter.
-
-
-
-
- [Illustration]
-
- CHAPTER XIV.
-
-
-[Sidenote: _Early Congregational Churches._]
-
-A Congregational Church existed in London so early as 1568. It
-consisted of poor people, numbering about 200, "of more women than
-men," who openly separated from the Establishment, and sometimes in
-private houses, sometimes in fields, and occasionally even in ships,
-held meetings, and administered the sacraments.[434] Some of these
-early Independents were sent to Bridewell. In a declaration signed
-by Richard Fitz, the pastor, occurs the following brief statement
-of principles:--"First and foremost, the glorious Word and Evangel
-preached, not in bondage and subjection, but freely and purely;
-secondly, to have the sacraments ministered purely only, and altogether
-according to the institution and good word of the Lord Jesus, without
-any tradition or invention of man; and, last of all, to have, not the
-filthy canon law, but discipline only, and altogether agreeable to the
-same heavenly and almighty word of our good Lord Jesus Christ."[435]
-In these quaint words of Richard Fitz, and his obscure brethren, lie
-folded up the great truth that the Christian religion is simply a moral
-power, based on a Divine foundation, not asking, because not needing,
-support from political governments, or aid from physical force. These
-humble men really believed that Jesus Christ established His empire
-upon the consent and not the fears of man, "and trusted Himself
-defenceless among mankind."[436] Not caring for earthly sanctions, they
-threw themselves on the world with only Heaven for their protector.
-Through Christian faith they did what at the time they could not
-comprehend, being utterly unconscious of the importance of the act
-which they performed.
-
-This Church in London existed before the well-known Robert Browne
-appeared as the advocate of advanced Nonconformist views. In 1571 he
-was cited on that account before the commissioners at Lambeth; and
-ten years later the Bishop of Norwich, in a letter to Lord Burleigh,
-referred to him as a person "to be feared, lest if he were at liberty
-he would seduce the vulgar sort of the people, who greatly depend on
-him."
-
-[Sidenote: 1581.]
-
-Burleigh said in reply:--[437]
-
-"I understand that one Browne, a preacher, is by your lordship and
-others of the Ecclesiastical Commission committed to the custody of
-the Sheriff of Norfolk, where he remains a prisoner, for some matters
-of offence uttered by him by way of preaching; wherein I perceive,
-by sight of some letters, written by certain godly preachers in your
-lordship's diocese, he hath been dealt with, and by them dissuaded from
-that course he hath taken. Forasmuch as he is my kinsman, if he be son
-to him whom I take him to be, and that his error seemeth to proceed
-of zeal, rather than of malice, I do therefore wish he were charitably
-conferred with and reformed; which course I pray your lordship may
-be taken with him, either by your lordship, or such as your lordship
-shall assign for that purpose. And in case there shall not follow
-thereof such success as may be to your liking, that then you would be
-content to permit him to repair hither to London, to be further dealt
-with, as I shall take order for, upon his coming; for which purpose
-I have written a letter to the sheriff, if your lordship shall like
-thereof."[438]
-
-[Sidenote: _Congregationalism--Robert Browne._]
-
-Sir Robert Jermyn, in a letter to Burleigh (1581), alludes to Browne
-as a man who "had many things that were godly and reasonable, and, as
-he thought, to be wished and prayed for, but with the same there were
-other things strange and unheard." He further begged the Lord Treasurer
-to advise Browne to be more careful in his conduct, and to threaten him
-with sharp censure as an example to others, since he was but a mere
-youth in age and experience. The Bishop of Norwich, also, writing to
-the Lord Treasurer about this troublesome clergyman, observed "that
-Mr. Browne's late coming into his diocese, and teaching strange and
-dangerous doctrine in all disordered manner, had greatly troubled the
-whole country, and brought many to great disobedience of all law and
-magistrates--that yet, by the good aid and help of the Lord Chief
-Justice, and Master Justice Anderson, his associate, the chiefest of
-such factions were so bridled, and the rest of their followers so
-greatly dismayed, as he verily hoped of much good and quietness to have
-thereof ensued, had not the said Browne returned again contrary to his
-expectation, and greatly prejudiced those their good proceedings,
-and having private meetings in such close and secret manner that he
-knew not possibly how to suppress the same."[439] Browne, at length,
-through the influence of his illustrious relative, succumbed to the
-ecclesiastical authority which before he had daringly resisted,
-and became master of St. Olave's Grammar-school, in Southwark. His
-subsequent career covered him with disgrace. He had a wife with whom
-for many years he never lived, a church in which he never preached,
-and the circumstances of his death, like the scenes of his life, were
-stormy and turbulent.[440] Whatever sympathy with some of Browne's
-principles might be felt by the Independents of the next age, they
-repudiated any connection with Browne's name, and held his character
-and history in the utmost abhorrence.
-
-[Sidenote: 1583.]
-
-Browne's influence told considerably in the Eastern Counties, where
-a strong leaven of ultra-Protestantism has existed ever since the
-Lollard days. Even Kett's rebellion, often treated as a Roman Catholic
-outbreak, looks more like a peasants' war in aid of the Reformation
-than anything else. Bury St. Edmunds, where Brownism flourished,
-witnessed the death of Copping and Thacker, two Congregational
-martyrs, hanged in 1583. In Essex, a movement which looked like
-Congregationalism won some measure of sympathy from the upper classes,
-and even the wife of Sir Nicholas Bacon, Lord Keeper of the Great
-Seal, attended meetings held in Rochford Hall by Mr. Wright, who had
-been ordained in the Netherlands. Writing to Lord Burleigh, that lady
-observed, "I hear, them in their public exercises, as a chief duty
-commanded by God to be done, and also I confess, as one that hath
-found mercy, that I have profited more in the inward feeling knowledge
-of God his holy will, though but in a small measure, by such sincere
-and sound opening of the Scriptures by an ordinary preaching within
-these seven or eight year, than I did by hearing odd sermons at Paul's
-well nigh twenty year together."[441]
-
-It is a curious circumstance to find Lord Bacon's mother connected
-with a minister who maintained, as Wright did, that every pastor was a
-bishop, and that he should be chosen by his own congregation, opinions
-which constitute the essence of modern Congregationalism. From these
-opinions the ecclesiastical authorities sought to convert him by
-imprisonment; and with that forcible argument another was associated,
-which is so original that we cannot resist the temptation of quoting
-it. Mr. Barwick, a conforming clergyman, commended to Wright the Church
-of England as a church most admirable on account of its being free from
-the two opposite extremes of Popery and Puritanism. "God delights in
-mediocrity," says this logician, and the logic is worth being noted for
-its curiosity: "Man was put in the _midst_ of Paradise; a rib was taken
-out of the _midst_ of man; the Israelites went through the _midst_
-of the Red Sea, and of Jordan; Samson put firebrands in the _midst_,
-between the foxes' tails; David's men had their garments cut off by
-the _midst_; Christ was hanged in the _midst_ between two thieves."
-
-[Sidenote: _Congregationalism--Henry Browne._]
-
-Perhaps Henry Barrowe,--a lawyer of Gray's Inn, and in his young days
-a courtier,--of all men in the reign of Elizabeth, propounded the
-clearest views of Congregationalism. He strongly objected to forms
-of prayer, especially the Common Prayer Book; to the sacraments, as
-administered in the Church of England; to the ecclesiastical laws and
-canons; to the idea that the establishment was a true church; to the
-extent of the Queen's ecclesiastical supremacy, and to the abolition
-of the judicial law of Moses. He denied that it was lawful for any
-private person to intermeddle with the prince's office, and to reform
-the State without his good liking and licence; but he virtually
-admitted the right of private Christians to share in the regulation of
-ecclesiastical matters: for he expressly contended that the government
-of Christ's Church belongeth not to the profane or unbelieving, neither
-could it, he said, without manifest sacrilege, be set over parishes
-as they then stood in confusion, no difference being made between the
-faithful and unbelieving, all being indifferently received into the
-body of the Church; but over every particular congregation of Christ
-he concluded that there ought to be an eldership, and that every such
-congregation ought to aim at its establishment.[442]
-
-[Sidenote: 1593.]
-
-In 1592 a Church was formed in Nicholas Lane. Spies were on the look
-out, and a wary doorkeeper admitted the little congregation as they
-stealthily dropped in one by one. Mr. Francis Johnson and Mr. Greenwood
-were of the number. The first of these rose and prayed for half an
-hour, and, opening his Genevan Bible, discoursed to the assembly
-on the constitution of primitive brotherhood. The brethren formed
-themselves into such a communion, and gave to each other the right hand
-of fellowship. Mr. Johnson was chosen pastor, after which he baptized
-seven persons. "But they had neither godfathers nor godmothers; and
-he took water and washed the faces of them that were baptized." He
-afterwards broke the bread, consisting of five white loaves, which,
-with a cup of wine, were distributed amongst the members by Mr. Bowman
-and Mr. Lee, who had been elected deacons: after which a collection was
-made for the poor.[443]
-
-Not only in Nicholas Lane, but in Aldgate and Smithfield, were
-gatherings of this description, and especially in Islington, where
-meetings of persecuted Protestants had been held in Mary's reign. As
-the dew sparkled on the grass, as the birds twittered on the hedges,
-and as the sun bathed the landscape in golden light--the memories of
-the congregation in the Islington woods would go back to Roger Holland
-and his brother confessors, who on that very greensward, and under the
-shadow of those old trees, had studied their Bibles, and then been
-burned for doing so.
-
-[Sidenote: _Barrowe and Browne._]
-
-Barrowe and Greenwood were indicted at the Old Bailey, in 1593, for
-publishing seditious books, but from the examination preserved in the
-Egerton papers,[444] it appears that the specific accusations against
-them related simply to religious opinions.
-
-By a refinement of cruelty these poor men were conveyed to
-Tyburn in the death-cart--to receive a delusive respite under the
-gallows-tree--to be brought back again to Newgate--and when they
-had thought that the bitterness of death was past, to be a second
-time dragged to the place of execution, to return no more. This
-extraordinary proceeding, which at first looks like a piece of
-intentional barbarity, receives its explanation from a contemporary
-letter in the State Paper Office.
-
-[Sidenote: 1609.]
-
-"The Parliament is to end this week. * * * There was a bill preferred
-against the Barrowists and Brownists, making it felony to maintain
-any opinions against the ecclesiastical government, [which by the
-bishops' means did pass the Upper House, but found so captious by the
-Nether House, as it was thought it would never have passed in any
-sort, for that it was thought all the Puritans would have been drawn
-within the compass thereof. Yet by the earnest labouring of those that
-sought to satisfy the bishops' humours,] it is passed to this effect:
-That whosoever shall be an obstinate recusant, refusing to come to
-any church, and do deny the Queen to have any power or authority in
-ecclesiastical causes, and do, by writing or otherwise, publish the
-same, and be a keeper of conventicles also, being convicted, he shall
-abjure the realm within three months, and lose all his goods and
-lands; if he return without leave it shall be felony. Thus have they
-minced it, as is thought, so as it will not reach to any man that
-shall deserve favour in a concurrence of so many faults and actions.
-The week before, upon the late conventicle you wrote of last, Barrowe
-and Goodman,[445] with some others, were indicted, arraigned, and
-condemned upon the statute of writing and publishing seditious books,
-and should have been executed, but as they were ready to be trussed
-up were reprieved, but the day after, the Court House had shewn
-their dislike of this bill, were early in the morning hanged. It is
-said 'their reprieval proceeded of [a supplication made to the Lord
-Treasurer, complaining that in a land where no Papist was touched for
-religion by death, their blood (concurring in opinion touching faith
-with that which was professed in the realm) should be first shed.
-Desiring, therefore, conference to be removed from their errors by
-reason, or else for satisfaction of the world, touching their opinions,
-which was communicated by him to the Archbishop of Canterbury, who,
-notwithstanding, was very peremptory, so as the Lord Treasurer gave
-him and the Bishop of Worcester some round taxing words, and used some
-speech to the Queen, but was not seconded by any, which hath made him
-more remiss, as is thought. It is plainly said that their execution,
-proceeding of malice of the bishops, to spite the Nether House, which
-hath procured them much hatred among the common people affected that
-way."][446] * * * *
-
-John Penry, another Congregational martyr--who uttered the following
-memorable words:--"If my blood were an ocean sea, and every drop
-thereof were a life unto me, I would give them all, by the help of the
-Lord, for the maintenance of my confession"--perished on the gallows
-for the advocacy of his opinions, as if he had been the worst of
-criminals, at a place in Southwark called St. Thomas-a-Watering. Roger
-Rippon, of the same religious profession as Penry, died in prison;
-and his friends, moved by intense sympathy with the sufferer, and
-by indignation against his unmerited fate, paraded before the house
-of Justice Young (the magistrate who had committed him) the coffin
-containing the sufferer's remains, on the lid of which appeared
-the following inscription:--"This is the corpse of Roger Rippon, a
-servant of Christ, and her Majesty's faithful subject; who is the
-last of sixteen or seventeen, which that great enemy of God, the
-Archbishop of Canterbury, with his High Commissioners, have murdered
-in Newgate within these four years, manifestly for the testimony of
-Jesus Christ. His soul is now with the Lord, and his blood crieth for
-speedy vengeance against that great enemy of the saints, and against
-Mr. Richard Young, who in this and many the like points hath abused
-his power, for the upholding of the Romish Antichrist, prelacy, and
-priesthood."[447]
-
-[Sidenote: _Congregationalism--Jacob._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1632, May.]
-
-Henry Jacob is a commanding figure in Congregational annals.[448]
-Originally a clergyman in the county of Kent, he had written in
-defence of the Church of England, but afterwards, perhaps influenced
-by an answer to his book from the pen of Francis Johnson, a zealous
-separatist, he warmly espoused the cause of Nonconformity.[449] To him
-has been attributed a tract, published in 1609, entitled: "An Humble
-Supplication for Toleration and Liberty to enjoy and observe the
-Ordinances of Jesus Christ in the Administration of His Churches in
-lieu of Human Constitutions." In this publication it is maintained,
-that "our Lord Jesus hath given to each particular church or ordinary
-congregation this right and privilege, namely, to elect, ordain, and
-deprive her own ministers; and to exercise all the other parts of
-lawful ecclesiastical jurisdiction under Him." Toleration is sought
-in order that "each particular church may put in execution this her
-particular privilege;" but, the writer adds: "We do humbly beseech
-your Majesty not to think, that by our suit, we make an overture and
-way for toleration unto Papists, our suit being of a different nature
-from theirs. The inducements thereof, such as cannot conclude aught in
-favour of them, whose doctrine is heresy, and a profession directly
-contrary to the lawful state and government of free countries and
-kingdoms, as your Majesty hath truly and judiciously observed."[450]
-
-In other tracts which bear Henry Jacob's name,[451] he explained his
-views of Independency, and in accordance with them he founded a church
-in the year 1616. The ceremony connected with the institution is
-described as consisting of fasting and prayer, and the joining together
-of the hands of the members as they solemnly covenanted to walk
-together in all God's ways and ordinances, according as He had already
-revealed them, or should further make them known. Jacob was succeeded
-in the pastorship of the Congregational Church by John Lathrop,[452]
-who suffered from the tyranny of the High Commission Court. With
-reference to the proceedings carried on against him and certain members
-of his flock, some fresh information may be gathered from one of the
-Rawlinson MSS. As it illustrates both the extent to which private
-meetings of the Separatists were carried, and the interruption which
-they experienced, we will here introduce a few passages from that
-curious document.
-
-[Sidenote: _Persecution of Congregationalists._]
-
-On the 2nd of May, 1632, certain conventiclers, as they are called,
-were taken at the house of Barnett, a brewer's clerk, residing at
-Blackfriars.[453] At first John Lathrop, who is described as their
-minister, did not appear, "but kept himself out of the way awhile;
-therefore the man of the house wherein they were taken, was first
-called." He was asked when he last attended the parish church? He
-replied that he was present in the parish church at the time when,
-according to the allegation, the meeting was held at his house, but
-that his wife did not then attend worship with him. The accused persons
-were all required to take the _ex officio_ oath, but they excused
-themselves from doing so at least for the present, and requested time
-for further consideration of that subject. Archbishop Abbot addressed
-them as follows:--
-
-[Sidenote: 1632, May.]
-
-"You shew yourselves most unthankful to God, to the King, and to the
-Church of England, that when (God be praised) through his Majesty's
-care and ours you have preaching in every church, and men have
-liberty to join in prayer and participate of the sacraments, and have
-catechisings, and all to enlighten you, and which may serve you in
-the way of salvation, you in an unthankful manner cast off all this
-yoke, and in private unlawfully assemble yourselves together, making
-rents and divisions in the Church. If anything be amiss, let it be
-known; if anything be not agreeable to the Word of God, we shall be
-as ready to redress it as you; but whereas it is nothing but your own
-imaginations, and you are unlearned men that seek to make up a religion
-of your own heads, I doubt no persuasion will serve the turn, we must
-take this course; you are called here, let them stand upon their bonds,
-and let us see what they will answer; it may be they will answer what
-may please us." Laud, then Bishop of London, proceeded to observe, in
-a very characteristic manner--"It is time to take notice of these; nay
-this is not the fourth part of them about this City. You see these came
-of set purpose; they met not by chance; they are desperately heretical;
-they are all of different places, out of Essex, St. Austin's, St.
-Martin's le Grand, Buttolph's, Aldgate, Thisleworth, (Isleworth) St.
-Saviour's; let these be imprisoned. Let me make a motion. There be
-four of the ablest men of them; let these four answer and be proceeded
-against, and the while if the rest come in, they shall be received,
-but if they will not, I know no reason why four or five men should not
-answer for all."
-
-When Lathrop was present before the Commissioners, the Bishop, after
-having asked some very insulting questions, demanded, "Where are your
-orders?" to which Lathrop replied--"I am a minister of the Gospel of
-Christ, and the Lord hath qualified me." "Will you lay your hand on
-the book, and take your oath?" enquired the Court; to which question
-the minister returned a distinct negative. The following curious
-conversation between the Commissioners and certain accused parties is
-worth being transcribed. Eaton, together with "two women and a maid,"
-appeared, and were asked by the Court why they were assembled in a
-conventicle, when others were at church?
-
-[Sidenote: _Persecution of Congregationalists._]
-
-_Eaton._ "We were not assembled in contempt of the magistrate."
-
-_London._ "No! it was in contempt of the Church of England."
-
-_Eaton._ "It was in conscience to God (may it please this Honourable
-Court); and we were kept from church, for we were confined in the house
-together by those that beset the house, else divers would have gone to
-church, and many came in after the sermons were done."
-
-_London._ "These were first discovered at Lambeth, and then at other
-places, and now taken here; they have in their meetings books printed
-against the Church of England."
-
-_Archbishop of Canterbury._ "Where were you in the mornings before you
-came hither to this house?"
-
-[_Eaton._] "We were in our own families."
-
-_Canterbury._ "What did you?"
-
-_Eaton._ "We read the Scriptures, and catechised our families; and may
-it please this honourable Court to hear us speak the truth, we will
-shew you what was done, and (free us of the contempt of authority) we
-did nothing but what you will allow us to do."
-
-_London._ "Who can free you? These are dangerous men; they are a
-scattered company sown in all the City, and about St. Michael of the
-Querne, St. Austin's, Old Jury, Redriffe, and other remoter places.
-Hold them the book."
-
-_Eaton._ "I dare not swear, nor take this oath, though I will not
-refuse it; I will consider of it."
-
-_Sir Henry Marten._[454] "Hear, hear! You shall swear but to answer
-what you know, and as far as you are bound by law. You shall have time
-to consider of it, and have it read over and over till you can say it
-without book if you will; when you have first taken your oath that you
-will make a true answer."
-
-[Sidenote: 1632, May.]
-
-_Eaton._ "I dare not; I know not what I shall swear to."
-
-_King's Advocate._[455] "It is to give a true answer to articles put
-into the Court against you, or that shall be put in touching this
-conventicle of yours, and divers your heretical tenets, and what words
-and exercises you used, and things of this nature."
-
-_Eaton._ "I dare not."
-
-_Archbishop of Canterbury._ "What say you, woman?"
-
-_Sara Jones._ "I dare not worship God in vain."
-
-_Bishop of London._ "Will you not swear and take an oath when you are
-called to it by the magistrate?"
-
-_S. Jones._ "Yes! I will answer upon my oath to end a controversy
-before a lawful magistrate."
-
-_Earl of Dorset._ "What dost thou think, woman, of these grave Fathers
-of the Church, that these here be not lawful magistrates?"
-
-[_S. Jones._] "I would do anything that is according to God's word."
-
-[_Richard Neile_] _Archbishop of York._ "Would you? then you must take
-your oath now you are required by your governors; you must swear in
-truth, in judgment, in righteousness."
-
-[Sidenote: _Persecution of Congregationalists._]
-
-_S. Jones._ "Yes, and they that walk in righteousness shall have peace;
-but I dare not forswear myself."
-
-_Canterbury._ "Come, what say you?"
-
-_Pennina Howes_ (a maid). "I dare not swear this oath till I am better
-informed of it, for which I desire time."
-
-_Sir Henry Marten._ "Must you not be ready to give an account of your
-faith?"
-
-_P. Howes._ "Yes! I will give an answer of my faith if I be demanded,
-but not willingly forswear myself."
-
-_King's Advocate._ "What, will you take your oath, good woman?"
-
-_Sara Barbone._ "I dare not swear; I do not understand it; I will tell
-the truth without swearing."
-
-_Archbishop of Canterbury._ "Take them away."
-
-So they were all committed to the New Prison. And it was appointed that
-at the next Court, being a fortnight after this, because of Ascension
-Day, they should be brought again to the Consistory at St. Paul's,
-because of trouble and danger in bringing so many prisoners as these
-were over the water to Lambeth.
-
-These people were immediately committed to the New Prison; and on the
-8th of the same month (May) they were brought up again before the
-same tribunal, when again they declined to take the obnoxious oath.
-On the 7th of June, it was reported to the Court that some of the
-conventiclers had escaped; and on the 17th more persons were arraigned,
-who had been seized at a meeting held in a wood near Newington, in
-Surrey. These also refused to be sworn, after which the Bishop of
-London and the Archbishop of Canterbury repeated their expostulations.
-The High Commission, on the 21st, had brought before it Ralf Grafton,
-an upholsterer, dwelling in Cornhill, and reported to be a rich man,
-charged with being a principal ringleader of "those conventiclers that
-met at Blackfriars." Upon his declaring, "I dare not take the oath,
-and I am no ringleader of any to evil," the Archbishop said: "You met
-without law; you had no authority; _pœna ad paucos_, _metus ad
-omnes_; wherefore, the Court, for his contempt in refusing to take the
-oath, set a fine of two hundred pounds upon him, and committed him to
-prison." Grafton replied: "I have bail here ready, if you please to
-take it; I do tender it to you." Upon this the Bishops exclaimed: "No;
-away with him to prison; if he come not in by the day of mitigation,
-let the fine stand!"[456]
-
-[Sidenote: 1630.]
-
-In connection with these notices of persecution endured by frequenters
-of conventicles, we may present the following picture of their method
-of worship, as depicted by one of their enemies in that style of minute
-and graphic detail which so characteristically marks the narrative
-of events given by common people in the sixteenth and seventeenth
-centuries:--"To shew the manner of their assembling, or dissembling,
-in that house where they intend to meet, there is one appointed to
-keep the door, for the intent to give notice if there should be any
-insurrection, warning may be given to them. They do not flock together,
-but come two or three in a company. Any man may be admitted thither,
-and all being gathered together, the man appointed to teach stands in
-the midst of the room, and his audience gather about him. He prayeth
-about the space of half an hour; and part of his prayer is, that those
-which came thither to scoff and laugh, God would be pleased to turn
-their hearts, by which means they think to escape undiscovered. His
-sermon is about the space of an hour, and then doth another stand
-up, to make the text more plain; and at the latter end he entreats
-them all to go home severally, lest the next meeting they should be
-interrupted by those which are of the opinion of the wicked. They seem
-very steadfast in their opinions, and say, rather than they will turn,
-they will burn."[457]
-
-[Sidenote: _Independents and Brownists._]
-
-Though certain Independents of the seventeenth century disavowed all
-connection with the Brownists, that name was often applied to them;
-and in some instances it is difficult to decide whether by the title
-we are to understand persons whose origin might be traced to the
-teaching of Cecil's relative, or persons who had been made converts by
-more recent apostles of Independency.[458] Allusions are discovered
-in the Corporation Records of Yarmouth for the years 1629 and 1630 to
-Brownists then living in that town. The Earl of Dorset, writing in the
-latter of these years to the bailiffs, aldermen, and commonalty, after
-a reference to the party spirit prevalent in the borough, observes:
-"I should want in my good care of you if I should not let you know
-that his Majesty is not only informed, but incensed against you for
-conniving at and tolerating a company of _Brownists_ amongst you. I
-pray you remember there was no seam in our Saviour's garment. _Root out
-that pestiferous sect forth from your town; they are as dangerous to
-the soul as the plague is to the body._ But I know not whether in this
-you be traduced, as well as (I am sure) you have been in other things.
-They are arrows shot forth from the same quiver, and drawn by the same
-hands; and perhaps the mark aimed at through that false perspective
-is but to place in his Majesty an ill opinion of you. If you be
-innocent, let me know, and I shall endeavour to clear you. Howsoever,
-I pray, give testimony of your obedience and good zeal to religion in
-_chasing those companions from your society. God cannot prosper you
-while they live amongst you, and you willingly protect and harbour
-them_; and I am sure it will alienate his Majesty's respect from you
-and enforce him to take some course against you, when you shall so
-neglect your duties in that kind."[459]
-
-[Sidenote: 1630.]
-
-[Sidenote: _Independents and Brownists._]
-
-The Corporation gave heed to the Earl's exhortation, and in reply,
-dated the 13th of September, 1630, manifested abundant zeal in rooting
-out schism.
-
-"Concerning those _separatists_ by your lordship mentioned, we must
-acknowledge that there be amongst us still some persons of that sect,
-to the number of thirty, and not above; the most of them women; not
-any one of them ever yet bearing the meanest office amongst us, and,
-one only excepted, not any one of ability to be a subsidy man. What
-courses we have taken from time to time for the suppressing of them,
-the Lord's Grace of York, whilst he was our diocesan, could bear us
-record, to whom (as we have since done to our present diocesan, as
-also to the Lord Bishop of London) we tendered an impartial list of
-all their names, without favour or affection, craving his lordship's
-aid for their reformation. The ecclesiastical courts have from time
-to time received presentments of them. The judges of assize have
-been solicited by us. What authority soever the law has put into our
-hands, we have not spared to execute to the uttermost, by indicting
-them constantly at our public sessions, by fining them according to
-statute, by imprisoning the ringleaders amongst them, and by _forcing
-some of them to avoid, not only the place, but the kingdom_. If, beyond
-this, we could be directed by and to any course whereby we might free
-ourselves of them, we should not only willingly, but thankfully embrace
-it. In the meantime, vouchsafe the acceptance of this our humble
-protestation, that, as for ourselves, being the representatives of the
-town, we are, all and every one of us, free from faction and schism,
-either in religion or discipline, and every ways conformable to the
-doctrine and government of this Church, whereof we profess ourselves to
-be members."[460]
-
-[Sidenote: 1630.]
-
-[Sidenote: _Independents and Brownists._]
-
-In connection with this reference to the Brownists and the poor
-Separatists of Yarmouth, (for amongst them, it is said, there was not
-"one subsidy man,") it may be observed that two classes of Independents
-are distinctly visible at that period. As some Independents, mostly
-the obscure, went further than others in their doctrine of toleration;
-so some Independents, principally of the same class, went further than
-others in the doctrine of voluntaryism. Any broad and philosophical
-exposition of that now much discussed principle we have not been able
-to discover in the writings of that day; others, better acquainted
-with the immense pamphlet literature of the times, may prove more
-successful. But, at an earlier period, in a Confession of Faith
-published in 1616, there occurs the following simple and explicit
-statement on the subject:--"We believe that tithes for the pastor's
-maintenance under the Gospel are not the just and due means thereof.
-Howbeit, yet we do not think these tithes absolutely unlawful, if
-they remain voluntary; but when they are made necessary we think
-them not to be so lawful. The same do we judge also of whatsoever
-other set maintenance for ministers of the Gospel is established
-by temporal laws. We grant, that for the minister's security, such
-established maintenance is best; but for preserving due freedom in the
-congregation, sincerity in religion, and sanctity in the whole flock,
-the congregation's voluntary and conscionable contribution for their
-pastor's sustenance and maintenance is, doubtless, the safest and
-most approved--nay, it seemeth the only way; wherewith the Apostles
-caused their times to be content, neither did they care for other order
-therein; which certainly they would and should have done if other order
-had been better. Only they are careful (and that very religiously)
-to command all churches of conscience and duty to God to give (not
-sparingly, but liberally, and not as alms, but as duty), for upholding,
-advancing, and countenancing of the holy worship and service of God,
-which is either much strengthened or weakened, much honoured or abased
-among men, according as is the pastor's maintenance."[461] And in
-other tracts, largely quoted by Mr. Hanbury, in his "Memorials," there
-are passages expressing ideas on the subject of ministerial support
-in advance of those which were entertained by more distinguished
-Independents. The latter countenanced and advocated the acceptance of
-tithes; but in a Puritan tract, written before, though not published
-until 1644, notice is taken of a very sharp attack on the tithe system
-by the sect commonly called Brownists or Separatists. It is objected,
-say the Presbyterian authors, "that we are not maintained according to
-the direction Christ hath given in His Testament; but our maintenance
-is Jewish and anti-Christian." "Our ministers receive maintenance
-from all sorts of men in their parish without difference." This they
-call "an execrable sacrilege, and covetous-making merchandize of
-the holy things of God; a letting out of ourselves to hire, to the
-profane for filthy lucre." Tithes, in particular, are denounced by
-these Nonconformists, but the principle of their objection goes to a
-much deeper point than to touch or remove these particular imposts;
-it also cuts at the root of all kinds of ministerial support, except
-that which is exclusively voluntary.[462] In another publication,
-written by Burton against his late fellow-sufferer William Prynne,
-there is a decided assault both on tithes and on parishes; the former
-being pronounced unapostolic, and the latter a human and political
-institution. But, whilst maintaining that Christ will provide for His
-faithful and painful ministers, this champion of voluntary churches
-puts in a caveat in favour of the state appointing some kind of
-"maintenance for the preaching of the word, as is done in New England
-to those who are not members of Churches."[463] At a later period,
-Independents objected to tithes, yet they accepted support from the
-Government in another form.
-
-[Sidenote: 1642.]
-
-Upon the opening of the Long Parliament, Congregationalism took deep
-root, and afterwards spread its branches over East Anglia. As the Dutch
-church in the city of Norwich, the Dutch aspect of Yarmouth Quay, and
-the settlement of a colony of Flemings in the village of Worstead, shew
-that there was an early intercommunication between the inhabitants of
-the Low Countries and the county of Norfolk; so also the connection
-between the English Independents in Holland and the Nonconformists
-of the eastern counties indicate that there was intercourse between
-the people of the opposite shores at a later period, in relation to
-Puritanism and Independency. Links of union appear in the persons of
-the Congregational pastors, Robinson and Bridge, who each resided one
-part of his life in Norfolk and another in Holland.
-
-The oldest Congregational Church in the county of Norfolk was formed in
-Yarmouth, and consisted of persons who had just returned from Holland,
-where they had been in exile for conscience' sake.
-
-"Inchurching," as it is quaintly termed, created much solicitude, and
-the Yarmouth people wrote to Rotterdam for sanction and advice before
-taking any decided step. In 1642, a formal document of dismissal was
-sent; after which it became an enquiry, whether the Church should
-choose Yarmouth or Norwich as the place of assembly. Unable to settle
-this question, they deferred it for a time, and simply resolved upon
-"inchurching, judging ten or twelve to be a competent number." Soon
-afterwards, an answer came "that Yarmouth was safer for the present,"
-and a Church covenant having been adopted and ratified at Norwich, the
-people unitedly chose Mr. Bridge as their pastor. The Independents of
-Norwich held religious worship by themselves in some private house,
-and joined with the townspeople of Yarmouth only in the celebration
-of the Lord's supper. But at length, becoming tired of their journeys
-in passing to and fro, the former constituted themselves a distinct
-community.[464]
-
-[Sidenote: _Presbyterians and Independents._]
-
-The Presbyterians at Yarmouth betrayed some jealousy of their
-Independent neighbours; for Sir Edward Owner, an alderman and justice
-of the peace, who represented the town in the Long Parliament,
-waited, in company with the Presbyterian Incumbent of the parish of
-St. Nicholas, upon Mr. Bridge, to express displeasure at his having
-gathered a Church in what was called the "Congregational way." After
-this occurrence, the Church resolved "that for a time they would
-forbear to receive any into their fellowship, until they gave notice to
-the town that they could forbear no longer."
-
-Mr. Bridge, when elected to the pastorate of this new community, held
-the office of town preacher in Yarmouth, and was also a member of
-the Assembly of Divines. He had preached before the House of Commons
-in February, 1643; and it was in the May of the same year, whilst at
-home, during a temporary suspension of his Westminster duties, that his
-brethren called him to be their Bishop. Notwithstanding his position at
-Westminster and his Congregational office at Yarmouth, the Corporation
-retained him in his municipal chaplaincy and allowed him fifty
-pounds a year during his absence. The continuance of this connection
-no doubt led to the interference of the bailiffs with his pastoral
-relations, and explains the effect produced by the interview; but
-the Church, notwithstanding this circumstance, speedily asserted its
-independence, and by doing so did not at all affect the public position
-of their pastor, or diminish the influence which he exercised over his
-fellow-townsmen.
-
-
-
-
- [Illustration]
-
- CHAPTER XV.
-
-
-[Sidenote: _The Royalist Army._]
-
-Charles went to Oxford after the battle of Edge Hill, and there,
-during the civil wars, set up his head quarters. Occasionally he was
-absent with the army, but that central city, which was so convenient
-for the purpose in many respects, he made his fortress and his home.
-It underwent great alterations. Fortifications were contrived by
-Richard Rallingson, who also drew "a mathematical scheme or plot of
-the garrison;" and in an old print, by Anthony Wood, may be traced
-the zig-zag lines of defence, which were drawn on every side about
-the city.[465] Gownsmen transformed themselves into cavaliers, and
-exchanged college caps for steel bonnets. Streets echoed with the tramp
-of war horses and the clatter of iron-heeled hoots. Wagons, guarded
-by pikemen, and laden with ammunition and stores, rolled through the
-picturesque gateways; and valiant and loyal subjects rallied around
-their Sovereign in the hour of his need, ready to shed their last
-drop of blood beneath his standard. The colleges melted down their
-plate to supply military chests; and Magdalen especially stood true to
-the King's cause. Rupert took up his residence there, and the sound of
-his trumpets calling to horse disturbed the silence of the beautiful
-cloisters. Whilst most of the Fellows, being Divines, could only help
-with their prayers and their purses, one of them, who was a doctor of
-civil law, raised a troop of under-graduates, and fell fighting in his
-Majesty's service.[466] Amidst the excitement which followed the King's
-turns of fortune, he gathered together the relics of his court, and
-established in Christ Church Hall a mock parliament, which was intended
-to rival the real one at Westminster. Charles had grasped at absolute
-power, now nothing remained but the shadow of dominion. At Oxford he
-but played at kingship.
-
-[Sidenote: _The Royalist Army._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1643.]
-
-In the Royal army, of which, perhaps, the worst portion might be
-found at Oxford, the principal officers were men of high spirit and
-courage, with a strong dash in them of old English chivalry; but, with
-some of the virtues of mediæval knighthood, they possessed a more
-than ordinary share of its vices. In retired parts of the country,
-especially in Cornwall, yeomen and peasants, of pure life and artless
-manners, followed Royalist commanders with a sort of feudal devotion;
-but it must be admitted, with regard to most of the regiments who
-fought for the King, that the men in the ranks were worse than those in
-command--for, wanting that tone of manners which marks the well-bred
-gentleman, they had nothing to check the ebullitions of coarse impiety
-and brutal ruffianism. We are not concerned to vindicate the soldiers
-on the other side. No doubt they were chargeable with excesses, some
-of which have been indicated in these pages. Irreligious people mixed
-with Puritans; tapsters and serving men appeared among patriots;
-but, whatever the drawbacks on the reputation of the Parliamentary
-forces, there is but little doubt that the moral character of the men
-on the other side was far worse. Indeed, this is virtually admitted
-by Royalists themselves; for Clarendon paints dark pictures of the
-debauchery of the Lords Goring and Wilmot; and Chillingworth, in a
-sermon preached at Oxford in the autumn of 1643, while charging the
-enemy with Pharisaism, hypocrisy, falsehood, want of justice, and
-pretence of reformation, is also unsparing in his reproofs of Royalist
-profanity, irreligion, and blasphemy.[467]
-
-Fiery resentment burned in both camps, and was industriously fanned by
-the newspapers of the day. Parliamentary journals had nothing but what
-was good to say of their own party, and nothing but what was bad of
-their adversaries. Led away by idle rumours, editors and correspondents
-made mountains of molehills, and often stated as facts what only
-existed in their own distempered brains; all this the scribblers for
-the Oxford press paid back with interest.
-
-[Sidenote: _The Royalist Army._]
-
-Reports were industriously circulated throughout the country affecting
-the religious character of the King and court, upon the tender point
-of popish sympathies. An Irish minister, who had spent seven weeks at
-the University in the summer of 1643, afterwards declared that Irish
-Papists, who had committed atrocious barbarities in the rebellion,
-were received at court with signal favour; that Franciscans and
-Jesuits encouraged the soldiers to fight against the Roundheads, and
-were themselves enrolled as cornets; that Roman Catholic worship
-was performed in every street, and, _he believed_, that for every
-single sermon in the city there were four masses.[468] How much of truth
-there might be in these broad accusations, it is impossible for us to
-determine; but the adage no doubt is applicable here, that where there
-is much smoke there is some fire.[469]
-
-[Sidenote: 1643.]
-
-Charles met all such charges with recriminations. He felt shocked,
-he said, at the impieties and profanations which were committed in
-sacred places; at the countenance which was given to ignorant and
-scandalous laymen who had usurped the ministry; at the suspension and
-reviling of Common Prayer which had become so prevalent; at religion
-being made the cause and ground of rebellion; and at the destruction
-of discipline in the "most unblemished Church of Christendom."[470]
-Nothing could appear right in his estimation which the Parliament did,
-and even their ordinances for national fasts were met with counter
-ordinances for fasts at another season. Prelatists and Puritans would
-not, even for the sins of the nation, fast on the same day; for as at
-Westminster one party commanded that the last Wednesday in the month
-should be devoted to humiliation and prayer, at Oxford the other
-party denounced that appointment, and substituted the second Friday.
-The Royalists threatened to sequester the estates of such clergymen
-as would not obey their command; and, amidst all this most unseemly
-strife, we hear Thomas Fuller exclaiming, in his "Meditations on the
-Times," "Alas! when two messengers, being sent together on the same
-errand, fall out and fight by the way, will not the work be worse
-done than if none were employed? In such a pair of fasts, it is to
-be feared that the divisions of our affections rather would increase
-than abate God's anger towards us. Two negatives make an affirmative.
-Days of humiliation are appointed for men to deny themselves and their
-sinful lusts. But do not our two fasts more peremptorily affirm and
-avouch our mutual malice and hatred? God forgive us: we have cause
-enough to keep _ten_, but not care enough to keep _one_ monthly day of
-humiliation."[471]
-
-To rebut the charge of popery, the King publicly received the sacrament
-at the hands of Archbishop Ussher, in Christ Church, at the same time
-making a solemn protestation, that he had prepared his soul to be a
-worthy receiver, that he derived comfort from the blessed sacrament,
-and that he supported the true reformed Protestant religion, as it
-stood in its beauty in the days of Elizabeth, without any connivance at
-popery. He imprecated, in conclusion, Divine wrath upon himself, if his
-heart did not join with his lips in this protestation.[472]
-
-[Sidenote: _The King at Oxford._]
-
-For his conduct on this occasion he is accused of hypocrisy, because
-a few days afterwards he agreed to a truce with Ireland, and to the
-toleration of Papists in that country. To grant such a truce and such
-a toleration would not in the present day be deemed inconsistent with
-the sincerest Protestantism; but the matter was otherwise regarded
-at that time, and most advocates of religious liberty then denied
-the privilege to Roman Catholics, because they knew that Catholics
-would deny the privilege to them. Indeed, they reckoned such persons
-no better than social incendiaries, and incorrigible rebels against
-constitutional government; and, however unreasonable it may seem to
-us, they considered that to allow any scope for popish worship was
-to connive at the practices of popish treason. Charles himself was
-by no means prepared to place the toleration of Roman Catholics on
-its righteous grounds. He was willing, when it served his purpose, to
-declare himself of one mind with those who condemned all religious
-freedom; and he must have wished the declaration made by him, upon
-receiving the Lord's supper from the hands of Ussher, to be understood
-as meaning that he would not tolerate popery at all. Therefore,
-to proclaim toleration to Irish Catholics immediately after this
-declaration could not but lay him open to the charge of hypocrisy on
-the part of his contemporaries. But at the same time we have no doubt
-that his expression of attachment to the Protestant religion as it
-stood in the days of Elizabeth, understanding by that expression a
-religion both anti-papal and anti-puritanical, was perfectly sincere.
-Prelacy was an essential principle in the reformed religion of Charles;
-and with prelacy were associated in his mind forms of worship which
-many of his subjects pronounced to be "flat popery." His notions of
-reformation, perhaps, mainly hinged on a separation from Rome, with the
-abolition of monachism and the removal of certain gross abuses which
-had been prevalent in the mediæval church. He inherited, in fact, the
-Protestantism of the Tudors: but at the same time he had none of the
-magnanimity of Elizabeth, none of that religious patriotism which made
-her the idol of her subjects, none of that indignation against popish
-wrongs and cruelties, which she so strongly felt and expressed--as,
-for example, when she dressed herself in deep mourning to receive the
-gay French ambassador after the St. Bartholomew massacre:--in short,
-Charles had none of that spirit which made Elizabeth appear, without
-any tinge of hypocrisy, so much more of a Protestant than she really
-was. And we may add, that he had a trick of saying and doing things
-with a smooth artificial gravity which awakened suspicion, so that even
-when really honest he found it difficult to obtain credit for sincerity.
-
-[Sidenote: 1643.]
-
-It is remarkable that we do not find any High Church Bishops with
-the King at Oxford. Even Skinner, Bishop of the diocese, had retired
-from the city to the rectory of Taunton. The absence of others may be
-attributed to personal restraint, or the dangers of travelling in a
-time of civil war, or a sense of duty towards their scattered flocks,
-or a disinclination to throw themselves into a military camp. But some
-other prelates and clergymen of a different character come under our
-notice, as present at Oxford at this critical period.
-
-[Sidenote: _Bishops at Oxford._]
-
-Bryan Duppa, Bishop of Salisbury--whose fine face and silvery locks,
-set off to advantage by the robes of the Garter, may be seen in his
-portrait on the walls of Christ Church--upon being stripped of his
-episcopal revenues waited on his Majesty, and was entrusted by him with
-business of the greatest importance. Archbishop Ussher preached before
-the court, carried on his literary labours in the University, and, as
-an opponent of the toleration of Papists, took part in a discussion
-held in the royal presence upon that subject. Soon afterwards he
-further offended the Roman Catholics by a discourse from the words of
-Nehemiah, iv. 11:--"And our adversaries said, they shall not know,
-neither see, till we come in the midst among them, and slay them,
-and cause the work to cease." In this discourse he contended, that
-no dependence could be placed on Romanists, and that on the first
-opportunity they would act towards the Protestants of England as
-they had recently done towards the Protestants of Ireland. He also
-preached sermons to his Royalist auditory in a tone of remarkable
-fidelity and earnestness, dwelling upon the folly of expecting that
-God would prosper the cause of those who provoked Him to anger by the
-dissoluteness of their lives.[473]
-
-Perhaps Jeremy Taylor also might be found at Oxford, after having lost
-the rectory of Uppingham, in Rutlandshire. Wood says that he preached
-before the King, and followed the Royal army in the capacity of a
-chaplain; and probably it was during this part of his life that he
-reaped some of those military allusions which we find in his sermons.
-As, for example, when he compares the man who prays in a discomposed
-spirit, to him that sets up his closet in the outquarters of an army,
-and chooses a frontier garrison to be wise in: and when he speaks of
-the poor soldier, standing in the breach, "almost starved with cold and
-hunger," "pale and faint, weary and watchful," and of the same person
-in his tent by dim lantern light, having a "bullet pulled out of his
-flesh, and shivers from his bones, and enduring his mouth to be sewed
-up, from a violent rent, to its own dimensions."[474]
-
-[Sidenote: 1643.]
-
-Dr. Thomas Fuller, we may add, after being deprived of his preferment
-at the Savoy, and leaving behind him his library, found refuge in
-Lincoln College, and preached before the King; the losses which this
-cheerful Divine suffered at the time leading him to observe, with
-his accustomed humour, "that his going to Oxford cost him all that
-he had, a dear seventeen weeks compared with the seventeen years he
-spent in Cambridge." Whilst Fuller tarried in the former University,
-there arrived Lord Hopton, an eminent Royalist officer of moderate
-opinions and of a pacific disposition. The ejected minister of the
-Savoy became a chaplain to the regiment of this brave soldier and
-sincerely religious man, and he hoped by filling this office to wipe
-off the stain of disaffection with which his enemies had endeavoured
-to spot his fame. He accompanied Hopton to the west, where he accepted
-a nominal chaplaincy to the infant Princess Henrietta, who was born at
-Bedford House, in the city of Exeter, on the 16th June, 1644.[475]
-
-[Sidenote: _Clergy at Oxford._]
-
-Another eminent churchman was now at Oxford. William Chillingworth,
-after the raising of the siege of Gloucester, left the construction
-of his Roman _testudines_, and more befittingly employed himself in
-preaching before the University, and in writing polemical tracts,
-especially one, entitled "The Apostolical Institution of Episcopacy."
-This publication, which was not answered for years afterwards, is
-very characteristic of its author, and takes a ground of defence for
-the Church of England not at all agreeable to high Prelatists; for he
-reduces Episcopal government to the smallest dimensions, specifying its
-essence to be no more than the appointment of one person of eminent
-sanctity, to take care of all the churches in a diocese--his authority
-being bounded by law and moderated by assistants. Even this scantling
-of rule he seems to defend rather than enforce--stating as the ground
-of adopting it, that there is _no record of our Saviour against it_,
-that it is _not repugnant_ to the apostolic government, and that it is
-_as compliable_ with the reformation of the Church, as any other kind
-of polity.[476] Chillingworth did not long survive his employment at
-Oxford; and the short remaining history of his life is so curious, so
-illustrative of the religious aspects of the war, and of the oddities
-of people engaged in it, that we venture to transfer it to these pages.
-
-[Sidenote: 1643.]
-
-He was taken prisoner in Arundel Castle; whither, in the month of
-January, 1644, he had repaired, to recover from an indisposition
-brought on by the inclemency of the winter. As he was not fit to travel
-to London with the captured garrison, the victorious Parliamentarians
-removed the distinguished Episcopalian to Chichester, a favour for
-which he was indebted to Mr. Cheynell, whose story is curiously
-entwined with his own. Cheynell, a rigid, zealous Presbyterian,
-"exactly orthodox, and very unwilling that any should be supposed
-to go to heaven but in the right way," had been ejected from his
-living in Sussex by the Royalists, and happened to be at Chichester
-when Chillingworth reached it as a prisoner. With sympathy for his
-old antagonist, Cheynell procured for him lodgings in the bishop's
-palace. Chillingworth, who had never been violent enough to please
-the Royalists, was infamously denounced by one of them; but Cheynell
-defended his reputation, guarded his health, and, as he informs us,
-took care of "something more precious than either, to wit, his beloved
-soul." Yet he wearied him with interrogations and arguments about King
-and Parliament, Prelate and Puritan. "I desired," he says, "to know
-his opinion concerning that liturgy, which had been formerly so much
-extolled, and even idolized amongst the people; but all the answer that
-I could get was to this purpose, that there were some truths which
-the ministers of the gospel are not bound, upon pain of damnation,
-to publish to the people; and, indeed, he conceived it very unfit to
-publish anything concerning the Common Prayer Book or the Book of
-Ordination for fear of scandal." "When I found him pretty hearty one
-day, I desired him to tell me whether he conceived that a man living
-and dying a Turk, Papist, or Socinian; could be saved." No doubt the
-question was so pointed, on account of the dying man's reputation for
-latitudinarianism, or as he believed it to be, charity, and in this
-respect Chillingworth was consistent to the last. "All the answer that
-I could gain from him," says Cheynell, "was that he did not absolve
-them, and would not condemn them." It is pleasant amidst all this
-gossip, and much more of the same description, to find Cheynell telling
-his old friend and controversialist that he prayed for him in private,
-and asking him whether he desired public intercession as well. He
-replied, "Yes, with all his heart, and he said withal, that he hoped he
-should fare better for their prayers."[477]
-
-[Sidenote: _Clergy at Oxford._]
-
-After Chillingworth's death, Cheynell had the corpse laid out in a
-coffin covered with a hearse-cloth. The friends of the deceased were
-entertained, according to their own desire, with wine and cakes. Those
-who bore his remains to the grave were Episcopalians; and--as a
-further touch of description to illustrate those times--it may be added
-that, according to the custom of the country, they had each a bunch of
-rosemary, a mourning ribband, and a pair of gloves. Different opinions
-were expressed as to where the churchman ought to be interred. It was
-at last decided in favour of Chichester, liberty being granted to "all
-the malignants" to attend the hearse. When they came to the grave,
-Cheynell, as he held in his hand what he called the "_mortal_ book" of
-the great Protestant advocate--the very book which has received the
-praises of all generations since as _immortal_--proceeded with strange
-infatuation to denounce it in terms of the most violent abuse, after
-which he flung the volume into the open grave.[478]
-
-[Sidenote: 1643.]
-
-Charles, whilst remaining at Oxford, had amongst the Episcopal
-clergy other staunch friends residing elsewhere. Of this number was
-John Barwick, a Fellow of St. John's, Cambridge,[479] who acted as
-chaplain to Bishop Morton during the civil wars, and who continued
-with him as long as he remained in Durham House. This he did, his
-biographer tells us, for the express purpose of being serviceable to
-the King; concealing himself there "as in a great wood," carrying on
-a private correspondence betwixt London and Oxford, conveying, on the
-one hand, to the loyalists his Majesty's orders and commands, and,
-on the other hand, to his royal master, what he could pick up of the
-"designs and endeavours of the rebels." Resolving to tell no lies, but
-rather "with silence to answer all captious and ensnaring questions,"
-he yet clandestinely wrote and received letters in cypher, the key
-to which he carefully kept. The letters were slid in by stealth,
-amidst pedlar's wares, and carried to and fro, "as it were through
-a lattice, and enveloped in mist." He employed adventurous women to
-disperse everywhere, among friends and foes, books favourable to the
-Royal cause; such emissaries trudging on foot, receiving the books
-from bargemen on the Thames, and distributing them wherever they had
-opportunity. Letters were sometimes sewed in the covers of volumes,
-and secret marks were given to notify their insertion. When the Royal
-cause became desperate, and the King was shut up "as in a net within
-the walls of Oxford," he continued to write to Barwick to do what he
-could, especially by securing, through favour of the Parliamentary
-authorities, those individuals for his personal attendants, upon
-whose faithfulness his Majesty could depend. These notices, extracted
-from "Barwick's Life"--not, on the whole, a very trustworthy book,
-though accurate enough, no doubt, in reference to his contrivances and
-intrigues in favour of the King--throw an interesting light upon a
-great deal which was clandestinely going on at the time in the royal
-service.
-
-
-
-
- [Illustration.]
-
- CHAPTER XVI.
-
-
-[Sidenote: 1643.]
-
-The Long Parliament, almost from the beginning, took ecclesiastical
-affairs entirely into its own hands. It assumed control over church
-property, not, indeed, touching the rights of Puritan patrons, but
-interfering to a large extent with those advowsons and presentations
-which belonged to High Churchmen.
-
-As time rolled on, and especially when the war began, not only rights
-of this description which had belonged to Royalists were forfeited
-entirely; but we may state in passing, that a wholesale sequestration
-of property followed, it being then enacted that the estates real
-and personal of Bishops, Deans and Chapters, and other persons, who
-had either taken up arms against the Parliament, or _contributed aid
-or assistance_ to such as did, should be seized, and employed for
-the benefit of the Commonwealth.[480] Such nets swept within their
-meshes an abundance of spoil. Ecclesiastical corporations and Royalist
-nobles, squires, and clergymen, suffered the deprivation not only
-of their ancient privileges, but of their property and possessions.
-One forfeiture in particular may be mentioned, illustrative of the
-control which Parliament assumed over the benefices of the Church. An
-ordinance appeared commanding the Archbishop of Canterbury to collate
-to benefices such persons, and such persons only, as were nominated
-by Parliament.[481] For disobedience to this ordinance he was the
-following month wholly suspended from the duties and privileges of
-his office. The temporalities of the archbishopric were claimed by
-the High Court of Parliament, which ordered that Edward Corbet, a
-Puritan clergyman, whom Laud had refused to collate, should be by the
-Vicar General inducted to the living of Chartham, in Kent, a benefice
-in the Archbishop's gift. The revenues of Deans and Chapters were
-collected and administered by committees, who paid such sums to such
-persons for such purposes as Parliament might appoint. The system of
-pew-rents adopted in some places, like everything else in the Church of
-England, now came under Parliamentary control. Numerous benefices had
-been vacated through the death or the ejection of incumbents. How were
-the vacancies to be filled up? In some instances returned refugees,
-who had suffered in the days of Laud, were instituted to the vacant
-benefices.[482] Scotch Divines, and ministers of other Protestant
-Churches, were also declared eligible for appointment. At the same
-time Episcopal ordinations were not nullified, and the validity of all
-Presbyterian ordinations, as a matter of course, was acknowledged by a
-Presbyterian Parliament.
-
-[Sidenote: _Committees for Ecclesiastical Affairs._]
-
-The Committees for _scandalous_ ministers had early in 1643 been
-followed by a Committee for _plundered_ ministers, that title being
-used to designate clergymen who had been ejected from their livings
-by the Royal army. The Committee for plundered ministers provided
-them with relief; and the instruction given to this body directed
-their attention to malignant clergymen, holding benefices in and about
-town, whose benefices after being sequestered might be appropriated
-to ministers of a different character. As the plundered were thus put
-in the place of the scandalous, the Committee for the plundered took
-cognizance of what had previously been submitted to the Committee
-for the scandalous. In July they received power to consider cases
-of scandal apart from charges of malignity, and to dismiss those
-whose characters would not bear examination. On the 6th of September
-the Commons ordered the Deputy-Lieutenants and the Committees
-of Parliament, or any five or more of their number, to take the
-examinations of witnesses against any ministers who were scandalous in
-life or doctrine, and also against any who had of late deserted their
-cures or assisted the forces raised against Parliament.[483]
-
-[Sidenote: 1643.]
-
-This order, upon being examined, shews that subordinate authorities
-were appointed to co-operate with the superior one--that they were
-commissioned to discharge magisterial functions in the provinces by
-collecting evidence, which they were required to transmit to the
-Committee sitting in London. It is also obvious that this parent
-Committee itself stood in the same relation to Parliament as other
-Committees, and that its business was to communicate information
-to the House, not to exercise any independent control. A very
-notable puritan phenomenon is this often-vilified body, with its
-manifold provincial ramifications. Persons may fairly object to
-Parliament men being invested with such ecclesiastical powers, and
-they may also consistently complain of the innovations made by such
-an arrangement upon the ancient ecclesiastical system of England;
-but nobody can charge this Committee with setting to work in an
-unbusiness-like manner, or with acting in an arbitrary and impulsive
-way. No sinecurists--anything but idle--toiling day by day, and that
-for several hours together, they did their work from beginning to
-end by line and rule. No committee ever proceeded with more order
-and with greater regularity. They had definite principles of action,
-and they carefully followed them. The minutes which they kept, with
-the signatures of the chairmen, are still extant,[484] and speak for
-themselves.
-
-Therein we see how one day they resolved to report to the House the
-conclusions at which they had arrived, and the course which they
-recommended to be pursued; and how, another day, they finally declared
-what should be done "by virtue of an order of both Houses."
-
-Dipping into these records, we find the Committee resolving upon the
-augmentation of poor livings. For example, £8 payable to Ussher, Bishop
-of Carlisle, out of the impropriate tithes of Allhallows, Cumberland,
-and the further annual sum of £20, out of the impropriate tithes
-forfeited by a delinquent, are granted, March 3rd, 1646, for the
-purpose of increasing the stipend of such minister as the Committee
-should approve to officiate in the church of Allhallows. A grant of
-£40, out of a Papist's impropriation, is made on the 15th of July,
-1646, for the maintenance of a minister to a chapelry in Lancashire,
-subject to the approbation of the Divines appointed by ordinance of
-Parliament for examination of ministers in that county. The incomes
-of several vicarages are noticed as augmented by grants out of
-forfeited revenues. Grants also appear for weekly lectures by assistant
-ministers; for instance, at Tamworth, "by reason of the largeness
-of parish, and the concourse thereto from other places." A petition
-to the Committee for sequestration which met at Goldsmiths' Hall is
-reported as coming from the parish of Benton, and from two contiguous
-chapelries, complaining that there was but one minister for all those
-places, and that he was a reader and an alehouse keeper; and also
-stating that, by reason of the corruption of Episcopacy, only £10 a
-year out of the glebe lands and tithes had been paid to a curate, who,
-on account of his poverty, was constrained to keep an alehouse.
-
-[Sidenote: _Tithes._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1644.]
-
-Tithes, of course, were payable when harvest came. Each rector
-would, as of old, have the right of sending an agent among the corn
-shocks, that he might affix to every tenth some twig or other sign of
-ecclesiastical appropriation. But the revolution at the commencement
-of the civil wars had thrown into jeopardy such ecclesiastical claims.
-Not only could the farmer then, as always, expose the rector to damage
-and loss, but he could also successfully resist the setting out and
-appropriation altogether. Greater hazard still, perhaps, attached to
-the demand "of rates for tithes;" and altogether it is plain that the
-distress of the clergy must in some cases have been very great.[485]
-Consequently, on the 8th of November, 1644, Parliament issued an
-ordinance stating, that there remained not any such compulsory means
-for recovery of tithes by ecclesiastical proceedings as before had
-been the case; and the remedy now provided was to make complaint to
-two justices of the peace, who were authorized to summon the person
-complained of, and after examination on oath, to adjudge the case with
-costs; a method which, at least for its simplicity and summariness,
-presented a striking contrast to all previous modes of procedure in
-ecclesiastical or civil courts. In case of non-payment, distraint
-might be made by order of the justices, and if there remained nothing
-available for that purpose, the defaulter could be committed to
-prison.[486] The city of London was exempted from the operation of the
-ordinance, an exemption afterwards repealed. We may add that vicars
-probably would be exposed to special inconvenience in collecting their
-small tithes, whilst their incomes, even when fully paid, would in many
-cases be very inconsiderable. Hence, on turning over the Parliament
-Journals, we find orders given for the Ecclesiastical Commissioners to
-consider how poor vicarages and cures could be raised to a competent
-maintenance out of Cathedral revenues and impropriate parsonages.
-
-We may further observe that in the Norwich Corporation Records there
-are numerous entries illustrating the ways in which local Committees
-co-operated with the Committee at Westminster, for uniting parishes,
-enquiring into cathedral revenues, and supporting city clergymen.
-
-The House however was not content to leave all the details of
-ecclesiastical business even to their own farreaching and laborious
-Commissioners, but Argus-eyed, and Briareus-handed, looked into and
-managed almost everything itself.[487]
-
-[Sidenote: _Church and Parliament._]
-
-Although Parliament claimed the absolute right to control benefices,
-there were some things needful for the induction of clergymen
-which could not be comprehended within the range of Parliamentary
-functions. Ministers already accredited, having received Episcopal
-or Presbyterian orders, found no difficulty in the way of collation;
-but what method was to be pursued relative to ministerial candidates
-still unordained? To meet this difficulty the Westminster Assembly
-recommended the temporary appointment of committees for the ordination
-of ministers--only their temporary appointment--for whenever
-Presbyterianism should be fully established, then the Church would of
-course do all things after a Presbyterian fashion. Yet not without
-difficulty did the Divines reach a conclusion on this subject, as the
-Independents and Presbyterians differed to some extent respecting the
-nature of ordination.
-
-[Sidenote: 1644.]
-
-[Sidenote: _Church and Parliament._]
-
-The entire control of Church temporalities centred in Parliament.[488]
-The arrangement had great inconvenience. How such a scheme (had
-it continued) would have worked in the long run, may be conjectured
-from the contests inevitably arising, whenever the civil and sacred
-authorities have come into such close connexion. The quarrels of
-Hildebrand and Henry IV. are but conspicuous, perhaps extreme
-illustrations, of what naturally results from an intimate alliance
-of two such powers as Church and State when guided by different
-impulses. Only so long as sympathy prevailed between the two bodies at
-Westminster could coincident authority continue. The moment that any
-change of feeling arose between them, their co-operation would be at an
-end. The temporary rules which were adopted with regard to ordination
-were the same as those established with a view to permanence the year
-following.[489] They required candidates to take the covenant, to
-undergo an examination in religion and learning, and to prove a call
-to the ministry. If the candidate happened to be deficient in Hebrew,
-Greek, and Latin, he had severer tests applied to his knowledge of
-logic and philosophy. But the machine did not always work smoothly.
-For example, the Committee for plundered ministers sequestered a Mr.
-Leader, vicar of the parish of Thaxted, in Essex, and settled in
-his room a Mr. Hall. The patroness, Lady Maynard, would not present
-Mr. Hall, and preferred to appoint a Mr. Croxon, a man represented
-as notorious for drunkenness and profanity. Articles accordingly
-were exhibited against the latter, in consequence of which Croxon
-was sequestered. Lady Maynard being allowed again to nominate, the
-well-affected parishioners protested against the concession of that
-privilege. The Commissioners, however, stood by her ladyship's rights
-as patroness, and she now recommended another person of the same name
-as before. But on his being submitted to the Assembly, they would not
-sanction his appointment. Three times they declined, and the Lords
-approved of the refusal, yet after all, in some clandestine way, the
-candidate obtained an order for induction. This person, whom the
-Divines pronounced the most troublesome they ever had to do with, came
-to Thaxted Church, and insisted upon preaching. The sequestrators stood
-at the door of the desk to prevent his doing so; but the mayor and
-churchwarden espoused his cause, as did also the rabble of the parish.
-The latter assaulted the sequestrators, tore their hair, rent their
-neck-bands, and seized their hats and cloaks. "Let them alone," said
-the mayor, "and let the women decide the case." This fray in the parish
-church ended in the commitment of parson, mayor, and town-clerk to
-prison, "whence they were released on submission." This case gives us a
-curious insight into the local church politics of those days.[490]
-
-
-
-
- [Illustration]
-
- CHAPTER XVII.
-
-
-Laud, the principal author of the evils which induced the revolution,
-remained a prisoner. He had become a helpless old man; and it would
-have been better for the Puritans had they checked their resentment,
-and suffered their vanquished enemy to linger out his days as a captive
-or an exile; but unfortunately they determined otherwise. The Scotch
-Commissioners had presented Articles against him in the House of Lords
-on December the 17th, 1640; and on the following day the Commons
-had resolved to accuse him of high treason.[491] In the following
-February, articles of accusation had been exhibited by the Commons,
-after which his case had been kept in abeyance for more than two years
-and a half. Though the idea of bringing him to trial had never been
-abandoned, mild views of his punishment had been entertained; for, in
-a newspaper published in May, 1643, it is stated that "the sending of
-the Archbishop of Canterbury and of Bishop Wren to New England had
-been agitated in the House, and that Parliament would not banish them
-without a trial."[492] In the opening of the year 1644, it was resolved
-that Laud should take his trial.
-
-[Sidenote: _Laud's Trial._]
-
-The trial lasted from March to July. The accused prelate received
-three or four days' notice of the time of his appearance, and of the
-particular articles which were to be alleged against him. From ten
-until one o'clock the managers of the prosecution stated their case and
-produced their evidence, when an adjournment followed till four o'clock
-in the afternoon. Then the prisoner made his defence, and one of the
-managers replied. The proceedings terminated between the hours of seven
-and eight, when the fatal boat moored at Westminster,--which had so
-often glided backwards and forwards on errands of vengeance,--returned
-with its grey-haired passenger to the archway of the Traitors'
-Gate.[493]
-
-[Sidenote: 1644.]
-
-The principal managers for the Commons were Serjeant Wylde, Mr.
-Maynard, and Mr. Nicolas. Prynne acted as solicitor, and arranged the
-whole proceedings. He had suffered so much at the Archbishop's hands,
-that, however watchful he might be over himself, he could scarcely
-suppress feelings which were incompatible with a just discharge of his
-legal responsibilities. With all his learning and great ability, we
-must admit that he was not remarkable for self-control; and the utmost
-stretch of candour cannot prevent our receiving, from his conduct on
-this occasion, the unpleasant impression that, in preparing materials
-for the conviction of his old enemy, he was swayed, to some extent at
-least, by personal resentment.[494]
-
-The accusations brought against Laud may be reduced to three: first,
-that he had aimed at subverting the rights of Parliament; secondly,
-that he had attempted to subvert the laws of the land by his conduct
-in reference to ship-money, by his illegal commitments, and by his
-support of the Canons of 1640; thirdly, that he had endeavoured to
-alter and subvert God's true religion established in this realm, to set
-up instead of it Popish superstition and idolatry, and to reconcile
-the Church of England to the Church of Rome. In support of this grave
-indictment relating to religion, much stress was laid on such facts
-as these: his introducing innovations, using images and crucifixes,
-consecrating churches and altars by superstitious rites and ceremonies,
-commanding the Book of Sports to be read, upholding doctrinal errors,
-persecuting Puritans, corresponding with Roman Catholic priests, and
-discouraging foreign Protestants.[495]
-
-[Sidenote: _Laud's Trial._]
-
-Laud, in his defence, when speaking of his ecclesiastical career, did
-not profess that he had sought, as the highest objects of his life,
-the gathering of souls into Christ's fold, and the promotion of truth
-and charity; but he plainly said that his main endeavour had been to
-secure an outward conformity. Nor did he, as most men would have done
-under the same circumstances, qualify his avowal of ritualistic zeal by
-expressing large and noble Christian sentiments. On the contrary, he
-simply declared: "Ever since I came in place I laboured nothing more
-than that the external worship of God (too much slighted in most parts
-of this kingdom) might be preserved, and that with as much decency and
-uniformity as might be; being still of opinion that unity cannot long
-continue in the Church, where uniformity is shut out at the Church
-door; and I evidently saw that the public neglect of God's service in
-the outward face of it, and the nasty lying of many places dedicated to
-that service, had almost cast a damp upon the true and inward worship
-of God, which, while we live in the body, needs external helps, and all
-little enough to keep it in any vigour."[496] Yet we must confess that
-for Laud to adopt this strain was honest; and certainly, amongst his
-many faults, hypocrisy is not to be reckoned. Indeed, he made it his
-boast, and he had ground for so doing, that he did not shift from one
-opinion to another for worldly ends; and that he had never attempted to
-slide through the difficulties of the times by trimming his religious
-opinions.
-
-[Sidenote: 1644.]
-
-In dealing with the evidence against him, the Archbishop maintained
-that personal resentment influenced the witnesses in the statements
-which they made; and in that opinion probably he was to a considerable
-extent correct. Certain of their allegations had, no doubt, a spiteful
-appearance; but then it is impossible to forget how this merciless
-man had provoked such conduct towards himself by his own inexcusable
-demeanour towards others; and that by a law of Providence, righteous
-in itself, though executed by instruments not free from blame, such
-delinquents as Laud, after having sown the wind, are sure, sooner
-or later, to reap the whirlwind. Prynne, of course, tried to make
-everything tell against his enemy; yet even he could not help allowing
-that the prisoner at the bar "made as full, as gallant, and pithy a
-defence, and spake as much for himself as was possible for the wit
-of man to invent." This special pleader proceeds however to say, the
-very moment after making this admission, that Laud spoke "with so much
-art, sophistry, vivacity, oratory, audacity, and confidence, without
-the least blush, or acknowledgment of guilt in anything, as argued
-him rather obstinate than innocent, impudent than penitent, and a far
-better orator and sophister than Protestant or Christian."[497] Prynne
-attributed the Primate's boldness to the King's pardon which he carried
-in his pocket.
-
-[Sidenote: _Laud's Trial._]
-
-When the whole evidence had been presented, a question arose whether
-the facts which had been adduced legally proved him to be guilty of the
-crime of treason. The Peers were not satisfied that such was the case;
-and in the present day, there are few, if any, constitutional lawyers
-who would admit that the proofs alleged brought the Archbishop within
-the scope of the Statute of Treasons. Owing to legal difficulties, the
-prosecution, in its original form, was dropped, and a Bill of Attainder
-was brought in. The Bill, after having been read a third time in the
-House of Commons, was sent up to the House of Lords. They admitted, as
-they had done before, that the accused was guilty of endeavouring to
-subvert the law, to destroy the rights of Parliament, and to overthrow
-the Protestant religion; but still, they asked, can all this prove him
-to be traitor to the King?[498] The old points were debated over and
-over again. But what did that avail? Popular feeling against him had
-become intense; the London citizens were now more earnest than ever
-in petitioning for speedy justice against all delinquents; and some
-individuals went so far as to shut up their shops, declaring they would
-not open them until righteous vengeance fell upon the head of this
-arch-enemy of the people of God.[499] Influenced by such clamour, if
-not convinced by the arguments of the Commons, the Lords present in
-the House on the 4th of January, 1645, passed the fatal Bill;[500] and
-afterwards it was in vain that the condemned produced a pardon, under
-the great seal, in arrest of execution.
-
-[Sidenote: 1645, January.]
-
-The fatal proceedings against Laud are easily accounted for. The
-causes are found in the growing power of the anti-Episcopal party;
-the ascendancy of the Presbyterians, who for a long time had felt the
-deepest horror at Laud's career; the influence of the Scotch, who had a
-special hatred to the Primate for his designs on their country; and the
-activity of Prynne, who certainly had sufficient cause for detesting
-the mutilator of his ears. But the sentence of death executed upon him
-cannot be justified. Lord Campbell pronounces it "illegal, barbarous,
-and unprovoked," "as little to be palliated as defended." Hallam speaks
-of the whole business as "most unjustifiable," and "one of the greatest
-reproaches of the Long Parliament." Even Godwin admits that the
-prelate "fell a victim to the Scots, to the Presbyterians, and to the
-resentment of an individual who had formerly been the subject of his
-barbarity."[501] We may add that the same legal objections apply to the
-Bill of Attainder against him which are urged in the case of Strafford;
-and further, that in one respect the treatment of the prelate was worse
-than the treatment of the statesman; inasmuch as, whilst some persons
-may defend the putting of the Earl to death as a political necessity,
-no one can regard in the same light the execution of the Archbishop.
-
-[Sidenote: _Laud's Execution._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1645, January.]
-
-Many men who have committed great errors have afterwards, in the midst
-of suffering, behaved in such a manner as somewhat to redeem their evil
-reputation. To a considerable extent it proved so in this instance. On
-its being proposed to him by the renowned Hugo Grotius that he should
-escape--a step which he believed his enemies were not averse to his
-taking--Laud replied: "They shall not be gratified by me in what they
-appear to long for; I am almost seventy years old, and shall I now go
-about to prolong a miserable life by the trouble and shame of flying?"
-"I am resolved not to think of flight, but continuing where I am,
-patiently to expect and bear what a good and a wise Providence hath
-provided for me, of what kind soever it shall be."[502] He delivered
-on the scaffold a speech which was prefaced by the first verse of the
-twelfth chapter of the Epistle to the Hebrews,[503] as if it had been
-a sermon; though, after the exordium, it forsook a homiletic form. He
-referred to himself as a martyr, declared that he forgave his enemies,
-and endeavoured to clear himself from the charge of favouring Popery
-and disliking Parliaments. Then, after praying, and pulling off his
-doublet, he said that no man could be more willing to send him out
-of the world than he himself was to go. Upon being asked by Sir John
-Clotworthy what special text of scripture he found most comfortable,
-he replied, "_Cupio dissolvi et esse cum Christo_." "A good desire,"
-answered the knight, who added, "there must be a foundation for that
-desire and assurance." Laud had no notion of Puritan "evidences," and
-simply rejoined, "No man can express it, it is to be found within."
-"It is founded," the Presbyterian went on to say, "upon a word though."
-Laud closed the conversation by adding, "That word is the knowledge of
-Jesus Christ, and that alone."[504] The Archbishop's last prayer is
-the most beautiful thing connected with his history, and reminds us of
-Shakespeare's words--
-
- "Nothing in life
- Became him like the leaving it."
-
-"Lord, I am coming as fast as I can; I know I must pass through the
-Shadow of Death before I can come to see Thee, but it is but _umbra
-mortis_, a mere shadow of death, a little darkness upon Nature, but
-Thou, by Thy merits and passion, hast broke through the jaws of death;
-so, Lord, receive my soul, and have mercy upon me, and bless this
-kingdom with peace and plenty, and with brotherly love and charity,
-that there may not be this effusion of Christian blood amongst them,
-for Jesus Christ's sake, if it be Thy will."[505]
-
-[Sidenote: _Laud's Character._]
-
-So perished William Laud, a man who has been magnified by one party
-into a martyr, and degraded by another into a monster. He was neither,
-but a narrow-minded individual, with little or no sensibility, fond
-of arbitrary power, a thorough bigot, and a ceremonialist to such
-an extent, that he acted as if salvation depended on adjusting the
-position of altars, presenting obeisances, regulating clerical attire,
-and "adding to it some of the frippery of the Romish ecclesiastical
-wardrobe, which had lain neglected ever since the Reformation."[506]
-His religious weaknesses were not tempered with the smallest degree of
-Christian charity. Contemptible trifles he pressed upon the consciences
-of people with an iron hand. Yet Laud's reputation does not come down
-to us tainted with the vulgarities of avarice or sensuality. He was
-liberal and chaste; and, though proud, he was not addicted to luxury
-or ostentation. Possessed of considerable learning, and remarkable for
-activity and acuteness of mind; he patronized such studies as accorded
-with his tastes; and it should not be forgotten that, at Windsor,
-Reading, and Oxford, there still remain noble and lasting monuments of
-his beneficence.[507]
-
-As one of England's most conspicuous Churchmen, he may be ranked with
-Dunstan, Becket, and Wolsey;[508] but he had not the princely bearing,
-the knowledge of mankind, and the skilful statesmanship of Wolsey--nor
-did he evince the high-minded spiritual ambition and independence of
-Becket--nor do we discover in him the mystic tone and artistic taste of
-Dunstan. But he had the pride, the intolerance, and the superstition of
-all three. In the middle ages he would have made as to ritualism a good
-monk, and if severity of discipline be a proof of excellence, by no
-means a bad abbot.
-
-[Sidenote: 1645, January.]
-
-It was on the very day of Laud's attainder that Parliament established
-the Presbyterian Directory, and prohibited the Anglican Prayer
-Book.[509] That book, profoundly reverenced by all Anglo-Catholics, and
-held in scarcely less honour by some doctrinal Puritans, excited only
-the opposition of the Presbyterians and the other sects. Tracts of the
-period irreverently represent the liturgy as being the very _lethargy_
-of worship; the litany, as not merely "a stump, or a limb of Dagon,
-but the head of the Mass Book;" and the surplice, as "a Babylonish
-garment, spotted with the flesh," and as worse than the "plague-sore
-clout," which had been sent "to infect Master Pym, and the rest of the
-House."[510] For this coarse abuse, the whole Presbyterian party must
-not be held responsible; but such abuse indicates the existence of
-feelings with which leading Presbyterians had to deal on their own side.
-
-Many persons disliked all prescribed forms, and represented them as
-muzzling the mouths of the saints, and stopping the course of the
-Spirit of God. "True prayer," they said, "is first in the heart, then
-in the mouth, but this sort of prayer is in the mouth before it can
-come into the heart at all: it is an abortive birth which never had
-a right conception."[511] Yet the chief oracles both of Parliament
-and the Assembly, though advocates for _extempore_ devotion, were
-not disposed to leave ministers altogether to their own impulses in
-conducting public devotion. They adopted a middle course, and whilst
-abandoning particular forms of prayer they provided a General Directory
-of worship.
-
-Parliament issued an order for that purpose to the Assembly, sometime
-in October, 1643, but the business stood in abeyance until the
-following May, when the subject came up for discussion in the Jerusalem
-Chamber. Minor questions arose, such as whether laymen might assist
-clergymen by reading the Scriptures--a question determined in favour
-of probationers; and whether the Lord's Supper might be received by
-communicants sitting in pews--a question negatived by a resolution of
-adherence to Presbyterian usage. But the grand debate of the Assembly
-at that time related to the suspension of improper communicants. This
-matter involved principles of Church discipline, which could not be
-settled without much controversy, and which long perplexed statesmen
-and divines.
-
-[Sidenote: _The Directory._]
-
-The preface to the Directory, which is a very important part of the
-book, adverts to the liturgy used in the Church of England, as an
-offence both to many of the godly at home, and to many of the reformed
-abroad. The imposition of it had heightened past grievances, and its
-unprofitable ceremonies had been a burden to the consciences of not a
-few. By it people had been kept from the Lord's table, and ministers
-had been driven into poverty and exile. While esteemed by Prelates as
-if it set forth the only way in which God could be worshipped, Papists
-had counted its use a concession to themselves, and a compliance with
-their Church. Moreover, a liturgy, it is said, encouraged an idle
-ministry. Therefore, it was now to be set aside, not from affectation
-of novelty, or to the disparagement of the first reformers, but as
-a further reformation of the Church of Christ, the easing of tender
-consciences, and the promotion of uniformity in the worship of God.
-The Directory contains no forms of prayer, but only suggestions as to
-topics of public supplication.
-
-[Sidenote: 1645, May.]
-
-[Sidenote: _The Directory._]
-
-The Directory, upon being dispatched to Scotland,[512] obtained there
-the sanction of the General Assembly; and on its return, after the
-book had been endorsed by the English Commons, it was presented to the
-House of Lords, who gave it their sanction. Presbyterian statesmen are
-sometimes charged with a rash abolition of old ecclesiastical laws,
-without the previous or immediate institution of others to occupy their
-room. It is alleged that these men short-sightedly pulled down the
-ancient buildings and left them in ruins, and that they were for some
-time not prepared to raise a new structure on the ancient site. This is
-an incorrect representation. Elizabeth's Act of Uniformity, it is very
-true, fell into desuetude from the opening of the Long Parliament; also
-many Puritans in the Establishment laid aside the Liturgy, and even
-reviled it. Notwithstanding, no specific law appears against it, until
-the Directory had been sanctioned by Parliament. The same ordinance
-which forbids the Liturgy enforces the Directory. In the first place
-that authority rehearses and repeals the statutes of uniformity, and
-at the same time declares that the Book of Common Prayer should not
-remain in any place of worship within the kingdom of England or the
-dominion of Wales. The same ordinance then goes on to declare that
-the Directory should be observed in all public religious exercises
-throughout the realm, and that fair register books of vellum for
-births, marriages, and burials should be kept by the minister and other
-officers of the Church. It is remarkable that no penalty whatever is
-mentioned for a breach of this ordinance. So far as the terms of it
-are concerned, it looks as if it might be broken with impunity; and
-it was so broken. In country parishes where Royalism was predominant,
-and such parishes were very numerous, parsons and churchwardens set at
-nought the enactment of the two Houses, and would not acknowledge as
-law that which had not received the Royal sanction. The Prayer Book was
-dear to them from associations with the past in their own lives and
-those of their fathers; and they were resolved still to read its litany
-and collects. Finding that simple advice and exhortation produced no
-effect in many quarters, Parliament adopted more stringent measures.
-It would appear that, as early as the month of May, 1645, penalties
-for contempt of the new enactment were under consideration,[513] but
-an explicit threatening for disobedience was not uttered until the
-month of August. Then came an ordinance[514] which--after providing for
-the supply of printed books of the Directory, and commanding that it
-should be read the Sunday after it was received--proceeded to declare
-that any person using the Book of Common Prayer in church or chapel
-should, for the first offence, pay the sum of five pounds, for the
-second offence the sum of ten pounds, and for the third offence suffer
-one year's imprisonment. Every minister was to pay forty shillings each
-time he offended. Those who preached or wrote against the Directory
-fell under additional liabilities to pay not less than five, and
-not more than fifty pounds. Thus a new Act of Uniformity succeeded
-the old one. The High Commission Court had been abolished, but its
-spirit had migrated into another body. Happily it is no easy thing to
-change a people's religion by Act of Parliament. Wherever the exercise
-of reason, and the study of Scripture are neglected, there remain
-sentiments, perhaps prejudices, which are too deeply sown to be raked
-out by any legal instrument, however sharp and close-set its teeth may
-be. Human conscience, whether rude and ill-informed, or disciplined
-and wise, always hates all tools of state husbandry employed for such
-ends. Accordingly, a good many people in England, when its rulers would
-force them into a new form of worship, deliberately and resolutely
-rebelled, some having to endure a considerable amount of suffering for
-conscience' sake.[515]
-
-[Sidenote: 1645, August.]
-
-[Sidenote: _The Directory._]
-
-The Scotch soon began to lament the inefficacy of the new enactment.
-They complained that the Prayer Book was still used in some parts of
-England, where Parliament had undisputed authority; and, of course,
-in a kingdom which was cut up into two hostile camps, where Royalism
-remained in the ascendancy, the Liturgy would continue to be honoured,
-and the Directory would be disused. Errors, heresies, and schism were
-also deplored as still prevalent, by the brethren from the north,
-who watched with pious zeal all that was going forward on this side
-the Tweed, and were greatly distressed at the tardy progress of
-ecclesiastical reform, and at the little enthusiasm which was enkindled
-by the Covenant. In Ireland, the Directory met with an adverse fate.
-The bishops and clergy of Dublin in particular remained loyal to
-the Prayer Book. They pleaded their ordination vows, the oath of
-supremacy, the Act of Uniformity, the communion of the two Churches
-of England and Ireland in the bond of Common Prayer, the legality of
-its use, the freedom of the Church, and the attachment to the Liturgy
-cherished by the people. The Bishop of Killaloe, and several other
-dignitaries, signed a protest, and whatever opinions may be formed of
-their arguments, posterity will do honour to their conscientiousness.
-This was in 1647. Some persons continued, in spite of Parliamentary
-orders, to use the Prayer Book. The last instance of its being publicly
-read in Dublin occurred when the aged and venerable Archbishop Bulkeley
-delivered to his clergy a valedictory discourse in St. Patrick's
-Cathedral.[516]
-
-[Sidenote: 1645 August]
-
-In connection with the Directory, notice should be taken of certain
-forms of devotion which were published for the use of seamen. A book
-of that period exists, without date, entitled "A Supply of Prayer for
-the Ships, that want Ministers to pray with them." The preface states
-that there were thousands of ships without any ministers, and that the
-crews, therefore, either neglected religion altogether or used the Book
-of Common Prayer. What is glanced at as a matter of necessity might
-perhaps in some cases be matter of preference. Alderman Garroway, in
-his speech at Guildhall, it will be remembered, spoke of sailors as
-being fond of the old liturgy; and such sailors must have remained in
-the fleet even after the Presbyterian Earl of Warwick had become Lord
-High Admiral. Though the navy, as far as rulers were concerned, might
-be called Presbyterian, numbers of the men would feel no attachments
-in that direction. At all events, to avoid inconvenience, it was
-thought fit to frame prayers for the navy, "agreeing with the Directory
-established by Parliament." By whom the work was done we do not know,
-but clearly the spirit of it is Presbyterian. "Heal our rents and
-divisions," and "preserve us from breach of our solemn Covenant," are
-expressions found amongst its petitions. Eschewing the Apocrypha, it
-prescribes psalms and chapters from the Old and New Testament. Forms of
-devotion are given, rather as specimens and guides than anything else.
-"The company being assembled, they may thus begin with prayer," are the
-cautious words employed by the sturdy opponents of ritualism.[517]
-
-
-
-
- [Illustration]
-
- CHAPTER XVIII.
-
-
-Proposals were still going on for a Treaty of Peace between the King
-and the Parliament. His Majesty, from what he heard of dissensions in
-the popular party, felt encouraged to hope for favourable terms. He
-had also an idea that the House of Peers, and some in the Commons,
-really wished for a reconciliation.[518] Laud's trial was at the time
-in progress, and the sympathies of the Royalists, of course, were
-with the prisoner. Accordingly, overtures were forwarded, from Oxford
-to Westminster, and, in return, Commissioners were despatched from
-Westminster to Oxford.[519] Their treatment, however, on reaching the
-latter city, was not such as to inspire much hope of a prosperous
-issue. The people reviled them as traitors, rogues, and rebels, and
-threw stones into their coaches as they rode to the quarters appointed
-for their entertainment at "the sign of the 'Catherine Wheel,' next
-St. John's College"--"a mean inn," as Whitelocke describes it, only a
-"little above the degree of an alehouse."[520] The conduct of Charles
-in sending a sealed reply telling the Commissioners they were to carry
-what he pleased to place in their hands, although it should be but the
-_Song of Robin Hood and Little John_, certainly did not tend to an
-amicable adjustment of affairs; and his duplicity in calling the Lords
-and Commons at Westminster a Parliament, whilst he entered upon record
-in his council book that the calling them so did not imply that they
-were such, proves that his only object was to pacify his opponents for
-a time, that he might do what he liked with them whenever they should
-be again within his power.[521]
-
-[Sidenote: 1645, January.]
-
-[Sidenote: _Treaty at Uxbridge._]
-
-At length, the preliminaries of a treaty were arranged, and a meeting
-was fixed to take place in the town of Uxbridge in the month of
-January, 1645. The propositions of Parliament related to religion,
-the militia, and Ireland; and the Commissioners were instructed to
-stipulate that the subject of religion should be considered first, on
-the ground of its supreme importance.[522] When they assembled, the
-town, selected as the theatre of their negotiations, was divided into
-two parts; the north side of the main street being allotted to the
-Parliamentarians, the south side to the Royalists. So crowded was every
-corner of the place, that some of the distinguished personages were,
-as Whitelocke informs us, "forced to lie, two of them in a chamber
-together in field beds, only upon a quilt, in that cold weather, not
-coming into a bed during all the treaty."[523] The house chosen as
-most convenient for deliberation was Sir John Bennet's residence,--a
-picturesque building at the west end, still in existence, containing
-a "fair great chamber," with curiously wainscotted walls. Courtesies
-were exchanged between the diplomatists, but it soon plainly appeared
-that two hostile camps had pitched within the precincts of this little
-town. On a market day, just as the business of the treaty was about to
-commence, a lecture had to be preached in the parish church, according
-to established custom. Christopher Love, a young Presbyterian divine,
-full of fervour and zeal, happened then to be officiating as chaplain
-to the garrison at Windsor, and he had just travelled to Uxbridge
-in order to perform there this popular service. Farmers who came to
-sell their corn, and even persons in the train of the noble visitors
-from Oxford, contributed to increase the congregation which crowded
-the church. The preacher's discourse was reported by certain hearers
-to the authorities on the south side of the High Street as being of
-a seditious and intolerable character. On the following morning a
-paper was handed over to the party on the north side of the street,
-complaining of the sermon, and alleging that the preacher had gone so
-far as to declare that the King's representatives had "come with hearts
-full of blood, and that there was as great a distance between this
-treaty and peace as between heaven and hell." They therefore desired
-justice might be executed upon this fomenter of strife. The same day
-saw an answer returned, to the effect that Love was not included in the
-retinue of the Commissioners from London; that they wished all causes
-of offence to be avoided; and that they would report the circumstances
-which had occurred to the Lords and Commons, who, they were quite sure,
-would consider the matter "according to justice."[524] So the matter
-dropped.
-
-[Sidenote: 1645, February.]
-
-It is curious to find Clarendon lamenting that Uxbridge Church was now
-in the possession of the Presbyterians, and that, according to the
-ordinance just issued, the Directory had there taken the place of the
-Prayer Book. The King's Commissioners, therefore, who would willingly
-have gone to church, were restrained from doing so, and had to observe
-days of devotion in "their great room of the inn," where, as the
-historian states, many who came from town and from the country daily
-resorted.[525] The tables were turned; Episcopalians and Presbyterians
-had changed places; and his Majesty's followers found themselves at
-Uxbridge in the ranks of dissent.
-
-[Sidenote: _Treaty at Uxbridge._]
-
-Three weary weeks of debate ensued; religion, according to the
-stipulated arrangement, coming first under discussion.[526] The four
-grand ecclesiastical propositions which were placed in the forefront
-by the Parliamentary Commissioners were the following: _first_, that
-the Bill for abolishing Episcopacy, which had passed the two Houses,
-should now receive the Royal sanction; _secondly_, that the Ordinance
-for the Westminster Assembly should be confirmed; _thirdly_, that the
-Directory, and the scheme of Church government annexed to it, should
-be enacted for the reformation of religion and the accomplishment of
-uniformity; and _fourthly_, that his Majesty should take the solemn
-League and Covenant, and concur in enjoining it upon all his subjects.
-Touching these several particulars, there may be seen in Dugdale and
-Rushworth a mass of papers, very dull and dry to all appearance now,
-but which had in them abundant light and fire, when they were exchanged
-and read in that large "fair room" at Uxbridge.
-
-[Sidenote: 1645, April.]
-
-Before the debates on religion closed, the King made a very plausible
-shew of concession, by professing his willingness to allow that
-all persons should have freedom in matters of ceremony, and that
-bishops should be bound to consult their presbyters, and constantly
-to reside within their dioceses. He promised, too, that poor livings
-should be improved, pluralities abolished, and ecclesiastical
-jurisdiction reformed.[527] Yet, while making these smooth and pleasant
-offers--calculated, if not to induce the Parliament to come to terms,
-at least to raise the Royal cause to a somewhat higher position in
-public esteem--his Majesty wrote to his secretary, Nicholas, in the
-following style: "I should think, if in your private discourses, I no
-wise mean in your public meetings with the London Commissioners, you
-would put them in mind that they were arrant rebels, and that their end
-must be damnation, ruin, and infamy, except they repented, and found
-some way to free themselves from the damnable way they are in (this
-treaty being the aptest), it might do good."[528] This double dealing
-shews that Charles, in his negotiations with Parliament, fancied he
-had to do with creatures of a kind fit only to be inveigled into traps
-and snares; and it also shews that, at least, he had so much of
-Romish morality as consists in not keeping faith with heretics. His
-antagonists felt persuaded of this fact, though they could not put
-their hands so easily on the proofs as subsequent revelations enable us
-to do. But what they did actually discover made them very suspicious
-of his Majesty's proceedings, and induced them to act towards him
-sometimes in a manner which appeared not only ungracious, but
-inexpedient; we, however, now seeing the whole series of events from
-beginning to end, are enabled to discern in some of the most repulsive
-acts of the liberal and popular party the keenest foresight and the
-broadest prudence.
-
-[Sidenote: _Debates about Ordination._]
-
-To return from Uxbridge to Westminster.
-
-The Presbyterians, working with the best intentions, striving to reform
-the people of England and to drive out error and evil, had much trouble
-with other matters besides the enforcement of the Directory. Churches
-wanted ministers, for scandalous clergymen had been dismissed and aged
-clergymen had become incapable. Some too had died, and some had removed
-to take charge of other parishes.[529] The Oxford University, wholly
-in the hands of Royalists, yielded no candidates for the ministry, and
-Bishops would not ordain persons to serve in the new Establishment. In
-consequence of these circumstances vacancies were irregularly filled
-up, and uneducated persons were wont to thrust themselves into the
-sacred office. Amidst this disorder the Presbyterians, sorrowful on
-the one hand because of such destitution, and displeased on the other
-with the irregularity in such a mode of supply, and at the same time
-mortified by the taunts of Royalists and Episcopalians, vigorously
-devoted themselves to the business of supplying churches and ordaining
-ministers. In the month of April, 1645, Parliament ordered that no one
-should preach who had not received ordination in the English or some
-other reformed Church, or who had not been approved by the authorities
-appointed for the purpose.[530]
-
-[Sidenote: 1645, April.]
-
-It was specially enjoined that this rule should be put in force
-throughout the army, because in some regiments Presbyterian
-ministrations and worship were not held in high esteem; and the
-Lords, who cherished strong Presbyterian sympathies, also directed
-the Assembly to prepare a form according to which clergymen might be
-ordained without the offices of a diocesan bishop. Long and tiresome
-debates arose amongst the Divines in connexion with this latter
-subject;--Presbyterians, Independents, and Erastians differing from
-each other in the ideas which they entertained of what ordination
-meant. This controversy has been long since buried, and we shall not
-disinter it from amidst the dust of "old diaries" and "grand debates;"
-but the point raised by the Independents, who contended for the right
-of each congregation to choose its own ministers, has some vitality
-for people in these days. Of course the Presbyterians carried the
-question according to their well-known views, and after they had done
-so, Parliament, adopting the decision of the Divines, declared by
-an ordinance, that the solemn setting apart of presbyters to their
-holy office was an institute of the Lord Jesus Christ; that certain
-rules ought to be observed in the examination of candidates; that
-publicity should be given to the testimonial of the examiners; and
-that ordination should be performed by the laying on of the hands
-of the presbytery, accompanied by a public fast. It was expressly
-stated at the conclusion of the ordinance that it should stand in
-force for twelve months, and no longer--a provision which stamped
-the arrangements with something of a tentative character. Until
-presbyteries could be duly organized, the duty of ordination was vested
-in the Assembly; and no wonder that Baillie, in a letter written from
-London in February, 1646, laments the onerous and absorbing engagements
-which this new law entailed upon the Divines.[531]
-
-As the question of Presbyterian discipline came under discussion, the
-debates in the Assembly increased in energy, learning, and acuteness,
-as well as in prolixity. No person who has read Dr. Lightfoot's notes
-of the proceedings can deny the erudition and controversial acumen of
-the disputants on both sides; and all who have glanced over Baillie's
-lively pages will admit that this battle for great principles was
-waged with sincerity and earnestness. A very important point of
-enquiry arose in the month of April, 1644, Whether "many particular
-congregations should be under one presbytery?" The Independents pressed
-to be heard on the negative side, and spent twenty long sittings in
-advocating their opinion. Goodwin was foremost in the debate, but the
-rest of the dissenting brethren took their turns. The champions well
-acquitted themselves, their enemies being judges. "Truly, if the cause
-were good," wrote Baillie, "the men have plenty of learning, wit,
-eloquence, and above all, boldness and stiffness to make it out; but
-when they had wearied themselves, and over-wearied us all, we found
-the most they had to say against the presbytery, was but curious
-idle niceties, yea, that all they could bring was no ways concluding.
-Every one of their arguments, when it had been pressed to the full, in
-one whole session, and sometimes in two or three, was _voiced_, and
-found to be light unanimously by all but themselves."[532] There can
-be little doubt of this. The reasoning of the Independents would of
-course be found wanting when weighed in the Presbyterian balance, and
-the majority of the Assembly would naturally consider their own votes
-an ample refutation of their adversaries' arguments. "They profess,"
-says the same authority in another place, respecting the Independents,
-"to regard nothing at all what all the reformed or all the world say,
-if _their sayings be not backed with convincing Scripture or reason_.
-All human testimonies they declaim against as a popish argument." The
-simplicity of the writer is perfectly amusing as he thus insensibly
-glides into the position of papal advocates, and tacitly acknowledges
-the authority of general opinion in the Church; on the other hand,
-the firmness and consistency of these genuine Protestants is truly
-admirable, as they resolutely adhere to the only invincible method of
-argument by which the cause of the Reformation can be defended.
-
-[Sidenote: _Presbyterians and Independents._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1645.]
-
-While Independent principles favoured universal toleration, the
-Presbyterians, by advocating the establishment of classes, synods,
-and a general assembly, and by calling on the magistrate to enforce
-the authority of the Church, plainly interfered with the civil rights
-of the people. The thoughtful among the Independents therefore became
-more and more averse to the Presbyterian scheme; they saw that it
-would be fatal to those very liberties for which the nation had so
-valiantly contended in the field. Accordingly, we find that Philip
-Nye, in the March of 1644, boldly contended before the Assembly that a
-presbytery was inconsistent with the civil state. This was a galling
-accusation, and the Presbyterian party indignantly cried down the
-assertion as impertinent. Great confusion arose in the Assembly; but,
-undismayed by the combined opposition of a large majority, the champion
-of Independency on the following day renewed the impeachment. It was
-an aggravation of his offence in the eyes of his adversaries, that he
-took advantage of the presence that day of some distinguished noblemen
-and others to make his bold avowal. He would enlighten these personages
-on the great question. He repeated that the liberties for which the
-people fought would be unsafe if Presbyterianism were established.
-Again the Presbyterians endeavoured to silence him. The meeting was in
-a tumult. Some would have expelled him; but the Independents rallied
-round their intrepid friend, declaring their resolution not to enter
-the Assembly again if he should be excluded. Whether, after this scene
-of excitement, during which it is not improbable that Nye manifested
-some warmth of temper, he really became more calm in the advocacy of
-his principles; or whether it was a mere expression of triumph on
-the part of one who helped to form the majority of the convocation,
-and to overcome by clamour the voice of reason, we do not venture to
-determine,--but the Scotch Commissioner concludes his account of that
-memorable day's proceedings by observing, "Ever since we find him in
-all things the most accommodating man in the company."[533]
-
-[Sidenote: _Committee of Accommodation._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1645, November.]
-
-As Presbyterians and Independents thus frequently came into collision
-at Westminster, at last a Committee of Accommodation was appointed,
-with the view of healing the differences betwixt these two parties.
-This committee arose out of a suggestion by Oliver Cromwell; and
-the Parliament who appointed it in 1644 directed the committee, in
-case union should be impracticable, to devise a plan for meeting the
-scruples of tender consciences. The committee selected six of their
-number, including two Independents, to draw up propositions for the
-purpose; from which it appears that the Independents claimed for their
-male Church members the power of voting upon ecclesiastical questions,
-and that they contended for the necessity of signs of grace as a
-qualification for membership. These positions were irreconcilable with
-the scheme of their opponents, which placed the Church under the power
-of presbyters, and admitted to communion all who were not scandalous in
-their lives. No method could be devised for combining the Independent
-with the Presbyterian scheme, although the Independents professed
-themselves ready to make the trial; for the Presbyterians determined
-in the first instance that their own form of Church government should
-be settled as a standard, and that until that was done the exceptions
-of the dissentients should not be taken into consideration. As the
-Presbyterians resolutely pushed forward the completion of their own
-model, the dissenting brethren at last abandoned all attempts at
-comprehension, and drew up a remonstrance complaining that they had
-been unfairly dealt with. In the month of November, 1645, the Jerusalem
-Chamber witnessed further debates between the two parties; but the
-question had now reached this point, how far tender consciences,
-which cannot submit to the established ecclesiastical government,
-may be indulged consistently with the Word of God and the welfare
-of the nation? The Independents pleaded for a full toleration, to
-which the Presbyterians would not consent, and the former could not
-without difficulty be brought to propose any measure of liberty to
-be enjoyed exclusively by themselves; yet urged by their opponents
-to state what they required in their own case, they replied that
-they did not demur to the Assembly's Confession of Faith, and that
-they merely sought liberty to form their own congregations, to have
-the power of ordination, and to be free from Presbyterian authority.
-"In our answer," observes Baillie, "we did flatly deny such a vast
-liberty." All the indulgence conceded was that Independents should not
-be compelled to receive the Lord's Supper, nor be liable to synodical
-censure; and this amount of freedom was made dependent upon their
-joining the parish congregation, and then submitting in all but the
-excepted particulars to the new ecclesiastical government. Baillie,
-who supplies some knowledge of party secrets, informed a friend that
-had not the Presbyterians allowed some indulgence, they would have
-brought upon themselves insupportable odium, and that in making their
-limited offer they were persuaded that it would not be accepted.
-The Independents of course were not content with the result of the
-controversy, and still sought the liberty of forming Churches of their
-own.
-
-[Sidenote: _Committee of Accommodation._]
-
-The threadbare argument about the abuse of liberty and the opening of
-a door to all manner of sectaries was zealously urged against any such
-toleration as the Independents claimed. Altar would be set up against
-altar, it was said, the seamless robe of Christ would be rent, and
-the unity of the Church would be destroyed. At last, Burroughs rose
-and declared "that, if their congregations might not be exempted from
-that coercive power of the classes, if they might not have liberty to
-govern themselves in their own way as long as they behaved peaceably
-towards the civil magistrate, they were resolved to suffer, or go to
-some other place of the world where they might enjoy their liberty.
-But while men think there is no way of peace but by forcing all to be
-of the same mind, while they think the civil sword is an ordinance of
-God to determine all controversies of Divinity, and that it must needs
-be attended with fines and imprisonment to the disobedient; while they
-apprehend there is no medium between a strict uniformity and a general
-confusion of all things;--while these sentiments prevail there must be
-a base subjection of men's consciences to slavery, a suppression of
-much truth, and great disturbances in the Christian world."[534] The
-expression of such wise and beautiful sentiments closed the debates of
-this fruitless Committee.
-
-
-
-
- [Illustration]
-
- CHAPTER XIX.
-
-
-The Scotch army had crossed the Tweed in the month of January, 1644.
-Isaak Walton had seen them marching along with their pikes, and
-wearing on their hats this motto, "For the Crown and Covenant of both
-kingdoms,"[535] but the quiet angler was not able to understand clearly
-what he beheld. These soldiers proved of far less service to England
-than was expected. The indiscretion of generals in the field involved
-regiments in disaster, and political and religious jealousy at an
-early period sprung up between some English and Scotch commanders.
-Grounds of difference existed, inasmuch as certain of the southern
-captains felt little sympathy with the covenanting zeal of their
-northern allies. Both, however, had begun to find out that the enemy
-was much stronger than they had at first imagined, and Baillie, in
-the month of March, 1644, deplored the persistent attachment of the
-Royalists to Episcopacy and absolute monarchy, and the absence from
-their consciences of all remorse for their past misdoings. Indeed, he
-speaks of so much confidence existing at Oxford, that the popular cause
-was there accounted to have sunk into a hopeless state; and the Scotch
-presbyter himself complains that the ways of the Parliament were
-endless and confused, being full of jealousy, and of other faults. The
-Independents, he also says, prevented Church matters from being settled
-as he wished; Antinomians and Anabaptists were on the increase, and, in
-short, things were altogether in a bad condition.[536]
-
-[Sidenote: _Long Marston Moor._]
-
-The military prospects of the Parliament did not much improve as the
-spring advanced. The patriots longed for something to be done. The
-Earl of Manchester was besieging York, and upon the consequence of the
-expedition in the north, depended the affairs of the Church, scarcely
-less than the affairs of the State. When, on July the 2nd, 1644,
-Cromwell and Leslie met Prince Rupert on Long Marston Moor, it was
-for the purpose of settling an ecclesiastical as well as a political
-question.
-
-[Sidenote: 1644, July.]
-
-The two armies stood face to face on that memorable spot, eyeing each
-other for hours, within musket shot,[537] the Parliament horse and
-foot being ranged along the south side of the moor on rising ground,
-amidst fields of standing corn, now tall and wet with rain, whilst the
-King's forces were protected by a deep ditch and hedge in front. When
-the sun was going down over the wide plain the action commenced. At
-first it proved in favour of the Royalists, so much so that the Earl of
-Leven's men fled, and the Scotch might be heard crying, "Waes us, we're
-a' undone!" Forthwith news of victory flew to Oxford, greeted there
-by bell-ringing and bonfires, to be only, however, speedily followed
-by very different tidings; for before midnight Cromwell and Leslie
-plucked a victory out of the enemy's hands. They charged a brigade of
-greencoats, and put to the rout the remainder of the Royalist army. The
-chase was continued to within a mile of the walls of York, the dead
-bodies, it was said, lying three miles in length, the moon with her
-light helping somewhat the darkness of the season.[538]
-
-The part which Cromwell took in this fierce battle gave no little
-triumph to the Independent party, who made the most of the Scotch
-flight, and hardly did justice to General Leslie.[539] This vexed the
-Presbyterians, and already the breach between the two assumed a serious
-appearance.
-
-[Sidenote: _Naseby._]
-
-Though the victory of Marston Moor was of great advantage to the cause
-of the Parliament, it certainly did not decide the conflict. So far
-from that being the case, the fortunes of war afterwards favoured the
-Royalists. In August the Earl of Essex found himself so circumstanced
-in his western campaign that he suddenly capitulated to the King--an
-untoward event, which naturally called forth the lamentations of the
-Westminster Divines.[540] Later still, amongst those persons who were
-anxious thoroughly to humble their High Church adversaries, and to
-bring the King to terms of complete submission, there might have been
-heard complaints to the effect that two summers had passed without the
-nation being saved; that victories gallantly gotten by the army, and
-graciously bestowed by Heaven, had been put into a bag with holes; that
-what was gained one day was lost another, that the summer's victory
-became a winter tale; and that the whole game had to be played over
-again. The secret of this want of complete success was said to be the
-unwillingness of the Presbyterians to crush the Royalists, and their
-desire for such an accommodation of differences as would place their
-own ecclesiastical polity close by the side of the English throne. The
-Independents, therefore, who were loud in making complaints of the
-description just indicated, seeing as they did that the Presbyterian
-scheme threatened the extinction of that religious liberty with which
-their own interests were identified, resolved that there should be
-a revision of the whole war policy on their own side, and an entire
-reformation effected in the character and tactics of the army. Out of
-this determination arose the famous new modelling of the army, and the
-self-denying ordinance. These changes were accomplished in the winter
-of 1644, and the re-organized forces, under Fairfax and Cromwell, were
-ready to take the field by the spring of 1645. When all this had been
-accomplished, hopes revived, but the siege and capture of Leicester
-by the Royalists, at the end of May, inspired new fears.[541] These,
-however, were not of long continuance, and were wholly dissipated by
-the memorable battle in the month of June.
-
-[Sidenote: 1645, June.]
-
-On Saturday, the 14th, in the afternoon, the lines of the new-modelled
-army were drawn across certain fallow fields in front of the village of
-Naseby, whose trim hedges, numerous trees, and solitary windmill are
-quaintly depicted in an old wood engraving inserted in Sprigg's history
-of the battle; whilst in the open country, in front of the Parliament
-troops, the King's forces were stretched out in full array. As at
-Marston Moor, so now at Naseby, victory at first seemed to wait upon
-Prince Rupert; but he, ever hot-headed, lost his advantage by pursuing
-the enemy too far, and came back to find the tide of battle turned
-against him. There had been, during his absence, desperate charges
-amidst the furze of the rabbit warren, and the swords and pistols of
-the Ironsides had proved too much for the well-mounted cavaliers.[542]
-This engagement proved decisive beyond question, and its place in
-the history of the Civil Wars is most conspicuous, resembling in
-this respect the locality where the battle was fought. As Dr. Arnold
-observes: "On some of the highest table land in England, the streams
-falling on one side into the Atlantic, on the other into the German
-Ocean; far away too from any town, Market Harborough the nearest, into
-which the cavaliers were chased late in the long summer's evening."
-
-[Sidenote: _Naseby._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1645.]
-
-Fast as a horse could gallop, the news was carried up to London, and
-there for days the talk ran on the standards, the field pieces, the
-much powder and shot, and the royal coach and baggage, with cabinets
-and letters, which had been seized by the conquerors.[543] The
-surrender of Leicester to the Parliament resulted from this victory,
-and as a further consequence came the second relief of Taunton.[544]
-That town was held on behalf of the Parliament by Robert Blake--the
-man who said, when the enemy strove to starve him out, that he had not
-eaten his boots yet, and who had shewn throughout the siege a patience
-which was equalled only by his courage. The remembrance continued fresh
-amongst the Taunton people of the Puritan minister's sermon, preached
-in the grand old church of St. Mary, on the words, "I am the Lord,
-I change not: therefore ye sons of Jacob are not consumed;"--and of
-the shouts of "deliverance!" "deliverance!" which rang through the
-edifice before the sermon was finished, and which echoed from street
-to street as Welden's squadron of horse dashed through the east gate
-to the market-place;--nor could any forget the pause which followed in
-the church after the tidings had been heard, when all the congregation
-knelt down and thanked God for their deliverance. And now, again, the
-faith of the inhabitants was rewarded by the arrival of most timely
-succour; for the battle of Naseby set Fairfax free to turn his forces
-southward, and to scatter the forces of Goring, who had been such
-a pest to the county of Somerset. Not only was Taunton effectually
-delivered; but Bristol, Bridgewater, Ilchester, and Langport fell into
-the hands of the Parliament.
-
-[Sidenote: _Sufferings of the Clergy._]
-
-As the war proceeded, and as blustering Cavaliers galloped over the
-country, singing ribald songs and plundering their neighbours; and as
-Roundheads, equally stern and demure, marched up and down, singing
-psalms and sacking the houses of Royalist malignants, it necessarily
-happened that the clergy were great sufferers in the confusion, for
-they were required to take a side, wherever the soldiers of either
-army came. Those who went not up "to the help of the Lord, to the help
-of the Lord against the mighty," fell under a Puritan malediction,
-very much like that which was imprecated on Meroz. On the other hand,
-such as held back from fighting the battle of their King, were treated
-by Royalists as rebellious scoundrels. Between the two, little peace
-fell to the lot of country ministers where the torch of war happened
-to be kindled. And, indeed, such were the issues at stake, and so
-inextricably were religious questions interwoven with political ones,
-that it seemed next to impossible for any man whose views were not
-hemmed in by the boundaries of his own little parish, not to take part
-in the far-spreading and momentous strife.
-
-[Sidenote: 1645.]
-
-The Puritan who espoused the side of Parliament laid himself open
-to the violence of Royalists. They would attack his house, break
-open his chests and cupboards, take away his little stock of plate,
-cut the curtains from his bed, and steal his linen, even to the
-pillow-cases. Patience, under such circumstances, became a sign of holy
-confessorship, and it was told long afterwards with admiration--akin
-to that of a Catholic repeating the legend of a saint--how a good man
-so treated, exclaimed with Job, "The Lord gave, and the Lord hath
-taken away; blessed be the name of the Lord."[545] If a clergyman or
-chaplain happened to be discovered as a refugee in any castle or in any
-camp, he would of course be seized as a prisoner of war; and a story is
-told of one such, who was sentenced to be hanged unless he would ask
-pardon of the King; which, if he did, he should have not only his life,
-but a good church-living; whereupon, conscious of his integrity in the
-part he had taken, the stout-hearted man replied--"To ask pardon, when
-I am not conscious of any offence, were but the part of a _fool_, and
-to betray my conscience in hope of preferment, were but the part of a
-_knave_; and if I had neither hope of heaven, nor fear of hell, I would
-rather die an honest man, than live a fool or knave." It was hard to
-crush or to ensnare any one who was made of this kind of mettle; and
-this person, whose name was Balsom, after being delivered from the
-halter, went on preaching to the Royalist garrison, declaring--"While
-I have a tongue to speak and people to hear, I will not hold my
-peace."[546]
-
-[Sidenote: _Sufferings of the Clergy._]
-
-But all Puritans did not adopt the political cause of the Parliament.
-Some, though incensed at the conduct of Archbishop Laud, still clung to
-the fortunes of King Charles. They would never wear a surplice, they
-would never make the sign of the cross; but at any time they would
-cheerfully die for their sovereign and their country. Such individuals
-suffered from the Parliament army almost as much as their brethren
-did from the Royalists. The Rector of Okerton,[547] whose reverence
-for the Crown was equalled by his dislike to ceremonialism, was four
-times pillaged by troops of Roundheads, was twice sent to prison,
-and was reduced to such straits that he had to borrow a shirt.[548]
-Cases also occurred in which ministers disapproved of an appeal to
-arms altogether. A clergyman, who would not keep any days of public
-fasting and thanksgiving--because, as he said, he would not give
-thanks to God for one man killing another--was persecuted on that
-account, and was sent to prison by the governor of Boston for keeping
-a conventicle. So all drank of the sorrow-cup by turns; it being
-handed sometimes by one man to another, when both of them were alike
-Puritans. Walker has collected numerous instances of hardship suffered
-by the Royalist clergy during the wars. A distinction is to be made
-between the extravagant statements and vituperative remarks in the
-first part of his most uncharitable book, and such anecdotes as are
-related on the authority of correspondents in the second part. These
-latter partake of a legendary character, and are doubtless coloured
-highly by their authors; but there is no reason why we should discredit
-them altogether; and it is very interesting and instinctive to compare
-them with the traditions of confessorship on the Nonconformist side.
-Mikepher Alphery, rector of Woolley, in Huntingdonshire, was pulled
-out of his pulpit by a file of musketeers, and lived for a week in
-a booth under the trees of his churchyard; Lewis Alcock, rector of
-North-Stoneham--who seems to have been a "muscular Christian"--when
-threatened by the Parliament soldiers, brought his bed down into
-the parlour, and with his gun charged, resolved not to give up his
-parsonage except with his life. Eldard Alvey, of Newcastle, had to
-relinquish everything he possessed, and to provide for the safety
-of himself, wife, and seven children, in the night time, whilst his
-two curates were threatened with a pistol-shot, if they did not give
-up reading prayers. Daniel Berry concealed himself under a pile of
-faggots, where his pursuers discovered him by thrusting their swords
-into the heap.[549] Other similar cases might be mentioned.
-
-[Sidenote: _Sufferings of the Clergy._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1645.]
-
-The largest amount of suffering experienced by the clergy belongs
-to the period when men's passions were exasperated by war. Soldiers
-on both sides were the ministers of vengeance. The fiery excitement
-kindled in the battle-field was carried into peaceful homes, which
-became identified with the camp; and ministers of religion, pious,
-faithful, and devoted, might be found, who, if they did not privately
-prompt, failed publicly to disapprove of the persecution of their
-brethren. In many of the biographical sketches supplied by Walker,
-no indications of spiritual religion appear on the part of those
-whose livings were sequestered. By some, too, as is evident from
-the instance just cited, the most determined resistance was offered
-to their persecutors. The spirit of the High Churchman during the
-civil wars comes out occasionally in strong contrast with that of the
-Puritan after the Restoration. Yet we cannot doubt but that on the
-Anglican as well as on the Puritan side there were sufferers, who bore
-their Master's cross; that for His sake, from loyalty to what they
-conscientiously regarded as His truth, they bravely endured reproach
-and wrong. It is amongst the mysteries of Divine Providence, that holy
-men in this life have to suffer sometimes in a cause which, although
-by themselves accounted good, is by brethren, equally honest, branded
-as evil; and that thus there comes to be, in ecclesiastical conflicts,
-so much pain, at once conscientiously inflicted, and conscientiously
-endured. No calm thinker can fail to discern the anomaly; and no loving
-heart but must long for that blessed future, when the fruits of such
-strange discipline will be reaped by souls now divided on earth, but
-who will then be united in Heaven amidst the purest charity and the
-humblest joy.
-
-Only ignorance of the history of those times can lead any one to
-suppose that the main ecclesiastical questions at issue were settled
-entirely, or even chiefly by the debates of either divines or of
-statesmen. What occurred far away from the Jerusalem Chamber, and
-from St. Stephen's Chapel, had much to do with the proceedings within
-those walls. Naseby fight struck the last blow in the struggle with
-Episcopacy, and by crushing the Royalist party, rendered the cause
-hopeless; and it also, though in a less obvious manner, materially
-affected the fortunes of Presbyterianism, by controlling its excesses,
-and preventing the concession of its inordinate demands.
-
-
-
-
- [Illustration.]
-
- CHAPTER XX.
-
-
-The Naseby triumph was won, not by the Scotch army, or by the English
-Presbyterian generals, but chiefly by Cromwell and his Independent
-Ironsides. They sustained the hottest brunt of the battle, their
-charges bore down the brilliant cavaliers; and they, therefore,
-claimed the greenest laurels reaped on that memorable field. They had
-become the sworn opponents of the men who were so busy in laying the
-corner-stones of the new ecclesiastical establishment. Jealousy of
-Presbyterian power was an influence which, combined with a disapproval
-of the mode of carrying on the war, produced the self-denying
-ordinance, by which certain officers of that persuasion were removed
-from command. Not that Cromwell and others had any great distaste
-for Presbyterianism considered in itself, since in doctrinal tenets
-and religious feeling they agreed with the Genevan school; but with
-the exclusiveness and intolerance of its ecclesiastical polity they
-were at issue: and they were determined that, while they had tongues
-to speak and hands to fight, they would not allow a Presbyterian any
-more than an Episcopal Church to trample upon the liberties of other
-denominations. They had fought for religious freedom as their own
-right, and were prepared to concede it, with certain limitations,
-to their brethren; nor would they now, in the hour of their success,
-surrender the prize for which they had fought and bled. As the Naseby
-heroes assumed an attitude of resolute opposition to the Presbyterians,
-the effect soon became visible at Westminster.
-
-[Sidenote: _Unpopularity of the Scotch Army._]
-
-New elections contributed to alter the relative position of these
-parties. New writs were issued by the Speaker of the House of Commons,
-in August, to fill up vacant seats. Before the end of the year, one
-hundred and forty-six fresh members took the oath; and within twelve
-months eighty-nine more did the same, amongst whom were Blake, Ludlow,
-Algernon Sidney, Ireton, Skippon, Massey, and Hutchinson.
-
-[Sidenote: 1645.]
-
-There was another cause at work in the same direction. The Scotch army
-had been the main pillar of Presbyterian hope. In almost every letter
-which the indefatigable Robert Baillie wrote home to his friends this
-fact appears. No doubt, in the simplicity of his heart, and without any
-consciousness of inconsistency, he could stand up in any Edinburgh or
-London pulpit and take for his text, "The weapons of our warfare are
-not carnal;" and yet, no man was more filled with the idea that the
-success of Presbyterianism in England depended upon Scotch soldiers.
-To take one instance from a sheaf of quotations. "If by any means we
-would get these our regiments, which are called near thirty, to sixteen
-thousand marching men, by the blessing of God, in a short time we might
-ruin both the malignant party and the sectaries. The only strength
-of both these is the weakness of our army. The strength, motion, and
-success of that army, in the opinion of all here, is their certain and
-quick ruin.... It's our only desire to have the favour of God, and
-to hear of the speedy march of our army."[550] But at the time of
-which we now speak the Scotch soldiers had become very unpopular. Our
-laborious correspondent expostulates with the authorities of his own
-country, not only on the dilatoriness of their military movements, but
-on the demoralized condition of their troops; so that, as he said, if
-justice were not done "on unclean, drunken, blasphemous, plundering
-officers," Scotland would "stink in the nose" of England. He was
-frightened to hear what many told him of ravishers, blasphemers, and
-Sabbath-breakers, being left unpunished. No one could be more zealous
-for the discipline of the forces than he who thus discloses his bad
-opinion of their character and his fear of the ruinous consequences.
-Letters in the State Paper Office indicate what ground there was
-for Baillie's apprehensions. These letters complain of the lawless
-behaviour of Major Blair's men, stationed in Derbyshire, who broke open
-houses, beat women, and robbed the carriers as they came to Winkworth
-market. And so it happened, that while the Scotch Presbyterian army,
-which was meant to be England's saviour, was sinking into had repute,
-Cromwell's Independents were being praised up to the very skies.[551]
-
-The case stood thus. The Scotch and most of the Presbyterians of the
-Westminster Assembly were, on the one side, for putting down the sects,
-and setting up an ecclesiastical rule which should have government
-support without government direction, and exclude from toleration
-systems different from their own; and on the other side were the
-army, the Erastians, and the Independents, who, differing from each
-other in religious opinion and character, were politically united,
-forming an irresistible phalanx, which exhibited as its watchwords
-such mottoes as these: "State Control over a State Church;" "For other
-Churches full Toleration." Two questions had to be decided. Should not
-Presbyterianism, established by the civil power, be subject to the
-interference of that power? Should not freedom of worship and polity be
-allowed to sects dissenting from the Establishment? There was also a
-third--Was Presbyterianism of Divine right?
-
-[Sidenote: _The Power of the Keys._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1645.]
-
-Let us see how the three were handled.
-
-I. The question touching "the Power of the Keys" was debated in the
-Assembly, and then in the House of Commons. According to Presbyterian
-doctrine, the keys of the Kingdom of Heaven were committed to the
-ruling officers of the Church. They had power to call before them any
-member, to enquire into his spiritual state, and to suspend him from
-the Lord's Supper, if found unworthy of communion. Church censures,
-however, while independent of the magistrates' authority as to their
-origin, were, in their execution, if necessary, to be supported by the
-magistrates' assistance. The Independents agreed with the Presbyterians
-thus far, that the most careful order ought to be maintained in the
-Church of Christ; but the Independents contended that discipline was a
-duty pertaining to the congregation at large, and that no individual
-should be set aside, or cut off from Christian privileges, except by the
-votes of the community. At the same time, they excluded all magisterial
-interference, and could not accept of any enforcement of their own
-decisions by legal penalties. The Erastians took a very different
-view, and believed that communion ought to be perfectly open, and that
-it should be left to every man's conscience to decide respecting his
-own fitness for receiving the Lord's Supper. Crimes only, they said,
-deserved social penalties, and these were to be adjudged by civil
-tribunals. The Presbyterians carried their own point in the Westminster
-Assembly. The keys, contrary to the Independent idea, were to be in the
-hands of Church officers, and not to be held by the congregation at
-large. The keys, contrary to Erastian notions, were to be exclusively
-under spiritual, not at all under civil control.
-
-When this question passed from the Assembly to the Commons, and the
-time came for deciding the matter, the conclusion of the Assembly
-was annulled. The House determined, that if any person found himself
-aggrieved by the proceedings of a Presbytery, he might not only appeal
-to a superior Church tribunal, but he might bring his case for final
-adjudication before the High Court of Parliament. Criminal charges were
-reserved entirely for the magistrates' decision, whose certificate was
-necessary for the suspension of offenders. A committee of Lords and
-Commons also had vested in them a discretionary power to adjudge any
-cases of scandal unspecified in the rules for suspension which had been
-drawn up by the Assembly.[552]
-
-[Sidenote: _The Power of the Keys._]
-
-The Erastians, who were at this time the leaders of the political
-Independent party in the House of Commons, thus defeated their
-opponents. By fixing the control of ecclesiastical judicature in
-the civil magistracy and in Parliament, they established their own
-distinctive principle, which was utterly subversive of the polity
-advocated by the Presbyterians. The Church was altogether degraded from
-its position as a kingdom not of this world; and also discipline became
-so fettered, that in many cases its exercise proved to be impossible.
-The rules prepared by the Assembly, and sanctioned by the Commons,
-appeared sufficiently formidable to fence the Lord's table against the
-approach of improper communicants; yet the very minute specification of
-sundry offences, as in all cases of precise canon law, really presented
-an obstacle in the way of discipline respecting unspecified offences
-against morality and religion. All such minute rules are inherently
-vicious, and are singularly out of harmony with New Testament methods
-of legislation. Moreover, the interference of magistrates and of
-senatorial committees were likely to render these rules inoperative;
-and in cases which the rules did not reach, such interference was not
-calculated to produce ecclesiastical purity.
-
-One object of the Presbyterians was the establishment of a Church of
-incorrupt religion and of undefiled morality. The Puritan Presbyter
-resembled the Anglican Archbishop as an apostle of uniformity; but
-the former thought much more of moral reformation, and much less of
-ritual worship, than the latter. The Church discipline of Presbyterian
-courts came nearer to the Church discipline of Archdiaconal ones than
-many people suppose; but what is truly moral and religious was raised
-by Presbyterians above what is ceremonial in a measure far beyond the
-conception of Romanists or Anglo-Catholics. The old ecclesiastical
-courts were overturned, many cases of immorality were no longer subject
-to jurisdiction; and Presbyterians, who, like Anglicans, treated the
-nation as a Church, aimed by their own system to supply what they
-considered a great defect in the moral government of the people.
-
-[Sidenote: 1645.]
-
-The English Presbyterians essayed to walk in the path of their Scotch
-brethren; and the general conviction of the latter as to the divinity
-of that system must be borne in mind. Amongst an equal number of
-persons, where one man in England believed prelacy to be a divine
-institution, a dozen might be found in Scotland, who were not only
-assured that their Church rested upon the foundation of apostles and
-prophets, but were resolved also, in its defence, to go to prison,
-to the gallows, or to the stake. Church power bore in their eyes the
-stamp of Heaven, and owed nothing to Acts and Ordinances of Parliament.
-In Scotland, the Reformation had not been, as in England, mainly the
-revolt of the laity against the clergy. The clergy had led the way,
-like a grand prophet choir, they had headed the host. They had been
-in the van as the nation marched out of Egypt; and Moses did not more
-rejoice over Pharaoh than John Knox had done over the Man of Sin. Some
-will say there was plenty of fanaticism in the Reformation on the
-other side the Tweed; but it must be admitted that there was certainly
-no time-serving. Braver men never trod God's earth; and the sons now
-brought some of their fathers' fire over the border.
-
-But, however admirable the purpose of the Presbyterians might be, the
-means employed for its accomplishment were inappropriate, dangerous,
-and unjust. They were _inappropriate_, because purity of discipline
-has ever been found impossible in a State establishment, whether it
-be the superior, the ally, or the subordinate of the civil power; for
-a Church which comprehends, or is meant to comprehend, a whole nation
-within its pale, must necessarily be open to great laxity of communion.
-The means, too, were _dangerous_, because to vest the power of
-discipline, entailing civil consequences, in a body of local officers,
-was to place the social position and interests of individuals at the
-mercy of a few in their own parish, who possibly might be induced
-by unworthy motives to give trouble and annoyance. And the means
-also were _unjust_, because the penal enforcement of uniformity in
-doctrine, worship, and polity, contravened the rights of conscience,
-and deprived all Nonconformists of religious liberty. It was not on
-the side of opposition to strict discipline and pure fellowship that
-religious Independents had any sympathy with the Erastians in their
-anti-Presbyterian warfare. Most earnestly did the former inculcate
-the importance of these very things, and, for the sake of them, were
-prepared to sacrifice many temporal advantages. What they objected
-to was, first, the secular power which the new Church wished to
-manage and employ for its own purposes; and secondly, the intolerance
-towards rival sects with which the supremacy of that Church would be
-connected. The Independents maintained, what wise and thoughtful men,
-though widely removed from Erastian tendencies, have ever since done,
-that if there be an Establishment at all, it is far better that the
-State should be mistress of the Church than that the Church should be
-mistress of the State. No doubt, the political alliance between the
-Erastian and the Independent damaged somewhat the apparent consistency
-of the latter; but in this respect, as to what he suffered, he only
-shared in the common fate of religious persons when entering into
-political combinations; and as to what he did, he only acted like many
-individuals since of eminent conscientiousness; for in fact he was glad
-of help, from whatever quarter it might come, in his endeavours to
-prevent despotism and to resist intolerance.
-
-[Sidenote: _Toleration._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1645.]
-
-II. The question of the keys, if it did not exactly involve, certainly
-approached the question of _toleration_. At any rate, Church
-censures, when left to the presbytery of a parish, gave little hope
-of religious liberty being conceded to the parishioners. But, beyond
-mere implication and probable contingency, there existed the fact that
-the Presbyterian regarded the suppression of opinions and usages
-contrary to his own as an inexorable obligation. In addition to the
-legal enactment of discipline, he asked power to punish sectaries.
-The ministers were ardent in endeavouring to prove the magistrates'
-duty to put down heresy and schism. It formed the theme of numerous
-sermons preached in St. Margaret's to the House of Commons. The City
-Divines, in their weekly meetings at Sion College, debated upon the
-best method of securing that end. The zealots of the party would, if
-possible, have moved the Corporation of London to throw its influence
-into their scale; but, just then, certain political complications
-checked the movement, and deep lamentations over the faithless
-citizens immediately ensued. So far did some of the Londoners go in
-this kind of backsliding, that they even spoke of the Assembly being
-dissolved[553]--an extreme measure, which the Lords Say and Wharton,
-in their jealousy of ecclesiastical encroachments upon the liberties
-of the people, had also proposed in the Upper House.[554] At the
-same period, books and pamphlets were written by Prynne and others,
-to establish the claims of the new ecclesiastical polity, and the
-righteousness of treating all sectaries as obstinate offenders.[555]
-One of their advocates, in the heat of his eloquence, declared,
-"that to let men serve God according to the persuasion of their
-own consciences is to cast out one devil, that seven worse might
-enter."[556] The Scotch were too much interested in the subject, and
-took too prominent a part in the settlement of ecclesiastical affairs
-in England, to be silent at this crisis.[557] But the style of the
-letter which they sent to Parliament ruffled the tempers of many of
-the members, though it received at the time a courteous and dignified
-notice; but two months afterwards, when another address of a similar
-character, yet less offensive in style, came from the same quarter, and
-was published without authority, the Houses voted the "papers false and
-scandalous, and, as such, to be burnt by the hand of the hangman."[558]
-
-[Sidenote: _Toleration._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1645.]
-
-The Presbyterian advocates, as they insisted upon the excision of
-heresy and schism by the sword of the State, never attempted to do
-so on grounds of political expediency with the idea, that by hunting
-out heresy and schism they would be getting at serpents of treason
-hidden underneath. Very different were the grounds of their policy
-from some selected by the Anglican Church at the Restoration. Fidelity
-to Christ's crown--pure zeal for His covenant--were put forth, and
-sincerely felt in a number of cases, as the main, if not the sole,
-motive of the Presbyterian crusade against hated sects. Perhaps
-sometimes Independents and Presbyterians did not clearly understand
-one another. The former might, at times, seem to countenance the moral
-toleration of error and sin, and to be thinking more of liberty than of
-truth. On the other hand, the Presbyterian polemic might sometimes only
-intend to pour out his fiery wrath upon sympathy with falsehood and
-evil when he denounced toleration; but certainly this was not always
-the case, and it may be added that, generally, he prized truth much
-more than liberty. Neither side seemed to discern that the defence of
-freedom in religion must rest simply on the _civil right_ of every
-man to pursue his own course, to declare his own opinions, and to act
-according to his own convictions, so long as he does not interfere
-with his neighbours who wish to do the same. We are prepared to judge
-favourably of the motives of the Presbyterians; but if their motives
-in some degree redeem their character, it must be admitted that men
-holding the opinions of toleration which many at least of that party
-did, though they may act under the influence of the best feelings, are
-very dangerous persons to be at the head of public affairs. If, under
-the idea that they have a mission from Heaven for the purpose, and
-with a desire to promote the glory of God, they set to work to gather
-the tares from amidst the wheat, woe be to the culture of the field
-altogether, and to the growth even of the good grain. He who perfectly
-understood this subject interdicted all such interference, no matter
-how pious the intent, and laid down a law which is utterly inconsistent
-with all intolerance--"Let both grow together to the harvest." After
-His decision on the subject, for any persons, however wise and good in
-other respects, to attempt the extermination of error and evil by the
-scythe of civil penalties, is sheer fanaticism, whether the endeavour
-be made by a Protestant ecclesiastical court or by a Roman Catholic
-inquisition.
-
-[Sidenote: _Divine Right of Presbyterianism._]
-
-III. The doctrine of the _Divine right of Presbyterianism_ was bound
-up with its scheme of discipline and its principle of intolerance. The
-majority of the Westminster Assembly would not rest content with the
-establishment of their Church by the simple decree of Parliament. They
-required it to be recognized by the State as _of Divine authority_. Not
-only did the Presbyterian say that he believed--which was consistent
-and proper--that his own system rested upon the teaching of the New
-Testament; but he demanded that the highest power in the realm should
-say the same, and enforce its peculiarities, as requirements clothed
-with a celestial sanction. This doctrine the Independents opposed, on
-the ground that they considered their own Church polity to be nearer
-the Word of God. The Erastians also opposed it, because they did not
-believe in the Divine foundation of any ecclesiastical rule at all.
-Both parties alike opposed it on the principle, that if the State chose
-to endow a Church, the State must be left to do so on its own terms.
-In this way it happened, as it often does in controversy, that parties
-proceeding from different and even opposite points, found themselves
-at length side by side, in honest and hearty alliance, so far as
-related to a resistance of common foe. But it should be borne in mind
-that it was not in the character of religionists that Independents and
-Erastians formed their combination, but in the character of patriots
-and politicians, who were agreed in resisting a body of men whose
-success in the advocacy of intolerance they judged would be as inimical
-to the temporal welfare as it would be destructive to the religious
-liberties of the nation.
-
-[Sidenote: 1645.]
-
-There were debates on the _jus Divinum_ in the Assembly, and sterner
-and more important debates on the same subject in the House of Commons.
-The five brethren argued from Scripture for Congregationalism against
-Presbyterianism; and Whitelocke and Selden employed their learning and
-logic to prove that the Bible did not decide the question one way or
-the other. At length a crisis came. The Presbyterians of the Assembly,
-in concert with their Scotch brethren, complained of the Erastian
-clauses in the Parliamentary ordinance for discipline, and asserted
-the Divine right of the scheme of government. The House of Commons
-declared that the Assembly had no right to complain of the decision
-of Parliament, since the Divines had been called together simply to
-give advice, and that with giving advice their functions came to an
-end. Members spoke of the penalties of a _præmunire_, and held up that
-which has been described as the "fatal spell before which spiritual
-pretensions sunk exorcised, mysterious as excommunication and no less
-terrible in its vagueness."[559] At the same time, they called on the
-Assembly to answer certain queries as to the nature and extent of the
-_jure Divino_ claim. This was done simply with the view of putting
-off a serious collision with the Assembly. But whatever want of
-earnestness there might be on the side of Parliament in proposing the
-questions, no want of earnestness is seen on the side of the Assembly
-in answering them. Yet, when the replies were ready in July, 1646, the
-Assembly became afraid of a final rupture, and, under the terror of
-a _præmunire_, abstained from publishing what they had prepared. The
-Divines of Sion College, however, took up the controversy, and would
-have vigorously pursued it, had not Parliament cut short the matter by
-peremptorily insisting that the ordinances issued in March should be
-obeyed. After relieving their consciences by an explanation of their
-views, these reverend persons submitted[560] to the authority which
-they found it impossible to resist.
-
-[Sidenote: _Westminster Assembly._]
-
-As we shall not have occasion again to notice the Westminster Assembly,
-it is convenient here to conclude its history. No Convocation ever
-sat so long. Gathered in the summer of 1643, it pursued its work till
-the autumn of 1647, when, the main business of the ecclesiastical
-commission being completed, the Scotch members took their leave.
-But from that time up to the winter of 1648-9, a few of the Divines
-continued to examine ministerial candidates; and afterwards a small
-committee met for the same purpose every Thursday morning, even as late
-as the spring of 1652. Upon the breaking-up of the Long Parliament
-by Oliver Cromwell, this appendage silently disappeared without any
-formal dissolution. Neither before nor since did any convocation of
-the Church in England go over so much ground, and accomplish so much
-work. In this respect it rivals the Council of Trent. The whole range
-of dogmatic divinity, together with ecclesiastical polemics, and
-devotional formularies, came under discussion. Notice has been taken
-of the partial revision of the Thirty-nine Articles, of the Directory
-for worship, and of the humble advice for the ordination of ministers,
-and the settling of Presbyterian government. It is almost needless to
-say that the Westminster Divines prepared a confession of faith. A
-committee, including Reynolds, afterwards Bishop of Norwich, drew up
-this document. They divided themselves into sections, each taking a
-specific topic. When a chapter had been fully prepared it was submitted
-to the Assembly, and then again subjected to minute examination,
-sentence by sentence, and word by word. There were long and tough
-debates on the doctrine of election. Neal says, "All the Divines were
-in the anti-Arminian scheme, yet some had a greater latitude than
-others. I find in my MS. the dissent of several members against some
-expressions relating to reprobation, to the imputation of the active
-as well as passive obedience of Christ, and to several passages in
-the chapters of liberty of conscience and Church discipline; but the
-confession, as far as it related to articles of faith, passed the
-Assembly and Parliament by a very great majority."[561]
-
-[Sidenote: 1643-52.]
-
-The confession consists of thirty-three chapters--the first on the
-Holy Scriptures, the last on the final judgment. The doctrines of
-Calvinism are sharply defined in an order and in a form which many
-theologians of the present day, substantially Calvinistic, cannot
-adopt. Certain chapters, interspersed with the rest--the twentieth, on
-Christian liberty and liberty of conscience, the thirtieth, on Church
-censures, and the thirty-first, on synods and councils--plainly exhibit
-the intolerance of the times in connection with the principles of
-Presbyterian government. As everything which the Assembly did had to be
-submitted to Parliament for its sanction, this theological manifesto
-came under the consideration of that supreme court. The doctrinal
-portions were ratified by the two Houses, but the particulars as to
-discipline were "recommitted;" which, under the circumstances, though
-it did not amount to a formal, yet proved a virtual rejection.[562]
-
-[Sidenote: _Westminster Assembly._]
-
-Two catechisms, the longer and the shorter, were also prepared at
-Westminster,--the last of which, with its scripture proofs, was much
-more familiar to the children of Nonconformists in past generations
-than in the present. The Annotations which bear the name of the
-Assembly were, in fact, the production of a committee appointed by
-Parliament, including learned men who never belonged to the Assembly
-at all. The Assembly also undertook the revision of psalmody, which
-has obtained less notice than it deserves. Congregations were getting
-tired of Sternhold and Hopkins; consequently Parliament recommended
-there should be a new version. One, by Mr. Rouse, found favour with the
-Commons, and was submitted to the consideration of the Divines, who,
-after a careful perusal and some emendations, pronounced it "profitable
-to the Church, should it be publicly sung." But Mr. Rouse had a rival
-in Mr. Barton, who likewise had prepared a new psalter. He petitioned
-the Lords in favour of his own work, and obtained their patronage. They
-passed a resolution, enquiring of the Divines why Mr. Barton's book
-might not be used as well as others? The Lower House soon afterwards
-decided that Mr. Rouse's psalms and no others should be sung in all
-churches and chapels within the kingdom of England, the dominion of
-Wales, and the town of Berwick-upon-Tweed. The Assembly, in answer to
-the queries of the House of Lords, replied that, if liberty should
-be given to people to sing whatever translation they liked, several
-different books would be used even in one and the same congregation
-at the same time, "which would be a great distraction and hindrance
-to edification." This was such an extraordinary contingency, that
-to contemplate it as at all probable, indicated the existence of an
-astonishing amount of disunion and obstinacy. It is a significant fact
-that, whilst in the Episcopal Church of England, after the imposition
-of the Prayer Book, the choice of a form of psalmody was left to the
-discretion of the clergy and their congregations, the Presbyterians,
-when in power, would not allow such liberty, but endeavoured to secure
-uniformity in the worship of praise, such as in the worship of prayer
-they did not even permit.[563]
-
-[Sidenote: 1643-52.]
-
-The Westminster Assembly has seldom been treated with justice. By
-Episcopal Churchmen, too generally, it is depreciated; and by some
-it is dismissed with a few words of unconcealed contempt. Scotch
-Presbyterians have extravagantly extolled it; and Neal, the Independent
-historian of Puritanism is accused of damning it with faint praise.
-Clarendon speaks of the Assembly in words of scorn; and Walker, still
-more deeply prejudiced, writes against it with wearisome vituperation.
-Milton, who had incurred the censure of the Divines by his doctrine
-of divorce, could not be expected to pronounce an equitable judgment
-on their merits; and we do not wonder at the resentment which burns
-against his censurers through certain magnificently sonorous sentences
-in the third book of his History of England.[564] Baxter's words have
-been often quoted on this subject, and though not free from partiality,
-they deserve more than those of any other man to be repeated: "The
-Divines, there congregate, were men of eminent learning and godliness,
-and ministerial abilities and fidelity; and being not worthy to be one
-of them myself, I may the more freely speak that truth which I know,
-even in the face of malice and envy, that, as far as I am able to
-judge by the information of all history of that kind, and by any other
-evidences left us, the Christian world, since the days of the apostles,
-had never a synod of more excellent Divines (taking one thing with
-another) than this synod and the synod of Dort were."[565]
-
-[Sidenote: _Westminster Assembly._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1643-52.]
-
-This is high praise; but it comes nearer to the truth than the
-condemnatory verdicts pronounced by some others. The godliness of the
-men is proved by the spirit of their writings, and by the history of
-their lives. Their talents and attainments even Milton does not attempt
-to deny. No one would think of comparing any of them with Jeremy Taylor
-in point of eloquence; and in breadth of sacred learning, in a certain
-skilful mastery of knowledge, and in the majesty and grace of polemical
-argument, the best were not equal to Hammond and Pearson. Cosin would
-surpass them all in some branches of study, which they would account
-useless. Certainly, none of them had the sagacious quaintness of Bishop
-Hall, or the inexhaustible wit of Thomas Fuller; but quaintness and
-wit are qualities not needed in theological conferences. Even superior
-eloquence and large accomplishments may, in such case, be dispensed
-with. The Westminster Divines had learning--scriptural, patristic,
-scholastical, and modern--enough, and to spare; all solid, substantial,
-and ready for use.[566] Lightfoot and Selden were of ponderous but not
-unwieldy erudition; and Arrowsmith and Calamy, though less known to
-literary fame, were ripe and ready scholars. Caryl and Greenhill had
-abundance of knowledge; Dr. Goodwin was, in many respects, the greatest
-Divine amongst them all. Moreover, in the perception and advocacy of
-what is most characteristic and fundamental in the Gospel of Jesus
-Christ, they were, as a body, considerably in advance of some who could
-put in a claim to equal, and perhaps higher scholarship. They had a
-clear, firm grasp of evangelical truths. The main defect and the chief
-reproach of the Assembly consisted in the narrowness and severity of
-their Calvinism, and in the fierce and persistent spirit of intolerance
-manifested by the majority.
-
-
-
-
- [Illustration]
-
- CHAPTER XXI.
-
-
-The new modelling of the army was a necessary measure, and produced a
-very great moral improvement. Even Hampden had spoken of the insolence
-of the soldiers, and, after the fall of Reading, complaints of their
-conduct reached the Earl of Essex. It was declared that they had grown
-"outrageous," and that they were "common plunderers." According to
-report, they had ransacked five or six gentlemen's houses in a single
-morning. In fact, the Roundheads, in some instances, had grown to be
-as odious as the Cavaliers; and, without better discipline, they were
-threatening to prove a ruin, rather than "a remedy to this distracted
-kingdom." Having claimed an independence incompatible with military
-subjection, these volunteers needed a thorough re-organization, such
-as was accomplished by the new model. Fairfax, in his first march
-after the reform had commenced, resolved on "the punishment of former
-disorders, and the prevention of future misdemeanours." Offenders were
-tried and justice was summarily executed. A "renegado" was hanged _in
-terrorem_ upon a tree at Wallop, in Hampshire, as certain troops were
-marching through that parish; and the next day a proclamation was
-issued, threatening with death any one who should dare to commit any
-act of plunder. There is no reason to doubt the testimony of Joshua
-Sprigg, Fairfax's chaplain, that a moral reformation ensued upon the
-adoption of the new military constitution, and that the men became
-"generally constant, and conscientious in duties; and by such soberness
-and strictness conquered much upon the vanity and looseness of the
-enemy."
-
-[Sidenote: 1646.]
-
-But the state of religion chiefly concerns us. If the church at Oxford
-had been turned into a Royalist camp, the camp of Fairfax and Cromwell
-might now be said to be turned into a Republican Church. Not that there
-existed any organized ecclesiastical government, or any uniformity of
-worship; but, according to the authority just quoted, "the officers,
-many of them, with their soldiery, were much in prayer and reading
-Scripture," an exercise which before they had "used but little." "Men
-conquer better," adds the chaplain, "as they are saints than soldiers;
-and in the countries where they came they left something of God as well
-as of Cæsar behind them--something of piety as well as pay."[567]
-
-[Sidenote: _Religion in the Camp._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1646.]
-
-Richard Baxter spent some time with the army, and has largely recorded
-his opinion of its condition. He found that an "abundance of the
-common troopers," and that many of the officers were honest, sober,
-and orthodox; but he complains of a few proud, hot-headed sectaries,
-amongst Cromwell's chief favourites, who by their "heat and activity
-bore down the rest, or carried them along with them." Baxter, with
-all his large-hearted charity, was not free from prejudice with
-regard to this subject, and his accounts of the "sectaries" must
-therefore be received with caution. He tells us they were hard upon
-the Presbyterian ministers, putting some gall into their wit, calling
-them "priest-byters, dry-vines, and the dissembly men." Honest
-soldiers of weak judgments, and little theological knowledge, were
-seduced into a disputing vein, sometimes for state democracy, and
-sometimes for church democracy, sometimes against forms of prayer,
-and sometimes against infant baptism,--sometimes against set times
-of prayer and the binding themselves to any duty before the Spirit
-moved them, and sometimes about free grace and free will, "and all the
-points of Antinomianism and Arminianism." We are by this reminded of
-the description of the Eastern Church by Gregory, of Nyssa. He tells
-us that knots of people at the street corners of Constantinople were
-discussing incomprehensibilities; in the market-place money-changers
-and shopkeepers were similarly employed. When a man was asked how
-many _oboli_ a thing cost, he started a discussion upon generated and
-ungenerated existence. Enquiries of a baker about bread were answered
-by the assertion--that the Father is greater than the Son. When
-anybody wanted a bath, the reply was, the Son of God was created from
-nothing.[568] With some allowance for the extravagance of the satire,
-and with a change of terms to suit the Commonwealth controversies, the
-description of his countrymen by the Greek preacher may be applied
-to many of the soldiers of the new-modelled army. Here a field
-opened for controversy, adapted to Baxter's subtle and debate-loving
-nature. Honest as the day, with a passionate desire to reform the
-army, he went from tent to tent, with the Bible under his arm, whilst
-his eyes flashed with fire burning in the very depths of his soul.
-Everybody who knows the man will believe him when he says: "I was
-almost always, when I had opportunity, disputing with one or other
-of them, sometimes for our civil government, and sometimes for church
-order and government, sometimes for infant baptism, and oft against
-Antinomianism and the contrary extreme." Well armed with theological
-weapons, he was as much in his element with "the sword of the Spirit,"
-cutting down regiments of ghostly errors, as any pikeman or trooper
-could be as he was stabbing an enemy or firing a pistol at his breast.
-Baxter particularly records an encounter he had at Amersham. Bethel's
-troopers, with other sectarian soldiers, accompanied by some of the
-inhabitants of Chesham, had a pitched battle with the Presbyterian
-Divine. He occupied the reading pew, and his antagonists, "Pitchford's
-cornet and troopers," took their place in the gallery: the church being
-filled "with poor, well-meaning people, that came in the simplicity of
-their hearts to be deceived." The debate went on till nightfall; Baxter
-stopping to the very last, lest his retirement should be construed into
-a confession of defeat.
-
-[Sidenote: _Religion in the Camp._]
-
-It is remarkable that this champion of orthodoxy assures us that he
-found nearly one half of the religious party either sound in their
-belief, or only slightly tinged with error; and that the other half
-consisted of honest men, who, with kindly and patient help, seemed
-likely to be recovered from their theological mistakes. There were, in
-his judgment, only a few fiery spirits, and they made all the noise
-and bustle. One of the heaviest charges which he brings against the
-sectaries will, in the present day, redound to their honour; for he
-observes: "Their most frequent and vehement disputes were for liberty
-of conscience, as they called it, that is, that the civil magistrate
-had nothing to do to determine anything in matters of religion, by
-constraint or restraint, but every man might not only hold, but
-preach and do, in matters of religion, what he pleased--that the civil
-magistrate hath nothing to do but with civil things, to keep the peace,
-and protect the Churches, liberties."[569] In short, it appears that
-the Roundhead army really contained a set of men who anticipated John
-Locke's doctrine of toleration, and something more.
-
-[Sidenote: 1646.]
-
-The chaplain of Fairfax was Joshua Sprigg, an Independent minister,
-already mentioned. Breathing the spirit then prevalent in the camp,
-he advocated the toleration of extreme opinions; but does not appear
-himself to have been a man of extravagant views. His history of the
-army is creditable to his intelligence and judgment; and, though
-tinctured with the peculiar rhetoric of the day, it is singularly free
-from all fanaticism. Another Independent Divine holding a chaplaincy
-under General Fairfax was the celebrated John Owen. The General had
-his head quarters for a time at Coggeshall, where Owen officiated as
-vicar, and in 1648 he preached before his Excellency and the Committee
-two sermons, which are published.[570] They commemorate the surrender
-of Colchester, and the deliverance at Rumford; and with an oratorical
-flourish, which has been severely criticised,--but which really means
-nothing more than that Providence had given success to the arms of
-the Parliament--the preacher speaks of the God of Marston Moor. The
-accommodation of the passage in Habakkuk--"God came from Naseby,
-and the Holy One from the West; His glory covered the heavens, and
-the earth was full of His praise," is less defensible--though the
-excitement of the moment, the flush of victory, and the aspect of a
-military audience, may be allowed to mitigate our censure of Owen's
-want of taste on the occasion;--and taste is hardly to be looked for in
-a military preacher, amidst the throes of a revolution full of fire and
-blood. The martial zeal appearing in some parts of these discourses is
-only a specimen of what blazed up much more fiercely in the addresses
-of other ministers who fulfilled their vocation in garrisons and tented
-fields. What must some of the sermons have been, where there was not
-Owen's learning, judgment, and devoutness to check the orator! And
-let us not here omit to remark, that Owen was true to the principle
-which was the guiding star of the new army, and insisted strongly in
-these sermons upon the iniquity of persecuting men for religion. In
-this respect there were few, if any, of the religious teachers popular
-amongst Cromwell's troops, who did not sympathize with the Coggeshall
-Divine.
-
-[Sidenote: _Religion in the Camp._]
-
-It is useless to pick out the names of chaplains now unknown. Many of
-them, no doubt, if we were fully acquainted with their history, would
-be found more respectable and worthy men than were others whom we see
-thrown conspicuously on the surface, to attain by no means an enviable
-notoriety. Hugh Peters is chief of this class. He certainly must have
-been a man of considerable ability to have gained the influence which
-he possessed; and in earlier life he could have been no worse than
-a coarse but energetic preacher, followed by crowds of the common
-people. Escaping to Rotterdam to avoid persecution, he became colleague
-with the learned Dr. William Ames in the pastorate of an Independent
-Church.[571] The man bore a good reputation then, and, it is said,
-procured £30,000 for the relief of the Irish poor. He also visited New
-England, and for a long time after his return did not give up the idea
-of going back to America. In Sprigg's "History of the Army," Peters,
-who early became a military chaplain, is introduced repeatedly as a
-messenger to Parliament with tidings of victory, for which he received
-handsome rewards. A chaplain might have been better employed than in
-conveying messages of this nature, yet such an occupation was not so
-unsuitable to his sacred character as some other employments in which
-he was engaged; for it is related of him that he acted as a recruiting
-officer in market towns, entered into treaty with Royalist commanders
-for the surrender of garrisons, and even acted as a general of brigade
-against the Irish rebels.[572]
-
-[Sidenote: 1646.]
-
-Another individual, less known to posterity, who combined the offices
-of chaplain and captain, was Thomas Palmer, of Nottingham, the account
-of whom by Lucy Hutchinson gives us an insight into a kind of character
-then very common. He had a bold, ready, earnest way of preaching, and
-lived holily and regularly as to outward conversation, whereby he
-obtained a great reputation, which swelled his vainglorious, covetous,
-contentious, and ambitious spirit. He had insinuated himself so far as
-to make these godly men desire him for their captain, which he had more
-vehement longing after than they, yet would have it believed that the
-honour was rather forced upon him. Being at that time in the castle
-with his family, he came to the governor and his wife, telling them
-that these honest people pressed him very much to be their captain, and
-desiring advice on the subject. They freely told him, that, as he held
-a charge of another kind, they thought it not fit for him to engage in
-this new one, and that he might equally advance the public service and
-satisfy the men who made the request by marching with them simply in
-the character of chaplain. He went away, she said, confused, observing
-that he would endeavour to persuade them to be content; but afterwards
-he informed her that they would not be otherwise satisfied, and so he
-was forced to accept the commission.[573]
-
-Allowing for the lady's prejudices, her story of Palmer may be admitted
-in the main; and we may add that, in another part of her narrative,
-she mentions four hundred people, whereof "more than half were high
-malignants, who enlisted under one Mr. Coates, a minister and a godly
-man."
-
-[Sidenote: _Religion in the Camp._]
-
-John Saltmarsh, another of the army chaplains, was a somewhat different
-character. He must have been a man of irreproachable spirit, for,
-according to a report preserved by Anthony Wood, "he always preached
-the bonds of love and peace, praying that that might be the cord
-to unite Christians in unity." "He meddled not in the pulpit with
-Presbytery and Independency," but only "laboured to draw the soul
-from sin to Christ."[574] Yet strange stories are told of him. He had
-visions just before his death. He visited Windsor Castle, where he
-refused to take off his hat to Fairfax and Cromwell, because, he said,
-the Lord was angry with them for committing the saints to prison. After
-administering reproof which was equally distinguished by faithfulness
-and fanaticism, he took his leave, remarking that he had finished
-his errand and must depart never to see the army any more. Returning
-home, cheerful and in health, to his wife at Ilford, he told her he
-had finished his course and must go to his Father; and then lying down
-immediately afterwards upon his bed, he died quietly the next day.
-These facts taken together indicate a disturbed condition of the brain
-just as the soul was about to shake off its mortal coil. But on turning
-to Saltmarsh's "Sparkles of Glory, or Some Beams of the Morning Star,"
-the only book which we have read of his, we notice in it some of the
-clearest expositions of religious liberty which can be found in the
-literature of those times. The spirit of the treatise is singularly
-beautiful, and the teaching of such a man must have been of a healing
-tendency. It is very true he undervalued the baptism of water, and
-depreciated all outward ceremonies--in fact, entertained many opinions
-in common with Quakers; but he had an intense craving after spiritual
-unity, believing that he found God in lower as well as in higher
-things, in purer as well as in more corrupt administrations, and
-expressing "his tenderness and respect towards Episcopalians at home
-and abroad, though he did not approve of their forms." A mystical
-element pervades his books, strongly reminding us of John Tauler; and
-that person is to be pitied who can read the writings of such men
-without deriving interest and edification. Each exhibits an imaginative
-mind, striving eagerly to catch glimpses of the infinite and eternal,
-united to a tremulously sensitive heart, which reacts on the intellect
-and electrically touches it, so as to make every idea quiver with
-emotion. There was an abundance of mysticism in the Parliamentary camp;
-it might and did run into phantasies; but beneath much of what some
-keen men of the world would ridicule as jargon and absurdity, there may
-be felt the pulsations of the old patriarch's desire, "O that I knew
-where I might find HIM!"
-
-[Sidenote: 1646.]
-
-[Sidenote: _Religion in the Camp._]
-
-The religion of the camp, in which Fairfax and Cromwell had the rule,
-will not be fully understood unless we notice the ministrations of
-those officers who became theological teachers, although they claimed
-no clerical character. By them indeed the distinction between clergy
-and laity was quite broken down. Cromwell, Harrison, Berry, and others,
-preached and prayed in a manner esteemed by many of the soldiers more
-edifying than that of some Presbyterian, or even some Independent
-clergymen. It would be idle to judge of them by rules applicable to
-the arrangements of a standing army of the present day; although few
-now would object to religious efforts for the welfare of soldiers
-such as were employed by the late lamented General Havelock. But,
-nobody can deny that fondness for preaching became a monomania in the
-Parliamentary army. It led to inflammatory harangues, and also to dry
-and distressing diatribes. Ninety-seven divisions might be numbered
-in discourses by these sermonizing majors.[575] A preference for the
-style of preaching peculiar to such persons, or a prejudice in favour
-of doublet and cuirass over Genevan cloak and bands, or a belief in
-current scandals touching the parochial clergy, made the Roundhead
-soldiers at times disgracefully impatient under the preaching of
-regular ministers:--as, for example, when Captain Pretty, at Taunton,
-"with much admirable incivility," commanded the Presbyterian, Master
-Shepherd, to come down from the pulpit, publicly charging him with a
-"disorderlie walk."
-
-[Sidenote: 1646.]
-
-Thank God, by the side of this fanatical folly, and even mixed up with
-it, there may be discovered also much of honest devotion and Christian
-morality. In many a military assembly during the civil wars, gathered
-in town or country church--or under some canvas roof in the midst of
-a camp--or in the open air by the hill-side--or in the depth of a
-valley--or upon a village green--or under the shadow of a secluded
-grove--where some unlettered soldier preached the gospel and prayed
-with his comrades--though there might be not a little to shock a
-cultivated taste, there would be very much more which was acceptable to
-Him who is a Spirit, and who overlooks much which is annoying to us, if
-men do but worship Him in spirit and in truth. Favourably would these
-simple and irregular forms compare with more orderly and imposing modes
-of religious service in cathedrals and churches and chapels,
-
- "Where men display to congregations wide,
- Devotion's every grace except the heart."
-
-Those who fought at Marston Moor and Naseby could not have cultivated
-so much communion with the Invisible as they did, without thereby
-gaining strength for carrying the daily burdens and fighting the common
-battles of human life. There is hardly more of poetry than of truth in
-the picture of a Puritan trooper with his helmet on the ground, and his
-sword-belt unfastened, sitting by his tent door in the heat of the day,
-to talk with the angels of God, whom faith in the well-worn book on his
-knee had enabled him to behold:--or, of another veteran of the same
-class, the night before a great battle, with clasped hands, looking up
-to the bright stars, seeking by prayer the help which he needed from
-the God above them. And all this kind of experience must have made such
-people not only better soldiers, but better men. It might not correct
-those obliquities of vision with which they regarded the character of
-their own cause, and the conduct of its enemies; but, where the great
-questions of the day did not interfere with their judgment and their
-will, prayer and the Bible helped to make them what it was their duty
-to be in the common relationships of human life, in their neighbourly
-charities, and in their habitual behaviour as fathers and husbands,
-as brothers and sons, as friends and citizens. We are convinced that
-multitudes of those who fought for the liberties of their country in
-the civil wars, were not the contemptible fanatics which they are
-frequently represented as being, but noble-hearted men, of whom the
-world was not worthy, and England may well be proud.
-
-[Sidenote: _Religion in the Camp._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1646.]
-
-Some years afterwards, Whitelocke, the Commonwealth Ambassador to
-Christina of Sweden, had a curious conversation with her Majesty,
-respecting the religion of the army. "I have been told," said the
-Queen, "that many officers of your army will themselves pray and
-preach to the soldiers; is that true?" Whitelocke replied, "Yes, madam,
-it is very true. When their enemies are swearing, or debauching, or
-pillaging, the officers and soldiers of the Parliament's army used
-to be encouraging and exhorting one another out of the Word of God,
-and praying together to the Lord of Hosts for His blessing to be with
-them; who hath shewed His approbation of this military preaching by
-the successes He hath given them." "That's well. Do you use to do so,
-too?" asked the Queen. "Yes," said the Ambassador, "upon some occasions
-in my own family, and think it is as proper for me, being the master
-of it, to admonish and speak to my people, when there is cause, as to
-be beholden to another to do it for me, which sometimes brings the
-chaplain into more credit than his lord." "Doth your General and other
-great officers do so?" she proceeded to enquire. "Yes, madam," returned
-Whitelocke, "very often, and very well. Nevertheless, they maintain
-chaplains and ministers in their houses and regiments; and such as are
-godly and worthy ministers have as much respect and as good provision
-in England as in any place of Christendom. Yet 'tis the opinion of
-many good men with us, that a long cassock, with a silk girdle, and
-a great beard, do not make a learned or good preacher, without gifts
-of the Spirit of God, and labouring in His vineyard; and whosoever
-studies the Holy Scriptures, and is enabled to do good to the souls of
-others, and endeavours the same, is nowhere forbidden by that Word, nor
-is it blameable. The officers and soldiers of the Parliament held it
-not unlawful, when they carried their lives in their hands, and were
-going to adventure them in the high places of the field, to encourage
-one another out of His Word, who commands over all; and this had more
-weight and impression with it than any other word could have, and was
-never denied to be made use of but by the popish prelates, who by no
-means would admit lay people (as they call them) to gather from thence
-that instruction and comfort which can nowhere else be found." The
-Queen complimented the theological envoy. "Methinks you preach very
-well, and have now made a good sermon. I assure you I like it very
-well." The politeness of a courtier was not wanting in return. "Madam,
-I shall account it a great happiness if any of my words please you."
-Her Majesty continued to say, "Indeed, Sir, these words of yours do
-very much please me; and I shall be glad to hear you oftener on that
-strain. But I pray, tell me, where did your General, and you, his
-officers, learn this way of praying and preaching yourselves?" "We
-learnt it from a near friend of your Majesty," he added, with truth and
-adroitness, "whose memory all the Protestant interest hath cause to
-honour." "My friend," replied the Queen, "who was that?" "It was your
-father," rejoined Whitelocke, "the great King Gustavus Adolphus, who
-upon his first landing in Germany (as many then present have testified)
-did himself in person upon the shore, on his knees, give thanks to
-God for His blessing upon that undertaking; and he would frequently
-exhort his people out of God's Word; and God testified His great liking
-thereof, by the wonderful successes He was pleased to vouchsafe to
-that gallant King."[576] But we must leave the religious exercises of
-Cromwell's army, as our history now requires us to follow King Charles
-to the Scotch camp.
-
-From May to July the Divine right of Presbyterianism formed a salient
-topic of conversation and debate amongst citizens and statesmen.[577]
-From May to July the same question was agitated at Newcastle between
-King Charles and Alexander Henderson.
-
-[Sidenote: _Charles I. and Henderson._]
-
-The backbone of the King's strength having been broken at Naseby,
-and his midland capital being environed with a Parliamentary army,
-the monarch, defeated on all sides, resolved to flee. Though every
-reasonable hope had vanished, still he kept up his spirits--trusting to
-his own talent for intrigue, to some wonderful interposition of Divine
-Providence, and, above all, to that divinity which "doth hedge a king."
-
-In a state of entire indecision as to whither he should bend his
-steps, the royal fugitive rode out of Oxford, and pursued the road to
-London. A thoughtful journey it must have been; and, at last, as he
-approached the metropolis, at Hillingdon, his heart sunk within him,
-when, pulling his bridle to the left, he galloped off through a cross
-country to the Scotch camp at Newark.[578] Arrived there, his treatment
-by those into whose arms he threw his fortunes without his confidence,
-was sufficient to cast him into absolute despair but for that strange
-hopefulness to which we have just referred. Removing with the army from
-Newark to Newcastle, the annoyances of his position considerably
-increased.[579] In his letters to Queen Henrietta Maria--his dear
-heart, as he fondly called her--he complained of being barbarously
-baited and threatened, of new vexations which happened to him every
-day; declaring to her that there never was a man so lonely as he, and
-then with a beautiful touch of tenderness he assured the woman--really
-the star of his evil fortunes--that she was his last comfort, and that
-her letters in cypher were around him all day, and under his pillow all
-night.[580]
-
-[Sidenote: 1646, July.]
-
-[Sidenote: _Charles I. and Henderson._]
-
-Alexander Henderson sought to effect the King's conversion. Sheets and
-sheets of closely-written paper passed between them throughout those
-wearisome months. Each did his best. Day after day, night after night,
-these controversialists read and reflected, wrote and revised, and
-it must be allowed, to the credit of the King, that the intelligence
-and acuteness which he brought to this undertaking appear exceedingly
-respectable, even in comparison with all the accomplishments of his
-clerical antagonist.[581] Charles contended for the _jus Divinum_ of
-Episcopacy, and the apostolical succession of bishops; Henderson for
-the _jus Divinum_ of presbyteries and the human origin of prelacy.
-The monarch upheld the authority of the Fathers as interpreters
-of the Bible; the minister the interpretation of Scripture by
-Scripture--declaring patristic writings and traditions to be unworthy
-of trust. The royal disputant contended that inferior magistrates and
-the people had no power to reform religion; the clerical respondent
-that such persons did possess it, and that it became them to exercise
-it when even kings failed to perform their duty. The Prince urged that
-he was bound by his coronation oath to preserve the Church of England,
-and that he could be released only by the voice of the Church itself;
-the Presbyter that Parliament had sufficient authority to remove this
-obligation. His Majesty asked what warrant there was in the Word of
-God for subjects to force the royal conscience, and to make a ruler
-alter laws against his will? The reverend gentleman replied that when
-a man's conscience is misled, he necessarily does that which is amiss,
-and that his duty is to have his conscience better informed, and not
-to move till he has struck a light, and made further discoveries. This
-question involved another, as to the right of the subject to take
-up arms, which, of course, Charles held to be absolutely unlawful;
-whilst Henderson asserted the right of defensive war against unjust
-authority. It is enough to give this summary. Inconclusive arguments
-were advanced on both sides, and each was more powerful in attack than
-he was in defence. Under the circumstances, no good could come out of
-the controversy, for neither of the disputants would concede one jot;
-and what is still more important to be borne in mind is this, that the
-arbitrament of the question between them now rested in other hands.
-
-[Sidenote: 1646, July.]
-
-The Parliament in July again held out propositions for peace. Papers
-duly signed by the clerks of both Houses were formally entrusted to
-the Earl of Pembroke and Montgomery, to the Earl of Suffolk, and to
-other commissioners, attended by Stephen Marshall, who acted as their
-chaplain. They travelled to Newcastle on the 24th of July. Thither they
-and the Scotch commissioners went in their coaches, at two o'clock in
-the afternoon, to wait upon his Majesty. He resided in a fine old
-house, with ornamented gables, goodly bays, mullioned windows, and a
-door-way guarded by columns--a mansion now totally demolished, but
-once the pride of Anderson's-place, in that famous town on the banks
-of the Tyne. When the visitors had entered this temporary palace, the
-King came forth into a large chamber which was made use of for the
-chamber of presence, and there stood at the end of a table until each
-had kissed his hand. He intimated his pleasure that they should follow
-him into another room, where the Earl of Pembroke stated that they had
-brought the Parliament's propositions for his Majesty to consider.
-"Have you power to treat?" asked the monarch, anxiously looking at the
-commissioners. "No," they replied; upon which he uttered one of those
-blunt, petulant speeches which did him almost as much damage as his
-proverbial insincerity. "Then, saving the honour of the business, an
-honest trumpeter might have done as much." As the propositions were
-read, the King listened attentively, and at last observed: "Gentlemen,
-I hope you do not expect a very speedy answer, because the business is
-of high concernment." They said their stay was limited to ten days,
-whereupon he promised despatch, and so terminated the interview.
-Mr. Marshall preached the next Sunday before the King, and took as
-the subject of his discourse, Isaiah xxxii. 17, "And the work of
-righteousness shall be peace, and the effect of righteousness quietness
-and assurance forever."[582]
-
-[Sidenote: _Newcastle Treaty._]
-
-The propositions stipulated, that his Majesty should call in his
-declarations against the Parliament; place the control of the militia
-in its hands for twenty years; make void all peerages which had been
-conferred since May the 20th, 1642; punish such delinquents as had
-been proscribed; and disannul the Irish treaty. With these political
-demands others were coupled in relation to the Church. First, his
-Majesty must take the Covenant, and enjoin the same on his subjects;
-next, the ecclesiastical reformation must be completed, and Popery
-for ever crushed. Moreover, the bill, which had been transformed into
-an ordinance for constituting the Westminster Assembly, must receive
-the royal assent; and besides these, other measures, five in number,
-which he had not sanctioned, and which he was desired to confirm,
-were repeatedly mentioned in the negotiations: (1) The abolition of
-the hierarchy; (2) the due observance of the Lord's Day; (3) the
-suppression of innovations; (4) the advancement of preaching; and (5)
-the prevention of non-residence. Such were the objects to which the old
-bills referred, and a new one is mentioned as about to be framed for
-regulating the Universities and Schools of England.[583]
-
-[Sidenote: 1646.]
-
-Charles did not at once break with the Presbyterians when these
-proposals were made to him; on the contrary, he professed a
-conciliatory spirit, and kept alive their hopes of his at last making
-some considerable concessions;[584] yet all the while he felt a most
-intense antipathy to their whole system. As a staunch Episcopalian,
-he hated Presbyterianism in itself, and he hated it also, and perhaps
-still more, because it touched his royal prerogatives, and because,
-if established, it would leave him only the name of a King; since,
-under pretence of a thorough reformation of religion, it would in
-reality take away all ecclesiastical power from the crown. All this he
-had said in letters which he wrote to the Queen; and, in one written
-from Newcastle (September the 7th), six weeks after the Parliamentary
-Commissioners had read their paper to him in the Council-room, he
-thus expresses himself to his "dear heart:"--"I assure thee that
-(by the grace of God) nothing can be said or done to me which shall
-make me quit my grounds; as, for instance, neither to grant the
-London propositions as they are (without great amendment), or sign or
-authorize the Covenant, without which, I must again tell thee, I am
-more and more assured that nothing can be expected from the Scots."
-
-Allusions in his private correspondence to the Covenant for awhile
-betray no excitement: they are calmly expressed; but at last, doubtless
-harassed by solicitations on that point, enough to try any man's
-temper, he bursts into a violent passion, and writes to his wife in the
-following language: "This damned Covenant is the child of rebellion,
-and breathes nothing but treason, so that, _if Episcopacy were to be
-introduced by the Covenant, I would not do it_."[585] It was impossible
-for him to have said anything stronger than this; and with such
-feelings on the part of the King, the Newcastle Treaty came to an end.
-
-[Sidenote: _Newcastle Treaty._]
-
-If a good deal of manœuvering appear in the negotiations with the
-Presbyterians carried on by Charles at Newcastle, there is as much
-downright intrigue with other parties to be discovered in his conduct
-at the same time. He inherited some portion of his father's love of
-kingcraft, and he employed to the utmost whatever ability of that
-description he possessed. To repair his broken fortunes, he sedulously
-endeavoured to make tools of the Independents, watching with great
-satisfaction the animosity existing between them and the Presbyterians,
-and hoping, as he says, that one of the factions would so address him
-that he might without difficulty attain his ends.[586]
-
-And with the one great object of this part of his life in view, he
-was prepared to make terms with the Papists. In a letter from Oxford,
-March the 12th, 1646, addressed to his wife, he speaks of a former
-communication in which he had said: "I will take away all the penal
-laws against the Roman Catholics in England as soon as God shall enable
-me to do it, so as by their means I may have so powerful assistance as
-may deserve so great a favour and enable me to do it; and furthermore
-I now add, that I desire some particular offers by or in the favour
-of the English Roman Catholics, which, if I shall like, I will then
-presently engage myself for the performance of the above-mentioned
-conditions. Moreover, if the Pope and they will visibly and heartily
-engage themselves for the re-establishment of the Church of England and
-my crown (which was understood in my former offer) against all opposers
-whatsoever, I will promise them on the word of a King to give them here
-a free toleration of their consciences."[587]
-
-[Sidenote: 1646.]
-
-Of course, all this intriguing involved much duplicity. The collection
-of letters which were written by Charles in 1646, and which are
-now published, will be found to exhibit this prominent feature of
-the King's character. Whenever he formally conceded any point, some
-quibbling about words, some dishonest reserve, some loophole out
-of which he might wriggle, is sure to appear in connection with a
-Jesuitical conscientiousness which was ever weaving casuistic theories,
-and starting ethical questions, in order to cover with a veil of
-seemliness the most dishonest and fraudulent acts. Charles was not
-rashly false; he did not heedlessly tell lies; he had undoubtedly
-certain notions of rectitude, which served occasionally to disquiet his
-spirit; and he wished to appear to himself honest and true, even at the
-moment of his wishing to deceive others. His mind, however, in these
-respects, is but a specimen of a large class of persons in this world
-of many-coloured falsehoods and delusions.
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
- CHAPTER XXII.
-
-
-[Sidenote: 1646.]
-
-Before Parliament sent its propositions to Newcastle, it had commenced
-the business of establishing Presbyterianism. The Directory had been
-ordained, and the Prayer Book abolished. Still more was done.
-
-On the 7th of July, 1645, the Westminster Assembly sent up to the
-two Houses a thoroughly-digested and complete scheme of Presbyterian
-government.[588] Modified as already represented, the scheme was
-embodied in an ordinance on the 19th of August, establishing a
-Presbyterian polity in the city of London. This ordinance commanded
-that a Congregational Assembly should be formed in each of the city
-parishes, and that a Classical Assembly should be gathered in each
-of the twelve classes, or districts, into which the ecclesiastical
-province of the metropolis was by the ordinance divided. Towards the
-end of September, the Houses decided that certain persons should
-try the fitness of lay elders; the triers being three clergymen and
-six laymen for each class. This was an Erastian arrangement, very
-displeasing, of course, to the Presbyterians, and, consequently,
-they refused to carry the measure into effect. In the March following
-(1646) it became loaded with an additional and still more objectionable
-provision. Instead of Parliament being constituted simply a final
-court of appeal, it was now to choose certain Lay Commissioners, who
-were to act in the first instance as judges of scandalous offences--in
-fact, were to have in their hands the entire control of Church
-discipline.[589] This was a measure which weighed too heavily on
-Presbyterian forbearance; and, therefore, a compromise followed in
-the month of June, when the Lay Commissioners were withdrawn, and a
-committee of Lords and Commons was appointed to determine such cases of
-scandals and offences as had not been already specified. This plan was
-in accordance with an earlier direction, to the effect that Members of
-Parliament sitting in the Westminster Assembly should be constituted
-a tribunal to decide respecting causes of suspension from the Lord's
-Supper. On the 2nd of October, the county palatine of Lancaster was
-divided into nine classical presbyteries;[590] and on the 21st of
-January, 1647, a committee of the two Houses ordered that Essex
-should form a province including fourteen classes.
-
-[Sidenote: _Presbyterian Church Government._]
-
-Still, presbyteries were not actually formed. In April, 1647, appeared
-resolutions of the Houses, entitled, "Remedies for removing some
-Obstructions in Church Government;" and after this, on the 3rd of
-May, the first Provincial Assembly met in the Convocation House of
-St. Paul's, including about 108 members. Dr. Gouge, the prolocutor,
-opened the meetings by a sermon in his own parish church of St. Anne,
-Blackfriars.[591]
-
-On the 29th of the January following (1648), another Parliamentary
-ordinance appeared, commanding the committees and commissioners
-throughout the country--with the assistance of ministers--to divide
-their respective counties into distinct classical presbyteries; and
-also specifying that the Chancellors, Vice-Chancellors, and heads of
-houses should establish the same in the two Universities, and certify
-the accomplishment of the fact before the 25th of March.
-
-On the 29th of August, a more elaborate order issued from the Lords
-and Commons, to the effect that all parishes and places whatsoever in
-England and Wales should be under the government of Congregational,
-Classical, Provincial, and National Assemblies.[592] To see how the
-system thus elaborated upon paper, and thus enforced by successive
-ordinances, worked in this kingdom; or rather, with some exceptions,
-failed to work at all, we must wait till we reach the history of the
-Commonwealth Church in the next volume.
-
-[Sidenote: 1646.]
-
-It is now time to direct attention to the final measures adopted with
-reference to Episcopacy. There remained the old bill of 1642, which
-had been bandied about between the Parliament and the King, to which
-the latter had never given consent, and which, therefore, according
-to the monarchical constitution of the country, had never become law.
-Virtually it took effect, but constitutionally it had no authority.
-Other measures were in the same predicament. Parliament, therefore,
-in the autumn of 1646, commenced a revolutionary proceeding, which
-really turned England into a republic. The Houses determined that their
-own ordinances should be valid and sufficient. Ecclesiastical changes
-were amongst the first to be ratified by this proceeding. The old bill
-relative to Episcopacy being thrown aside, a new one came before the
-Lords and Commons, and received the sanction of both Houses on the 9th
-of October.[593]
-
-This ordinance abolished the titles, sequestered the Church property,
-and extinguished the jurisdiction of the hierarchy of England.[594]
-
-[Sidenote: _Ecclesiastical Courts._]
-
-The name, style, and dignity of archbishop and bishops were to be known
-no more. At one sweep church property belonging to them was transferred
-to other hands. "All counties palatine, honours, manors, lordships,
-stiles, circuits, precincts, castles, granges, messuages, mills,
-lands, tenements, meadows, pastures, parsonages, appropriate titles,
-oblations, obventions, pensions, portions of tithes, parsonages,
-vicarages, churches, chapels, advowsons, donatives, nominations, rights
-of patronage and presentations, parks, woods, rents, reversions,
-services, annuities, franchises, liberties, privileges, immunities,
-rights of action and of entry, interests, titles of entry, conditions,
-common court leet, and courts baron, and all other possessions," with
-all and every their appurtenances, became vested in ecclesiastical
-commissioners. Another ordinance, bearing date the 16th of November,
-gave authority to the commissioners to sell such property for the
-benefit of the Commonwealth, with a special reservation in favour of
-the _jura regalia_ of the palatine of Durham, and the _jura regalia_
-of the bishopric of Ely.[595] No cathedrals, churches, chapels, or
-churchyards, however, were to be disposed of; neither was anything in
-the ordinance to affect the property of Serjeants' Inn, or Lincoln's
-Inn. Careful provision is made by the ordinance for securing the
-property to purchasers, and for preserving the funds so realized.
-The first of these ordinances also stated that no one was to use any
-archiepiscopal or episcopal jurisdiction; that the sheriffs of counties
-where any felony was to be tried should present to the judge some fit
-person to do such things as, by the office of the ordinary, had used to
-be done, and "that all issues triable by the ordinary or bishop shall
-be tried by jury in usual course."
-
-[Sidenote: 1646.]
-
-[Sidenote: _Ecclesiastical Courts._]
-
-That last line legalized an extensive revolution. Ecclesiastical Courts
-in England, as noticed in our introduction, were of high antiquity
-and of large jurisdiction. From the time of the Conqueror they had
-taken cognizance of church matters and public morals. After the
-Reformation their authority continued. Moral offences, not provided
-for by common law, heresy, schism, and ecclesiastical disobedience,
-questions touching marriage and divorce, together with the proving of
-wills, remained, as before, subject to the ecclesiastical courts.
-Though interfered with to some extent by the Court of High Commission,
-the old Church Courts retained much of their former business down to
-the time when the Long Parliament was opened. Consistories held in
-provincial cathedrals might be somewhat quiet, but proceedings before
-Archidiaconal tribunals were often exciting enough when enquiries
-were made into village scandals; whilst Doctors' Commons continued a
-centre of the greatest activity. There sat the Consistory Court of
-the Bishop of London, the Prerogative Court of Canterbury, and the
-Court of Arches. The judges and advocates received no small attention,
-and were paid no little reverence, as they appeared in black velvet
-caps and hoods lined with taffeta or miniver; the proctors being
-only a little less dignified with their hoods of lambskin, whilst
-actuaries, registrars, and beadles were busy in their attendance.
-Citations, bills, and answers, proofs, witnesses, and presumptions,
-with all their slow and expensive machinery, were patiently kept at
-work by ecclesiastical lawyers, and were anxiously waited for and
-watched by ecclesiastical and lay litigants. But with the opening of
-the Parliament came a change. Amongst the many _jeu d'esprits_ of
-the time is one belonging to the year 1641, entitled, "The Spiritual
-Courts epitomised in a Dialogue between two Proctors, Busy-Body and
-Scrape-All," with a woodcut on the title page representing the Bishops'
-Court in great confusion.[596] Complaints couched in very exceptionable
-phraseology indicate that the Prerogative, the Consistory, and the
-Archdeacon's Courts, which "used to be crowded like money in a usurer's
-bag, are very quiet and peaceable now;" "no more false Latin," no
-more "ten pounds for a probate to Mr. Copper-nose, the English
-proctor," "and no more prying into people's actions." An end had come
-to inventories, such as terrified all Bloomsbury, Covent Garden, Long
-Acre, and Beech Lane. No more pretended caveats, and bills which would
-exceed a tailor's. On a curious broadside, entitled, "The Last Will and
-Testament of Doctors' Commons," the same exultation over the decline
-of the courts is rudely and vulgarly expressed in very queer cuts and
-in very bad English. The Court is represented as very aged, and sorely
-shaken both in body and mind by a Westminster ague. That which affected
-Doctors' Commons would shake all the consistorial and commissory courts
-throughout the country.
-
-Ecclesiastical causes necessarily fell into confusion. The ordinance,
-however, of October, would settle the question, and sweep all issues,
-determinable of old by the ordinary or bishop, into the common law
-courts, there to be tried by juries in the usual way. This would effect
-not only a great professional change disastrous to ecclesiastical
-lawyers, and apparent in the deserted yard of Doctors' Commons, but
-would occasion a great social change also. People would now carry
-cases touching marriage and divorce to the sessions or the assizes.
-As to one important point, however, that of wills, the authority of
-the old courts of registration survived the ejection of bishops, and
-the abolition of their order. In the Bishop's principal Registry and
-Consistory Court at Exeter, wills are found in the first case up to
-the year 1653, in the second, up to the year 1650, when a gap occurs
-as far as 1660. In the Archdeacon of Sudbury's Registry, wills also
-are found belonging to 1652, and the years preceding. In the Chapter
-House of York, there are transcripts of wills to 1650, and from 1650
-originals occur. In the Archdeaconry of Taunton, wills did not cease
-to be registered till 1649, in the Archdeaconry of Huntingdon, not till
-1653.[597] A new law with respect to the probate of wills was passed in
-the last-mentioned year.[598]
-
-[Sidenote: 1646.]
-
-The effect, in relation to public morals, of the abolition of Bishop's
-Courts, and of the disuse of those which were Archidiaconal, has been
-too much overlooked. Though the old church discipline, by calling in
-the aid of the civil power, contradicted the spirit of Christianity,
-though it was often completely frustrated, and though for really
-religious ends it proved generally ineffectual; yet it would, in
-some cases, check the immorality of a parish, whatever might be the
-evils--in the way of slander, injustice, and heart-burning--which it
-called into existence. And, at any rate, the destruction of a tribunal
-before which people were liable to be cited for unchastity and other
-vices not cognizable by the secular courts, is an important fact in the
-history of those times, and indicates the occurrence of a considerable
-judicial and social revolution. No doubt the Presbyterians, in their
-scheme of discipline, and the Long Parliament, in its acts against
-immorality, endeavoured to supply what they considered a defect, after
-they had accomplished the abolition of the old system.
-
-[Sidenote: _Payment of Tithes._]
-
-The ordinance just described only transferred into the hands of
-commissioners the property and revenues pertaining to bishoprics; it
-did not touch advowsons and tithes in general, or affect parochial
-and other ecclesiastical edifices. The right of presentation to
-livings remained in the hands of patrons, where the right had not been
-forfeited by delinquency, and tithes continued to be claimed as in
-former days; but the method of recovering them had undergone a change.
-Public opinion appears to have become altogether unsettled respecting
-the question of ministerial support.
-
-In the month of November, 1646, "The Moderate Intelligencer" informs
-its readers of a petition from the county of Kent being presented to
-Parliament against the support of ministers by the payment of tithes.
-It was submitted to the legislature that all clergymen should receive
-the same amount of salary, according to the part of England in which
-they resided. These Kentish advisers recommended that in parishes north
-of the river Trent the stipend should be £100 per annum; and that on
-the south side of it ought to amount to £150. The reason alleged for
-equal salaries being paid to all incumbents in each of these districts
-was, that the arrangement would prevent ministers from hunting after
-preferment. The petitioners notice that some people said--who had
-"little scripture or reason for their opinion"--that tithes were
-unlawful, and that "men should be at the pleasure of the people," in
-other words, should be left to be provided for on the voluntary system;
-others, it is observed, would, to avoid strife, fain have ministers
-paid their tithes in money, not in kind, and they also advocated the
-repeal of statutes forbidding the clergy to hold farms, or to cultivate
-the practice of husbandry. It is also mentioned that some persons
-advocated a new division of parishes, making them all of the same size.
-
-[Sidenote: 1647.]
-
-However truly the newspapers might reflect diversities of opinion on
-this subject, whatever sympathy some puritan farmers or some puritan
-parsons might feel with these inhabitants of Kent, Parliament firmly
-maintained the rights of tithe property. In August, 1647, came forth
-another ordinance,[599] confirming the prior one of 1644, and removing
-doubts raised as to whether it extended to ministers inducted by
-parliamentary authority. It mentions appeals brought into Chancery
-for vexation and delay, and ordains that no such appeals should be
-admitted until the party appealing paid into court, or into the hands
-of justices of the peace, the value of the tithes in dispute. This
-ordinance was to continue in force until the first of November, 1648.
-The April of that year brought another ordinance,[600] cancelling a
-proviso in the ordinance of 1644, for placing beyond its reach the city
-of London, and committing the enforcement of these ecclesiastical dues
-to the Lord Mayor and justices within their jurisdiction.[601]
-
-[Sidenote: _Church Dues._]
-
-A newspaper of the 4th of November, 1646, informed the public of a
-bill introduced that day for repairing churches, and for giving power
-to compel people to contribute towards needful and pious works; the
-power to be vested not merely in churchwardens, but in justices of the
-peace. Mention is also made of a committee to meet in the Star Chamber,
-for the purpose of considering what course had best be adopted, whether
-by commitment or otherwise, in order to compel payment from those who
-refused to contribute according to the ordinary assessments. More
-than a year after these reports were printed, the Lords and Commons,
-on the 9th of February, 1647-8, ordained that churchwardens should be
-chosen annually by the inhabitants of every parish and chapelry, on the
-Monday or Tuesday of Easter Week, and that they, with the overseers
-of the poor, should, upon public notice, "make rates or assessments
-by taxation of every inhabitant." Churchwardens were also to receive
-any rents and profits which had been given for repairing parochial
-edifices; and, when churchwardens became negligent of their duties,
-two neighbouring justices of the peace were empowered to interfere,
-and to give order for necessary repairs. The ordinance was not to
-extend to churches "ruined" by the "unhappy wars, extremity of age, or
-other casualties," nor was it to apply to any cathedral or collegiate
-churches, all of which were "to be repaired as formerly they have been
-used and accustomed."[602]
-
-[Sidenote: 1645.]
-
-Apart from sweeping revolutions in cathedral establishments, the
-colleges of Westminster, Eton, Christ Church, and Winchester
-experienced changes peculiar to themselves. It was provided in 1642
-that none of the revenues assigned for scholars and almsmen should
-be interrupted in consequence of the sequestration of the rents and
-profits of Archbishops and Bishops, Deans and Chapters. In 1645, a
-special ordinance provided both for the college and the collegiate
-church of Westminster, the Deanery being virtually extinct. The Dean
-and prebends had become delinquents, with the exception of Mr. Lambert
-Osbolston, who, whilst being a canon of the cathedral, was also master
-of the school. The school, the almsmen, and the offices, having no
-one to take care of them now that the ecclesiastical corporation
-of the Abbey had been dissolved, Parliament proceeded to nominate
-commissioners, consisting of the Earl of Northumberland and others,
-who were invested with powers similar to those previously possessed by
-the Dean and Chapter. Mr. Osbolston was exempted from the forfeiture
-of the prebendal income, which had been inflicted on all his brethren
-occupying stalls in the Abbey. With the new Commissioner, the Master of
-Trinity College, Cambridge, and the Master of Westminster School, were
-associated in the election of scholars for the latter foundation. The
-Committee was also directed to make allowances out of the revenues of
-the collegiate church to the minister who should perform Divine service
-within its walls.[603]
-
-[Sidenote: _Universities._]
-
-The sequestered estate and profits of the provost of Eton were
-entrusted to Sir H. Cholmeley, without prejudice either to scholars
-or fellows. Dr. Richard Stewart was ejected from the provostship,
-and Francis Rouse appointed in his room.[604] After some discussion,
-Parliament left new elections in the hands of the provost and fellows.
-
-Great changes came over the Deanery of Windsor and the Chapel of St.
-George. Spoliation went on without mercy. Precious treasures were
-seized for military uses. The revenues were sequestered, and out of
-them the yearly sum of fifty pounds was voted for any such minister as
-should officiate in the parish church.[605]
-
-As the educational uses of Eton, Westminster, and other public
-foundations of the kind, preserved their revenues from confiscation,
-the same also was the case with the two Universities. Their history,
-which we have hitherto passed over, now demands our attention, and
-requires us to go back for a few years.
-
-In the battle which the Parliament had to fight with the heads of
-houses, Cambridge commenced hostilities. In 1642, the Masters and
-Fellows of the Colleges there sent money and plate to the coffers
-of the King at York, "many wishing," says Fuller, "that every ounce
-thereof were a pound for his sake, conceiving it unfitting that they
-should have superfluities to spare whilst their sovereign wanted
-necessaries to spend."[606] The University press was employed in
-printing the King's declarations, and the University pulpit was made
-to resound with diatribes against the King's enemies. When a demand
-came for contributions to the Parliament, the University returned
-a blank refusal. The men who thus took part in the opening strife
-subjected themselves of course to the fortunes of war. The kingdom
-being rent in twain, two encampments being pitched face to face, such
-as threw themselves into the one had no friendship to expect from the
-other. Hence there followed imprisonments for the plate business,
-and for like belligerent acts. The Masters of St. John's, Queen's, and
-Jesus, were lodged in the Tower, where they were joined afterwards
-by the Vice-Chancellor. Thus far the collision was purely political.
-University men were treated as malignants.
-
-[Sidenote: _University of Cambridge._]
-
-But in January, 1644, another issue was raised. Political delinquency
-being still prominently kept in view, it became associated with
-religious and ecclesiastical criminations. Many complaints--said
-the ordinance for regulating the University of Cambridge--were
-made that the service of the country was retarded, that the enemy
-was strengthened, that the people's souls were starved, and that
-their minds were diverted from the care of God's cause by the idle,
-ill-affected, and scandalous clergy. Commissioners therefore were
-empowered to call before them all provosts, masters, fellows, students,
-and members who were scandalous in their lives, or ill-affected to the
-Parliament, or fomenters of the war, or that should wilfully refuse
-obedience to the orders of the two Houses, or desert their ordinary
-places of residence. Persons found guilty of any such offences were to
-suffer the sequestration of their estates and revenues; at the same
-time, ministers approved by the Westminster Assembly were authorized to
-succeed to the vacant posts. The Commissioners had power to administer
-the Covenant under penalties, and to examine and inhibit all persons
-who should obstruct the reformation sought to be accomplished by the
-Parliament and the Assembly. The ordinance evidently placed at the
-mercy of this new Committee every one who, though _not scandalous in
-life_, should decline the Covenant or oppose the Westminster decisions.
-This document bears date the 22nd of January. On the 30th of the same
-month, an order appeared to make void the places of all officers,
-ministers, or other attendants upon Chancery, the King's Bench, and
-the Common Pleas, who should be guilty of the same offences.[607] The
-ground on which the Presbyterian party now in power chose to place
-the controversy with the authorities at Cambridge and elsewhere is
-sufficiently apparent.
-
-The justice of their final policy ought to be tested by the principles
-upon which it was avowedly based, not by any laxity of method in the
-carrying of it out. It is said that, in several instances, those who
-were entrusted with the execution of the ordinance were very lenient,
-and did not eject all who refused submission; but this does not affect
-the character of the enactment. According to Archbishop Tillotson, most
-of the fellows of King's were exempted through the interest of Dr.
-Witchcot--an exception which is not at all irreconcilable with Fuller's
-statement--himself a Cambridge man--that "this Covenant being offered,
-was generally refused, whereupon the recusants were ordered without any
-delay to pack out of the University three days after their ejection."
-Fuller does not say that the order took effect in all cases.[608]
-
-[Sidenote: _University of Cambridge._]
-
-A document in the State Paper Office opens a window through which
-one can plainly see how sequestrations went on at Cambridge. Houses
-were rifled, and goods seized. The effects were sold according to
-appraisements. The books of Dr. Cosin, Master of Peter House and Dean
-of Durham, were valued at £247 10s., and must have formed a good
-library for those days. The furniture of Dr. Laney, Master of Pembroke,
-is all inventoried, down to "blankets," "leather chairs," and "fire
-irons." The books of Mr. Heath, of Barnet College, are valued at £14;
-and Mr. Couldham's, of Queen's, at £10. Horses and furniture are
-mentioned, and articles are described as taken away in carts under the
-care of soldiers. Zealous partisans received rewards for information
-relative to concealed property. An infamous soldier was paid for
-divulging the secret where books belonging to his brother might be
-found.
-
-[Sidenote: _University of Cambridge._]
-
-Thus a political offence provoked the anger and occasioned the
-interference of Parliament. But the interference aimed at a religious
-result through a revival of Puritanism. The East-Anglian University,
-true to its traditional liberality, fostered that movement towards
-the end of the sixteenth century, as it had promoted the Reformation
-fifty years before. In 1565, the University was restive under the yoke
-of ceremonies, and almost all the men of St. John's came to chapel
-without hoods or surplices.[609] When Mildmay had founded Emmanuel
-College (1585), the Queen said: "Sir Walter, I hear you have erected
-a Puritan foundation." He replied: "No, madam; far be it from me to
-countenance anything contrary to your established laws; but I have set
-an acorn, which, when it becomes an oak, God alone knows what will be
-the fruit thereof."[610] The fruit proved Puritan to the heart's core;
-and the fact is commemorated in a satire about thirty years afterwards.
-Its unconsecrated chapel, standing north and south, instead of
-orientating after the prescribed fashion, has been pronounced "typical
-of its doctrinal sentiments."[611] Sidney, too, was Puritan, and so
-was Catherine Hall, the last so persistently, and to such a degree,
-that it is said not to have contributed one fellow or scholar to the
-number of the ejected in 1644.[612] Cambridge had the credit of being
-"a nest of Puritans" in the middle of King James's reign. Perkins and
-Sibbs, ministers of that class, were exceedingly popular with both the
-gownsmen and the townspeople. The University for many years supplied
-by far the majority of the leading Presbyterian Divines;[613] and
-four out of the five dissenting brethren at Westminster were from
-Cambridge.[614] Traces of Puritanism existed in Trinity College even so
-late as 1636. In some tutors' chambers "the private prayers were longer
-and louder by far" than in chapel.[615] But, before the civil wars, a
-change in the opposite direction set in. Peter House under Cosin, St.
-John's under Beale, Queen's under Martin, and Jesus under Sterne, were
-becoming more and more centres of Anglo-Catholicism. The influence of
-Laud may be distinctly traced through the last two of these heads of
-houses--Martin and Sterne having been chaplains to the Archbishop.
-Nor was the Archbishop himself inactive at Cambridge. The reports
-about Trinity just noticed were placed in his hands preparatory to his
-intended visitation in 1636. So far did some go in the anti-Puritan
-movement that, according to report, at the commencement, in July, 1633,
-Dr. Collins eulogized Bellarmine, and Dr. Duncan defended some of his
-theses.[616] Complaints were made by Puritans of altars, vestments, and
-Jesuit activity. Organs were erected, and the worship in Peter House
-Chapel incurred the displeasure of the Long Parliament.[617] To judge
-of the extent to which anti-Presbyterian views prevailed at Cambridge
-in 1644, we may state that, of residents, it seems about a tenth part
-of the number was ejected.[618]
-
-The history of Oxford is not altogether like that of Cambridge.
-The source of three religious impulses of very different kinds,
-connected respectively with great theological names of very different
-character--Wesley, Pusey, and Jowett--the Midland University, central
-and many-sided in its religious spirit, as it is in its geographical
-position, did much to promote the Reformation, and did something
-to foster Puritanism. It produced Reynolds, the Presbyterian, and
-Owen, the Independent. A Puritan wave stirred the waters of the
-University in 1640. But influence of that kind at Oxford was feeble,
-compared with its sweep at Cambridge; and the Laudian impetus to
-Anglo-Catholicism most strongly marked the elder University. Laud was
-Chancellor of Oxford, and here, of course, his restless brain and
-untiring hands would specially prosecute the favourite business of
-his life. Accordingly, instances of his minute, constant, and zealous
-interference abound throughout his memoirs and papers.[619] He had a
-very large share in producing that opposition to Puritanism and the
-Parliament, which characterized Oxford at the commencement of the civil
-wars.
-
-[Sidenote: _University of Oxford._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1646.]
-
-Phases of conflict, similar to those in the case of Cambridge, may be
-recognized with greater distinctness in the case of Oxford. We have
-seen already, from our account of the military occupation of the latter
-University by the King, that it assumed an attitude of determined
-defiance towards the Parliament. What would be figurative in reference
-to Cambridge is perfectly literal in reference to Oxford. Colleges
-became barracks, and gownsmen soldiers. The University therefore could
-not be regarded as otherwise than in a state of rebellion against the
-Parliament--now actually the supreme power. Consequently, when the
-city was taken, the University was treated as a conquered enemy. To
-demand subscription and fealty was the least thing which the conquerors
-could do. To remove from office those who were disaffected was but a
-measure of common prudence. Besides, such a state of demoralization
-had come over the whole institution,[620] and war had so driven away
-learning and discipline, that reformation was imperative. Accordingly,
-in September, 1646, Commissioners went down to Oxford. Citations were
-issued requiring officers, fellows, and scholars, to appear at the
-Convocation House, between the hours of nine and eleven o'clock in
-the forenoon. The Presbyterian visitors had worship, and a sermon,
-which detained them till nearly eleven. A story is related, that the
-Vice-Chancellor, Dr. Fell, had the clock put forward, so that it
-struck the hour before the Commissioners arrived. At all events, as
-the latter were coming in, they were met by the University authorities
-going out, the beadle in attendance, exclaiming, "Make way here for Mr.
-Vice-Chancellor." The visitors did so, when Mr. Vice-Chancellor moving
-his hat, passed by them, saying, "How do ye, gentlemen, 'tis past
-eleven o'clock." After this indignity a new Commission was appointed,
-but the visitors on the second occasion fared no better than their
-predecessors. Their orders were not only disobeyed, but also "despised
-and contemned." The heads of Colleges asked, by "what authority they
-were summoned;" and resolutely refused to give up books and papers,
-the keys of the Convocation House, and the beadles' staves. The
-Proctors protested against the citation they had received as illegal,
-and claimed to be exclusively under the authority of the King and his
-visitors. Patiently persisting in the assertion of its own power,
-Parliament allowed the malcontents to be heard by counsel; after which,
-their answer was pronounced an insult to the authority of the two
-Houses. Fell was then declared to have forfeited, by his contumacy, the
-deanery of Christ Church; but the declaration, when posted on the walls
-of that establishment was torn down and trampled under foot. Mrs. Fell
-also gave much trouble, and being imbued with an obstinacy like her
-husband's, had to be forcibly carried out in her chair, by the hands
-of the soldiers, into the quadrangle. Possession could not be taken
-of Magdalen, All Souls, and other Colleges, without breaking open the
-doors.[621]
-
-[Sidenote: _University of Oxford._]
-
-There, as in Cambridge, notwithstanding the virulence of the
-opposition, some of the Parliamentarian party were willing to wink at
-evasions of the Covenant. Isaak Walton tells a story of some one who,
-"observing Dr. Morley's behaviour and reason, and enquiring of him, and
-hearing a good report of his morals, was therefore willing to afford
-him a peculiar favour." He proposed that Morley should ride out of
-Oxford as the visitors rode in, and not return until they left again,
-undertaking to secure for him his canonry without molestation. The kind
-offer, though gratefully acknowledged, was respectfully declined.[622]
-
-An instance of practical gratitude may also be mentioned in connexion
-with the Oxford ejectment. Dr. Laurence, Master of Baliol, and Margaret
-professor, had, during the wars, shewn marked kindness to Colonel
-Valentine Walton, an officer in the Parliament army, who had been taken
-prisoner after Edge Hill fight, and confined at Oxford--the prisoner
-being indebted to the professor for his release. The obligation
-thus contracted, Walton repaid when Laurence suffered ejectment. He
-settled on his friend a little chapelry called Colne, in the parish of
-Somersham in Huntingdonshire, augmenting its value by adding to it the
-tithes of Colne. This benefice Laurence had become qualified to enjoy,
-by receiving a certificate of the Oxford Commissioners, to the effect,
-that he had engaged to observe the Directory in all ecclesiastical
-administrations--to preach practical divinity to the people--and to
-forbear teaching any opinions which the reformed church condemned.[623]
-
-[Sidenote: 1646.]
-
-After the University in general had been subdued, a few scholars
-continued incorrigible. They abused the new authorities, and scattered
-about the streets scurrilous tracts, entitled, "Pegasus taught to
-dance to the tune of Lachryme"--"The Owl at Athens"--"The Oxford
-tragi-comedy," and many more.[624] At last, a serjeant, attended by a
-file of musqueteers, published before all the College gates by beat
-of drum a proclamation, that if any persons expelled by the visitors
-should persist in remaining within the precincts of the University,
-they should be taken into custody. And a few days afterwards another
-proclamation appeared, to the effect that if any of the proscribed
-individuals tarried within five miles of the city, he should be deemed
-a spy, and be punished with death. This was enough. Oxford was soon
-cleared of its obnoxious inmates. Probably the University had been
-encouraged in its resistance by the knowledge of the differences
-existing between the Parliament and the army. These differences had
-become so serious, and had been brought so near, that some of the
-soldiers in the Oxford garrison, sympathizing with the army at head
-quarters, refused to obey the order of Parliament. Like King Charles,
-the University hoped to escape under cover of the strife between the
-two parties who had become their conquerors. In that hope, however, the
-University, like the King, proved to be mistaken.
-
-[Sidenote: _University of Oxford._]
-
-Looking at the quarrel between the Parliament and the University,
-we must admit that the Parliament had on its side a right such as
-invariably follows victory, and such as always waits on established
-government. But another aspect of this affair remains to be considered,
-corresponding with the second phase of the Cambridge proceedings. What
-was ecclesiastical became mixed up with what was political. Not content
-with requiring obedience to the civil authority, the victors aimed at
-extinguishing all spiritual power in Oxford save their own. If, in
-justification or excuse it be pleaded that this came as a necessity,
-arising out of the civil establishment of religion, then the same
-plea of justification or excuse is valid in relation to the conduct
-of the now ejected, but afterwards restored Prelatists, when they
-turned out Presbyterians and Independents in 1662. The cases, so far
-as ecclesiastical imposition is concerned, appear to be alike. Those
-who think the proceedings of 1662 were unrighteous, and that national
-universities ought not to be subjected to ecclesiastical tests, must,
-if consistent, also think that the proceedings of 1644 and 1647 were
-unrighteous in the very same respects.
-
-To remove men of scandalous life was proper, and nobody could complain
-of the punishment of those who violated university statutes, or wasted
-university property. Persons also who had taken up arms against the
-Parliament might be justly considered liable to some kind of penalty.
-But the articles of enquiry, instead of being confined to such points,
-were extended so as to embrace the neglect of the Covenant, and all
-opposition made to the Directory, or to any doctrine, "ignorance
-whereof doth exclude from the sacrament of the Lord's supper.[625]"
-
-[Sidenote: 1646.]
-
-[Sidenote: _University of Oxford._]
-
-This kind of ecclesiastical inquisition served, as it often did, to
-put Parliament in an utterly false position. Armed in this manner,
-the ruling power stood up, not as the shield-bearer of order, but as
-the sword-bearer of persecution. The University availed itself of the
-circumstance, and instead of attempting to justify its resistance
-of the new government--which would have been a difficult task--it
-immediately betook itself to the doing of what was easy, and employed
-its ablest pens in drawing up an elaborate paper in Latin and English
-against the imposition of the new spiritual tests. In this way, men who
-only paid the penalty of insubordination were enabled to appear, as if
-carrying in their hands the martyr's palm. The Oxford champions did not
-plead for religious liberty. They did not found their case on any broad
-principle of toleration. They did not assert the rights of conscience,
-or expose the evils of persecution. Sentiments in favour of arbitrary
-government occurred even in this very manifesto, and a good deal of
-the reasoning they employed was one-sided, full of special pleading,
-and altogether unsatisfactory. Yet some of their objections were
-forcible, as when they urged that the adoption of the Covenant would be
-incompatible with their subscription to the Prayer Book, and when they
-complained of Prelacy being ranked with Popery and profaneness. They
-slyly intimated that they thought reform a necessity in Scotland, as
-well as in England, and truly said that the policy of the Parliament
-made the religion of England look like a Parliamentary religion. The
-following remark, which they offered on the fourth article of the
-Covenant, was not more galling than it was just:--"That the imposing the
-Covenant in this article may lay a necessity upon the son to accuse the
-father, in case he be a _malignant_, which is contrary to religion,
-nature, and humanity; or it may open a way for children that are sick
-of their fathers, to effect their unlawful intentions, by accusing
-them of malignity; besides, the subjecting ourselves to an arbitrary
-punishment, at the sole pleasure of such uncertain judges as may be
-deputed for that effect, is betraying the liberty of the subject."[626]
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
- CHAPTER XXIII.
-
-
-[Sidenote: _Presbyterians and Independents._]
-
-Oliver Cromwell, in a letter from Bristol, after its surrender in 1645,
-makes this remark:--"Presbyterians and Independents all have here the
-same spirit of faith and prayer. They agree here, and have no names of
-difference. Pity it is it should be otherwise anywhere." A pamphlet
-entitled "The Reconciler," published in 1646, affords another example
-of the spirit which was thus manifested by the illustrious general,
-and abounds in sensible remarks and salutary reproof applicable to
-both parties. In other places, also, besides Bristol, persons bearing
-these different religious names lived in unity and co-operated in the
-promotion of the spiritual welfare of their fellow-citizens, and in
-other publications besides the "Reconciler," sentiments of candour and
-charity were expressed.[627] But, for the most part, the contention
-between Presbyterians and Independents was absurdly fierce, and
-numerous tracts appeared on both sides filled with unchristian and
-disgraceful invectives.
-
-[Sidenote: 1646.]
-
-[Sidenote: _Presbyterians and Independents._]
-
-The city of Norwich supplies a remarkable instance of this kind of
-strife. Puritanism had strongly established itself there before the
-civil wars, and had borne earnest witness against the innovations of
-the Anglo-Catholics. When Episcopacy had been dethroned, numbers of
-the clergy and citizens shewed themselves zealous in supporting the
-Covenant and the Directory,--backed, as they were, by an order of
-Parliament bearing the name of the Speaker.[628] They endeavoured to
-set up in all the churches which crowded the narrow streets of that
-hive of manufacturing industry on the banks of the Wensum, the new
-model of worship, and to fashion the religion of all the inhabitants
-after the newly authorized type. But Independency had also grown up,
-and was beginning to flourish within the walls; the Church planted in
-1642 presented signs of vigorous vitality, and probably other persons,
-not in religious communion with it, favoured its interests from
-political motives. The Episcopal party remained strong, and succeeded
-in resisting, to some extent, the reforming policy of their energetic
-Puritan neighbours;[629] but the latter, instead of uniting all their
-strength to maintain a common cause against those who were opponents to
-them in common, engaged in a vehement paper war one against another,
-which threw the whole city into a state of feverish excitement. There
-are extant two curious publications, the one entitled "_Vox Populi_,"
-an organ of the Independents, and the other, bearing the name of "_Vox
-Norwici_," issued by the Presbyterians. In the Independent "_Vox
-Populi_," we find the authors maintaining that every man ought to be
-left to the liberty of his own conscience; that the Solemn League and
-Covenant was the same engine of tyranny in the hands of the presbyter
-that the massbook had been in the hands of the priest, or the Book of
-Common Prayer in the hands of the prelate; that immoral ministers were
-allowed to remain in their incumbencies without any attempt to remove
-them; that nothing was heard in parish pulpits but the subject of
-church discipline and ecclesiastical uniformity; that the Presbyterian
-clergy domineered over the Corporation; and that they were actuated
-mainly by self-interest, inasmuch as they had been at one time as
-ready to submit to surplices, tippets, liturgies, and canons, as they
-were now zealous in casting such things away. The object and animus of
-this publication cannot be mistaken; and the character of the "_Vox
-Norwici_" is equally intelligible.[630] It leaves what the Independents
-had said in reference to the Covenant to be censured by authority, and
-to be confuted by the pens and tongues of learned men. It vindicates
-the character of the Presbyterian ministers, and declares that if in
-their preaching they ever meddled with the topic of discipline and
-uniformity, it was "but a touch and away." It asserts that when they
-attended the court of the City Corporation, it was as petitioners,
-"with their hats in their hands," and that they were, notwithstanding
-the imputations cast upon them, disinterested men, as proved by
-their conduct, and the amount of their preferments. It affirms that
-the covenants of congregational churches--which had incurred the
-disapproval of Presbyterians--were vague and useless, and allowed
-people to draw their necks out of Christ's yoke. The tract proceeds to
-maintain that it was owing to the influence of the Presbyterian clergy
-that the magistrates of the city had doubled the poor-rates, so that
-the condition of the lower class had become considerably improved;
-but at the same time it admits that in congregational churches the
-poor were still better off, owing to their small number--poor members
-not being so easily admitted to such communion as were sisters in
-"silk-gowns." And then, as a last sting for their adversaries, the
-Presbyterians add this curious observation: "Besides, you can get so
-many good women to you, that their husbands cannot bear the charge of
-our poor, because their wives prove so chargeable to them."
-
-[Sidenote: 1646.]
-
-[Sidenote: _Presbyterians and Independents._]
-
-It has been pointed out in these pages already how the military
-success of Cromwell, and the unpopularity of the Scotch, together with
-changes in the House of Commons, helped the political Independents to
-curb Presbyterian churchmanship and intolerance. But in those outside
-circumstances, if we may so express it, which materially affected the
-interests lying within the proper sphere of religion, a considerable
-change occurred during the latter part of the year 1646. A lull of
-peace in the midst of the civil wars, through the complete defeat of
-the King's army, and the capture of his strongholds, had deprived
-Cromwell and his soldiers of any further opportunity to increase
-their laurels. The Scotch, having the King in their camp, and being
-engaged in negotiations with Parliament for the payment of arrears,
-occupied an improved position, and further changes in the Lower
-House, altered again somewhat the relative strength of the two great
-parties. The policy of the Presbyterians on political questions, was
-moderation. They were averse to republicanism, and wished to retain
-the old constitution of King, Lords, and Commons. Some of the new
-members with strong revolutionary sympathies, who had entered the
-House in 1645, came by a natural influence to be more moderate when
-called themselves to bear the responsibilities of legislation, and
-when brought into close contact with persons against whom they were
-previously prejudiced. These now felt disposed to side somewhat with
-the Presbyterians.[631] Moreover, new members had been returned by
-constituencies loyal to the King, and they thought they should best
-aid the royal cause by voting with the Presbyterians. Consequently,
-the Independent party lost ground a little in the arena of their
-recent victories,[632] and the alteration speedily manifested itself
-in the turn given to ecclesiastical proceedings. The Presbyterians
-availed themselves of their partially recovered supremacy to attack
-once more the hateful sects, and, by the iron foot of penal law, to
-crush out the life of error and evil. On the 26th of May, 1646, the
-Corporation of London, whose courage revived after the debates upon
-"the keys," presented a remonstrance to the Lords and Commons, in
-which they expressed their devotion to the Covenant, gave Parliament
-credit for not desiring to let loose "the golden reins of discipline
-and government," and complained of private and separate congregations
-daily erected in divers parts of the City, and commonly frequented;
-and of Anabaptism, and Brownism, and all manner of schisms, heresies,
-and blasphemies vented by such as, touching the point of Church
-government, professed themselves to be Independents. So that they go
-on to say: "We cannot but be astonished at the swarms of sectaries,
-which discover themselves everywhere, who, if by their endeavours
-they should get into places of profit and trust in martial and civil
-affairs, it might tend much to the disturbance of the public peace
-both of the Church and Commonwealth."[633] The Presbyterians made a
-motion that the House would take the matter into consideration, which
-upon a division they were able to carry.[634] In the winter of 1646,
-the Clergy of London, whose influence was paramount with the citizens,
-made the pulpits ring with invectives against parliamentary delay in
-the work of lifting the Church above the State; and when December came,
-the Lord Mayor and Corporation clamorously beset the House with their
-grievances. Contempt, they said, was put on the Covenant. Heresy and
-schism were still growing. Soldiers usurped the ministry and appeared
-in the pulpit. The petitioners entreated that the Covenant might
-be imposed on the whole nation, under penalties such as Parliament
-might think fit, that nobody should be allowed to preach who was not
-an ordained covenanter, and that separate congregations, which were
-all "nurseries of damnable heretics," might be suppressed.[635] Upon
-this appeal a parliamentary declaration appeared in condemnation of
-a lay ministry, of everything derogatory to presbyterian government,
-and of those who should disturb any preachers in holy orders. Shortly
-afterwards, the London clergy, assembling at Sion College, published a
-treatise, entitled, "A Testimony to the Truth of Jesus Christ, and to
-our Solemn League and Covenant, as also against the errors, heresies,
-and blasphemies of these times, and the toleration of them, to which
-is added a Catalogue of the said Errors." The ministers of the
-counties of Gloucester, Lancaster, Devon, and Somerset declared their
-concurrence with the London brethren.[636]
-
-[Sidenote: 1646.]
-
-Other circumstances contributed to augment the confusion of the times.
-In the newspapers and pamphlets of the latter part of the year 1646
-there are several traces of terrific apprehensions entertained by
-religious people, such as greatly increased the excitement of the
-period. The harvest was late. In October, lamentations appear of
-corn in the north not gathered in, and of vetches still standing in
-the fields. A famine threatened the population; and such a calamity
-appeared the more probable from the continuance in England of the
-Scotch army, which, of course, consumed a large quantity of provision.
-Wailings over heavy rains and floods in the months of November and
-December were of frequent occurrence. "Where are our dry days," it was
-asked, "the divers-coloured bow of heaven? If the weather continue, the
-nation must abandon their walls of stone, and have recourse to walls of
-wood. Heaven weeps for us, yet we cannot weep for ourselves, because we
-have hearts of stone; like the offspring of Deucalion's people, we must
-partake of Deucalion's punishment."
-
-[Sidenote: _Supernatural Omens._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1646.]
-
-It will help to illustrate the superstitious feelings which mingled
-with such fears if we notice the frequent references to supernatural
-portents about this time. In a curious quarto tract, entitled "Strange
-Signs from Heaven," published in the spring of the same year, we
-read the following passage:--"At Brandon, in the county of Norfolk,
-the inhabitants were forced to come out of their houses to behold so
-strange a spectacle of a spire-steeple ascending up from the earth,
-and a pike or lance descending downward from heaven. The Lord in mercy
-bless and preserve His Church, and settle peace and truth among all
-degrees, and more especially among our churchmen! Also at Brandon, in
-the county aforesaid, was seen at the same time, a navy or fleet of
-ships in the air, swiftly passing under sail, with flags and streamers
-hanged out, as if they were ready to give an encounter. In Marshland,
-in the county of Norfolk aforesaid, within three miles of King's Lynn,
-a captain and a lieutenant, with divers other persons of credit, did
-hear in the time of thunder a sound, as of a whole regiment of drums
-beating a call with perfect notes and stops, much admired at of all
-that heard it. And the like military sound was heard in Suffolk upon
-the same day, and in other parts of the Eastern Association. In all
-these places there was very great thunder, with rain and hailstones of
-extraordinary bigness, and round, and some hollow within like rings.
-The Lord grant that all the people of this kingdom may take heed to
-every warning trumpet of His, that we may speedily awaken out of
-our sins, and truly turn to the Lord, fight His battles against our
-spiritual enemies, and get those inward riches of which we cannot be
-plundered, and so seek an inward kingdom of righteousness and peace,
-that we may be more capable in His good time of a settled peace and
-state in the outward kingdom, and all through our Lord Jesus Christ!"
-
-While Heaven was interpreted as frowning upon the earth, people were
-accused of indifference to religious duties. A religious newspaper,
-called the "Scottish Dove," described as "sent out and returning the
-28th of October and the 4th of November"--after quaintly remarking that
-the Dove had rested on the public fast--goes on to inform the reader
-how the country neglected, slighted, and contemned the ordinance of
-God, and of the Parliament for days of humiliation--not only in the
-country towns, where ignorant people ordinarily ploughed, threshed,
-hedged, and ditched, but also in the great city of London. Though the
-country was suffering, how thin were the congregations on a fast day!
-How full the cookshops, ordinaries, and taverns! "Do men indeed believe
-there is a God?" asks the indignant editor. Such lamentations remind
-us of similar ones expressed by St. Chrysostom, when comparing the
-scanty attendance at church with the multitudes assembled in places of
-amusement.
-
-[Sidenote: _The King at Holdenby._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1647.]
-
-Amidst all these fears and complaints, negotiations were continued
-between the Presbyterians in Parliament, and the Scotch authorities
-relative to the payment and the disbanding of their troops and the
-surrender of the King into English hands. When arrangements for the
-purpose had been effected between the two parties, his Majesty, at
-the end of January, 1647, delivered himself up to the Parliamentary
-Commissioners at Newcastle, whence he was conducted to Holdenby House,
-in the county of Northampton--a stately Elizabethan mansion, which had
-been built by Sir Christopher Hatton--a retreat, however, certainly not
-selected in consideration of the fallen monarch's feelings, since it
-was within a short ride from Naseby, the scene of his final and most
-inglorious defeat. Notwithstanding this circumstance, he graciously
-expressed himself as glad to come a little nearer to his Parliament;
-and no doubt, with all sincerity, he also declared his perfect
-willingness to bid farewell to his northern hosts. His journey was
-retarded by unfavourable weather, yet thousands of spectators greeted
-his approach to the old mansion; whilst bells rang and cannons fired
-"with a gallant echo."[637] The English Presbyterians were greatly
-elated on obtaining the charge of the royal person, a prize which, they
-hoped, would bring to them other advantages in its train.[638] Charles,
-after reaching Holdenby House, requested to be allowed the attendance
-of his episcopal chaplains. The request was refused. He was informed
-that no one who did not take the Covenant could be permitted to remain
-in his household. It is very well known how his Majesty amused himself
-whilst at Holdenby--sometimes walking in the pleasant neighbourhood;
-sometimes riding over to a bowling-green a few miles distant. Other
-matters, too, not often noticed by historians, but characteristic of
-the royal prisoner, occupied his attention. As the opening spring
-covered with bright green the Northamptonshire fields, and as the pear
-trees in the orchards of Holdenby exhibited their snowy types of the
-resurrection, the royal and episcopalian churchman naturally desired
-to commemorate the holy festival of Easter, so endeared of old to the
-hearts of Christians.
-
-[Sidenote: _The King at Holdenby._]
-
-"I desire," said Charles, in a paper he wrote at this time, "to
-be resolved of this question: Why the new reformers discharge the
-keeping of Easter? The reason for this query is, I conceive, that
-the celebration of this feast was instituted by the same authority
-which changed the Jewish Sabbath into the Lord's Day, or Sunday; for
-it will not be found in Scripture when Saturday is discharged to be
-kept, or turned into Sunday, whereas it must be the Church's authority
-that changed the one and instituted the other. Therefore, my opinion
-is, that those who will not keep this feast may as well return to the
-observation of Saturday, and refuse the weekly Sunday. When anybody can
-shew me that herein I am in error, I shall not be ashamed to confess
-and amend it. Till then, you know my mind.--C. Rex."
-
-To this, Sir James Harrington--who had been appointed by Parliament
-to attend upon him at Holdenby--replied, that the changing of the
-Sabbath and the instituting of Easter were "not by one and the same
-equal authority and ecclesiastical decree, upon which the reason of his
-Majesty's query seems to be built." "The Easter festival is a church
-appointment; but the observance of the Sabbath is according to the
-fourth commandment, and in the New Testament there is evidence of the
-change of the day."[639]
-
-[Sidenote: 1647.]
-
-With the King in their keeping, and with a majority still on their side
-in the House of Commons, the Presbyterians were full of confidence,
-and their religious affairs seemed to promise a favourable issue.
-But the army became to them an increasing difficulty. To disband it
-appeared most desirable; but how to accomplish that object was the
-question. The soldiers did not choose to be disbanded. They said
-they were not Turkish janissaries, nor Swiss mercenaries--not mere
-adventurers of fortune, paid to throw their lances in a cause they
-did not care for--but Englishmen, who had been struggling for their
-rights, fighting in defence of hearth, home, and a free church; and,
-before they laid down their arms, they would know that their country
-had obtained what they and their brave comrades had shed their blood
-to win. They were entitled to be paid before they were dismissed, and
-paid they would be; but, what was more precious to them far than pay,
-they would secure for themselves and their fellow-countrymen liberty
-of conscience. To use Clarendon's words: "Hitherto there was so little
-security provided in that point, that there was a greater persecution
-now against religious and godly men than ever had been in the King's
-government, when the bishops were their judges."[640] This is
-exaggeration; yet it was thus that men talked around their camp-fires
-on frosty nights during that memorable winter. The army petitioned
-Parliament in the spring of 1647. Parliament objected to army
-petitions. The petitioners vindicated their rights in this respect; and
-some troopers boldly sent a letter to the honourable House, declaring
-that they would not disband until their requests were granted, and the
-liberties of the subject were placed beyond peril. A debate followed
-this appeal, and speeches were prolonged to a late hour. Denzil Holles,
-the Presbyterian leader, full of that passion and prejudice which often
-blinded his strong intellect and pushed on his resolute will, then
-hastily took a scrap of paper, and wrote across it, as it lay upon his
-knee, a resolution declaring the petition to be seditious, and that to
-support it was treason. Holles' resolution fell like a spark upon an
-open barrel of gunpowder.
-
-This was in the month of April. In March, the House had resolved that
-every officer in garrison, and under the command of Fairfax, should
-take the Covenant, and conform to the Church by ordinance established.
-The vote aimed a blow at the Independents, and those who sympathized
-with them--Cromwell, Blake, Ludlow, Algernon Sidney, Ireton, Skippon,
-and Hutchinson.
-
-[Sidenote: _Earl of Essex._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1647.]
-
-The Presbyterians were now walking in the dark on the edge of a
-pitfall. Their great general, the Earl of Essex, was dead.[641] The
-only son of Robert, Queen Elizabeth's favourite, he had enjoyed much
-of his father's popularity. Trained to arms in the Netherlands, he
-became an accomplished soldier of the old school; and, having served
-with distinction in the wars of the Palatinate, he had acquired the
-reputation of a Protestant champion before he was called upon to draw
-his sword within the shores of his native land. His military fame and
-his religious character pointed him out as a Parliamentary commander
-at the outbreak of the civil wars. A moderate Episcopalian in the
-first instance, yet wishing to see bishops excluded from the peerage,
-he glided into Presbyterianism, and at last would have been glad to
-bring about such a settlement of affairs as would give ascendancy to
-that system without the destruction of monarchical rule. In all
-respects moderate--fearing a decisive victory, such as would crush the
-King, scarcely less than he feared such a defeat of the Parliamentary
-army as would restore him to his former power--the history of the
-military career of the Earl of Essex in England was more cautious than
-brilliant, and from first to last abounded in Fabian delays. Nominally
-retaining supreme command of the forces till the year 1645, the
-influence of this nobleman had declined with the siege of Gloucester,
-in 1643.
-
-The surrender of his army in the west, in the autumn of 1644, brought
-a cloud over his military career, though it left untarnished his
-personal honour. The old officers being displaced by the self-denying
-ordinance, Essex had to resign his baton. Without military command,
-he notwithstanding continued to be a man of great influence; which
-personal vanity, as well as higher considerations, prompted him to
-employ. Sympathizing with Presbyterians, and jealous of Independents,
-he incurred Cromwell's displeasure; and Cromwell, after the passing of
-the self-denying ordinance, became disliked by him. Had Essex lived,
-it was thought--though without sufficient reason--that he might have
-allayed party feeling and have prevented the terrible catastrophe
-which was not far distant. His death, however, struck at the hopes
-of compromise cherished by his Presbyterian friends, whilst, by that
-event, Cromwell and his party, as Clarendon reports, were wonderfully
-exalted, Essex being the only one "whose credit and interest they
-feared without any esteem of his person."[642]
-
-[Sidenote: _The King and the Independents._]
-
-It should also be considered how unwise the Presbyterians had been
-in paying off and dismissing the Scotch army, which, so long as it
-continued on English ground, might be reckoned as an ally and a
-defender of the new Church. At least, that army remaining here would
-have served to hold the English one in check, and to render its
-commanders more prudent, if it did not make its men less bold. But
-the march of the Presbyterian regiments over the border left Cromwell
-and his brother officers free from all apprehensions of military
-resistance. The Independents thus became masters of the situation.
-
-[Sidenote: 1647.]
-
-A very bold stroke they in their turn struck at Presbyterian plans,
-when, in the month of June, they sent Cornet Joyce to fetch his Majesty
-from Holdenby House that they might take care of him themselves;[643]
-and they almost reconciled him to his new captivity by relaxing the
-restraints which he had endured, and by allowing him to have his own
-chaplains. Sheldon, Morley, Sanderson, and Hammond, now "performed
-their function at the ordinary hours in their accustomed formalities;
-all persons, who had a mind to it, being suffered to be present, to
-his Majesty's infinite satisfaction."[644] The restored surplice and
-prayer book were a great comfort to the unhappy prince. The concession
-appears to have resulted from policy; for as the Presbyterians had
-been in treaty with him for the furtherance of their ends, some of the
-Independent officers now thought of effecting their own reconciliation
-on terms of their own. Into the story of the conferences between
-Sir John Berkely and the King on the one hand, and between Sir John
-Berkely and certain chieftains of the army on the other, it is not
-our business to enter. We would only say that the sincere purpose
-of Cromwell, in reference to ecclesiastical matters, seems to have
-been to secure toleration, within certain limits, for the religious
-opinions and observances both of the people and of the Monarch, and to
-prevent the exercise of either Episcopalian or Presbyterian tyranny.
-We are inclined to believe that, on such a basis--with due securities
-for political liberty, and in connection with official arrangements,
-in which, of course, so distinguished a man could not but expect to
-have some conspicuous place--Cromwell felt not unwilling to aid in
-the restoration of Charles. But the insincerity of the latter and the
-opposition of the republicans prevented the scheme from proceeding far.
-
-Cromwell also aimed at reconciling the factious members of the two
-parties. He invited certain Presbyterians and Independents to dine with
-him at Westminster, and he held conferences with the grandees of the
-House and with the grandees of the army. All this, however, proved to
-be of no effect. Ludlow tells a story of the hero of Naseby, at the end
-of a conference, flinging a cushion at his head and then running down
-stairs, and of his overtaking the general with another cushion, which
-"made him hasten down faster than he desired."[645] Ludlow, with all
-his prejudice against Cromwell, was not the man to invent an untruth,
-even in so small a matter; and one may note this flash of fun after
-severe debate, as indicating a genuine Teutonic temperament in the two
-rough soldiers, akin to what we read of in old Norse mythologies, of
-grotesque tricks played by Woden-like chiefs, and quite in keeping
-with what we know of that Teutonic hero, Martin Luther, who could laugh
-and joke, as well as preach and pray.
-
-[Sidenote: _Royalist Demonstrations._]
-
-Although Cromwell could not reconcile ecclesiastical adversaries,
-or come to terms with the captive King, there remained no hope for
-Presbyterian uniformity. Active men in the undisbanded army, true to
-their purpose, still insisted upon securing the right of toleration,
-together with certain other points of a political nature; and, seeing
-that there were Presbyterians at work in the House of Commons with a
-view of thwarting their designs, they boldly impeached eleven of them.
-
-Immense excitement ensued. Trained-bands, apprentices, mariners, and
-soldiers, petitioned that the King might be brought to London, with the
-hope of securing a reconciliation. Riots followed. The House of Commons
-was besieged; and Sir Arthur Haselrig, the political Independent,
-persuaded the Speaker, at the head of a large number of members, to
-leave Westminster, and to fly for protection to the camp. The Speaker,
-having "caused a thousand pounds to be thrown into his coach, went down
-to the army, which lay then at Windsor, Maidenhead, Colnbrook, and the
-adjacent places."[646]
-
-[Sidenote: 1648.]
-
-Notwithstanding these extraordinary attempts on the part of the
-opposition, the Presbyterians did not lose their ascendancy in the
-House of Commons.[647] Their cause received vigorous and influential
-support from the London ministers. The Corporation also manifested
-similar zeal by taking care to place in all municipal offices
-Presbyterians of a true blue tint. The party further strengthened
-itself in some quarters through its Royalism, and in consequence of
-the repugnance which was felt by numbers of people at the growing
-Republicanism of the Independents. Republicanism, besides its inherent
-defects, had the disadvantage of appearing to the practical minds of
-Englishmen as at the best an untried theory, which, whatever advantages
-it might seem to promise, would be found miserably wanting when tested
-by being put into practice.
-
-Outbursts of Royalist violence occurred in the spring of 1648. The
-city of Norwich had a Royalist and Episcopalian mayor, whom the
-Parliament deposed from office, appointing another alderman in his
-place. The citizens who took part with the disgraced chief magistrate
-abused his successor, and threatened to hang the pursuivant and
-sheriff upon the Castle Hill. It being reported that the gentleman
-who had been thus set aside would be carried off by his enemies in
-the night, his friends seized the keys of the many-gated city, and
-assembled in the market-place, giving out as their watchword, "For God
-and King Charles." Large crowds afterwards openly avowed that they
-were for his Majesty, and that they would pluck the Roundheads out of
-the Corporation, and put in honest men who would serve God and go to
-church. The city found itself filled with rioters who were breaking
-windows, entering houses, plundering them of food, wine, and beer, and
-seizing the fire-arms kept in the magazine. All was confusion, and the
-tradesmen shut up their shops. But Colonel Fleetwood's troopers, then
-in the county, were quickly despatched to quell the riot. The rebels
-ran away after being attacked by the soldiers, and retired to the
-Committee House, where the county ammunition was kept. By accident or
-from design ninety-eight barrels of gunpowder there exploded, which not
-only blew up several persons "into the air, but by the violence of the
-shock, which was perceived in the greatest part of the county, many
-windows were shattered in pieces, and much mischief done by the stones
-and timber at a great distance."[648] A riot of a similar kind happened
-at Bury St. Edmunds.[649]
-
-[Sidenote: _Laws against Heresy._]
-
-Out of these Royalist demonstrations Parliament made capital at the
-moment of putting them down. On the 28th of April, 1648--two days
-after the Norwich Corporation had determined on a thanksgiving for
-the suppression of the tumult[650]--the House of Commons carried a
-resolution that the future government of England should be by King,
-Lords, and Commons, and that a treaty should be opened with Charles
-for peace and settlement. What kind of settlement it was to be,
-ecclesiastically considered, the Presbyterian Commons foreshadowed by a
-law made a few days afterwards.
-
-[Sidenote: 1648.]
-
-[Sidenote: _Newport Treaty._]
-
-As early as April, 1646, a bill had been in preparation for preventing
-heresies and blasphemies. In the September of that year it had been
-read a first and second time. In the following November the House had
-voted that the penalty for such offences, in certain cases, should be
-death. Subsequent political confusions had arrested for a while the
-progress of this measure, but now, on the 2nd of May, 1648, under the
-renewed ascendancy of Presbyterianism, an ordinance came forth of the
-following character:[651]--The denial of God by preaching, teaching,
-printing or writing, of His perfections, or of the Trinity, or of
-the two natures of Christ, or of His atonement, or of the canonical
-books of Scripture, or of the resurrection of the dead and a final
-judgment, was to be deemed a capital offence; and the offender was to
-"suffer the pains of death, as in case of felony, without benefit of
-clergy." In case of recantation, he was to remain in prison till he
-found two sureties who would answer for his never again broaching the
-said errors. The ordinance specified a second class of heresies:--That
-all men shall be saved--that man by nature hath free will to turn to
-God--that God may be worshipped by pictures and images--that there
-is a purgatory--that the soul can die or sleep--that the workings
-of the Spirit are a rule of life, although they be contrary to the
-written Word--that man is bound to believe no more than his reason
-can comprehend--that the moral law is no rule of Christian life--that
-a believer need not repent or pray--that the two sacraments are not
-of Divine authority--that infant baptism is unlawful or void--that
-the observance of the Lord's day, as enjoined in this realm, is not
-according to the Word of God--that it is not lawful to join in public
-or family prayer, or to teach children to pray--that the churches
-of England are not true churches--that Presbyterian government is
-anti-Christian--that the magistracy established in England is unlawful,
-or that the use of arms is not allowable. To publish or maintain
-any of these doctrines, entailed imprisonment until the offender
-found sureties for his not offending any more. In conclusion, it was
-provided that no attainder by virtue of the ordinance should extend
-to a forfeiture of estates or a corruption of blood. We have given
-this piece of legislation almost entire. It throws light on the nature
-of the errors which at that time were prevalent. The ordinance is
-pointed at Atheism, Infidelity, and Socinianism, also at Pelagianism,
-Universalism, and Popery. It levels its bolts at Quakerism,
-Antinomianism, and Anabaptism. It fixes its eyes on fifth monarchy
-men, and will allow no anti-Presbyterian to escape its vengeance. But,
-in seeking to crush what were mischievous errors, these legislators
-really brought within danger of prison and death a number of persons
-who, though belonging to none of the proscribed sects, yet might refuse
-the exact formulary of belief which the words of the act enjoined.
-A person might devoutly believe in the divinity of Christ, and yet
-he might object to a definition of the Trinity; he might accept the
-Scriptures as Divine, and yet he might doubt the canonicity of certain
-books. Notwithstanding such a man's substantial faith, the ordinance
-threatened him with a felon's doom. Some of the opinions specified were
-merely intellectual, and, socially considered, perfectly innocuous.
-But, supposing a man entertained the very worst sentiments coming
-within the view of this minutely specific law, such an enactment only
-served in the instance of a courageous heresiarch to make him all the
-more obstinate in his misbelief. And then the folly of requiring in
-such cases sureties for good behaviour! No doubt the statesmen who
-thus meddled in the region of religious opinion, proceeded upon other
-principles than those of mere political expediency, and would have
-met all objections based on the inefficacy of their policy for good,
-its social injustice, and its violation of the rights of conscience,
-with this argument--that the highest duty of the magistrate is simply
-to maintain God's truth irrespective of all consequences; that as a
-defender of the Church he is not to bear the sword in vain; and that
-he is to tread in the steps of Israel's heroes, walking through the
-camp of God, Phineas-like, javelin in hand. But however disposed one
-may be to do justice to the motives of these men, as honestly desiring
-to advance the glory of God, it is impossible not to regard proceedings
-like theirs in the instance before us as inspired with a monstrous
-fanaticism.[652]
-
-[Sidenote: 1648.]
-
-[Sidenote: _Newport Treaty._]
-
-In the month of September, 1648, not long after the ordinance had
-been passed for more effectually settling Presbyterian government,
-boats crossed the water between the Hampshire coast and the Isle of
-Wight, conveying Noblemen, Gentlemen, Divines and Lawyers to take
-part in a new conference with the fallen sovereign.[653] He was
-allowed to have, as assistants in the discussion, certain learned
-Episcopalians, including Juxon, Hammond, and Ussher, who were to stand
-behind his chair; but they were not to speak except when the King might
-wish for their advice, which could be given by them only in another
-room. The Parliament sent down on its own behalf five noblemen, with
-four Presbyterian Divines--Dr. Seaman, Mr. Caryl, Mr. Marshall, and
-Mr. Vines. The principal topics debated were of an ecclesiastical
-nature--as on other points the King, being now reduced to the last
-extremity, yielded his consent to the demands of Parliament. He
-took his stand on the merits of Episcopacy, and the demerits of the
-Covenant. His arguments were in the main the same as those which he
-had adduced at Newcastle, and some Episcopalians have thought that the
-royal theologian, in this renewed controversy, derived little benefit
-from his Episcopal advisers.[654]
-
-Circumstances compelled him now to make large practical concessions.
-He would abolish the hierarchy, except the simple order of bishops.
-He would for the space of three years allow no other ecclesiastical
-government than the Presbyterian, and afterwards would not permit
-any Episcopal rule to be exercised except such as Parliament might
-allow; indeed, he went so far as to say if he could be convinced that
-Episcopacy was not agreeable to the Word of God he would take it
-entirely away. Afterwards he promised that for the next three years he
-would appoint no new Bishops, that Bishops should receive no persons
-into holy orders without the consent of the Presbyters, that another
-form than the Common Prayer should be used in the royal chapel, and
-that mass should never be said at Court.[655]
-
-[Sidenote: 1648.]
-
-Charles at last resolved to make no further concessions. To the three
-demands made by Parliament through the Commissioners, first, for the
-abolition of Bishops, secondly, for the sale of their lands, and
-thirdly, for the use of the Directory by himself, he gave a decided
-denial. If, said he, the Houses thought it not fit to recede from the
-strictness of their demands in these respects, then he would with all
-the more comfort cast himself upon his Saviour's goodness to support
-him and defend him from all afflictions.[656]
-
-[Sidenote: _Newport Treaty._]
-
-A Royalist reaction now sprung up amongst the Presbyterians, and the
-former alienation between the army and the Parliament burst into open
-warfare. The army, tired of treaties which made not the slightest
-provision for religious liberty, tired also of one-sided Presbyterian
-zeal, which sacrificed the liberties of the country to the adored ideal
-of a covenanted uniformity, and further tired of long and fruitless
-negotiations, addressed a stern remonstrance to Parliament--as long too
-as it was stern--demanding justice upon the misguided monarch.[657]
-Then came a declaration of the advance of the army towards the
-City of London. Thus threatened, the Presbyterians were put on their
-defence. To submit to the army would be to give up their idol. More
-hope remained for Presbyterianism now in pushing a treaty with the
-King than in yielding to the pressure of the Independents. The courage
-and calmness of the advocates of this policy at such a moment command
-our admiration. Amidst all their fondness for the Covenant, and all
-their aversion to Episcopacy, there appeared a disinterested spirit of
-loyalty to the King's person, and of great anxiety for the preservation
-of the King's life.
-
-[Sidenote: 1648.]
-
-On Monday, December the 4th, after tidings had been received of the
-removal of Charles across the water from Carisbrook to Hurst Castle, by
-officers of the army--the Commons were in deep debate. They declared
-that the removal had been accomplished without their consent or
-knowledge, and then they grappled with the all-absorbing question,
-whether the royal answers to the propositions of both Houses could
-be considered satisfactory. Whilst Sir Harry Vane, Mr. Corbet, and
-others of the Independent party contended that those answers were not
-satisfactory, the Presbyterians put forth all their remaining strength
-to save his Majesty. Sir Benjamin Rudyard, Sir Harbottle Grimstone, and
-Sir Symonds D'Ewes came to the rescue; but Mr. Prynne stood forward
-as the chief advocate of the false and fallen prince. In a speech,
-continued long after candles had been lighted, he went over the whole
-ground of the long dispute. He could not, as he said, be suspected of
-any undue partiality for his Majesty, seeing that all the royal favour
-he had ever received was shewn in cutting off his ears; but still he
-argued with immense elaboration and great ability that there was enough
-in the results of the recent negotiations to warrant the conclusion of
-a treaty. The political concessions which had been made he maintained
-were amply sufficient. Such as were ecclesiastical, he proceeded
-to observe, though they did not meet the Parliament's demands, yet
-went so far as to warrant a hope of a satisfactory issue. For hours
-he continued his speech, and at the end of it the majority--so the
-orator himself reports--declared both by their cheerful countenances
-and by their express words that they were abundantly satisfied.
-After the Speaker had taken some refreshments there came a division
-on the question, that the answers of the King "are a ground for
-the House to proceed upon, for the settlement of the peace of the
-kingdom." Ayes, 140, Noes, 104. It was Tuesday morning; the clock had
-now struck nine, and the debate had lasted from the morning of the
-previous day. Although the doors had never been locked, there were
-present in the House at one time as many as 340 members: many of them,
-however, because of age and infirmity, could not remain throughout the
-night.[658]
-
-Whatever opinion may be formed of the Presbyterian policy, everybody
-must acknowledge that such a debate with the army at the door brought
-out some noble characteristics, and that Prynne shewed himself a brave
-man, with such armed odds against him, thus to stand up for peace with
-Charles, at the moment when his death-knell had begun to be rung in the
-camp. Zeal for Presbyterianism, hatred of Independency, and jealousy
-of the army were powerful motives with this singular person; yet with
-these feelings were blended sentiments of the purest loyalty.
-
-But eloquence proved no match for steel. The Scotch army had set up the
-Covenant; the English army now pulled it down. As at the beginning
-of that great mistake, so at the end, force had more influence than
-reason, violence than argument. Pride's purge carried all before it.
-Prynne had not recovered from his exhaustion before the army had
-cleared the House of all opponents. Above one hundred members were
-excluded before the end of December; others withdrew. Thus by one and
-the same blow the fate of monarchy and of Presbyterianism was decided.
-It is vain to talk about constitutionalism at such a crisis. Revolution
-had marched through England gaunt and grim. Its black shadow had
-darkened the land, and now it fell over Parliament itself. The army
-had fought for liberty of conscience, certainly not the least of the
-prizes in dispute, and that being now in jeopardy, a strong hand was
-put forth very unceremoniously to beat down the obstacle which hindered
-its attainment.
-
-[Sidenote: _Execution of the King._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1649, January.]
-
-As it was with Lord Strafford and with Archbishop Laud, so it was
-with King Charles I. The noblest scene in his whole life was the
-last. He appeared to infinitely greater advantage at the bar, and on
-the scaffold, than he had ever done before. His religious demeanour,
-when he came to die, was all which his admirers could wish. Without
-refusing the prayers of Presbyterians and Independents, he availed
-himself of the counsels and devotions of Bishop Juxon; and he said to
-that prelate on his offering some expressions of condolence--"Leave
-off this, my Lord, we have no time for it. Let us think of our great
-work, and prepare to meet the great God to whom ere long I am to give
-an account of myself, and I hope I shall do it with peace, and that
-you will assist me therein. We will not talk of these rogues in whose
-hands I am. They thirst after my blood, and they will have it, and
-God's will be done. I thank God I heartily forgive them, and will
-talk of them no more." In a message to his son, he declared his faith
-in the apostolical institution of Episcopacy, and, as a last request,
-earnestly urged him to read the Bible, which in his own affliction, he
-remarked, "had been his best instructor and delight." He said to his
-attendant, on the morning of his execution, "Herbert, this is my second
-marriage day, I would be as trim to-day as may be, for before night I
-hope to be espoused to my blessed Jesus." "I fear not death, death is
-not terrible to me. I bless my God I am prepared."[659] On his way to
-the block he hastened his attendants, remarking that he now went before
-them to strive for a heavenly crown with less solicitude than he had
-often encouraged his soldiers to fight for an earthly diadem.
-
-His words, as he stood with Juxon at his side,[660] before the axe
-of the masked executioner, were broken and confused; but he declared
-himself a Christian, and a member of the Church; that he had a good
-cause and a gracious God, and was going from a corruptible to an
-incorruptible crown.
-
-[Sidenote: _Execution of the King._]
-
-The impression which the tragedy produced on two eminent persons has
-been fully recorded. Parr, in his _Life of Ussher_,[661] relates how
-the Irish primate came upon the leads of Lady Peterborough's house,
-"just over against Charing Cross," as the King made his final speech,
-and how, when his Majesty "had pulled off his cloak and doublet,
-and stood stripped in his waistcoat," and the men in vizards put up
-his hair, the good Bishop, unable to bear the dismal sight, grew pale
-and faint, and would have swooned away had not his servants removed
-him. He could vent his excitement only in prayers and tears; and ever
-afterwards he observed the 30th of January as a private fast. Matthew
-Henry states that his eminently-godly father witnessed the execution,
-and used to tell his children, at Broad Oak, of the dismal groan
-amongst the thousands of the people when the axe fell--a groan the
-like of which he had never heard before, and hoped he should never
-hear again; and he would also mention the circumstance of one troop of
-horse marching from Charing Cross to King Street, and another from King
-Street to Charing Cross, to disperse the crowd as soon as the awful
-deed was done.[662]
-
-The execution of Charles, however it may be deplored as mischievous,
-criticised as impolitic, or condemned as unjust, was perhaps--looking at
-the natural resentments and fears of men under the circumstances--only
-such a sequel to the civil wars as became probable after long experience
-of the King's invincible duplicity. Like Strafford, he had become too
-dangerous to live; and now it was thought that, like Strafford, he must
-die. Moreover, visions of republican bliss dazzled the imagination of a
-few who believed that they would be nearer the attainment of their hopes
-when the head of Charles should have rolled in dust.[663] One result, it
-appears, they did not contemplate. They made a martyr of their victim,
-and thus so deeply stained their cause in the estimation of the largest
-portion of posterity, that all their patriotism and religious
-consistency in other respects have not sufficed to wipe out the blot.
-
-[Sidenote: 1649, January.]
-
-The Presbyterians ought not to be reproached for the fate of Charles.
-Their statesmen did what they could to prevent it; and their Divines
-courageously protested against his being put to death, as a national
-crime. Nor should the Independents, as a religious sect, be made
-to bear the responsibility. It is true that some of them were
-members of the High Court of Justice--Bradshaw, the president, and
-Corbet, to mention no others, were in communion with Congregational
-Churches[664]--but there were also Independent ministers who openly
-declared against the sentence; and the silence of others upon the
-subject is no more to be construed into approval than is the silence of
-Episcopalians.[665] What extravagant things might be said by such a man
-as the notorious Hugh Peters, or even by John Goodwin--a different sort
-of person it is true--ought not to be charged upon the Independents in
-general. Yet some amongst the best of them, it must be acknowledged,
-approved of the deed. Lucy Hutchinson relates the conflicts of her
-husband, shewing how a sense of duty decided him in the part he took
-in the proceeding. Dr. Owen preached before Parliament the day after
-the King was beheaded; and though he does not allude to the event of
-the preceding morning, he preached in a strain not at all consistent
-with any reprobation of it, as an act of injustice. Although, in our
-opinion, it was a blunder, it has been vindicated even in the present
-day by writers of undoubted piety and honour: no wonder that good men,
-amidst a struggle which we can imperfectly imagine, were impelled to
-do what good men in the serener atmosphere of two centuries later
-deliberately justify.
-
-[Sidenote: _The Funeral._]
-
-[Sidenote: 1649, February.]
-
-The King was buried at Windsor on the 9th of February. Thither his
-remains were conveyed by Mr. Herbert and others; some of his faithful
-nobility, accompanied by Bishop Juxon, arriving at the Castle next day.
-They shewed the Governor-General, Whitchcot,[666] an authority from
-Parliament for their attendance at the funeral, and requested that the
-body might be interred according to the rites of the Church of England.
-The Governor refused, on the ground that the Common Prayer had been put
-down. To their solicitations and arguments he replied it was improbable
-that the Parliament would permit the use of what it had so solemnly
-abolished, and thus virtually contradict and destroy its own act. To
-which they rejoined: "There was a difference betwixt destroying their
-own act and dispensing with it, or suspending the exercise thereof;
-that no power so bindeth up its own hands as to disable itself in some
-cases to recede from the rigour of their own acts, if they should see
-just occasion." The plea proved unavailing. Whitchcot would not yield.
-As the funeral procession moved from the great hall in the Castle, and
-entered the open air, "the sky was serene and clear; but presently it
-began to snow, and the snow fell so fast that by that time the corpse
-came to the west end of the Royal Chapel, the black velvet pall was
-all white." The soldiers of the garrison carried the body to its
-resting-place under the choir. Over the coffin hung a black velvet
-hearse-cloth, "the four labels whereof the four Lords did support. The
-Bishop of London stood weeping by, to tender his service, which might
-not be accepted. Then was it deposited in silence and sorrow in the
-vacant place in the vault (the hearse-cloth being cast in after it)
-about three of the clock in the afternoon."[667]
-
-
-FOOTNOTES:
-
-[1] There is a document amongst the State Papers, headed "Proceeding
-to the Parliament of the Most High and Mighty Prince, King Charles,
-on Tuesday, the 3rd of November, 1640, from Whitehall by water
-to Westminster Stairs, and from thence on foot." The document is
-interesting in connection with Clarendon's statement: "The King himself
-did not ride with his accustomed equipage, nor in his usual majesty, to
-Westminster, but went privately in his barge to the parliament stairs,
-and so to the Church, as if it had been to a return of a prorogued or
-adjourned Parliament."--_Hist. of Rebellion and Life_ (in one vol.),
-68. The paper exhibits the following programme: "Messengers; trumpets;
-the Sergeant-trumpeter alone; Master of the Chancery; the King's Puisne
-Sergeants-at-law; the King's Solicitor and the King's Attorney-General;
-the King's two ancient Sergeants-at-law; Masters of the Requests,
-two and two; Barons of the Exchequer; Justices of the Common Pleas;
-Justices of the King's Bench; Lord Chief Baron of the Exchequer: Master
-of the Rolls; the two Lords Chief Justices; Pursuivants-of-Arms; Privy
-Councillors; Heralds; Lord Finch, keeper of the Great Seal of England,
-and many other lords and gentlemen."
-
-[2] See _Journals of the Lords_, to the words of which I have closely
-adhered, and _Parliamentary History_. (Cobbett), ii. 637.
-
-[3] No one can see more clearly than myself the defectiveness of these
-views of the state of parties. We must begin somewhere. To go very far
-back is unsatisfactory, because the glimpses given of remote periods
-must be indistinct and confused, and are apt to convey inaccurate
-impressions. To commence with notices of what took place just before
-our history opens, is also exposed to objection, because it leaves out
-of sight so much which served to prepare for what followed. The history
-of the Commonwealth requires a previous study of the history of the
-Reformation, and that again the history of the Middle Ages. Notices of
-the early Presbyterians, Independents, and Baptists will be found in
-subsequent chapters.
-
-[4] This oft-told story rests on the authority of his friend, Lord
-Clarendon.--_Hist. and Life_, 928.
-
-[5] _Stat._ 1 _Eliz. C.Q._, lv. 3, 15.
-
-When the Bills of Supremacy and Uniformity were read a third time
-in the House of Lords (April 26 and 28, 1558), the Bishops of York,
-London, Ely, Wigorn, Llandaff, Coventry and Litchfield, Exon, Chester,
-Carlisle, are mentioned in the Journals as dissentients from both the
-Bills.--_Strype's Annals of the Reformation_, i. 87, (Oxford edition.)
-In connection with the history of the Bill of Supremacy in _Strype's
-Annals_ the student should read the history of convocation in _Strype's
-Memorials_, Vol. i. Chap. xvii. An extraordinary paper in favour of the
-King's supremacy, attributed to Gardiner, is given, p. 209.
-
-[6] 8 Eliz. c. 1, "declaring the manner of making and consecrating
-of Archbishops and Bishops of the realm to be good, lawful, and
-perfect."--_Strype's Life of Parker_, (Oxford edition) i. 109-121.
-See also "paper of arguments for the Queen's supreme power in causes
-ecclesiastical."--_Strype's Life of Whitgift_, iii. 213.
-
-[7] Selden says so in his _Table Talk_, 38. Mr. Bruce informs me, "I
-have no doubt that Selden was right. Many great persons holding offices
-in the State and Household were appointed Commissioners by reason of
-their offices, but never attended. The business fell into the hands of
-the Bishops (or rather some three or four of them) and a few civilians
-from Doctors' Commons--the Judge of the Arches, the Judge of the
-Prerogative Court, and a few other such persons. The sentences that I
-have seen have been signed by from 15 to 20 persons, generally such as
-I have indicated."
-
-[8] "Turning her speech to the Bishops, she gave them this admonition,
-'That if they, the Lords of the clergy (as she called them), did not
-amend, she was minded to depose them, and bade them therefore to look
-well to their charges.'"--_Strype's Whitgift_, i. 393.
-
-[9] _Strype's Whitgift_, i. 391. Whitgift has been called an Erastian,
-and Warburton (_Works_, xii. 386), on Selden's authority, attributes
-to him the publication of the _De excommunicatione_, under fictitious
-names of the place and printer. I do not know the ground of Selden's
-statement. The proceedings of Whitgift were inconsistent with
-Erastianism. The famous work of Erastus will be noticed hereafter.
-
-[10] _Strype's Whitgift_, i. 559. See Sir Francis Knolly's objection
-to Bancroft's doctrine, reduced to a syllogistic form (560). Knollys
-had encouraged Parker to oppose the use of burning tapers, and of the
-cross, in the Queen's chapel.--_Strype's Parker_, i. 92.
-
-[11] Parker was kept up to the mark in enforcing uniformity by
-the Queen, who in this and some other points was more decidedly
-Anglo-Catholic than her Protestant prelates. See her letter to him
-"roundly penned." _Strype's Parker_, ii. 76.
-
-[12] Strype, (in his _Annals_, i. 106,) says 177. He adds "In one of
-the volumes of the Cotton Library--which volume seemeth once to have
-belonged to Camden--the whole number of the deprived ecclesiastics
-is digested in this catalogue: Bishops, 14; Deans, 13; Archdeacons,
-14; Heads of Colleges, 15; Prebendaries, 50; Rectors of Churches, 80;
-Abbots, Priors, and Abbesses, 6; in all, 192. Camden, in his _Annals_,
-little varies, only reckoning 12 Deans and as many Archdeacons."
-
-[13] Paper endorsed--Dr. Bardesy; "Of my Daughter's Death, 1 April,
-1641;" ¼ ho. _ante_ ho. 9, post Mer.--_State Papers. Charles I.
-Domestic._
-
-[14] _Mr. Bruce's Calendar of State Papers, Domestic_, 1633-4, p. 275;
-_and Preface_, xviii.
-
-[15] _Lathbury's History of Convocation_, 253.
-
-[16] This is illustrated in the Tractarian movement, as appears in _Dr.
-Newman's Apologia_.
-
-[17] Roger Ascham's application to Cranmer in the reign of Edward
-VI., for a dispensation during Lent is very curious. So is the grant
-of it in the King's name under the Privy Seal, at the Archbishop's
-suggestion.--See _Strype's Cranmer_, i. 238, 240.
-
-[18] "Many choose to be wanton," it is said, "with flesh at that time,
-rather than at others." February 13.--_State Papers, Domestic._
-
-[19] See "_The Arminian Nunnery_, or a brief description and relation
-of the late erected monastical place called the Arminian Nunnery at
-Little Gidding, in Huntingdonshire." 1641. Compare _Walton's Lives_,
-335.
-
-[20] _Rushworth's Historical Collection_, ii. 324. No doubt, sometimes
-the charge of Popery was unjustly made, and there is force in what
-Sanderson says in the Preface to his Sermons, p. 74. The passage is too
-long for quotation.
-
-[21] See _Hale's Precedents and Proceedings in Ecclesiastical Courts_.
-Introductory Essay, xxxiv. Compare _Hallam's Const. Hist._, i. 99.
-
-[22] See _New Canons_, iii. to xii., made in 1604.
-
-[23] Whitelocke, when Recorder of Abingdon, was accused and cited
-before the Council Table because "he did comply with and countenance
-the Nonconformists there, and refused to punish those who did not bow
-at the name of Jesus, and to the altar, and refused to receive the
-sacrament kneeling at the high altar, &c."--_Whitelocke's Memorials_,
-23.
-
-[24] _Hale's Precedents in Criminal Causes_, xxxix., xliii.; compare
-_Hallam's Const. Hist._, i. 180. The extracts from Court Books
-in Hale are my authority for what follows. I may add here that,
-soon after the accession of Elizabeth, the bishops complained of
-interference with their office in discipline, and correction of evil
-manners, by inhibitions obtained from the courts of the Archbishop of
-Canterbury.--_Strype's Parker_, i. 161.
-
-[25] A clear account of compurgation, transferred from old
-ecclesiastical courts to the Court of High Commission, is given by
-Mr. Bruce in his _Preface to the Cal. Dom._ 1635-6, xxxi. A man was
-restored "to his good name" by swearing to his own innocence when
-objectors did not appear, and his neighbours, the compurgators, swore
-that he was to be believed.
-
-[26] It is very remarkable that this Act, the only one which fixes the
-authority for deciding what heresy is, vests that spiritual power in
-the secular government, only with clerical "assent."--_Stat. 1 Eliz._,
-c. 1, s. 36.
-
-[27] 1562, July 20. A commission was issued for ecclesiastical causes
-in the diocese of Chester.
-
-1576, April 23. A commission was given to Grindal, Archbishop
-of Canterbury, and other bishops, for exercising ecclesiastical
-jurisdiction throughout the nation.--_State Papers_, cviii., No. 7.
-
-The "proceedings of the Archbishop of York" in 1580 are preserved in
-the State Paper Office, cxli., No. 28. At a private meeting on the
-2nd of August, 1580, held in Richmond, "the Court is informed that
-Robert Wythes, of Copgrave, gentleman, made fast his doors against the
-messenger; that a little damsel was set to attend at the door, who made
-answer he was not at home, and refused to receive the process, so the
-messenger waxed it to the door." Vol. cxli., No. 3.
-
-[28] _Neal_, i. 410, gives a copy of the commission from a MS. I
-have sought in vain for the original. Mr. Bruce informs me it is not
-preserved among the _State Papers_.
-
-_Neal_, i. 414, explains "all other means and ways they could devise"
-as including the rack. Brodie (_British Empire_, i. 197) disputes
-this, saying, "Besides that, the rack never was attempted; the other
-clauses distinctly show that it never was contemplated." On carefully
-examining the commission printed in Neal, it will be found that the
-qualifying expressions "lawful," &c., are connected with the infliction
-of _penalty_, not the business of _enquiry_. The penalties were to be
-according to law, but that restriction would not necessarily apply
-to the mode of examination. I do not see that Brodie's argument is
-conclusive; still I do not think that the rack was used. The absence,
-however, of the word "lawful" in connection with "ways and means" in
-the first clause is remarkable.
-
-[29] _Brodie_, i. 198. He adds: "Though fines were _imposed_, not one
-was _levied_ in Elizabeth's time by any judicial process out of the
-Exchequer, 'nor any subject, in his body, lands, or goods, charged
-therewith.'"--_Coke's 4th Inst._, 326, 332; _4th Inst._, 331.
-
-In various printed books the legality of the Court was questioned. The
-_ex officio_ oath was objected to as a sinister practice of the Romish
-clergy, and contrary to fundamental laws of liberty.--_Burn's High
-Commission_ (a pamphlet published by J. Russel Smith, 1865), 14.
-
-[30] "To you, or three of you, whereof the Archbishop of Canterbury,
-or one of the bishops mentioned in the commission, or Sir Francis
-Walsingham, Sir Gilbert Gerard, or some of the civilians, to be
-one."--_Neal_, i. 410.
-
-There are subsequent commissions for the diocese of Norwich, 1589; for
-Manchester, 1596, 1597; for England and Ireland, 1600.--See _Rymer_,
-Vol. vii. 173, 194; xvi. 291, 400.
-
-A commission was issued, 1629, to the Archbishop of Canterbury, &c., to
-exercise all manner of jurisdictions, privileges, and pre-eminences,
-concerning any spiritual or ecclesiastical jurisdiction within the
-realm; also to enquire, hear, determine, and punish all incests,
-adulteries, &c., and disorders in marriage, and all other grievous and
-great crimes.
-
-[31] Four folio books of proceedings, from 1634 to 1640, are in the
-State Paper Office. At Norwich there is a book of proceedings from
-1595 to 1598, and at Durham two volumes of Acts and Depositions from
-1626 to 1639. These are the only records known to exist.--_Burn's High
-Commission_, 44 & 52.
-
-[32] See _Cal. Dom._, 1633-4, 1634-5. Lady Eleanor Davies alias
-Douglas, (evidently insane) is mulcted to the extent of £3,000 for
-certain fanatical pamphlets. Richard Parry has a fine of £2,000 for
-disturbance of divine service and profane speeches, mitigated to
-1,000 marks.--_Cal._ 1634-5, 176. A fine of £1,000, from Theophilus
-Brabourne, for maintaining and publishing heretical and Judaical
-opinions touching the Sabbath, is repeatedly mentioned, with notices
-of respites, suspension of sentence, and mitigation. A silk weaver
-was committed to the Gate House for fetching a parcel of schismatical
-books. The most preposterous suspicions were entertained, leading
-to outrageous injustice, as in the case of "two poor foolish boys,
-taken amongst others, at Francis Donwell's house, the aleholder, at
-Stepney," for "sitting at the table with Bibles before them." "They
-were, by order of the court, discharged," but not till after many days'
-imprisonment. "They were taken on Sunday last past was fortnight, the
-1st of October, 1635."
-
-The following entry occurs relating to Richard Walker Clerk, prisoner
-in the Gate House: "Defendant having lain a twelvemonth in prison for
-preaching a scandalous and offensive sermon here in London, and having
-promised by his subscription to carry himself peaceably and conformably
-to the orders of the Church of England, he was ordered to be enlarged."
-_Cal._ 1634-5, p. 544.
-
-[33] _Cal._ 1634-5, p. 177, 118, & 110.
-
-[34] Some strange specimens of puritan "faithfulness" are given;
-(_Cal._ 1634-5, p. 319,) but the question arises, were the passages we
-find correctly reported?
-
-[35] Some things appear in the Commission Records strangely
-illustrating the state of society. Sir Richard Strode and Sir John
-Strode, near kinsmen, quarrelled about the possession of an aisle in
-the parish church of Cattistock. Sir Richard came with his lady on
-Easter-day to receive the sacrament armed with a pistol charged with
-powder and small shot, and directed his servant to carry a sword. He
-was also accused of entertaining a degraded minister, who "pronounced
-prayers extempore, and expounded a passage of scripture. On behalf of
-Sir Richard, it was proved that he carried the pistol secretly, and
-that no disturbance ensued."--_Cal._, 1634-5, p. 121.
-
-Since writing this Introduction I have been permitted to peruse the
-_Rawlinson MS._, A., 128, which affords many new illustrations of the
-proceedings of the High Commission and of the Star Chamber also. I
-shall have occasion hereafter to notice some parts of this _MS._ The
-whole will be published by the Camden Society.
-
-[36] The Court was threatened before the opening of the Long Parliament.
-
-"We are growing here at London into some Edinburgh tumults, for upon
-Thursday last, the High Commission being kept at St. Paul's, there came
-in very near 2,000 Brownists, and, at the end of the court made a foul
-clamour: and tore down all the benches that were in the consistory,
-crying out they would have no Bishops nor High Commission. I like not
-this preface to the Parliament, and this day I shall see what the Lords
-will do concerning this tumult."--_Laud's Letter_, 186. _Works_, vi.
-585. Oxford edition. _Diary, Oct. 22, 1640_, iii, 237.
-
-[37] _Rushworth_, i. 423. After Worrall, Laud's chaplain, had signed
-the Imprimatur to Dr. Sibthorpe's famous sermon, 1627, Selden told
-him, "When the times shall change, and the late transactions shall
-be scrutinized, you will gain a halter instead of promotion for
-this book." Worrall withdrew his signature, but Laud appended his
-own.--_Life of Selden_, p. 129.
-
-[38] _Rushworth_, i. 594.
-
-[39] See _Hallam's Constitutional History_, i. 456; and _Eliot's Life_,
-by Forster, i. 246; ii. 398; 409; 450.
-
-[40] In _Rushworth_, ii. 77, is a full account of these ceremonies,
-with notices of Laud's defence. The latter is found more fully in the
-history of his _Troubles and Trial_. _Works_, iv. 247. He denied he
-threw up dust, but leaves it to be inferred that he threw up ashes.
-He also contradicted other statements made respecting this famous
-consecration. Whatever exaggeration there might be, enough is proved to
-show the extraordinary superstitiousness of the proceeding.
-
-[41] Bunsen's _Hippolytus_, iv. 197.
-
-[42] Wearing a cope in cathedrals at the Communion by the principal
-minister, is, however, prescribed by Canon xxiv.
-
-[43] Southey says of Laud, "Offence was taken because the University
-of Oxford, to which he was a most munificent and judicious benefactor,
-addressed him by the titles of His Holiness, and Most Holy Father; and
-because he publicly declared, that in the disposal of ecclesiastical
-preferments, he would, when their merits were equal, prefer the single
-to the married men."--_Book of the Church_, 448. Laud furnishes an
-elaborate defence of some of the titles applied to him.--_Works_, iv.
-157.
-
-See curious entry in _Laud's Diary_ of a dream he had that he was
-reconciled to the Church of Rome.--_Works_, iii. 201. He afterwards
-says (264), "I hope the reader will note my trouble at the dream, as
-well as the dream."
-
-Zeal in crushing dissent, appears in a letter addressed to
-justices of the peace, which probably Laud procured from the High
-Commissioners:--"There remain in divers parts of the kingdom
-sundry sorts of separatists, novalists [_sic_], and sectaries, as,
-namely,--Brownists, Anabaptists, Arians, Traskites, Familists, and some
-other sorts, who, upon Sundays and other festival days, under pretence
-of repetition of sermons, ordinarily use to meet together in great
-numbers, in private houses, and other obscure places, and there keep
-private conventicles and exercises of religion, by law prohibited, to
-the corrupting of sundry his Majesty's good subjects, manifest contempt
-of his Highness's laws and disturbance of the Church. For reformation
-whereof the persons addressed are to enter any house where they shall
-have intelligence that such conventicles are held, and in every room
-thereof search for persons assembled, and for all unlicensed books,
-and bring all such persons and books found before the Ecclesiastical
-Commission as shall be thought meet."--_Cal._ 1633-4, p. 538.
-
-At an earlier period, Laud says:--"We took another conventicle of
-separatists in Newington Woods upon Sunday last, in the very brake
-where the King's stag should have been lodged for his hunting next
-morning." P.S. to letter of Laud, June 13, 1632.--_State Papers._
-Printed in _Laud's Works_, vii. 44.
-
-[44] Articles for Diocese of Winchester. _Laud's Works_, v. 419-435.
-Numerous visitation articles, injunctions, and orders appear in this
-volume, highly interesting as illustrations both of the Archbishop's
-minute superintendence, and of the religious life of the period.
-
-[45] Reprinted in _Laud's Works_, v. 315, 370.
-
-[46] _Laud's Works_, v. 331.
-
-[47] See _Cal. Dom._, 1633-4, and Laud's Annual Accounts of his
-province just referred to.
-
-[48] There is an extract of a letter in the State Paper Office (dated
-1633, March 18, from the ambassador at the Hague) in the handwriting
-of Laud's secretary, upon the uncanonical proceedings of the English
-Congregation there.
-
-[49] These points receive abundant illustration in _Mr. Bruce's
-Calendar_, 1633-4, and in his very interesting preface.
-
-[50] Laud's power extended even to America. In a special commission
-for the colonies, "the Archbishop of Canterbury and those who were
-associated with him, received full power over the American plantations,
-to establish the government and dictate the laws, to regulate the
-Church, to inflict even the heaviest punishments, and to revoke any
-charter, which had been surreptitiously obtained, or which conceded
-liberties prejudicial to the Royal prerogative."--_Bancroft's United
-States_, i. 407.
-
-[51] _Letter in State Paper Office_, Dec. 19, 1633. Most of Laud's
-letters found amongst the State records are printed in the last volume
-of the Oxford edition of his works.
-
-[52] Indications of his wonderful activity are to be seen in his
-numerous letters, collected in the Oxford edition of his works, to
-which my references apply. (Vols. vi. and vii.) Laud's enemies have not
-done justice to his abilities. His diary reveals his mental weaknesses,
-but his correspondence and theological writings exhibit his mind under
-a different aspect. Many persons are too prejudiced against Laud to
-think of looking into his _Conference with Fisher the Jesuit_; but
-whoever will take the trouble of doing so, whatever he may think of
-Laud's line of argument at times, must admit the learning and ability
-displayed in the discussion. No book more clearly shows both the
-resemblance and the difference between Anglo-Catholicism and Popery.
-
-[53] We are here reminded of what Dunstan's biographer said of
-him--"Nec quisquam in toto regno Anglorum esset qui absque ejus imperio
-manum vel pedem moveret."--_Angl. Sac._, ii. 108. Dunstan, too, like
-Laud, descended to the notice and regulation of trivial matters. There
-can be little doubt that Laud, as an ecclesiastical and political
-statesman, was inferior to Dunstan. A man who grasps at such extensive
-influence is sure to be unpopular in England. Sir John Eliot accused
-Buckingham of this ambition, and in the memorable peroration to his
-speech in that nobleman's impeachment, when he instituted a parallel
-between him and the Bishop of Ely, in Richard II.'s reign, Eliot
-included this point--"No man's business could be done without his
-help."--See _Speech in Rushworth_, and _Parliamentary History_, and
-from his own MS. in _Forster's Life of Eliot_, i. 551.
-
-[54] Diary, Tuesday, April 5, 1625.--_Laud's Works_, iii. 159.
-
-[55] _Strafford's Papers_, i. 365.
-
-[56] _Halliwell's Letters of the Kings of England_, ii. 180.
-
-[57] Coleridge ranks Jackson with Cudworth, More, and Smith as
-_Plotinist_ rather than _Platonist_ divines.--See Note, _Literary
-Remains_, iii. 415.
-
-[58] _Life of Southey_, v. 283.
-
-[59] See remarks on this in _Bancroft's United States_, i. 284.
-
-[60] Aylmer is supposed to be represented anagrammatically in the
-Morell, and Grindal in the Algrind of _Spenser's Shepherd's Calendar_.
-
-[61] _Strype's Parker_, i. 300-345. For measures adopted to enforce
-conformity, see _Strype's Parker_, i. 420-447. Parker had a hard time
-of it when engaged in this unpopular business. He did not receive the
-support he wished. The Puritans condemned him for doing too much, the
-Queen for doing too little. "An ox," he exclaimed, "can draw no more
-than he can."--_Ibid._, 451.
-
-[62] It appears from Foxe that some of the early Protestants were very
-strong believers in predestination.--See the godly letters of John
-Careless. _Foxe's Book of Martyrs_, viii. 187-192. Catley's edition.
-
-[63] _Neal_, i. 451. For his statement respecting bills for reformation
-he gives MS. authority. _Strype's Whitgift_, i. 391, contains the
-letter to the Queen, dated 24th of March, 1584-5. Parry says in
-_Parliaments and Councils_, 1584, December 14, "three petitions are
-read touching 'the liberty of godly preachers to exercise and continue
-their ministry, and for the speedy supply of able and sufficient men
-into divers places now destitute of the ordinary means of salvation.'"
-Cobbett supplies a brief account of the debate.--_Parl. Hist._, i. 824.
-
-[64] Dr. Donne preached a sermon at Paul's Cross on the 14th September,
-1622, in which he took occasion "for the publication of some reasons
-which His Sacred Majesty had been pleased to give, of those directions
-for preachers which he had formerly set forth."--_Works_, vi. 191. The
-preacher declared the King was "grieved with much bitterness, that
-any should so pervert his meaning as to think that these directions
-either restrained the exercise of preaching or abated the number of
-sermons."--_Ib._ 220. One is sorry to find such a man as Donne excusing
-James's despotic interference with preaching, and to read the absurd
-eulogium on his royal master's "books." "Our posterity shall have him
-for a father--a classic father--such a father as Ambrose, as Austin
-was."--_Ib._ 221. Such sycophancy on the part of Donne and others
-greatly tended to prejudice the people against them and their teaching.
-
-[65] _Fuller's Church History_, iii. 362.
-
-[66] See _Cal. Dom._, 1633-4, p. 298.
-
-[67] _Cal._ 1633-4, p. 345.--The cases of Samuel Ward, Anthony
-Lapthorne, and George Burdett, noted Puritan ministers, are largely
-illustrated in the _Cal. Dom._ 1634-5, 361, 263, 537. Mr. Bruce notices
-that Ward, who suffered so much from the High Commission Court, appears
-himself as a complainant against certain persons at Ipswich holding
-Antinomian opinions, 1635-6, _Pref._ xxxvii.
-
-Illustrations appear amongst the State Papers of the popularity of
-Puritanism. Dr. John Andrewes writes to the Chancellor of Lincoln,
-(dated June 5, 1634, Beaconsfield) acknowledging a request to preach
-a visitation sermon:--"He is contented to show his obedience, howbeit
-he knows that any other priest in those parts would be better accepted
-both of laity and the generality of the clergy; and the main reason is,
-because he is not of the new cut, nor anywise inclining to Puritanism,
-wherewith the greatest number (both of priests and people) in those
-parts are foully tainted, insomuch that he is called the most godly
-who can and will be most disobedient to the orders of the Church. He
-enumerates things out of order in his own parish. 1. No terrier of
-Church lands. 2. Elections held in the church. 3. Gadding on Sundays
-to hear Puritanical sermons in other parishes. 4. Few come to church
-on holidays. 5. Many sit at service with their hats on, and some lie
-along in their pews. 6. Many kneel not at prayers, nor bow at the name
-of Jesus, &c. 7. The churchwardens do not levy the 12d. from those who
-absent themselves from divine service."--_Cal. Dom._, 1634-5, _June 5_,
-p. 64.
-
-Complaints were made of people forsaking the parish churches.--_Ibid._,
-p. 149.
-
-[68] _Cal. Dom._, 1633-4, p. 450.
-
-[69] _Heylyn's Life of Laud_, p. 367.
-
-[70] While quite indisposed to attempt defending in the Puritans what
-is indefensible, I would add, they inherited many of their faults from
-the early Protestants. On the whole, I should say, the Puritans of the
-seventeenth century will bear favourable comparison with their fathers
-of the sixteenth, some of whose worst failings arose from the bad
-education received in the Church of Rome before they abjured her errors.
-
-[71] Irreverence in worship is often regarded as an offence
-characteristic of Puritanism. But popish priests, at the time of
-the Reformation, then loudly complained of irreverence in their
-congregations--irreverence such as their successors were not guilty
-of.--_Strype's Memorials_, i. 213
-
-[72] Neal follows Clarendon in this respect.--_History of Puritans_,
-ii. 362.
-
-[73] This is Rapin's view.--_History of England_, ii. 652, adopted by
-Godwin, in his _Commonwealth_, i. 64.
-
-[74] _Tanner MS._, quoted by Sanford.--_Studies and Illustrations of
-the Great Rebellion_, p. 159.
-
-[75] _Strafford's Letters_, Vol. i. 463, quoted in _Forster's Life
-of Vane_, p. 7, as written to the Lord Deputy. The letter is in the
-State Paper Office, calendared as if written to Lord Conway.--See
-_Calendar of Colonial Papers_, 1574-1660, p. 214. In the same Calendar,
-p. 211, there is notice of a letter by Vane to his father, in which
-he "requests his father to believe, though as the case stands he is
-judged a most unworthy son, that however jealous his father may be of
-circumventions and plots entertained and practised by him, yet he will
-never do anything that he may not justify or be content to suffer for.
-Is sure, as there is trust in God, that his innocence and integrity
-will be cleared to his father before he dies. Protests his father's
-jealousy of him would break his heart, but as he submits all other
-things to his good God, so does he his honesty. The intention of his
-heart is sincere, and hence flows the sweet peace he enjoys amidst his
-many heavy trials."
-
-[76] _Forster's Statesmen of the Commonwealth_, Vol. iii. 49.
-
-[77] Clarendon (_Hist._ 75) says of Vane's father and mother, "they
-were neither of them beautiful,"--a statement fully borne out by their
-portraits.
-
-[78] _Clarendon_ (_Hist._ 454).
-
-[79] _Rushworth_, i. 647.
-
-[80] _Hist._ 74.
-
-[81] Compare _Nugent_ and _Forster_.
-
-[82] Hampden was reported at a Visitation for holding a muster in
-Beaconsfield Churchyard, and for leaving his parish church. To avoid a
-suit in the Ecclesiastical Court, he applied privately to Sir Nathaniel
-Brent, and satisfied him by explanation and concession.--_State Papers
-Cal._, 1634-5, p. 250.
-
-[83] "The Puritan would be judged by the Word of God; if he would speak
-clearly he means himself; but he is ashamed to say so, and he would
-have me believe him before a whole church, that has read the Word of
-God as well as he." _Table Talk_, 160.
-
-Selden, in the same book (p. 13), while denying the divine right of
-bishops, maintains they "have the same right to sit in Parliament as
-the best Earls and Barons." Yet he signed the Covenant.
-
-[84] _Life_, 923.
-
-[85] _Life_, 936.
-
-[86] In the State Paper Office is a letter by Laud, July 20, 1634,
-addressed to the King, in which the writer speaks of two daughters of
-the late Lord Falkland being reconciled to the Church of Rome, "not
-without the practice of their mother." He alludes to Lord Newburgh's
-request that she would forbear working on her daughters' consciences,
-and suffer them to go to their brother, or any other safe place. The
-archbishop appears anxious to save them from Popery. The letter is
-printed in _Laud's Works_, vii. 82, with illustrative notes.
-
-[87] He tells us he was stopped in Westminster Hall, and asked by a
-root-and-branch man, "Art thou for us or for our adversaries?" but he
-does not report his answer.
-
-[88] Mr. Bruce's interesting introduction to the volume of
-_Proceedings, &c._, in connection with the Committee of Religion
-appointed in 1640, (printed by the Camden Society,) gives a minute
-history of the baronet's love adventures.
-
-[89] It is stated on the authority of a letter in the possession of the
-Trevor family, that, "to escape detection the oppositionists resorted
-to the place of rendezvous with disguised faces." _Johnson's Life of
-Selden_, 30.
-
-[90] _Clarendon's Hist._, p. 69.
-
-[91] The appointment of a Committee of Religion was debated and delayed
-in the first Parliament of this reign; One was appointed immediately
-after the assembling of the second--and also on the meeting of the
-third.--See _Journals_, June 25, 1625; Feb. 7, 10, 12, 1625-6; March
-20, 1627-8.
-
-[92] The sentence on Leighton is given by _Rushworth_, ii. 56.
-
-_Neal_, ii., 218, follows Rushworth and states the particulars of
-Leighton's punishment as being recorded in Laud's Diary. But in the
-Diary, 4th November, _Works_ iii. 212, there is nothing beyond a
-reference to Leighton's degradation in the High Commission Court. Neal
-adds that Laud pulled off his cap, and thanked God for the sentence.
-
-For this anecdote, authority may be found in a curious book, by
-Leighton, entitled _An Epitome of the great troubles he has suffered_.
-In the course of his narration, after defending himself against the
-charge of being a Conventicle keeper, a libeller, a schismatic,
-a traitor, and a factious person, he says, in relation to his
-trial.--"The censure was to cut my ears, slit my nose, to brand me in
-the face, to whip me at a post, to stand on the pillory, ten thousand
-pounds fine, and perpetual imprisonment; and all these upon a dying
-man, by appearance
-
---instant morientibus ursæ.
-
-The censure thus past, the prelate off with his cap, and holding up
-his hands, gave thanks to God, who had given him the victory over his
-enemies."--pp. 69, 70.
-
-"I being put thereafter on the pillory an hour and a half, in frost and
-snow, they inflicted the rest, and would not let me have a coach of my
-own to carry me to the Fleet; but I was forced to be carried by water,
-for I was not able to go. I lay ten weeks under the canopy of heaven,
-in the dirt and mire of the rubbish, having nothing to shelter me from
-the rain and snow, in a very cold season."--p. 85.
-
-In connection with Leighton's statement, the following passage from the
-Rawlinson MS. is worthy of notice:--"In the Court of High Commission,
-19 April, 1632, the King's Advocate against Joseph Harrison, Clerk,
-Vicar of Sustorke, 'the sentence was presently read by the Archbishop
-of Canterbury, In Dei nomine, Amen, &c., &c., Deum præ oculis
-preponentes, &c.,' at which words I marked some of the Bishops to look
-upward, and put off their hats devoutly." From this passage it would
-appear to have been a practice in the Court, when sentence was passed,
-to pronounce it in the name of God, and for the Commissioners to take
-off their hats in token of reverence when these sacred words were
-uttered. The question arises, did Leighton mistake what was a customary
-act for a special expression of Laud's feeling in this particular case?
-or, did Laud really go out of his way to indicate his gratification
-at the sufferings of Leighton? I must leave the reader to judge for
-himself, who, however, ought to bear in mind Laud's character. Leighton
-gives the following account of his sufferings:--
-
-"The aforesaid censure was executed in every particular in a most cruel
-manner and measure: the executioner was made drunk in the Fleet the
-night before, and also was hardened the very same day with very strong
-water, being threatened to do it with all rigour: and so he did, by
-knife, whip, brand, and fire, insomuch that never a lash he gave with
-a treble cord, but he brought away the flesh, which I shall feel to my
-dying day."
-
-[93] Yet, looking at the persecution which the Puritans suffered, the
-same plea will avail for them that has been urged on behalf of the
-early Protestants. "It was, as they thought, like exhorting a Caligula
-and a Nero to clemency, and advising the poor subjects to compliment
-such tyrants, to remind them gently of their defects, and humbly to
-entreat that they would be so good and gracious as to condescend to
-alter their conduct."--_Jortin's Life of Erasmus_, i. 212.
-
-From a _Biographical Narration_, by Burton, it appears he had been
-Clerk of the Closet to Prince Henry and to Prince Charles. The
-narration contains many curious particulars. There is an important
-letter about Burton, by Bishop Hall, in _Forster's Life of Eliot_, ii.
-428.
-
-[94] _Hanbury's Historical Memorials_, ii., 52.
-
-[95] _Rushworth_, iv. 207.
-
-[96] _Forster's Life of Eliot_, ii. 84, 562.
-
-[97] _Forster's Life of Pym_, 96.
-
-[98] It was a charge against Burton that he carried the sacred elements
-to the communicants on their seats.--_Dow's Innovations_, 186.
-_Lathbury's History of Convocation_, 261.
-
-[99] _Forster's Life of Pym_, 99.
-
-[100] _Rushworth_, iv. 24.
-
-[101] _Quoted in Sanford's Illustrations_, 310.
-
-[102] _Clarendon_, 69. _Sanford's Illustrations_, 310.
-
-[103] Clarendon says Strafford did not come to the House at all
-that day till after his impeachment. I attach little importance to
-Clarendon's statements, when inconsistent with what is said by so
-accurate a man as D'Ewes. From his journal it appears that Strafford
-_did_ go to the House in the morning. _Sanford's Illustrations_, 310.
-
-[104] _D'Ewes Journal_, _Sanford's Studies and Illustrations_, 312.
-
-[105] _Baillie's Letters and Journals_, published by the Bannatyne
-Club, 4to, i. 272. Other minute particulars are taken from the same
-source.
-
-[106] See his _Journal_, 1640, Dec. 18. _Works_, iii. 238.
-
-[107] Burgess and Marshall preached on the occasion from Jeremiah l. 5,
-and 2. Chron. xv. 2. The sermons were published, and may be found in
-the library of the British Museum. They relate to covenanting with God,
-but I do not see that the preachers make any reference to the Scotch
-covenant, though Nalson charges them with having had their eye on that
-symbol all the way through.--_Collection_, i. 530.
-
-[108] November 20. See _Commons' Journal_.
-
-[109] See Journals, February 9, 1625-6, and March 10, 1627-8.
-
-[110] It is so regarded by Neal and those who follow him.--_History of
-Puritans_, ii. 362.
-
-[111] _History of England_, ii. 653.
-
-[112] _Journals_, November 20. A collection was made after the
-communion, amounting to £78. 16. 2.--_Nalson's Collections_, 1. 700.
-
-[113] _Memorials of English Affairs, Whitelocke_, 38. _Journal of
-Commons_, Nov. 25, 1640, and pamphlets of the period.
-
-[114] The minister complained of was John Squire, of whom Walker gives
-an account in his _Sufferings of the Clergy_, Part i. 68.--These
-illustrations are gathered from _Diurnals and other Tracts_ in the
-Library of the Brit. Museum.
-
-[115] _Speech of Mr. Rouse in Rushworth_, iv. 211. See also _Speeches
-of Sir Ed. Dering and Sir John Wray_.
-
-[116] These particulars, and many more, are found in _A Certificate
-from Northamptonshire_, 1641. Brit. Mus. The "great scarcity of
-preaching ministers" was early noticed, and a sub-committee appointed
-to consider it.--See _Journals_, 19th December, 1640. Extracts from
-the _Register of the Archbishop of Canterbury_, shew that the number
-of benefices in England was 8,803, whereof 3,277 were impropriations,
-and that the number of livings under £10 was 4,543; under £40, 8,659;
-and that only the remainder, being 144, were of the value of £40 and
-upwards.--_Cal. Dom._ 1634-5, p. 381.
-
-[117] _Lathbury's Hist. of Con._, 246.
-
-[118] _Nalson_, i. 545.
-
-[119] This oath "approved the doctrine and discipline of government
-established in the Church of England, as containing all things
-necessary to salvation;" and denied all "consent to alter the
-government of this Church by Archbishops, Bishops, Deans, Archdeacons,
-&c., as it stands now established."
-
-[120] _Journals of the Commons_, Dec. 16, 1640.--The matter came before
-the House again on the 7th June, 1641.
-
-[121] The letter is in _Laud's Works_, Vol. vi. 584.
-
-[122] _Laud's Works_, vi. 589.
-
-[123] _Lathbury's Hist. of Convocation_, 267.
-
-[124] See _Letter to Bullinger by Sandys_, 1573.--_Zurich Letters_, 294.
-
-[125] _Fuller_, ii. 504-5.
-
-[126] It frequently appears in the records of that period. There is a
-curious example in the introduction to the will of Humphrey Fen.--_Cal.
-Dom._, 1633-4, p. 468.
-
-[127] They claimed as precedents the Protestants in Queen Mary's
-time, and the exiles at Geneva, that used a book framed by them
-there.--_Strype's Parker_, i. 480.
-
-There is at Horningsham, in Wiltshire, an old meeting-house, with a
-large stone in the end wall, bearing date 1566. When the stone was put
-there is not known, and whence it came I cannot learn, but the Rev.
-H. M. Gunn, of Warminster, informs me that, according to tradition,
-some Scotch Presbyterians, disciples of Knox, came over from Scotland
-to build Longleat House for Sir John Thynne, in 1566. The building
-went on for thirteen years, when Sir John died. They refused to attend
-the parish church, and obtained a cottage in which to meet for Divine
-service, with a piece of land attached for a grave-yard. This house,
-Mr. Gunn says, turned into a chapel, has been preserved till now.
-Though originally a Presbyterian, it long since became an Independent
-place of worship.
-
-[128] Afterwards Mrs. Hazzard.
-
-[129] _Records of the Baptist Church_, Broadmead, Bristol, 10-18. See
-also _Cal. Dom._, 1634-5, p. 416, for arguments by Dr. Stoughton, on
-the duty of separation.
-
-As women were active in promoting Puritanism, so they had been a
-century before in promoting Protestantism.--See numerous examples in
-_Foxe's Book of Martyrs_.
-
-[130] _Dugdale's Troubles in England_, 36, 62, 65.
-
-_Wood's Athenæ Oxonienses_, ii. 347.
-
-[131] _Parl. Hist._, ii. 674.
-
-[132] Bagshawe's own account, in _Hanbury's Memorials_, ii. 141.
-
-[133] See _Cal. Dom._, 1633-4, p. 33 _et seq._; also _Preface_, viii.
-
-[134] _Baillie's Letters and Journals_, vol. i. 211-214.
-
-[135] _Baillie's Letters and Journals_, i. 271.
-
-_The Lords' Journals_, Dec. 10, 14, 1640, shew the sensitiveness of
-the House upon what concerned the honour of the Scots and the English
-lords, who favoured them, and in reference to all which indicated
-popish sympathies.
-
-[136] The first night they tarried at lodgings, "in the Common Garden."
-Baillie adds: "The city is desirous we should lodge with them, so
-to-morrow I think we must flit."
-
-[137] Hallam says: (_Const. Hist._, i. 527) The petition was prepared
-"at the _instigation_ of the Scotch Commissioners." Baillie's letters
-do not support this statement. The Scots, however, were very early in
-the field against Laud. _Lords' Journals_, January 2, 1641.
-
-[138] "At London we met with many ministers from most parts of the
-kingdom; and upon some meetings and debates, it was resolved that a
-committee should be chosen to draw up a remonstrance of our grievances,
-and to petition the Parliament for reformation, which was accordingly
-done."--_Clark's Lives_, page 8.
-
-[139] Cross-grained, twisted. _Baillie's Letters_, &c., i. 286.
-
-[140] _Rushworth_, iv. 135.
-
-[141] The Somersetshire churchmen expressed themselves in moderate
-terms.--_Hallam's Const. Hist._, i. 527.
-
-From Cheshire came two petitions, one signed by Episcopalians, the
-other by Puritans, calling prelates "mighty enemies and secret
-underminers" of the church and commonwealth.--_Nonconformity in
-Cheshire. Introduction_, xiv.
-
-[142] Amongst the petitions of that period was one by Master William
-Castell, parson of Courtenhall, in the county of Northampton: "for
-the propagating of the gospel in America and the West Indies." While
-condemning the proceedings of Spaniards, and lamenting the indifference
-of English, Scotch, French, and Dutch, the petition expresses the
-desire of the petitioners, "to enlarge greatly the pale of the
-Church;" to make the synagogues of Satan temples of the Holy Ghost;
-"and millions of those silly, seduced Americans, to hear, understand,
-and practise the mystery of godliness." A large number of names are
-appended, approving the petition. The learned Edmund Castell, Robert
-Sanderson (afterwards Bishop of Lincoln), Joseph Caryl, and Edmund
-Calamy, appear in the list, and it is added that the petition had the
-approbation of Master Alexander Henderson, and some worthy ministers of
-Scotland. The union of such different men in this missionary endeavour
-is worthy of notice.--_Anderson's History of the Colonial Church_, ii.
-11.
-
-[143] Abridged from _Rushworth_, iv. 155.--Baillie says that, as to the
-part about the bishops, there "was no hum; and no applause as to the
-rest."--_Letters_, i. 292.
-
-[144] No traces of Pym's speech are found in _Rushworth_, _Nalson_, or
-_Parliamentary Debates_. It is not mentioned in _Forster's Life of the
-Great Statesmen_, or in _Sanford's Illustrations_. The extract I have
-given is from _A Just Vindication of the questioned part of the reading
-of Edward Bagshawe, Esq._, 1660, p. 2-4. The tract states that Pym's
-speech was delivered when the petition was read and debated in the
-House. _Hanbury's Memorials_, ii. 141.
-
-[145] _Rushworth_, iv. 170-187.
-
-[146] 9th Feb., 1641.
-
-[147] Quoted in _Studies and Illustrations, by Sanford_, 319.
-
-[148] Mr. Godwin, in his _History of the Commonwealth_, i. 58,
-interprets the resolution as meaning "we are not yet decided to
-maintain Episcopacy." The debate, and even the words themselves, seem
-to me inconsistent with that view.
-
-[149] These particulars are taken from the _Journal of Sir Ralph
-Verney_, a member of the Committee. Lord Nugent, in his _Life of
-Hampden_, gives some account of this MS.; but Mr. Bruce has published
-the entire notes in a volume of the Camden Society, with many valuable
-remarks.
-
-[150] The following extract from the _Lords' Journals_ is an
-illustration:
-
-"Mr. Etheridge, minister, and Mr. Carter, the curate, and William Till,
-clerk of the parish, Ben Parsons, Tho. Chadwick, were examined at the
-bar, concerning the riot lately committed in the church of Halstead, in
-the county of Essex; as striking the Book of Common Prayer out of the
-curate's hand as he was baptizing a child at the fount, and kicking it
-up and down the church, and for taking the clerk by the throat, forcing
-him to deliver unto them the hood and surplice, which they immediately
-rent and tore in pieces; and other misdemeanours and outrages were
-committed in the said church, on Simon and Jude's day last, in divine
-service, by Jonathan Poole and Grace his wife." 10th December, 1640.
-
-Certain Nonconformists of St. Saviour's parish were complained of to
-the House for illegally assembling for worship. The House directed they
-should be left to the ordinary proceedings of justice, according to the
-course of law. _Journals of the Lords_, January 16th. See also 19th and
-21st.
-
-[151] As the accounts of this committee given by Fuller, Neal, and
-Cardwell, are incomplete in consequence of the writers having neglected
-to consult the Journals of the House of Lords, I subjoin the following
-entries relating to this business:--
-
-_10 die Martii, 1640-1._
-
-After an order that the Communion-table in every church remain where
-it is accustomed to be, it is ordered, "That these lords following are
-appointed to take into consideration all innovations in the Church
-concerning religion:--The Lord Treasurer, the Lord Chamberlain,
-Earls of Bath, South'ton, Bedford, Hartford, Essex, Dorset, Sarum,
-Warwick, March, Bristol, Clare, Berks, Dover, and Lord Viscount Say
-and Sele; Bishops of Winton, Chester, Lincoln, Sarum, Exon, Carlile,
-Ely, Bristol, Rochester, Chichester; and Ds. (Dominus), Strange,
-Willoughby de Earseby, North, Kymbolton, Howard de Charlton, Grey de
-Werk, Robarts, Craven, Pawlett, Howard de Escrick, Goringe, Savill,
-Dunsemore, and Seymor.
-
-"_6 die Martii._
-
-"That the Committee for Innovations in Religion do meet on Wednesday
-next, and the committee to have power to send for such learned men as
-their lordships shall please, to assist them.
-
-"_10 die Martii._
-
-"That the Committee for Religion do meet on Friday next, in the
-afternoon, and no other committee to sit that afternoon, and their
-lordships to have power to send for what learned divines their
-lordships shall please, for their better information: as the Lord
-Archbishop of Armagh, Dr. Prideaux, Dr. Warde, Dr. Twiste (Twiss) Dr.
-Hacket, who are to have intimation given them by the Lord Bishop of
-Lincoln to attend the Lords' Committees."
-
-The following names, given by Fuller, Collier, and Neal must be taken
-as a list of the sub-committee. Williams, Bishop of Lincoln; Ussher,
-Archbishop of Armagh; Morton, Bishop of Durham; and Hall, Bishop of
-Exeter; Drs. Ward, Prideaux, Twiss, Sanderson, Featley, Brownrigg,
-Holdsworth, Hacket, Burgess, White, Marshall, Calamy, and Hill. Morton
-of Durham does not appear on the list of the Lords' Committee. Cardwell
-places in the list the name of Montague, but I find it mentioned by no
-one else. He is not a likely person to have had anything to do with
-the Committee, and he is probably confounded by Cardwell with Hall,
-who succeeded him in the bishopric of Norwich, being translated, on
-Montague's death, to that see from Exeter.
-
-[152] Quoted in _Campbell's Lives of the Chancellors_, iii. 187.
-
-[153] _Hacket's Memorial of Williams_, Part ii. 147.
-
-Sir N. Brent, in a paper dated September 9, 1634, gives an account of
-his "metropolitical visitation" of Williams's diocese. He describes the
-Communion-table at Lincoln as not decent, and the rail worse; organs
-old and nought; copes and vestments embezzled; ale-houses, hounds,
-and swine kept in the churchyard; Hitchin church and churchyard out
-of order; curate of Stowe accustomed "to marry people with gloves and
-masks on."--_Cal. Dom._ In another paper, probably pertaining to 1634,
-Boston seeks to free itself from the suspicions of Puritanism by saying
-that there were 2,000 communicants at church, who, for want of room to
-kneel, were compelled to receive the Lord's Supper standing.--_Ibid._
-p. 422.
-
-[154] _Fuller's Church History_, iii. 415.
-
-[155] _Laud's Works_, iii. 241.
-
-[156] The following letter (without signature) illustrates this point:
-"A new Committee for Religion was appointed to have sat on Monday in
-the afternoon last, but there being neither meeting nor adjournment,
-it was left _sine die_: yet, on Thursday in the afternoon, the Bishops
-of Lincoln, Durham, Winchester, and Bristol met, where the assistants,
-attended by some threescore other divines of inferior rank, were
-present, and many temporal Lords; and many points of doctrine and
-Church service being questioned, among the rest one Lord said, that it
-ought to be put out of the creed '_that Christ descended into Hell_,'
-which he did not believe. Yesterday in the forenoon, without any
-intimation or notice given to the other committees, the same spiritual
-Lords and divines met at the Bishop of Lincoln's lodging, where, in
-less than two hours, they condemned, (as I am informed by the Bishop
-of Bristol, present), about fifty points in doctrine, what they had
-met with in several treatises and sermons of late printed amongst us.
-They had culled out a passage of my Lord of Canterbury in his Star
-Chamber speech, which they say is, that _Hoc est corpus meum_, is more
-than _Hoc est verbum meum_: which the Bishop of Lincoln censured, for
-that _verbum_ did make _corpus_; but would not further hear, because
-his grace was likely to answer it shortly elsewhere."--April 10, 1641.
-_State Papers, Chas. I. Dom._
-
-[157] I say _almost_, because the practice of sitting, while singing
-hymns, which was common in Nonconforming places of worship when I was
-young, may still linger in some quarters.
-
-[158] The following query appears respecting marriage:--
-
-"Whether none hereafter shall have licences to marry, nor be asked
-their banns of matrimony, that shall not bring with them a certificate
-from their Minister that they are instructed in their Catechism."
-
-[159] The specified alterations are: "I give thee power over my body;"
-"knowing assuredly that the dead shall rise again;" and "I pronounce
-thee absolved;" instead of the well-known forms so often objected to.
-
-I have gone fully into an account of what was proposed to this
-Committee, not only because it may have a particular interest for those
-who are active in promoting a revision of the Prayer Book, but because
-there are such diversified statements in relation to the subject in
-our historians. Compare Fuller, Collier, and Neal. Neal presents his
-condensation of the papers with inverted commas, as if placing before
-the reader the original documents. (In other cases, too, he gives
-his own abridgment in this fashion, so as to mislead the student.)
-An entire copy of the proceedings of the Committee may be found in
-_Cardwell's Conferences_, p. 270, taken from _Baxter's Life and Times_,
-Part i. 369.
-
-[160] _Neal_, ii. 465.
-
-[161] See _Journals_ for March 9th, 10th, 11th, and 22nd. _May_
-says, "Doctors and parsons of parishes were made everywhere Justices
-of Peace, to the great grievance of the country, in civil affairs,
-and depriving them of their spiritual edification."--_Hist. of Long
-Parliament_, 24.
-
-[162] _Rushworth_, iv. 206. This Bill was under discussion in the
-Lords, in October, 1641.--_Nalson_, ii. 496.
-
-[163] _Journals._
-
-[164] _Clarendon's Hist._, 94.
-
-[165] July 1.--"The Lords, upon the reasons offered by the Commons,
-were satisfied to consent to pass the Bill to take away the High
-Commission Court both here and at York, but argued to have the Star
-Chamber Court not quite taken away, but bounded, limited, and reduced
-to what power it had in Henry VII's time."--_Rushworth_, iv. 304. Both
-Bills received the royal assent, July 5.
-
-[166] The writers were: Stephen Marshall, Edmund Calamy, Thos. Young,
-Matt. Newcomen, and Wm. Spurstow.
-
-[167] _The Reduction of Episcopacy_, which bears Ussher's name, was not
-published till after his death, in 1656. Baxter says in reference to
-it, "I asked him (Dr. Ussher) whether the paper be his that is called,
-_A reduction of Episcopacy to the form of Synodical Government_; which
-he owned, and Dr. Bernard after witnessed to be his."--_Life and
-Times_, part ii. 206.
-
-I may here observe that the Archbishop, according to his biographer,
-Elrington, appears always to have spelt his name with a double s.
-
-[168] _Baillie_, i. 351.
-
-[169] May 3, 1641. _Parl. Hist._, ii. 776.
-
-I have here and elsewhere, in giving the substance of speeches, adhered
-to the quaint phraseology employed by the speakers.
-
-[170] For the protestation, see _Parl. Hist._, ii. 777. Alterations
-were made which throw light on the fears of returning popery.--_Verney's
-Notes_, published by the Camden Society, 67-70.
-
-[171] Instances of the taking of it are numerous. In the _Register
-Book of Wansted_ it is found with the names of the principal
-inhabitants.--_Lyson's Environs of London_, iv. 243.
-
-Whitaker, in his _History of Richmondshire_, mentions an endorsement on
-the Return Roll for the parishes and townships of Bentham, Ingleton,
-Thornton, Sedberg, Dent, and Garsdale:--"The names of those persons who
-refused to make protestation within Garsdale parcell of the township of
-Dent, viz: George Heber Gent, Abraham Nelson, chapman, who publiquely
-refused before the whole Dale in the Church."--vol. ii. 363.
-
-[172] See _Journals of the Commons_, May 12th.
-
-[173] August 2nd. _Parl. Hist._ ii, 895. Compare _Nalson_, ii. 414-417.
-
-[174] _Baillie_, i. 351. He refers here to the Commons.
-
-[175] _Hallam's Const. Hist._, i. 524. The sagacious author justly
-remarks--"And thus we trace again the calamities of Charles to their
-two great sources; his want of judgment in affairs, and of good faith
-towards his people." The Lords passed the Bill on the 8th; the royal
-assent was given on the 10th.
-
-[176] _Parl. Hist._, ii. 778.
-
-[177] _Parl. Hist._, ii. 783. May 5. D'Ewes gives another amusing
-version of the story, (under date May 19).--_Sanford's Illustrations_,
-373. Baillie's account is somewhat different.
-
-[178] _Maitland's London_, i. 338.
-
-[179] The bitter Presbyterian feeling against Strafford is plain enough
-in Baillie's letters.
-
-It belongs not to the scope of this ecclesiastical History to enter on
-the details of the trial, but I cannot resist the temptation to insert
-in the Appendix two letters found in the State Paper Office, giving an
-account of the way in which the bill of attainder was introduced.
-
-[180] See Speeches by Lane and St. John (_Rushworth's Trial of
-Strafford_, 671, _et seq._); then read what follows:
-
-"It certainly does astonish us that men, however they may have
-condemned the conduct of Strafford, could bring themselves to believe
-that he was guilty of the crime of high treason; for they could hardly
-have been deceived by the wicked sophistry of St. John that an attempt
-to subvert the fundamental laws of the kingdom was high treason at
-common law, and still remains so, or by the base opinion delivered by
-the judges--that this amounts to high treason under the Statute of
-Edward III."--_Campbell's Lives of the Chancellors_, iv. 15.
-
-[181] Ussher of Armagh, Juxon of London, Morton of Durham, Potter of
-Carlisle, and Williams of Lincoln.
-
-[182] Slightly abridged from _Elrington's Life of Ussher_, 213.
-
-[183] That such a distinction was suggested seems generally admitted.
-Clarendon attributes it to Williams, (_Rebellion_, 140.) This,
-considering the historian's prejudice respecting the Archbishop, is not
-perfectly conclusive against Williams, any more than the silence of
-Hacket (_Life of Williams_, pt. II., i. 161,)--who only speaks of the
-advice given in common, founded on the distinction between facts and
-law--is conclusively in his favour.
-
-Clarendon is corroborated by the circumstance, that Ussher and Juxon
-were freed from the charge by the King himself (according to the report
-of Sir Edward Walker), and of the remaining prelates Williams was the
-most likely to give such advice as Clarendon mentions.
-
-[184] _Fuller's Church History_, iii. 421.
-
-The author says he copied what he gives of Hacket's speech out of his
-own papers. _Nalson's Report_ (ii. 240) seems to be an amplification
-of what is contained in _Rushworth_, iv. 269. Verney entirely agrees
-with Fuller (_Verney Papers--Camden Society_, 75), but only in a few
-particulars with Nalson. Nalson is also wrong in saying Hacket answered
-Burgess. Hacket spoke first. Burgess answered him.
-
-[185] _Fuller_, iii. 422. According to _Verney's Notes_, Burgess speaks
-of "Choristers and officers as fellows that are condemned for felons,
-and keep ale-houses, and so they may still," 77.
-
-[186] _Rushworth_, iv. 276.
-
-[187] _Parl. Hist._, ii. 773.
-
-[188] _Sanford's Illustrations_, 363.
-
-[189] _Nalson_, ii. 248.
-
-[190] _Parry's Parliaments and Councils of England_, 353.
-
-[191] _Sanford's Studies and Illustrations_, 364.
-
-[192] Dering published an apology in 1642.
-
-[193] The following letter by Sydney Bere, secretary to Sir Balthazar
-Gerbier, afterwards to Sir H. Vane, is preserved in the State Paper
-Office.
-
-"Whitehall, 17th June, 1641.
-
-"You will surely have heard that the utter abolishing of the bishops
-and all titular ecclesiastics, with the dependents, hath been agreed
-upon in the House of Commons, and met with less noes in the debate
-than the business of the Earl of Strafford had. This day they voted it
-again, and now it is to be engrossed, a draft of the Act goes herewith.
-
-"The business of the bishops will be of dangerous consequence, they
-being violent and passionate in their own defence, and having engaged,
-as it were, the Lords, by their late votes in their favour, to the
-maintenance of their cause; whereas the Commons seem as resolute to
-pass the Bill for their utter extirpation, and so transmitting it to
-the Lords, according to the custom; and then it may be justly inferred
-the city will prove as turbulent as they were on Strafford's cause."
-
-Sidney Bere became under-secretary upon the appointment of Nicholas, in
-November, to the chief secretaryship of state.
-
-[194] _Rushworth_, iv. 279.
-
-[195] _Nalson_, ii. 529.
-
-[196] _Journal_, June 7, 1641.
-
-_Verney's Notes_ bear evidence that the same day the feeling of the
-House was unfavourable to Episcopacy. Monday, 7th June:--"Sir John
-Griffin, the elder, said, I see it is distasteful to this House to
-speak for the government of the Church."--_Verney Papers_, 83.
-
-On the same day, in the course of a debate, the subject of
-ecclesiastical canons came again under consideration. Mr. Maynard
-"transmitted the votes about the canons." According to _Verney's
-Notes_, (84) in which this appears, the debate touched generally on the
-power of the clergy to make canons. No formal resolution or vote is
-recorded.
-
-[197] _Sanford's Illustrations_, 365.
-
-[198] _Clarendon's Hist._, 110.
-
-[199] _Parl. Hist._, ii. 822-826.
-
-Sir Ralph Verney notices the debate on the 12th, but his notes are
-unfortunately very brief, and run thus:--
-
-"Actions constant at all times to men of one order, 'tis a great sign
-of their malignity.
-
-Oil and water may be severed, but oil and wine never.
-
-Pledwell's arguments might have been used for the pope as well as for
-other bishops.
-
-Vaughan.--Three things considerable in bishops: election, confirmation,
-consecration.
-
-_Os Episcopi_ is a chancellor.
-
-_Oculus Episcopi_ is the commissary.
-
-_Consilium Episcopi_ is the dean."--_Verney Papers_, 94.
-
-Letters in the State Paper Office show the excitement produced by the
-Commons' proceedings. Slingsby says, 10th June, "The discourse of all
-men is they must now strike at root and branch, and not slip this
-occasion."
-
-[200] _Parl. Hist._, ii. 828. _et seq._
-
-[201] _Rushworth_, iv. 295.
-
-[202] _Nalson_, ii. 245.
-
-[203] White was grandfather of Susannah Annesly, the mother of the
-Wesleys.
-
-[204] For cases which came before Dering, see "_Proceedings principally
-in the County of Kent, &c._" Edited by the Rev. L. B. Barking, with
-preface by John Bruce, Esq. _Camden Soc._
-
-[205] _Rushworth_, iv. 113-123.
-
-[206] _Rushworth_, 194, 195.
-
-See _Laud's Journal_, March 1, p. 240.
-
-March 1, Monday.--"I went in Mr. Maxwell's coach to the Tower. No noise
-till I came into Cheapside. But from thence to the Tower I was followed
-and railed at by the 'prentices and the rabble, in great numbers, to
-the very Tower gates, where I left them, and I thank God he made me
-patient!"--_Laud's Diary._
-
-[207] _Rushworth_, iv. 122-351.
-
-Widdrington's speech on presenting the impeachment is a curiosity in
-its way. Amongst other odd things he says of Wren: "Without doubt he
-would never have been so strait-laced and severe in this particular
-(_i. e._, his hatred of extempore prayer), if he had but dreamed of
-that strait which a minister, a friend of his, was put into by this
-means. The story is short. A butcher was gored in the belly by an ox;
-the wound was cured; the party desired public thanksgiving in the
-congregation; the minister, finding no form for that purpose, _read the
-collect for churching of women_."--_Parl. Hist._, ii. 888.
-
-[208] _Fuller's Church History_, iii. 418. See also _Worthies_, ii. 359.
-
-[209] _Hanbury's Historical Memorials_, ii. 97-100.
-
-Thomas Wiseman, in a letter (July 1, 1641) _State Papers_, says of the
-Scotch, "God send us well rid of them, and then we may hope to enjoy
-our ancient peace both of Church and Commonwealth, for till they are
-gone, whatever they pretend, we find they are the only disturbers of
-both."
-
-[210] _Rushworth_, iv. 368.
-
-[211] _State Papers, Dom., 1641._ Letter of Sidney Bere, August 18.
-
-[212] _Idem._ Letter of Sidney Bere, August 22.
-
-[213] _Letter of Bere._ August 30th.
-
-In a manuscript diurnal, also preserved among the _State Papers_, it is
-remarked: "Mr. Henderson is in great favour with the king, and stands
-next to his chair in sermon time. His Majesty daily hears two sermons
-every Sunday, besides week-day lectures."
-
-[214] Baillie's notices are to the same effect as Bere's: "Mr.
-Alexander Henderson, in the morning and evening before supper, does
-daily say prayers, read a chapter, sing a psalm, and say prayer again.
-The King hears all duly, and we hear none of his complaints for want of
-a liturgy or any ceremonies." _Letters_, i. 385.
-
-[215] _Nalson_, ii. 683.
-
-[216] _Parry's Parliaments and Councils_, 365.
-
-[217] On the 8th September, "upon Mr. Cromwell's motion, it was
-ordered, that sermons should be in the afternoon in all parishes of
-England, at the charge of the inhabitants of those parishes where
-there are no sermons in the afternoon."--_D'Ewes' Journals. Sanford's
-Illustrations_, 371.
-
-[218] _Commons' Journals. Parl. Hist._, ii. 907.
-
-[219] _Nalson_, ii. 483. _Parl. Hist._, ii. 910.
-
-[220] An attempt was made in the Lower House to revise the Prayer Book,
-but it failed.--_Rushworth_, iv. 385.
-
-[221] London was in a very troubled state that autumn, as appears from
-a letter by Thomas Wiseman, dated October 7th.--_State Papers Dom._
-
-"The city is full of the disbanded soldiers, and such robbing in and
-about it that we are not safe in our own houses, yet this day there is
-an order come from the Committee of Parliament to send every soldier
-away upon pain of imprisonment, and leave granted to any of them that
-will to transport themselves for the low countries into the service
-of the States. On Tuesday last the post was robbed between this and
-Theobalds, and the letters to the King and other Lords in Scotland,
-from the Queen and the Lords of the Council, were taken away by fellows
-with vizors on their faces; such an insolence hath not been, however,
-before, and who they were, or who set them to work is suspected, but
-not yet discovered. We have the most pestilent libels spread abroad
-against the precise Lords and Commons of the Parliament, that they
-are fearful to be named. And the Brownists and other sectaries make
-such havoc in our churches by pulling down of ancient monuments, glass
-windows, and rails, that their madness is intolerable; and I think
-it will be thought blasphemy shortly to name Jesus Christ, for it is
-already forbidden to bow to his name, though Scripture and the practice
-of the Church of England doth both warrant and command it."
-
-[222] _May's History of the Long Parliament_, 113-115.
-
-[223] See his speeches in _Rushworth_, iv. 392-394.
-
-[224] _Parl. Hist._, ii. 924.
-
-[225] _Parl. Hist._, ii. 919, 920.
-
-[226] _Rushworth_, iv. 438-451.
-
-[227] Sidney Bere says in a letter dated 25th Nov., 1641 (_State Papers
-Dom._): "For the business of the Houses of Parliament, they have been
-in great debates about a Remonstrance, which the House of Commons
-frames, shewing the grievances and abuses of many years past. The
-contestation now is, how to publish it, whether in print to the public
-view, or by petition to his Majesty--it was so equally carried in a
-division of opinion, that there were but eleven voices different. This
-day is a great day about it, but what the event will be I shall not be
-able to write you by this ordinary. It seems there are great divisions
-between the two Houses, and even in the Commons House, which, if not
-suddenly reconciled, may cause very great distractions amongst us. It
-is the fear of many wise and well-meaning men, who apprehend great
-distempers, which I pray God to direct."
-
-[228] _Memoirs by Sir Philip Warwick_, 201.
-
-[229] _Forster's Grand Remonstrance_, 324. I refer the reader to this
-valuable work for minute particulars respecting this debate.
-
-[230] _Clarendon. Hist._, 125. Compare _Carlyle's Cromwell_, i. 161.
-
-[231] So Queen Henrietta Maria was then commonly called.
-
-[232] _Nalson_, ii. 679-681.
-
-[233] _Nicholas' Correspondence. Evelyn's Diary_, iv. 82.
-
-[234] "I observe since my coming to town, a very great alteration of
-the affections of the City, to what they were when I went away. They
-say a great present is to be presented to the King after dinner, and
-a petition such as he will be glad to receive, the contents I hear
-not yet, only one clause for the maintenance of Episcopacy and the
-suppression of schism."--_Robert Slingsby, State Papers Dom., Nov. 25._
-
-Respecting the King's reception, Wiseman says, "I confess it was a
-great one every way, and so acknowledged beyond the precedent of any
-made to former Kings, that history makes mention of, which well suits
-with the goodness, sweetness, and meritorious virtues of so gracious
-a King as ours is. The present mean estate of the Chamber denied the
-form of a gift, but this of the hearts of the citizens and those of
-the better sort, and at this tune so seasonably expressed, was of
-greater import to His Majesty than, for my part, I dare take upon me to
-value."--_2nd Dec., 1641. State Papers, Dom._
-
-[235] _Nalson_, ii. 681. _Rushworth_, iv. 432.
-
-[236] Letter of Thomas Wiseman, addressed to "Sir John Pennington,
-Admiral of his Majesty's fleet for the guard of the Narrow
-Seas."--_State Papers Dom._, 9th Dec., 1641.
-
-[237] In the same letter to Sir John Pennington, Wiseman says,
-"His Majesty was pleased, with a return of many thanks for his
-entertainment, to set a mark of his favour by knighting the seven
-aldermen, whereof your cousin the alderman was none, whose ways, as
-you partly know, are rather to please himself than to strive to do any
-acceptable service for the king, if it stand not with the sense of the
-preciser sort of the House of Commons."
-
-[238] Sir Ralph Hopton gave a report to the House of the
-interview.--_Parl. Hist._, ii. 942.
-
-[239] _Rushworth_, iv. 452.
-
-[240] _State Papers Dom._ Letters of Robert Slingsby, dated (by
-mistake) 6th Dec., 1641, and properly placed under Jan. 6th, 1641-2.
-Slingsby is not perfectly accurate in his account of what took place in
-the House.
-
-[241] The High Church Lord Mayor Gourney would not accompany them.
-
-[242] _Nalson_, ii. 764.
-
-[243] There were other disturbances in London.
-
-"For the proceedings of the Parliament, you have them here enclosed
-until Monday, which day there happened some disorder concerning
-the prisoners in Newgate, who being to suffer, and understanding
-the priests condemned with them were not, but in hope of reprieve,
-they found means to seize the jailor's keys, and so made themselves
-master of the prison, but the train bands coming up that same day
-forced them to surrender, and the next they were hanged, not without
-great murmuring of the common people. The saving of the priests is
-yet a point debated in Parliament, and, as I am told, will hardly be
-obtained. In the meantime, these intervenient things add much to the
-distractions and distempers of the time, which I pray God to give a
-better end unto than at present there is any great appearance for to
-hope it." * * *
-
-"I am told the House did yesternight vote the printing of the
-Remonstrance."--_State Papers._ Letter of Sidney Bere, 16th Dec., 1641.
-
-[244] _Bramston's Autobiography_, published by the Camden Society, 82.
-
-[245] _Rushworth_, iv. 463.
-
-Cutting the hair short was a Puritan reaction, occasioned by the
-opposite Cavalier fashion of wearing locks profusely long. It is worth
-notice, that the nickname given to Elisha by the boys at the town gate,
-as they watched the prophet passing by, was just the same as that
-given to the Parliamentarians. "Baldhead," is really "_roundhead_," in
-allusion to shortness of hair at the back of the head.--_Ewald_, iii.
-512.--_Smith's Dict. of the Bible_, i. 537.
-
-[246] The following letter by Captain Slingsby relates to this
-disturbance. It will be noticed that the writer says, "none were
-killed;" but Fuller states one man died of the injuries he received.
-
-"I cannot say we have had a merry Christmas, but the maddest one that
-I ever saw. The prentices and baser sort of citizens, sailors, and
-watermen, in great numbers every day at Westminster, armed with swords,
-halberds, clubs, which hath made the King keep a strong guard about
-Whitehall of the trained-bands without, and of gentlemen and officers
-of the army within. The King had upon Christmas-eve put Colonel
-Lunsford in to be Lieutenant of the Tower, which was so much resented
-by the Commons and by the City, that the Sunday after he displaced him
-again and put in Sir John Biron, who is little better accepted than the
-other. Lunsford being on Monday last in the Hall with about a dozen
-other gentlemen, he was affronted by some of the citizens, whereof the
-Hall was full, and so they drew their swords, chasing the citizens
-about the Hall, and so made their way through them which were in the
-Palace Yard and in King's Street, till they came to Whitehall. The
-Archbishop of York was beaten by the prentices the same day, as he was
-going into the Parliament. The next day they assaulted the Abbey, to
-pull down the organs and altar; but it was defended by the Archbishop
-of York and his servants, with some other gentlemen that came to
-them; divers of the citizens hurt, but none killed. Amongst them that
-were hurt one knight, Sir Richard Wiseman, who is their chief leader.
-Yesterday, about fifteen or sixteen officers of the army, standing
-at the Court gate, took a slight occasion to fall upon them and hurt
-about forty or so of them. They, in all their skirmishes have avoided
-thrusting, because they would not kill them. I never saw the Court so
-full of gentlemen. Every one comes thither with their swords. This day
-500 gentlemen of the Inns of Court came to offer their services to the
-King. The officers of the army, since these tumults, have watcht and
-kept a Court of guard in the presence chamber, and are entertained upon
-the King's charge. A company of soldiers put into the Abbey for defence
-of it."--_State Papers_, December 30th, 1641.
-
-[247] "There has been great store of the scum of the people who have
-gone this holidays to Westminster, to have down Bishops, and against
-Lunsford, who is now dismissed from being Lieutenant of the Tower, the
-King having given him £500 pension per annum, and hath invested one
-Sir John Biron in that place. All things are in much distemper, and I
-fear that they yet will grow worse."--_State Papers._ Letter of Capt.
-Carterett to Sir J. Pennington, dated London, 29th Dec.
-
-[248] I drew up this account from documents in the Record Office, dated
-the last few days of December, 1641, when I had no opportunity of
-consulting what Mr. Forster says of the disturbances, in his careful
-history of the _Arrest of the Five Members_.
-
-[249] See _Rushworth_, iv. 695, for examples of exaggeration in the
-royalist statements. This disturbance became a subject of controversy
-between the King and Parliament.--_Rushworth_, iv. 710.
-
-[250] "Here," says Mr. Forster, "and not in any dispute as to whom the
-powers of the militia should reside with, really began the Civil War."
-_Arrest of the Five Members_, 66.
-
-[251] _Hall's Works for Hard Measure_, xiii.
-
-[252] _Fuller's Church History_, iii. 431. He gives a copy of the
-protest.
-
-[253] See his speech on the 4th of March--_Parl. Hist._, ii. 1111.
-
-[254] _Bishop Hall's_ account in his _Hard Measure_ would seem to
-imply that the King had not seen the paper before it was brought under
-the notice of the Upper House by Lord-keeper Littleton, but it is
-clearly stated (_Parl. Hist._, ii. 993) that what Littleton did in
-this matter was by his Majesty's command. "The Jesuitical faction,"
-says a letter of the day, "according to their wonted custom, fomenting
-still jealousies between the King and his people, and the bishops,
-continually concurring with the Popish lords against the passing any
-good Bills sent from the House of Commons thither; and their last plot
-hath been their endeavour to make this Parliament no Parliament, and so
-to overthrow all Acts past, and to cause a dissolution of it for the
-present, which hath been so strongly followed by the Popish party, that
-it was fain to be put to the vote, and the Protestant Lords carried
-it to be a free and perfect Parliament as ever any was before. This
-did so gall the bishops that they made their protestation against the
-freedom of the vote, and the Parliament; and in their protestation
-have inserted such speeches as have brought them within the compass of
-treason, and thus the Council of Achitophel is turned into foolishness.
-The Earl of Bristol and his son have been chief concurrents with them
-in this and other evil councils, for which they have been impeached and
-branded in the House of Commons."--_State Papers_, Letter of Thomas
-Smith to Sir J. Pennington, dated York House, 30th Dec., 1641.
-
-There are allusions to these proceedings in other letters (_State
-Papers_) which all blame the bishops for want of wisdom.
-
-[255] Hall says, "On January the 30th, in all the extremity of frost,
-at 8 o'clock in the dark evening, are we voted to the Tower. The
-news of this our crime and imprisonment flew over the city, and was
-entertained by our well-wishers with ringing of bells and bonfires."
-_Hard Measure._
-
-[256] "This day the bishops have made a protestation against the
-proceedings of this Parliament, declaring it no free Parliament. This
-makes a great stir here. The favourers of them think it done too soon,
-the other side do seem now to rejoice that it is done, having thereby
-excluded themselves from it." _Slingsby to Pennington. State Papers_,
-30th Dec., 1641.
-
-[257] _Collier's Ecclesiastical History_, ii. 819.
-
-[258] _Parl. Hist._, ii. 1206. The bishops were: Dr. John Williams,
-Archbishop of York; Dr. T. Moreton, Bishop of Durham; Dr. J. Hall,
-Bishop of Norwich; Dr. Robert Wright, Bishop of Coventry and Lichfield;
-Dr. John Owen, Bishop of St. Asaph; Dr. William Piers, Bishop of Bath
-and Wells; Dr. John Coke, Bishop of Hereford; Dr. M. Wren, Bishop of
-Ely; Dr. Robert Skinner, Bishop of Oxon; Dr. G. Goodman, Bishop of
-Gloucester; Dr. J. Towers, Bishop of Peterborough; Dr. M. Owen, Bishop
-of Llandaff.
-
-In _Parl. Hist._, ii. 998, Warner is mentioned as Bishop of
-Peterborough, but he was Bishop of Rochester. See list of the thirteen
-impeached in August.
-
-[259] _Parl. Hist._, ii. 1080.
-
-[260] _Lords' Journals_, Feb. 16th.
-
-[261] It is related of this eccentric person that, as master of a
-household, he never allowed the presence of a female servant.--See
-_Worthies of Sussex, by Mark Antony Lower_.
-
-[262] _Harl. MSS._ in _Lysons_, iii. 56.
-
-[263] There is a curious letter from Towers, then Dean of Peterborough,
-dated December 30, 1633, in which he seeks to make interest with Sir
-John Lambe, Dean of the Arches, for the succession of the bishopric. He
-says he should be almost as glad to see his friend Dr. Sibthorpe in the
-deanery as himself in the palace. _State Papers Dom., Chas. I._
-
-[264] _Walker's Sufferings of the Clergy_, part ii. 78. The few
-particulars we have given respecting the bishops rest chiefly on his
-authority.
-
-[265] _Hacket's Memorial_, ii. 226.
-
-[266] The following _State Papers Dom._, (_Chas. I._), was written at
-the same time:--
-
-"Sir--What passeth in Scotland I presume you have already understood
-from Mr. Bere, so that I shall only say, that I believe the great plot
-there may prove much ado about nothing. Howsoever I am advertised that
-all the distractions thereupon have suddenly composed, which gives
-great hope of his Majesty's return ere it be long. Our Parliament, I
-mean the House of Commons, were very hot in getting the Lords to pass
-a bill which they had voted, and sent up against the bishops; but the
-news of a rebellion in Ireland made them cast that by, and ever since
-Saturday last both Houses have bestowed their time upon this business,
-and at length have concluded to send away the Lord Lieutenant speedily
-with 1,000 men and £50,000 in money, which is to be taken up of the
-city, if they can get it there, for the citizens of the best rank are
-at this time much discontented with the Parliament about protections,
-whereby they are stopped from getting in their debts to their great
-prejudice....
-
-"H. COGAN.
-
-"_Charing Cross, 4th Nov., 1641._"
-
-[267] Letter of Thos. Wiseman, dated 4th Nov., 1641. (_State Papers
-Dom., Chas. I._)
-
-This letter discloses to us facts which were the subject of many
-a letter, and many a conversation in the autumn of 1641. Public
-indignation was awakened by these atrocities in a way resembling that
-with which we were all sadly familiar at the period of the Indian
-massacre.
-
-[268] _Mant's History of the Church of Ireland_, i. 467, 470.
-
-[269] _Bramhall's Works_, i., _letters_, p. 79. The Lord Deputy's
-letter in 1634 also gives a lamentable description.--_Strafford's
-Letters_, i. 187. See also _Petition of Irish Convocation_.--_Collier_,
-ii. 763.
-
-[270] _Mant's Church of Ireland_, i. 548.
-
-[271] _Rushworth_, iv. 406.
-
-[272] For the Roman Catholic view of the case, see _Lingard's History
-of England_, x. 41.
-
-[273] _Lister's Autobiography_, 7. The places named are on the great
-highway from South Lancashire to Halifax.
-
-[274] _Calamy's Ejected Ministers_, i. 45.
-
-[275] _Nalson_, ii. 647-688. Cogan (servant to some one addressed by
-Nicholas as Rt. Honble.) in a letter dated Charing Cross, November
-18, 1641, after relating the story told by the tailor of White Cross
-Street, continues--"he went with all speed to the House of Commons,
-unto whom being with great importunity admitted, he at large related
-all the aforesaid passages, and withal shewed in how many places of
-his cloak and clothes he was run through; and after long examination
-of him they sent him up unto the Lords, who in like manner questioned
-him a long time, and ever since there hath been a great coil about the
-finding out of this matter, by searching of Recusants' houses, as my
-Lord of Worcester's in the Strand, St. Basil Brooke's, and others. Now,
-whether this be a truth or an imposture, time will resolve."
-
-[276] _Nalson_, ii. 673. Dering's subsequent history does not belong to
-our pages. It is enough to say he was expelled the House, his published
-speeches were burnt by the hangman, he joined the King, and served in
-the army; and then, after all, made his peace with the Parliament.
-
-[277] _Clarendon_, 433.
-
-[278] _Macaulay's Essays_, i. 160.
-
-[279] Quoted in _Forster's Grand Remonstrance_, 172.
-
-[280] As to Royalists of the mean and selfish class, see _Brodie_, iii.
-344-354.
-
-[281] _Parl. Hist._, ii. 990.
-
-[282] _Nalson_, ii. 673.
-
-[283] _Letters_ of the 13th and 14th of January, in the State Paper
-Office, indicate the excitement of the period, and the uncertainty felt
-about the King's movements.
-
-[284] _State Papers Dom._, under date January 13, 1642. Parts of this
-letter, of which I have not transcribed the whole, are inserted by
-Mr. Forster in his _Arrest of the Five Members_. I had intended to
-introduce other interesting letters of that date, but as they are
-already printed by him, I refer the reader to his pages.
-
-[285] March 28, 1642.--A conference was held respecting a petition from
-Kent, which prayed for a restoration of the Bishops, and the Liturgy,
-&c., &c. Some parts of the petition were voted scandalous, dangerous,
-and tending to sedition.--_Lords' Journal._
-
-April 21.--Both Houses made a curious order against
-counter-petitions--"As no man ought to petition for the Government
-established by law because he has already his wish; but they that
-desire an alteration cannot otherwise have their desires known, and
-therefore are to be countenanced."
-
-April 28.--The Commons, by Mr. Oliver Cromwell, acquaint the Lords
-"that a great meeting is to be held next day on Blackheath, to back the
-rejected Kentish petition." 30--"The Men of Kent come to the House,
-and again present their petition formerly burnt. Several are committed
-to the Gate House and Fleet."--_Parry's Parliaments and Councils of
-England_, 385, 386.
-
-[286] This appears from a letter by Slingsby.--_State Papers_, December
-2, 1641.
-
-[287] _Rushworth_, iv. 498.
-
-[288] See also _Neal_, ii. chap. xii., and _May_, 247-265.
-
-[289] July 28, 1642--The Lords give judgment against John Marston,
-Clerk, who had said--"The Parliament set forth flams to cozen and
-cheat the country and get their money, &c. He is deprived of all
-ecclesiastical preferments; made incapable hereafter to hold place or
-dignity in Church or Commonwealth; imprisoned in the Gatehouse; and
-ordered to give sureties."--_Parliaments and Councils of England_, 396.
-
-[290] The Royalists sometimes appealed to Scripture.--There is amongst
-the _State Papers_, one containing texts of Scripture relating to royal
-authority:--1. Pray for the King; 2. Speak not evil of the King; 3.
-Exalt not thyself against the King; 4. The King's confidence in God; 5.
-The King loveth judgment; 6. The King ought to be feared; 7. God's care
-of his anointed; 8. Punishment of his adversaries; 9. Exhortation to
-obedience; 10. His triumph and thanksgiving.
-
-There is also a paper of arguments in defence of taking up arms in
-maintenance of the true reformed religion:--From the law of nature.
-From Divine authority out of God's word. From human authority;
-Citations from fathers, &c. From reason. From practice of Reformed
-kirks, France, Holland, Germany, Bohemia, Switzerland, Hungary, and
-Sweden, which had all taken up arms for defence of religion against
-authority. From the custom of Kings in Reformed kirks--Elizabeth
-against Spain--James, in his _Basilicon_, approves reforming of
-Scotland--Charles sent a naval force to help French Protestants.
-
-[291] I may add the following sentence from _Hook's Lives of the
-Archbishops of Canterbury_, iii. 291:--"The first lawyer whose writings
-we possess, Bracton, asserts, '_Lex omnium Rex_.' A king not less than
-a subject may be a traitor."
-
-[292] _Parl. Hist._, ii. 1168.
-
-[293] These papers are given in full by _Rushworth_, iv. 624, 722. They
-are also to be found in _Neal_, ii. 553, 556, 563, as extracts from
-_Rushworth_, though much condensed.
-
-[294] _Rushworth_, iv. 733.
-
-[295] In the _Weekly Intelligencer_, October 18, 1642, mention is made
-of a woman called Moll Cutpurse, who wore both, saying she was for King
-and Parliament, too.
-
-[296] "_Powers to be resisted_, or a dialogue arguing the Parliament's
-lawful resistance of the powers now in arms against them, and that
-archbishops, bishops, curates, neuters, all these are to be cut off
-by the law of God, therefore to be cast out by the law of the land,
-etc."--London, 1643. p. 13.
-
-See also John Goodwin's _Anti-cavalierisme_.
-
-That the people have a right to resist their rulers when they do wrong
-was a common opinion amongst Reformers in Mary's reign. See _Maitland's
-Essays on Reformation in England_, vi.
-
-[297] All these particulars are mentioned in pamphlets of the King's
-collection.--British Museum, years 1642, 1643. Marvels and Monsters
-were rife at the time of the Reformation.--_Maitland's Essays_, 184.
-
-[298] A list of contributors is printed in _Choice Notes, Historical_,
-p. 55.
-
-[299] Such a contribution from William Bridge and his family is
-described in the _Yarmouth Corporation Records_.
-
-[300] Baxter assigns a number of reasons which induced godly people
-to take side with the Parliament.--_Life and Times_, part i. 33. Mrs.
-Hutchinson, in the _Memoirs_ of her husband, gives amusing sketches of
-some who joined that party for sinister ends, pp. 105-116. _The Life of
-Adam Martindale_, p. 31, indicates how Royalists sought shelter amidst
-Parliamentarians.
-
-[301] It is worthy of remark that Cromwell began his military course
-at about forty, the same age as that at which Cæsar commenced his
-victories. Cæsar, however, when a young man, had served in the army,
-which Cromwell had not. It is a curious parallel that both should have
-been such successful soldiers after so long an engagement in peaceful
-occupations. Both died at the age of about fifty-five.
-
-[302] _Rushworth_, v. 39.
-
-[303] A small volume was published containing portions of Scripture,
-and was entitled _The Souldier's Pocket Bible_.
-
-[304] As to the presence of Roman Catholics in the two armies, the
-following passages from Baxter and Hallam should be considered:--
-
-Baxter, whose prejudices against the army must be borne in mind when
-he refers to the subject, only expresses suspicion. "The most among
-Cromwell's soldiers that ever I could _suspect_ for Papists were but a
-few that began as strangers among the common soldiers, and by degrees
-rose up to some inferior offices, and were most conversant with the
-common soldiers; but none of the superior officers _seemed_ such,
-though seduced by them."--_Life and Times_, part i. 78.
-
-Hallam leans to the idea that the common reports had some foundation.
-He remarks: "It is probable that some foreign Catholics were in the
-Parliament's service. But Dodds says, with great appearance of truth,
-that no one English gentleman of that persuasion was in arms on their
-side.--_Church History of England_, iii. 28. He reports, as a matter
-of hearsay, that out of about 500 gentlemen who lost their lives for
-Charles in the civil war, 194 were Catholics. They were, doubtless, a
-very powerful faction in the court and army."--_Hallam's Const. Hist._
-i. 587.
-
-[305] _Hibbert's History of Manchester_, i. 210.
-
-[306] "_Some Special Passages from Warwickshire._" _King's Pamphlets,
-Brit. Mus. Acts and Orders_, i. 124.
-
-[307] _King's Pamphlets, Brit. Mus. Acts and Orders_, ii. 124.
-
-[308] _Rushworth_, iv. 783.
-
-[309] These were commenced by Mr. Case, of St. Mary Magdalen, Milk
-Street, and afterwards circulated from church to church for the
-convenience of the citizens.--_Neal_, ii. 592.
-
-[310] Letter of Nehemiah Wharton, dated Aylesbury, August the 16th,
-1642. Addressed to his much honoured friend, Mr. George Willingham,
-Merchant, at the Golden Anchor, Swithin Lane.--_State Papers, Chas. I.,
-Dom._
-
-[311] In a letter, dated September 7, Wharton says of Northampton, for
-situation, circuit, stateliness of buildings, it exceeds Coventry, but
-the walls are miserably ruined though the country abounds in mines
-of stone. He also complains of certain soldiers of his regiment who
-discovered their base ends by declaring they would surrender their arms
-unless they received five shillings a man, which they said was promised
-them monthly by the committee. He alludes further to dissensions
-between foot and horse soldiers. In another letter he mentions a
-soldier's winter suit made for him, "edged with gold and silver lace,"
-which he hoped he should never stain but in the blood of a cavalier.
-
-[312] Letter of William Harrison, Berwick, dated 7th Sept., 1642, to
-his good friend Mr. Thomas Davison, at London.--_State Papers, Chas.
-I., Dom._
-
-[313] _Whitelocke's Memorials_, 65.
-
-[314] _Rushworth_, v. 35. _Baxter's Life and Times_, part i. 43.
-
-[315] _Parl. Hist._, ii. 1495-1504.
-
-[316] _Whitelocke_, 65. _Sanford's Illustrations_, 535.
-
-[317] _Rushworth_, v. 81.
-
-[318] November 26th.--_Rushworth_, v. 69-71.
-
-[319] _Parl. Hist._, iii. 59.
-
-[320] The speech is printed in the _Harleian Miscellany_, v. 224.
-
-[321] _Calamy's Continuation_, ii. 737.
-
-[322] Edmund Calamy, the popular clergyman of the Commonwealth, was
-grandfather to the historian of that name.
-
-[323] _The Loyal Satirist.--Somers' Tracts_, vii. 68.
-
-[324] August 3, 1642.--_Rushworth_, v. 388.
-
-[325] _Parl. Hist._, ii. 1465.
-
-[326] On the 20th of January Maynard "spoke very earnestly that we
-should not abolish the jurisdiction of bishops until we had replaced
-another government in the Church: which he thought would not be very
-soon agreed upon, some being for a presbytery, some for an independent
-government, and others for he knew not what."--_Harl. MSS._, clxiv. p.
-1078, A. B. _Sanford's Illustrations_, 550.
-
-[327] See _Commons' Journal_ and _Lords' Journal_.
-
-[328] _Baillie's Letters and Journals_, ii. 58.
-
-[329] _Rushworth_, v. 399-406. The papers were presented in February,
-1642-3. The petition bears date 4th of January.
-
-[330] _Memorials_, 67. The safe conduct bears date 28th of January,
-1642-3.
-
-[331] _Rushworth_, v. 166-169.
-
-[332] _Hist._, 962.
-
-[333] _Rushworth_, v. 459.
-
-[334] _Baillie's Letters_, ii. 66, 67.
-
-[335] _Letters and Journals_, i. 287.
-
-[336] _Nalson_, ii. 766. Thomas Fuller advocated the calling of a
-synod.--_Life, by Russell_, 124.
-
-[337] _Rushworth_, v. 337. _Husband_, 208.
-
-"There must be some laymen in the synod, to overlook the clergy, lest
-they spoil the civil work; just as when the good woman puts a cat into
-the milk house to kill a mouse, she sends her maid to look after the
-cat, lest the cat should eat up the cream."--_Selden's Table Talk_, 169.
-
-[338] Hacket, Bishop of Lichfield; Morley, Bishop of Winchester;
-Nicholson, Bishop of Gloucester; Prideaux, Bishop of Worcester;
-Reynolds, Bishop of Norwich.
-
-[339] _Calamy's Continuation_, i. 28.--Bancroft, on the authority of
-Winthrop, says that the colonial Churches of America were invited to
-send deputies to the Westminster Assembly. But Hooker, of Hartford,
-"'liked not the business,' and deemed it his duty rather to stay in
-quiet and obscurity with his people in Connecticut, than to turn
-propagandist and plead for Independency in England."--_United States_,
-i. 417. Did Philip Nye seek to strengthen the Independents in the
-Assembly by inviting brethren from America?
-
-[340] "It was almost implied in the meaning of the word. An 'Œcumenical
-Synod,' that is an 'Imperial gathering,' from the whole οἰκουμένη,
-or empire (for this was the technical meaning of the word, even
-in the Greek of the New Testament) could be convened only by the
-emperor."--_Stanley's Lectures on the Eastern Church_, 80. The first
-council of Arles, inferior only to a General Council, was called by the
-Emperor Constantine.--_Euseb. Hist._, _lib._ x. _c._ v.
-
-[341] The Divines were allowed by the Parliamentary ordinance four
-shillings a day.
-
-[342] Perhaps some one better versed in the controversy touching powers
-of Convocation than I am might shew that, after all, the power of
-decision, and the liberty of discussion in the two Houses, do not far
-exceed what was allowed to the Westminster Assembly. It is admitted
-on all hands that Convocation cannot meet without a royal writ, nor
-make canons without licence, nor publish them without confirmation by
-the Great Seal, and some contend that Convocation may not even discuss
-any matters _without royal licence_.--See _Lathbury's History of
-Convocation_, 112.
-
-While I am revising this book for the press, I find the following in
-to-day's _Times_, January 11th, 1866: "Convocation is nothing more
-whatever than a general commission of enquiry into the affairs of the
-Church empowered to report its opinions to the Crown." Change "Crown"
-into "Parliament," and this passage describes the Westminster Assembly,
-so far as its power was concerned.
-
-[343] _Rushworth_, v. 339. It does not appear clearly whether the
-sermon was delivered in the abbey or the chapel. Rushworth, after
-mentioning the sermon and the presence of the two Houses, says of the
-Divines, "After which they assembled in the said chapel:" as if the
-"Houses" had heard the sermon in some other part of the abbey.
-
-I do not find any notice of Twiss's sermon in the list of his works.
-
-[344] The Upper House of Convocation met in Henry the Seventh's Chapel
-both in 1572 and in 1640.--_Gibson's Synodus Anglicanus._
-
-[345] Washington Irving.
-
-[346] _Fuller's Church History_, iii. 448.
-
-[347] _Neal_, iii. 60.
-
-[348] _Journal of the Assembly. Lightfoot's Works_, xiii. 3.
-
-[349] This was Mr. John White, of Dorchester, great grandfather of John
-and Charles Wesley.--See _Kirk's Mother of the Wesleys_, 18.
-
-[350] _Lightfoot_, xiii. 7-9. _Hetherington's History of the
-Westminster Assembly_, p. 114.
-
-[351] This will be inserted in the Appendix.
-
-[352] _True and faithful Narrative of the Death of Master Hampden_,
-quoted in _Nugent's Life of Hampden_, 363.
-
-[353] Scarborough church was stormed in 1644 by the Parliament
-soldiers, and afterwards fortified by them. It is remarkable to find
-church towers so constructed, as to shew they were intended for warlike
-purposes. Melsonby and Middleham, in Yorkshire, and Harlestone, in
-Northamptonshire, are examples.--_Poole's Ecclesiastical Architecture_,
-358.
-
-[354] _Joseph Lister's Narrative_, 23. Bradford was taken on the 2nd of
-July.
-
-[355] _Hist._, 416.
-
-[356] _Rushworth_, v. 287.
-
-[357] _Rushworth_, v. 290. _Calamy's Account_, ii. 675. _Palmer's Non.
-Con. Mem._ ii. 467.
-
-[358] _Rushworth_, v. 344.
-
-[359] _Sanford's Illustrations_, 575.
-
-[360] _David's Annals of Nonconformity in Essex_, 535.
-
-[361] _Vol._ ii. 103, &c.
-
-[362] Instructions given are inserted in _Parl. Hist._, iii. 151.
-
-[363] _Baillie_, ii. 88, 97.
-
-[364] _Baxter's Life and Times_, p. i. 48.--He adds that this public
-explication was given by Mr. Coleman, when preaching on the Covenant to
-the House of Lords: "That by prelacy we mean not all Episcopacy, but
-only the form which is here described."
-
-On the 12th of September, the Solemn League and Covenant was proposed
-to the Parliament, who, on the 21st, ordered it to be printed.
-
-On the 20th, the Lords declared that none shall have command till they
-have taken the Covenant.
-
-[365] _II. Chron._ xv. 12, 14, 15.--The 15th verse is printed with
-two other texts on the title page of the Solemn League and Covenant,
-published Sept. 22nd, 1643.
-
-[366] _Cunninghame's History of the Church of Scotland_, i. 315, ii. 81.
-
-[367] The Solemn League and Covenant will be inserted in the Appendix.
-
-[368] _Nye's Exhortation_ was published, and a portion of it, extolling
-the Covenant, may be seen in _Hanbury's Memorials_, ii. 215.
-
-[369] Gouge was a Puritan divine who died in 1653, after being minister
-of Blackfriars nearly forty-six years.
-
-[370] In the State Paper Office is the following letter written by
-Falkland in the spring of the year.
-
-"Sir,--If my health were not so ill as yours, with all my business to
-boot, I should not hope to be excused for being so slow in giving you
-thanks for two so great favours. I heartily wish we were in a condition
-of being able to make use of any good inclinations to us beyond sea,
-and perhaps they are the kinder, because they find it safe to be
-so, whilst we are as we are, that is, unable to take them at their
-words, and make use of their kindness. Of Mr. Wightman's commitment I
-never heard before I read your letter: the petition for him is in Mr.
-Secretary's hands, but I will assist it to my power; though I conceive
-it indiscreetly done of the Company to send so obnoxious a person, and
-yet more indiscreetly done of him to be sent, who could not but know
-that he was such. My desire of peace, and my opinion of the way to it,
-agree wholly with yours, for which I congratulate with myself, and wish
-the second followed (but both sides must then contribute) that the
-first might be obtained, and I might then have occasion to congratulate
-with the kingdom too. His Majesty hath commanded me to let you know
-that he is very sensible of your present condition, and that he is
-sorry for nothing more than that his friends (especially so honest and
-deserving a man) should be in danger for being so, and be not able to
-protect them, but that if retiring of yourself hither out of their
-power would stand with your occasions, he assures you, you shall be
-very welcome, but what to advise you, if you stay, I find he knows not,
-and I am sure I know as little. I wish, whether you stay or come, it
-might be in my power to serve you. I assure you, Sir, if there were
-any occasion of doing it by my readiness to catch at, and my diligence
-in pursuing it, you should find what I must now desire you to believe,
-that I am, Sir, your very really humble Servant,
-
-FALKLAND.
-
-"18th April."
-
-(Addressed) "For the Right Honourable Sir Thomas Rowe, Knight, one of
-His Majesty's most honourable Privy Council."--_Dom. Car._ i., April
-18, 1643.
-
-[371] _Rushworth_, v. 486.
-
-[372] _Perfect Diurnal_, 2nd of Sept., 1643.
-
-[373] _Baillie's Letters_, ii. 99, 113-115.
-
-[374] _Rushworth_, v. 358.
-
-[375] "Horses have stood ready in several stables, and almost
-eaten out their heads, for those that were to go with the news to
-Oxford."--_Parliament Scout._
-
-[376] The Diurnals which supply these statements are not trustworthy.
-
-[377] Amongst the _State Papers_ is the following programme, or, as it
-is entituled, "The proceeding" of Mr. Pym's funeral:--
-
-Two Conductors. Servants in Cloaks. Friends in Cloaks. Esquires.
-Knights. Baronets. Divines. The Preacher. _The Pennon borne by_ Mr.
-Faulconer. Rouge Dragon _Helm and crest_. Lancaster _Coat of arms_.
-+---------+ | | | The | Supporters | | to the Pal | Body. | | | Mr.
-Anth. Rous, _supporter_. | | Mr. Chas. Pym, _supporter_. +---------+
-Mr. Alex. Pym, _chief mourner_. Mr. Simons and Mr. Nicholls. Mr. Askew.
-Mrs. Symons and Mrs. Katherine Pym, and other Ladies and Gentlemen.
-Then the Lords. Then the Speaker of the House of Commons.
-
-An endorsement shews that the three officers of arms allowed by the
-committee for this funeral were appointed £20 apiece, making a sum of
-£60. The following names also appear on the back of the document: Mr.
-Solicitor, Sir Arthur Haslerigge, Sir John Clotworthy, Mr. Knightley,
-Sir Gilbert Gerard, Sir Harry Vane, Mr. Stroud. Probably all these were
-present.
-
-[378] Pym defended himself against imputations on his religious
-character, by saying that he had ever been a faithful son to the
-Protestant religion, without the least relation in his belief to the
-gross errors of Anabaptism or Brownism. He had sought a reformation of
-the Church of England--but not its overthrow. Neither envy nor private
-grudge against the bishops, who were personally inimical to him, made
-him averse to their functions, but only his zeal for religion, which he
-saw injured by the too extended authority of the prelates, who should
-have been upright and humble, "shearing their flocks and not flaying
-them."--_Rushworth_, v. 378.
-
-Marshall in his _Sermon_ and Baxter in his _Saint's Rest_ would not
-have spoken of Pym as they did, had they not been satisfied that
-charges against his moral character were utterly untrue. Marshall
-includes chastity in the catalogue of his virtues. I can find no proof
-of anything improper in his intimacy with the Countess of Carlisle. For
-extracts from _Marshall's Sermons_, and the _Diurnals_, see _Forster's
-British Statesmen_, vol. ii. 294-302.
-
-[379] Baillie says: "The plottings are incessant."--_Letters and
-Journals_, ii. 132.
-
-[380] This is stated in a curious book, called _Magnalia Dei Anglicana;
-or, England's Parliamentary Chronicle_, by John Vicars, part iii.,
-entitled _God's Ark Overtopping the World's Waves_, 135. A full account
-of these plots is given from the writer's own point of view. Vicars was
-a violent Presbyterian, and his book is full of party prejudice and
-curious information. Baillie notices these plots pretty fully, ii. 137.
-
-[381] Mr. Nye and Mr. Goodwin entered into conference with Ogle only
-that they might entrap him. In the Journal of the House of Commons,
-January 26th, 1643-4, it is recorded "that Mr. Goodwin, Mr. Nye, with
-the privity of my Lord General and some members of the House, had
-conference with Ogle--Resolved, 'that it doth appear upon the whole
-matter, that the King and his council at Oxford do endeavour and
-embrace all ways to raise and ferment divisions betwixt us and our
-brethren of Scotland, and amongst ourselves under the fair pretences
-of easing tender consciences; that during these fair pretences their
-immediate design was the ruin of the kingdom by the destroying and
-burning the magazines thereof; that thanks be returned to Mr. Nye and
-Mr. Goodwin from both Houses.'" We learn from Baillie, ii. 137, that
-_John_ Goodwin is the person here intended.
-
-[382] _State Papers_, April 13, 1651. Bundle 646. Ogle is here styled
-"Colonel."
-
-[383] _Vicars' Chronicle_, iii.
-
-[384] _Vicars' Chronicle_, iii. 128, _Baillie_, ii. 134, and _Perfect
-Diurnal_. In the _Perfect Diurnal_ of Thursday, June 19th, 1645, there
-is an account of another City feast. After dinner, and grace said by
-Mr. Marshall, both Houses of Parliament, the Assembly of Divines, the
-Aldermen of the City, and all the rest being assembled in the hall,
-they sung the 46th Psalm, and after that they departed.
-
-[385] Mr. Bruen, of Tarvin, in the Deanery of Chester, an eminent
-Puritan (born 1560, died 1625) "the phœnix of his age," distinguished
-himself as an iconoclast. Finding in his own chapel superstitious
-images, and idolatrous pictures in the painted windows, and they so
-thick and dark that there was, as he himself says, "scarce the breadth
-of a groat of white glass amongst them," took orders to pull them down,
-indeed by the Queen's injunctions utterly to extinguish and destroy all
-pictures, paintings, and other monuments of idolatry and superstition,
-so that there might remain no memory of the same in the walls, glass
-windows, or elsewhere within their churches and houses. The Bible
-and ecclesiastical history are appealed to as further authorities.
-_Theodosius abscondit simulacra gentium, omnes enim cultus idolorum
-cultus ejus abscondit; omnes eorum ceremonias obliteravit. Ambrosii
-Orat. in Mort. Theo._--See _Hinde's Life of Bruen_.
-
-[386] _Rushworth_, v. 358.
-
-[387] _Oct 3. P. Diurnal._ "The Commons, for the better taking away
-of superstitious ceremonies in churches, as in wearing the surplice
-and the like; which they had noticed (notwithstanding all former
-orders) was still used in sundry places--especially at the Abbey of
-Westminster--agreed in a further order, for the taking away of all
-copes and surplices, belonging to the said Abbey of Westminster, and to
-forbid the wearing of them in that or any other church or cathedral in
-England."
-
-[388] Laud was at work upon the restoration of St. Paul's in 1640, "the
-whole body was finished with Portland stone excellent against all smoke
-and weather, and the tower scaffolded up to the top with purpose to
-take it all down and to rebuild it more fair." After his apprehension
-"the scaffolds were taken away and sold, with some of the lead which
-covered this famous structure."--_Chamberlayne's Anglica Notitia_, part
-ii. 155.
-
-In the State Paper Office there is a document by Montague, Bishop of
-Chichester, containing an exhortation to the clergy of his diocese,
-giving thirteen reasons for their contributing to the fund for
-repairing the Cathedral of St. Paul. He dwells upon the dignity of St.
-Paul's as, in a sort, the mother church of the kingdom, and stimulates
-the persons addressed to liberality by a consideration of what was done
-by their predecessors.--_Calendar_, 1633-4, 384.
-
-[389] _1643, May 27._--Resolved, an ordinance for borrowing the plate
-in all cathedrals superstitiously used upon their altars.
-
-_1644, April 24._--Ordered, the mitre and crosier staff found in St.
-Paul's Church to be forthwith sold, and the brass and iron in Henry the
-Seventh's Chapel.--_Parry's Councils and Parliaments._
-
-Whatever was now done in St. Paul's, worse things had been done
-there and elsewhere at the time of the Reformation.--See _Strype's
-Cranmer_, i. 251. Besides spoiling, embezzling, and taking away
-ornaments, he says, "they used also commonly to bring horses and mules
-into and through churches, and shooting off hand guns." It should be
-recollected, that the Puritans of the seventeenth century were familiar
-with such memories, and that reverence for sacred places had long been
-on the decline.
-
-[390] Corporation Records in the Guildhall.
-
-[391] _Hard Measure_, prefixed to _Hall's Works_, p. xviii. The
-proceedings at Norwich were of an infamous description, yet more
-shameful acts had been perpetrated by the Roman Catholic fathers of
-these very citizens. In 1272, we are told "_Quam plures de familia,
-aliquos subdiacanos, aliquos clericos, aliquos laicos in claustro
-et infra septa monasterii interfecerunt; aliquos extraxerunt et in
-civitate morti tradiderunt, aliquos incarceraverunt. Post quæ ingressi,
-omnia sacra vasa, libros, aurum, et argentum, vestes et omnia alia quæ
-non fuerunt igne consumpta depradati fuerunt: monachos omnes, præter
-duos vel tres, a monasterio fugantes._"--_Anglia Sacra_, i. 399.
-
-[392] The following appears in the records of the Norwich Corporation:
-"Ordered that the churchwardens shall demolish the stump cross at St.
-Saviour's, and take the stones thereof for the use of the city."
-
-[393] _Calamy's Abridgment of Baxter_, 24.
-
-[394] _Memoirs of Colonel Hutchinson_, p. 80.
-
-[395] This was in spite of orders "to do no injury to the church."
-Before these wars the cathedral suffered through neglect, as appears
-from a draft letter written by Archbishop Laud to the dean and chapter,
-in the name of the King, complaining that the dotations and allowances
-were very mean, and that there was "little left to keep so goodly a
-fabric in sufficient reparation."--_State Papers, Domestic_. (undated)
-vol. cclxxxi. 57.
-
-[396] Mr. Britton asserts that numbers were removed when the cathedral
-underwent repairs in 1786. Two tons of brass were taken to the
-brazier's shop.--_Winkle's Cathedrals_, iii. 43.
-
-[397] _Poole's History of Ecclesiastical Architecture_, p. 260.
-
-All the mutilation of statues must not be put down to the Puritan
-account, nor the destruction of the mosaic pavement in the choir. "One
-half of its eastern border was entirely destroyed when the altar-piece
-was put up at the commencement of the last century." The rest but
-narrowly escaped.--_Neale's History and Antiquities of Westminster
-Abbey_, p. 20.
-
-Oliver Cromwell has been charged with despoiling the tomb of Henry V.,
-but we read in _Stowe's Annals_: "A royal image of silver and gilt was
-laid upon his tomb, which Queen Catherine his wife caused to be made
-for him; but about the latter end of King Henry VIII., the head of the
-king's image being of massy silver, was broken off and conveyed clean
-away, with the plates of silver and gilt that covered his body." p. 363.
-
-It is a common story amongst cathedral vergers, that Cromwell turned
-churches into stables. Like stories are told in the East, with
-judgments superadded. "It was related to us by our Tartar, that about
-fifty years ago, Tamr Pasha turned the church into a stable, _and next
-morning all his horses were found dead_."--_Badger's Nestorians_, i. 68.
-
-[398] It appears from the following entry that when the wars were over,
-the cathedral was desecrated by being made a prison. "That a letter be
-written to the Mayor of Salisbury, to let him know that the Council are
-informed that the Dutch prisoners who were lately sent to the town, to
-be kept there, have done much spoil upon the pillars of the cloisters,
-and to the windows of the library there, being committed to custody in
-that place, and also that by reason that due care hath not been had
-over them, some of them have escaped, &c." _October 10, 1653._--_State
-Papers, Order Book of Council._
-
-[399] Again we may remark that like excesses had been committed in
-Roman Catholic times. In the annals of Rochester, 1264, we find:
-"_Portæ, siquidem, ejus circumquque exustæ sunt, chorus ejus in luctum,
-et organa ejus in vocem flentium sunt concitata. Quid pluras, loca
-sacra, utpote oratoria, claustra, capitulum infirmaria, et oracula
-quæque divina, stabula equorum sunt effecta; et animalium immunditiis
-spurcitiisque cadaverum ubique sunt repleta._"--_Anglia Sacra_, i. 351.
-
-After the Reformation Ridley was prevented from giving Grindal a
-prebend in St. Paul's by the King's Council, who had bestowed it on
-the King, for the furniture of his stable.--_Blunt's History of the
-Reformation_, 244.
-
-In 1561, according to Strype, the south aisle of the cathedral was used
-for a horse fair.
-
-[400] _Rushworth_, v. 476.
-
-Instructions were given for the taking of the Covenant throughout the
-kingdom, "the manner of the taking it to be thus:--The minister to read
-the whole Covenant distinctly and audibly in the pulpit, and during the
-time of the reading thereof the whole congregation to be uncovered; and
-at the end of his reading thereof, all to take it standing, lifting up
-their right hands bare, and then afterwards to subscribe it severally
-by writing their names (or their marks, to which their names are to be
-added) in a parchment roll or a book, whereinto the Covenant is to be
-inserted, purposely provided for that end, and kept as a record in the
-parish."--_Husband's Collection_, 421.
-
-[401] _Husband's Coll._, 416.
-
-[402] _Neal_, iii. 81.
-
-[403] _Husband's Coll._, 404.
-
-[404] In the State Paper Office are additional instructions, (dated
-March 6th, 1643-4,) to the Earl of Rutland, Sir W. Armyn, Bart., Sir
-H. Vane, and others, to declare to our brethren of Scotland that the
-Parliament have settled a course for taking the late Solemn League and
-Covenant throughout this kingdom and dominion of Wales, "we do hereby
-give you full power and authority by yourselves, or such as you shall
-appoint, to cause the said League and Covenant to be taken throughout
-the several places and counties where you shall come."
-
-Vane, on the scaffold, said, respecting the Covenant: "The holy
-ends therein contained I fully assent to, and have been as desirous
-to observe; but the rigid way of prosecuting it and the oppressing
-uniformity that hath been endeavoured by it, I never approved."
-
-Wood states, (_Ath. Ox._, ii. 84), that Strode made a motion to the
-effect, "that all those that refused the Covenant, (being certain
-ill-wishers to the laws and liberties of this kingdom,) might,
-therefore, have no benefit of those laws and liberties." He adds, "that
-motion being somewhat too desperate, was waived for the present, and
-took no effect."
-
-[405] See _Sermon on Solemn League and Covenant, by
-Saltmarsh_.--_Tracts in Brit. Mus._, vol. 253.
-
-[406] These also are in the British Museum; I think in the same volume
-as the former.
-
-[407] Bishop Hall went on ordaining Episcopal clergymen in spite of
-the Covenant. He says: "The synodals both in Norfolk and Suffolk, and
-all the spiritual profits of the diocese were also kept back, only
-ordinations and institutions continued awhile. But after the Covenant
-was appointed to be taken, and was generally swallowed of both clergy
-and laity, my power of ordination was with some strange violence
-restrained; for when I was going on in my wonted course, which no law
-or ordinance had inhibited, certain forward volunteers in the city,
-banding together, stir up the mayor, and aldermen, and sheriffs, to
-call me to an account for an open violation of their Covenant."--_Hard
-Measure, Hall's Works_, p. xvii.
-
-[408] _Memoirs of the Life of Col. Hutchinson_, 143-191.
-
-[409] _Mant's History of the Church of Ireland_, i. 580.
-
-[410] Eusebius observes, in his Epistle respecting the Nicene Creed,
-that he and his friends did not refuse to adopt the word ὁμοούσιος,
-"_peace being the end in view_, as well as the not falling away from
-sound doctrine." He excused the damnatory clause, simply on the
-ground that it aggrieved none by prohibiting the use of unscriptural
-phraseology.--_Socrates' Ecc. Hist._, b. i. c. 8.
-
-[411] "Epistle" by John Canne, quoted in _Hanbury's Memorials_, iii.
-380-386.
-
-The following passage occurs in a paper by the Dissenting Brethren
-in 1646, also quoted in _Hanbury_, iii. 62:--"This Covenant was
-professedly so attempered in the first framing of it, as that we of
-different judgments might take it, both parties being present at
-the framing of it in Scotland." "It is as free for us to give our
-interpretation of the latitude or nearness of uniformity intended, as
-for our brethren."
-
-[412] The following passages illustrate the state of public feeling in
-reference to the Covenant:--
-
-"Men cry shame on the Covenant. Those that took it down cast it up
-again, and those that refuse it have given a world of arguments that
-it is unreasonable, which arguments our Assembly, like dull, ignorant
-rascals, never answered. I know, my Lords, many of our friends never
-took this oath, but they refused it out of mere conscience." ... "I
-hold the Covenanters extremely reasonable. Though some malignants take
-it, yet many refuse it; and, as some who love us do hate the Covenant,
-so some who hate us do take it. Yet our friends who hate it do love to
-force others to it, for their hatred to malignants is more than to the
-Covenant; and, as the one takes it to save his estate, so do others
-give it to make him lose his estate. They both love the estate, and
-both hate the Covenant."--_A learned Speech spoken in the House of
-Peers by the Earl of Pembroke and Montgomery upon the 28th July last,
-taken out of Michael Ouldsworth's own Copy. State Papers, 1647._
-
-"All this while I did not take the National Covenant, not because I
-refused to do, for I would have made no bones to take, swear, and
-sign it, and observe it too, for I had then a principle, having not
-yet studied a better one, that I wronged not my conscience in doing
-any thing I was commanded to do by those whom I served. But the truth
-is, it was never offered to me, every one thinking it was impossible
-I could get any charge, unless I had taken the Covenant either in
-Scotland or England."--_Sir James Turner's Memoirs of his own Life and
-Times, published by the Bannatyne Club_, 16.
-
-Turner was a Royalist.
-
-[413] _Journals._, Sept. 21st.--It was resolved by the Commons: That
-the Assembly of godly Divines, who, by Ordinance, July 1st, 1643, met
-in King Henry the Seventh's Chapel, shall, in respect of the coldness
-of the said chapel, have power to adjourn themselves to the Jerusalem
-Chamber, in the College of Westminster.
-
-[414] For some of this information I am indebted to the kindness of the
-Dean of Westminster.
-
-[415] _Baillie's Letters_, ii. 108, 109.
-
-[416] This is stated on the authority of _Brook's Lives_, iii. 15. His
-account of Twiss's illness is confused, so is _Clark's_ (_Lives_, p.
-17,) to which Brook refers.
-
-[417] As Erastianism is a word vaguely used, I subjoin the principal
-theses in the _Book on Excommunication_, by Erastus, and his own
-account of the occasion of his writing it.
-
-"Excommunication is nothing else but a public and solemn exclusion from
-the sacraments, especially the Lord's Supper, after an investigation by
-the elders."--Thesis viii.
-
-"In the Old Testament none were debarred from the sacraments on account
-of immorality of conduct."--Thesis xxiii.
-
-"Christ did not hinder Judas, who betrayed Him, from eating the paschal
-lamb."--Thesis xxviii.
-
-"It is not the will of Christ that His kingdom in these lands should be
-circumscribed within narrower limits than He appointed for it anciently
-amongst the Jews."--Thesis xxxi.
-
-"As in the account given of the celebration of the sacraments we see
-no mention is made of excommunication, so neither in the history
-of their institution can anything warranting that practice be
-discovered."--Thesis xxxvii.
-
-"'Tell it to the church' means nothing else than tell it to the
-magistrate of thy own people."--Thesis lii.
-
-"I see no reason why the Christian magistrate at the present day should
-not possess the same power which God commanded the magistrate to
-exercise in the Jewish commonwealth."--Thesis lxxii.
-
-"If then the Christian magistrate possesses not only authority
-to settle religion according to the directions given in the Holy
-Scriptures, and to arrange the ministries thereof, but also, in like
-manner, to punish crimes, in vain do some among us now meditate the
-setting up of a new kind of tribunal, which would bring down the
-magistrate himself to the rank of a subject of other men."--Thesis
-lxxiv.
-
-According to Erastus, an ignorant man, a heretic, or an apostate should
-be excluded from the sacraments. But sins were to be punished by the
-civil magistrate.
-
-The theses were handed about in MS., and not published till 1589--six
-years after the death of the author--with only the fictitious name
-"Pesclavii," 1589. The work was reprinted at Amsterdam, in 1649. Two
-old English translations exist, published in 1659 and 1682. There is a
-modern one by Rev. R. Lee, D.D., Edinburgh, 1844.
-
-The occasion of writing the theses, Erastus says, was a proposition
-that a select number of elders should sit in the name of the whole
-church, and judge who were fit to be admitted to the Lord's Supper,
-which he thought would introduce dangerous divisions.
-
-Theodore Beza wrote a reply, published at Geneva, 1590. Selden's views
-of excommunication in his _Table Talk_ (p. 56) are similar to those of
-Erastus, though not so full.
-
-Hobbes wrote his _Leviathan_ in 1651, in which he says (pt. iii., ch.
-42, p. 287, London edition), "The books of the New Testament, though
-most perfect _rules_ of Christian doctrine, could not be made _laws_ by
-any other authority than that of kings or sovereign assemblies." His
-doctrine with regard to Christianity is, that socially considered it is
-"good and safe advice," but not obligatory law till the government of a
-country shall make it so. This part of the philosopher's theory runs on
-the same line with Erastianism, only it is pushed further.
-
-[418] Altogether there were ten or eleven Independents in the Assembly.
-Baillie mentions Goodwin, Nye, Burroughs, Bridge, Carter, Caryl,
-Philips, and Sterry.--_Letters, &c._, ii. 110.
-
-[419] His works have been recently republished. His _Commentary on the
-Epistle to the Ephesians_ illustrates what is said here.
-
-[420] See _The Wounded Conscience Cured, &c.,_ by William Bridge,
-1642.
-
-[421] Baillie remarks: "Liberty of conscience, and toleration of all
-or any religion, is so prodigious an impiety, that this religious
-Parliament cannot but abhor the very naming of it. Whatever may be the
-opinions of John Goodwin, Mr. Williams, and some of that stamp, yet Mr.
-Burroughs, in his late _Irenicum_, upon many unanswerable arguments,
-explodes that abomination."--See _Tracts on Liberty of Conscience_, 270.
-
-[422] Neal says he died of consumption (_Hist._, iii. 377), but
-the following appears in the _Perfect Occurrences_, 13th November,
-1646:--"This day Mr. Burrows, the minister, a godly, reverend man,
-died. It seems he had a bruise by a fall from a horse some fortnight
-since; he fell into a fever, and of that fever died, and is by many
-godly people much lamented."
-
-[423] P. 190.
-
-[423] I do not attempt to vindicate this great man against the charge
-of inconsistency. One side of a subject was everything to him while
-he gazed at it. He had no faculty for harmonizing apparently opposite
-truths, and was apt, as ardent men are, to fall into errors, from which
-his clearly expressed opinion on certain points ought to have saved
-him. Mr. Hallam (_Literature of Europe_, iii. 112), in whose severe
-judgment of Taylor's inconsistency I cannot coincide, thinks that one
-inconsistent chapter, (the seventeenth) was interpolated after the
-rest of the treatise was complete. This is possible, but it is also
-possible that Taylor when first writing his book might suddenly swing
-from one side to the other, and then come round again. It has been
-said that Taylor forgot his liberality when he became a bishop. His
-biographer, Bishop Heber, attempts to meet this charge.--_Works_, i.
-30. It may be added, that the _Dissuasive from Popery_, published in
-1664, proceeds on the same principles as the _Liberty of Prophesying_.
-See _Dissuasive_, part ii. book i.--_Works_, x. 383.
-
-How Taylor's work was regarded by a Royalist and an Episcopalian may be
-seen in _Mrs. Sadleir's Letter to Roger Williams_. "I have also read
-Taylor's book of the _Liberty of Prophesying_, though it please not me,
-yet I am sure it does you, or else I know you would not have wrote to
-me to have read it. I say, it and you would make a good fire. But have
-you seen his 'Divine Institution of the Office Ministerial?'" _Life of
-Roger Williams_, 99. Mrs. Sadleir was daughter of Sir Edward Coke. A
-writer in the _Ecclesiastic_, April, 1853, p. 179, remarks: "Whatever
-Taylor may have been thought of since, certainly his contemporaries
-amongst the Church party had no very high opinion of him."
-
-[425] Sermon preached before the House of Commons, March 31st, 1647.
-
-[426] _Ward's Life of Henry More_, 171. I have here confined myself to
-those in the Church of England who advocated toleration, pointing out
-the grounds which they adopted as distinguished from those occupied by
-the Independents. Others, who proceeded in the same advocacy on the
-broadest principles of justice, will be hereafter noticed, _i.e._, John
-Goodwin, Leonard Busher, and Sir Henry Vane. Of the last of these it
-may be remarked that so early as 1637 he used this memorable language,
-in New England: "Scribes and Pharisees, and such as are confirmed in
-any way of error, all such are not to be denied cohabitation, but are
-to be pitied and reformed; Ishmael shall dwell in the presence of his
-brethren." (_Bancroft's United States_, i. 390.) The most thorough
-advocate of intellectual liberty in the New World was Roger Williams,
-who, though in many respects an impracticable man, and wanting in
-catholicity of spirit, appears to have been an original and intrepid
-champion for the political independence of theological opinions, as
-well as a noble minded and disinterested leader in colonial enterprise.
-Milton advocates toleration in his _Areopagitica_, a speech to the
-Parliament of England for the liberty of unlicensed printing, 1644.
-Harrington's _Political Aphorisms_, in which liberty of conscience
-is justly placed on a political basis, was not published until 1659.
-Episcopius and Crellius were early advocates for toleration. See
-Hallam's Introduction to _Literature of Europe_, iii. 103, 104.
-
-[427] _Const. Hist._, i. 612.
-
-[428] The petition is largely quoted by Waddington in his _Surrey
-Congregational History_, p. 32, and the pamphlet, entitled _Queries of
-Highest Consideration_, is quoted in _Hanbury_, ii. 246.
-
-[429] For proofs and illustrations of this we refer to our second
-volume. In the meanwhile we may observe that in _An Attestation_,
-published by the Cheshire ministers in 1648, allusion is made to some
-of the Independents as "averse in a great measure to such a toleration
-as might truly be termed intolerable and abominable"--meaning by that
-universal toleration.--_Nonconformity in Cheshire._ Introduction, xxvi.
-
-[430] _Life of Goodwin, by Jackson_, 93.
-
-[431] _A Reply of Two of the Brethren to A. S._, 1644. Quoted by
-Jackson, p. 116. Goodwin states "that the part which treats of
-religious liberty was the production of his own pen."--_Jackson_, 57.
-
-[432] Baillie, writing to Mr. Spang, May 17th, 1644, (_Letters_,
-ii. 184,) says: "The Independents here, finding they have not the
-magistrate so obsequious as in New England, turn their pens, as you
-will see in M.S.," (which he had before identified as Goodwin's, of
-Coleman Street,) "to take from the magistrate all power of taking
-any coercive order with the vilest heretics. Not only they praise
-your magistrate who for policy gives some secret tolerance to diverse
-religions, wherein, as I conceive, your Divines preach against them
-as great sinners; but avows that by God's command the magistrate is
-discharged to put the least discourtesy on any man--Jew, Turk, Papist,
-Socinian, or whatever, for his religion." "The five will not say this,
-but M.S. is of as great authority here as any of them." Yet, though
-this sentiment is by Baillie confined to Goodwin, and expressly said
-not to be shared by the five, it has by some been put into the lips of
-Nye.
-
-[433] As I have already observed, Harrington also did this. One of his
-political aphorisms on the subject is admirable, "When civil liberty,
-is entire it includes liberty of conscience. When liberty of conscience
-is entire, it includes civil liberty."
-
-[434] _Letter from Grindal to Bullinger, June 11th, 1568. Zurich
-Letters, First Series._
-
-[435] This is extracted from p. 12 of a small volume entitled
-_Historical Papers, First Series, Congregational Martyrs_, published by
-Elliot Stock. The document bears internal signs of genuineness, but it
-is not said where the original may be found.
-
-[436] _Ecce Homo_, 16.
-
-[437] April 21st, 1581.
-
-[438] _Fuller's Church Hist._, iii. 62.
-
-[439] _Strype's Annals_, vol. iii. part i. 22-30.
-
-[440] _Fuller's Church Hist._, iii. 65.
-
-[441] _Lansdowne M.S._, 115, art. 55. Lord Keeper Bacon had a chaplain
-of Puritan tendencies. See _Strype's Parker_, ii. 69. Lady Bacon
-shewed her learning and Protestant zeal by translating _Jewel's
-Apology_,--_Ibid._, i. 354.
-
-The Rev. Thomas Hill, late of Cheshunt, informs me:--"It is undeniable
-that there was a congregation of Separatists as early as the days
-of Elizabeth, in the neighbourhood of Theobalds. One or more of the
-ministers suffered persecution and imprisonment, but I do not think
-it improbable that the influence of Cecil, Lord Burleigh, who then
-resided at Theobalds, may have afforded some degree of protection to
-the Nonconformists of the neighbourhood."
-
-[442] _Hanbury_, i. 38. _Harl. Miscellany_, ii. 21.
-
-[443] _Strype's Annals_, iv. 245. _Hanbury_, i. 85.
-
-[444] Published by Camden Society.
-
-[445] This is the name written in the MS., no doubt intended for
-_Greenwood_.
-
-[446] Letter from Thomas Phillips to William Sterrell, April 7, 1593.
-_State Papers, Dom._ The bracketed portions are underlined in the
-original, the writer desiring, in a postscript, that the passages so
-marked, should be "disguised with cipher."
-
-[447] _Strype's Annals_, iv. 186. _Hanbury's Mem._, i. 90. The
-Archbishop referred to was Whitgift. Rippon died in 1592.
-
-[448] "He was a person most excellently well read in theological
-authors, but withal was a most zealous Puritan, or, as his son Henry
-used to say, the first Independent in England."--_Wood's Ath. Oxon._,
-i. 464.
-
-[449] Jacob's book, printed at Middleburgh, 1599, was entitled: _A
-Defence of the Churches and Ministry of England. Written in two
-Treatises against the Reasons and Objections of Mr. Francis Johnson
-and others of the Separation called Brownists._ Johnson replied in an
-_Answer to Master H. Jacob, his Defence, &c._ 1600.
-
-[450] _Hanbury's Mem._, i. 226.
-
-[451] See _Hanbury's Mem._, i. 227.
-
-[452] His name is spelt in different ways.
-
-[453] The church of which Lathrop was minister is said to have
-been formed in Southwark; if so, the fact of its now assembling in
-Blackfriars shews how, in times of persecution, the places of meeting
-were changed according to circumstances. As they had no chapels, and
-were proscribed by law, they met where they could.
-
-[454] His name was ordinarily spelt "_ten_," although it stands "_tin_"
-in the MS. He was Judge of the Prerogative Court, and father of Henry
-Mart_e_n.
-
-[455] Dr. Thomas Rives was the King's Advocate.
-
-[456] In an interesting volume, just published by Dr. Waddington,
-entitled _Surrey Congregational History_, the following entries taken
-from the records of the High Commission in relation to Lathrop and
-Eaton, at a later date, are inserted, p. 20:--"June 12, 1634. John
-Lathrop, of Lambeth Marsh. Bond to be certified, and to be attached, if
-he appear not on the next Court-day.--June 19, 1634. Bond ordered to be
-certified, and he to be attached for non-appearance.--October 9. Samuel
-Eaton and John Lathrop to be attached for non-appearance, and bonds to
-be certified.--February 19, 1634-5. Samuel Eaton and John Lathrop, for
-contempt, in not appearing to answer articles touching their keeping
-conventicles. Their bonds ordered to be certified, and they attached
-and committed."
-
-[457] _The Brownist's Synagogue_, 1641.
-
-[458] Henry Jacob, probably, is the first who used the term independent
-in relation to a Christian Church. "Each congregation," he says, "is
-an entire and _Independent_ body politic, and endowed with power
-immediately under and from Christ, as every proper Church is and ought
-to be."--_Declaration and Plainer Opening of Certain Points, &c._,
-1611, p. 13.
-
-[459] I am indebted for this and other extracts from the Yarmouth
-Corporation Records to a MS. history of the Yarmouth Church, compiled
-by my friend, the late Mr. Davey, of that town.
-
-[460] The words printed in italics are underscored in the copy from
-which these extracts are transcribed.
-
-[461] This Confession is described, and extracts from it are given in
-_Hanbury_, i. 293. It is attributed to Henry Jacob.
-
-[462] _Hanbury's Memorials_, ii. 279-281.
-
-[463] _Ibid._, ii. 409.
-
-In a pamphlet by Katherine Chidley, it is asserted the Separatists
-supported their own poor.--_Hanbury's Memorials_, ii. 112.
-
-[464] The whole account of Congregationalism in Yarmouth is drawn up
-from the records of the Corporation, and of the Independent Church
-there.
-
-[465] See _Oxoniana_, iv. 188; and copy of the woodcut in _Knight's Old
-England_.
-
-The Parliamentarians made a great mistake in not planting a garrison
-at Oxford, as they might have easily done when the war broke out.--See
-_Whitelocke's Memorials_, 63. The shrewd lawyer was not destitute
-of military insight, and justly blames Lord Say, who was opposed
-to the Parliament's taking possession of the city, because of the
-"improbability, in his opinion, that the King would settle there."
-
-[466] _Macaulay's Hist._, iii. 18.
-
-[467] _Life of Chillingworth, by P. Des Maizeaux,_ 277.
-
-[468] _Rushworth_, v. 354.
-
-[469] A year afterwards, we find the following statement in _Perfect
-Occurrences_ (June 17, 1644), where after describing the cruel
-spoliation of Abingdon and Worcester by fire by the Cavaliers, the
-news-writer thus continues:--"I could here insert the platform of all
-their projects, had I room to bring it in, set forth in a picture,
-intended to be sent to Seville, in Spain, and to be hanged in the
-great cathedral there, this day brought before the Parliament, where
-the Queen directs the King to present his sceptre to the Pope, and all
-the Cavaliers with him, and popish leaders with her, rejoicing to see
-it, he having a joyant, [this means perhaps, _joyan_, _a jewel_] to
-resemble his Majesty and she the Virgin Mary, and this motto upon the
-cases: '_Para Sancta Aña de Sevilla_.' This picture is to be hung up
-for public view, and is enough to convince the strongest malignant in
-England."
-
-[470] _Parl. Hist._, iii. 236.
-
-[471] _Meditations on the Times_, xvii.
-
-[472] _Rushworth_, v. 346.
-
-[473] _Ussher's Life, by Elrington_, 238.
-
-[474] _Life_, by Heber prefixed to his _Works_, i. 21, and another, by
-_Willmott_, 112.
-
-[475] _Memorials of Fuller, by Russell_, 142, 148, 151, 153.
-
-[476] He however maintained that Episcopacy was Apostolic. _Life_, 299,
-300.
-
-[477] There are several papers relating to Chillingworth in the Lambeth
-MSS. Nos. 943, 857-935.
-
-[478] Yet Cheynell says, while some thought him uncharitable,
-others were of opinion he had been too indulgent in suffering Mr.
-Chillingworth to be buried like a Christian.--See _Life of William
-Chillingworth, by P. Des Maizeaux_, for the particulars we have given.
-
-It has been stated that Cheynell was deranged, and certainly his own
-account of his conduct towards Chillingworth would indicate that at
-least he was touched. But then, after all this, we find him sent down
-as a visitor to Oxford, and made President of St. John's. Hoadly
-says he was as pious, honest, and charitable as his bigotry would
-permit. Eachard refers to him as a man of considerable learning and
-great abilities.--_Neal_, iii. 470. We have introduced this type of
-character, not as common, but as one without which an account of the
-religious phases of the time would be incomplete.
-
-In 1658, Hartlib, writing to Pell, observes: "Cheynell is not shot as
-was reported, but certain that he is fallen distracted, and is sent to
-Bedlam."--_Letters in Vaughan's Protectorate of Cromwell_, ii. 462.
-
-[479] _Life of the Rev. John Barwick, D.D._, written in Latin by his
-brother Dr. Peter Barwick, Physician in Ordinary to King Charles II.,
-and translated into English by the editor of the Latin life. Though a
-fierce royalist production, and, in some respects, untrustworthy, yet
-it relates several curious facts not elsewhere found.
-
-[480] 1st April, 1643.--_Husband's Collection_, 13.
-
-[481] May 16th, and June 10th, 1643. _Husband's Collection_. Laud gives
-a detailed account of this business in the History of his _Troubles and
-Trials_.--_Works_, iv. 16. The Vicar General was Sir Nathaniel Brent,
-who, when he saw the Presbyterians begin to be dominant, sided with
-them. _Wood's Ath. Oxon._, ii. 161.
-
-[482] A case of this kind is mentioned in _Blomefield's History of
-Norfolk_, ii. 424, in a note relating to John Peck, A.M., of Hingham.
-
-[483] _Commons' Journals_, 27th of July, 1643. _Husband's Collection_,
-311. Persons accused were to have timely notice, in order that they
-might make their defence.
-
-[484] The following illustrations are from the volumes in the Record
-Office.--_Dom. Inter._, 1646.
-
-[485] In the State Paper Office I find a case submitted to Lord Chief
-Justice Heath, in March, 1644, relative to sueing for tithes, in which
-his lordship gives opinion "that where the bishop, or other inferior
-judge, will not, dare not, or cannot do justice, the superior Court may
-and ought to do it." _State Papers, Dom._, 1643, March 22nd.
-
-[486] See _Scobell_ (1644), 45; (1647), 85; (1648), 110.
-
-[487] The Parliamentary Journals testify to various kinds of
-ecclesiastical affairs which came under the notice of the whole
-House, such as allowances to ministers, the collecting of pew-rents,
-contributions in churches for those who suffered in the wars,
-appointments to livings, &c., &c.--See Entries, August 26th, Sept. 7th,
-11th, 19th, October 14th, and Dec. 16th, 1644.
-
-[488] Parliament conferred powers on Lord Fairfax in February, 1644,
-whilst he was in the north, and the next month, commissioners there
-received the following warrant:--
-
-"Whereas we are credibly informed that many ministers in the
-several counties of Nottingham, York, bishopric of Durham,
-Northumberland, Cumberland, and Westmoreland, the town and county of
-Newcastle-upon-Tyne, the city and county of the city of York, and the
-town of Nottingham, are not only of scandalous life and conversation,
-but leaving their charges and cures, have withdrawn themselves
-wilfully from the same, and have joined with such forces as are raised
-against Parliament and Kingdom, and have aided and assisted the said
-forces, and that many that would give evidence against such scandalous
-ministers are not able to travel to London, nor bear the expenses of
-such journeys, you have therefore hereby full power and authority
-to call before you, &c., &c., and to eject such as you shall judge
-unfit for their places, and to sequester their livings and spiritual
-promotions, and to place others in their room, such as shall be
-approved, godly, learned, and orthodox divines, &c., &c. And further,
-you shall have power to dispose a fifth part of all such estates as you
-shall sequester for the benefit of the wives and children of any the
-aforesaid persons, &c., &c."--_State Papers, Dom._, March 6th, 1643-4.
-
-With the sword of Fairfax, a real Andrea Ferrara, and other relics
-of the Commonwealth, there is preserved at Farnley Hall, Yorkshire,
-the silver matrix of a seal for the licensing of preachers. It shews
-within a circlet of leaves an open Bible, inscribed "The Word of God,"
-with the words running round the edge, "The Seal for the Approbation
-of Ministers." It is engraved in _Scott's Antiquarian Gleanings in the
-North of England_.
-
-See Resolutions in Journals, August 29th, 1644.
-
-[489] _Rushworth_, vi. 212.
-
-[490] _Great Fight in the Church at Thaxted_, 1647. Quoted in _Davis's
-Nonconformity in Essex_.
-
-[491] _Rushworth_, iv. 113-123.
-
-These articles, charging him with introducing Popish innovations into
-Scotland, are given by Laud, together with his replies, in the _History
-of his Troubles_. _Works_, iii. 301. Laud's answers are not those of a
-Papist, but those of a thorough Anglo-Catholic. Another set of charges
-was presented against the bishops generally. _Works_, iii. 379. How
-the thing was talked about in Scotland appears in the _History of the
-Troubles in England and Scotland_ (Ballatyne Club), 275.
-
-[492] Laud, in his Diary, March 24, 1642-3, alludes to plots to send
-him and Wren to New England.--_Works_, iv. 19.
-
-[493] _Neal_, iii. 176. Laud says, under date January 22,
-1643-4:--"This day the Thames was so full of ice that I could not go by
-water. It was frost and snow, and a most bitter day. I went, therefore,
-with the Lieutenant in his coach, and twelve wardens, with halberts,
-went all along the streets." "So from the Tower-gate to Westminster I
-was sufficiently railed on and reviled all the way. God, of his mercy,
-forgive the misguided people! My answer being put in, I was for that
-time dismissed; and the tide serving me, I made a hard shift to return
-by water."--_Works_, iv. 45.
-
-[494] It has been justly remarked that the Greek orators were careful
-to impress upon their audience that, in bringing a charge against any
-one, they were actuated by the strongest personal motives. Æschines,
-in his oration against Ctesiphon, expresses his intense personal spite
-against Demosthenes. Christianity has taught us a different lesson, and
-happily the authority of that lesson is acknowledged, and its spirit
-generally exemplified by the English bar, and in the British Senate.
-
-With regard to Prynne, let me add that, though his prejudices might
-warp his judgment, he shewed himself throughout his whole life to be
-an honest man. Of his learning, there cannot be two opinions. His
-great work on Parliamentary writs, in four volumes, is pronounced by
-a competent judge to be so admirable, that "it is impossible to speak
-of it in terms of too high commendation."--_Parry's Parliaments and
-Councils_, Preface, 21. See also _Spilsbury's Lincoln's Inn_, 283.
-
-[495] See _Rushworth_, v. 763-780. A fuller account of the trial may be
-found in _Neal_, iii. 172-242.
-
-[496] This is taken, not from Rushworth's report (v. 777), but from
-Laud's own copy of his speech. They differ somewhat.--_Works_, iv. 60.
-
-[497] Quoted in _Neal_, iii. 239.
-
-[498] Laud said in his defence: "The result must be of the same
-nature and species with the particulars from which it rises. But 'tis
-confessed no one of the particulars are treason, therefore, neither is
-the result that rises from them. And this holds in nature, in morality,
-and in law."--_Works_, iv. 380.
-
-In reply to Serjeant Wylde's argument, that the misdemeanours together,
-by accumulation made up treason, Laud's advocate wittily observed: "I
-crave your mercy, good Mr. Serjeant, I never understood before this
-time that two hundred couple of black rabbits would make a black horse."
-
-[499] _Walton's Lives_, 390.
-
-[500] Heylyn says, in his _Life of Archbishop Laud_ (527), that Stroud
-was sent up to the Lords with a message from the House of Commons, to
-let them know that the Londoners would shortly petition with 20,000
-hands to obtain that ordinance.
-
-The arguments of the Commons in support of the attainder, as presented
-to the Lords, are given in the journals of the latter, under date, _Die
-Sabbati, 4 die Januarii_.
-
-Heylyn (528) states, that only seven Lords concurred in the sentence;
-Clarendon (519), that there were not above twelve peers in the House
-at the time. In the Journals the names of nineteen appear at the
-commencement of the minutes of the sitting.
-
-[501] _Lives of the Chancellors_, iii. 204; _Const. Hist._, i. 577;
-_Hist. of Commonwealth_, i. 428.
-
-[502] _Life of Pocock, by Dr. Twells_, 84. See also a curious tract
-respecting Laud in _Harleian Miscel._, iv. 450.
-
-[503] _Rushworth_, v. 781. "Let us run with patience that race that is
-set before us, looking unto Jesus the author and finisher of our faith,
-who for the joy that was set before him, endured the cross, despising
-the shame, and is set down at the right hand of the throne of God."
-
-[504] _Rushworth_, v. 785.
-
-[505] A newspaper notices that:--Whereas he had been the archpatron of
-those who branded honest men with the name of roundheads more than hath
-been usual, his own head when cut off, though sawdust had been laid
-about the block, "did tumble once or twice about like a ball."
-
-[506] Henry Rogers.
-
-[507] See _Bruce's Account of Laud's Berkshire Benefactions_.
-
-Mr. Bruce, who has had ample means of judging of Laud's character,
-observes:--"A winking at a little finesse designed to accomplish some
-end, supposed to be for the good of the Church, is all that may be
-brought home to him--his hands were never defiled by the touch of a
-bribe."--_Calendar of State Papers, Dom., 1635. Preface._
-
-[508] Overstrained parallels between Laud and Wolsey were drawn in the
-pamphlets of the day.--See _Harl. Miscell._, iv. 462.
-
-I may add that Dunstan and Laud were alike _insular_ men, if that
-term may be used to distinguish them from Becket and Wolsey, both of
-whom had large intercourse with the Continent. Dunstan and Laud were
-narrower in their feeling and character than the other two. I have
-before noticed the resemblance between Dunstan and Laud in point of
-influence.
-
-[509] _Journals of the Lords_, January 4th, 1645.
-
-[510] _An Anatomy of the Service Book, by Dwalphintramis. Southey's
-Common-place Book_, iii. 40.
-
-[511] See _Christ on the Throne_. 1640.
-
-[512] A letter by George Gillespie, on the Directory, being
-forwarded to Scotland, shews the difficulty there was in getting it
-passed.--_Baillie_, ii., _App._ 505. He says, May 9th, 1645: "I pray
-you be careful that the Act of the General Assembly, approving the
-Directory, be not so altered as to make it a straiter imposition."
-"Sure I am, the Directory had never past the Assembly of Divines, if it
-had not been for the qualifications in the preface. This is only for
-yourself, except ye hear any controversy about it in your meeting."
-
-[513] _Baillie's Letters_, ii. 271.
-
-[514] _Scobell_, 97.
-
-[515] The following should be recorded to Whitelocke's credit. 1646.
-Oct. 26. "Indictment in Bucks for not reading the Common Prayer
-complained of. Ordered that an ordinance be brought in to take away
-the statute that enjoins it, and to disable malignant ministers from
-preaching. This was much opposed by me and some others, as contrary
-to that principle which the Parliament had avowed of liberty of
-conscience, and like that former way complained of against the bishops
-for silencing of ministers."--_Memorials_, 226. The diarist here shews
-that the use of the Prayer Book was not considered by the Royalists to
-be legally abolished.
-
-I may here add that Whitelocke was not a party man. He sympathized
-with Presbyterian leaders in wishing to save the monarchy, but he
-co-operated with Independents in advocating religious liberty.
-
-[516] _Mant's History of the Church of Ireland_, i. 587-594.
-
-[517] _Lathbury's History of Convocation_, 497.
-
-[518] _Clarendon's Hist._, 515.
-
-[519] While the Oxford Lords were in London on the embassy, there was,
-according to the Diurnal, entitled _Perfect Occurrences_, December 28,
-a great auditory to hear the chaplain preach and read prayers. After
-the sermon, it is said, the people were very merry, and a young lady
-and gentleman went dancing by the river side, and fell in--"good for
-them to cool their courage in frosty weather."
-
-[520] _Whitelocke_, 112. The entire propositions for peace may be seen
-in _Parl. Hist._, iii. 299.
-
-[521] _King's Cabinet opened._--_Neal_, iii. 250.
-
-[522] _Parl. Hist._, iii. 339.
-
-[523] _Memorials_, 127.
-
-[524] All the documents during the attempts at a treaty are given by
-Dugdale in his _Short View of the late Troubles_.
-
-A full account is also given by _Rushworth_, v.
-
-[525] _Clarendon's Hist._, 521.
-
-Secretary Nicholas writes to the King, 5th of February, 1644: "This
-morning we are to observe the fast, according to your Majesty's
-proclamation; but it must be done here in the inn, for we cannot be
-permitted to have the Book of Common Prayer read in the church here,
-and we resolve not to go to any church where the Divine service
-established by law may not be celebrated." "You have done well, but
-they barbarously," Charles writes in the margin. But in the prayer
-appointed by the King the war is described as "unnatural," and the
-Almighty is entreated "to let the truth clearly appear, who those are
-which, under pretence of the public good, do pursue their own private
-ends." It was not likely the Parliament would allow that prayer to be
-used.--_Nicholas' Correspondence, Evelyn_, iv. 136.
-
-[526] The other chief subjects were the militia and Irish affairs.
-
-[527] _Rushworth_, v. 818.
-
-[528] _Evelyn_, iv. 137.
-
-[529] In the British Museum there is a petition, presented in the year
-1647, complaining of many hundreds of towns and villages destitute of
-any preaching ministry, by occasion whereof ignorance, drunkenness,
-profaneness, disaffection, &c., abound.
-
-[530] _Husband's Col._, 645.
-
-[531] See ordinance dated November the 8th, 1645, in _Rushworth_, vi.
-212, and _Baillie's Letters_, ii. 349.
-
-[532] _Letters and Journals_, ii. 145.
-
-[533] _Letters and Journals_, ii. 146.
-
-[534] _Neal_, iii. 309.
-
-[535] _Lives_, 380.
-
-[536] _Baillie's Letters_, ii. 157.
-
-[537] The religious feelings of the two armies are thus stated by an
-eyewitness:--"Consider the height of difference of spirits; in their
-army the cream of all the Papists in England, and in ours, a collection
-out of all the corners of England and Scotland of such as had the
-greatest antipathy to Popery and tyranny."--_Sanford_, 597. He gives a
-careful account of the battle.
-
-For the state of feeling in general after the victory, see _Baillie_,
-ii. 201, _et seq._
-
-[538] I adopt some of the words quoted by Sanford.
-
-[539] There was one of the Royalist soldiers at Marston Moor wounded in
-the shoulder by a musket ball, who afterwards became Archbishop Dolbon,
-of York, 1683-1686. The following incident is interesting:--"Mary,
-daughter of Sir Francis Trappes, married Charles Towneley, of Towneley,
-in Lancashire, Esquire, who was killed at the battle of Marston Moor.
-During the engagement she was with her father at Knaresborough, where
-she heard of her husband's fate, and came upon the field the next
-morning in order to search for his body, while the attendants of the
-camp were stripping and burying the dead. Here she was accosted by a
-general officer, to whom she told her melancholy story. He heard her
-with great tenderness, but earnestly desired her to leave a place
-where, besides the distress of witnessing such a scene, she might
-probably be insulted. She complied, and he called a trooper, who took
-her _encroup_. On her way to Knaresborough she enquired of the man
-the name of the officer to whose civility she had been indebted, and
-learned that it was Lieutenant-General Cromwell."--_Sanford_, 610.
-
-[540] See _Lightfoot's Journal_, September 9, 1644.
-
-[541] Here we may mention that it is probable that John Bunyan was at
-that time in the Royalist army, and that while he was fighting for the
-King the incident occurred so often related of his post being occupied
-by a comrade who could handle a musket better than he could do, and
-who, on account of his superior skill and bravery, unfortunately
-received a fatal carbine shot which otherwise might have killed our
-matchless dreamer. Nobody can say what the world lost by that poor
-fellow's death, but everybody knows what the world gained by John
-Bunyan's preservation.
-
-[542] For a full account of the battle of Naseby see _England's
-Recovery, by Joshua Sprigg_, 1647. It is he who reports the complaints
-we have noticed. See p. 6 of his interesting narrative.
-
-[543] There is an interesting letter by Cromwell, dated July 10, 1645,
-giving an account of the Naseby fight, reprinted in _Sanford_, p. 625,
-from pamphlets in Lincoln College, Oxford. As the letter is not in
-_Carlyle_ (2nd edition), I give the following extract:--"Thus you see
-what the Lord hath wrought for us. Can any creature ascribe anything to
-itself? Now can we give all the glory to God, and desire all may do so,
-for it is all due unto Him. Thus you have _Long Sutton_ mercy added to
-_Naseby_ mercy; and to see this, is it not to see the face of God? You
-have heard of Naseby; it was a happy victory. As in this, so in that,
-God was pleased to use His servants; and if men will be malicious, and
-swell with envy, we know who hath said--'If they will not see, yet they
-shall see and be ashamed for their envy at his people.' I can say this
-of Naseby, that when I saw the enemy draw up, and march in gallant
-order towards us, and we a company of poor ignorant men, to seek how
-to order our battle, the general having commanded me to order all the
-horse. I could not (riding alone about my business) but smile out to
-God in praises, in assurance of victory, because God would, by things
-that are not, bring to nought things that are, of which I had great
-assurance, and God did it. Oh, that men would therefore praise the
-Lord, and declare the wonders that He doth for the children of men!"
-
-[544] Nevertheless, Royalist hopes were unquenched as late as the month
-of September, 1645.
-
-"If you consider," it is said in an anonymous letter of that date, in
-the State Paper Office, "the strange extremities we were then in, the
-progress which we have made, and our wonderful success at last in the
-relieving of Hereford and chasing away the Scots, at a time when, in my
-conscience, within one week there had been a general revolt of South
-Wales (which is now likely to be entirely settled), you will think that
-it promises to us and portends to the rebels a strange revolution in
-the whole face of affairs; and if to this you add the miracles done by
-the same time by my Lord Montrose, in Scotland (who hath made himself
-entirety master of that kingdom), you will have reason to join with
-me in the confidence, that we shall have, by God's blessing, as quick
-a progress to happiness as we have had to the greatest extremities. I
-must confess, for my part, that these miracles, besides the worldly joy
-they give me, have made me even a better Christian, by begetting in me
-a stronger faith and reliance upon God Almighty, than before; having
-manifested that it is wholly His work, and that He will bring about His
-intended blessings upon this just cause, by ways the most impossible to
-human understanding, and consequently teach us to cast off all reliance
-upon our own strength."
-
-This letter is dated September the 9th, 1645, and is addressed to Lord
-Byron.
-
-[545] _Life of Dod._--_Brooks' Lives_, iii. 4.
-
-[546] _Brook_, iii. 80.
-
-[547] _Wood_, ii. 89, says this was _Aulkryngton_, commonly called
-Okerton, near Banbury, in Oxfordshire; but I cannot find in
-Topographical Dictionaries any mention of such a place.
-
-[548] _Brook's Lives_, iii. 10. See also p. 63.
-
-[549] _Walker's Sufferings_, part ii. 183-185, 193.
-
-I have lighted on the following scraps in newspapers of the day:--
-
-Mr. Bullinger, of Lincolnshire (sometime chaplain to a Regent of the
-King), grandchild to the old bishop, being newly returned from France,
-where he hath lately been, is sent up by the Committee of Dover, very
-poor, in a gray suit, and neither cloak to his back nor money in his
-purse; and yet he scruples the taking of the Covenant, and desires time
-to consider of it. His examinations were this day taken.--_Perfect
-Occurrences_, 18th of December, 1646.
-
-A story is told of a singing man from Peterborough, who went to
-Wisbeach, as clerk, and then read the burial service, when he was
-insulted in the rudest manner, and knocked down, the poor fellow crying
-out, "I am a Covenanter."--_Moderate Intelligence_, January, 1647.
-
-[550] _Letters_, ii. 274.
-
-[551] _Letters_, ii. 298, 299.
-
-Baillie complains of the growing influence of the Erastians.--_Ibid._,
-311, 318, 320.
-
-[552] These rules are given in _Rushworth_, vi. 210.
-
-[553] _Baillie's Letters and Journals_, ii. 362, _et seq._
-
-[554] _Ibid._, 344.
-
-[555] _Godwin_, ii. 10.
-
-[556] _Neal_, iii. 311.
-
-[557] See _Letter to Parliament_, in _Rushworth_, vi. 234.
-
-[558] _Baillie_, ii. 367. For the Parliament's notice of what the Scots
-had said, see _Declaration_, in _Rushworth_, vi. 257. The notice is
-only in the way of general allusion.
-
-[559] _Froude's History of England_, vii. 340.
-
-[560] _Neal_, iii. 330.
-
-[561] _Neal_, iii. 381. _Hetherington's History of the Westminster
-Assembly_, 300.
-
-[562] _Rushworth_, vii. 1035. At a conference between the Lords and
-Commons, on March 22nd, 1648, the latter declared their consent to
-the doctrinal parts, with the desire that the same be "made public,
-that this kingdom and all the reformed Churches of Christendom may
-see the Parliament of England differ not in doctrine." It is added,
-"particulars in discipline are recommitted." Of the confession of
-faith the title was altered to "_articles of faith_, agreed upon by
-both Houses of Parliament, as most suitable to the former title of
-the Thirty-nine Articles." The Covenant was legally enforced, but the
-Westminster Confession never was. Only part of it, under the title of
-_Articles_, ever became law at all.
-
-[563] _Baillie_, iii., _Appendix_, 537, _et seq._ A full account is
-there given of Rouse's revised version, 1646, in connexion with the
-present Scotch version, published in 1650, p. 549.
-
-[564] _Prose Works_, vol. ii., 40.
-
-[565] _Life and Times_, part i. 73.
-
-[566] Hallam speaks of the Assembly as "perhaps equal in learning, good
-sense, and other merits, to any Lower House of Convocation that ever
-made a figure in England."--_Const. Hist._, i. 609.
-
-[567] _Sprigg's England's Recovery_, 326.
-
-[568] _Opera_, iii. 466.
-
-[569] _Life and Times_, part i. 53-56.
-
-[570] _Owen's Works, edited by Russell_, xv. 96.
-
-[571] I find the following reference to Peters in the State Papers:--
-
-"Dec. 10.--The fifteen articles and covenant of Hugh Peters, minister
-of the English congregation in Rotterdam, stated in an indorsement,
-which is in the handwriting of Sir William Boswell, to have been
-proposed to that congregation before their admission to the communion.
-The following are examples of these articles: '1. Be contented with
-meet trial for our fitness to be members. 2. Cleave in heart to the
-truth and pure worship of God, and oppose all ways of innovation and
-corruption. 3. Suffer the Word to be the guider of all controversies.
-10. Meditate the furthering of the Gospel at home and abroad, as
-well in our persons as with our purses. 11. Take nearly to heart our
-brethren's condition, and conform ourselves to these troublesome times
-in our diet and apparel, that they be without excess in necessity. 14.
-Put one another in mind of this covenant, and as occasion is offered,
-to take an account of what is done in the premises.'"--_Calendar of
-State Papers, Domestic_, 1633-4, p. 318.
-
-[572] The imputations on Peters's moral character were no doubt
-malicious falsehoods.--_Brook's Lives_, iii. 350.
-
-[573] Abridged from _Life of Colonel Hutchinson_, 151.
-
-[574] _Ath. Oxon._, ii. 287.
-
-The Westminster Assembly condemned certain positions in Saltmarsh's
-writings, as well as in the writings of Dr. Crisp, and Mr. John Eaton,
-for their Antinomian tendencies.--See _Neal_, iii. 68. Neal does not
-say what the passages were. Edwards, in his _Gangræna_, part i., 25,
-26, gives a list of their tenets, but we place little dependence on
-his accusations. It is very likely, however, that Saltmarsh might lay
-himself open to the charge of Antinomianism. We have not seen his book
-on _Free-grace_, in which perhaps the dangerous tenets he was charged
-with are to be looked for.
-
-[575] As an example of the kind of preaching by these officers we may
-mention a tract entitled "_Orders given out--the word Stand fast_, as
-it was lately delivered in a farewell sermon, by Major Samuel Kem, to
-the officers and soldiers of his regiment in Bristol, November 8th,
-1646." The discourse is full of military allusions.
-
-[576] _Journal of the Swedish Embassy_, 1653-4.
-
-[577] _Neal_, iii. 330.
-
-[578] This is the account in _Ashburnham's Narrative_, ii. 72.
-Rushworth says the King came to Brentford and Harrow, and then went to
-St. Albans, vi. 267. Ashburnham's is, no doubt, the correct story.
-
-Hacket tells the following story in the _Life of Archbishop Williams_:
-"His Majesty, unwilling to stay to the last in a city begirt, by the
-persuasion of Mons. Mountrevile, went privily out of Oxford, and
-put himself into the hands of his native countrymen and subjects at
-Newcastle. 'What,' says Mr. Archbishop, when he heard of it, 'be
-advised by a stranger, and trust the Scots; then all is lost.' It was
-a journey not imparted to above ten persons to know it, begun upon
-sudden resolution against that rule of Tacitus: '_Bona consilia morâ
-valescere_.'"--_Memorial of Williams_, ii. 222.
-
-[579] There is an important memorandum for Lord Balcarras "anent the
-King's coming to the Scots' army," in _Baillie's Letters and Journals_,
-ii. 514. _Appendix._
-
-[580] _Charles I. in 1646._ Letters published by the Camden Society.
-
-[581] _Neal_, iii. 336-347.
-
-[582] _Rushworth_, vi. 319.
-
-[583] _Rushworth_, vi. 309.
-
-[584] _Mercurius Civicus_, Oct. 8-15, 1646.
-
-"By letters from Scotland we were this day advertised that the Estates
-of Edinburgh have sent up their determination to the Commissioners at
-Worcester House. One, 'That Presbyterian government be established, as
-that which will suit best with monarchy.'"
-
-It was commonly said at Newcastle, that his Majesty would take the
-Covenant.
-
-[585] _Charles I. in 1646_, 63, 86.
-
-[586] _Charles I. in 1646_, 6, 11. See also Ogle's letter, printed in
-this volume, p. 306.
-
-[587] _Ibid._, 24. In reading Charles's correspondence we observe that,
-whatever may be said of fanatical ideas of providence entertained by
-Puritans, ideas equally fanatical were entertained by the King.--See
-_Mr. Bruce's Introduction to the volume of Letters_.
-
-[588] See Journals under date. Godwin, in his _Commonwealth_, ii. 66,
-236, 246, after a careful examination of the Journals on the subject,
-explains distinctly the series of enactments with regard to the
-establishment of Presbyterianism.
-
-[589] _Baillie_, ii. 357. "They have passed an ordinance, not only for
-appeal from the General Assembly to the Parliament, for two ruling
-elders, for one minister in every church-meeting, for no censure,
-except in such particular offences as they have enumerat; but also,
-which vexes us most, and against which we have been labouring this
-month bygone, a court of civil commissioners in every county, to whom
-the congregational elderships must bring all cases not enumerat, to
-be reported by them, with their judgment, to the Parliament or their
-Committee. This is a trick of the Independents' invention, of purpose
-to enervate and disgrace all our Government, in which they have been
-assisted by the lawyers and the Erastian party. This troubles us
-exceedingly. The whole Assembly and ministry over the kingdom, the body
-of the city, is much grieved with it; but how to help it, we cannot
-well tell. In the meantime, it mars us to set up anything; the anarchy
-continues, and the vilest facts do daily encrease."
-
-[590] _Husband_, 919.
-
-[591] _Neal_, iii. 385.
-
-[592] _Scobell_, (1647-8,) 139, 165.
-
-[593] 1646. October the 8th.--On the question in the Lords for passing
-the ordinance, "the votes were even, so nothing could be resolved on
-at this time." Only nine earls and five barons were present. October
-the 9th.--"And the question being put, 'Whether to agree to the said
-ordinance as it was brought up from the House of Commons?' Audit
-was agreed to in the affirmative." Seven earls and five barons were
-present.--_Lords' Journals._
-
-[594] _Husband's Collection_, 922.
-
-[595] _Husband_, 934.
-
-[596] Printed in _Harleian Miscellany_, iv. 419.
-
-[597] This information respecting wills is drawn from Sir H. Nicholas'
-_Notitia Historica_, 144-205. In the month of November, 1644, an
-ordinance of Parliament appointed Sir Nathaniel Brent a Presbyterian
-master or keeper of the Prerogative Court of Canterbury, in the room of
-Dr. Merrick, a Royalist Episcopalian.--_Husband_, 582.
-
-In the Windsor churchwardens' accounts an instance occurs of money
-paid in 1651-2 for searching the Prerogative Court for the Countess of
-Devonshire's will, then lately deceased.--_Annals of Windsor_, ii. 267.
-
-[598] We shall describe this law in the next volume. It should be
-noticed that the ordinance of 1646, respecting bishops, said nothing
-about deans and chapters, or archdeacons. How they were afterwards
-dealt with will also be seen hereafter.
-
-[599] _Scobell_, 129.
-
-[600] _Ibid._, 146.
-
-[601] In September, 1647, the certificate of certain Cheshire
-justices touching a refusal to pay tithes to a Puritan, Mr. Smith, of
-Tattenhall, came before the committee. Some Royalist Episcopalians
-took encouragement, in their refusal, from two petitions of the
-sequestered clergy to the King and Sir Thomas Fairfax. It is
-certified, "from the said justices, that they conceive the ordinance
-of Parliament for payment of tithes cannot be put by them into
-execution without bloodshed." The Serjeant-at-Arms is commissioned
-to bring these delinquents "in safe custody to answer their said
-contempt."--_Nonconformity in Cheshire_, 472.
-
-The objections to paying tithes at that period went much further
-than such objections as are urged by Paley.--_Moral and Political
-Philosophy_, book vi., iii. A corn-rent, as he suggests, or such
-commutation of tithes as is now adopted, would not have met the
-objections. A fixed and uniform stipend paid by the State was widely
-desired.
-
-[602] _Scobell_, 139.
-
-"1646, 15th December.--It is ordered that Mr. Tooley, &c., shall treat
-with the dean and prebends about mending the windows and repairing
-the cathedral church, and to consider whether it be fit to remove
-the pulpit to the former place where it stood or not, and to examine
-whether there be £100 a year appointed for the repairing of the church,
-and how much thereof is in arrear."
-
-"1647.--8th November. It is ordered that the sheriffs shall give
-entertainment to the preachers who come to preach at the cathedral
-in such manner as the former sheriffs did, and that they shall give
-like allowance for the same as they did."--Extracted from the _Norwich
-Corporation Records_.
-
-[603] _Husband_, 758. The following minutes are extracted from a MS.
-volume of proceedings in the library of Sion College, London.
-
-December, 1644. At a meeting of the governors of the school and
-almshouses of Westminster:--
-
-Whereas the governors of the schools and almshouses of Westminster,
-have, by their former order, nominated and appointed Mr. Strong to be
-minister of the Abbey Church, Westminster, in the room and place of Mr.
-Marshall, and in regard Mr. Marshall cannot well perform the service
-any longer, without inconveniency to him; it is ordered that the said
-Mr. Strong be desired to undertake the service so soon as possibly he
-can, and he is to have the allowance of £200 and a house; being the
-same allowance as the said Mr. Marshall had for his pains, to be taken
-therein. And the trustees are to pay him the same £200 and quarterly by
-even and equal portions. The first payment to commence from the time he
-shall begin the service, and to continue till he shall leave it.
-
-At a committee of the Lords and Commons for the College of Westminster,
-sitting in the dean's house, the 3rd March, 1645-6:--
-
-After reciting the ordinance of the 18th of November the committee "do
-nominate and appoint Mr. Philip Nye, minister of God's Word, to preach
-the term lecture in the said collegiate church, and receive the yearly
-stipend and allowance for the same. And the Reverend General of the
-said College for the time being is hereby authorized and required to
-pay the same unto the said Mr. Philip Nye, at such time as the same
-hath been heretofore usually paid, and we do further nominate and
-appoint the said Mr. P. Nye to preach the lecture upon every Lord's
-day in the morning, at seven of the clock, for which he shall receive
-such allowance as hereafter shall be settled and appointed by this
-committee."
-
-9th July, 1646.--By an order of this date, Mr. Nye was to have £50 a
-year, to be paid quarterly.
-
-_Same day._--Mr. Marshall, Mr. Palmer, Mr. Herle, Dr. Staunton, Mr.
-Nye, Mr. Witaire (?), and Mr. Strong, were appointed to the morning
-lecture constantly to be performed every day of the week.
-
-July 13th.--Mr. John Bond, preacher at the Savoy in the Strand, was
-appointed one of the seven morning lecturers for the Abbey on the week
-day.
-
-[604] _Commons' Journals_, December 2nd, 1643.
-
-[605] _Annals of Windsor_, ii. 205.
-
-[606] _Hist. of the University of Cambridge_, 233. "The Colleges have
-already sent to the King £6,000, and are now about to send their plate
-to make shrines for Diane's temple. Magdalene College plate, beginning
-the march, was seized on by Parliament authority, and is deposited in
-the Mayor's custody. St. John's College conceived a better secrecy by
-water, and that way conveyed their plate; but having intelligence of
-discovery, they landed it in the night into a dung-cart, and returned
-it to the College. It is said now they expect a convoy of horse. King's
-College refused to send plate, the Master affirming that it is directly
-against their oath, binding them in express words, not to alienate the
-plate of the College. If he be not deceived in his judgment, it will
-be a problem for the rest of the masters."--_Tanner MSS._ 63, p. 116.
-_Sanford's Illustrations_, 514.
-
-[607] _Husband's Collections_, 415, 416.
-
-"The Masters of Queen's, Jesus, and St. John's, were sent up to London,
-and led through the midst of Bartholomew Fair in a leisurely manner, to
-the endangering of their lives, up as far as Temple Bar, and so back
-through the City to the Tower, on purpose that they might be hooted
-at and stoned by the rabble."--_Coles' MSS._, vol. vii., quoted in
-_Akerman's Hist. of University_, i. 260.
-
-The Master of Queen's, and some others, are said to have been put on
-board a ship at Wapping, where they suffered much, and were then sent
-to prison. It is impossible to determine the exact truth amidst the
-exaggerated statements by Walker. Hot-headed party men always overshoot
-the mark, and bring discredit even on the truths they tell.
-
-[608] _Hist. of Cambridge_, 236. Sancroft did not take the Covenant.
-The following extract from a letter of his to Dr. Holdsworth, Master
-of Emmanuel, is very curious:--"Ah! Sir, I know our Emmanuel College
-is now an object of pity and commiseration. They have left us like
-John Baptist's trunk when his head was lopped off, because of a vow
-or oath (or Covenant, if you will) that went before, or like Pompey's
-carcase upon the shore; so _stat magni nominis umbra_. For my part,
-_tædet me vivere hanc mortem_. A small matter would prevail with me
-to take up the resolution to go forth any whither where I might not
-hear _nec nomen, nec facta Pelopidarum_. Nor need we voluntarily give
-up our stations. I fear we cannot long maintain them. And what then?
-Shall I lift up my hand? I will cut it off first. Shall I subscribe my
-name? I will forget it as soon. I can at least look up through this
-mist and see the hand of my God holding the scourge that lashes; and
-with this thought I am able to silence all the mutinies of boisterous
-passions, and to charm them into a perfect calm. Sir, you will pardon
-this disjointed piece: it is the production of a disquieted mind;
-and no wonder if the child resembles its parent. My sorrow, as yet,
-breaks forth only in abrupt sighs and broken sobs."--_D'Oyley's Life of
-Archbishop Sancroft_, i. 32.
-
-[609] _Strype's Life of Parker_, i. 390.
-
-[610] _Fuller's History of Cambridge_, 205.
-
-[611] _Thorndike's Works_, vol. vi., Oxford edition. Note by Editor,
-170. _Pure_ Emmanuel occurs in Corbet's satirical poem, 1615. It was
-commonly so styled.
-
-[612] _Halley's Life of Goodwin_, prefixed to _Works_, vol. ii. of
-Nichol's edit., p. 23. But Brownrigg, in 1645, was put out of the
-Mastership of Trinity Hall.
-
-[613] Cartwright, Travers, Calamy, Seaman, Doolittle, S. Clarke, and
-W. Jenkyns, came from Cambridge. Out of seventy-seven Puritan names
-in _Brook_, I find forty-seven belonging to Cambridge, and thirty to
-Oxford.
-
-[614] The four were Goodwin (Catherine), Burroughs, Bridge (Emmanuel),
-and Sydrach Sympson. Nye was an Oxford man.
-
-[615] _Cooper_, quoted in _Notes to Thorndike_, vol. vi. 177.
-
-[616] _Calendar of State Papers, Chas. I._, 1633-4, _Domestic_, July
-22, p. 150.
-
-[617] _Thorndike's Works_, vi. 169.
-
-[618] Cooper gives 2,091 University residents in 1641, but says it does
-not include the whole.--_Thorndike_, vi. 165. Walker reports nearly 200
-masters and fellows as ejected, besides inferior scholars. Some of the
-ejected heads of houses were men of moderate opinions.--_Neal_, iii.
-116.
-
-Newcome, in his _Autobiography_, Cheetham Society, speaks of the
-bitter feuds between the new and the old fellows in 1645. He judged
-the supporters of the Parliament to be the most religious, "religion
-being as little favoured" by many of their opponents as the Puritans
-themselves were (p. 7).
-
-[619] They are far too numerous and varied for me to classify or
-indicate. See historical account of all material transactions relating
-to University.--_Laud's Works_, vol. v., part I.
-
-The following scrap of a newspaper shews the care taken by the
-Parliament for the support of the University, and also the feeling
-existing at Oxford against the Parliament:--
-
-"Ordered that the Committee for the Ordinances of regulating the
-University shall consider of a fitting maintenance for the masters
-and heads of houses in both Universities. They also ordered that a
-committee should sit constantly for giving a competent maintenance to
-the late bishops until they had despatched that business.
-
-"The House being informed that there were monuments standing in Christ
-Church, in Oxford, on which were epitaphs engraven abusive to the
-Parliament, and giving just cause of distaste to many good men well
-affected to it, as particulary on the monument of Sir Henry Gage and
-Sir William Penniman, it was ordered that the epitaphs on the said
-monuments should be razed and effaced."--_Weekly Intelligencer_, April
-15th, 1647.
-
-[620] In the autobiography of Arthur Wilson, an Oxford student,
-in 1631, this passage occurs relative to the moral state of the
-University:--
-
-"That which was most burdensome to me in this my retirement was the
-debauchery of the University. For the most eminent scholars of the
-town, especially of St. John's College, being of my acquaintance, did
-work upon me by such endearments as took the name of civilities, (yet
-day and night could witness our madness), and I must confess, the whole
-time of my life besides did never so much transport me with drinking as
-that short time I lived at Oxford, and that with some of the gravest
-bachelors of divinity there."--_Peck's Desiderata Curiosa_, ii. 470.
-
-[621] _Walker_, part i. 127; _Neal_, iii. 446-453.
-
-[622] _Walton's Lives_, 388. Morley wrote in the following dignified
-manner to Whitelocke, acknowledging friendly interposition on his
-behalf: "Pray God he, whosoever he be that succeeds me in it, may
-part with it at his death as cheerfully as I do now, and that my
-judges may not have cause to be more sorry for their sentence than
-I am. It is glory enough for me that Mr. Selden and Mr. Whitelocke
-were of another opinion, for being absolved by you two, and mine own
-conscience, I shall still think myself in a capacity of a better
-condition."--_Whitelocke's Memorials_, 250.
-
-[623] _Wood's Ath._, ii. 215.
-
-Walton, so called (though he wrote his name Wauton), married Cromwell's
-sister Margaret, and was one of the Commissioners of the High Court of
-Justice.--_Noble's Protectorate House_, ii. 224.
-
-[624] _Neal_, iii. 456.
-
-[625] _Scobell_, (1647), 116.
-
-[626] _Neal_, iii. 438.
-
-[627] The following sentence appears in a newspaper of the period:--
-
-"There are many amongst us who are called Independents, but what some
-say of them, I doubt not that they will prove honest men and peaceable
-for ought that I can see--experience gives them a better report than
-rumour."--_Papers from the Scotch Quarters._
-
-[628] The following letter, dated September 25th, 1645, was addressed
-to the mayor and aldermen of Norwich:--
-
-"Gentlemen--The Parliament being desirous above all things to establish
-truth and righteousness in these kingdoms, towards which the settlement
-of a church government is very conducible, hath resolved to settle
-a presbyterial government in the kingdom. For the better effecting
-whereof you are required, with the advice of godly ministers and
-others, to consider how the county of the city of Norwich may be
-most conveniently divided into distinct classical Presbyteries, and
-what ministers and others are fit to be of each classis, and you are
-accordingly to make such divisions and nominations of persons for
-each classical Presbytery. Which divisions and persons so named for
-every division you are to certify to the House with all expedition. W.
-Lenthall, Speaker."--_Blomefield's History of Norwich_, i. 391.
-
-[629] This appears from a petition presented by the Presbyterians
-to the mayor, in April, 1648, for a more thorough reformation, and
-complaining that faithful ministers were slighted, ejected ministers
-of the Church of England preferred, old ceremonies and the service
-book constantly used, and the directory not observed. The petitioners
-also prayed for a more thorough execution of the ordinances against
-superstition and idolatry, and specified as needing to be defaced a
-crucifix on the cathedral gate, another on the roof inside by the west
-door, and a third upon the free-school, as well as an "image of Christ
-upon the parish house of St. George's of Tombland."--_Blomefield's
-History of Norwich_, i. 393.
-
-[630] _Vox Norwici_, or the city of Norwich vindicating their
-ministers, wherein the city of Norwich, viz., the court of mayoralty
-and common council, by their act of assembly, the rest of the
-well-affected citizens and inhabitants by the subscription of their
-names hereunto, do vindicate their ministers, Master Thornebacke,
-Master Carter, Master Stinnett, Master Fletcher, Master Bond, Master
-Stukeley, Master Test, and Master Mitchell, from the foul and false
-aspersions and slanders, which are unchristianly thrown upon them in a
-lying and scurrilous libel lately come forth, entitled "_Vox Populi_,
-or the People's Cry against the Clergy," or rather the voice of a
-schismatic, projecting the discouragement and driving away of our
-faithful teachers, but we hope his lies shall not so, effect it. Jer.
-viii. 30. London, 1646.
-
-[631] See _Godwin's Commonwealth_, ii. 211-220, _Memoirs of Edmund
-Ludlow_, i. 172.
-
-[632] _Baillie's Letters and Journals_, ii. 512, Appendix. Gillespie
-says, March 30th, 1647:--"In sum, the Independent party is for the
-present sunk under water in the Parliament, and run down."
-
-[633] _Parl. Hist._, iii. 475.
-
-[634] _Journals._
-
-[635] _Neal_, iii. 365. The following is an extract from the
-Petition:--"That an ordinance be made for the exemplary punishment of
-heretics and schismatics, and that all godly and orthodox ministers may
-have a competent maintenance, many pulpits being vacant of a settled
-minister for want of it; and here (say they) we would lay the stress of
-our desires, and the urgency of our affections." They complain further
-of the "undue practices of Country Committees, of the threatening power
-of the army, and of some breaches in the Constitution, all of which
-they desire may be redressed, and that his Majesty's royal person and
-authority may be preserved and defended, together with the liberties of
-the kingdom, according to the Covenant."
-
-[636] _Neal_, iii. 388.
-
-[637] See full account, with authorities, in _Baker's Northamptonshire_,
-i. 201.
-
-[638] "The kingdom shall have peace and truth, the Churches uniformity
-and concord, almost quite lost, Ireland hopes of speedy reduction,
-sectaries and blasphemers shall be bridled if not extirpated, and
-church government with the religion established."--_Welcome of the King
-to Holmby_ (Holdenby).
-
-[639] _State Papers, Dom., Chas. I._ 1647. The latter is without date.
-
-[640] _History of Rebellion_, 610.
-
-[641] The funeral of the Earl of Essex, on the 22nd of October, 1646,
-presented a grand display of military pomp. The Speaker, many Aldermen
-of the City, and Assembly of Divines also followed in the procession
-to the grave. "When they came to the Abbey Church, the effigy of the
-Earl was carried in and laid upon the standing hearse, where it was to
-remain during the pleasure of the House, or as many days as intervened
-between his death and burial. The effigy was roughly handled one night.
-The Abbey being broken into, the head of the image was broken, the buff
-coat was slit, the scarlet breeches were cut, the boots were slashed,
-the bands were torn, and the sword broken."--See _Perfect Relation of
-the Funeral_.
-
-Mr. Vines, in his sermon at the interment, compared Essex to Abner,
-and observed: "The funeral, for the state of it, overmatches the
-pattern. Here are the two Houses of Parliament, the map of all England
-in two globes, pouring out their sorrows, and paying their kisses of
-honourable farewell to his tutelar sword."
-
-[642] _History of Rebellion_, 610.
-
-[643] After leaving Holdenby, during the three days the King tarried
-at Childerley, many doctors, graduates, and scholars of the University
-repaired thither, "to most of whom the King was pleased to give his
-hand to kiss; for which honour they returned their gratulatory and
-humble thanks with a _Vivat Rex_." He was also visited by Fairfax,
-Cromwell, Ireton, Skippon, Lambert, Whalley, and other officers of the
-Parliament army, some of whom kissed his hand.--_Wood's Ath. Oxon._,
-ii., _fasti_ 81.
-
-[644] _Clarendon_, 613.
-
-[645] _Ludlow's Memoirs_, vol. i. 240.
-
-[646] _Ludlow_, vol. i. 207.
-
-[647] _Clarendon_, 616.
-
-[648] _Blomefield's Hist. of Norwich_, i. 394, 395.
-
-[649] _Journals of Lords_, May the 19th. _Rushworth_, vii. 1119. At
-Bury, the cry was "For God and King Charles."
-
-[650] 1648, 26th of April.--"It is thought fit and agreed that Tuesday
-next shall be set apart and kept as a solemn day of thanksgiving for
-God's deliverance of this city from the rebellious company of people
-that did rise against them upon Monday last, and that Mr. Carter be
-desired to preach in the forenoon, and Mr. Collings in the afternoon,
-both at the Cathedral, and that they shall have 20s. a piece, and
-that the great guns shall be shot off, and that the aldermen shall be
-in scarlet and attended with the livery, and that the churchwardens
-and overseers of every parish do go from house to house to take the
-benevolence in writing of every person that will give for the relief of
-the poor who are in want, to be delivered unto the Court of Mayoralty,
-to be by them distributed."--_Corporation Records._
-
-[651] _Scobell_, 149.
-
-[652] _Vindication of the Ordinance against Heresies, &c._, 1646.--In
-which the example of Geneva in putting Servetus to death is cited with
-approval, and is adduced as an argument in defence of the ordinance.--
-
-The _Scottish Dove_ defends the _Ordinance against Heresies, &c._, as
-a great work, very necessary, heresy being of the flesh, and therefore
-to be punished by the magistrate. A complaint is made in a pamphlet
-entitled, _Oaths unwarrantable_, (June, 1647,) that multitudes of men
-well-affected to the Parliament were indicted and punished for not
-coming to their parish churches, though there were no statutes to
-authorize punishment for such neglect, except the act of uniformity,
-which had been repealed. "Though I stay seven years from church,"
-says the writer, "and constantly meet in private houses, there is
-by Parliament's principles neither law nor ordinance in force for
-any judge or justice of the peace to indict me, or any other, or any
-otherwise to molest or trouble me."
-
-[653] The following prayer for the King was used at Paris, September,
-1648:--
-
-"O Almighty and most gracious Lord God, the Ruler of princes when they
-are on their thrones, and their Protector when they are in peril, look
-down mercifully from heaven, we most humbly pray Thee, upon the low
-estate of thine anointed, our King. Comfort him in his troubles, defend
-him in his danger, strengthen him in his good resolutions, and command
-thine angels so to pitch their tents round about him, that he may be
-defended from all those that desire his hurt, and may be speedily
-re-established in the just rights of his throne, through Jesus Christ
-our Lord. Amen." Made by Dr. Steward, 1648. MS. copy in _Pamphlets_,
-vol. xxxv.
-
-[654] See _Short's Sketch of the Church_, ii. 154.
-
-[655] _Rushworth_, vii. 1302, 1321. Godwin, in his _History of the
-Commonwealth_, ii. 481, has exposed with unsparing justice the
-duplicity of Charles at this moment in the treaty which he was then
-forming with the Scotch.
-
-[656] _Rushworth_, vii. 1334.
-
-It is unnecessary to do more than indicate that the Commissioners
-replied to this document, (November the 20th, 1648,) still urging the
-three points, but explaining the Directory, as setting down the matter
-of prayer, only leaving words to a minister's discretion. To this
-Charles gave a final reply, November the 21st, adhering to Episcopacy
-and the inalienability of church lands. As to the Directory--having
-observed its latitude according to their explanation--he was willing
-to waive his objections. The King's final reply is not given in
-_Rushworth_, but it may be found in the _Parl. Hist._, iii. 1130.
-
-[657] _Parl. Hist._, iii. 1077.
-
-[658] The speech is given in _Parl. Hist._, iii. 1152-1239; the pages
-are closely printed. Though so very long it is well worth reading.
-
-[659] _Memoirs of the Two Last Years of K. Charles I., by Sir Thomas
-Herbert_, 124.
-
-[660] _Whitelocke_, 375. It has been stated that Juxon's spiritual
-assistance was permitted at the intercession of Hugh Peters--a thing
-in itself very unlikely. Godwin asserts it, and refers generally to
-Whitelocke and Rushworth as his authorities; I suppose p. 370 of the
-_Memorials_ is intended. Rushworth ascribes the intercession to a
-member of the army.--Vol. vii. 1421. In most accounts of the last days
-of Charles, the references are unsatisfactory.
-
-[661] Prefixed to _Ussher's Letters_, p. 72.
-
-[662] _Life of Philip Henry_, by his son. There is amongst the Harleian
-MSS. in the British Museum an affecting letter on the subject, by Dr.
-Sanderson, written a few days after the King's execution.
-
-[663] It must be remembered that Vane, St. John, and Algernon Sidney,
-were of opinion that to depose Charles would be better than to behead
-him.
-
-[664] Bradshaw was a member of the Church under the pastoral care,
-first of Mr. Strong, and then of Mr. Rowe, ministers of Westminster
-Abbey. Miles Corbet was member of the Church at Yarmouth, under the
-pastoral care of William Bridge.
-
-[665] _Neal_, iii. 537. See what he says, 547-554, respecting the
-authors of the King's death.
-
-[666] The Governor's name is spelt in at least six different ways by
-various historians. We have adopted the spelling of Clarendon.
-
-[667] See _Fuller's Church History_, iii. 502; Herbert, in _Wood's
-Ath. Oxon._, ii. 705; _Clarendon's Hist. of Rebellion_, 692; and
-_Gentleman's Magazine_, vol. xlii.
-
-
-Transcriber's Note:
-
-1. Spelling errors have been silently corrected.
-
-2. The Corrigenda for this volume have been corrected.
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Ecclesiastical History of England,
-from the Opening of the Long Parli, by John Stoughton
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY ***
-
-***** This file should be named 62837-0.txt or 62837-0.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/6/2/8/3/62837/
-
-Produced by Emmanuel Ackerman, Karin Spence and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by The Internet Archive)
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
diff --git a/old/62837-0.zip b/old/62837-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index a34e632..0000000
--- a/old/62837-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h.zip b/old/62837-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 60eeaeb..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/62837-h.htm b/old/62837-h/62837-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index e642511..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/62837-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,22360 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
- <title>
- The Project Gutenberg eBook of Ecclesiastical History of England. Vol. I., by John Stoughton.
- </title>
-
- <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
-
- <style type="text/css">
-
-body {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
- h1,h2,h3 {
- text-align: center; /* all headings centered */
- clear: both;
- font-weight: normal;
-}
-
-p {
- margin-top: .51em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: .49em;
- text-indent: 1.2em;}
-
-.p-left {text-indent: 0em; }
-
-.p0 {margin-top: 0em;}
-.p2 {margin-top: 2em;}
-.p4 {margin-top: 4em;}
-.p6 {margin-top: 6em;}
-
-hr {
- width: 33%;
- margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-hr.tb {width: 45%; margin-left: 27.5%; margin-right: 27.5%;}
-hr.chap {width: 65%; margin-left: 17.5%; margin-right: 17.5%;}
-hr.r5 {width: 5%; margin-left: 47.5%; margin-right: 47.5%;}
-hr.r15 {width: 15%; margin-left: 42.5%; margin-right: 42.5%;}
-
-div.chapter {
-page-break-before: always;}
-
-blockquote {font-size: 95%; }
-
-.nobreak {page-break-before: avoid;}
-
-table {
-margin: auto;
-width:auto;
-border: 0;
-border-spacing: 0;
-border-collapse: collapse;
- }
-
-td {
-padding: .05em .2em .2em 2.5em;
-border: .1em none white;
-text-align: left;
-text-indent: -2em; }
-
-th.pag {
-font-weight: normal;
-font-size: x-small;
-text-align: right;
-padding-left: 6em;
-padding-top: 6em; }
-
-th.pag {
-font-weight: normal;
-font-size: x-small;
-text-align: right;
-padding-left: 6em; }
-
-td.cht {
-text-align: left;
-vertical-align: top;
-padding-left: 1em;
-text-indent: -1em;}
-
-td.rt {
-text-align: right;
-vertical-align: top;
-padding-left: 1em;
-text-indent: -1em;}
-
-td.rt1 {
-text-align: right;
-vertical-align: middle;
-padding-left: 1em;
-text-indent: -1em;}
-
-td.text {
-text-align: left;
-vertical-align: top;
-padding-left: 3em; }
-
-td.text1 {
-text-align: left;
-vertical-align: middle;
-padding-left: 3em; }
-
-td.pag {
-text-align: right;
-vertical-align: bottom;
-padding-left: 4em;}
-
-td.ctr {
- text-align: center;
- text-indent: 0em;
- padding-top: 1em;
- padding-left: 1em;
- vertical-align: top; }
-
-td.ctr1 {
- text-align: center;
- text-indent: 0em;
- padding-top: 0em;
- font-size: small;
- vertical-align: top; }
-
-td.brckt {text-align: center;
- padding-left: .5em;
- padding-right: .5em;
- width: 1.5em; }
-
-
-.pagenum { /* uncomment the next line for invisible page numbers */
- /* visibility: hidden; */
- position: absolute;
- left: 92%;
- font-size: smaller;
- text-align: right;
-} /* page numbers */
-
-
-.sidenote {
- width: 20%;
- padding-bottom: .5em;
- padding-top: .5em;
- padding-left: .5em;
- padding-right: .5em;
- margin-left: 1em;
- float: right;
- clear: right;
- margin-top: 1em;
- font-size: smaller;
- color: black;
- background: #eeeeee;
- border: dashed 1px;
-}
-
- @media handheld { .sidenote { float: right; } }
-
-.border {width: 80%;
-margin-left: 10%;
-margin-right: 10%;
-border-top: 1.5px solid black;
-border-bottom: 1.5px solid black;
-border-left: 1.5px solid black;
-border-right: 1.5px solid black;
-margin-top: 2em;}
-
-
-.center {text-align: center;}
-
-.r1 {text-align: right;
- margin-right: 1em;}
-
-.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
-
-.lg { font-size: large;}
-
-.xl { font-size: x-large;}
-
-.sm { font-size: 70%;}
-
-.xs { font-size: x-small;}
-
-.gesperrt
-{
- letter-spacing: .5em;
- margin-right: -.5em;
-}
-
-em.gesperrt
-{
- font-style: normal;
-}
-
-/* Images */
-
-img {max-width: 100%; height: auto;}
-
-
-.figcenter {
- margin: auto;
- text-align: center;
-}
-
-p.drop-cap {
-text-indent: 0em; }
-
-p.drop-cap:first-letter
-{
-float: left;
-margin: .1em 0em 0em 0em;
-font-size: 250%;
-line-height:0.85em;
-}
-@media handheld
-{
- p.drop-cap:first-letter
- {
- float: none;
- margin: 0;
- font-size: 100%;
- }
-}
-
-
-/* Footnotes */
-.footnotes {border: dashed 1px;}
-
-.footnote {margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%; font-size: 0.9em;}
-
-.footnote .label {position: absolute; right: 84%; text-align: right;}
-
-.fnanchor {
- vertical-align: super;
- font-size: .8em;
- text-decoration:
- none;
-}
-
-/* Poetry */
-
-.poetry-container
-{
-text-align: center;
-font-size: 90%;
-}
-
-.poetry
-{
-display: inline-block;
-text-align: left;
-margin-left: 2.5em;
-line-height: 100%;
-}
-
-@media handheld
-{
- .poetry
- {
- display: block;
- margin-left: 1.5em;
- }
-}
-
-.poetry .stanza
-{
-margin: 1em 0em 1em 1em;
-}
-
-.poetry .ileft {margin-left: -.4em;}
-.poetry .i1 {margin-left: 1em;}
-.poetry .i6 {margin-left: 6em;}
-
-
-/* Transcriber's notes */
-.transnote {background-color: #E6E6FA;
- color: black;
- font-size:smaller;
- padding:0.5em;
- margin-bottom:5em;
- font-family:sans-serif, serif; }
- </style>
- </head>
-<body>
-
-
-<pre>
-
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of Ecclesiastical History of England, from the
-Opening of the Long Parliament to the Death, by John Stoughton
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll
-have to check the laws of the country where you are located before using
-this ebook.
-
-
-
-Title: Ecclesiastical History of England, from the Opening of the Long Parliament to the Death of Oliver Cromwell
- Volume 1--The Church of the Civil Wars
-
-Author: John Stoughton
-
-Release Date: August 3, 2020 [EBook #62837]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Emmanuel Ackerman, Karin Spence and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by The Internet Archive)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="title1" >
- <img
- class="p0"
- src="images/title1.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-<p class="center p-left xl">ECCLESIATICAL<br />
-
-HISTORY OF ENGLAND.</p>
-
-<hr class="r5" />
-
-<p class="center p-left sm">VOLUME I.</p>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<div class="border">
-
-<p class="center p-left">BY THE SAME AUTHOR.</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left">In one volume, crown 8vo.</p>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="author1" >
- <img
- class="p0"
- src="images/author1.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-<p class="center p-left lg">Church and State Two Hundred Years Ago:</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left">Being a History of Ecclesiastical Affairs from 1660 to 1663.</p>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>"A volume that, regarded from every point of view, we can
-approve&mdash;contains proof of independent research and cautious
-industry. The temper of the book is generous and impartial
-throughout."&mdash;<i>Athenæum.</i></p>
-
-<p>"Mr. Stoughton's is the best history of the ejection of the
-Puritans that has yet been written."&mdash;<i>North British Review.</i></p>
-
-<p>"The thanks, not only of the Nonconforming community, but
-of all who are interested in the religious history of our
-country, are due to Mr. Stoughton for the ability, the
-impartiality, the fidelity, and the Christian spirit with
-which he has pictured Church and State two hundred years
-ago."&mdash;<i>Patriot.</i></p></blockquote>
-
-<hr class="r15" />
-
-<p class="center p-left">In crown 8vo., cloth.</p>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="author2" >
- <img
- class="p0"
- src="images/author2.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-<p class="center p-left">Age of Christendom: Before the Reformation.</p>
-
-<blockquote>
-
-<p>"We know not where to find, within so brief a space, so
-intelligent a clue to the labyrinth of Church History before
-the Reformation."&mdash;<i>British Quarterly Review.</i></p></blockquote>
-
-<p class="center p-left">LONDON: JACKSON, WALFORD, &amp; HODDER,</p>
-
-<p class="smcap center p-left sm">27, Paternoster Row.</p>
-
-</div></div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="title2" >
- <img
- class="p2"
- src="images/title2.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-
-
-<h1>ECCLESIATICAL<br />
-HISTORY OF ENGLAND,</h1></div>
-
-<p class="center p-left p2 xs">FROM THE OPENING OF THE LONG PARLIAMENT TO THE
-DEATH OF OLIVER CROMWELL.</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left p4 xs">BY</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left gesperrt">JOHN STOUGHTON.</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left p4 sm">VOLUME I.</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left">THE CHURCH OF THE CIVIL WARS.</p>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="title2a" >
- <img
- class="p4"
- src="images/title2a.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="title2b" >
- <img
- class="p2"
- src="images/title2b.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-<p class="center p-left">London:</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left">JACKSON, WALFORD, AND HODDER,</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left sm">27, PATERNOSTER ROW, E.C.</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left xs">MDCCCLXVII.</p>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p class="center p-left p6 xs">UNWIN BROTHERS, GRESHAM STEAM PRESS, BUCKLERSBURY, LONDON, E.C.</p></div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="illo_v" >
- <img
- class="p0"
- src="images/illo_v.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">ADVERTISEMENT.</h2></div>
-
-
-<p>English literature includes valuable histories of the Church, some of
-them prominently exhibiting whatever relates to Anglicanism, others
-almost exclusively describing the developments of Puritanism. In
-such works the ecclesiastical events of the Civil Wars and of the
-Commonwealth may be found described with considerable, but not with
-sufficient fullness. Many persons wish to know more respecting those
-times. The book now published is designed to meet this wish, by telling
-the ecclesiastical part of England's story at that eventful period
-with less of incompleteness. In doing so, the object is not to give
-prominence to any single ecclesiastical party to the disadvantage of
-others in that respect; but to point out the circumstances of all, and
-the spirit of each, to trace their mutual relations, and to indicate
-the influence which they exerted upon one another. The study of
-original authorities, researches amongst State Papers and other MS.
-collections, together with enquiries pursued by the aid<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_vi" id="Page_vi">[vi]</a></span> of historical
-treasures of all kinds in the British Museum, have brought to light
-many fresh illustrations of the period under review; and the author,
-whilst endeavouring to make use of the results so obtained, has reached
-the conclusion, that the only method by which a satisfactory account of
-a single religious denomination can be given, is by the exhibition of
-it in connexion with all the rest.</p>
-
-<p>His purpose has been carefully to ascertain, and honestly to state
-the truth, in reference both to the nature of the events, and the
-characters of the persons introduced in the following chapters.
-He is by no means indifferent to certain principles, political,
-ecclesiastical, and theological, which were involved in the great
-controversy of the seventeenth century. As will appear in this
-narrative, his faith in these is strong and unwavering: nor does he
-fail to recognize the bearing of certain things which he has recorded,
-upon certain other things occurring at this very moment; but he cannot
-see why private opinions and public events should stand in the way of
-an impartial statement of historical facts, or a righteous judgment
-of historical characters. For the principles which a man holds remain
-exactly the same, whatever may have been the past incidents or the
-departed individuals connected with their history. Happily, a change is
-coming over historical literature in this respect; persons and opinions
-are now being distinguished from each other, and it is seen, that
-advocates on the one side of a great question were not all perfectly
-good, and that those on the other side were<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_vii" id="Page_vii">[vii]</a></span> not all thoroughly bad.
-The writer has sought to do honour to Christian faith, devotion,
-constancy, and love wherever he has found them, and never in any case
-to varnish over the hateful opposite of these noble qualities. And he
-will esteem it a great reward to be, by the blessing of God, in any
-measure the means of promoting what is most dear to his heart, the
-cause of truth and charity amongst Christian Englishmen.</p>
-
-<p>The plan of the work, and the various aspects under which the public
-affairs, the principal actors, and the private religious life of
-England from the opening of the Long Parliament to the death of Oliver
-Cromwell are exhibited, may be discovered at a glance, by any one who
-will take the trouble to run over the table of contents.</p>
-
-<p>Many defects which have escaped the Author will doubtless be noticed
-by his critics, and in this respect he ventures to throw himself
-upon their candour and generosity. One omission, however, may be
-explained. The theological literature of the period needs to be studied
-at large, for the purpose of making apparent the grounds upon which
-different bodies of Christians based their respective beliefs. Most
-ecclesiastical historians fail to exhibit those grounds. The Author is
-fully aware of this deficiency in his own case; but it is his hope,
-should Divine Providence spare his life, to be enabled, in some humble
-degree, to supply that deficiency at a future time.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_viii" id="Page_viii">[viii]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>He begs gratefully to acknowledge the valuable assistance rendered
-him by the Very Reverend the Dean of Westminster, in what relates to
-Westminster Abbey and the Universities&mdash;by Mr. John Bruce, F.S.A.,
-for information and advice on several curious points&mdash;and by Mr.
-Clarence Hopper, who has collated with the originals, almost all the
-extracts from State Papers. Nor can he omit thankfully to notice the
-special facilities afforded him for consulting the large collection of
-Commonwealth pamphlets in the British Museum, and the polite attention
-and help which he has received from gentlemen connected with Sion
-College and with Dr. Williams' Library. He has also had other helpers
-in his own house&mdash;helpers very dear to him, whom he must not name.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_ix" id="Page_ix">[ix]</a></span></p></div>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="illo_ix" >
- <img
- class="p0"
- src="images/illo_ix.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CONTENTS.</h2>
-
-<hr class="r15" />
-
-<table summary="contents">
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr lg" colspan="2">INTRODUCTION.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <th></th>
- <th class="pag">PAGE.</th>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Opening of Long Parliament</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_1">1</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr sm">ANGLICANS.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Under Elizabeth</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_4">4</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Under the Stuarts</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_6">6</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Spirit of Anglicanism</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_9">9</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Intolerance</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_17">17</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Ecclesiastical Courts</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_18">18</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">High Commission Court</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_20">20</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Star Chamber Court</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_26">26</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Strafford</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_29">29</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Laud</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_31">31</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr sm">PURITANS.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">In the reign of Elizabeth</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_40">40</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Change in the Controversy</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_45">45</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Puritan dislike of Ceremonies</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_48">48</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Sufferings</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_49">49</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Emigration</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_50">50</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Bolton and Sibbs</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_53">53</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Puritanism a Reaction</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_55">55</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Its defects</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_56">56</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr lg" colspan="2">CHAPTER I.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr sm" colspan="2">MEMBERS OF THE LONG PARLIAMENT.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Lenthall</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_59">59</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Holles&mdash;Glynne&mdash;Rudyard</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_60">60</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Vane</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_61">61</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Fiennes</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_62">62</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Cromwell</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_63">63</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">St. John</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_64">64</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Haselrig&mdash;Pym</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_65">65</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Hampden</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_66">66</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Marten</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_68">68</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Selden</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_69">69</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Falkland</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_72">72</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Dering</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_74">74</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Digby</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_75">75</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Hyde</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_77">77</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr lg" colspan="2">CHAPTER II.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Grand Committee for Religion</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_79">79</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Petitions from Prynne, Burton, and Bastwick</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_79">79</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Debates on Religion</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_83">83</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Pym's and Rudyard's Speeches</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_83">83-85</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Committee appointed to prepare a Remonstrance</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_86">86</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Debates respecting Strafford</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_87">87</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Strafford impeached by Pym</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_89">89</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Impeachment of Laud</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_91">91</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Puritan Petitions</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_93">93</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Debate on the Canons</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_95">95</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr lg" colspan="2">CHAPTER III.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Presbyterianism in England</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_100">100</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Root and Branch Petition</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_103">103</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Presbyterianism in Scotland</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_104">104</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Scotch Commissioners in London</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_107">107</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Petition and Remonstrance presented to the House</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_109">109</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Other Petitions</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_110">110</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Debate touching Root and Branch Petition</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_112">112</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr lg" colspan="2">CHAPTER IV.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Lords' Committee on Innovations</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_119">119</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Williams, Dean of Westminster</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_119">119</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Meetings in Jerusalem Chamber</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_121">121</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Ceremonial Innovations</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_123">123</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">The Prayer Book</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_124">124</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Episcopacy</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_124">124</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Resolutions for Reforming Pluralities and removing Bishops from the Peerage</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_126">126</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Star Chamber and High Commission Courts</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_127">127</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">The Smectymnus Controversy</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_128">128</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr lg" colspan="2">CHAPTER V.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Marriage of the Princess Mary</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_131">131</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">The Solemn Vow and Protestation</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_133">133</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Conference between the two Houses</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_134">134</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">No Popery Riots</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_136">136</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Trial of Strafford</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_137">137</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">His Execution</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_141">141</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Deans and Chapters</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_142">142</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Bill for Restraining Bishops</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_144">144</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Bill for Abolition of Episcopacy</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_146">146</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Debated by the Commons</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_148">148</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Conference between the two Houses</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_150">150</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Further Debate</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_152">152</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Discussion on Deans and Chapters</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_154">154</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Discussions respecting Episcopacy</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_157">157</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Complaints against the Clergy</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_158">158</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr lg" colspan="2">CHAPTER VI.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Laud sent to the Tower</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_160">160</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Bishop Wren arrested</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_161">161</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Montague's Death</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_162">162</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Davenant's Death</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_163">163</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Impeachment of the Thirteen Prelates</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_163">163</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Correspondence between English and Scotch Clergy</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_163">163</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Visit of Charles to Scotland</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_165">165</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Dislike of the Lower House to the Expedition</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_166">166</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Charles departs for Edinburgh</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_166">166</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Letters from Sidney Bere</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_167">167</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Conduct of Charles in Scotland</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_169">169</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Church Reforms</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_170">170</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Innovations discussed</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_171">171</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Parliament adjourns</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_172">172</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Parliament less popular</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_173">173</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Causes of the Reaction</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_174">174</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr lg" colspan="2">CHAPTER VII.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Bill for excluding Bishops from Parliament</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_176">176</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Dering's Speech</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_176">176</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">The Grand Remonstrance</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_179">179</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Debated by the Commons</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_182">182</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Discussion about the Printing of it</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_183">183</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr lg" colspan="2">CHAPTER VIII.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Return of the King</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_186">186</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Vacant Bishoprics filled up</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_186">186</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Reception of Charles in London</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_187">187</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">The Remonstrance presented</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_191">191</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">His Majesty's Answer</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_192">192</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Arrest of the Five Members</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_193">193</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Royalist Version of the Affair</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_193">193</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Fatal Crisis in the History of Charles</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_196">196</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Reaction in favour of the Puritans</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_197">197</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Westminster Riots</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_198">198</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Protest drawn up by Twelve Bishops</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_203">203</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Presented to the King</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_204">204</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Prelates sent to the Tower</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_205">205</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Their Unpopularity</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_205">205</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Dismissed on Bail</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_206">206</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr lg" colspan="2">CHAPTER IX.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Bishops excluded from the Upper House</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_207">207</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Those who died before 1650</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_209">209</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Wright&mdash;Frewen&mdash;Westfield Howell</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_209">209</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Coke&mdash;Owen&mdash;Curle&mdash;Towers</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_210">210</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Prideaux&mdash;Williams</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_211">211</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Irish Rebellion</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_212">212</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Protestant Churches in Ireland</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_216">216</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Popish Massacre</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_218">218</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Fears of the English</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_220">220</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr lg" colspan="2">CHAPTER X.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Episcopacy</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_223">223</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Seceders from the Popular Party</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_224">224</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Opponents of Episcopacy</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_227">227</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Sectaries</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_228">228</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Flight of the King</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_229">229</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Charles at Windsor</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_230">230</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Charles at York</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_231">231</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Attempts at Mediation</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_231">231</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Manifestoes</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_233">233</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">The Coming Conflict</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_237">237</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Hostile Preparations</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_239">239</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">The Parliamentary Army</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_240">240</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Royalist Army</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_242">242</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Nature of the Struggle</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_243">243</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr lg" colspan="2">CHAPTER XI.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Outbreak of the War</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_246">246</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Puritan Troops on the March</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_248">248</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Barbarity of the Cavaliers</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_251">251</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Battle of Edge Hill</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_253">253</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Church Politics in London</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_255">255</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Popular Preachers</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_259">259</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">The Scotch advocate a thorough Reformation</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_261">261</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">The Fate of Prelacy</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_262">262</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Negotiations at Oxford</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_264">264</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Proposals from Parliament</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_265">265</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Royal Answer</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_266">266</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Scottish Petition</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_267">267</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr lg" colspan="2">CHAPTER XII.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Westminster Assembly</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_271">271</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Its Constitution</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_273">273</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Meeting of the Members</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_275">275</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Parliamentary Directions</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_278">278</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Death of Brooke</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_280">280</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Death of Hampden</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_281">281</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Success of the Royalists</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_283">283</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Bradford Besieged</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_283">283</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Gloucester Besieged</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_284">284</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Effect of the War upon the Assembly</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_287">287</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Commissioners sent to Scotland</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_289">289</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">The Solemn League and Covenant</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_292">292</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Taken by the Assembly</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_294">294</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Battle of Newbury</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_296">296</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Treaty with the Scotch</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_297">297</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr lg" colspan="2">CHAPTER XIII.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Death of Pym</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_301">301</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Court Intrigues</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_305">305</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Corporation Banquet</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_307">307</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Marshall's Discourse</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_308">308</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Iconoclastic Crusade</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_312">312</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Cromwell at Ely</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_319">319</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">League and Covenant set up</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_319">319</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Covenant imposed upon the Irish</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_323">323</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Meetings of Westminster Assembly</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_326">326</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Presbyterians</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_329">329</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Erastians</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_330">330</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Dissenting Brethren</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_332">332</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Toleration&mdash;Chillingworth</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_335">335</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Hales</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_336">336</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Jeremy Taylor</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_337">337</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Cudworth&mdash;More</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_339">339</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">John Goodwin</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_343">343</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Busher&mdash;Locke</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_346">346</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr lg" colspan="2">CHAPTER XIV.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Early Congregational Churches</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_348">348</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Browne</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_349">349</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Barrowe&mdash;Greenwood</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_353">353</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Penry</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_356">356</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Jacob</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_357">357</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Lathrop</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_358">358</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Independents and Brownists</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_365">365</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Spread of Congregationalism</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_369">369</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Presbyterians and Independents</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_371">371</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr lg" colspan="2">CHAPTER XV.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Charles at Oxford</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_372">372</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Royalist Army</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_373">373</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Reports Respecting the King and the Court</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_374">374</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Conduct of his Majesty</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_376">376</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Bishops at Oxford</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_378">378</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Clergy at Oxford</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_379">379</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Chillingworth and Cheynell</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_381">381</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Barwick</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_383">383</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr lg" colspan="2">CHAPTER XVI.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Ecclesiastical Affairs</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_385">385</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Committee for Plundered Ministers</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_387">387</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Tithes</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_389">389</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Local Committees</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_390">390</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Church and Parliament</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_391">391</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr lg" colspan="2">CHAPTER XVII.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Laud's Trial</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_395">395</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Accusations against him</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_396">396</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">His Defence</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_397">397</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Bill of Attainder passed</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_399">399</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">His Execution</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_401">401</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">His Character</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_402">402</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">The Directory</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_404">404</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Sanctioned by General Assembly and House of Lords</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_406">406</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Ordinance enforcing the Directory</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_407">407</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Dissatisfaction of the Scotch</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_408">408</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Irish Loyal to Prayer Book</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_409">409</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Forms of Devotion for the Navy</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_409">409</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr lg" colspan="2">CHAPTER XVIII.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Treaty at Uxbridge</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_412">412</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Debate between Royalists and Parliamentarians</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_414">414</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Charles makes a shew of Concession</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_415">415</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Debates at Westminster about Ordination</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_417">417</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Debates on Presbyterian Discipline</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_418">418</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Presbyterians and Independents</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_419">419</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Committee of Accommodation</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_421">421</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr lg" colspan="2">CHAPTER XIX.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Long Marston Moor</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_425">425</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Naseby</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_428">428</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Sufferings of the Clergy</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_431">431</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Alphery&mdash;Alcock&mdash;Alvey</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_433">433</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr lg" colspan="2">CHAPTER XX.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Jealousy of Presbyterian Power</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_436">436</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Unpopularity of Scotch Army</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_437">437</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">The Power of the Keys</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_439">439</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Toleration</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_443">443</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Divine Right of Presbyterianism</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_446">446</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Assembly threatened with a Præmunire</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_448">448</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Confession of Faith drawn up by Assembly</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_450">450</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Revision of Psalmody</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_451">451</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Character of Assembly</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_452">452</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr lg" colspan="2">CHAPTER XXI.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">New modelling of the Army</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_455">455</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Richard Baxter</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_456">456</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Religion in the Camp</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_457">457</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Army Chaplains&mdash;Sprigg</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_459">459</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Palmer</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_461">461</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Saltmarsh</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_462">462</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Preaching in the Army</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_464">464</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Conference between Charles I. and Henderson</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_469">469</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Newcastle Treaty</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_471">471</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Letters to the Queen</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_474">474</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr lg" colspan="2">CHAPTER XXII.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Ordinances for establishing Presbyteries</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_477">477</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Final Measures with regard to Episcopacy</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_479">479</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Ecclesiastical Courts</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_481">481</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Registration of Wills</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_483">483</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Tithes</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_485">485</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Church Dues</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_487">487</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">University of Cambridge</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_490">490</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Ordinance for its Regulation</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_491">491</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Commissioners appointed to administer the Covenant</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_491">491</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Sequestrations</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_493">493</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Revival of Puritanism</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_494">494</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Oxford</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_496">496</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Military Occupation of the University</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_497">497</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Parliamentary Commissioners</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_497">497</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Dr. Laurence and Colonel Walton</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_499">499</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Resistance to the New Authorities</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_500">500</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr lg" colspan="2">CHAPTER XXIII.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Presbyterians and Independents</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_504">504</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Contentions at Norwich</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_505">505</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Presbyterian Policy</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_508">508</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Attack on the Sectaries</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_509">509</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Supernatural Omens</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_511">511</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Negotiations between the Parliament and the Scotch</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_513">513</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">The King at Holdenby</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_514">514</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Presbyterians jealous of the Army</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_515">515</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Earl of Essex</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_517">517</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">False Step of the Presbyterians</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_518">518</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">The King in the Hands of the Independents</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_519">519</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Cromwell's attempt at reconciling Parties</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_520">520</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Royalist Violence</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_522">522</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Laws against Heresy</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_523">523</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Newport Treaty</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_526">526</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Concessions made by the King</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_527">527</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Military Remonstrance</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_528">528</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Presbyterian Efforts to save the King</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_529">529</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Pride's Purge</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_531">531</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Trial of Charles</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_531">531</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Execution</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_532">532</a></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="cht">Burial</td>
- <td class="pag"><a href="#Page_535">535</a></td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xxiii" id="Page_xxiii">[xxiii]</a></span></p></div>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="illo_xvii" >
- <img
- class="p0"
- src="images/illo_xvii.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-<h2>CORRIGENDA.</h2>
-
-<table summary ="corrigenda">
- <tr>
- <td></td>
- <td class="brckt"></td>
- <td></td>
- <td class="ctr">VOL. I.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="ctr1">Page</td>
- <td class="brckt"></td>
- <td class="ctr1">Line</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="rt">114</td>
- <td class="brckt"></td>
- <td class="rt">29</td>
- <td class="text"><i>for</i> Simon <i>read</i> Symonds.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="rt">192</td>
- <td class="brckt"></td>
- <td class="rt">note</td>
- <td class="text"><i>for</i> Horton <i>read</i> Hopton.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="rt">207</td>
- <td class="brckt"></td>
- <td class="rt">1</td>
- <td class="text"><i>insert</i> Bishops.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="rt">210</td>
- <td class="brckt"></td>
- <td class="rt">7</td>
- <td class="text"><i>for</i> in 1646. He died <i>read</i> He died in 1646,</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="rt">215</td>
- <td class="brckt"></td>
- <td class="rt">19</td>
- <td class="text"><i>for</i> Rauthaus <i>read</i> Rathhaus.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="rt">453</td>
- <td class="brckt"></td>
- <td class="rt">22</td>
- <td class="text"><i>for</i> condition <i>read</i> erudition.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="rt">521</td>
- <td class="brckt"></td>
- <td class="rt">heading</td>
- <td class="text"><i>for</i> Denominations <i>read</i> Demonstrations.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="rt"></td>
- <td class="brckt"></td>
- <td class="rt"></td>
- <td class="ctr">VOL. II.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="rt"><p>125</p>
- <p>127</p></td>
-<td class="brckt"><img src="images/big_right_bracket.png" alt="big right bracket"
- style="height:2.5em; padding:0 1em 0 1em;" /></td>
- <td class="rt1">headings</td>
- <td class="text1">read <i>Sir Harry Vane</i>.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="rt">133</td>
- <td class="brckt"></td>
- <td class="rt">7</td>
- <td class="text"><i>for</i> Naylor <i>read</i> Nayler.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="rt">146</td>
- <td class="brckt"></td>
- <td class="rt">3</td>
- <td class="text"><i>the word</i> been <i>is dropped into line</i> 4.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="rt">151</td>
- <td class="brckt"></td>
- <td class="rt">31</td>
- <td class="text"><i>for</i> Bordura <i>read</i> Bodurda.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="rt">262</td>
- <td class="brckt"></td>
- <td class="rt">note</td>
- <td class="text"><i>for</i> according <i>read</i> accordingly.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="rt">361</td>
- <td class="brckt"></td>
- <td class="rt">heading</td>
- <td class="text">for <i>Fox and Cromwell</i> read <i>Fox's Disciples</i>.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="rt">409</td>
- <td class="brckt"></td>
- <td class="rt">10</td>
- <td class="text"><i>for</i> Isaac <i>read</i> Isaak.</td>
- </tr>
-
- <tr>
- <td class="rt">427</td>
- <td class="brckt"></td>
- <td class="rt">1 &amp; 13</td>
- <td class="text"><i>for</i> Francis <i>read</i> Frances.</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xxiv" id="Page_xxiv">[xxiv]</a></span></p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_1" id="Page_1">[1]</a></span></p>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="illo001" >
- <img
- class="p0"
- src="images/illo001.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">INTRODUCTION.</h2>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">On the third of November, 1640, at nine o'clock in the forenoon, the
-Earl Marshal of England came into the outer room of the Commons'
-House, accompanied by the Treasurer of the King's Household and other
-officers. When the Chancery crier had made proclamation, and the
-clerk of the Crown had called over the names of the returned knights,
-citizens, burgesses, and barons of the Cinque-ports; and after his
-Lordship had sworn some threescore members, and made arrangements for
-swearing the rest, he departed to wait upon his Majesty, who, about one
-o'clock, came in his barge from Whitehall to Westminster stairs. There
-the lords met him. Thence on foot marched a procession consisting of
-servants and officers of state.<a name="FNanchor_1_1" id="FNanchor_1_1"></a><a href="#Footnote_1_1" class="fnanchor">[1]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_2" id="Page_2">[2]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The King, so accompanied, passed through Westminster Hall and the Court
-of Requests to the Abbey, where a sermon was preached by the Bishop of
-Bristol. The King's Majesty, arrayed in his royal robes, ascended the
-throne. The Prince of Wales sat on his left hand: on the right stood
-the Lord High Chamberlain of England and the Earl of Essex, bearing
-the cap; and the Earl Marshal and the Earl of Bath bearing the sword
-of state occupied the left. Clarence, in the absence of Garter, and
-also the gentleman of the black rod, were near the Earl Marshal. The
-Earl of Cork, Viscount Willmott, the Lord Newburgh, and the Master of
-the Rolls, called by writ as assistants, "sat on the inside of the
-wool-sacks;" so did the Lord Chief Justices, Lord Chief Baron, and
-the rest of the judges under them. "On the outside of the woolsack"
-were four Masters of Chancery, the King's two ancient Serjeants, the
-Attorney-General, and three of the puisne Serjeants. To the Lords
-Spiritual and Temporal, apparelled in their robes, and seated in their
-places, and to the House of Commons, assembled below the bar, his
-Majesty delivered an address, declaring the cause of summoning this
-parliament. Then the Lord Keeper Finch made a speech; after which, the
-Commons having chosen William Lenthall, of Lincoln's Inn, as Speaker,
-that gentleman, being approved with the usual ceremonies, added another
-oration, in which he observed: "I see before my eyes the Majesty of
-Great Britain, the glory of times, the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_3" id="Page_3">[3]</a></span> history of honour, Charles
-I. in his forefront, placed by descent of ancient kings, settled
-by a long succession, and continued to us by a pious and peaceful
-government. On the one side, the monument of glory, the progeny of
-valiant and puissant princes, the Queen's most excellent Majesty. On
-the other side, the hopes of posterity, the joy of this nation, those
-olive-branches set around your tables, emblems of peace to posterity.
-Here shine those lights and lamps placed in a mount, which attend your
-Sacred Majesty as supreme head, and borrow from you the splendour of
-their government."</p>
-
-<p>Thus opened the Long Parliament; knowing what followed, we feel a
-strange interest in these quaint items extracted from State Papers and
-Parliamentary Journals.<a name="FNanchor_2_2" id="FNanchor_2_2"></a><a href="#Footnote_2_2" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> With such ceremonies Charles I. once more
-sat down on the throne of his fathers; and once more, too, clothed in
-lawn and rochet, the prelates occupied their old benches. Great was
-their power: Laud, Archbishop of Canterbury, might be said to discharge
-the functions of Prime Minister; Juxon, Bishop of London, clasped the
-Lord Treasurer's staff; and Williams, Bishop of Lincoln, had some years
-before held the great seal. They and their reverend brethren sat as
-co-equals with scarlet-robed and coroneted barons. They represented the
-stately and ancient Church of England, in closest union with the senate
-and the throne; suggesting, as to the relations of ecclesiastical and
-civil power, questions, which are as ancient as mediæval times, and
-as modern as our own. Thus too again the Commons' Speaker, in florid
-diction congratulated the monarch on the prosperity of his realms.
-That day can never be forgotten. Outwardly the Church, like the State,
-looked<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_4" id="Page_4">[4]</a></span> strong; but an earthquake was at hand, destined to overturn
-the foundations of both. To understand the crisis in reference to the
-Church we must look a little further back.<a name="FNanchor_3_3" id="FNanchor_3_3"></a><a href="#Footnote_3_3" class="fnanchor">[3]</a></p>
-
-<p>The Anglo-Catholic and Puritan parties stood face to face in the
-National Church, at the opening of the Long Parliament. They had
-existed from the time of the Reformation.</p>
-
-<p>Anglo-Catholics, while upholding with reverence the three creeds of
-Christendom, did not maintain any particular doctrines as distinctive
-of their system. Neither did they, though their peculiarities were
-chiefly ecclesiastical, propound any special theory of Church and
-State. Under Queen Elizabeth they maintained theological opinions
-different from those which they upheld under Charles the First. At the
-former period they were Calvinists. Before the civil wars they became
-Arminians. Preaching upon the controversy was forbidden; and Bishop
-Morley, on being asked "what Arminians held," wittily replied, "the
-best bishoprics and deaneries in England!"<a name="FNanchor_4_4" id="FNanchor_4_4"></a><a href="#Footnote_4_4" class="fnanchor">[4]</a></p>
-
-<p>Whereas in reference to doctrine there was change, in reference to
-ecclesiastical principles there was progress. The constitution of
-the Protestant Church of England being based on Acts of Parliament,
-and the supremacy of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_5" id="Page_5">[5]</a></span> the Crown in all matters "touching spiritual
-or ecclesiastical jurisdiction"<a name="FNanchor_5_5" id="FNanchor_5_5"></a><a href="#Footnote_5_5" class="fnanchor">[5]</a> being recognized as a fundamental
-principle of the Reformation&mdash;the dependence of the Church upon the
-civil power appeared as soon as the great ecclesiastical change took
-place. The Act of Uniformity in the first year of Elizabeth was passed
-by the lay Lords alone&mdash;all the Bishops who were present dissented&mdash;and
-the validity of the consecration of the first Protestant Archbishop had
-to be ratified by a parliamentary statute.<a name="FNanchor_6_6" id="FNanchor_6_6"></a><a href="#Footnote_6_6" class="fnanchor">[6]</a></p>
-
-<p>Of the successive High Commissions&mdash;which formed the great spiritual
-tribunals of the land&mdash;the majority of the Commissioners were
-laymen.<a name="FNanchor_7_7" id="FNanchor_7_7"></a><a href="#Footnote_7_7" class="fnanchor">[7]</a> The Anglo-Catholics of Elizabeth's reign were obliged to
-accept this state of things, and sometimes to bow before their royal
-mistress, as if she had been possessed of an absolute super-episcopal<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_6" id="Page_6">[6]</a></span>
-rule.<a name="FNanchor_8_8" id="FNanchor_8_8"></a><a href="#Footnote_8_8" class="fnanchor">[8]</a> Yet gradually they shewed a jealousy of parliamentary
-interference, and rose in the assertion of their authority and the
-exercise of their power. Whitgift availed himself of the lofty
-spiritual prerogatives of the Crown to check the Commons in what he
-deemed their intrusive meddlings with spiritual affairs.<a name="FNanchor_9_9" id="FNanchor_9_9"></a><a href="#Footnote_9_9" class="fnanchor">[9]</a> He strove
-to lift the Parliamentary yoke from the neck of the Church, and to
-place all ecclesiastical matters in the hands of Convocation. He
-preferred canons to statutes, and asked for the royal confirmation of
-the first rather than the second. But, after Whitgift and under the
-Stuarts, Church power made considerable advances. Anglo-Catholics,
-under the first James and the first Charles, took higher ground than
-did their fathers. Their dislike of Parliaments went beyond what
-Whitgift had dared to manifest. The doctrine of the divine origin
-of Episcopacy, which was propounded by Bancroft, when Whitgift's
-chaplain, probably at Whitgift's suggestion, certainly with his
-concurrence&mdash;though it startled some English Protestants as a novelty,
-and roused the anger of a Puritan privy councillor jealous of the
-Queen's supremacy,<a name="FNanchor_10_10" id="FNanchor_10_10"></a><a href="#Footnote_10_10" class="fnanchor">[10]</a> became a current belief of the Stuart Anglicans.
-At the same time the power of Convocation was widely stretched, as
-will be seen in the business of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_7" id="Page_7">[7]</a></span> famous canons of 1640. The
-encroachments of the High Commission upon the jurisdiction of the
-Civil Courts, and the liberties of the subject, produced complaints in
-everybody's mouth, and served, as much as anything, to bring on the
-great catastrophe. What is now indicated in a few words will receive
-proof and illustration hereafter.</p>
-
-<p>Looking at changes in the doctrine and at progress in the policy
-of Anglo-Catholics, perhaps, on the whole, the persons intended by
-that denomination may be best described as distinguished by certain
-principles or sentiments, rather than by any organic scheme of dogma or
-polity. They formed a school of thought which bowed to the decisions
-of the past, craved Catholic unity, elevated the episcopal office,
-exalted Church authority, suspected individual opinion, gave prominence
-to social Christianity, delighted in ceremonial worship and symbolism,
-attached great importance to order and uniformity, and sought the
-mysterious operations of divine grace through material channels. The
-Anglo-Catholic spirit in most respects, as might be expected, appears
-more shadowy and in less power amongst the Bishops connected with the
-Reformation than amongst those who succeeded.<a name="FNanchor_11_11" id="FNanchor_11_11"></a><a href="#Footnote_11_11" class="fnanchor">[11]</a> Parker, Whitgift, and
-Laud represent stages of advancement in this point of view. But from
-the very foundation of the Reformed Church of England this spirit, in a
-measure, manifested itself, and in no respect, perhaps, so much as in
-reverence for early patristic teaching. No one can be surprised that
-such tendencies remained with many who withdrew allegiance from the
-Pope, and <span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_8" id="Page_8">[8]</a></span>renounced the grosser corruptions of Rome. It is a notable
-fact that out of 9,400 ecclesiastics, at the accession of Elizabeth,
-less than 200 left their livings.<a name="FNanchor_12_12" id="FNanchor_12_12"></a><a href="#Footnote_12_12" class="fnanchor">[12]</a> Many evaded the law under shelter
-of powerful patrons, or escaped through the remoteness and poverty of
-their cures. And it cannot be believed that, of those who positively
-conformed, all or nearly all became real Protestants.</p>
-
-<p>The divines of this school, drawn towards the Fathers by their
-venerable antiquity, their sacramental tone and their reverence for
-the episcopate, did not miss in them doctrinal tendencies accordant
-with their own. Even the Calvinistic Anglican of an earlier period
-could turn to the pages of Augustine and of other Latin Fathers, and
-find there nourishment for belief in Predestination, and Salvation
-by faith. But the Arminian still more easily found his own ideas of
-Christianity in Chrysostom, Clement of Alexandria, and other Eastern
-oracles. The Greek Fathers were favourites with the Anglican party
-of the seventeenth century. Whether the study of that branch of
-literature was the cause or the effect of the Arminian tendencies of
-the day&mdash;whether a taste for the learning and rhetoric of the great
-writers of Byzantium and Alexandria paved the way for the adoption of
-their creed, or sympathies with that creed led to the opening of their
-long neglected folios, may admit of question. Certainly the formation
-of theological beliefs is always a subtle process, and is subject to so
-many<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_9" id="Page_9">[9]</a></span> influences that, in the absence of conclusive evidence, it is
-hazardous confidently to pronounce a judgment.</p>
-
-
-
-<p>The fairest side of Stuart-Anglicanism presents itself in the writings
-of Dr. Donne, and Bishop Andrewes. In the first of these great
-preachers there is a strong "patristic leaven,"&mdash;a lofty enforcement of
-church claims, a deep reverence for virginity, and an inculcation of
-the doctrine of the Real presence&mdash;such as we notice in the writings
-of the Fathers before the schoolmen had crystallized the feeling of
-an earlier age into the hard dogma of Transubstantiation. But there
-are also in some of his quaint and beautiful sermons statements of
-Christian truth, resembling the theology of Augustine; and at the
-same time, from the very bent of his genius, he was led to illustrate
-practical duty in many edifying ways. As to Bishop Andrewes, his "Greek
-Devotions" present him as a man of great spirituality; and we are not
-surprised to learn that he spent five hours every day in prayer and
-meditation. The formality of method in his celebrated manual, the
-quaintness of his diction, and his artificial but ingenious arrangement
-of petition and praise are offensive to modern taste; and, it must be
-allowed, his catholic <i>animus</i> is betrayed every now and then, so as
-to shock Protestant sensibilities; yet there are Protestants who still
-use these Devotions, and find in them helps to communion with God, aids
-to self-examination, and impulses to a holy life. On turning to his
-sermons, we discover expressed in his sententious eloquence (which has
-been rather too much condemned for pedantry and alliteration) doctrinal
-statements respecting the Atonement and Justification by Faith, quite
-in harmony with evangelical opinions. Though not a Calvinist, he was
-free from Pelagian tincture. Andrewes, Donne and others, however,
-are not&mdash;any more than the Fathers&mdash;to be judged by<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_10" id="Page_10">[10]</a></span> extracts. A few
-passages do not accurately convey their pervading sentiments. Orthodox
-and evangelical in occasional statements of doctrine, still they are
-thoroughly sacramentarian and priestly in spirit. And, no doubt, their
-works, especially those of Andrewes, contributed in a great degree to
-foster that kind of religion which so much distressed, alarmed, and
-irritated the Puritans at the opening of the Civil War.</p>
-
-<p>The admirable George Herbert, too, had strong Anglo-Catholic
-sympathies, on their poetical and devotional side. His hymns and
-prayers are in harmony with his holy quiet life, and may be compared
-to a strain of music such as he drew from his lute or viol, or to a
-deep-toned cathedral antiphony, in response to notes struck by an angel
-choir.</p>
-
-<p>The type of character formed under such culture partook largely of a
-mediæval spirit. The saints of the Church were cherished models. The
-festivals of the Church were seasons for joy, its fasts for sorrow. The
-liturgy of the Church stereotyped the expressions of devotion, almost
-as much in its private as in its public exercise. The ministers of the
-Church were regarded more as priests than teachers, and their spiritual
-counsel and consolations were sought with a feeling, not foreign to
-that in which Romanists approach the confessional. The sacraments
-of the Church were received with awe, if not with trembling, as the
-mystic vehicles of salvation; and the whole History of the Church,
-its persecution and prosperity, its endurance and achievements, its
-conflicts and victories, were connected in the minds of such persons
-with the ancient edifices in which they worshipped. The cathedral and
-even many village choirs told them of "the glorious company of the
-Apostles," "the goodly fellowship of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_11" id="Page_11">[11]</a></span> prophets," and "the noble
-army of martyrs," and "the Holy Church throughout all the world."
-They loved to see those holy ones carved in stone and emblazoned in
-coloured glass. A dim religious light was in harmony with their grave
-and subdued temper. The lofty Gothic roof, the long-drawn aisle, the
-fretted vault, and the pavement solemnly echoing every footfall,
-had in their eyes a mysterious charm. The external, the visible,
-and the symbolic, more exalted their souls than anything abstract,
-argumentative, and doctrinal: yet, though their understanding and
-reason had little exercise, it must not be forgotten, that, through
-imagination and sensibility awakened by material objects, these
-worshippers might rise into the regions of the sublime and infinite,
-the eternal and divine.</p>
-
-<p>Such religion existed in the reign of Charles I. amongst the
-dignitaries of the Church. Occupying prebendal houses in a Cathedral
-close, they found nourishment for their devotion in "the service of
-song," as they occupied the dark oak stalls of the Minster choir. It
-was also cherished in the Universities. Heads of houses, professors,
-and fellows carried much of the Anglican feeling with them, as they
-crossed the green quadrangle, to morning and evening prayer. Town
-rectors and rural incumbents would participate in the same influence.
-Devout women, in oriel-windowed closets, also would kneel down, under
-its inspiration, to repeat passages in the Prayer book, or in Bishop
-Andrewes' devotions. And some English noblemen, free from courtly vice,
-would embody the nobler principles of the system. Yet, probably, the
-larger number of religious people in England were of a different class.</p>
-
-<p>The following extract from a letter, belonging to the early part of
-the year 1641, giving an account of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_12" id="Page_12">[12]</a></span> death of the Lady Barbara
-Viscountess Fielding, affords an idea of Anglican piety in the last
-hour of life, more vivid than any general description:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>"About twelve of the clock this Thursday, the day of her departure, Dr.
-More being gone, I went to her, and by degrees told her of the danger
-she was in, upon which she seemed as it were to recollect herself,
-and desired me to deal plainly with her, when I told her Dr. More's
-judgment of her, for which she gave me most hearty thanks, saying this
-was a favour above all I had ever done her, &amp;c.; and when she had, in
-a most comfortable manner, given me hearty thanks, she desired me to
-spend the time she had to live here, with her in praises and prayers
-to Almighty God for her, desiring me not to leave her, but to pray
-for her, when she could not, and was not able to pray for herself,
-and not to forsake her until I had commended her soul to God her
-Creator. After which, some time being spent in praising God for her
-creation, redemption, preservation hitherto, &amp;c., we went to prayers,
-using in the first place the form appointed by our Church (a form
-she most highly admired), and then we enlarged ourselves, when she
-added thirty or forty holy ejaculations;&mdash;then I read unto her divers
-of David's Psalms, after which we went to prayers again; then she
-desired the company to go out of the room, when she made a relation of
-some particulars of her life to me (being then of perfect judgment),
-desiring the absolution our Church had appointed, before which nurses
-and others were called in, and all kneeling by her, she asked pardon of
-all she had offended there, and desired me to do the like for her to
-those that were not there; and when I had pronounced the absolution,
-she gave an account of her faith, and then after some ejaculations she
-praised Almighty God<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_13" id="Page_13">[13]</a></span> that He had given her a sight of her sins, giving
-Him most humble thanks that He had given her time to repent, and to
-receive the Church's absolution; and then she prayed in a very audible
-voice, that God would be pleased to be merciful to this our distressed
-Church of England for Jesus Christ his sake. After this she only spoke
-to my Lord, having spoken to her father, Sir J. Lambe, two or three
-hours before, and then at last of all, she only said, 'Lord Jesus,
-receive my soul;' but this was so weakly, that all heard it not, nor
-did I plainly, but in some sort guessed by what I heard of it."<a name="FNanchor_13_13" id="FNanchor_13_13"></a><a href="#Footnote_13_13" class="fnanchor">[13]</a></p>
-
-<p>But the Anglo-Catholicism of the Stuart age presented other aspects.
-In a multitude of cases, ritual worship degenerated into mere
-ceremonialism. An ignorant peasantry, who could neither read nor write,
-and who were destitute of all that intellectual stimulus which, in a
-thousand ways, now touches the most illiterate, would derive little
-benefit from reading liturgical forms, unaccompanied by instructive
-preaching&mdash;against which, in the Puritan form, the abettors of the
-system were much prejudiced. Though the prayers and offices of the
-Church of England be incomparably beautiful, experience is sufficient
-to show that, familiar with their repetition, the thoughtless and
-demoralized, being quite out of sympathy with their spirit, fail to
-discern their excellence. And, when it is remembered, that the Book
-of Sports, instituted by King James, was the rule and the reward for
-Sabbath observance; that after service in the parish church (not
-otherwise), the rustics were encouraged to play old English games on
-the village green, to dance around the May-pole, or to shoot at butts;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_14" id="Page_14">[14]</a></span>
-we ask what could be the result, but religious formalism scarcely
-distinguishable from the lowest superstition? Should it be pleaded,
-that a pious and exemplary clergyman would impart life to what might
-otherwise have been dead forms, and restrain what otherwise would have
-been riotous excess; it may be replied, that a very considerable number
-of the holders of livings were not persons of that description; they
-sank to the level of their parishioners, and had no power to lift their
-parishioners to a level higher than their own.</p>
-
-<p>The sympathies of the Church were with the people in their amusements;
-a circumstance which contributed to the strong popular reaction in
-favour of the Church, when Charles II. was restored. In the reign of
-Charles I. the wakes, or feasts, intended to celebrate the dedication
-of churches had degenerated into intemperate and noisy gatherings, and
-were, on that account, brought by the Magistrates under the notice of
-the Judges. But the Archbishop of Canterbury and the Bishop of Bath
-and Wells, backed by the King, came to the rescue. The complaints were
-attributed to Puritan "humourists." Alleged disorders were denied. The
-better sort of clergy in the diocese of Bath and Wells,&mdash;seventy-two
-in number, likened to the Septuagint interpreters, "who agreed so soon
-in the translation of the Old Testament,"&mdash;came together, and declared
-that these wakes were fit to be continued for a memorial of the
-dedication of churches, for the civilizing of the people, for lawful
-recreation, for composing differences, for increase of love and amity,
-for the relief of the poor, and for many other reasons.<a name="FNanchor_14_14" id="FNanchor_14_14"></a><a href="#Footnote_14_14" class="fnanchor">[14]</a></p>
-
-<p>The charge has been brought against the high Church<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_15" id="Page_15">[15]</a></span>men of that day,
-that they were <i>papistically</i> inclined. If by this term be meant any
-disposition to uphold the Papacy, and to acknowledge the authority
-of the Bishop of Rome over other Churches, even though modified by
-a charter of liberties like the Gallican, the charge is unfair. A
-distinct national establishment was always contended for by those
-who were suspected of the strongest papal leanings. They advocated
-an authority not derived from any foreign potentate, but, as they
-conceived, of immediate divine origin, and this authority they
-considered to be entitled to uncontrolled jurisdiction within the
-shores of the four seas. They wished for a Pope&mdash;to use the current
-language of the times&mdash;"not at Rome but at Lambeth." A reconciliation
-with the Church of Rome not involving submission, might have been
-agreeable to some of the party; yet, it must be acknowledged that, in
-solemn conclave, the Anglicans accused the Romanists of idolatry.<a name="FNanchor_15_15" id="FNanchor_15_15"></a><a href="#Footnote_15_15" class="fnanchor">[15]</a>
-If, however, by <i>papistic</i> be meant a tendency to Catholic worship,
-and so ultimately to Romish conformity, then may the imputation be
-supported by facts. The history of Christendom shews that the Church
-gradually passed from its primitive simplicity to the corruptions
-of the papacy; that ante-Nicene innovations, with post-Nicene
-developments and traditionalism, were stepping-stones in the
-transition. The process, on a wide scale, requires many centuries for
-its accomplishment; but partially and in individual cases a few years
-may suffice for the experiment. Ecclesiastical annals, from Constantine
-to Hildebrand, may be epitomized in a brief chronology. Movements may
-rapidly pass through stages, like those of the Nicene and Mediæval. And
-sharp speaking, in order to maintain a certain eccle<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_16" id="Page_16">[16]</a></span>siastical position
-against Rome, may immediately precede, and in fact, herald the approach
-of pilgrims to the very gate of the seven-hilled city.<a name="FNanchor_16_16" id="FNanchor_16_16"></a><a href="#Footnote_16_16" class="fnanchor">[16]</a> What has
-occurred within our own time in individual instances, was likely to
-occur, to a large extent, in the first half of the seventeenth century.</p>
-
-<p>Mediæval sympathies, at the period now under our review, are obvious
-not only in the rigorous enforcement of fasting and abstinence,<a name="FNanchor_17_17" id="FNanchor_17_17"></a><a href="#Footnote_17_17" class="fnanchor">[17]</a>
-which had continued ever since the Reformation, but in certain
-monastic tendencies, and in slurs cast on the reformers. A document,
-prepared in 1633&mdash;no doubt under the influence of Laud&mdash;by Secretary
-Windebank, for the direction of Judges of assize, urged obedience to
-the proclamation for the better observance of Lent and fish-days,
-because their neglect had become very common, probably in many cases
-on Puritan grounds.<a name="FNanchor_18_18" id="FNanchor_18_18"></a><a href="#Footnote_18_18" class="fnanchor">[18]</a> Monastic tendencies, about the same time,
-appeared in the famous Monastery at Gidding, in Huntingdonshire. While
-the devotions of the pious family there excited the admiration of Isaak
-Walton,&mdash;in whose account of it is reflected the more spiritual phase
-of the proceeding,&mdash;the superstitions, mingled with better things,
-provoked the severest animadversions of Puritan contemporaries,<a name="FNanchor_19_19" id="FNanchor_19_19"></a><a href="#Footnote_19_19" class="fnanchor">[19]</a> who
-wondered at nothing more than, that in a settled Church government,
-Bishops could permit<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_17" id="Page_17">[17]</a></span> "such a foundation so nearly complying with
-Popery." In connection with this may be mentioned the preface to the
-new statutes for the University of Oxford, published in Convocation,
-which "disparaged King Edward's times and government, declaring, that
-the discipline of the University was then discomposed and troubled by
-that King's injunctions, and the flattering novelty of the age, and
-that it did revive and flourish again in Queen Mary's days, under the
-government of Cardinal Pole, when by the much-to-be-desired felicity of
-those times, an inbred candour supplied the defect of statutes."<a name="FNanchor_20_20" id="FNanchor_20_20"></a><a href="#Footnote_20_20" class="fnanchor">[20]</a></p>
-
-<p>In the sixteenth century, and far into the seventeenth, intolerance,
-inherited from former ages, infected more or less all religious
-parties. Few saw civil liberty to be a social right, which justice
-claimed for the whole community, whatever might be the ecclesiastical
-opinions of individuals. This position of affairs shewed how little
-dependent is spiritual despotism upon any particular theological
-system, and how it can graft itself upon one theory as well as upon
-another; for, while under Elizabeth persecution allied itself to
-Calvinism, in the first two of the Stuart reigns, Arminianism&mdash;at
-that time in Holland wedded to liberty of conscience&mdash;appeared in
-England embracing a form of merciless oppression. But, though without
-special theological affinities, intolerance certainly shewed kinship
-to certain forms of ecclesiastical rule. It fondly clung to prelacy
-before the Civil War. The relation in which subsequently it appeared to
-other Church organizations will be disclosed hereafter. Whitgift and
-Bancroft, inheriting intolerance from their predecessors,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_18" id="Page_18">[18]</a></span> persecuted
-Nonconformists. They silenced and deprived many; whilst others they
-excommunicated and cast into prison. The Anglican Canon Law&mdash;which must
-be distinguished from the Papal Canon Law<a name="FNanchor_21_21" id="FNanchor_21_21"></a><a href="#Footnote_21_21" class="fnanchor">[21]</a>&mdash;remained a formidable
-engine of tyranny in the hands of those disposed to use it for that
-purpose. That law, of course, claimed to be not law for Episcopalians
-alone but for the people at large, who were treated altogether as
-subject to Episcopal rule; and neither creed nor worship inconsistent
-with canonical regulations could be tolerated for a moment. Only
-one Church was allowed in England; and for those who denied its
-apostolicity, objected to its government, disapproved of its rites and
-observances, or affirmed other congregations to be lawful churches,
-there remained the penalty of excommunication, with all its alarming
-consequences.<a name="FNanchor_22_22" id="FNanchor_22_22"></a><a href="#Footnote_22_22" class="fnanchor">[22]</a></p>
-
-<p>Anglicanism allowed no exercise of private judgment, but required
-everybody to submit to the same standard of doctrine, worship, and
-discipline. Moderate Puritans were to be broken in, and Nonconformists
-"harried out of the land." It might seem a trifle that people should
-be fined for not attending parish churches; but imprisonment and exile
-for nonconformity struck most Englishmen as a stretch of injustice
-perfectly intolerable.<a name="FNanchor_23_23" id="FNanchor_23_23"></a><a href="#Footnote_23_23" class="fnanchor">[23]</a></p>
-
-<p>Ecclesiastical Courts, not only consistory and commissary, but
-branching out into numerous forms, carried on actively and continuously
-the administration of canon<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_19" id="Page_19">[19]</a></span> law after the Reformation. Discipline
-was, perhaps, not much less maintained after that event than
-before.<a name="FNanchor_24_24" id="FNanchor_24_24"></a><a href="#Footnote_24_24" class="fnanchor">[24]</a> Such activity continued throughout the reigns of Elizabeth,
-James, and Charles; and so late as 1636 the Archdeacon of Colchester
-held forty-two sessions at four different towns during that single
-year. The object of the canon law and the ecclesiastical courts being
-<i>pro morum correctione et salute animæ</i>, immoralities such as the
-common law did not punish as crimes, came within the range of their
-authority, together with all sorts of offences against religion and the
-Church. The idea was to treat the inhabitants of a parish as members
-of the Anglican Church, and to exercise a vigilant and universal
-discipline by punishing them for vice, heresy, and schism. Intemperance
-and incontinence are offences very frequently noticed in the records of
-Archidiaconal proceedings in the latter part of the sixteenth and the
-early part of the seventeenth centuries, suggesting a very unfavourable
-idea of public morals at that time; and a long catalogue also appears
-of charges touching all kinds of misconduct. Some appear very
-strange,&mdash;such as hanging up linen in a church to dry; a woman coming
-to worship in man's apparel; a girl sitting in the same pew with her
-mother, and not at the pew door, to the great offence of many reverent
-women; and matrons being churched without wearing veils. Others relate
-to profaning Sundays and holidays, setting up maypoles in church time,
-and disturbing and even reviling the parish ministers. Certain of them
-point<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_20" id="Page_20">[20]</a></span> distinctly to Puritan and Nonconformist behaviour, such as
-refusing to stand and bow when the creed was repeated, and to kneel
-at particular parts of divine service. Brownists are specifically
-mentioned, and extreme anti-sacramental opinions are described.</p>
-
-<p>The method of proceeding <i>ex officio</i> was by the examination of the
-accused on his oath, that he might so convict himself if guilty, and
-if innocent, justify himself by compurgation<a name="FNanchor_25_25" id="FNanchor_25_25"></a><a href="#Footnote_25_25" class="fnanchor">[25]</a>&mdash;a method, it may be
-observed, totally opposed to the criminal jurisprudence of our common
-law, and one which became increasingly offensive in proportion to the
-increase of national attachment to the English Constitution on the side
-of popular freedom. Though, as we look at the moral purpose of these
-institutions, and the cognizance they took of many vicious and criminal
-irregularities of conduct which did not come under the notice of civil
-magistrates, we are quite disposed to do justice to the motives in
-which the courts originated, and to admit that in the rude life of the
-middle ages they might possess some advantages&mdash;we must see, looking at
-them altogether, that they became the ready instruments of intolerance
-when great differences in religious opinion had appeared; that they
-were certain, in Puritan esteem, to attach odium to the old system of
-Church discipline; and that they were completely out of harmony with
-the modern spirit of Protestant civilization.</p>
-
-<p>In the Tudor and Stuart days, there also existed two tribunals of
-a character which it is difficult in the nineteenth century to
-understand. The High Commission<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_21" id="Page_21">[21]</a></span> Court was doubtless intended to
-promote and consolidate the Reformation on Anglo-Catholic principles,
-by exterminating Popery on the one hand, and checking Puritanism on
-the other. According to the terms of the Act of Uniformity, Elizabeth
-and her successors had power given them "to visit, reform, redress,
-order, correct and amend all such errors, heresies, schisms, abuses,
-contempts, offences and enormities whatsoever, which, by any manner
-of spiritual authority or jurisdiction, ought, or may be lawfully
-reformed, ordered, redressed, corrected, restrained or amended." Her
-Majesty became invested with authority to correct such heresies of the
-clergy as had been adjudged to be so by the authority of the canonical
-Scripture, or by the first four general councils, or any of them, or
-by any other general council, or by the High Court of Parliament, with
-the assent of the clergy in convocation.<a name="FNanchor_26_26" id="FNanchor_26_26"></a><a href="#Footnote_26_26" class="fnanchor">[26]</a> Many Commissions were
-successively issued by the Queen.<a name="FNanchor_27_27" id="FNanchor_27_27"></a><a href="#Footnote_27_27" class="fnanchor">[27]</a> Neal gives an abstract of that
-one which was issued in the month of December, 1583. After reciting
-the Act of Supremacy, the Act of Uniformity, the Act for the assurance
-of the Queen's powers over all states, and the Act for reforming
-certain disorders touching ministers of the Church, her<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_22" id="Page_22">[22]</a></span> Majesty
-named forty-four commissioners, of whom twelve were bishops, some were
-privy councillors, lawyers, and officers of state, the rest deans,
-archdeacons, and civilians. They were authorized to enquire respecting
-heretical opinions, schisms, absence from church, seditious books,
-contempts, conspiracies, false rumours, and slanderous words, besides
-offences, such as adultery, punishable by ecclesiastical laws. In the
-first clause command is given to enquire, "as well by the oaths of
-twelve good and lawful men, as also by witnesses, and all <i>other means
-and ways you can devise</i>."<a name="FNanchor_28_28" id="FNanchor_28_28"></a><a href="#Footnote_28_28" class="fnanchor">[28]</a> With this power of enormous latitude,
-instituting enquiry over vague offences, was connected a power of
-punishment, qualified by the word "lawful," and by reference "to the
-power and authority limited and appointed by the laws, ordinances, and
-statutes of the realm." Liberty was given to examine suspected persons
-"on their corporal oath"&mdash;in fact, the <i>ex officio</i> oath.<a name="FNanchor_29_29" id="FNanchor_29_29"></a><a href="#Footnote_29_29" class="fnanchor">[29]</a><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_23" id="Page_23">[23]</a></span> Any
-three of the members had authority to execute the commission.<a name="FNanchor_30_30" id="FNanchor_30_30"></a><a href="#Footnote_30_30" class="fnanchor">[30]</a></p>
-
-<p>The Court so constituted extended its range, and increased its
-activity, and pressed beyond the boundaries of statute law, so as
-to become, in the reign of Charles the First, a means of arbitrary
-government intolerable to the country.</p>
-
-<p>Records of the Court are still preserved in the State Paper Office,<a name="FNanchor_31_31" id="FNanchor_31_31"></a><a href="#Footnote_31_31" class="fnanchor">[31]</a>
-shewing the modes of proceeding, the charges of which the Commissioners
-took cognizance, and the punishments they pronounced upon the
-convicted. Counsel for office&mdash;counsel for defendants&mdash;appearance
-and oath to answer articles&mdash;appearance, and delivering in of
-certificate&mdash;orders for defendants to give in answers&mdash;motion for
-permission to put in additional articles&mdash;commissions decreed for
-taking answers and examining witnesses&mdash;commissions brought in and
-depositions of witnesses published&mdash;and orders for taxation of
-costs&mdash;are forms of expression and notices of proceeding very frequent
-in these old Books. Some of them conveyed, no doubt, terrible meanings
-to the parties accused. We meet also with "suppressions of motion,"
-"agreements<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_24" id="Page_24">[24]</a></span> for subduction of articles," petitions to be admitted
-in "<i>formâ pauperis</i>," and reference of causes to the Dean of Arches.
-Collecting together heads of accusation, we find the following in the
-list&mdash;holding heretical opinions, contempt of ecclesiastical laws,
-seditious preaching, scandalous matter in sermons, using invective
-speeches unfit for the pulpit, nonconformity, publishing fanatical
-pamphlets, profane speeches, schism, blasphemy, raising new doctrines,
-preaching after deposition, and simoniacal contracts. Descending to
-minute particulars, we discover such items as these:&mdash;"locking the
-church door, and impounding the archdeacons, officials, and clergy," in
-the exercise of ecclesiastical jurisdiction; wearing hats in church;
-counting money on the communion-table; saying, "A ploughman was as
-good as a priest," and asking, "What good do bishops in Ireland?;"
-profane acts endangering parish edifices; praying that young Prince
-Charles might not be brought up in popery; and submission performed in
-a slight and contemptuous manner.<a name="FNanchor_32_32" id="FNanchor_32_32"></a><a href="#Footnote_32_32" class="fnanchor">[32]</a> Entries of fines and imprisonment
-frequently occur.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_25" id="Page_25">[25]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>It should be stated that occasionally other religious offences are
-noticed in these volumes, such as possessing a Romish breviary, and
-refusing the oath of allegiance. Enquiries also appear, as to persons
-who secreted young ladies "going to the nunneries beyond seas."
-There are, too, monitions "to bring to the office popish stuff and
-books."<a name="FNanchor_33_33" id="FNanchor_33_33"></a><a href="#Footnote_33_33" class="fnanchor">[33]</a> But such instances are few compared with those relating
-to Puritans. Also now and then occur cases of flagrant clerical
-immorality, acts of violence, and of criminal behaviour.<a name="FNanchor_34_34" id="FNanchor_34_34"></a><a href="#Footnote_34_34" class="fnanchor">[34]</a> But it
-was the persecution, the intolerance, the irritating control over
-so many persons and things, and the harsh treatment, and severe
-sentences of this absorbing jurisdiction, emulating as it did the worst
-ecclesiastical tribunals of the middle ages, and of Roman Catholic
-countries, that so roused the wrath of our forefathers against it.</p>
-
-<p>It is very curious, after inspecting the records of the High
-Commission, to open Dr. Featley's <i>Clavis</i>, and there to find
-sermons, preached by him at Lambeth before the Commissioners, on such
-subjects as "The bruised reed and smoking flax," and "The still small
-voice,"&mdash;sermons filled with the mildest and gentlest sentiments. More
-curious, to light on other discourses in the same volume, bearing the
-very appropriate titles of "Pandora's box," and "The lamb turned into
-a lion." But for the knowledge we have of the preacher and of the
-contents of his discourses, we should suppose the former titles were
-ironical hits, and the latter outspoken truths. They are<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_26" id="Page_26">[26]</a></span> neither; but
-are chosen, it is plain, with perfect simplicity.<a name="FNanchor_35_35" id="FNanchor_35_35"></a><a href="#Footnote_35_35" class="fnanchor">[35]</a></p>
-
-<p>The Star Chamber is commonly associated in the minds of Englishmen with
-the High Commission Court. Unfettered by the verdict of juries, not
-guided by statute law, and irresponsible to other tribunals, it claimed
-an indefinable jurisdiction over all sorts of misdemeanours&mdash;"holding
-for honourable that which pleased, and for just that which profited."
-Though not a constituted ecclesiastical court, like the High
-Commission, bishops as privy councillors sat amongst its judges, and it
-took cognizance of religious publications. Whilst the High Commission
-confined its penalties to deprivation, imprisonment, and fines, the
-favourite punishments of the Star Chamber were whipping, branding,
-cutting ears, and slitting noses. The barbarous treatment of Leighton,
-Prynne, Burton, and Bastwick, will shortly be noticed.</p>
-
-<p>These two arbitrary courts, which, in spite of their difference, were
-almost invariably linked together in the thoughts of our countrymen,
-concentrated on themselves an amount of public indignation equal to the
-fury of the French against the Bastile; and at last, like that prison,
-they fell amidst the execrations of a people whose<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_27" id="Page_27">[27]</a></span> patience had been
-exhausted by such prolonged iniquities.<a name="FNanchor_36_36" id="FNanchor_36_36"></a><a href="#Footnote_36_36" class="fnanchor">[36]</a></p>
-
-<p>Nor was it only the intolerance of the Church which exasperated
-the people, its secular intermeddling did so likewise. Before the
-Reformation Churchmen had held the highest offices in the State,
-indeed, had controlled all civil affairs; and Laud was now imitating
-the Cardinals of an earlier age. But the English Reformation had shaken
-off from itself the civil power of the Church; laymen, not the clergy,
-now claimed to guide the helm. The Puritanism of the seventeenth
-century, and the civil war which grew out of it, were practical
-protests against the attempts of Charles, Strafford, and Laud to
-revive what the Reformation in this country had destroyed. The modern
-spirit of civilization was seen rebelling against the intrusion of the
-spiritual on the secular power. It was a stage in the great European
-conflict which ended in the French Revolution; it was an assault upon a
-system which has now expired everywhere except in the city of Rome.</p>
-
-<p>As was only consistent, the party supporting ecclesiastical intolerance
-also supported civil despotism. Never since the English Constitution
-had grown up were the liberties of the people so threatened as during
-the earlier part of the seventeenth century. The two checks on the
-tyranny of the Crown, the aristocracy and the Church, had long been
-enfeebled&mdash;the aris<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_28" id="Page_28">[28]</a></span>tocracy by the wars of the Roses; the Church by
-the loss of independence at the Reformation. The nobles of England had
-wasted their strength in the fifteenth century; the Church of England
-had prostrated herself before the throne in the sixteenth. Neither of
-them had now the power, any more than they had now the will, to defend
-popular freedom against the invasions of regal prerogative. It is true,
-that the same causes, which weakened them as the possible friends of
-the people, weakened them also as actual friends of the Sovereign.
-What they did for the Crown in the Civil Wars, was far less than they
-might have done at an earlier period: even as what remained in their
-power to accomplish on behalf of popular rights was far less. But the
-malign aspect of the Church, then the chief power next the throne,
-towards the nation at large, and the Commons in particular, was most
-manifest and most alarming at the epoch under consideration. Old
-English liberties indeed had never been extinguished. The spirit of
-English self-government asserted under the house of Lancaster, though
-seemingly held in abeyance in the times of the Tudors, so far from
-expiring, had come out with renewed youth in the days of the Stuarts,
-through the parliamentary career of those eminent statesmen who formed
-the vanguard of the Commonwealth army. But against the illustrious Sir
-John Eliot, with his noble compeers, High Church contemporaries stood
-in defiant hostility. That kings are the fountains of all power; that
-they reign "by the grace of God," in the sense of divine right; that
-they are feudal lords&mdash;the soil their property, and the people their
-slaves&mdash;were doctrines upheld by sycophants of the Court, and endorsed
-and defended by doctors of the Church. Dr. Sibthorpe, a notorious
-zealot for passive obedience and non-resistance,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_29" id="Page_29">[29]</a></span> monstrously declared,
-"If princes command anything, which subjects may not perform, because
-it is against the laws of God, or of nature, or impossible; yet
-subjects are bound to undergo the punishment, without either resisting,
-or railing, or reviling; and so to yield a passive obedience where they
-cannot exhibit an active one. I know no other case, but one of those
-three wherein a subject may excuse himself with passive obedience, but
-in all other he is bound to active obedience."<a name="FNanchor_37_37" id="FNanchor_37_37"></a><a href="#Footnote_37_37" class="fnanchor">[37]</a> Another preacher
-of the same class, Dr. Manwaring, was brought before Parliament for
-maintaining, "That his Majesty is not bound to keep and observe the
-good laws and customs of this realm; and that his royal will and
-command in imposing loans, taxes, and other aids upon his people,
-without common consent in Parliament, doth so far bind the consciences
-of the subjects of this kingdom, that they cannot refuse the same
-without peril of eternal damnation."<a name="FNanchor_38_38" id="FNanchor_38_38"></a><a href="#Footnote_38_38" class="fnanchor">[38]</a></p>
-
-<p>The Church of the middle ages had commonly thrown its shield over
-subjects against the oppression of rulers: but in contrast with
-this, the Anglo-Catholic Church of the Stuart times stood in closest
-league with Government for purposes the most despotic. The tyranny
-of Buckingham in 1624, with his forced loans, became insupportable,
-and the obloquy of it all&mdash;alas for the Church of England!&mdash;fell
-largely upon its dignitaries, because favour had been strongly shown
-to the policy of that arrogant minister by such men as Sibthorpe and
-Manwaring. Strafford went beyond Charles<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_30" id="Page_30">[30]</a></span> in imperious despotism; and
-Strafford found in Archbishop Laud not only a helper in his "thorough"
-policy, but an example of even more violent measures, and a counsellor
-instigating him to still greater lengths.<a name="FNanchor_39_39" id="FNanchor_39_39"></a><a href="#Footnote_39_39" class="fnanchor">[39]</a></p>
-
-<p>Besides all this intolerance and oppression, it must be acknowledged
-that there was in the ministry of the Church of England a large amount
-of ungodliness and immorality. To believe that all the charges of
-clerical viciousness and criminality were true, would be to imbibe
-Puritan prejudice; whilst, on the other hand, to believe that all
-were false, would betray a strong tincture of High Church partiality;
-so much could not have been boldly affirmed, and generally believed,
-without a large substratum of fact. But more of this hereafter.</p>
-
-<p>Rigid ceremonialism, desecration of the Sabbath, sympathy with
-Roman Catholicism, fondness for imitating popish practices, cruel
-intolerance, alliance with unconstitutional rule, and the immorality
-of clergymen, will serve to explain what gave such force to the
-antagonistic puritan feeling which surged up so fearfully in 1640.
-The Church had become thoroughly unpopular amongst the middle and
-lower classes in London and other large places; in short, with that
-portion of the people, which in the modern age of civilization, must
-and will carry the day. They did not then, with all their fondness
-for theological controversy, care so much for any abstract idea of
-Church polity as for the actual working of ecclesiastical machinery,
-and the character and conduct of ecclesiastical men before their eyes.
-It was not any Presbyterian or Independent theory, as opposed to the
-Episcopalian system of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_31" id="Page_31">[31]</a></span> Church of England, that swept the nation
-along its fiery path in the dread assault which levelled the Episcopal
-establishment; but it was the indignation aroused by corruption,
-immorality, and intolerance, which kindled the blazing war-torch
-destined to burn to the ground both temple and throne. Had the Church
-of England been at that time a liberal and purely Protestant Church,
-and its rulers wise, moderate, and charitable men; whatever might have
-been the influence of ecclesiastical dogmas, its fate must have been
-far different from what it actually became.</p>
-
-<p>The person who carried Anglo-Catholicism to its greatest excess,
-and who, by other unpopular proceedings, did more than anybody
-else, to alienate from the State religion a large proportion of his
-fellow-countrymen, was William Laud. Ritualism ran riot under the rule
-of this famous prelate. Alienated from the theology of Augustine,
-but relishing the sacerdotalism of Chrysostom, he delighted in a
-gorgeous worship such as accorded with the Byzantine liturgy, and was
-penetrated with that reverence for the priesthood and the Eucharist
-which the last of the Greek orators, in his flights of rhetoric, did
-so much to foster. Whatever might be the extravagances in Byzantium,
-they were nearly, if not quite, paralleled when Archbishop Laud held
-unchecked sway. A church was consecrated by throwing dust or ashes
-in the air.<a name="FNanchor_40_40" id="FNanchor_40_40"></a><a href="#Footnote_40_40" class="fnanchor">[40]</a> The napkin covering the Eucharistic elements was
-carefully lifted up, reverently peeped under, and then<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_32" id="Page_32">[32]</a></span> solemnly let
-fall again: all which performances were accompanied by repeated lowly
-obeisances before the altar. This ceremony was quite as childish and
-far less picturesque than the dramatic doings in the Greek Church,
-when choristers aped angels by fastening to their shoulders wings of
-gauze.<a name="FNanchor_41_41" id="FNanchor_41_41"></a><a href="#Footnote_41_41" class="fnanchor">[41]</a> Into cathedrals, churches, and chapels, were also introduced
-pictures, images, crucifixes, and candles, which, with the aid of
-surplices and copes,<a name="FNanchor_42_42" id="FNanchor_42_42"></a><a href="#Footnote_42_42" class="fnanchor">[42]</a> bowing, crossing, and genuflections, produced
-a spectacle which might be taken for a meagre imitation of the mass.
-Had not public opinion, which was beginning to be a mighty power,
-checked such proceedings, there can be no doubt they would speedily
-have reached such lengths, that an English parish church would have
-differed scarcely at all from a Roman Catholic chapel.<a name="FNanchor_43_43" id="FNanchor_43_43"></a><a href="#Footnote_43_43" class="fnanchor">[43]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_33" id="Page_33">[33]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Laud's size was in the inverse ratio of his activity&mdash;for he had the
-name of "the little Archbishop," though his capacities for work were of
-gigantic magnitude. His influence extended everywhere, over everybody,
-and everything, small as well as great&mdash;like the trunk of an elephant,
-as well suited to pick up a pin as to tear down a tree. His articles
-of visitation traversed the widest variety of particulars, descending
-through all conceivable ecclesiastical and moral contingencies, down
-to the humblest details of village life. Churchwardens were asked,
-"Doth your minister preach standing, and with his hat off? Do the
-people cover their heads in the Church, during the time of divine
-service, unless it be in case of necessity, in which case they may
-wear a nightcap or coif?" These functionaries were also required to
-state, how many physicians, chirurgeons, or midwives there might be
-in the neighbourhood; how long they had used the office, and by what
-authority; and how they demeaned themselves, and of what skill they
-were accounted in their profession.<a name="FNanchor_44_44" id="FNanchor_44_44"></a><a href="#Footnote_44_44" class="fnanchor">[44]</a> A report of the state of his
-province he presented to the King year by year.<a name="FNanchor_45_45" id="FNanchor_45_45"></a><a href="#Footnote_45_45" class="fnanchor">[45]</a> Every bishopric
-passed under his review, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_34" id="Page_34">[34]</a></span> the substance of the information he
-obtained and digested, affords a bird's-eye view of the religious
-condition of each diocese, in the Archbishop's estimation. Oxford,
-Salisbury, Chichester, Hereford, Exeter, Ely, Peterborough, and
-Rochester, were in a tolerably fair condition, although furnishing
-matter here and there for some complaint. But in his own see of
-Canterbury there were many refractory persons, and divers Brownists
-and other separatists, especially about Ashford and Maidstone, who
-were doing harm, "not possible to be plucked up on the sudden."<a name="FNanchor_46_46" id="FNanchor_46_46"></a><a href="#Footnote_46_46" class="fnanchor">[46]</a>
-London occasioned divers complaints of nonconformity. Factious and
-malicious pamphlets were circulated, Puritans were insolent, and
-curates and lecturers were "convented." From Lincoln came complaints,
-that parishioners wandered from church to church, and refused to come
-up to the altar rail at the holy communion; Buckingham and Bedfordshire
-also abounded in refractory people. Norwich had several factious men:
-Bridge and Ward are named, and it is said there was more of disorder
-in Ipswich and Yarmouth than in the cathedral city. Lecturers were
-abundant, and catechising neglected. In the diocese of Bath and Wells,
-lectures were put down in market towns, and afternoon sermons were
-changed into catechetical exercises. Popish recusants appeared fewer
-than before, and altogether the bishop had put things in marvellous
-order.</p>
-
-<p>As Laud's eye&mdash;that ferret-like eye, which under its arched brow,
-looks with cunning vigilance from Vandyke's canvas&mdash;ran over his whole
-province, and his busy pen recorded what he learned, he sent to the
-Inns of Court&mdash;the benchers having betrayed Puritan<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_35" id="Page_35">[35]</a></span> tendencies&mdash;and
-insisted upon surplice and hood, and the whole service prescribed for
-the occasion being used in chapel before sermon. He claimed rights
-of ecclesiastical visitation in the two universities, and inspected
-cathedrals and churches, as to their improvements and repairs;
-condescending even to order the removal of certain seats employed for
-the wives of deans and prebendaries, and directing them to sit upon
-movable benches, or chairs.<a name="FNanchor_47_47" id="FNanchor_47_47"></a><a href="#Footnote_47_47" class="fnanchor">[47]</a></p>
-
-<p>English residents in Holland;<a name="FNanchor_48_48" id="FNanchor_48_48"></a><a href="#Footnote_48_48" class="fnanchor">[48]</a> chaplains of regiments amongst the
-Presbyterian Dutch; Protestant refugees in this country; and the
-ecclesiastical affairs of Scotland, all came under his vigilant notice,
-and within his tenacious grasp.<a name="FNanchor_49_49" id="FNanchor_49_49"></a><a href="#Footnote_49_49" class="fnanchor">[49]</a></p>
-
-<p>In his own diocese and province<a name="FNanchor_50_50" id="FNanchor_50_50"></a><a href="#Footnote_50_50" class="fnanchor">[50]</a> Laud's hand fell heavily on those
-beneath his sway. "All men," it is remarked, "are overawed, so that
-they dare not say their soul is their own." The clergy of his cathedral
-muttered their dissatisfaction. Reports circulated that they were "a
-little too bold with him;" and his remedy was, "If upon inquiry I do
-find it true, I shall not forget that nine of the twelve prebends are
-in the king's gift, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_36" id="Page_36">[36]</a></span> order the commission of my visitation; or
-alter it accordingly."<a name="FNanchor_51_51" id="FNanchor_51_51"></a><a href="#Footnote_51_51" class="fnanchor">[51]</a> Dean and prebendaries were soon humbled
-under such discipline.</p>
-
-<p>In court and country, in Church and State, Laud, next to the Earl of
-Strafford, must be considered to have been the most powerful minister
-in England.<a name="FNanchor_52_52" id="FNanchor_52_52"></a><a href="#Footnote_52_52" class="fnanchor">[52]</a> Pledged to a thorough policy of arbitrary kingship, he
-helped in all things his royal master, and his able fellow-councillor.
-When Strafford was in Ireland as Lord Lieutenant, the Archbishop was
-the great power at home behind the throne. "He is the man," said
-courtiers, when they would point out the most favourable medium for
-approaching royalty.<a name="FNanchor_53_53" id="FNanchor_53_53"></a><a href="#Footnote_53_53" class="fnanchor">[53]</a> His own power availed for the province of
-Canterbury; by the help of his archiepiscopal brother,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_37" id="Page_37">[37]</a></span> Neil of York,
-it sufficed for all England. Such a man, so bigoted, so imperious, and
-so marvellously active, was sure to make many more foes than friends.
-He had also ways, altogether his own, of making enemies. As he himself
-tells us, he kept a ledger, in which he preserved a strict account of
-the theological and ecclesiastical bias of clergymen, for the guidance
-of his royal master in the distribution of patronage. O and P were the
-letters at the heads of two lists. On the <i>Orthodox</i> all favours were
-showered. From those favours all <i>Puritans</i> were excluded.<a name="FNanchor_54_54" id="FNanchor_54_54"></a><a href="#Footnote_54_54" class="fnanchor">[54]</a></p>
-
-<p>The Anglicanism of Laud was dear to Charles I. for two reasons. First,
-it harmonized with his own despotic principles. The King had been,
-ever since he assumed the crown, working out a problem in which the
-direst mischief was involved&mdash;whether it were not possible for an
-English sovereign, without casting away constitutional forms, to grasp
-at absolute dominion, to make the Commons a mere council for advice,
-or a Court to register decrees, rather than an integral branch of the
-Legislature; and, while conceding to them the office of filling the
-country's purse, to claim and exercise an independent power of managing
-the strings. He disliked parliaments, if they exercised their rights.
-"They are of the nature of cats," said he, "they ever grow curst with
-age, so that if you will have good of them, put them off handsomely
-when they come to any age, for young ones are ever most tractable."<a name="FNanchor_55_55" id="FNanchor_55_55"></a><a href="#Footnote_55_55" class="fnanchor">[55]</a>
-His remedy for troublesome parliaments was dissolution. He preferred
-ship money to legal taxation: Anglicanism, from its maintenance of
-the Divine right of Kings, favoured his views in this respect, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_38" id="Page_38">[38]</a></span>
-divines of that stamp were after his own heart. But there was a
-second reason why Charles was drawn towards Laud. It would be unjust
-to the King to represent him merely as a politician. Grave, cold,
-reserved and haughty&mdash;qualities indicated in the countenance which the
-pencil of Vandyke has made familiar to us all&mdash;he was also a man of
-sincere religious feeling; but that feeling appears in harmony with
-his natural character. Stately ceremonialism, court-like prelacy,
-priestly <i>hauteur</i>, and a frigid creed corresponded even more with
-the idiosyncracy of the man than with the prejudices of the monarch.
-From a youth he had shown a leaning towards the Roman Catholic form of
-worship, and this tendency had been nourished by the education received
-from his father. "I have fully instructed them," King James observed in
-a letter touching his sons, "so as their behaviour and service shall,
-I hope, prove decent, and agreeable to the purity of the primitive
-Church, and yet as near the Roman form as can lawfully be done, for
-it hath ever been my way to go with the Church of Rome <i>usque ad
-aras</i>."<a name="FNanchor_56_56" id="FNanchor_56_56"></a><a href="#Footnote_56_56" class="fnanchor">[56]</a></p>
-
-<p>As we proceed in our review of parties, we feel the difficulty of
-defining the boundary between them. The majority of divines were
-thoroughly Anglican or thoroughly Puritan; yet a great many had only
-partial sympathies with the one or the other. Nor did they form a
-class of their own. In no sense were they party men, except so far
-as they were prepared to support episcopacy and defend the Common
-Prayer. Amongst these may be mentioned Dr. Jackson, sometime vicar of
-Newcastle, (afterwards Dean of Peterborough,) known in his own time as
-an exemplary parish priest, and very popular with the poor,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_39" id="Page_39">[39]</a></span> relieving
-their wants "with a free heart, a bountiful hand, a comfortable
-speech, and a cheerful eye;" better known in our day as the author
-of a goodly row of theological works, including discourses on the
-Apostles' Creed.<a name="FNanchor_57_57" id="FNanchor_57_57"></a><a href="#Footnote_57_57" class="fnanchor">[57]</a> He was a decided Arminian, and a rather High
-Churchman. Bishop Horne acknowledged a large debt to Dean Jackson, and
-Southey ranks him in the first class of English divines.<a name="FNanchor_58_58" id="FNanchor_58_58"></a><a href="#Footnote_58_58" class="fnanchor">[58]</a> But his
-writings present strong attractions for those who have no High Church
-sympathies, because the reasonings and contemplations of such a man
-rise far above sectarian levels, and are suited to enrich and edify the
-whole Church of God. Dr. Christopher Sutton, prebendary of Westminster,
-the learned author of two admirable practical treatises, "Learn to
-Live" and "Learn to Die,"&mdash;in which patristic taste and a special
-regard for the Greek Fathers appear in connection with a highly devout
-spirit&mdash;is another theologian of the same period and the same class,
-in whom, with some Anglican elements, others of a Puritan cast are
-combined. The well-known Bishop Hall is a still more striking example
-of the Puritan divine united with the Anglican ecclesiastic.</p>
-
-<p>If Puritanism cared for antiquity it would be possible to make out
-for it a lineage extending back to the first ages of Christendom. As
-soon as the Church betrayed symptoms of backsliding, persons arose,
-jealous for her honour, who recalled her erring children to paths
-of pristine purity. When, boasting of numbers, the many who were
-predominant relaxed severity of discipline, and conformed to the
-world in various ways&mdash;a few zealous Novations and Donatists set up
-a standard of reform. In some cases they proceeded at the expense
-of charity, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_40" id="Page_40">[40]</a></span> in a narrow spirit; but they aimed ultimately at
-restoring what they deemed primitive communion. At a later period the
-name, and some of the ecclesiastical sympathies of the Puritans, were
-anticipated by the <i>Cathari</i>: and in the Lollards and Wickliffites
-of England, we may trace the spiritual ancestors of the men who
-revolutionized the Church in the seventeenth century. Several of our
-Reformers went beyond their brethren in ideas of reform; and in the
-reign of Elizabeth&mdash;particularly amongst those who returned from the
-continent, where they had been brought into close fellowship with
-Zwinglians and other advanced Protestants&mdash;there were persons holding
-opinions substantially the same with those adopted by Puritans under
-Charles I.; and those who had no doctrinal tenets or ecclesiastical
-preferences to separate them from their contemporaries, but had become
-somewhat distinguished by objections to certain forms, and more so by
-superior religiousness and spirituality of life, were, on that account,
-reproached by laxer men as bigoted precisians. As was natural, this
-treatment drove such persons into the arms of others who had embraced
-distinctive views of polity, between which and the strict habits of
-these new allies there existed obvious harmony. The anti-hierarchical
-temper of Puritanism, and its presumed favourableness to the broad
-principles and popular spirit of the British constitution secured for
-it, on that side, countenance from such as were far from adopting its
-religious principles. Leicester and Walsingham looked on it with some
-favour as a counterpoise to prelatical arrogance, if not for other
-reasons. Burleigh shielded the persecuted from the violence of the High
-Commission. Raleigh defended the cause in Parliament. Connection with
-these politicians gave political significancy to a movement originating
-entirely in spiritual impulses.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_41" id="Page_41">[41]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Whenever any vigorous revival of religious life occurs, a tendency
-to "irregular proceedings" will be sure to appear in the movement
-party. Accordingly, one peculiarity of the early Protestants is seen
-in a love of meeting together for Christian culture and edification,
-apart from the formalities of established worship. The proceedings of
-these good people were such as would be now pronounced intensely Low
-Church. One neighbour conferred with another, and "did win and turn
-his mind with persuasive talk." "To see their travels," exclaimed our
-old martyrologist, "their earnest seeking, their burning zeal, their
-readings, their watchings, their sweet assemblies, their love and
-concord, their godly living, their faithful marrying with the faithful,
-may make us now, in these days of our free profession, to blush for
-shame."</p>
-
-<p>Somewhat resembling those meetings in the commencement of Henry VIII.'s
-reign were the prophesyings in the time of Elizabeth. A number of
-junior divines, present on these occasions, delivered in the order of
-seniority discourses on a portion of scripture appointed for the day,
-and then an elder brother, of learning, experience, and influence,
-reviewed what had been advanced, and terminated the engagement by
-prayer. Some of Elizabeth's bishops favourably regarded this practice
-as good discipline for preachers, and as affording edification to the
-people. Grindal incurred the royal displeasure for not putting down
-these prophesyings, for her Majesty would tolerate no innovations
-in the Established Church. Nor did she look with favour on popular
-preaching at all. Theological questions she reserved to be investigated
-by her learned divines. Only moral duties, the most elementary truths
-of Christianity, and the worship of God, belonged in her opinion to
-the people in general. "The liberty of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_42" id="Page_42">[42]</a></span> prophesying," indeed, in those
-days so much resembled the liberty of the press&mdash;preachers so often
-spoke as the tribunes of the people, bringing divers public questions
-within the range of pulpit criticism, that the Queen had political as
-well as religious objections to the freedom of such orators.<a name="FNanchor_59_59" id="FNanchor_59_59"></a><a href="#Footnote_59_59" class="fnanchor">[59]</a> To
-check Puritan tendencies, uniformity was pressed with rigour; The Queen
-assumed the initiative in the proceeding. Pilkington, Bishop of Durham,
-disliked the cap and surplice. Grindal, Bishop of London, was reluctant
-to force the prescribed habits. Even Archbishop Parker was slow in the
-business. At length the Queen's zeal carried all before it; Parker
-and his commission set to work, and shewed no want of earnestness.
-Aylmer, when he succeeded Grindal in the see of London, though once a
-friend to the Puritans, made up for his predecessor's lukewarmness by a
-rigorous suppression of all Nonconformity;<a name="FNanchor_60_60" id="FNanchor_60_60"></a><a href="#Footnote_60_60" class="fnanchor">[60]</a> and Whitgift, tolerant
-in his Cambridge days, showed himself a stern persecutor when he became
-Primate, and Archbishop Bancroft went beyond them all. The minutest
-ceremonies were enforced; clerical garments, odious because of their
-Popish fashion, were imposed.<a name="FNanchor_61_61" id="FNanchor_61_61"></a><a href="#Footnote_61_61" class="fnanchor">[61]</a> Such things were held by one party
-to be in themselves indifferent, and by the other party to involve a
-grave dereliction of Protestant principle. Yet the former imposed these
-things upon the latter. What was only excused by the imposer as an
-affair in itself of little moment, except for the sake of uniformity,
-was condemned by<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_43" id="Page_43">[43]</a></span> victims of the imposition as a perilous concession
-to superstitious ceremonialism. The cause of conscience on the one side
-came into collision with the cause of order on the other; part of the
-zeal manifested against Puritanism no doubt proceeded from a desire to
-gratify the Queen and prevent her from favouring Popery, and therefore
-originated in Protestant policy, but the policy was very short-sighted,
-and its injustice was equalled by its folly. Able, faithful, and
-learned ministers were silenced. In London especially, where Puritan
-ministers were numerous, multitudes of quiet steady citizens, with no
-love for schism, were alienated from the Established Church, and a long
-account of persecution began to be kept, which, when produced at the
-day of reckoning, had to be paid in the endurance of similar sufferings.</p>
-
-<p>The strong leaven of Puritanism in the reign of Elizabeth fermented
-in different ways. It produced the memorable controversies between
-Cartwright and Whitgift, and between Travers and Hooker: curiously
-enough, in both cases, the combatants were unequally matched;
-Cartwright being a much abler man than Whitgift, and Hooker vastly
-surpassing Travers. In the first of these polemical encounters, the
-Puritan maintained the exclusive authority of Scripture against the
-Anglican, who appealed to the Fathers: and in his opposition to
-prelacy, the Puritan developed views of Church government, hereafter
-to be noticed, which the Presbyterians of the seventeenth century for
-a while, and in a measure, succeeded in practically carrying out. We
-see the battle between Travers and Hooker fought on a wider field,
-including points of doctrine as well as matters of polity. The Puritan
-contended for the Scriptural authority of Church government, while the
-Churchman, looking more to the spirit than the letter of God's law
-and holy<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_44" id="Page_44">[44]</a></span> order, sought to lay the corner-stones of ecclesiastical
-polity in general principles. Beyond this difference, as preachers
-at the Temple where Travers was Lecturer and Hooker was Master, they
-presented rather dissimilar phases of theological doctrine; for it was
-said "the forenoon sermon spoke Canterbury, and the afternoon sermon
-Geneva." The preachers could not agree upon Predestination.<a name="FNanchor_62_62" id="FNanchor_62_62"></a><a href="#Footnote_62_62" class="fnanchor">[62]</a> They
-had not precisely the same idea of Justification by faith. And further
-still&mdash;and in an age when the Popish controversy excited such deep
-feeling, the difference was of great consequence,&mdash;Hooker maintained,
-that the Church of Rome, though not a pure and perfect Church, was
-a true one, so far that such as live and die in its communion, upon
-repenting of their sins of ignorance, may be saved; but Travers said,
-that the Church of Rome is no true Church at all, so that such as
-live and die therein, holding justification in part by works, cannot,
-according to the Scriptures, be regarded as saved. Whatever now may be
-thought of this latter teaching, most Churchmen then would agree with
-Hooker, most Puritans with Travers.</p>
-
-<p>Puritanism opened its lips in parliament. An effort was made in 1584
-to curtail the power of bishops, to supersede or control canon law by
-common law, to give the people a share in the election of ministers,
-and to erect an eldership which, conjointly with the clergy, should
-manage the spiritual affairs of a parish. Attempts also were made at
-Sabbath reform; but the whole of this Puritanical movement was stopped
-by the Queen. Whitgift wrote to his royal mistress, condemning the
-interference of Parliament with ecclesiastical matters, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_45" id="Page_45">[45]</a></span> advising
-that whatever alterations were made in the Church should come in form
-of canon law from the clergy by <i>her Majesty's authority</i>. In this
-business we recognize an anticipation of the subsequent relative
-position of parties. Anglicanism stood on the side of prerogatives
-claimed by the Crown, Puritanism on the side of power claimed by
-Parliament.<a name="FNanchor_63_63" id="FNanchor_63_63"></a><a href="#Footnote_63_63" class="fnanchor">[63]</a></p>
-
-<p>With the Anglican change of doctrine came a change in Puritan
-controversy. Under Elizabeth, both parties in the Church of England
-were Calvinistic in their creed. When High Churchmen in the reign of
-James I. adopted Arminian views, this naturally excited the opposition
-of Low Churchmen, and the battle which had before been waged against
-caps and canons assumed a character of higher importance, and
-discussions were carried on involving creeds.</p>
-
-<p>The Puritans were the champions of predestination, and <i>identified</i>
-it with the doctrine of salvation by grace. Whether right or wrong
-in this respect, it is necessary that such an identification in
-their minds should be remembered, for the just appreciation of their
-character and conduct. They did not consider themselves as contending
-for mere abstractions, but for truths of the highest practical moment
-to the interests of mankind: and certainly many of their opponents in
-their anti-Calvinistic zeal shewed little sympathy with Evangelical
-sentiments, and contented themselves too generally with a hard, dry,
-Ni<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_46" id="Page_46">[46]</a></span>cene orthodoxy, coupled with strong ritualistic predilections.
-There may certainly be found not a little of powerful moral teaching,
-like Chrysostom's, amongst the Anglican divines of that day, and a
-firm inculcation of such views as he held on the person of Christ; but
-there is a lack, as in his case, of that teaching which exalts the
-atoning work of the Redeemer, and the regenerating and sanctifying
-agency of the Holy Spirit. The Calvinistic decisions of the Synod of
-Dort&mdash;whither King James sent English representatives&mdash;did not at all
-allay the furiousness of the controversy: and if, in consequence of
-the Court instructions of 1622, "that no preacher under a bishop or
-dean should meddle with the dispute,"<a name="FNanchor_64_64" id="FNanchor_64_64"></a><a href="#Footnote_64_64" class="fnanchor">[64]</a> the flame here and there
-might smoulder, assuredly the fire was by no means extinguished.
-It may be added, that many excellent men in the Church of England,
-who were far from embracing the theory of government espoused by
-Cartwright and Travers, and who considered as trifles the habits and
-ceremonies against which the earlier Puritans so earnestly protested,
-nevertheless joined with all their heart in opposing the doctrinal
-tenets of the Anglicans. Hence arose the distinction between doctrinal
-and ecclesiastical Puritans. To Puritans of both kinds James I. had a
-strong antipathy. Though at one time a sturdy Calvinist, he<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_47" id="Page_47">[47]</a></span> abandoned
-the system when it became a Puritan badge, but his most intense
-dislike fell on the ecclesiastical peculiarities of the party. When
-once he had come across the border, he identified Presbyterianism with
-republicanism, declaring that a kirk and a monarchy could no more agree
-than God and the Devil; and with a coarse insolence and vulgar spite,
-far more intolerable to his subjects than the temper of Elizabeth in
-her most imperious proceedings&mdash;for the two sovereigns were of totally
-different natures&mdash;the Scotch King of England declared, "I will harry
-the Puritans out of the land, or worse."</p>
-
-<p>We have already noticed the prayer-meetings and the prophesyings of
-the sixteenth century. Puritan lectureships, proceeding from the
-same spirit, were very much in advance of the other associations.
-They sprung from a desire to promote spiritual edification by means
-extraneous to the old parochial system, and in fact they practically
-anticipated the popular rights of election, and the principles of
-ecclesiastical voluntaryism taught at the present day. The lectureships
-depended on the free contributions of the people, who exercised the
-privilege of choosing as their lecturer the man whose doctrines and
-manner of life they approved. As parochial duties did not attach to
-the office, the lecturers were relieved of certain ceremonies, and,
-consequently, such ministers as felt Puritan scruples preferred to
-minister in this more limited capacity. The origin of the institution
-is obscure. It was first legally recognized by the Act of Uniformity
-at the Restoration; but a Friday evening lecture existed in the parish
-of St. Michael Royal as early as the year 1589. Whatever might be the
-exact nature of the beginning, the extensive progress of lectureships
-is apparent in the seventeenth century. The lecturers stood somewhat in
-the same relation to parish priests as the friars of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_48" id="Page_48">[48]</a></span> middle ages
-to the secular clergy, and, like them, they exercised large popular
-influence; like them too, they received large popular contributions;
-and also like them, in some cases, they were found in painful rivalry
-and collision with parochial incumbents.</p>
-
-<p>Another form of Puritan activity appeared in the institution of a
-body of trustees for the purchase of impropriations, with a view to
-secure as many livings as possible for ministers of Puritan opinions&mdash;a
-proceeding closely imitated in recent times by religious laymen, who
-buy advowsons for Evangelical clergymen. Fuller, who, in his own droll
-style, tells us of the twelve trustees, that four were "divines to
-persuade men's consciences; four lawyers to draw all conveyances; and
-four citizens who commanded rich coffers"&mdash;goes on to observe what
-incredibly large sums were advanced in a short time, and that it was
-verily believed, "if not obstructed in their endeavours, within fifty
-years, rather purchases than money would have been wanting."<a name="FNanchor_65_65" id="FNanchor_65_65"></a><a href="#Footnote_65_65" class="fnanchor">[65]</a></p>
-
-<p>Puritans disliked ceremonies. Earnest as to the spirit of worship, they
-cared little&mdash;often not enough&mdash;about forms. These men did not study,
-and could but imperfectly understand, the æsthetics of religion&mdash;as
-some people now call that which relates to seemly and expressive
-modes of divine service, dictated by propriety, common sense, and
-good taste. But beyond this, and chiefly, they had conscientious
-scruples respecting observances, to which, no doubt, with equal
-conscientiousness, the rulers of the Church attached importance. If
-conscience, on the one side, had been content to practice and not
-impose; conscience, on the other side, would have been saved the pain
-of resistance, if not the trouble of protest. The<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_49" id="Page_49">[49]</a></span> two parties were
-ever coming into dogged antagonism&mdash;prelates, zealous for uniformity,
-and Puritans as zealous against it. The latter, if ministers, would not
-wear the surplice, or read the whole liturgy; if people, they would
-not recite the creed after the minister, nor repeat the responses in
-the Litany and after the Ten Commandments; they would sit when they
-ought to stand, or stand when they ought to kneel, or remain erect
-when they ought to bow; ministers would preach when they were required
-to catechise; people wanted lecturers when they had only rectors or
-curates. Rather than yield in these matters they would suffer anything.
-Their oppressors called them "proud," "self-conceited," "malapert,"
-"puffed up by popular vogue," "indiscreet," "hollow pillars of
-Puritanism."<a name="FNanchor_66_66" id="FNanchor_66_66"></a><a href="#Footnote_66_66" class="fnanchor">[66]</a> They retorted that Popery was overflowing the land,
-and they prayed that the Spirit of the Lord would lift up a standard
-against it.</p>
-
-<p>To repress these disorders, articles of visitation were drawn up more
-carefully than ever, with an increase of minuteness and stringency;
-and these were sent to churchwardens and sidesmen. But the power of
-spiritual courts, and episcopal and archidiaconal authority were set at
-nought by Puritan Protestants. It was asserted by some of the stiffer
-sort that bishops have no right to hold visitations without express
-commission under the great seal, or to tender articles unless made by
-Convocation and ratified by Parliament. People were advised to keep
-the visitation articles "for waste paper, or to stop mustard-pots."
-Citations to spiritual courts should be disregarded, it was said,
-unless the courts were held by royal patent and the processes were
-in the King's name. "Depart without more ado," advised these<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_50" id="Page_50">[50]</a></span> hasty
-disposers of ecclesiastical law; "if they excommunicate you it is
-void&mdash;you may go to Church notwithstanding. If all subjects will take
-this course, they will soon shake off the prelates' tyranny and yoke
-of bondage, under which they groan through their own defaults and
-cowardice."<a name="FNanchor_67_67" id="FNanchor_67_67"></a><a href="#Footnote_67_67" class="fnanchor">[67]</a></p>
-
-<p>Such was the spirit shown by some; but in many cases the ecclesiastical
-powers could not be so trifled with, and Puritans suffered fines
-and imprisonment. Rather than endure this injustice many preferred
-exile; some retired to Holland; others to the shores of New England.
-Six-score passengers, it was reported, were going out in two ships,
-and six hundred more were prepared to follow. Such swarms of emigrants
-alarmed<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_51" id="Page_51">[51]</a></span> their neighbours, who complained of the decrease of the
-king's people, the overthrow of trade, and the augmented number of
-those who were disaffected towards episcopacy.<a name="FNanchor_68_68" id="FNanchor_68_68"></a><a href="#Footnote_68_68" class="fnanchor">[68]</a> But the drain went
-on, the Puritans saying, "The sun of heaven doth shine as comfortably
-in other places; the sun of righteousness much brighter; better to go
-and dwell in Goshen, find it where we can, than tarry in the midst of
-such an Egyptian darkness as is falling on this land."<a name="FNanchor_69_69" id="FNanchor_69_69"></a><a href="#Footnote_69_69" class="fnanchor">[69]</a> This was in
-the spirit of Dante, who, when an exile from his beloved home on the
-Arno, asked, "Shall I not everywhere behold the light of the sun and of
-the stars?&mdash;Shall I not everywhere under Heaven be able to enjoy the
-most delightful truths?"</p>
-
-<p>Baxter has embodied the sentiment in one of his hymns:&mdash;</p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="ileft">"All countries are my Father's lands,</div>
- <div class="i1">Thy sun, Thy love doth shine on all;</div>
- <div>We may in all lift up pure hands,</div>
- <div class="i1">And with acceptance on Thee call.</div>
- </div>
-
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="ileft">"No walls, nor bars, can keep Thee out,</div>
- <div class="i1">None can confine a holy soul;</div>
- <div>The street of heaven it walks about,</div>
- <div class="i1">None can its liberty control."</div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-
-<p>Such men were not likely to be subdued by persecution; they had caught
-a spirit which all the violence in the world could not crush; and the
-only results of that violence were the increase of their own constancy,
-surrounded by the honours of spiritual heroism, and the infamy which
-will for ever rest on the memory of their cruel oppressors.</p>
-
-<p>It must not be supposed that their cause was un<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_52" id="Page_52">[52]</a></span>patronized by men of
-influence, or their case unheard in the halls of Parliament. They had
-friends amongst the noble; and patriotic tongues were eloquent on their
-behalf in the House of Commons. Though for a while protest did not
-avail against their persecution, in the end it bore for the persecutors
-bitter fruit. It made way for the exposure and chastisement of their
-guilt, and was neither forgotten nor found to be ineffective, when, in
-the dispensations of a righteous Providence, a day of retribution came.</p>
-
-<p>Puritanism was a reaction against Anglicanism. It was an assertion
-of the right of private judgment against Church decisions, of the
-exclusive authority of Scripture against tradition, and of the
-simplicity of worship against elaborate ceremonialism. The intense
-horror of Popery felt by the Puritans was deepened by the papistic
-practices of the Anglicans. The strict observance of the Sabbath was
-made still more strict by the publication of the "Book of Sports," and
-by the practical depreciation of the Lord's day through the immense
-importance attached to Church festivals. The defection of the High
-Church party from the Evangelical creed, and still more from the
-evangelical spirit of the Reformers, riveted closely the attachment of
-the Puritans to the articles and homilies, as distinguished from the
-liturgy and rubric; and made them more full and earnest in exhibiting
-the freedom of salvation through the atonement of Jesus Christ, and
-the new birth of the Spirit of God. Also the working out of Arminian
-principles in unevangelical ways drove the Puritans into sharper and
-more rigid forms of Calvinistic speculation. But, happily for the fame
-of the latter, they were led, by the persecution they suffered, to
-connect themselves with the friends of political liberty; and thus to
-share in the honour belonging to the noble band of patriots, who, not<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_53" id="Page_53">[53]</a></span>
-without some mistakes but with a wisdom and heroism&mdash;which it would
-be idle to question and unthankful to forget&mdash;secured for us those
-national privileges which distinguish Englishmen from the rest of
-Europe.</p>
-
-<p>Taking Andrewes and Donne as exponents of Anglican theology, the reader
-may take Bolton and Sibbs as representatives of Puritan teaching. Their
-works were exceedingly popular with the Evangelicals of Charles I.'s
-reign. In rough leather binding they might have been seen on the humble
-library shelf of the yeoman's house, or in his hands well thumbed,
-as he sat in his window-seat or walked in his little garden. "The
-Four Last Things" led many to prepare for the future life; and "The
-Bruised Reed" became honoured as the chief means of Richard Baxter's
-conversion. The tone of piety in these men partook of a glow and ardour
-which made their spiritual life, at times, appear like a rapture, and
-rendered their death "a perfect euthanasia." "By the wonderful mercies
-of God," said Bolton, "I am as full of comfort as my heart can hold,
-and feel nothing in my soul but Christ, with whom I heartily desire to
-be." Asked by a friend in his last moments on a sharp December day,
-"Do you feel much pain?" "Truly no," he replied, "the greatest pain I
-feel is your cold hand." If, to use a figure of Coleridge, the Cross
-shines dimly in certain Anglican authors, that Cross is all-radiant in
-Puritan theology. If, in the one case, the cloudy pillar hovers in the
-neighbourhood of the promised land without entering it, in the other,
-it conducts those who follow its guidance straight into a land flowing
-with milk and honey.</p>
-
-<p>Let it not be supposed that the doctrinal Puritans in Stuart times were
-perpetually preaching, or writing on doctrinal subjects; or that they
-had the least sympathy with the sectaries. Thomas Adams is an<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_54" id="Page_54">[54]</a></span> eminent
-doctrinal Puritan of that age, but no sermons can be more eminently
-practical than his; they are the furthest removed from Antinomian
-tendencies. He is ever combating the vices around him, and insisting
-upon a solid scriptural morality; whilst his allusions to Brownists are
-caustic enough to have satisfied, in that respect, the taste of the
-most decided Anglican.</p>
-
-<p>Puritanism was not so much a creed, or a code, as a life. Though a
-reaction, the movement was no superficial phenomenon thrown up by the
-chafing together of obstinate minds on opposite sides. The causes
-were some of them ancient, and all of them deep. It is possible even
-that peculiarities of race and blood might have somewhat to do with
-the strong sympathies of the middle and lower classes, in a simple
-and unostentatious kind of religious worship. The plain and sturdy
-nature of the Anglo-Saxon was still pure, in a multitude of cases,
-from Norman admixture in those ranks of society where Puritanism most
-prevailed; and the Anglo-Saxon had ever shown himself unfriendly to
-that ecclesiastical pomp of architecture and glittering ritual which
-delighted the Norman. Traditional opinions and sentiments, opposed
-to the spirit of Romanism, had been handed down through the middle
-ages, from one generation to another of the English commonalty in
-their homesteads and cottages; and, probably, as those opinions and
-sentiments had contributed to the outbursts of Lollardism, and helped
-on the cause of the Reformation, so also they ministered to the later
-development of principles, proceeding further in the same direction.
-Beyond all doubt, the Puritan under James was the religious son and
-heir of the reformer under Elizabeth; he inherited, and expressed
-more boldly and more truly, his father's spirit. Puritanism came only
-as the second stage in a progress<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_55" id="Page_55">[55]</a></span> of which the Reformation was the
-first. Such an impulse as Protestantism could not be resisted&mdash;set,
-as it was from the beginning, decidedly in the direction of change
-beyond what the compromise under the Tudors allowed. The pent-up
-waters of Protestantism found a vent through Puritanism. Besides,
-the persecutions under Mary rendered Rome more hateful to Englishmen
-during the last half of the sixteenth century than during the first;
-the children who heard of the Smithfield fires were more exasperated
-even than the parents who saw them, and they hated with a bitter hatred
-everything in the Church which, in their opinion, pointed Romewards.
-The Puritan reaction against Popery is to be regarded as also aided
-by its alliance with the reactions, moral and political, against
-despotism; freedom appeared to the Puritan not merely as something
-expedient, and to be desired for temporal ends, but as a heaven-born
-right, a gift of God, which it was man's duty to claim and assert, in
-the face of earth and hell: and thus kindred forces bore toward the
-same point. Puritanism, moreover, presented a strong attraction to
-religious minds of a certain class. Multitudes were sinners of a coarse
-type, and wanted something infinitely stronger than forms, ceremonies,
-orthodox abstractions, and moral advice to put things right between
-their souls and God, and to give them holiness and peace. The Puritan
-exhibition of the love of God in Christ, of the wonders of redemption,
-and of the abounding mercy of Heaven through the Cross for the chief
-of sinners, supplied just what such persons required. Nor to these
-alone, but to numbers beside, not coarse-minded transgressors, the
-full, clear, and unmixed manifestation of the Gospel plan of saving the
-lost came as the most blessed and welcome of messages. And finally, in
-enumerating the causes of Puritanism, devout minds,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_56" id="Page_56">[56]</a></span> at all in sympathy
-with it, will assuredly include that mighty wind which "bloweth where
-it listeth."</p>
-
-<p>Being in some respects a reaction, I may venture to observe, it had
-in it what all reactions have&mdash;much onesidedness. It betrayed narrow
-views of many subjects, straining at trifles, magnifying unimportant
-points, and not seeing that the avoidance of superstition in one
-quarter is no security against being overtaken by it in another.
-There also often occurred a want of charity in judging other people,
-and those who did not adopt the Puritan type were in danger of being
-put down as publicans and sinners. Puritans were also prone to use
-irritating language to their opponents, and shewed at times little
-of that meekness and gentleness, the want of which they bitterly
-condemned in others.<a name="FNanchor_70_70" id="FNanchor_70_70"></a><a href="#Footnote_70_70" class="fnanchor">[70]</a> They were intolerant,&mdash;with the exception of
-a few separatists,&mdash;and cannot be regarded as having understood the
-principles of religious liberty. They asserted freedom on their own
-behalf, but if they could have had the power, they would have imposed
-their own peculiarities on all their fellow-countrymen. They were too
-apt to be rigid and precise in their methods of theology, and to take
-"tithe of mint, anise, and cummin," though not so as to be unmindful
-of "the weightier matters of the law." Their scruples as to liturgical
-forms were carried to excess, and they evinced a want of that kind
-of taste which marked the Anglican churchman by excluding, as Jeremy
-Taylor says, "the solemn melody of the organ,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_57" id="Page_57">[57]</a></span> and the raptures of
-warbling and sweet voices out of cathedral choirs."<a name="FNanchor_71_71" id="FNanchor_71_71"></a><a href="#Footnote_71_71" class="fnanchor">[71]</a> And finally,
-they did not sufficiently recognize the need of providing innocent
-and healthy recreations for the people. Man was regarded by them as a
-creature made to work and worship, but hardly to play. Some Anglicans
-were ascetic, but they were gleesome at times, and conceded, if they
-did not enjoin, rather uproarious amusement in connection with their
-festivals. They had their fast-days and lenten seasons, but they
-had also the merry feasts of Christmas and Easter, Whitsuntide and
-Michaelmas. They went daily to church, were fond of the Prayer Book and
-oratory, but they had no objection to revels, masques, May-poles, and
-village games. These sudden transitions from what was grave to what
-was gay, and this mixing up of things sacred with things trifling, had
-a hurtful effect, and the religion thus fostered closely approached
-that of France and Italy. Hence the Puritans rushed to the extreme of
-putting down many manly sports, and discouraging national pastimes,
-which, purified from immorality, were adapted to promote national
-vigour, cheerfulness, and good fellowship. While, however, they
-abolished church festivals they appointed holidays of another kind,
-and had relaxations of their own, hereafter to be recounted. Yet the
-restraints they placed upon society in the day of their power were
-such, perhaps, as more than any thing else tended to alienate from
-them the sympathies of a large portion of their fellow-countrymen.
-The broken May-pole and deserted village green had no small share in
-bringing about some of the worst resentments of the Restoration.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_58" id="Page_58">[58]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Blind homage is no honour. To acknowledge the defects of Puritanism
-gives all the more force to an exhibition of its excellencies. There
-clung around it the imperfections of humanity, but it had in it a germ
-of lasting life, a divine element of grace and power.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_59" id="Page_59">[59]</a></span></p></div>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="illo059" >
- <img
- class="p0"
- src="images/illo059.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER I.</h2>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">We meet with statements, on the authority of Lord Clarendon, to the
-effect that the members of the Long Parliament "were almost to a man
-for episcopal government," and "had no mind to make any considerable
-alteration in Church or State."<a name="FNanchor_72_72" id="FNanchor_72_72"></a><a href="#Footnote_72_72" class="fnanchor">[72]</a> On the other hand, we are told that
-at the beginning, "the party in favour of presbyterian government was
-very strong in the House of Commons, and that they were disposed to be
-contented with no less than the extirpation of bishops."<a name="FNanchor_73_73" id="FNanchor_73_73"></a><a href="#Footnote_73_73" class="fnanchor">[73]</a> Neither
-statement conveys a correct idea of this remarkable assembly.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1640, November.</div>
-
-<p>Let us enter St. Stephen's chapel after the ceremony described in our
-Introduction, and see for ourselves.</p>
-
-
-
-<p>Dressed mostly in short cloaks, and wearing high-crowned hats,
-grave-looking men were seated on either side the speaker's chair, which
-was occupied by William Lenthall, a person of dignified aspect, arrayed
-in official robes, as represented by the picture in the National
-Portrait Gallery. Behind the chair were the Royal arms, and above it
-was the grand Gothic window, rendered familiar to us by old quaint
-woodcuts. The mace lay on the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_60" id="Page_60">[60]</a></span> table by which the clerks of the House
-sat, busy with books and papers; and it may be stated, once for all,
-that the forms of the House were rigidly observed, during the memorable
-war of words through which this history will conduct the reader.</p>
-
-<p>Denzil Holles, younger son of John, first Earl of Clare, sat for
-Dorchester. Foremost amongst those afterwards known as Presbyterian
-leaders, his influence in part was owing to his rank, and early court
-associations&mdash;for he had been on terms of intimacy with the King&mdash;but
-still more his power proceeded from the firm and somewhat fiery
-decision of his views, as well as from a reputation for integrity and
-honour, which raised him above the suspicion of self-interest or of
-factious animosity. Even in the days of James, he had resisted the
-encroachments of prerogative; and, in the reign of Charles, he had,
-through his adherence to the same course, been not only mulcted in a
-large fine, but imprisoned during the Royal pleasure.<a name="FNanchor_74_74" id="FNanchor_74_74"></a><a href="#Footnote_74_74" class="fnanchor">[74]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Members of Long Parliament.</i></div>
-
-<p>Glynne, Recorder of London, and a Member for the City, was also
-ultimately a decided Presbyterian; and the same may be said of Maynard,
-who represented the borough of Totness. In the same class may be
-included Sir Benjamin Rudyard, member for Wilton, and Surveyor of His
-Majesty's Court of Wards and Liveries, an accomplished gentleman, "an
-elegant scholar," and a frequent speaker. In earlier parliaments he had
-hotly debated religious questions, though he was conspicuous for loyal
-protestations as sincere as they were fervid. At first he advocated
-some qualified form of episcopal superintendence, but, from the opening
-of the Long Parliament, he<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_61" id="Page_61">[61]</a></span> condemned existing prelacy, and thus
-prepared himself for adopting presbyterian tenets.</p>
-
-<p>All these, and others less known, were from the first not only
-doctrinal but ecclesiastical Puritans, and were inspired by an intense
-detestation of Popery, and of everything which they believed paved the
-way to it. Beyond them, we find another group of men further advanced
-in the path of Church politics.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1640, November.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Members of Long Parliament.</i></div>
-
-<p>Few have been more unfairly represented than Sir Harry Vane the
-younger, member for Hull. Though son of the Comptroller of His
-Majesty's household, and brought up at Court, he was, when a youth,
-reported to the King as "grown into dislike of the discipline and
-ceremonies of the Church of England." Not long after this, it was
-stated in a letter, that he had left his father, (old Sir Harry Vane,)
-his mother, and his country, and that fortune which his father would
-have left him, and for conscience' sake was gone to New England.<a name="FNanchor_75_75" id="FNanchor_75_75"></a><a href="#Footnote_75_75" class="fnanchor">[75]</a>
-There he became Governor of Massachusetts, and, in that capacity,
-carried out the principles of religious toleration with a consistency
-and an equity so unique, as to offend many of the colonists, who,
-while advocates of religious freedom, persecuted, through mistaken
-fears, a sincerely<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_62" id="Page_62">[62]</a></span> religious woman, only because she was obstinate
-and fanatical. Returned to England, young Vane became not only member
-of the Short Parliament, but received knighthood from Charles I., and
-joined Sir W. Russel in the Treasurership of the Navy&mdash;a proceeding
-which indicated at the time something of a conciliatory disposition
-on both sides. With a philosophical temperament of the imaginative
-cast, and with strong religious tendencies in a mystical direction;
-smitten also with the charms of Plato's republic, and longing for
-the realization of his ideal within the shores of England, Vane
-seemed to many of his sober-minded contemporaries an enthusiast and
-a visionary; yet it would be difficult to disprove the testimony of
-Ludlow, that "he was capable of managing great affairs&mdash;possessing,
-in the highest perfection, a quick and ready apprehension, a strong
-and tenacious memory, a profound and penetrating judgment, a just and
-noble eloquence, with an easy and graceful manner of speaking. To
-these were added a singular zeal and affection for the good of the
-Commonwealth, and a resolution and courage not to be shaken or diverted
-from the public service."<a name="FNanchor_76_76" id="FNanchor_76_76"></a><a href="#Footnote_76_76" class="fnanchor">[76]</a> Probably no man, at the beginning of the
-Long Parliament, so thoroughly grasped or could so well advocate the
-principles of religious liberty as Sir Harry Vane. There he sat in old
-St. Stephen's, with a refined expression of countenance, most pleasant
-and prepossessing; a person, says Clarendon, "of unusual aspect, which
-made men think there was somewhat in him of extraordinary."<a name="FNanchor_77_77" id="FNanchor_77_77"></a><a href="#Footnote_77_77" class="fnanchor">[77]</a></p>
-
-<p>Nathaniel Fiennes, Lord Say and Sele's son, who<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_63" id="Page_63">[63]</a></span> represented Banbury,
-also held rank in the vanguard of religious liberty. Educated at
-Geneva&mdash;where also Vane had spent some of his early years&mdash;he had
-imbibed in some degree the spirit of that renowned little republic;
-and his opposition to the ecclesiastical establishment of his native
-country was, on his entering public life, soon roused by the working
-out of Anglo-Catholic principles. He agreed with Vane in his broad
-views of freedom, and when the Presbyterian and Independent parties
-assumed a definite form, he took his place with the latter. Clarendon
-admits his "good stock of estimation in the House of Commons," his
-superior "parts of learning and nature," and speaks of his being "a
-great manager in the most secret designs from the beginning."<a name="FNanchor_78_78" id="FNanchor_78_78"></a><a href="#Footnote_78_78" class="fnanchor">[78]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1640, November.</div>
-
-<p>Another individual there&mdash;according to the report of a courtly young
-gentleman, Sir Philip Warwick&mdash;wore a suit which seemed made by a
-country tailor; his linen was plain, and not very clean; a speck or two
-of blood stained his little band, which, very uncourtier-like, was not
-much larger than his collar; his hat had no hat-band, and his sword
-stuck close to his side. The man appeared of good stature, but his
-countenance looked swollen and reddish, and his voice sounded sharp and
-untunable; but he spoke with fervour, and much to the vexation of the
-royalist observer, this shabby-looking member was "very much hearkened
-unto." "Pray who is that man, that sloven who spake just now?" said
-Lord Digby&mdash;one who <i>then</i> took the patriotic side&mdash;to another, John
-Hampden,&mdash;who afterwards died for it.&mdash;"That sloven whom you see before
-you hath no ornament of speech; that sloven, I say, if we should ever
-come to a breach with the King, which God forbid, in such a case I say,
-that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_64" id="Page_64">[64]</a></span> sloven will be the greatest man in England." The speaker was the
-sloven's cousin, and, with the intuitive perception of a kindred mind,
-saw in that rough piece of humanity some of the rarest elements of
-power which this world has ever felt.</p>
-
-<p>Oliver Cromwell began his parliamentary career in 1628, as member for
-Huntingdon. In the Long Parliament he represented Cambridge, being
-returned by a majority of only one. As early as 1628 he distinguished
-himself in a debate respecting the pardon of certain religious
-delinquents, by charging some leading Churchmen with Popery; and though
-we can see nothing in his speeches but a rough, rude energy, they were
-jerked out by his untunable voice in such a fashion that they were
-remembered and talked of when many eloquent orations had glided into
-oblivion. His house at Huntingdon afforded a refuge to persecuted
-Nonconformist ministers. At St. Ives he achieved an unequalled
-reputation for "piety and self-denying virtue." And at Ely&mdash;whence he
-had now come to London, over bad roads in the foggy month of November,
-travelling on horseback in humble style&mdash;at Ely, dwelling at the glebe
-house, near St. Mary's Churchyard, he maintained the same character and
-influence, though there he suffered dreadfully from hypochondria. In
-part it rose from seeing his brethren forsake their native country to
-seek their bread among strangers, or to live in a howling wilderness.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Members of the Long Parliament.</i></div>
-
-<p>Oliver St. John, member for Totness, was on terms of friendship with
-Oliver Cromwell, more so in the later than in the earlier portion of
-his history. Eminent for qualities such as help to make the good lawyer
-and the useful statesman, there hung round his ways a mystery&mdash;the
-effect of reticence and moroseness&mdash;which impaired<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_65" id="Page_65">[65]</a></span> his influence, and
-gave him the name of "the dark-lantern man!" At first chiefly known in
-a legal and political capacity, as time advanced, and events rolled
-into ecclesiastical channels, he became active in religious affairs,
-and took a foremost place amongst political independents.</p>
-
-<p>Sir Arthur Haselrig represented Leicestershire. He had married the
-sister of Lord Brook, and probably shared in what were considered the
-extreme ecclesiastical opinions of that nobleman. What these opinions
-were will be seen as we proceed, together with the course which the
-Leicestershire baronet took, as well on State as on Church questions.
-He, at an early period of the Long Parliament, showed himself decidedly
-opposed to Episcopacy, and ultimately became a thorough Republican.
-With much warm-heartedness and generosity, he had also the rashness
-and prejudice which are the dark shadows of such virtues, so that his
-enemies said he had "more will than wit," and gave him the nickname of
-"hare-brained."</p>
-
-<p>But far more influential at first than any of these were other men whom
-we must describe.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1640, November.</div>
-
-<p>Of the Parliamentary leaders, the most renowned and influential at the
-commencement of the struggle was John Pym. That "grave and religious
-gentleman"&mdash;burgess for the good town of Tavistock&mdash;appeared as
-conspicuously in religious business as in that which was strictly
-political. His countenance had a lion-like dignity, and, with a
-touch of melancholy in eyes and lips, there blended an expression of
-invincible firmness, while his shaggy mane-like hair, disarranged,
-as he spoke with tremendous energy, were in keeping with the rest of
-his majestic appearance. For eight and twenty years he had struggled
-against the policy of King, Court, and Church. Wise in council, and
-eloquent in speech, though quaint and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_66" id="Page_66">[66]</a></span> tedious in the style of his
-oratory&mdash;a trifling drawback, however, in that age&mdash;he stood forward
-the most formidable antagonist with whom the High Church party had to
-deal. So closely at one time did John Pym connect Church and State&mdash;in
-this respect widely differing from Sir Harry Vane&mdash;that in 1628, he
-declared, "It belongs to the duty of a Parliament to establish true
-religion and to punish false; we must know what Parliaments have
-done formerly in religion. Our Parliaments have confirmed General
-Councils."<a name="FNanchor_79_79" id="FNanchor_79_79"></a><a href="#Footnote_79_79" class="fnanchor">[79]</a> This now would be called a thoroughly Erastian style of
-speaking. It proceeded on the theory of the Church being subject to
-the State, and in this view many of the ecclesiastical reformers of
-that age were <i>practically</i> agreed, however diversified their notions
-of Church government might be. Pym, though never a Nonconformist, but
-simply professing himself "a faithful son of the Protestant religion,"
-from the beginning of his career opposed the spirit and proceedings of
-Anglican prelacy; and as to the questions affecting Episcopacy, he at
-last acted with those who sought its overthrow. He had a large share
-in calling the Long Parliament, as he prepared the petition for that
-purpose, and went to York to present it to the King. After the writs
-had been issued, Pym and others proceeded on an electioneering crusade,
-urging the voters to support representatives who would maintain the
-liberties of their country, then so threatened and imperilled. As
-popular opinion counted him the author of the Long Parliament, so
-common consent assigned to him the position of its leader.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Members of the Long Parliament.</i></div>
-
-<p>Next to John Pym comes John Hampden&mdash;the illustrious member for
-Buckinghamshire, universally known for his resistance of ship-money,
-and for his brief but<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_67" id="Page_67">[67]</a></span> brilliant military career. His religious
-character and the part he took in ecclesiastical affairs have,
-however, been much overlooked; yet, in early life, as the friend of
-Sir John Eliot, he had followed that single-minded and unflinching
-patriot in his noble resistance of ecclesiastical as well as regal
-despotism, and was one of the leaders of the advanced party which
-sought to promote reforms in Church and State. In 1629 he was engaged
-in preparing bills for enlarging the liberty of hearing the Word of
-God, and for preventing corruption in the collation to benefices,
-headships, fellowships, and scholarships in Colleges, besides other
-measures of less importance in a similar direction. "He was," says
-Clarendon, "not a man of many words, and rarely began the discourse,
-or made the first entrance upon any business that was assumed; but
-a very weighty speaker, and after he had heard a full debate, and
-observed how the House was like to be inclined, took up the argument,
-and shortly, and clearly, and craftily, so stated it, that he commonly
-conducted it to the conclusion he desired; and if he found he could
-not do that, he never was without the dexterity to divert the debate
-to another time, and to prevent the determining anything in the
-negative which might prove inconvenient in the future."<a name="FNanchor_80_80" id="FNanchor_80_80"></a><a href="#Footnote_80_80" class="fnanchor">[80]</a> All this,
-when stript of its manifest unfairness, means neither more nor less
-than that this persistent enemy of ship-money must have been also a
-skilful parliamentary tactician, possessing a rare insight into men
-and motives. His modesty and moderation are acknowledged even by
-this prejudiced historian; and the rapid progress of his opinions on
-ecclesiastical affairs made him what the same authority truly calls,
-"a root-and-branch man"&mdash;a fact<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_68" id="Page_68">[68]</a></span> which, though doubted by one of
-his biographers, is correctly maintained by another.<a name="FNanchor_81_81" id="FNanchor_81_81"></a><a href="#Footnote_81_81" class="fnanchor">[81]</a> His high
-intellectual forehead, his delicately chiselled features, his eyes so
-calmly looking you through, his lips of compressed firmness, with a
-kind of melancholy presentiment imprinted on his whole face&mdash;betoken
-a man born to a great but sad destiny; and we do not wonder at
-the confidence he inspired, whether he appealed to the patriotism
-of his tenantry and neighbours in the old family mansion down in
-Buckinghamshire, at the back of the Chiltern hills, or stood up to
-address the grave assembly in St. Stephen's Chapel, Westminster.<a name="FNanchor_82_82" id="FNanchor_82_82"></a><a href="#Footnote_82_82" class="fnanchor">[82]</a>
-Perhaps it is right here to mention a man of a very different stamp,
-who sat near these illustrious statesmen and acted with them. Henry
-Marten, member for Berks&mdash;and, after his father's death, renowned
-through the county for his hospitable entertainments in the vale of
-"White Horse"&mdash;was as gay and humorous, and as fond of fun as the other
-two were serious and dignified. Nor can it be denied that he seems to
-have been as licentious as they were virtuous&mdash;as "far from a Puritan
-as light from darkness," and as destitute of religious faith as they
-were diligent in its cultivation. Strongly republican, he steadily
-opposed the Court policy, and, perhaps through religious indifference,
-became tolerant of the religious opinions of others. He belongs to a
-considerable class of men who from political feeling are attached to
-ecclesiastical reformers, and who join with them in aspirations after
-the widest liberty, though incapable of entering into their<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_69" id="Page_69">[69]</a></span> loftier
-purposes. Marten's name does not occur in the early ecclesiastical
-debates of the Long Parliament, but he is found afterwards in
-connection with political Independents.</p>
-
-<p>John Selden, member for the University of Oxford, must not be dropped
-out of this roll. Merely to mention his name is to suggest the idea
-of marvellous learning. His reputation&mdash;now exalted by distance of
-time, and widened by the flow of ages&mdash;reached in his own day almost
-surprising magnitude, and must have imparted immense authority to his
-opinions. Those opinions, in reference to Church affairs, were what are
-commonly called Erastian. In the early conflicts of Puritanism, Selden
-fought in its ranks against the domineering spirit of prelacy, though
-no Puritan himself, and not having any objection to bishops, provided
-they were kept in subjection to the State.<a name="FNanchor_83_83" id="FNanchor_83_83"></a><a href="#Footnote_83_83" class="fnanchor">[83]</a> His strength in public
-affairs seems to have shewn itself more in the way of opposition than
-in constructive skill. If he did not positively help to pull down
-Episcopacy he hindered the setting up of Presbyterianism. Nor should it
-be forgotten that, student-like, he preferred his library to the arena
-of debate, and notwithstanding his sacrifices at one time to liberty,
-he had too great a love of ease&mdash;if we are to believe Clarendon, who
-knew and admired him<a name="FNanchor_84_84" id="FNanchor_84_84"></a><a href="#Footnote_84_84" class="fnanchor">[84]</a>&mdash;to take much trouble in guiding the helm of
-public affairs.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1640, November.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Members of the Long Parliament.</i></div>
-
-<p>Anecdotes are related serving to shew that even after<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_70" id="Page_70">[70]</a></span> the opening
-of the Long Parliament, the reformers had not definitely made up
-their minds as to what should be done. One "fine evening," Nathaniel
-Fiennes, after dining at Pym's lodgings with Mr. Hyde, afterwards
-Lord Clarendon, rode out with him on horseback "in the fields between
-Westminster and Chelsea." Hyde, in the course of conversation, asked
-Fiennes, "what government do you mean to introduce if the existing
-constitution of the Church were altered?" To this he replied "there
-will be time enough to think of that;" but he "assured him, and wished
-him to remember what he said, that if the King resolved to defend
-the bishops, it would cost the kingdom much blood, and would be the
-occasion of as sharp a war as had ever been in England; for that there
-was so great a number of good men who resolved to lose their lives
-before they would ever submit to that government."<a name="FNanchor_85_85" id="FNanchor_85_85"></a><a href="#Footnote_85_85" class="fnanchor">[85]</a> These words
-were uttered in the summer of 1641, when the Long Parliament had
-been sitting seven or eight months. At an earlier period, Sir Philip
-Warwick&mdash;the Court gentleman who quizzed Cromwell's clothes&mdash;met the
-rough-looking man in the lobby of the House, and wished to know what
-the real objects of his party were. "I can tell you," he bluntly
-replied, "what I would <i>not</i> have, if I cannot what I <i>would</i>." We are
-convinced that Cromwell spoke the truth in relation to his views of
-both the political and ecclesiastical changes on the brink of which
-the nation stood. Changes hovered not in the distance but at hand, and
-amongst them some which must modify the ecclesiastical establishment;
-but how far, looking at the different opinions of the country, reform
-ought to be carried, did not at once appear. Some few had republican
-theories&mdash;for example, Vane and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_71" id="Page_71">[71]</a></span> Marten&mdash;and possibly at an early
-period they contemplated the overthrow of the monarchy, and with it
-the Episcopal Church. The latter of these gentlemen blurted out as
-much, with regard to monarchy, only two days after Fiennes' talk with
-Hyde, intimating his design to employ certain persons up to a certain
-point, and then to use them "as they had used others." But there is no
-solid ground for believing that the greater number of the reformers
-had at first any further object than that of effectually curbing
-kingly prerogative in the state, and bringing down the pomp and pride
-of episcopacy in the Church. The course which they actually pursued
-shaped itself according to the discipline of circumstances. Their
-views widened as they went along. As is often the case in times of
-change, these reformers in the end were forced to seek more than they
-originally imagined. First denied the little which might have contented
-them, they felt prompted to a further struggle, and naturally claimed
-more and more: it was but the story of the Sybil, with her books,
-repeated once again. Easy is it to point out apparent inconsistencies
-in the career of men so influenced, and plausible too are the charges
-against them of concealment, treachery, and breach of faith; but an
-impartial consideration of facts, and honest views of human nature,
-will lead to conclusions at once more favourable and more just. The
-truth is, that the members of the Long Parliament were not theorists
-intent on working out some perfect ideal, but practical men who looked
-at things as they were, and with upright intentions endeavoured to mend
-them as best they could. They aimed at reforming institutions much
-in the same plodding way as that in which their fathers had founded
-and reared those institutions. The opening of the States General in
-France presents in this respect a contrast to the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_72" id="Page_72">[72]</a></span> opening of the
-Long Parliament in England; the brilliant theoristic Frank cannot be
-confounded with the sober, practical Saxon. The defiance or treachery
-of opponents filled our religious patriots of the seventeenth century
-with alarm, drove them to take up a higher position than they at first
-assumed, and to encamp themselves behind more formidable entrenchments
-than it then entered into their minds to raise.</p>
-
-<p>Another class in the House of Commons requires attention. Many were
-favourably disposed to the Church of England, advocating a moderate
-episcopacy and approving the use of the Common Prayer, with a few
-alterations. They had no liking for Presbyterian schemes of government,
-much less for a congregational polity. Their sympathies went with the
-Church of their fathers, the Church of the Reformation, the Church
-which was built over the ashes of Ridley, Latimer, and Cranmer. They
-cannot be called Anglican Catholics; but they were to the heart
-English Churchmen. Despising the mummeries of Laud, and not liking the
-instructions of his school, then so common in parish churches&mdash;these
-persons loved the old Gothic and ivy-mantled edifices where they had
-been baptized and married, and by whose altars their parents slept
-under quaint old monuments, which touched their hearts whenever they
-worshipped within the walls. They wished to see the Church of England
-reformed, not overturned.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Members of the Long Parliament.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1640, November.</div>
-
-<p>Lucius Carey, Viscount Falkland, member for Newport, stood among
-the chief of this description. His early fate, as well as his high
-esteem for John Hampden, must ever link their names in affecting
-companionship. For a time they fought a common battle. What Hampden
-said at the commencement of the strife about bishops and Anglican High
-Churchism we do not know; but we<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_73" id="Page_73">[73]</a></span> know what Falkland said, and shall
-have occasion to record some of his words, which for fiery sharpness
-against prelatical assumptions were not surpassed by the speeches of
-any Puritan. Attempts had been made to bring him over to Popery, which
-had led to his reading the Fathers and pursuing the controversy for
-himself.<a name="FNanchor_86_86" id="FNanchor_86_86"></a><a href="#Footnote_86_86" class="fnanchor">[86]</a> Thus skilled in the knowledge of the whole question, the
-result of his studies was not only an aversion to the finished system
-of Popery, but a healthful horror of all those insinuating principles
-and practices which lead to it. A sounder Protestant did not tread
-the floor of the House than Viscount Falkland. Virtuous and brave,
-with honour unimpeachable, and with patriotism unsuspected, he wins
-our heart, even though we lament the course he ultimately pursued.
-His full-length character, drawn by Clarendon, true and faithful no
-doubt, though the hand of friendship laid on the colours, inspires
-the reader with admiration and love: but we are somewhat startled at
-what the historian says of the <i>physique</i> of his honoured friend: his
-stature low, his motion not graceful, his aspect far from inviting,
-with a voice so untuned that none could expect music from that tongue,
-he was so uncomely that "no man was less beholden to nature for its
-recommendation into the world." The portrait of Falkland, by Vandyke,
-hardly confirms this unfavourable description of his appearance by
-Clarendon, though even there, in spite of cavalier silk and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_74" id="Page_74">[74]</a></span> slashed
-doublet, ample collar tassel-tyed, and flowing locks, the face of the
-young nobleman wears a somewhat rustic simplicity, albeit, tinged with
-an expression of sincere good-nature.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Members of the Long Parliament.</i></div>
-
-<p>A chief place amongst Church reformers during the first few months
-of the Long Parliament must be assigned to Sir Edward Dering. He
-represented the Kentish yeomen, the majority of whom had been driven
-into Puritanism by the Anglo-Catholic zeal of Laud; and he expressed
-the predominant feeling of the county, when he quaintly said, "he
-hoped Laud would have more grace, or no grace at all." Chairman of
-a sub-committee for religion, and a frequent and ardent speaker,
-he gathered round him the sympathies of the party opposed to the
-government, and was hailed by the citizens of London with "God
-bless your worship!" while the people&mdash;who in those days gathered
-about the doors of the House of Commons, as crowds do still, to
-cheer their favourite members&mdash;pointed to him as the man of the
-day, exclaiming, "There goes Sir Edward Dering!" This he tells us
-himself&mdash;an indication of his egotism. Vanity, no doubt, and weakness
-mixed themselves with his impetuous but persistent pursuit of an
-object, of which many laughable examples are furnished in the story
-of his life.<a name="FNanchor_87_87" id="FNanchor_87_87"></a><a href="#Footnote_87_87" class="fnanchor">[87]</a> Impetuous and rash, flexible to flattery, neither
-firm nor courageous under opposition, he was, nevertheless, amiable,
-well-meaning, patriotic, gentlemanly, and even chivalrous. He could
-reason with force, and declaim with eloquence, being no less fervent in
-his religious affections than in his political sentiments. The comely
-person of the Kentish baronet<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_75" id="Page_75">[75]</a></span> aided his popularity, and so did his
-genial manners, in spite of his hasty temper.<a name="FNanchor_88_88" id="FNanchor_88_88"></a><a href="#Footnote_88_88" class="fnanchor">[88]</a></p>
-
-<p>Posthumous fame is often not at all in proportion to contemporary
-influence. Sir Edward Dering is now by many forgotten, and, even John
-Pym, perhaps, does not hold the place in history which he did in life;
-yet, in the early days of the Long Parliament, these persons were more
-conspicuous in debate, and had more weight with the populace than John
-Hampden or Oliver Cromwell.</p>
-
-<p>Amongst the class at first favourable to extensive ecclesiastical
-reforms was also that mercurial royalist, Lord Digby, who represented
-Dorsetshire, and afterwards became Earl of Bristol. He soon diverged
-very far from his early compatriots, and played a part which must
-always affix dishonour to his name, whatever opinion may be formed of
-the cause he espoused.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1640, November.</div>
-
-<p>All the persons now mentioned acted together in ecclesiastical affairs,
-more or less intimately, at the opening of Parliament. Those who came
-nearest to one another in opinion had meetings for conference. Pym,
-Hampden, Fiennes, and Vane the younger, with some liberal noblemen
-of the Upper House, were wont to assemble at Broughton Castle,
-Oxfordshire, the seat of Lord Say, Fiennes' father, and at Tawsley, in
-Northamptonshire, the mansion of Sir Richard Knightley, father-in-law
-to Hampden. A story is related&mdash;not a very likely one&mdash;that in certain
-old stone-walled and casemated rooms, shown in the castle, the
-worthies<a name="FNanchor_89_89" id="FNanchor_89_89"></a><a href="#Footnote_89_89" class="fnanchor">[89]</a> used to meet<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_76" id="Page_76">[76]</a></span> lest they should be detected; and, which
-is more probable, that a printing-press, established in the mansion by
-Sir Richard's father, was applied to their purposes. Perhaps about the
-same time, meetings of a similar kind were also held at Kensington, in
-the noble mansion of Lord Holland, one of the statesmen who took part
-in these conferences. There were gatherings in Gray's Inn Lane, too,
-whither reports came up from the country, and whence intelligence was
-distributed amongst the city patriots. After the opening of Parliament,
-Pym's lodgings at Westminster became a place of rendezvous, at least
-for a select few. But though these consultations so far obtained
-amongst certain chiefs, it must not be supposed that there existed
-a large organized party, resembling the phalanx which till of late
-years used compactly to follow some great leader. The two parties into
-which the House of Commons fell did by no means distinctly divide at
-first. How, on ecclesiastical questions they formed, and took up their
-position, will be seen as we proceed.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Members of the Long Parliament.</i></div>
-
-<p>Certainly there can be traced nothing like an organized party for
-defending the Church. The King and the bishops, with many of the
-nobility and a number of the people, were sincerely attached to the
-Establishment, and were prepared to admit only slight changes in its
-constitution. In the House of Commons, however, where its battle had
-to be fought, and its fate decided, there did not appear any strong
-alliance, or any distinct advocacy in its favour. It is surprising
-that in the early debates, when so many voices fiercely proclaimed its
-corruptions, so few made themselves heard in its defence. No chivalrous
-spirit stepped forward to resist the band of assailants. The tide
-flowed in. Not one strong man attempted to build a breakwater.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_77" id="Page_77">[77]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Edward Hyde, who did so much for the Church of England at the
-Restoration, did little for it in this crisis of its fate. It is true
-he was a young man, and without great influence, but he shewed no
-heroism on its behalf; indeed, heroism was foreign to his nature. What
-he attempted he himself describes, and that the reader will discover to
-be paltry enough.</p>
-
-<p>In the Upper House were the bishops, who might naturally be esteemed
-as guardians and defenders of the Church in the hour of need. But
-there were none of them possessed of that statesman-like ability,
-without which it would have been impossible to preserve the Episcopal
-Establishment in the shock of revolution. Laud, no doubt, had great
-talents and abundant courage, but the blunders he had made in driving
-the ship on to the rocks, gave no hope that he would have skill enough
-to pilot the ship off, even if granted the opportunity. But he had
-not even the opportunity. Hardly did the Long Parliament open when
-his indignant enemies thrust him from the helm. The conduct of other
-bishops had only served to strip them of the last chance of saving
-their order. The best on the bench shared in the obloquy brought on
-all by the intolerance and corruption of the worst, while none of them
-possessed the mental and moral calibre necessary for dealing with those
-huge difficulties amidst which the Church of England had now been
-dashed.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1640, November.</div>
-
-<p>Puritans too, it should be remembered, sat in the Upper as well as
-in the Lower House. Amongst them may be numbered Devereux, Earl of
-Essex; Seymour, Earl of Hertford; Rich, Earl of Warwick; Rich, Earl of
-Holland; Viscount Say and Sele, Viscount Mandeville, Baron Wharton,
-Greville, Lord Brook, and others. Some of these will appear in the
-following pages,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_78" id="Page_78">[78]</a></span> and of them in general we may observe that they did
-not lack astuteness, courage, and power. Anglicanism might be stronger
-in the House of Lords than in the House of Commons; but Puritanism, on
-the whole, appeared stronger than Anglicanism even there.</p>
-
-<p>One man alone could be found capable of doing aught to preserve the
-Church in this hour of her adversity. Could Lord Strafford have carried
-out his thorough policy, had he been left free to pursue his course,
-had no <i>coup d'etat</i> come in the way to arrest his daring ambition, and
-crush his despotic projects; he might, with his subtle brain, brave
-heart, and iron hand, have defeated the patriots once more, and so have
-saved the Anglican Establishment awhile. Another dissolution, or some
-arbitrary arrests, would, for a season, have crushed Pym and his party.
-That, however, was not to be.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_79" id="Page_79">[79]</a></span></p></div>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="illo079" >
- <img
- class="p0"
- src="images/illo079.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER II.</h2>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">Shortly after the opening of Parliament, Pym met Hyde in Westminster
-Hall, and showed unmistakeably, by his conversation, the course which
-he intended to pursue. "They must now," he told him, "be of another
-temper than they were the last Parliament; that they must not only
-sweep the house clean below, but must pull down all the cobwebs which
-hung in the top and corners, that they might not breed dust, and so
-make a foul house hereafter. But they had now an opportunity to make
-their country happy, by removing all grievances, and pulling up the
-causes of them by the roots, if all men would do their duties."<a name="FNanchor_90_90" id="FNanchor_90_90"></a><a href="#Footnote_90_90" class="fnanchor">[90]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1640, November.</div>
-
-<p>On the 6th of November, the Commons, in pursuance of precedent,
-appointed a grand Committee of religion,<a name="FNanchor_91_91" id="FNanchor_91_91"></a><a href="#Footnote_91_91" class="fnanchor">[91]</a> consisting of the whole
-House, to meet every Monday afternoon, at two o'clock. The next morning
-came a petition from Mrs. Bastwick, and another from Mrs. Burton, on
-behalf of their husbands&mdash;"close prisoners in remote islands"&mdash;after
-having stood in the pillory, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_80" id="Page_80">[80]</a></span> lost their ears, by a Star Chamber
-sentence. Immediately upon this, another petition followed from John
-Brown, on behalf of his master, Mr. Prynne&mdash;"close prisoner in the
-Isle of Jersey"&mdash;who also had suffered mutilation by authority of the
-same tribunal. Scarcely had this arrived when another appeared from
-John Lilburne&mdash;"close prisoner in the Fleet"&mdash;also under Star Chamber
-condemnation. A fifth was read from Alexander Leighton, complaining
-of his sentence by the same court, in pursuance of which he had been
-whipped, slashed in the nose, branded on both cheeks, and deprived of
-his ears, and then closely imprisoned.<a name="FNanchor_92_92" id="FNanchor_92_92"></a><a href="#Footnote_92_92" class="fnanchor">[92]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_81" id="Page_81">[81]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Debates on Religion.</i></div>
-
-<p>The presentation of these petitions produced an impression most adverse
-to the Church. The offences of the prisoners had been the publishing of
-books, which virulently assailed prelacy, superstitious worship, and
-ecclesiastical despotism. The tone in some of these writings is quite
-indefensible, and scarcely to be excused,<a name="FNanchor_93_93" id="FNanchor_93_93"></a><a href="#Footnote_93_93" class="fnanchor">[93]</a> and had they been passed
-over in silence, sympathy might have turned towards those assailed;
-but after the liberty of the Press had been violated, and a merciless
-punishment had been inflicted on the assailants, the tide of popular
-feeling ran in their favour, and they were honoured as martyrs in their
-country's cause.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1640, November.</div>
-
-<p>The House of Commons at once overrode the autho<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_82" id="Page_82">[82]</a></span>rity of the Star
-Chamber, and sent for the prisoners. Even in the pillory, and the
-prison, Burton and Prynne had received testimonies of sympathy, and
-now their return to London was a perfect ovation. They arrived on
-the 28th of November, and were "nearly three hours in passing from
-Charing Cross to their lodging in the city, having torches carried to
-light them." The parish churches had rung merry peals as the liberated
-prisoners reached town after town, and their escort into London
-consisted of a hundred coaches, some with six horses, and two thousand
-horsemen, with sprigs of rosemary in their hats&mdash;"those on foot being
-innumerable."<a name="FNanchor_94_94" id="FNanchor_94_94"></a><a href="#Footnote_94_94" class="fnanchor">[94]</a> Afterwards the House resolved that the proceedings
-against these sufferers had been illegal and unjust&mdash;that their fines
-should be remitted&mdash;that they were to be restored to liberty, and
-that their persecutors should make reparation for the injuries they
-had inflicted.<a name="FNanchor_95_95" id="FNanchor_95_95"></a><a href="#Footnote_95_95" class="fnanchor">[95]</a> Prynne&mdash;when vacancies in Parliament occurred
-through the secession of royalist members&mdash;was elected to a seat; and
-thenceforth in the Long Parliament his mutilated ears became constant
-mementoes of Star Chamber cruelty, stimulating resistance to arbitrary
-government, if not provoking retaliation for past offences. And here
-it may be noticed that many members on the patriotic side had suffered
-from the despotic doings of past years. Hampden, Holles, Selden,
-Strode, Sir Harbottle Grimston, Long, and Hobart had all been in
-prison, and some also had paid fines.<a name="FNanchor_96_96" id="FNanchor_96_96"></a><a href="#Footnote_96_96" class="fnanchor">[96]</a> They would have been more or
-less than human if their memories had not aroused indignation against
-the despotism of the King and his ministers. Such members seated on
-the opposition benches, backed by a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_83" id="Page_83">[83]</a></span> majority, were enough to make the
-hearts of courtiers quail.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Debates on Religion.</i></div>
-
-<p>Not only did Pym's spirit pervade the House, and manifest itself in
-these early proceedings, but his voice was heard enumerating the main
-grievances in Church and State. Scarcely had the session of the Commons
-commenced, when&mdash;according to the Puritan habit of the times&mdash;he
-denounced the encouragement given to Papists, because their principles
-were incompatible with other religions, and because with them laws
-had no authority, nor oaths any obligation, seeing that the Bishop of
-Rome could dispense with both. He complained further of their being
-allowed offices of trust in the Commonwealth, of their free resort to
-Court, and of their having a Nuncio in England, even as they had a
-congregation of Cardinals in Italy. It would be unreasonable to apply
-to a statesman maintaining these views in the seventeenth century,
-a standard of opinion belonging to the nineteenth, and also it is
-unnecessary to expose the fallacies which underlie such specious
-coverings. We must admit that there were special circumstances then
-existing, and recent facts in fresh remembrance&mdash;some of them will be
-hereafter seen&mdash;which rendered the position of the friends of freedom
-very different from what it is now. Though principles of righteousness
-and charity are immutable, the recollection of old evils just escaped,
-and the apprehension of new perils just at hand, may well be pleaded
-in excuse of measures then adopted for self-preservation. The fear of
-the restoration of Popery at that period cannot be pronounced an idle
-apprehension. The Reformation was young. Rome was busy. The Queen was
-a Papist. Roman Catholics were in favour at Court. Anglo-Catholicism
-unconsciously was opening the gates to the enemy. And further, in
-connection with<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_84" id="Page_84">[84]</a></span> this speech by Pym, it is only fair to quote what he
-said on another occasion:&mdash;"He did not desire any new laws against
-Popery, or any rigorous courses in the execution of those already in
-force; he was far from seeking the ruin of their persons or estates,
-only he wisht they might be kept in such a condition as should restrain
-them from doing hurt."<a name="FNanchor_97_97" id="FNanchor_97_97"></a><a href="#Footnote_97_97" class="fnanchor">[97]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1640, November.</div>
-
-<p>From the subject of Popery, Pym turned at once to Anglican innovations,
-which he regarded as the bridge leading to it. He pointed out the
-maintenance of Popish tenets in books and sermons, together with the
-practice of Popish ceremonies in worship&mdash;which he compared to the
-dry bones in Ezekiel, coming together, and being covered with sinews,
-flesh, and skin; to be afterwards filled with breath and life. First
-the form and finally the spirit of the old apostacy were creeping over
-the Church of England, and the corpse buried at the Reformation even
-how seemed rising from the grave. The speaker proceeded to complain of
-the discouragement shown to Protestantism by prosecuting scrupulous
-persons for things indifferent&mdash;such as not coming to the altar rails
-to receive the communion,<a name="FNanchor_98_98" id="FNanchor_98_98"></a><a href="#Footnote_98_98" class="fnanchor">[98]</a> preaching lectures on Sunday afternoons,
-and using other Catechisms than that in the prayer book. This part of
-Pym's speech concluded with a notice of alarming encroachments made by
-ecclesiastical jurisdiction. Accused persons were fined and punished
-without law. A <i>jure divino</i> authority was claimed for Episcopal order
-and proceedings, and articles were contrived and published, pretending
-to have the force of canon laws, which the orator declared was an<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_85" id="Page_85">[85]</a></span>
-effect of great presumption and boldness, not only in the bishops, but
-in their archdeacons, officials, and chancellors, who thus assumed
-a kind of synodical authority. Such injunctions might well partake,
-in name, with "that part of the common law which is called the
-extravagants."<a name="FNanchor_99_99" id="FNanchor_99_99"></a><a href="#Footnote_99_99" class="fnanchor">[99]</a> This last charge referred to what had been done in
-the late convocation.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Debates on Religion.</i></div>
-
-<p>Other speakers followed Pym, and all adopted the same tone. Sir
-Benjamin Rudyard complained of disturbances made on account of trifles,
-"where to place a metaphor or an altar," and of families ruined for not
-dancing on Sundays; and he asked what would become of the persecutors
-when the master of the house should return and find them beating their
-fellow-servants? These inventions were but sieves for the devil's
-purposes, made to winnow good men. They were meant to worry diligent
-preachers, for such only were vexed after this fashion. So it came to
-pass that, under the name of <i>Puritan</i>, all religion was branded, and
-under a few hard words against Jesuits, all Popery was countenanced;
-whoever squared his actions by any rule, either divine or human, he
-was a <i>Puritan</i>; whoever would be governed by the King's laws, he was
-a <i>Puritan</i>; he that would not do what other men would have him to do,
-was a <i>Puritan</i>. The masterpiece of the enemy was to make the truly
-religious suspected of the whole kingdom.<a name="FNanchor_100_100" id="FNanchor_100_100"></a><a href="#Footnote_100_100" class="fnanchor">[100]</a></p>
-
-<p>Sir John Holland, member for Castle Rising, also insisted on
-ecclesiastical grievances. Bagshaw, Culpeper, and Grimston proceeded in
-a similar strain. Even Lord Digby complained of prelates, convocations,
-and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_86" id="Page_86">[86]</a></span> canons, the last being "a covenant against the King for bishops
-and the hierarchy."</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1640, November.</div>
-
-<p>Perhaps there is not on record another great debate in which such
-unanimity found expression, and such volleys of grape-shot rattled
-into a regiment of abuses. No question, however, affecting the
-fundamental principles of the Establishment was at present raised;
-but the corruptions which had covered and choked it were unsparingly
-threatened. Towards them nothing but indignation was shown.</p>
-
-<p>When the debate had closed with the appointment of a Committee to
-prepare a remonstrance, the House, well knowing that the right way to
-obtain a blessed issue was to implore the divine assistance, resolved
-to desire the Lords to join with them in requesting his Majesty to
-allow so holy a preparation, and, further, to appoint a general fast.</p>
-
-<p>What the next day witnessed is most memorable for its political
-consequences, yet it also involved ecclesiastical results of the
-greatest importance. The Earl of Strafford, though suffering from the
-gout to which he was a martyr, had hastened to London, and reached it
-on the 10th of November; fully comprehending the state of affairs,
-and meditating measures for stopping the tide of revolution. People
-believed he had a project for accusing the patriots of a share in the
-Scotch invasion; and that, failing other schemes, there remained the
-old expedient of dissolving Parliament.</p>
-
-<p>The Earl, the morning after his arrival in London, went down to the
-House and took his seat; being received with all the "expressions of
-honour and observance, answerable to the dignity of his place, and the
-esteem and credit which he had with the King as the chief Minister
-of State. But this day's sun was not fully set before his<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_87" id="Page_87">[87]</a></span> power and
-greatness received such a diminution as gave evident symptoms of his
-approaching ruin."<a name="FNanchor_101_101" id="FNanchor_101_101"></a><a href="#Footnote_101_101" class="fnanchor">[101]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Debates on Religion.</i></div>
-
-<p>His fellow-counsellor and trusty adherent, Archbishop Laud, moved that
-from a Committee of the two Houses, to be held that afternoon, he and
-four other bishops might be spared their attendance, on account of a
-meeting of Convocation. The Prime Minister and the Archbishop left
-the House, little dreaming of what would happen before sunset on that
-November day.</p>
-
-<p>Pym had heard of Strafford's arrival. Knowing the man, regarding his
-return as ominous, and with a keen eye piercing into the heart of his
-policy, he felt that he must grapple with him at once. Not merely for
-himself had it come to be a question of life or death, but all reform
-in Church and State depended on an immediate defeat of Strafford. If
-suffered to do what he pleased but for another day, he might render all
-the work of the last few months abortive, and bring back absolutism in
-triumph. Men said of him, "he had much more of the oak than the willow
-about his heart." To bend the oak was impossible, and therefore Pym
-resolved to cut it down. Another such instance of timely sternness
-there is not in English history.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1640, November.</div>
-
-<p>Twelve years before, at Greenwich,&mdash;when Strafford, faithless to his
-party, thought of accepting a coronet,&mdash;Pym had said to him, "You
-are going to leave us, but I will never leave you while your head is
-upon your shoulders." Did those words cross the mind of the patriotic
-statesman as he passed through the lobby to take his accustomed seat on
-the morning of the most memorable day of his life? Suddenly he rose,
-looked round on the well-filled benches, and said he had matter<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_88" id="Page_88">[88]</a></span> great
-importance to bring forward. "Let the strangers' room be cleared," he
-went on to ask, "and the outer doors be locked, and the keys laid on
-the clerk's table." This done, breathless silence followed. Before the
-Parliament of England, now sitting in secret conclave, Pym spoke out
-boldly what was in his heart. The kingdom had fallen into a miserable
-condition. "Waters of bitterness" were flowing through the land; he
-must enquire, he said, "from what fountain? what persons they are who
-have so far insinuated themselves into the royal affections, as to be
-able to pervert His Majesty's excellent judgment, to abuse his name,
-and apply his authority to support their own corrupt designs?"</p>
-
-<p>Pym's speech occupied some hours in delivery. In the midst of it came
-interruption. With the usual formalities, a message arrived from the
-House of Lords, touching the conference to which the Archbishop had
-referred that morning. Though the message itself could not at first
-have been contrived with a view of getting at the secret, about which
-outside curiosity had risen to fever heat; yet it might have been sent
-at that moment, with the hope of worming out what His Majesty's Commons
-were doing within locked doors. But the messengers, as they walked
-slowly up to the clerk's table, making their measured obeisances, were
-none the wiser for their visit. Pym, suspecting some other object
-than the professed one, had them quickly dispatched with the answer,
-"that as the House was engaged on very weighty business it could not
-meet the Lords just then." At the same time, he managed to "give such
-advertisement to some of the Lords," that their House might be kept
-from rising till his project should be fully accomplished.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Debates on Religion.</i></div>
-
-<p>The messengers dismissed, the doors re-locked, the buzz of conversation
-hushed, Pym resumed, and at length<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_89" id="Page_89">[89]</a></span> ended his speech by demanding that
-Strafford should be impeached. The demand found "consent from the whole
-House;" nor in all the debate did one person offer to stop the torrent
-of condemnation by any favourable testimony respecting the Earl. Lord
-Falkland only counselled that time should be taken to digest the
-accusation. Pym immediately replied such delay would blast all hopes,
-for Strafford, hearing of their intentions, "would undoubtedly procure
-the Parliament to be dissolved."</p>
-
-<p>The House at once appointed a committee of seven to draw up the
-charges. They retired, and soon returned with their report. The House
-at once solemnly resolved to impeach the Earl at the bar of the Lords.</p>
-
-<p>The clock had struck four. The doors were thrown open. "The leader of
-the Commons issued forth, and followed by upwards of three hundred of
-the members, crossed over in the full sight of the assembled crowd,
-to the Upper House." Standing at the bar, with the retinue of members
-pressing round, Pym, in the name of the Commons, accused Strafford of
-high treason.<a name="FNanchor_102_102" id="FNanchor_102_102"></a><a href="#Footnote_102_102" class="fnanchor">[102]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1640, November.</div>
-
-<p>Strafford's seat was empty. The Commons withdrew. After consideration
-of the message by the peers, the Lord-keeper acknowledged its receipt,
-gave credit for due care taken in the business, and promised a further
-answer. The Earl was sitting at Whitehall with the King. Swift as
-the wind, tidings of the impeachment began to travel, and reached
-the accused amongst the first. He had been out-man&#339;uvred. While
-preparing for an attack on the enemy's camp he found his own citadel
-assailed, stormed, taken. Still dauntless, he coolly remarked, "I will
-go and look mine accusers in the face." Then going to the court gate
-he took coach, and drove to the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_90" id="Page_90">[90]</a></span> House. Advancing to the threshold, he
-"rudely" demanded admission. James Maxwell, keeper of the Black Rod,
-opened the door. His lordship, with a "proud glouming countenance,"
-made towards his seat as well as his lameness would allow. He sat down,
-heard<a name="FNanchor_103_103" id="FNanchor_103_103"></a><a href="#Footnote_103_103" class="fnanchor">[103]</a> what was going on, and, in spite of orders to withdraw,
-"kept his confidence and his place till it raised a vehement redoubling
-of the former scorn, and occasioned the Lord-keeper to tell him that
-he must withdraw, and to charge the gentleman usher that he would look
-well to him."<a name="FNanchor_104_104" id="FNanchor_104_104"></a><a href="#Footnote_104_104" class="fnanchor">[104]</a></p>
-
-<p>The proud minister found himself detained in the lobby of the House in
-which once his word had been law.</p>
-
-<p>The Lords debated further on the message of the Commons, and came to
-the conclusion that the Earl, for this accusation of high treason,
-should be committed to the safe custody of the gentleman usher, and be
-sequestered from coming to Parliament until he cleared himself. Called
-in, he was commanded to kneel at the bar. Completely vanquished, he
-did so on the very spot where his great antagonist an hour before had
-stood a conqueror. He now had formal information of the charge brought
-up by Pym, and was taken into custody. Master Black Rod, proud of his
-business, required his prisoner to deliver up his sword, and told a
-waiting-man to carry it. As the prisoner retired, all gazed, but no man
-"capped to him before whom, that morning, the greatest of England would
-have stood discovered."<a name="FNanchor_105_105" id="FNanchor_105_105"></a><a href="#Footnote_105_105" class="fnanchor">[105]</a> Discourteous speeches<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_91" id="Page_91">[91]</a></span> followed&mdash;for
-an English mob has little pity for fallen greatness&mdash;and, to add to
-his humiliation, when at last, amidst the bustle, the Earl found his
-carriage, Master Maxwell insolently remarked, "Your lordship is my
-prisoner, and must go in my coach."</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Debates on Religion.</i></div>
-
-<p>That day sealed Strafford's fate; the only impediment in the patriot's
-path lay crushed. Now Pym could do his will, and carry out some great
-reform in Church and State. It was time.</p>
-
-<p>"The strong man armed kept his palace, and his goods were in peace. But
-now a stronger than he came upon him and overcame him, and took from
-him all his armour, wherein he trusted, and divided his spoils."</p>
-
-<p>To some readers, there may appear little or no connection between Pym's
-death-wrestle with Wentworth, and the overturning of the Episcopal
-Church, the setting up of Presbyterianism, and what followed; yet
-really without that death-wrestle the things which happened afterwards
-appear impossibilities.</p>
-
-<p>When Strafford had been in the Tower a month, Laud was impeached, and
-followed his friend into the custody of James Maxwell.<a name="FNanchor_106_106" id="FNanchor_106_106"></a><a href="#Footnote_106_106" class="fnanchor">[106]</a></p>
-
-<p>On the 17th November, a public fast took place, when the House of
-Commons assembled in the Church of St. Margaret, Westminster, and
-continued in divine worship for <i>seven hours</i>.<a name="FNanchor_107_107" id="FNanchor_107_107"></a><a href="#Footnote_107_107" class="fnanchor">[107]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1640, November.</div>
-
-<p>A few days after the fast<a name="FNanchor_108_108" id="FNanchor_108_108"></a><a href="#Footnote_108_108" class="fnanchor">[108]</a> the Commons, according to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_92" id="Page_92">[92]</a></span> precedent,
-received the Holy Communion, and also according to precedent resolved
-that none should sit in the House who did not partake of the
-Sacrament.<a name="FNanchor_109_109" id="FNanchor_109_109"></a><a href="#Footnote_109_109" class="fnanchor">[109]</a> A measure of policy was connected with their piety on
-this occasion, which from its having been misunderstood has led to a
-misapprehension of the whole proceeding. The fact of its having been
-resolved that all should participate in the Lord's Supper has been
-cited as a proof that the members were all attached to the Church of
-England;<a name="FNanchor_110_110" id="FNanchor_110_110"></a><a href="#Footnote_110_110" class="fnanchor">[110]</a> but Rapin<a name="FNanchor_111_111" id="FNanchor_111_111"></a><a href="#Footnote_111_111" class="fnanchor">[111]</a> adopts the subtle theory that, bent upon
-assailing the Bishops, the Commons resolved on this communion, to save
-themselves from being suspected of Presbyterianism,&mdash;as in the reign of
-Henry V., the Commons prefaced their assault on the clergy by passing
-a Bill for burning heretics, to save themselves from being suspected
-of heresy. Yet amidst these speculations upon the subject, the real
-purpose of the House&mdash;beyond its following a precedent and gratifying
-religious feelings&mdash;is frankly expressed in the Journal to have been
-the discovery of papists amongst the members. The committee who
-reported on the subject conceived that some confession of faith and a
-renunciation of the Pope should be required from such as were suspected
-of popery. At the same time two members of the House were directed to
-convey to the Dean of Westminster a desire that "the elements might be
-consecrated upon a communion-table, standing in the church, according
-to the rubric, and to have the table removed from the altar."<a name="FNanchor_112_112" id="FNanchor_112_112"></a><a href="#Footnote_112_112" class="fnanchor">[112]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Debates on Religion.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1640, November.</div>
-
-<p>The Long Parliament, in its early sittings, occupied<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_93" id="Page_93">[93]</a></span> much time in
-hearing Puritan petitions. Such petitions came from sufferers under
-ecclesiastical oppression; from people dissatisfied with Anglican
-clergymen; from individuals scandalized at ceremonial innovations; and
-from different counties praying for redress of grievances in Church
-and State. The latter petitions were brought up to town by troops of
-horsemen. Such documents, accompanied by the denunciations of members
-who presented them, occasioned searching inquiries into Anglican
-superstition and intolerance. Persons alleged that communion-tables
-were set altar-wise; that anthems and organs were superseding plain
-and proper psalm-singing; that wax candles were burnt in churches in
-honour of our Lady; that copes of white satin were worn by ministers;
-that boys with lighted torches went in procession and bowed to the
-altar; and that Puritans were roughly handled for refusing to make
-a like obeisance. Further, such persons declared "flat Popery" had
-been preached, as well as performed; transubstantiation, confession,
-and absolution, being doctrines maintained in Anglican pulpits.<a name="FNanchor_113_113" id="FNanchor_113_113"></a><a href="#Footnote_113_113" class="fnanchor">[113]</a>
-Cases were brought up of clergymen unrighteously suspended for
-refusing to read the "Book of Sports," and for similar offences. The
-private gossip of the day touching church matters reached the House
-through members anxious to stimulate their partizans. Though such
-reports appear undignified enough in senatorial speeches, they are
-welcome to the historian, because indicative of the staple talk round
-firesides in those boisterous days. Alderman Pennington told how an
-archdeacon's son had said, "God take the Parliament for a company of
-Puritanical factious fellows,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_94" id="Page_94">[94]</a></span> who would wiredraw the King for money,
-when a Spanish don would lend him two millions. The King would never
-have quiet until he had taken off twenty or more of their heads." In
-petitions, according to the Diurnals, very odd references occurred
-to the sayings and doings of High Churchmen. One declared "the
-Commissaries were the suburbs of heaven, and the High Commission the
-Archangels, and that to preach twice a day, or to say any prayers but
-the Common Prayers, was a damnable sin." Moreover, the same newspaper
-states, that a minister in Shoreditch stood charged with preaching on
-the man who went down to Jericho&mdash;saying, the King was the man, the
-Scots the thieves, the Protestant the priest, the formal Protestant the
-Levite, and the Papist the Good Samaritan.<a name="FNanchor_114_114" id="FNanchor_114_114"></a><a href="#Footnote_114_114" class="fnanchor">[114]</a> Another, being asked
-how he could maintain by Scripture the turning of the communion-table
-altar-wise, replied, "the times were turned, and it was fit the tables
-should be turned also."</p>
-
-<p>A petition came from a churchwarden cited and punished for not
-prosecuting parishioners who refused to stand while hearing the
-creed, to bow at the name of Jesus, to kneel at public prayer, and
-to sit uncovered during sermon time. These breaches of prescribed
-ecclesiastical decorum were taken as proofs of Puritan irreverence; but
-when Puritans were threatened in consequence with legal penalties, such
-acts appeared to them to be full of heroic virtue.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Debates on Religion.</i></div>
-
-<p>The growth of popery formed a fruitful topic of quaint declamation.
-The approach of any great personage, it was said, may be known
-by the sumpter mules sent on<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_95" id="Page_95">[95]</a></span> before. And when the Pope travels,
-altars, copes, pictures, and images precede his progress. High
-Church ceremonies announced the coming Mass. Clerical tricks of this
-description prepared for the revival of papal domination. Resistance
-had provoked persecution. Fire had come out of the bramble, and
-devoured the cedars of Lebanon.<a name="FNanchor_115_115" id="FNanchor_115_115"></a><a href="#Footnote_115_115" class="fnanchor">[115]</a></p>
-
-<p>Stories, too, were told of a parsonage worth three hundred a year,
-where not even a poor curate remained to read prayers, catechise
-children, or bury the dead; and of a vicarage, where the nave of
-the church had been pulled down, the lead sold, the bells profaned,
-the chancel made into a dog-kennel, and the steeple turned into a
-pigeon-house.<a name="FNanchor_116_116" id="FNanchor_116_116"></a><a href="#Footnote_116_116" class="fnanchor">[116]</a></p>
-
-<p>The debate of the 14th and 15th of December, on the canons, was
-conducted in the same spirit as other proceedings. Convocation had met
-in April, at the opening of the Short Parliament; one of the first
-measures adopted being an imposition on the clergy of six subsidies
-of four shillings in the pound for six years. Canons had then been
-prepared, relative to the regal power for suppressing popery, also
-against Socinianism and sectaries, and further, for preventing
-Puritan innovations and for promoting uniformity. While discussions
-on these subjects were proceeding, Parliament had been dissolved, but
-Convocation had unconstitutionally<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_96" id="Page_96">[96]</a></span> determined as a royal synod, to
-persevere sitting until it should be dissolved by the King's writ.<a name="FNanchor_117_117" id="FNanchor_117_117"></a><a href="#Footnote_117_117" class="fnanchor">[117]</a>
-Some of the clerical body had protested against this procedure, but
-the King, with the opinion of certain judges, had confirmed it, and
-Convocation, then acting as a synod under royal sanction, had completed
-the new canons.<a name="FNanchor_118_118" id="FNanchor_118_118"></a><a href="#Footnote_118_118" class="fnanchor">[118]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1640, November.</div>
-
-<p>Parliament poured out vials of wrath on all these canons. They included
-protests against popery&mdash;the third being for the suppression of its
-growth, and the seventh charging the Church of Rome with "idolatry
-committed in the mass for which all popish altars were demolished," but
-the Puritans overlooked or regarded all this as only a pretence for
-covering assaults upon themselves. To have done so seems to us unfair,
-though considering the character of the men framing the canons, with
-whom members of the House of Commons were well acquainted, everybody
-must believe the authors of the new laws hated Puritanism more than
-Popery. The truth is, Anglicanism, though thoroughly opposed to papal
-supremacy, and to some of the dogmas and superstitions of Rome,
-fostered sympathy with much of the faith and worship characteristic
-of that church, while it had not a breath of kindness for Puritan
-sentiments. Such a state of things drove the two parties wide as the
-poles asunder, and we cannot wonder that on the question of the canons
-the House of Commons, revolting at Anglo-Catholicism, read all which
-Convocation had done in the light of those well-known principles by
-which Convocation was actuated. Whatever the bishops and clergy there,
-might honestly say about popish ceremonies and the idolatry of the
-mass, they were chiefly bent on crushing the Puritans, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_97" id="Page_97">[97]</a></span> accordingly
-the Puritans grappled with the Anglicans as in a struggle for life.
-Matter enough existed in these new laws to provoke destructive
-criticism. The first propounded the divine right of kings, and claimed
-for them powers inconsistent with the English constitution. The canon
-against sectaries was extremely intolerant, and was so ingeniously
-contrived as to turn statutes for suppressing popery against all sorts
-of nonconforming Protestants.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Debates on Religion.</i></div>
-
-<p>No one, however, of this ill-fated assembly's enactments had to run
-the gauntlet, like the canon relative to the et cetera oath.<a name="FNanchor_119_119" id="FNanchor_119_119"></a><a href="#Footnote_119_119" class="fnanchor">[119]</a> It
-speedily sank under torrents of argument and invective, ridicule, and
-satire. Also, the prolonging of convocation as a synod, after the
-dissolution of Parliament, incurred condemnation as wholly illegal; the
-canons were pronounced invalid; and the entire proceedings subversive
-of the laws of the realm.<a name="FNanchor_120_120" id="FNanchor_120_120"></a><a href="#Footnote_120_120" class="fnanchor">[120]</a></p>
-
-<p>Heylyn declares that the <i>et cetera</i> was introduced in the draft to
-avoid tautology, and that the enumeration was to be perfected before
-engrossment, but the king hastened its being printed, and so occasioned
-the mischief.&mdash;<i>Heylyn's Life of Laud</i>, 444.</p>
-
-<p>Archbishop Laud had to bear, in no small measure, the odium of the
-new ecclesiastical measures. Doubtless, he had a leading hand in
-their origin, but it is also a fact, that before the opening of the
-Long Parliament, he wrote by His Majesty's command to the bishops of
-his province, to suspend the operation of the article respecting the
-et cetera oath.<a name="FNanchor_121_121" id="FNanchor_121_121"></a><a href="#Footnote_121_121" class="fnanchor">[121]</a> And when the House had been sitting a little
-more than three weeks, after Pym, Culpeper, Grimston, and Digby, had
-attacked this unpopular clerical<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_98" id="Page_98">[98]</a></span> legislation, and when a still more
-distinct and violent assault was seen to be approaching, the Archbishop
-wrote a letter to Selden, member of a committee for enquiry upon the
-subject, requesting that the "unfortunate canons" might be suffered to
-die quietly, without blemishing the Church, which had too many enemies
-both at home and abroad.<a name="FNanchor_122_122" id="FNanchor_122_122"></a><a href="#Footnote_122_122" class="fnanchor">[122]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1640, November.</div>
-
-<p>The vote of the House of Commons administered a blow to Convocation
-from which it could not recover. That assembly, indeed, again appeared
-as the twin sister of the new Parliament. Representatives of the
-province of Canterbury met on the 3rd November, the day on which
-the Lords and Commons assembled. The usual formalities having been
-observed, a sermon preached, and a prolocutor chosen&mdash;Archbishop Laud
-addressed the clergy in Henry the Seventh's chapel, in a manner which
-shewed that he heard the sound of the brewing storm, and had sense
-enough to discern the impending danger. So had others of the assembly.
-Accordingly, some one proposed in the Lower House, that "they should
-endeavour according to the Levitical law to cover the pit which
-they had opened, and to prevent the designs of their adversaries by
-condemning the obnoxious canons." But the majority, not willing to
-be condemned till formally accused, heeded not this warning; yet the
-members avoided giving further provocation, and, feeble themselves,
-they only watched the proceedings of their parliamentary neighbours.
-When the resolution of the Commons was passed it paralyzed them. The
-Upper House did not meet again after Christmas, nor the Lower after the
-following February.<a name="FNanchor_123_123" id="FNanchor_123_123"></a><a href="#Footnote_123_123" class="fnanchor">[123]</a> The assembly of the Convocation of York had
-been prevented by the death of the Archbishop, and the new writ issued
-came to nothing.</p>
-
-<p>Here we shall pause for a moment to watch other forces coming into
-play.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_99" id="Page_99">[99]</a></span></p></div>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="illo099" >
- <img
- class="p0"
- src="images/illo099.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER III.</h2>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">Two ideas of Church reform evolved themselves: one already
-indicated,&mdash;that of separating from simple primitive Episcopacy all
-prelatical assumptions,&mdash;and another, which amounted to a decided
-revolution in the Church, including the extinction of Episcopacy
-altogether. While the former rose out of reverence for the Reformation
-under Elizabeth, combined with disgust at the history of prelatical
-rule,&mdash;the latter had a deeper and wider cause.</p>
-
-<p>When Episcopacy strove to maintain itself in England, after the shock
-given to ecclesiastical power in the days of Henry VIII. and Edward
-VI., Presbyterianism made good its position at Geneva under Calvin, and
-at Edinburgh under Knox. The connexion between the two cities and the
-two Reformers, and between them both and our own country, everybody
-knows. The exiles who had found a home, not only on the shores of the
-beautiful Lake Leman, but also on the scarcely less beautiful banks of
-the Lake of Zurich, brought with them, when they returned home after
-the Marian persecution, strong Presbyterian predilections. Calvin,
-also, exercised a direct influence on some of the English Reformers;
-and the system of John Knox, in such close neighbourhood as the north
-of the Tweed, could not fail to affect those<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_100" id="Page_100">[100]</a></span> who were studying the
-question, "what ought to be the Church of the future?"</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1567.</div>
-
-<p>Indications of Presbyterian sentiments in the England of Elizabeth are
-very numerous.<a name="FNanchor_124_124" id="FNanchor_124_124"></a><a href="#Footnote_124_124" class="fnanchor">[124]</a> They wrought within the Episcopal establishment
-without producing a severance. Cartwright was a Presbyterian. He
-contended for the abolition of archbishops, and archdeacons, and
-would retain only bishops or presbyters to preach the word and pray,
-and deacons to take care of the poor. Every Church, by which he
-meant a "certain flock," was to be governed by its own ministers and
-presbyters, and these were not to be created by civil authority, but
-chosen by popular election. The directory of government, found in the
-study of that eminent Puritan after his death, said to be composed by
-Travers, is in perfect harmony with this Presbyterian scheme. Certain
-clerical meetings, under the auspices of Cartwright and Travers, took
-a decided synodical shape.<a name="FNanchor_125_125" id="FNanchor_125_125"></a><a href="#Footnote_125_125" class="fnanchor">[125]</a> This element continued in the Church
-under the Stuarts, notwithstanding the efforts of bishops to extinguish
-it.<a name="FNanchor_126_126" id="FNanchor_126_126"></a><a href="#Footnote_126_126" class="fnanchor">[126]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Presbyterianism.</i></div>
-
-<p>Certain Puritans of a Presbyterian turn, formally separated themselves
-from the Establishment so early as 1567, and met together for
-Nonconformist worship in Plumber's Hall.<a name="FNanchor_127_127" id="FNanchor_127_127"></a><a href="#Footnote_127_127" class="fnanchor">[127]</a> An organized Presbytery
-appears at Wandsworth in 1572,&mdash;in the Channel Islands, where the
-Government of England could not reach it, the system was fully<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_101" id="Page_101">[101]</a></span>
-established in 1577; and Presbyterian classes may be traced in Cheshire
-and Lancashire, Warwick and Northampton, during the last few years
-of the Tudor dynasty. Organized Presbyterianism is seen but faintly
-in the early part of the seventeenth century, but Presbyterianism,
-as a sentiment within the Established Church, is distinctly visible.
-Nonconformity of another kind was also on the increase at this period.
-Churches of the Independent and Baptist order may be discovered in
-Tudor times, but they became more apparent and numerous in the days of
-the Stuarts. Their rise and progress will be afterwards described.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1640.</div>
-
-<p>How Puritanism glided into a state of separation, and the nonconformist
-in the Church became a dissenter outside its pale, is curiously
-illustrated in the Records of the Church assembling in Broadmead,
-Bristol. In those records is a story of a certain zealous lady of
-that city named Kelly.<a name="FNanchor_128_128" id="FNanchor_128_128"></a><a href="#Footnote_128_128" class="fnanchor">[128]</a> "She kept a grocer's shop in High Street,
-between the Builders' Inn and the High Cross," and that she might bear
-a testimony against superstitious observances, "she would keep open her
-shop on Christmas Day, and sit sewing in the face of the sun, and in
-the sight of all men." Afterwards, when she heard a clergyman she did
-not like at the parish church, "away she went forth before them all,
-and said she would hear no<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_102" id="Page_102">[102]</a></span> more, and never did." Puritan emigrants to
-New England embarked at Bristol, and would abide with Mrs. Hazzard "if
-they waited for a wind." Women actually sought to be confined in the
-parish of a Puritan clergyman, to avoid the ceremonies of "churching
-and crossing." "The consciences of the good people began to be very
-weary." Then "it pleased the Lord to stir up some few of the professors
-of this city to lead the way out of Babylon." "Five persons began to
-go further, and scrupled to hear common prayer, even four men and one
-woman." So that in the year 1640, those five persons met together at
-Mrs. Hazzard's house, "at the upper end of Broad Street, in Bristol,
-and came to a holy resolution to separate from the worship of the world
-and times they lived in, and that they would go no more to it."<a name="FNanchor_129_129" id="FNanchor_129_129"></a><a href="#Footnote_129_129" class="fnanchor">[129]</a>
-In this case, we see how dissatisfaction with the Established Church
-gradually led to positive separation, and how extremely feeble, in some
-instances, was the commencement of organized dissent. But the spirit
-working in the way just indicated, slowly, and without much notice,
-came suddenly and boldly on the surface, soon after the Long Parliament
-had opened.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Presbyterianism.</i></div>
-
-<p>Though the incumbents of the metropolis were almost all High Churchmen,
-there were many Puritan lecturers in the city with strong Presbyterian
-sympathies, supported by wealthy citizens, and in high repute with the
-multitude. Amongst them, Dr. Cornelius Burgess is a very noticeable
-man&mdash;already mentioned as the fast-day<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_103" id="Page_103">[103]</a></span> preacher&mdash;who, in connection
-with a lectureship at St. Paul's, held other Church preferment. To
-him and his brother lecturers may be ascribed the inspiration of much
-intense public feeling against prelatical assumptions, and against
-Episcopacy itself,<a name="FNanchor_130_130" id="FNanchor_130_130"></a><a href="#Footnote_130_130" class="fnanchor">[130]</a> out of which arose an extraordinary memorial,
-which has attained no small notoriety under the name of the <i>Root and
-Branch</i> petition.</p>
-
-<p>This petition complained that the offices and jurisdictions of
-archbishops were the same as in the papal community, "little change
-thereof being made, except only the head from whence it was derived;"
-that there was great conformity of the English Church to the Church
-of Rome in vestures, postures, ceremonies, and administrations; that
-the liturgy, for the most part, is framed out of the Romish Breviary,
-Ritual, and the Mass Book; and that the forms of ordination and
-consecration were drawn from the Romish pontifical.<a name="FNanchor_131_131" id="FNanchor_131_131"></a><a href="#Footnote_131_131" class="fnanchor">[131]</a> Whoever
-prepared this document, it was soon submitted to Mr. Bagshawe, of the
-Inner Temple, member for Southwark, who had obtained great popularity
-by his lectures against the temporalities of bishops&mdash;lectures which
-brought on him the displeasure of Laud. But Bagshawe, though zealous
-for the reform of Episcopacy, did not desire to see it abolished. He
-therefore declined to take charge of the petition, when Mr. John White,
-his fellow-burgess for Southwark&mdash;afterwards the famous chairman of
-the committee for scandalous ministers&mdash;arranged its delivery to the
-Commons, not however by his own hands, but through Alderman Pennington,
-a citizen well known for his extreme dislike to the Episcopal
-Bench.<a name="FNanchor_132_132" id="FNanchor_132_132"></a><a href="#Footnote_132_132" class="fnanchor">[132]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_104" id="Page_104">[104]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1633.</div>
-
-<p>A still more effective agency on the Presbyterian side appeared in
-London at the same time.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Presbyterianism.</i></div>
-
-<p>Scotland had silently fostered the Presbyterianism of England for many
-years. Head quarters for that polity had been there established. In
-the neighbourhood of the Highlands, synods found even a kindlier soil
-and a more congenial climate than under the shadow of the Alps. True
-to its old French sympathies, Scotland did not follow the example of
-reformation set in England or in Germany; it eschewed Saxon examples,
-and adopted that form of Protestantism which had been embraced by such
-of the Gallic nation as had seceded from Rome, and which bore the
-impress of the piety and genius of one of the most illustrious sons of
-France. Edinburgh, during the ministry of Knox, saw as complete a work
-accomplished as Geneva had witnessed during the ministry of Calvin.
-Episcopacy was thoroughly rooted out, and the attempts under Charles
-I. to replant it only exasperated the husbandmen of the vineyard, and
-made them love the more what they counted "trees of the Lord's right
-hand planting." Presbyterianism became doubly dear to Scotchmen when
-the grandson of Mary sought to destroy that, which, in the days of his
-grandmother, their forefathers had cultivated with toil and tears. To
-make the matter worse, when Charles went to Scotland in 1633, and took
-with him Laud, then Bishop of London, everything seemed to be done
-which was likely to arouse Scotch prejudices against episcopal order
-and the English liturgy. Instead of reducing the Anglican ceremonies
-to as simple a form as possible, the most elaborate pomp of worship
-appeared in Holyrood Chapel. The <i>Dreadnought</i>, a good ship, well
-victualled, "appointed to guard the narrow seas," was engaged to
-transport from Tilbury Hope to the Firth of Forth, twenty-six musical
-gentlemen of the Royal<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_105" id="Page_105">[105]</a></span> Chapel at Whitehall, with their goods and
-paraphernalia to perform the cathedral service, so as to impress the
-Presbyterians of Edinburgh.<a name="FNanchor_133_133" id="FNanchor_133_133"></a><a href="#Footnote_133_133" class="fnanchor">[133]</a> A more thorough mistake could not
-have been made in a city where even the sight of a surplice and the
-reading of the common prayer, a few years afterwards, occasioned the
-world-known episode of "Jenny Geddes and her wonderful Folding Stool."</p>
-
-<p>The attempt to impose Episcopacy and its associations on Presbyterian
-Scotland provoked a Covenant war, and roused a determination in the
-hearts of her sons to carry Presbyterianism over the border, and to
-make the two countries one pure Kirk. How the strong Presbyterianism
-on the other side the Tweed re-inforced what was comparatively weak at
-first on this side the border,&mdash;how the Scotch made the system amongst
-Englishmen what it became,&mdash;how, like a loadstone, it attracted and
-brought together the scattered particles of Presbyterian sentiments
-throughout England,&mdash;how the Church of the North greatly augmented the
-mass of Puritanism in the South, and welded it for a while into form
-somewhat like its own, will appear as this narrative proceeds.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile some passing notice must be taken of the enthusiasm of the
-Scotch army in support of Presbyterianism, and it cannot better be done
-than in the words of a worthy minister who visited the camp, and whose
-<i>naïve</i> and graphic notes on other subjects, we shall have frequent
-occasion to use.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1639.</div>
-
-<p>"It would have done you good," the writer says, "to have cast your
-eyes athwart our brave and rich hill as oft as I did, with great
-contentment and joy; for I (quoth the wren) was there among the rest,
-being chosen preacher by the gentlemen of our Shyre, who came late with
-my<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_106" id="Page_106">[106]</a></span> Lord of Eglintoun. I furnished to half-a-dozen of good fellows
-muskets and picks, and to my boy a broadsword. I carried myself, as the
-fashion was, a sword, and a couple of Dutch pistols at my saddle; but
-I promise, for the offence of no man, except a robber in the way; for
-it was our part alone to pray and preach for the encouragement of our
-countrymen, which I did to my power most cheerfully." The troops were
-commanded by noblemen; the captains, for the most part, were landed
-proprietors; and the lieutenants, experienced soldiers, who had been
-employed in the wars of Gustavus Adolphus. The colours flying at the
-entrance of each captain's tent bore the Scottish arms, with the motto,
-'For Christ's Crown and Covenant,' in golden letters. There were some
-companies of Highlanders, "souple fellows, with their playds, targes,
-and dorlachs." But the soldiers were mostly stout young ploughmen, who
-increased in courage and experience daily; "the sight of the nobles and
-their beloved pastors daily raised their hearts; the good sermons and
-prayers, morning and evening, under the roof of heaven, to which their
-drums did call them for bells; the remonstrances very frequent of the
-goodness of their cause; of their conduct hitherto, by a hand clearly
-divine; also Leslie's skill and fortune made them all so resolute for
-battle as could be wished. We were feared that emulation among our
-nobles might have done harm, when they should be met in the fields, but
-such was the wisdom and authority of that old, little, crooked soldier,
-that all, with one incredible submission, from the beginning to the
-end, gave over themselves to be guided by him, as if he had been great
-Solyman. Certainly the obedience of our nobles to that man's advices
-was as great as their forbears wont to be to their King's commands." He
-further adds: "Had you lent your ear in the morning, or especially at
-even,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_107" id="Page_107">[107]</a></span> and heard in the tents the sound of some singing psalms, some
-praying, and some reading scripture, ye would have been refreshed. For
-myself, I never found my mind in better temper than it was all that
-time frae I came from home, till my head was again homeward; for I was
-as a man who had taken my leave from the world, and was resolved to die
-in that service without return."<a name="FNanchor_134_134" id="FNanchor_134_134"></a><a href="#Footnote_134_134" class="fnanchor">[134]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Presbyterianism.</i></div>
-
-<p>The writer of this description was Robert Baillie, and he, in company
-with two other distinguished clergymen, Alexander Henderson and Robert
-Blair, visited London just as the "Root and Branch" petition was being
-prepared. They came with a commission from Scotland, under the broad
-seal of the Northern Parliament, to settle the quarrel which had led to
-the encampment of the covenant army&mdash;a quarrel in which the Puritans
-and the Long Parliament took part with the Scotch against the King and
-his Bishops. Three noblemen, three barons and three burgesses were
-commissioned for the same purpose. With the treaty of peace there was
-to be the payment of the Scotch troops by the English nation. The
-clerical commissioners hoped that there would follow the inauguration
-of goodly presbyteries throughout the fair land of the South, an object
-which was dearer to them than any political alliance, or than any
-amount of money.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1640, November.</div>
-
-<p>On Monday morning, November 16th, long before dawn, after spending
-their Sabbath in the little town of Ware, the three clergymen started
-for London. They had travelled from Edinburgh on horseback, surprised
-at the inns, seeming to them "like palaces," which they thought
-accounted for exorbitant charges for coarse meals. In the dark they
-trotted forth from Ware, all well, "horse and men, with divers
-merchants, and their servants on<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_108" id="Page_108">[108]</a></span> little nags," the road "extremely
-foul and deep;" and by sunrise that cold morning,&mdash;as the light
-woke up the slumbering city, as the smoke rose through the quaint
-chimneys from ten thousand hearths,&mdash;the three presbyters entered the
-metropolis.<a name="FNanchor_135_135" id="FNanchor_135_135"></a><a href="#Footnote_135_135" class="fnanchor">[135]</a> They lodged in the city close to London Stone,<a name="FNanchor_136_136" id="FNanchor_136_136"></a><a href="#Footnote_136_136" class="fnanchor">[136]</a>
-in a house which was wont to be inhabited by the Lord Mayor, or by one
-of the Sheriffs. St. Antholin's (or St. Anthony's) Church, connected
-with the mansion by a gallery, became their place of worship. There
-they soon had throngs as great as at their own communions, and daily
-the crowds increased to hear Mr. Henderson, so that "from the first
-appearance of day to the shutting in the light, the church was never
-empty." The lodgings by London Stone became the scene of many an
-earnest conference, and there Baillie wrote the letters and journals
-which afford us such an insight into public proceedings and religious
-life in London during that eventful winter.</p>
-
-<p>The Scotch Commissioners soon saw the famous petition, from "the town
-of London, and a world of men, for the abolition of bishops and deans
-and all their appurtenances," and were consulted about the time of its
-presentation.<a name="FNanchor_137_137" id="FNanchor_137_137"></a><a href="#Footnote_137_137" class="fnanchor">[137]</a> They seem to have recommended delay, till Parliament
-should pull down "Canterbury and some prime bishops;" and Convocation
-should be visited with<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_109" id="Page_109">[109]</a></span> a <i>præmunire</i> for its illegal canons; and
-preachers have further opportunity of preparing the people to root out
-Episcopacy. "Huge things," Baillie told his friends, were working in
-England. God's mighty hand was raising a joyful harvest from long sown
-tears, but the fruit was scarcely ripe.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Presbyterianism.</i></div>
-
-<p>The tide of excitement could not be stayed. The London petitioners had
-not more desire, but they had less patience than the prudent ministers.
-On the 11th of December, as Baillie tells us, the honest citizens,
-in their best apparel and in a very modest way, went to the House of
-Commons, and sent in two aldermen with the document, bearing 15,000
-signatures. It was well received. They who brought it were desired to
-go in peace, and Alderman Pennington laid the huge scroll upon the
-table.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, January.</div>
-
-<p>Another petition, prepared at the same time,<a name="FNanchor_138_138" id="FNanchor_138_138"></a><a href="#Footnote_138_138" class="fnanchor">[138]</a> came under Baillie's
-notice, who speaks of it as drawn up by the well-affected clergy
-for the overthrow of the bishops, and posted through the land for
-signatures, and as likely to be returned in a fortnight, with "a
-large remonstrance." "At that time," he exultingly adds, "the root of
-Episcopacy will be assaulted with the strongest blast it ever felt
-in England. Let your hearty prayers be joined with mine, and of many
-millions, that the breath of the Lord's nostrils may join with the
-endeavours of weak men to blow up that old gourd<a name="FNanchor_139_139" id="FNanchor_139_139"></a><a href="#Footnote_139_139" class="fnanchor">[139]</a> wicked oak."
-Whether the Presbyterian Commissioner had been misinformed respecting
-the Petition and Remonstrance, or whether the paper had undergone
-alterations after its first issue,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_110" id="Page_110">[110]</a></span> this is certain, that when
-presented to the House on the 23rd January, it differed materially
-from that of "the Root and Branch," inasmuch as it prayed not for the
-subversion, but only for the reform of Episcopacy. It contained the
-names of seven hundred beneficed clergymen. Other petitions had been
-brought to the House. On the 12th of January several arrived, and that
-from Kent may be taken as a sample, in which the government of the
-Church of England by Archbishops, Bishops, Deans, and Archdeacons, was
-deplored as dangerous to the Commonwealth, and it was earnestly prayed
-that this hierarchial power might be totally abrogated, if the wisdom
-of the House should find it could not be maintained by God's word, and
-to His glory.<a name="FNanchor_140_140" id="FNanchor_140_140"></a><a href="#Footnote_140_140" class="fnanchor">[140]</a></p>
-
-<p>Petitions afterwards flowed in on the other side from Wales,
-Lancashire, Staffordshire, and other counties.<a name="FNanchor_141_141" id="FNanchor_141_141"></a><a href="#Footnote_141_141" class="fnanchor">[141]</a> High Churchmen
-talked about the way in which the Puritans and Presbyterians got up
-these documents. The signatures were fictitious. People were cajoled
-into writing their names&mdash;intended for one purpose, they were perverted
-for another. Such things might not be altogether without truth. But we
-are safe in believing, if tricks were played by one party they were
-played by the other also; and as at present, so then, whatever was done
-by either faction came in for an unmerciful, and often unrighteous,
-share of criticism from exasperated opponents.<a name="FNanchor_142_142" id="FNanchor_142_142"></a><a href="#Footnote_142_142" class="fnanchor">[142]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_111" id="Page_111">[111]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Petitions.</i></div>
-
-<p>While petitioners were busy, and the House of Commons had enough to
-do to hear their grievances, and debates were earnest, and two potent
-principles were embodied in the strife, the King watched it all with
-alarm for Episcopacy rather than with any apprehensions for his
-own personal safety. For his subjects were loyal and dutiful, and,
-according to Baillie, "feared his frown." He summoned both Houses
-of Parliament to Whitehall, on the 25th January, 1641, and, after
-professing willingness to concur in the reformation of the Church,
-added the following characteristic sentences: "I will show you some
-<i>rubs</i>, and must needs take notice of some very strange (I know
-not what term to give them) petitions given in the names of divers
-counties, against the present established Government, and of the great
-threatenings against the bishops, that they will make them to be but
-cyphers, or, at least, their voices to be taken away. Now I must tell
-you, that I make a great difference between reformation and alteration
-of Government, though I am for the former, I cannot give way to the
-latter. If some of them have overstretched their power, I shall not be
-unwilling these things should be redressed and reformed&mdash;nay, further,
-if upon serious debate you shall show me that bishops<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_112" id="Page_112">[112]</a></span> have some
-temporal authority inconvenient to the State, I shall not be unwilling
-to desire them to lay it down. But this must not be understood, that
-I shall in any way consent that their voices in Parliament should be
-taken away; for in all the times of my predecessors since the Conquest,
-and before, they have enjoyed it, and I am bound to maintain them in it
-as one of the fundamental constitutions of this kingdom."<a name="FNanchor_143_143" id="FNanchor_143_143"></a><a href="#Footnote_143_143" class="fnanchor">[143]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, February.</div>
-
-<p>After petitions from the people, consultations with the Scotch,
-cautions from the Crown, and preparatory proceedings in the House, the
-grand debate came on respecting the "Root and Branch" Petition. The
-debate lasted throughout the 8th and 9th of February, 1641. In the
-course of it, the mercurial royalist, Lord Digby, observed, he had
-reason to believe that some aimed at a total extirpation of Episcopacy,
-yet, whilst opposing such extreme views, he was for clipping the wings
-of the prelates; and, though condemning the Petition, he thought no
-people had ever been more provoked than England of late years, by the
-insolence and exorbitance of the bishops. "For my part," declared he,
-"I profess I am inflamed with the sense of them, so that I find myself
-ready to cry out with the loudest of the 15,000, "down with them, down
-with them, even to the ground!" Let us not, however," he added, "destroy
-bishops, but make bishops such as they were in primitive times." The
-independent Nathaniel Fiennes opposed Episcopal rule, maintaining
-that until the Church Government of the country could "be framed of
-another twist," and more assimilated to that of the commonwealth,
-the ecclesiastical would be no good neighbour to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_113" id="Page_113">[113]</a></span> the civil: for as
-with children afflicted with the rickets, all nourishment goes to the
-upper parts, so in the rickety condition of the Church, while the
-hierarchy became monstrously enlarged, the lower clergy pined away.
-Bishoprics, deaneries, and chapels, he compared to wasters in a wood.
-The official Sir Benjamin Rudyard condemned bishops unsparingly, yet
-advocated episcopal superintendence: and afterwards the learned Mr.
-Bagshawe pedantically distinguished between Episcopacy primitive <i>in
-statu puro</i>, and Episcopacy <i>in statu corrupto</i>, pleading, at the
-same time, for a thorough reformation of abuses, and an alteration
-of Ecclesiastical government into a Presbyterian form. Sir Harbottle
-Grimstone also asked for a diminution of prelatical power.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Petitions.</i></div>
-
-<p>The speakers who carried the greatest weight in this debate were Pym
-and Falkland. We have only a faint echo of the words delivered by
-the former. They were to the effect that he thought it was not the
-intention of the House to abolish either Episcopacy or the Book of
-Common Prayer, but rather to reform both, so far as they gave offence;
-and if that improvement could be effected with the concurrence of the
-King, Parliament would accomplish a very acceptable work, such as had
-never been done since the Reformation.<a name="FNanchor_144_144" id="FNanchor_144_144"></a><a href="#Footnote_144_144" class="fnanchor">[144]</a> Falkland's speech is fully
-reported. Very severe upon the conduct of the bishops generally, he
-made exceptions, and expressed himself content to take away what he
-said begot the mischief, such as judging wills and marriages, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_114" id="Page_114">[114]</a></span>
-having votes in Parliament. He denied the divine right, but would
-allow the human expediency of Episcopal rank. His opinion was, "that
-we should not root up this ancient tree, as dead as it appears, till
-we have tried whether by this, or the like lopping of the branches,
-the sap which was unable to feed the whole may not serve to make what
-is left both grow and flourish. And, certainly, if we may at once take
-away both the inconveniences of bishops and the inconveniences of no
-bishops, this course can only be opposed by those who love mutation for
-mutation's sake."</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, Feb.</div>
-
-<p>The only person who boldly defended Episcopacy, and spoke in an
-Anglican tone, was Mr. Pleydell, member for Wootton Bassett. "Sir,"
-said he, addressing Mr. Speaker, "there is as much beyond truth as on
-this side it, and would we steer a right course we must be sure to keep
-the channel, lest we fall from one extreme to another, from the dotage
-of superstition to the frenzy of profaneness, from bowing to idols
-to worship the calves of our own imagination." This honest gentleman
-lamented libellous pamphlets, Puritan sermons, irreverence in churches,
-and the like; called himself a dutiful son of his distressed mother,
-the Church of England; pleaded for referring matters of doctrine to
-learned divines; and declared that to venture on any alteration was to
-run a risk, the consequences of which no man could foresee.<a name="FNanchor_145_145" id="FNanchor_145_145"></a><a href="#Footnote_145_145" class="fnanchor">[145]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Petitions.</i></div>
-
-<p>A scene unnoticed by our historians, but brought to light by the
-careful examination of Sir Symonds D'Ewes' journal, occurred during the
-debate.<a name="FNanchor_146_146" id="FNanchor_146_146"></a><a href="#Footnote_146_146" class="fnanchor">[146]</a> Alderman Pennington, Member for London, vindicated the
-character of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_115" id="Page_115">[115]</a></span> anti-Episcopal petitioners, and maintained that in
-obtaining signatures there "was no course used to rake up hands, for
-if that had been done, 15,000 might have mounted to fifteen times
-15,000." Then Sir John Strangways, Member for Weymouth, offered a
-few words in favour of Episcopacy, observing that "if we made parity
-in the Church, we must at last come to a parity in the Commonwealth,
-and that the bishops were one of the three estates of the kingdom,
-and had a voice in Parliament." Upon this Cromwell rose, and declared
-that "he knew no reason of those suppositions and inferences which the
-gentleman had made that last spoke." At this point some interruption
-occurred, and divers members "called him to the bar." After which Pym
-and Holles referred to the orders of the House, that if a gentleman
-said anything objectionable, he might explain himself in his place.
-D'Ewes followed this up by saying, "to call a member to the bar is the
-highest and most supreme censure we can exercise within these walls,
-for it is rending away a part from our body, because if once a member
-amongst us is placed at yonder bar, he ceaseth to be a member." He then
-moved, that if this offence of calling to the bar should be repeated,
-the offender should be well fined. Cromwell, who thus appears to have
-already become obnoxious to the Church party, must have still more
-annoyed his interrupter, when he proceeded to observe, "He did not
-understand why the gentleman that last spake (before the interruption)
-should make an inference of parity from the Church to the Commonwealth,
-nor that there was any necessity of the great revenues of bishops. He
-was more convinced, touching the irregularity of bishops, than even
-before; because, like the Roman hierarchy, they would not endure to
-have their condition come to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_116" id="Page_116">[116]</a></span> a trial."<a name="FNanchor_147_147" id="FNanchor_147_147"></a><a href="#Footnote_147_147" class="fnanchor">[147]</a> This debate resulted in
-the petition being referred to a Committee which had been appointed to
-prepare subjects to be submitted to the House&mdash;the House reserving to
-itself the main point of Episcopacy, which was to be afterwards taken
-into consideration. The speeches had shewn a remarkable coincidence
-of opinion as to the necessity of abridging prelatical power and
-Church influence; but they had also brought out discordant views
-in relation to Episcopacy itself, though few at present advocated
-its total abolition. As yet, it did not seem wise to the Commons to
-decide one way or the other on this important point, or to entrust
-the consideration of the question to a Committee; but as we look at
-the general complexion of the debate, together with the terms of the
-resolution, the exceptive clause would appear simply to mean that
-Parliament was not yet prepared to abolish Episcopacy.<a name="FNanchor_148_148" id="FNanchor_148_148"></a><a href="#Footnote_148_148" class="fnanchor">[148]</a></p>
-
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, Feb.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Petitions.</i></div>
-
-<p>The Committee divided the grievances complained of into nineteen
-heads, of which the principal were the inequality of benefices, the
-claim of the hierarchy to be a divine institution, the assumption of
-an exclusive power to ordain, the temporal power of the bishops, the
-holding of pluralities, and the scandalous lives of the Clergy.<a name="FNanchor_149_149" id="FNanchor_149_149"></a><a href="#Footnote_149_149" class="fnanchor">[149]</a>
-The challenge of the divine right of Episcopacy, though it seems to
-have come very near to the subject excepted in the resolution, was
-pronounced to be a proper point for<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_117" id="Page_117">[117]</a></span> enquiry; and a long and minute
-discussion followed, in which texts of Scripture and passages from
-the Fathers were cited and canvassed. It was voted at length that the
-"challenge of the divine right of Episcopacy is a question fit to be
-presented;"&mdash;the Committee in this respect indicating a desire that the
-House would proceed to discuss the point reserved, and also shewing by
-the tenor of their private conference, the strong Presbyterian element
-then at work amongst them. All the nineteen particulars were examined,
-and evidence collected respecting each&mdash;especially that which bore
-upon the conduct of scandalous bishops, whose speeches and quotations
-of Scripture are given at length, some in an incredible strain of
-impious levity. The Committee sat from the 10th to the 19th February.
-No formal discussion of the abstract question about the divine right of
-Episcopacy immediately followed the report of the Committee; but the
-influence of the report probably told upon the House, and prepared for
-an attack upon the bishops, which was made in the month of May.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_118" id="Page_118">[118]</a></span></p></div>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="illo118" >
- <img
- class="p0"
- src="images/illo118.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER IV.</h2>
-
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Lords' Committee on Innovations.</i></div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">Whilst the Commons were receiving Puritan petitions, the Lords were
-presented with others of a different kind. The presence in the Upper
-House of Anglican bishops and noblemen, encouraged the Church party
-to make complaints to them of Puritan irreverence and interruption;
-and these complaints indicated very plainly, how the revolution of
-affairs had emboldened certain individuals to commit some very unseemly
-acts.<a name="FNanchor_150_150" id="FNanchor_150_150"></a><a href="#Footnote_150_150" class="fnanchor">[150]</a> At the same time, the gracious reception given by the peers
-to anti-Puritan memorials manifested a temper quite different from
-that which prevailed in the Lower House. Yet there was not altogether
-wanting on the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_119" id="Page_119">[119]</a></span> part of their lordships a disposition to make some
-small concession to Puritan demands, with the view of saving the
-Church of England from changes of a more serious nature. Hence, in the
-early spring, they appointed a committee to consider the subject of
-innovations. This committee was empowered to consult with any divines
-whom they might wish to select; and when the selection had been made, a
-theological sub-committee was formed.<a name="FNanchor_151_151" id="FNanchor_151_151"></a><a href="#Footnote_151_151" class="fnanchor">[151]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, March.</div>
-
-<p>Williams, Bishop of Lincoln, and Dean of Westminster, became convener
-of this committee of divines, and he presided over all the meetings.
-Though possessed of considerable knowledge and ability, and of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_120" id="Page_120">[120]</a></span> an
-active turn of mind, this remarkable person had not the qualities
-necessary for ecclesiastical statesmanship in troubled times such as
-those in which his lot was thrown. His whole history supports the
-opinion that selfish policy formed the guiding star of his life; and
-there is little doubt that a key to such of his proceedings as favoured
-Puritanism may be found in his remark that "the Puritans were many,
-and strong sticklers; and if his Majesty would but give private orders
-to his ministers to connive a little at their party, and shew them
-some indulgence, it might, perhaps, mollify them a little, and make
-them more pliant, though he did not promise that they would be trusty
-long to any government."<a name="FNanchor_152_152" id="FNanchor_152_152"></a><a href="#Footnote_152_152" class="fnanchor">[152]</a> Williams cannot be honoured for any high
-moral or religious principle; he was very much of a time-server, and
-fondly loved popularity; indeed his whole history is in keeping with
-the keen and cunning expression of his handsome countenance seen in
-that portrait of him, with black hat and close ruff, which hangs in the
-dining-room of the Westminster Deanery.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Lords' Committee on Innovations.</i></div>
-
-<p>We can believe what his biographer says respecting his management of
-the Committee:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>"The Bishop had undertaken a draught for regulating the government
-ecclesiastical, but had not finished it. The sudden and quiet dispatch
-of all that was done already was attributed to the Chairman's
-dexterity, who could play his prize at all weapons, dally with crooked<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_121" id="Page_121">[121]</a></span>
-humours, and pluck them straight; bring all stragglers into his own
-pound, and never drive them in; foresee a tempest of contradiction the
-best that ever I knew, and scatter it before it could rise; and won all
-his adversaries insensibly into a compliance before they were aware.
-To this day they of the Nonconformists that survive, and were present,
-will tell you that they admired two things in him, in their phrase&mdash;his
-courtesy and his cunning."<a name="FNanchor_153_153" id="FNanchor_153_153"></a><a href="#Footnote_153_153" class="fnanchor">[153]</a></p>
-
-<p>The members met for a week in the Jerusalem Chamber, and were daily
-entertained by the hospitable Dean. This circumstance Fuller could
-not record without the witticism, that it was "the last course of all
-public episcopal treatments&mdash;whose guests may now even put up their
-knives, seeing soon after the voider was called for, which took away
-all bishops' lands, and most of English hospitality."<a name="FNanchor_154_154" id="FNanchor_154_154"></a><a href="#Footnote_154_154" class="fnanchor">[154]</a></p>
-
-<p>Just as Williams was summoning the divines to meet together to enquire
-into innovations since the Reformation, and to "examine the degrees and
-perfections of the Reformation itself," Laud wrote down in his diary,
-"This Committee will meddle with doctrine as well as ceremonies, and
-will prove the national synod of England to the great dishonour of the
-Church, and what else may follow upon it, God knows."<a name="FNanchor_155_155" id="FNanchor_155_155"></a><a href="#Footnote_155_155" class="fnanchor">[155]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_122" id="Page_122">[122]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, March.</div>
-
-<p>Though Laud was wrong in the importance which he attached to this mixed
-conclave, he was right enough in concluding that it would meddle with
-doctrines as well as ceremonies. This appeared very early; for it is
-alleged in the memoranda prepared for the Committee that there were
-some ministers who preached justification by works, the efficacy of
-penance, confession, and absolution, and the sacrificial character of
-the Lord's supper; that prayers for the dead were used, and monastic
-vows defended; also, "that the whole gross substance of Arminianism was
-avowed, and original sin absolutely denied:" and together with these
-notices of Romanist tendencies on the one hand, there appear references
-to Socinianism on the other. The introduction of these charges could
-not but lead to doctrinal controversy, and rumours soon got abroad
-that changes in the theological standards of the Church were under
-consideration.<a name="FNanchor_156_156" id="FNanchor_156_156"></a><a href="#Footnote_156_156" class="fnanchor">[156]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_123" id="Page_123">[123]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Lords' Committee on Innovations.</i></div>
-
-<p>The ceremonial innovations complained of were more numerous than the
-doctrinal. They included turning the holy table altar-wise; bowing
-to the east; the use of candlesticks upon the altar, so called; the
-construction of a canopy over it, with curtains on each side; the
-display of crucifixes and images upon the parafront or altar-cloth;
-reading some parts of the morning service at the table, when the
-communion is not celebrated; the employment of credence tables; the
-introduction of an offertory distinct from giving alms to the poor;
-and "singing the 'Te Deum' in prose, after a cathedral church way,
-in divers parochial churches where the people have no skill in such
-music." The last of the practices here enumerated might seem to
-occasion censure only on the ground of unfitness and want of taste,
-such as High Churchmen would disapprove; but all the other particulars
-in the paper, of which we have given only specimens, demonstrate
-that Puritan, if not Presbyterian pens were employed in drawing it
-up. Another proof of this circumstance is found in the reference to
-"standing up at the hymns in the church, and always at 'Gloria Patri.'"
-The finding fault with that shews the extreme length to which the
-Puritans went in their objections; and it is curious to observe, that
-standing up to sing, which was in the seventeenth century complained
-of as an innovation upon the reformed discipline of the Church,
-is now an almost universal practice in all communities of English
-Christians.<a name="FNanchor_157_157" id="FNanchor_157_157"></a><a href="#Footnote_157_157" class="fnanchor">[157]</a> A memorandum follows&mdash;which might have proceeded
-from the Episcopal portion of the Committee&mdash;to the effect that two
-sermons should be preached in all cathedral and collegiate churches on
-Sundays and holy<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_124" id="Page_124">[124]</a></span>days, and that there should be at least one lecture
-a week; but, again, Puritan influence appears in the expression of a
-desire that music should be arranged with less curiosity, and that no
-"ditties" should be "framed by private men."</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, March.</div>
-
-<p>In reference to the Prayer Book, suggestions to the number of
-thirty-five occur, of which the following may be mentioned: expunging
-the names of some departed saints from the calendar; the disuse of
-apocryphal lessons; omitting the Benedicite; the making some discreet
-rubric to take away the scandal of signing the cross in baptism, or the
-abolition of that sign altogether; the enlargement of the Catechism;
-and certain changes in the Marriage<a name="FNanchor_158_158" id="FNanchor_158_158"></a><a href="#Footnote_158_158" class="fnanchor">[158]</a> and Burial Services, and also
-in that for the Visitation of the Sick,&mdash;changes of a kind such as have
-been commonly proposed by those who advocate a revision of the Prayer
-Book.<a name="FNanchor_159_159" id="FNanchor_159_159"></a><a href="#Footnote_159_159" class="fnanchor">[159]</a></p>
-
-<p>A proposal for reforming the Episcopate which was volunteered by
-Williams, and was submitted by him on his own responsibility, without
-success, to the House of Lords,<a name="FNanchor_160_160" id="FNanchor_160_160"></a><a href="#Footnote_160_160" class="fnanchor">[160]</a> does not belong to the schemes of
-the Committee.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_125" id="Page_125">[125]</a></span> It went no further than to propose that bishops should
-preach every Sunday under penalty for default; that none should be
-justices of the peace except the Dean of Westminster; and that prelates
-should have twelve assistants besides Deans and Chapters. Four of these
-assistants were to be appointed by the King, four by the Lords, and
-four by the Commons; and in the case of a see being vacant, they were
-to present three able divines to His Majesty, who was to nominate one
-of them to the Episcopal chair; no Dean or Prebendary was to absent
-himself from his cathedral above sixty days.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Lords' Committee on Innovations.</i></div>
-
-<p>Other plans were drawn up by different persons with a view to the
-reconciliation of opposite parties, and there were moderate men who
-believed that, "but for some hot spirits who would abate nothing of
-episcopal power and profit," a compromise might have been effected.
-Perhaps it might; yet supposing some likelihood of peace through mutual
-concession at an earlier period, it admits of a question whether any
-possibility of it remained, now that the pent-up animosities of many
-years had burst out like the fires of a volcano. Theologians of a
-spirit like that of Ussher and others might have discovered grounds
-of union in spite of different views on some subjects; but a large
-majority of the divines who formed the two parties which then divided
-the Church, had reached conclusions irreconcilably opposed to each
-other. At all events, the semi-Puritan scheme of accommodation came to
-nothing. By the middle of May, the Committee had broken up, and when
-the reader reflects upon the crisis which affairs had reached, he will
-not wonder that the members abandoned the project in despair.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, April.</div>
-
-<p>The Committee of the Commons appointed for considering the Ministers'
-Remonstrance of the 27th of January, had not been idle. They had made
-reports and submitted<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_126" id="Page_126">[126]</a></span> questions for discussion. The House consequently
-passed resolutions for reforming pluralities, removing bishops from
-the Peerage and Privy Council, and for excluding all clergymen
-from the commission of the peace. Orders were given to frame Bills
-accordingly.<a name="FNanchor_161_161" id="FNanchor_161_161"></a><a href="#Footnote_161_161" class="fnanchor">[161]</a></p>
-
-<p>One of these Bills, which was introduced on the 9th of March, provided
-that no minister should have more than one living; that if he absented
-himself from his cure for forty days, he should forfeit his preferment;
-and that no member of the University should hold a benefice ten miles
-distant from his College, without living in the parish.<a name="FNanchor_162_162" id="FNanchor_162_162"></a><a href="#Footnote_162_162" class="fnanchor">[162]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Debates respecting Bishops.</i></div>
-
-<p>Another Bill, founded on the resolutions excluding clergymen from
-secular offices, came before the House on the first of April, when
-it was read a second time, and committed.<a name="FNanchor_163_163" id="FNanchor_163_163"></a><a href="#Footnote_163_163" class="fnanchor">[163]</a> The supporters of it
-argued:&mdash;"That there was so great a concurrence towards the passing
-this Bill, and so great a combination throughout the nation against the
-whole government of the Church, in which the Scots were so resolutely
-engaged, that it was impossible for a firm peace to be preserved
-between the nations, if bishops were not taken away, and that the army
-would never march out of the kingdom till that were brought to pass."
-Mr. Hyde, who afterwards, as Lord Clarendon, became his own reporter,
-replied that&mdash;"It was changing the whole frame and constitution of
-the kingdom, and of the Parliament itself; that, from the time that
-Parliaments began, there had never been one Parliament when the bishops
-were not part of it; that if they were taken out of the House there
-would be but two estates left, for that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_127" id="Page_127">[127]</a></span> they, as the clergy, were the
-third estate, and being taken away, there was nobody left to represent
-the clergy, which would introduce another piece of injustice, which no
-other part of the kingdom could complain of, who were all represented
-in Parliament, and were, therefore, bound to submit to all that was
-enacted, because it was upon the matter with their own consent:
-whereas, if the bishops were taken from sitting in the House of Peers,
-there was nobody who could pretend to represent the clergy, and yet
-they must be bound by their determinations." Lord Falkland, who sat
-next to Hyde, then started up, and declared himself "to be of another
-opinion, and that, as he thought the thing itself to be absolutely
-necessary for the benefit of the Church, which was in so great danger,
-so he had never heard that the constitution of the kingdom would
-be violated by the passing that act, and that he had heard many of
-the clergy protest that they could not acknowledge that they were
-represented by the bishops. However, we might presume, that if they
-could make that appear, that they were a third estate, that the House
-of Peers (amongst whom they sat, and had yet their votes) would reject
-it."<a name="FNanchor_164_164" id="FNanchor_164_164"></a><a href="#Footnote_164_164" class="fnanchor">[164]</a></p>
-
-<p>What became of this measure we shall see before long. In March and
-April, Bills were brought before the Commons for removing the Star
-Chamber and High Commission Courts, but they were not presented to the
-Lords till the fate of Strafford had been sealed. After a fruitless
-attempt by the Peers to modify the Bill respecting the Star Chamber,
-that and the measure for extinguishing the other despotic tribunal were
-allowed to pass.<a name="FNanchor_165_165" id="FNanchor_165_165"></a><a href="#Footnote_165_165" class="fnanchor">[165]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_128" id="Page_128">[128]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, April.</div>
-
-<p>Before entering on the principal events of the month of May, it is
-proper to glance at a controversy, pending about that time, between
-bishops Hall and Ussher on the one side, and certain Presbyterians,
-together with John Milton, on the other. Hall had, at an earlier
-period, written his "Episcopacy by divine right." Now he appeared as
-the author of "An Humble Remonstrance," in defence of liturgical forms
-and diocesan Episcopacy. He was answered by five Presbyterian divines,
-the initials of whose names formed the word <i>Smectymnus</i>, under which
-ugly title their polemical production figures in literary history.<a name="FNanchor_166_166" id="FNanchor_166_166"></a><a href="#Footnote_166_166" class="fnanchor">[166]</a>
-The prelate insisted on the antiquity of liturgical forms, and on
-the apostolical origin of diocesan bishops. The Presbyters contended
-that free prayer was the practice of the early Church, and that no
-genuine liturgy can be traced up beyond the third century. They
-further maintained that the primitive bishop was a parochial pastor,
-or preaching presbyter, without superiority of order or any exclusive
-jurisdiction; that Presbyters of old ordained, and ruled, and that
-what they did at the beginning they had a right to do still. Hall
-published a rejoinder in defence of the Remonstrance. The Presbyters
-soon produced a Vindication. The Bishop now sought assistance from his
-friend Ussher, entreating him to bestow "one sheet of paper in such
-distracted times on the subject of Episcopacy." Ussher complied, and
-entitled his tract, "The original of Bishops and Metropolitans briefly
-laid down." This, as well as another tract from the same pen, on the
-position of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_129" id="Page_129">[129]</a></span> bishops of Asia Minor, issued from the Oxford press
-in the course of the year, in a collection which further included
-extracts from the writings of Hooker and Andrewes. Ussher argued, that
-from the writings of the Fathers a succession of bishops may be shown
-to have existed ever since the age of the Apostles; and that the Seven
-Angels of the Seven Churches were "seven singular bishops who were the
-constant presidents" over them.<a name="FNanchor_167_167" id="FNanchor_167_167"></a><a href="#Footnote_167_167" class="fnanchor">[167]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Debates respecting Bishops.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, April.</div>
-
-<p>Milton, with characteristic ardour and eloquence, plunged into this
-warfare, and published no less than five treatises on the subject,
-advocating ecclesiastical reform, condemning prelatical Episcopacy,
-reasoning against its government, animadverting on the "Defence," and
-apologizing for Smectymnus. The poet's genius, and his mastery of
-English prose, are conspicuous in these pamphlets; but the ferocity
-of temper with which he here uses his scalping-knife is hardly less
-than what it was in his onslaught upon Salmasius. Andrewes and
-Ussher are treated as dunces by the imperious scholar, and Lucifer
-is called the "first prelate angel," by this violent Nonconformist.
-Yet, behind his bitterest invectives,&mdash;with which mercenary feeling or
-personal grudge had nothing to do&mdash;may be seen a virtuous indignation
-against superstition, formality, and despotism; and it is in the very
-midst of this stormy assault, that he pauses to speak of that more
-congenial work&mdash;the great poem<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_130" id="Page_130">[130]</a></span> which even then floated before his
-imagination&mdash;which was "not to be obtained by the invocation of Dame
-Memory and her syren daughters, but by devout prayer to that Eternal
-Spirit who can enrich with all utterance and knowledge, and sends out
-His seraphim with the hallowed fire of His altar to touch and purify
-the lips of whom He pleases."</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_131" id="Page_131">[131]</a></span></p></div>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="illo131" >
- <img
- class="p0"
- src="images/illo131.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER V.</h2>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">The May-day of 1641 was as merry as usual, save where Puritan opinions
-interfered with its time-honoured festivities. The May-pole was
-brought into the City and reared at St. Andrew's Undershaft with the
-accustomed honours. The morris-dancers, with Robin Hood, Maid Marian,
-Friar Tuck, and the other appurtenances of the show, made sport for
-those citizens who were attached to the old order of things. And in
-spite of Stubbs' "Anatomie of Abuses," which exposed these sports as
-heathenish practices, such persons looked on them as the symbols of an
-anti-Puritan loyalty, and of an old-fashioned affection for Church and
-State. At the same period, preparations were being made at Whitehall
-for the nuptials of the Princess Mary and the Prince of Orange; and the
-next day, being Sunday, the bride was led into the Chapel by the Prince
-of Wales and the Duke of York, "convoyed with a number of ladies of her
-own age of nine and ten years, all in cloth of silver," when the King
-gave away the bride, and "good Bishop Wren made the marriage."<a name="FNanchor_168_168" id="FNanchor_168_168"></a><a href="#Footnote_168_168" class="fnanchor">[168]</a> The
-destinies of England were mysteriously connected with the consequences
-of this royal union, and little could the brilliant party before<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_132" id="Page_132">[132]</a></span> the
-altar, dream that from the wedded pair would spring a son, destined
-to cut off one branch of the Stuart dynasty for ever from the British
-throne; to complete the series of revolutionary events beginning to
-arise at the time of the marriage; and to establish for ages the civil
-and religious liberties of the English Constitution.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, May.</div>
-
-<p>The month so inaugurated proved most eventful. During April the perils
-of the nation had been on the increase. Plots were contrived by the
-King's friends to bring up the army to London and force a dissolution
-of Parliament. Pym, on the 3rd of May, declared that "combinations at
-home" corresponded with "practices abroad," and that the French were
-drawing their forces towards the English shores; that divers persons
-of eminence about the Queen were deeply engaged in these plots; that
-it was necessary for the ports to be closed, and that it was time to
-ask His Majesty to forbid any one who attended Court to leave these
-shores without special permission. Sir John Wray, member for the county
-of Lincoln, made a speech immediately after Pym had spoken, in which
-he urged, that if ever it was meant to perfect and finish the great
-work begun, the right way must be followed, which was to become holy
-pilgrims, not Popish ones. This he explained as meaning that they were
-to be loyal Covenanters with God and the King; binding themselves by
-a national oath to preserve religion in this country, without mixture
-of superstition or idolatry, and to defend the Defender of the Faith,
-his person, crown, and dignity. Doing this, and making Jerusalem their
-chiefest joy, the nation would be blessed; but if the people let go
-their Christian hold, and lost their Parliament-proof and old English
-well-tempered mettle, let them take heed lest their buckler break, and
-their Parliaments melt<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_133" id="Page_133">[133]</a></span> away, and their golden candlestick be removed
-for ever.<a name="FNanchor_169_169" id="FNanchor_169_169"></a><a href="#Footnote_169_169" class="fnanchor">[169]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Debates in the House of Commons.</i></div>
-
-<p>In consequence of these appeals, the Commons resolved upon a solemn
-Vow and Protestation, to defend, as far as lawful, "with life, power,
-and estate, the true reformed Protestant religion" of the Church of
-England, against all popery and popish innovations; to maintain the
-privilege of Parliament, and the liberties of the subject; and to
-endeavour to bring to condign punishment any person who should engage
-in conspiracy, or do anything contrary to this Protestation.<a name="FNanchor_170_170" id="FNanchor_170_170"></a><a href="#Footnote_170_170" class="fnanchor">[170]</a> It
-was forthwith taken by every member, and then the document was sent
-up to the Lords. The peers present, except the Earl of Southampton
-and Lord Roberts, followed the example of the Commons. In two days
-the formulary had passed the lips of eighty temporal lords, seventeen
-bishops, nine judges, and four hundred and thirty-eight commoners. It
-was then printed and sent to the magistrates throughout the kingdom,
-with an order that it should be solemnly adopted on the following
-Sunday by heads of families and all persons of proper age.<a name="FNanchor_171_171" id="FNanchor_171_171"></a><a href="#Footnote_171_171" class="fnanchor">[171]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_134" id="Page_134">[134]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, May.</div>
-
-<p>Of course, questions arose as to the meaning of the words, in many
-cases, no doubt, after they had been sealed by oath. Episcopalians took
-the declaration to mean defending the Protestant religion, as in the
-Church of England by law established. No such thing, said the Puritan
-majority of the Lower House; it includes not the hierarchy. It is
-<i>against</i> all popery and popish innovations, not <i>for</i> the discipline
-worship and ceremonies of the Church as they stand at present.<a name="FNanchor_172_172" id="FNanchor_172_172"></a><a href="#Footnote_172_172" class="fnanchor">[172]</a>
-The Commons, having so explained their own measure, afterwards passed
-a Bill for its universal enforcement, which however was objected to by
-the Lords. A conference between the two Houses followed, conducted by
-Denzil Holles, who defended the imposition of the oath, as a shibboleth
-to distinguish Ephraimites from Gileadites. With his reasons, "after
-some debate, the Lords seemed satisfied."<a name="FNanchor_173_173" id="FNanchor_173_173"></a><a href="#Footnote_173_173" class="fnanchor">[173]</a> The proceeding shewed
-the alarm of the representatives of the people, lest they should be
-checkmated by their opponents. It indicated a determination to abide
-by what had been done, and further to grapple with all Papistical
-tendencies; whilst the Protestation itself anticipated the more famous
-Covenant of an after year, much to the joy of Robert Baillie, who,
-writing from his house in St. Antholin's, on the 4th of May, informed
-a Scotch brother: "After much debate, at last, blessed be the name of
-the Lord, they all swore and subscribed the writ, which here you have,
-I hope in substance, our Scottish covenant."<a name="FNanchor_174_174" id="FNanchor_174_174"></a><a href="#Footnote_174_174" class="fnanchor">[174]</a> The intolerance and
-injustice of the imposition could not be seen in those days as it
-is in ours. Intended to secure liberty for such as were counted its
-only friends, it in fact partook of that very injustice,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_135" id="Page_135">[135]</a></span> which, when
-exercised on the other side, appeared intolerable.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Debates in the House of Commons.</i></div>
-
-<p>The resolute temper of the House of Commons, in resolving upon
-the enforcement of the Protestation in spite of the Lords, is to
-be ascribed very much to the new position in which the House had
-placed itself. Mistrusting the intentions of the King, fearful of
-another dissolution, which would frustrate all patriotic plans, the
-representatives of the people had passed a Bill to render Parliament
-indissoluble until it should dissolve itself. The Bill was read a third
-time on the 7th of May, and such was the ascendancy of the Commons,
-that the King&mdash;either struck for a moment, as if by the eye of a
-basilisk, or intending to violate the Act, should it be in his power;
-or influenced by "his own shame and the Queen's consternation at the
-discovery of the late plot"<a name="FNanchor_175_175" id="FNanchor_175_175"></a><a href="#Footnote_175_175" class="fnanchor">[175]</a>&mdash;gave his assent to the fatal measure
-only two days after it had passed the Lords.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, May.</div>
-
-<p>During the progress of the Protestation, the Londoners manifested the
-greatest excitement; crowds assembled in Palace Yard, and the King
-sent a message to the House of Lords to say, that, taking notice of
-the great tumult and concourse of people, he had called a council to
-advise what should be done, and it was his pleasure that Parliament
-should adopt some speedy course for preserving peace.<a name="FNanchor_176_176" id="FNanchor_176_176"></a><a href="#Footnote_176_176" class="fnanchor">[176]</a> A laughable
-circumstance occurred amidst this panic. Two fat citizens, in the
-gallery of the Commons, stood earnestly listening to Sir Walter Erle,
-whilst he was descanting on the dangers of the times. Just then,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_136" id="Page_136">[136]</a></span> an
-old board gave a loud creak, and Sir John Wray, imagining a second
-Guy Fawkes concealed in the cellar, called out, "he smelt gunpowder."
-This was enough. Knights and burgesses rushed out and frightened the
-people in the lobby, and the people in the lobby ran into Westminster
-Hall, crying, "the Parliament House was falling, and the members were
-slain." A few, scampering as fast as they could to Westminster Stairs,
-took water, and rowing at the top of their speed, reached the City,
-where they caused the alarm drums to beat, and the train bands to march
-as far as Covent Garden. All this arose from the creaking of a rotten
-board.<a name="FNanchor_177_177" id="FNanchor_177_177"></a><a href="#Footnote_177_177" class="fnanchor">[177]</a></p>
-
-<p>The exposure of these idle fears did not, however, compose the House;
-for, on the 10th of May, members were in such consternation about a
-gunpowder plot, that the Serjeant-at-arms received an order to get the
-holes of the floor examined and stopped up; also a committee of five
-proceeded carefully to search the building to discover and prevent
-the designs of any ill-affected persons who might be imitating the
-example of Guy Fawkes. Whilst we smile at these unfounded terrors,
-we must believe some real danger to have been in the wind, to make
-strong hearts, such as beat in the Long Parliament, thus flutter with
-apprehension.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Debates in the House of Commons.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, May.</div>
-
-<p>About the same time London echoed with "No popery riots." The presence
-of Marie de' Medicis in England excited immense uneasiness; and the
-zeal of that lady and her daughter, Queen Henrietta Maria, on behalf of
-the interests of the Roman Catholic religion, came to be regarded by
-Puritan citizens as a fountain of intrigue. At the end of April, the
-London apprentices&mdash;a class always<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_137" id="Page_137">[137]</a></span> foremost in city frays&mdash;catching
-the spirit of their sires and elders, gave it violent expression,
-by assaulting the Spanish ambassador's house in Bishopsgate Street,
-threatening to pull it about his Excellency's ears, and to take
-his life in revenge for permitting English Papists to frequent his
-chapel.<a name="FNanchor_178_178" id="FNanchor_178_178"></a><a href="#Footnote_178_178" class="fnanchor">[178]</a></p>
-
-<p>Other tumults and a deeper excitement appear in connexion with the
-trial of Strafford. Though the charges against him were chiefly of a
-political character, and his overthrow was accomplished mainly for
-political reasons, yet the religious feelings of the Puritans were
-intensely excited against this arbitrary chieftain, as the friend of
-Laud, and the abettor of his High Church policy. They saw in him the
-evil genius of the past, and his removal seemed to them essential for
-accomplishing the ecclesiastical reforms which they desired.<a name="FNanchor_179_179" id="FNanchor_179_179"></a><a href="#Footnote_179_179" class="fnanchor">[179]</a>
-The conclusions which a student will reach, or the doubts that he
-will entertain touching the righteousness of Strafford's attainder
-and sentence, depend entirely upon the point of view from which he
-may regard the question. No wonder that lawyers now pronounce the
-attainder infamous.<a name="FNanchor_180_180" id="FNanchor_180_180"></a><a href="#Footnote_180_180" class="fnanchor">[180]</a> Looking at the statutes of treason, it is
-impossible to bring<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_138" id="Page_138">[138]</a></span> the conduct of the Earl within their scope.
-The subversion of the fundamental laws of the kingdom, with which
-Strafford was charged, can never be fairly construed into an act of
-treason against the King. But politicians, examining the subject on
-grounds of expediency, may regard the proceeding as one of necessity
-to save the liberties of England. They may also think, as some did at
-the time, that "stone dead hath no fellow"&mdash;that the only effectual
-way of getting rid of so formidable an enemy was at once to put him in
-his coffin; and, as a matter of state policy&mdash;overriding all statute
-and common law&mdash;such persons will pronounce the execution of Strafford
-perfectly justifiable. But when the moralist comes to investigate the
-matter, it assumes a different aspect. He will admit&mdash;unless he be
-under the influence of strong political prejudices&mdash;that the Earl was
-guilty of high crimes and misdemeanours; and that, though not guilty
-of treason at common or statute law, he was guilty of subverting the
-principles of the constitution. On grounds therefore of moral equity,
-it was right to inflict some punishment on the offender. But to what
-extent? Perpetual imprisonment, with proper precautions against rescue,
-might have sufficed to meet all which political expediency required.
-Sent out of the way, shut up in some strong castle, the Earl might
-have been rendered perfectly innocuous; and it may fairly be contended
-further, that such a proceeding would have accomplished the ends of
-justice&mdash;that such an expiation ought to have satisfied the moral
-indignation of the country. Yet, when that point is settled, another
-arises, which demands consideration from the historian.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Lord Strafford.</i></div>
-
-<p>While, free from the excitements of the seventeenth century, we
-calmly look at Strafford's deserts, is it fair to apply our standard
-of judgment to the patriots and Puritans<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_139" id="Page_139">[139]</a></span> of 1641 who took part in
-his condemnation? Right and wrong, it is true, in themselves are
-unalterable and eternal, but there are almost infinite degrees in the
-blameworthiness of men doing wrong, as there are in the meritoriousness
-of men doing right. Allowance being made for different ideas of
-criminal jurisprudence in the times of the Stuarts from those now
-current; and excuses being admitted for stern severity provoked by
-long oppression,&mdash;the patriots and Puritans who put Strafford to death
-must not be condemned as men would be who had done such a thing in
-our own times. If it be allowed that the Puritans acted under a sense
-of mistaken justice; that, standing before the bar of Heaven, they
-could lay their hands on their breasts, and plead the convictions of
-conscience and the impulses of patriotism; then, however condemnatory
-the deed, lenient should be the sentence on the offenders. I am not
-however prepared to contend for the absence of all vindictiveness
-in the men who brought Strafford to trial, and then sent him to the
-scaffold. One cannot but fear that a large amount of alloy was mixed
-up with the purity of their justice. But that must be left for the
-decision of a far different tribunal from any which we can erect.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, May.</div>
-
-<p>Every reader of English history is aware of the perplexity of Charles
-when required by Parliament to sanction the death of his Minister.
-He did not believe Strafford guilty of treason, and he consequently
-regarded his execution as unjust. Yet he sought for some method of
-pacifying his conscience, and consulted certain Bishops<a name="FNanchor_181_181" id="FNanchor_181_181"></a><a href="#Footnote_181_181" class="fnanchor">[181]</a> as to the
-course that he should pursue. The general advice they gave is reported
-by the most distinguished of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_140" id="Page_140">[140]</a></span> counsellors. Ussher puts it thus:
-The matter of fact must be distinguished from the matter of law; of
-the matter of fact the King may judge; if he do not conceive the Earl
-guilty, he cannot in justice condemn him; but as for law, what is
-treason, and what is not, the King must rely on the opinion of the
-judges.<a name="FNanchor_182_182" id="FNanchor_182_182"></a><a href="#Footnote_182_182" class="fnanchor">[182]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Lord Strafford.</i></div>
-
-<p>This casuistry of Charles's advisers indicated the timid expediency of
-politicians rather than the grave righteousness of God's ministers. But
-what followed was much worse. One of them&mdash;probably Williams&mdash;suggested
-a distinction between the public capacity of Charles as a king, and
-the private capacity of Charles as a man; a distinction worthy only
-of a Jesuit, and such as, if allowed, would tear up the roots of all
-morality in official life.<a name="FNanchor_183_183" id="FNanchor_183_183"></a><a href="#Footnote_183_183" class="fnanchor">[183]</a> It appears that the other prelates
-were not responsible for this suggestion. Still reserve is seen on the
-part of the best men amongst the monarch's advisers, very unlike the
-outspoken habits of old Hebrew prophets. In their conduct there is much
-to provoke censure, though in their circumstances there is something to
-suggest excuse.</p>
-
-<p>In justice to Ussher, let it be added, that he recommended the King
-not to consent to the Earl's condemnation unless he was convinced of
-his guilt. Charles<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_141" id="Page_141">[141]</a></span> himself declared, "After the bill was passed, the
-Archbishop came to me, saying, with tears in his eyes, 'Oh, Sir, what
-have you done? I fear that this act may prove a great trouble to your
-conscience, and pray God that your Majesty may never suffer by the
-signing of this Bill.'" The Episcopal party, though they did nothing
-decidedly against the execution of Strafford, ever afterwards regarded
-it as a dark spot in their royal master's history. They were certainly
-themselves not free from blame, for if they regarded the proceeding
-as they said they did, it became them to do their utmost to save
-Strafford's life. But the truth is, as the Minister was made a Jonah
-to still the storm, so the Monarch was made a scape-goat to bear the
-responsibility of throwing him overboard. With the superstition natural
-to a man wanting in straightforward principle, Charles, in the midst of
-his after troubles, promised to expiate his offence by public penance,
-should he ever be restored to his throne. That day of penance never
-came: but the moral effect of Strafford's dignified conduct in prison
-and on the scaffold has been such as to soften the opinion of posterity
-respecting his character, and to increase the condemnation pronounced
-by history upon Charles for consenting to his death. Strafford's last
-moments were the noblest of his life. The scene, as he knelt under
-Laud's window in the Tower to receive his benediction, touches English
-hearts to this very hour; pity is felt for the man going to his doom on
-the adjoining hill, which would never have been inspired had his fate
-been imprisonment instead of death. Both injustice and impolicy are
-sure to meet revenge, as Providence slowly knits up the threads of time.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, May.</div>
-
-<p>Strafford fell on the 12th of May. Amidst the mingled awe and
-exultation of the moment&mdash;whilst the name of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_142" id="Page_142">[142]</a></span> nobleman who had
-perished passed from lip to lip through London, and the sawdust on the
-scaffold continued moist with blood&mdash;the House of Commons calmly sat to
-hear an appeal respecting Deans and Chapters. The men, who unconscious
-of guilt had brought Strafford to the block, and had thus swept from
-their path a huge obstacle, were at this awful moment quietly pursuing
-their measures of ecclesiastical reform. The event of the morning,
-however, one would imagine, came too vividly before them to allow
-of perfectly serene attention to the pleadings carried on in their
-presence.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Deans and Chapters.</i></div>
-
-<p>Great alarm had been felt for the safety of cathedral establishments,
-although no measure at present had appeared in either House affecting
-their dignity or diminishing their revenues. But reports of approaching
-danger were rife, which did not at first alarm and arouse the
-"prelatical court clergy" so much as it did some others. They waited
-to see distinctly what impended before attempting a defence. Now they
-bestirred themselves and prepared petitions, and being informed that
-the order of the House would not permit of their employing counsel,
-they delegated Dr. John Hacket, Prebendary of St. Paul's and Archdeacon
-of Bedford, to plead their cause. On this 12th of May, Hacket came up
-to the bar of the House to fulfil an office which, he said, had been
-assigned to him only the afternoon before. He pleaded, that cathedrals
-supplied the defects of private worship, though he quaintly admitted
-that&mdash;through the super-inquisitiveness of the music&mdash;what was intended
-for devotion vanished away into quavers and airs, whereof he wished
-the amendment; and passing to what he termed "the other wing of the
-cherubim," he expatiated on the excellent preaching supplied by these
-establishments; refuting, by the way, slanders on lecturers as an
-upstart corporation, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_143" id="Page_143">[143]</a></span> shewing that the local statutes of most
-cathedrals required week-day lectures. The advocate urged further, that
-Deans and Chapters advanced the cause of learning, and provided persons
-for defending the Church. Moreover, he said, the institute comported
-with primitive usage, being in fact a <i>senatus episcopi</i>, and therefore
-meeting a want of which some of his reverend brethren complained.
-Warming with his subject, he praised the magnificence of cathedral
-buildings, mentioned the number dependent on the foundations, insisted
-on the excellence of Deans and Chapters as landlords, and their
-enrichment of cities by their residence and hospitality. The Doctor
-proceeded to uphold cathedral revenues as prizes to stimulate lawful
-ambition, and contended for a better maintenance of the clergy than in
-neighbouring reformed Churches&mdash;that they might not be like "Jeroboam's
-priests, the basest of all the people." To destroy Deans and Chapters,
-he added, would please the Papists&mdash;to preserve them would benefit the
-nation. He concluded by observing that the honour of God was at stake
-in this matter, that alienation of church property would be sacrilege,
-and that "on the ruins of the rewards of learning no structure can be
-raised but ignorance; and upon the chaos of ignorance nothing can be
-built but profaneness and confusion."<a name="FNanchor_184_184" id="FNanchor_184_184"></a><a href="#Footnote_184_184" class="fnanchor">[184]</a></p>
-
-<p>Dr. Cornelius Burgess, a London lecturer of Presbyterian principles,
-appeared in the afternoon of the same eventful day, and indulged in
-"a vehement invective against Deans and Chapters," their want of
-Scripture<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_144" id="Page_144">[144]</a></span> authority, and their utter unprofitableness. He charged
-some of the singing men with debauchery, and all with uselessness.<a name="FNanchor_185_185" id="FNanchor_185_185"></a><a href="#Footnote_185_185" class="fnanchor">[185]</a>
-Yet he considered it unlawful to convert the revenues to private uses.
-In his opinion they ought to be consecrated to public purposes of a
-religious kind. After hearing the arguments of Hacket and Burgess, the
-House allowed the matter to stand over for a while. Hereafter we shall
-have to notice its re-appearance.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, May.</div>
-
-<p>The Commons a few days afterwards (May 17) gave signs of coming
-under Presbyterian influence. Having debated certain propositions
-presented by the Scotch commissioners, they reciprocated by resolution
-the affectionate regards of their brethren, and their desires for
-uniformity in Church government. They went so far as to pledge
-themselves to proceed in due time with reformatory measures, such as
-should "best conduce to the glory of God and the peace of the Church."
-Three days subsequently, the House set aside the oath of canonical
-obedience, by voting that no minister should be obliged to take any
-oath upon his induction, except <i>such as Scripture warranted</i>.<a name="FNanchor_186_186" id="FNanchor_186_186"></a><a href="#Footnote_186_186" class="fnanchor">[186]</a> In
-all this, a current of feeling against Episcopacy is distinctly visible.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Abolition of Episcopacy.</i></div>
-
-<p>The Bill for "Restraining Bishops from intermeddling with Secular
-Affairs" came again under debate. It had been sent to the Upper House
-on the 1st of May, when Bishop Hall made a speech against it.<a name="FNanchor_187_187" id="FNanchor_187_187"></a><a href="#Footnote_187_187" class="fnanchor">[187]</a> The
-Bill reached a second reading, and was committed on the 14th. Whatever
-idea of compromise by passing this measure might have existed among the
-Commons, no such idea was enter<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_145" id="Page_145">[145]</a></span>tained by the Lords. They disputed
-the question with all the logic and eloquence they could master;
-evidently regarding the overthrow of this measure as of vital moment.
-The Right Reverend bench stood firm, and the Bishop of Lincoln&mdash;to
-shew that his committee of accommodation meant nothing prejudicial to
-the order&mdash;boldly defended it in a speech which was full of learning
-and rhetoric. Lord Viscount Newark also strenuously opposed the Bill;
-but it received earnest support from the Puritan Lord Say and Sele.
-Yet the latter wished their lordships not to regard it as introduced
-with any ulterior view,&mdash;telling them, it meant not the taking away
-of Episcopacy <i>root and branch</i>, but only the lopping off exuberant
-and superfluous boughs which now wasted the juices of the tree. The
-Lords feared the consequence of passing the bill, and deemed the
-episcopal status amongst them as of ancient and inalienable right. So
-they resolved, that Archbishops and Bishops should have "suffrage and
-voice as ever;" but to the other propositions they agreed, viz:&mdash;that
-prelates should have nothing to do with the Star Chamber Court or the
-Privy Council, and that no clergyman should be any longer a Justice of
-the Peace. These points a year before&mdash;had Strafford and Laud conceded
-them when they were in power&mdash;would have been counted an immense
-concession. But ecclesiastical as well as political matters had since
-passed through a whole heaven of change; therefore the three articles
-granted by the Lords were by the Commons deemed trifles unworthy of
-acceptance apart from the first.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, May.</div>
-
-<p>On the 24th of May, the resolution described passed the House of Lords.
-The impression which it made on the Commons is plain from what ensued.
-The patriots knitted their brows when the tidings reached them, and
-compressed their lips in firm determination to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_146" id="Page_146">[146]</a></span> subdue the lordly
-prelates. We now reach an important crisis.</p>
-
-<p>The Commons assembled as usual on the 27th of May. A petition came from
-the Lincolnshire farmers and burghers, with many hands to it, praying
-for the abolition of the government of Archbishops and Bishops, and
-their numerous subordinates.<a name="FNanchor_188_188" id="FNanchor_188_188"></a><a href="#Footnote_188_188" class="fnanchor">[188]</a> As the gentlemen in broadbrimmed hats
-and scanty cloaks with goodly neck-ruffs or ample collars sat gravely
-pondering these ominous petitions,&mdash;suddenly, from a well-known voice,
-a short speech broke on their ears like the explosion of a bombshell.
-On the southern, or right-hand corner of St. Stephen's Chapel, a ladder
-might have been discovered, leading up to a gallery where certain
-members were accustomed to sit. Sir Arthur Haselrig commonly took his
-place there. That morning Sir Edward Dering was seen striding up the
-ladder to a seat next Sir Arthur. The member for Leicestershire held
-close and earnest conference with the Kentish knight. A paper was
-pressed into his hands, and after a hasty perusal, with a good-natured
-air of importance, he rose, leaned over the gallery, and made the
-following impromptu remarks:&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Abolition of Episcopacy.</i></div>
-
-<p>"Mr. Speaker&mdash;The gentleman that spake last, taking notice of the
-multitude of complaints and complainants against the present government
-of the Church, doth somewhat seem to wonder that we have no more
-pursuit ready against the persons offending. Sir, the time is present,
-and the work is ready perhaps beyond his expectation. Sir, I am now
-the instrument to present unto you a very short but a very sharp Bill,
-such as these times and their sad necessities have brought forth. It
-speaks a free language, and makes a bold request. It is<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_147" id="Page_147">[147]</a></span> a purging
-Bill. I give it you as I take physic, not for delight but for a cure.
-A cure now, the last and only cure, if as I hope all other remedies
-have been first tried, then&mdash;<i>immedicabile vulnus, &amp;c.</i>, but <i>cuncta
-prius tentanda</i>. I never was for ruin so long as I could hold any
-hope of reforming. My hopes that way are even almost withered. This
-Bill is entitled, 'An Act for the utter abolishing and taking away of
-all Archbishops, Bishops, their Chancellors and Commissaries, Deans,
-Deans and Chapters, Archdeacons, Prebendaries, Chanters, and Canons,
-and all other their under officers.' Sir, you see their demerits have
-exposed them, <i>publici odii piaculares victimas</i>. I am sorry they are
-so ill. I am sorry they will not be content to be bettered, which I
-did hope would have been effected by our last Bill. When this Bill
-is perfected I shall give a sad aye unto it; and at the delivery in
-thereof, I do now profess beforehand, that if my former hopes of a full
-Reformation may yet revive and prosper, I will again divide my sense
-upon this Bill, and yield my shoulders to under-prop the primitive,
-lawful, and just Episcopacy; yet so as that I will never be wanting
-with my utmost pains and prayers to root out all the undue adjuncts and
-superstructures on it. I beseech you read the Bill, and weigh well the
-work."<a name="FNanchor_189_189" id="FNanchor_189_189"></a><a href="#Footnote_189_189" class="fnanchor">[189]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, May.</div>
-
-<p>It was an odd speech for any man to make who had undertaken so grave a
-business, and it looked doubly odd that Sir Edward Dering should father
-such a motion; seeing that, though he was a Puritan, he professed to
-love the Episcopal Church. Men stared and wondered. A pause followed.
-Then some one moved, that the Bill might not be read:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>"That it was against the custom and rule of the House<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_148" id="Page_148">[148]</a></span> that any
-private person should take upon him, without having first obtained
-the leave and direction of the House to bring in a new Act, so much
-as to abrogate and abolish any old single law; and therefore that it
-was wonderful presumption in that gentleman, to bring in a Bill that
-overthrew and repealed so many Acts of Parliament, and changed and
-confounded the whole frame of the government of the kingdom."<a name="FNanchor_190_190" id="FNanchor_190_190"></a><a href="#Footnote_190_190" class="fnanchor">[190]</a></p>
-
-<p>The Bill, however, was then read a first time. On the motion for the
-second reading, Sir John Culpeper, one of the popular party, opposed
-it on the ground, that Episcopal government was not beyond all hope of
-reformation. He advised the House to see what the Lords would yet do
-with the Bill sent up to them. D'Ewes supported the second reading.
-Sir Charles Williams, member for Monmouthshire, opposed it, declaring
-that he would divide the House, though there should be "but six noes."
-For this he was called to account, and compelled to apologize, to "the
-good satisfaction of the House." The second reading passed by 139 to
-108. On a resumption of the debate, Pleydell and Hyde took the lead
-in opposing the measure. The latter argued that Church and State had
-flourished many centuries under the present ecclesiastical rule, and
-that the Bill must not be hastily adopted, since it contained matter of
-great weight and importance. D'Ewes promptly replied, that the existing
-ecclesiastical rule had hardly reached its hundredth year. Hyde would
-have rejoined, but the House did not allow him so to do. Holles and Pym
-followed, contending that bishops had well nigh ruined all religion,
-and complaining that they had determined to continue in the Upper
-House, despite the opposition of the Lower. The Commons ordered the
-Bill<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_149" id="Page_149">[149]</a></span> to be committed on the 3rd of June. It was then deferred to the
-11th of the same month.<a name="FNanchor_191_191" id="FNanchor_191_191"></a><a href="#Footnote_191_191" class="fnanchor">[191]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Abolition of Episcopacy.</i></div>
-
-<p>Dering's conduct at the time appeared a mystery. Afterwards he
-explained,<a name="FNanchor_192_192" id="FNanchor_192_192"></a><a href="#Footnote_192_192" class="fnanchor">[192]</a> that he had nothing to do with the preparation of
-the measure&mdash;that it was entrusted to him by Sir Arthur Haselrig,
-who had received it from Sir Harry Vane and Oliver Cromwell. It
-further appears, that he scarcely read the motion before moving its
-adoption. Haselrig's connection with this bold proceeding, as well as
-with Strafford's attainder, are proofs of his having then assumed a
-prominent position amongst ultra-politicians; but the character of the
-measure would rather suggest that Sir Harry Vane must really have been
-its author. Cromwell's relation to it is also worthy of notice, as it
-indicates his advanced opinions at the period, and his already active
-and influential statesmanship. According to Clarendon, the Solicitor
-General, Oliver St. John, "the dark-lantern man," had drawn up the
-Bill&mdash;a statement, which, if true, shows another of the republican
-commonwealth men taking up an extreme position at the outset of the
-strife.<a name="FNanchor_193_193" id="FNanchor_193_193"></a><a href="#Footnote_193_193" class="fnanchor">[193]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_150" id="Page_150">[150]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, June.</div>
-
-<p>No doubt the concocters of this design considered that it would meet
-with better acceptance if presented by a merely doctrinal Puritan; and
-it indicates the excited temper of the Commons at the moment, and how
-the resistance of the Lords had wrought them up to a resolution of
-frightening mitred heads&mdash;that the Bill immediately came to a second
-reading, and that too by such a majority. Moreover, it expressed
-growing indignation against the course of oppression with which
-Episcopacy stood identified. For long years the Church had been sowing
-the wind&mdash;now, in a few short hours, it reaped the whirlwind. To those
-who wished to get rid of Episcopacy altogether, the proceedings of the
-Lords, although very exasperating, would not be altogether unwelcome,
-as advanced politicians might gather from it an argument against what
-they deemed to be half-measures. They asked&mdash;since bishops cling so
-tenaciously to their temporalities, would it not be as easy to get rid
-of both, as to tear one from the other? Some moderate men, discouraged
-and annoyed, were thus thrown into the arms of excited companions.
-Policy led them on to extremes, hoping that the boldness of the
-people's representatives now in the ascendant, would alarm the Lords,
-especially the spiritual ones, and induce them to give way, even on a
-point where they had staked their fortunes and planted the defence of
-their order.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Debates by the Commons.</i></div>
-
-<p>As the business of Dering's bill was under debate, a message arrived
-from the Upper House, signifying a readiness to concur in the Bill
-which they had already received, excepting only the clause for taking
-away the bishops' votes. "This message," we are told, "took little
-effect with the Commons."<a name="FNanchor_194_194" id="FNanchor_194_194"></a><a href="#Footnote_194_194" class="fnanchor">[194]</a></p>
-
-<p>A conference followed on the 3rd of June, when the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_151" id="Page_151">[151]</a></span> peers were as
-decided as the Commons. They contended that there could be no question
-of the bishops' right to sit in Parliament, as well by common and
-statute law as by constant practice; and they further declared, that
-they knew of no inconveniences attending the privilege; still, if there
-were any, they were ready to consider them.<a name="FNanchor_195_195" id="FNanchor_195_195"></a><a href="#Footnote_195_195" class="fnanchor">[195]</a> In reply the Commons
-alleged, that intermeddling with secular business hindered the exercise
-of ministerial functions, and that bishops should devote themselves
-entirely to their spiritual vocation. They added, that councils and
-canons forbid their engaging in secular affairs&mdash;that the twenty-four
-bishops are dependent on two archbishops&mdash;that with a peerage only
-for life, they are ever hoping for translation&mdash;that of late several
-prelates had encroached on the liberty of conscience belonging to His
-Majesty's subjects, and would still do so&mdash;and that they were pledged
-in their parliamentary character to maintain a jurisdiction grievous
-to the three kingdoms, and already abolished in Scotland, while it was
-petitioned against both in England and Wales. Finally, the Commons
-urged that rank as peers placed the prelates at too great a distance
-from the rest of the clergy. The arguments of neither House satisfied
-the other. The Commons could not accept the answer of the Lords. We
-will, declared they, have the whole Bill or none. Then, replied the
-Lords, you shall have none; and threw it out altogether. A wedge had
-before entered the oak of the English constitution. This blow split the
-two branches asunder, and they stood apart wider than before.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, June.</div>
-
-<p>The Commons went on their way, and framed a piece of Sabbath
-legislation, by prohibiting bargemen and lightermen from using their
-barks on the day of rest.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_152" id="Page_152">[152]</a></span> Further, they separated ancient usages from
-parish perambulations, by requiring that no service should be said, nor
-any psalms sung when such perambulations took place. And then&mdash;perhaps
-to cover the measure against the bishops with some show of zeal for
-clerical order&mdash;the House reproved some poor people brought before them
-for schismatical irregularities.<a name="FNanchor_196_196" id="FNanchor_196_196"></a><a href="#Footnote_196_196" class="fnanchor">[196]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Debates by the Commons.</i></div>
-
-<p>Needing themselves a lesson on religious liberty, the Commons resolved
-to follow up their attack on those whom they considered to be its
-greatest enemies. "We fell upon the great debate of the Bill of
-Episcopacy," observes D'Ewes, in his Diary, June 11. "Robert Harley,
-as I gathered, Mr. Pym, Mr. Hampden, and others, with Mr. Stephen
-Marshall, parson, of Finchingfield, in the county of Essex, and some
-others, had met yesternight and appointed, that this Bill should be
-proceeded withal this morning. And the said Sir Robert Harley moved
-it first in the House, for Mr. Hampden out of his serpentine subtlety
-did still put others to move those businesses that he contrived."<a name="FNanchor_197_197" id="FNanchor_197_197"></a><a href="#Footnote_197_197" class="fnanchor">[197]</a>
-From this passage it appears, that Pym had within six months made a
-considerable advance in his advocacy of ecclesiastical reform. It will
-be recollected, that in January he "thought it was not the intention
-of the House to abolish Episcopacy," but now before Midsummer he
-seems to agree in opinion with the "root and branch men." Hampden,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_153" id="Page_153">[153]</a></span>
-probably, entered the Long Parliament with at least a deep suspicion
-of the inexpediency of upholding episcopal rule: and both he and
-Pym were now in close conference with Stephen Marshall, the famous
-Presbyterian divine: who, by the way, affords an instance of the active
-part in political movements for the overthrow of bishops, which even
-then had begun to be taken by clergymen of his order. D'Ewes further
-reports:&mdash;"So after a little debate the House was resolved into a
-committee, and Mr. Edward Hyde (a young utter-barrister of the Middle
-Temple), upon the speaker's leaving his chair, went into the clerk's
-chair, and there sat also many days after." The making Hyde chairman
-was a stroke of policy&mdash;so he says himself&mdash;on the part of those who
-were favourable to the Bill, on the ground that thus he would be
-prevented from speaking against it.</p>
-
-<p>According to his own account, he amply revenged himself, and proved
-no small hindrance, by mystifying questions and frequently reporting
-"two or three votes directly contrary to each other," so that after
-nearly twenty days spent in that manner, the Commons "found themselves
-very little advanced towards a conclusion."<a name="FNanchor_198_198" id="FNanchor_198_198"></a><a href="#Footnote_198_198" class="fnanchor">[198]</a> The trick indicates
-the character of the man; and the confession of it years afterwards,
-is a sign of his effrontery; indeed, the whole of his conduct on this
-occasion proves how little he could have had at heart the interests of
-Episcopacy, not to speak boldly on its behalf, and vindicate that which
-he professed was venerable in his eyes, in this the crisis of its fate
-and the hour of its humiliation.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, June.</div>
-
-<p>In the course of debate, Sir Harry Vane advocated the abolition of
-Episcopacy, inveighing against it as a plant which God's right hand
-had not planted, but one full of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_154" id="Page_154">[154]</a></span> rottenness and corruption, a mystery
-of iniquity fit to be plucked up and removed out of the way. Yet he
-did not advocate what would now be called the separation of Church
-and State; nor did he enter upon the defence or exposition of any
-broad principle of religious liberty. At the same time, Waller, the
-poet&mdash;a lively speaker, who, even at the age of eighty, could amuse
-the House with his badinage and wit&mdash;protested against further attacks
-on Episcopacy, now that its horns and claws were cut and pared. He
-was, he said, for reform, not for abolition. Upon the close of the
-debate on the 11th&mdash;which lasted from early in the morning till late
-at night&mdash;the committee, in spite of Mr. Hyde's expedients, resolved
-on the preamble of the Bill: "Whereas the government of the Church of
-England by archbishops, bishops, their chancellors, and commissaries,
-deans, archdeacons, and other ecclesiastical officers, hath been found,
-by long experience, to be a great impediment to the perfect reformation
-and growth of religion, and very prejudicial to the civil state and
-government of this kingdom."<a name="FNanchor_199_199" id="FNanchor_199_199"></a><a href="#Footnote_199_199" class="fnanchor">[199]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Debates by the Commons.</i></div>
-
-<p>On the 15th June, during an earnest discussion relative to the
-abolition of cathedral chapters, Mr. William Thomas, member for
-Carnarvon, related to the House the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_155" id="Page_155">[155]</a></span> history of Deans, tracing them
-up to the time of Augustine, who describes each as having the care
-of ten monks; and then he asked, "whether the office, as now it is
-exercised, be the same as then?" "They are deceived that urge it,"
-the Welsh representative proceeded to say, "and they should know that
-this judicious House is able to discern and distinguish a counterfeit
-face of antiquity from the true. In vain do they, with the Gibeonites,
-labour to deceive us by old sacks, old shoes, old garments, old boots,
-and old bread that is dry and mouldy; therefore to no purpose and
-causelessly do they charge us to affect novelty, by our offering to
-take away church governors and government." He narrated stories of
-wicked deans; and said much about church music, as tickling the ear,
-without touching the heart, "whilst, as Augustine complaineth of
-himself, most were more moved by the sweetness of the song, than by
-the sense of the matter&mdash;working their bane like the deadly touch of
-the asps in a tickling delight&mdash;or as the soft touch of the hyena,
-which doth infatuate and lull asleep and then devoureth." Sir Benjamin
-Rudyard, who had before declared himself for Church reform, and still
-advocated it, offered some defence of cathedral establishments on the
-ground of their being conducive to the promotion of piety and learning.
-He deplored the selfishness which, in certain cases, led to the
-alienation of ecclesiastical property at the time of the Reformation;
-he warned his hearers against looking on Church lands with a carnal
-eye, and he besought them to search their hearts, that they might
-pursue sincere ends, without the least thought of saving their purses.
-Mr. Pury, alderman and member for Gloucester, produced the statutes
-which ordained that Deans and Canons should always reside within the
-cathedral's precincts, exercising the virtues of hospitality; that they
-should preach<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_156" id="Page_156">[156]</a></span> the Word in season and out of season, especially in the
-cathedral church and attend to the education of the young; and that
-they should have a common table in the Common Hall, where the canons,
-scholars, choristers, and subordinate officers should meet together.
-The Alderman then proceeded to observe, that not one of the statutes
-was kept, that the Dignitaries came once a year to receive the rents
-and profits of the lands, but did not distribute to the poor their
-proportion; that they neither mended the highways and bridges, nor kept
-any common table; and instead of preaching the gospel, they neglected
-it themselves, and did not encourage the discharge of the duty by
-others.<a name="FNanchor_200_200" id="FNanchor_200_200"></a><a href="#Footnote_200_200" class="fnanchor">[200]</a> Throughout this debate the unpopularity at the time of
-that class, commonly termed the dignified clergy, appears in a very
-distinct and serious form. They had so completely identified themselves
-with the High Church party; they had become so imbued with the spirit
-of pride and intolerance; they had been so selfish in the exaction and
-enjoyment of their revenues; and they had been so unmindful of their
-spiritual duties, as to separate themselves from public sympathy:&mdash;a
-consequence which no class of religious ministers, whatever may be
-their legal and social position, can long afford to brave; a result
-which the highest privileged orders have never at last been able to
-face with impunity.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, June.</div>
-
-<p>The discussion ended with a resolution that Deans and Chapters, and
-all Archdeacons should be utterly abolished, and that their lands
-should be employed for the advancement of learning and piety, competent
-maintenance being afforded to those who might thereby suffer loss,
-provided that they were not delinquents. The House further resolved,
-that the forfeited property should be entrusted<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_157" id="Page_157">[157]</a></span> to feoffees, that
-the bishops' lands should be given to the King, except advowsons
-and impropriations, and that competent funds should be reserved for
-supporting preachers in cathedrals, and for repairing the sacred
-edifices.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Debates by the Commons.</i></div>
-
-<p>Proceeding with the business respecting Deans and Chapters, the
-committee did not drop the question of Bishops. On the 21st of June
-no change had come over the pleadings of the originator of the whole
-discussion. Dering's anti-prelatical zeal had not yet begun to
-wane, although he now complained of his adopted Bill as defective,
-and insisted on the importance of deciding on a future form of
-government before abandoning the present. He still alluded to existing
-Episcopacy in disrespectful terms, and advocated the introduction of a
-Presbyterian element into ecclesiastical rule. Dioceses, he said, were
-too large, and diocesans needed grave and able divines, assessors and
-assistants, amongst whom they were entitled to have the first place
-and to exercise the chief power. Then turning to the chairman for an
-illustration, the lively baronet observed: "Mr. Hyde, yourself are now
-in this great committee; Mr. Speaker is in the House the bishop of
-our congregation." "You,"&mdash;addressing himself to both gentlemen&mdash;"are
-in yourselves but fellow-members of the same House with us, returned
-hither (as we also are) to sit on these benches with us, until by our
-election, and by common suffrage, you are incathedrated. Then you
-have (and it is fit and necessary that you should have) a precedency
-before us and a presidency over us. Notwithstanding this, you are not
-diversified into a several and distinct order from us. You must not
-swell with that conceit. You (Mr. Chairman and Mr. Speaker) are still
-the same members of the same House you were, though raised to a painful
-and careful degree among us and above us. I do heartily<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_158" id="Page_158">[158]</a></span> wish that
-we had in every shire of England a bishop such and so regulated for
-Church government within that sphere, as Mr. Speaker is bounded in, and
-limited by the rules of this House."<a name="FNanchor_201_201" id="FNanchor_201_201"></a><a href="#Footnote_201_201" class="fnanchor">[201]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, June.</div>
-
-<p>The comparison was as amusing as it was pertinent, and fell in with the
-prevalent opinion of the Puritan party, that if bishops were retained
-in England it must be according to a greatly reduced standard of
-authority and power, and one that should resemble the dimensions of the
-Episcopal office, as many believed it to have existed in the first and
-second centuries of the Christian era.</p>
-
-<p>Before we terminate this chapter, another subject requires notice.
-The Long Parliament, at an early period, turned its attention to the
-character of the clergy. So many complaints were made against them,
-that the committee for religion, in the month of May, divided itself
-into sub-committees, whose business it was to investigate clerical
-scandals. Their proceedings have been subjected to severe criticism.
-It is said by Nalson, that accusations against the best ministers,
-by malicious persons, were invited and encouraged, and then admitted
-without any proof.<a name="FNanchor_202_202" id="FNanchor_202_202"></a><a href="#Footnote_202_202" class="fnanchor">[202]</a> But this statement receives contradiction
-from the evidence which was laid before the Committees, and is still
-preserved; and though some portion of it might be untrustworthy, as is
-the case in every kind of judicial trial, other parts of it appear of a
-nature not to be gainsayed. In conducting these enquiries the practice
-was to receive written evidence, a practice borrowed from the Court
-of Arches, where the method of procedure is by libel and affidavit.
-Englishmen prefer the <i>vivâ voce</i> testimony of witnesses before a jury;
-yet there are not wanting men of judgment, in modern times, who favour
-a written statement of fact. At any rate, the Committees could plead<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_159" id="Page_159">[159]</a></span>
-precedent for the course which they pursued, and as the causes which
-came before them were ecclesiastical, they did but adopt the usages
-of ecclesiastical courts. The constitution of the tribunal, rather
-than the mode of trial, is open to exception. There is no vindicating
-the former but on the fundamental principle of all revolutions, that
-old authorities having become thoroughly corrupt, new ones must be
-constituted by the popular power&mdash;in such cases the supreme power&mdash;to
-meet emergencies arising out of previous derangement.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Debates by the Commons.</i></div>
-
-<p>Cases which came under the notice of White's committee were published
-at a later period in his "Century of Scandalous Ministers."<a name="FNanchor_203_203" id="FNanchor_203_203"></a><a href="#Footnote_203_203" class="fnanchor">[203]</a> On
-comparing that extraordinary volume with the proceedings of the Kent
-and Essex Committees, we must be struck with the large proportion
-in the former, not merely of allegations touching immorality, but
-of charges respecting the foulest and most atrocious crimes. Most
-of the complaints before Sir Edward Dering<a name="FNanchor_204_204" id="FNanchor_204_204"></a><a href="#Footnote_204_204" class="fnanchor">[204]</a> related mainly
-to delinquencies of a theological, ecclesiastical, or political
-description; and the same may be said of the accusations brought
-against the Essex ministers: but on turning over White's pages we
-are nauseated with the filthiest accusations and the most abominable
-stories. If only half of them be true, he assuredly was supplied with
-abundant proofs of the extensive and utter degradation of the clergy.
-But some of the narratives seem to us so absurd as almost to defy
-belief; yet supposing that they are truthfully related, it is evident
-there existed in the parishes of England, at that time, incumbents who
-must be regarded as no less thoroughly mad than radically immoral.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_160" id="Page_160">[160]</a></span></p></div>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="illo160" >
- <img
- class="p0"
- src="images/illo160.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER VI.</h2>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">While so much of argument and eloquence was expended upon Episcopacy
-in the abstract, it is natural to ask what became of the bishops
-themselves? At the opening of the Long Parliament a committee had been
-formed to prepare charges against Laud. The Scotch busied themselves
-with the same matter as soon as they reached London, being exasperated
-by the attempts of the prelate to force Episcopacy upon their
-countrymen. On the 18th of December the Commons voted the Archbishop
-a traitor, and sent up a message to the Lords desiring that he might
-be committed to custody, stating also that their accusation would be
-established in convenient time.<a name="FNanchor_205_205" id="FNanchor_205_205"></a><a href="#Footnote_205_205" class="fnanchor">[205]</a></p>
-
-<p>On the 24th of February articles were voted, and then presented to
-the Lords by Mr. Pym. He charged the Archbishop with subverting the
-constitution, by publications which he had encouraged; by influence he
-had used with ministers of justice; by his conduct both in the High
-Commission Court and in reference to the canons; by his tyrannical
-power in ecclesiastical and temporal matters; by setting up Popish
-superstition and idolatry; by abusing trust reposed in him by his
-Majesty; by choosing chaplains disaffected to the reformed religion;
-by<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_161" id="Page_161">[161]</a></span> attempting to reconcile the Church of England and the Church
-of Rome; by persecuting orthodox ministers; by causing division in
-England, and between the two kingdoms; and, finally, by subverting the
-rights of Parliament. Mr. Pym read these articles, and supported them.
-A few days afterwards the Archbishop was sent to the Tower.<a name="FNanchor_206_206" id="FNanchor_206_206"></a><a href="#Footnote_206_206" class="fnanchor">[206]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Bishops.</i></div>
-
-<p>Bishop Wren, who, according to a witticism of the age, is called the
-least of all these birds, and the most unclean among them, was early
-arrested (December 22), yet he was allowed to remain at large on bail.
-On the 20th of July the articles of his impeachment were presented
-by Sir Thomas Widdrington. The bishop&mdash;it was alleged, amongst
-other things&mdash;had ordered that the Communion-table should be placed
-altar-wise with steps and rails, and that communicants should kneel as
-they received the sacrament. He had enjoined the reading of the "Book
-of Sports," and had deprived godly ministers for refusing to submit to
-that unscriptural injunction. Prayers had been forbidden by him before
-sermon; and clergymen had been required to preach in hood and surplice.
-He had also been the means of excommunicating as many as fifty
-faithful pastors, and had been guilty of appointing Popishly-affected
-chaplains.<a name="FNanchor_207_207" id="FNanchor_207_207"></a><a href="#Footnote_207_207" class="fnanchor">[207]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_162" id="Page_162">[162]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641.</div>
-
-<p>One bishop escaped the enquiry of the Long Parliament by being called
-to appear before a higher tribunal. We refer to Richard Montague, a man
-of learning, well read in the Fathers, an ecclesiastical antiquary,
-but a thorough Anglo-Catholic. Adopting Arminian views, supporting
-the encroachments of ecclesiastical power, loving ceremonial worship,
-and hating Puritanism with a perfect hatred, this prelate was just
-the person to please Archbishop Laud and Charles I. He had written,
-as early as 1623, a book against Popery, entitled "A new gag for the
-old goose," in which he was considered by many Protestants to have
-betrayed the cause he pretended to serve. For publishing this book,
-containing sundry propositions tending to the disturbance of Church and
-State, the author had been cited before the bar of the Commons, and,
-on the same account&mdash;and for the contents of his "Appeal to Cæsar,"
-and his "Treatise upon the Invocation of the Saints"&mdash;articles of
-impeachment had afterwards been presented against him. He was charged
-with fomenting the King's hatred of the Puritans, abusing them as
-"Saint-seeming," "Bible-bearing," and "Hypocritical;" representing
-their churches as "Conventicles," and their ministrations as mere
-"prating:" and also with sneering at Reformers as well as Puritans,
-affirming that the Church of Rome was the spouse of Christ. Yet,
-notwithstanding Montague's Popish tendencies and his unpopularity
-with all but very High Churchmen, Charles elevated him to the see of
-Chichester&mdash;the worst episcopal appointment he ever made, next to his
-promotion of Laud to the Archiepiscopate. The death of this bishop, in
-April, 1641, alone<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_163" id="Page_163">[163]</a></span> prevented Parliament from instituting very severe
-proceedings respecting his conduct.</p>
-
-<p>Davenant, who presided over the diocese of Salisbury, died the same
-month. Totally unlike Montague, he had fallen into trouble for contempt
-of King James's injunctions relative to preaching on predestination.
-His humble and peaceable life, his strict observance of the Sabbath,
-his condemnation of clerical pomp and luxury, and his disapproval of
-certain court proceedings, had secured for him the sympathies of the
-Puritans, and excited the displeasure of the High Church party. His
-death corresponded with his life; for in his last illness "he thanked
-God for this Fatherly correction," because in all his life-time he
-never before had one heavy affliction; which made him often much
-suspect with himself whether he was a true child of God or no, until
-this his last sickness. "<i>Then</i>," says Fuller&mdash;whose words we have
-followed&mdash;"<i>he sweetly fell asleep in Christ, and so we softly drew the
-curtains about him</i>."<a name="FNanchor_208_208" id="FNanchor_208_208"></a><a href="#Footnote_208_208" class="fnanchor">[208]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Bishops.</i></div>
-
-<p>On the 4th of August, 1641, Serjeant Wylde carried up to the House
-of Peers a series of articles prepared by a Committee of the House
-of Commons, impeaching thirteen bishops of certain crimes and
-misdemeanours. The accused were allowed till the 10th of November to
-prepare their answer, when they put in a Demurrer; after which the
-prosecution was superseded by other events hereafter to be described.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, July.</div>
-
-<p>Shortly before the impeachment of the thirteen prelates, a remarkable
-correspondence took place between certain Presbyterian clergymen
-of London and their brethren beyond the Tweed. It shows the high
-spirits of the former excited by recent events, their expectation of a
-speedy<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_164" id="Page_164">[164]</a></span> union with their neighbours in ecclesiastical polity, and the
-inspiration of fear from quarters opposite to those which had given
-them alarm a few months before. In a letter dated 12th July, 1641, the
-London ministers observe, that Almighty God having now of His infinite
-goodness raised their hopes of <i>removing the yoke of Episcopacy</i>, under
-which they had so long groaned, sundry other forms of Church government
-were projected to be set up in the room thereof; one of which was, that
-all power, whether of electing and ordaining ministers, or of admitting
-or excommunicating members, centred in every particular congregation,
-and was bounded by its extent. Independency in fact is meant by this
-passage, and the writers wished to know the judgment of their Scotch
-compeers on the point, as this would conduce by God's blessing to the
-settlement of the question. All the more earnestly was this entreated,
-because of a rumour that some famous and eminent brethren in the North
-were inclined to that form of government. In reply to this, an epistle
-arrived from the General Assembly, in which that reverend body assured
-their London brethren, that since the Reformation&mdash;especially since
-the union of the two kingdoms&mdash;the Scotch had deplored the evil of
-Great Britain having two kirks, and did fervently desire one confession
-and one directory for both countries. This they considered would be
-a foundation for durable peace, and the two Churches welded into one
-would be strong in God against dissensions amongst themselves, and
-also against the invasion of foreign enemies. The Assembly grieved to
-learn that any godly minister should be found not agreeing with other
-reformed kirks in point of government as well as doctrine and worship;
-and they feared that if the hedge of discipline were altered, what it
-contained would not long preserve its character. After laying down
-Pres<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_165" id="Page_165">[165]</a></span>byterian principles, the writers conclude by declaring themselves
-to be of one heart and of one soul; and to be no less persuaded that
-Presbyterianism is of God than that Episcopacy is of men.<a name="FNanchor_209_209" id="FNanchor_209_209"></a><a href="#Footnote_209_209" class="fnanchor">[209]</a></p>
-
-<p>Other circumstances about the same period encouraged the Scotch. Their
-army was to be disbanded, and their troops were to be paid&mdash;a point
-respecting which the commissioners had been very solicitous&mdash;and a
-promising treaty between the two countries appeared on the eve of
-ratification. To the desire of the northern brethren respecting unity
-of religion, it was answered in the treaty, that his Majesty, with
-the advice of both Houses, approved of the desire of ecclesiastical
-conformity; and since Parliament had already taken it into their
-consideration, they would proceed in a manner conducive to the glory
-of God and the peace of the two kingdoms.<a name="FNanchor_210_210" id="FNanchor_210_210"></a><a href="#Footnote_210_210" class="fnanchor">[210]</a> This passage is
-equivocal, for it might signify conformity to Episcopal or conformity
-to Presbyterian government. The King, no doubt, meant in his heart the
-former, but was quite willing at the same time that his subjects in the
-North should understand the latter.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Royal Visit to Scotland.</i></div>
-
-<p>When affairs were coming into this posture, Charles determined to
-visit his native land. Into his political motives for so doing this
-is not the place to enter&mdash;whether he hoped thereby to procure an
-adjournment of Parliament; or thought that he should break up the
-combination between the northern and southern patriots; or expected
-to obtain evidence and assistance against the latter by conference
-and co-operation with the anti<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_166" id="Page_166">[166]</a></span>Covenanters under Montrose. But most
-certainly his intention in reference to religion, as appears from his
-conduct, was to conciliate his countrymen and to throw them off their
-guard by veiling his strong attachment to Episcopacy, under an assumed
-friendliness for Presbyterianism.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, August.</div>
-
-<p>Charles had determined to start on the 10th of August, and therefore,
-having passed certain bills on Saturday, the 7th, he then bid his
-Parliament farewell. The House of Commons greatly disliked this
-expedition. On the same day they requested the Lords to join them in
-petitioning his Majesty to delay his departure at least a fortnight
-longer. Only a strong reason could have induced Puritans to meet for
-business on the following day, being Sunday, but they did so meet. On
-that summer morning the members went down to Westminster, first to
-worship at St. Margaret's, and then to debate at St. Stephen's. But
-before entering on political affairs they were careful to guard against
-this Sunday sitting being drawn into a precedent. Often likened to the
-Pharisees for rigid formalism, these men, on this occasion, really
-shewed that&mdash;with their devout reverence for the holy season&mdash;they had
-caught the spirit of Him who said, the Sabbath was made for man, and
-not man for the Sabbath. Their attempt&mdash;on a day they so much loved to
-honour by religious exercises&mdash;at staying the King's journey northward,
-showed how much mischief they apprehended from that visit. But their
-effort did not succeed. On Tuesday, the 10th, Charles came to the House
-of Lords, and sending for the Commons, gave his assent to the Scotch
-Treaty and to certain Bills; after which he again took leave of the
-Houses, and started for Edinburgh, at two o'clock in the afternoon,
-accompanied by the Elector Palatine and the Duke of Lennox. On the 18th
-the Commons despatched commissioners to watch the ratifi<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_167" id="Page_167">[167]</a></span>cation of the
-treaty, and "keep up a good correspondence between the two kingdoms."
-Mr. Hume calls them spies; their public appointment and legal
-credentials refute that representation; yet it cannot be a question
-that their intended business was to keep a sharp eye on his Majesty's
-proceedings, and to thwart any sinister design of his which they might
-be able to discover.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Royal Visit to Scotland.</i></div>
-
-<p>By the help of certain letters from Sidney Bere&mdash;afterwards Under
-Secretary of State, who formed one of the royal suite during this
-Scotch visit&mdash;we are able to follow the King into some of the religious
-and social scenes of the northern capital, which the courtier watched
-with much curiosity, and in his own fashion thus describes:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>"The chaplains' places are supplied by Mr. Henderson and another,
-who say grace, but I cannot say read prayers, they being likewise
-extemporary, one in the beginning, then a chapter or two, after that
-another prayer, then a psalm, and so the benediction. This is in the
-Chamber of Presence at the usual hours; the sermons have been hitherto
-in the parish church, though the chapel here be fitted up, but after
-their fashion, without altar or organs."<a name="FNanchor_211_211" id="FNanchor_211_211"></a><a href="#Footnote_211_211" class="fnanchor">[211]</a></p>
-
-<p>"His Majesty is neither wanting in pains nor affection, going every
-morning to their Parliament, and this Sunday was in two of their
-churches, and daily takes the prayer and preachings according to
-their form, which gains much on the people. In a word, his Majesty is
-wholly disposed to settle both Church and State before he leaves this
-place."<a name="FNanchor_212_212" id="FNanchor_212_212"></a><a href="#Footnote_212_212" class="fnanchor">[212]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, August.</div>
-
-<p>"I will only add a relation of a feast, made by this town unto the
-King and the Lords in the Great Hall of the Parliament this day,
-August 30th. The King and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_168" id="Page_168">[168]</a></span> the Prince Elector sat at one table, the
-Lords at another, but both in one room. The Duke of Richmond on one
-side, General Leslie over against, and next him the Marquis Hamilton,
-who gives him the place ordinarily, in respect, (I take it), that his
-commission of General is not yet delivered up. The mayor of the town,
-like a plain Dutch host, bestirred himself bravely, drank a health
-to the King, to the Queen, and the royal Children, and afterwards
-insisted with his Majesty to pledge; and so, in this Scotch familiar
-way, but with a great deal of familiarity, bid the King and the
-Lords welcome, with such hearty expressions as it served both for
-mirth and satisfaction. The glasses went liberally about, and the
-entertainment was great; indeed, over the whole town there was nothing
-but joy and revelling, like a day of jubilee; and this in token of
-the union, which, doubtless, is more firm than ever, by reason of the
-happy intervention of the unity of form of religion, at least for
-the present; and in the King's own practice, which wins much upon
-this people. Yesterday his Majesty was again at the great church
-at sermon, where the bishops were not spared, but put down in such
-language as would a year ago have been at the least a Star Chamber
-business, imputing still all that was amiss to ill counsellors, and so
-ingratiated his Majesty with his people, who indeed show a zeal and
-affection beyond all expression."<a name="FNanchor_213_213" id="FNanchor_213_213"></a><a href="#Footnote_213_213" class="fnanchor">[213]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Royal Visit to Scotland.</i></div>
-
-<p>While reading these extracts we cannot help noticing that the services
-in Edinburgh, attended by the Anglo-Catholic King, in 1641, were as
-different as possible from<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_169" id="Page_169">[169]</a></span> the ceremonial exhibitions arranged
-for Holyrood in 1633, by an Anglo-Catholic bishop, when the musical
-servants, with their chapel goods and paraphernalia were despatched
-by the Dreadnought for the Firth of Forth.<a name="FNanchor_214_214" id="FNanchor_214_214"></a><a href="#Footnote_214_214" class="fnanchor">[214]</a> Experience since then
-had taught some little wisdom in such matters. Defiance having failed,
-conciliation was now attempted, and it would seem that the whole
-political bearing of Charles whilst in Scotland was in keeping with
-his social and religious conduct at that time. He ratified the Acts
-of June, 1640, by which Presbyterianism had become the established
-religion of the country; he bestowed fresh titles and dignities on
-certain noblemen who had opposed him at the council table, and arrayed
-themselves against him in the field; and he consented to the partition
-of ecclesiastical revenues amongst Presbyterian claimants, when, as
-it was said, "leading men, cities, and universities cast lots for the
-garments which had clothed the Episcopal establishment." Such was the
-conduct of the Sovereign on the whole, that he alarmed his friends and
-encouraged his foes; some on both sides concluding that he meant to
-establish Presbyterianism throughout his dominions; but of that idea,
-however, he took care to disabuse "his servants," assuring them of
-his remaining "constant to the discipline and doctrine of the Church
-of England established by Queen Elizabeth and his father," and his
-resolution "by the grace of God to die in the maintenance of it."<a name="FNanchor_215_215" id="FNanchor_215_215"></a><a href="#Footnote_215_215" class="fnanchor">[215]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, September.</div>
-
-<p>When the pacification had been effected, the English<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_170" id="Page_170">[170]</a></span> Parliament
-solemnly celebrated the event on the 7th of September, by attending
-divine worship.<a name="FNanchor_216_216" id="FNanchor_216_216"></a><a href="#Footnote_216_216" class="fnanchor">[216]</a> But the two Houses did not agree in the manner of
-service. Bishop Williams, as Dean of Westminster, had prepared for the
-occasion a form of prayer. The Commons pronounced this to be beyond
-his power, and ordered the prayer not to be read in the liberties of
-Westminster or elsewhere. When the Lords met in the Abbey, the Commons
-went to Lincoln's Inn Chapel, where Burgess and Marshall preached, and
-prayers were offered <i>extempore</i>.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Proceedings of the Commons.</i></div>
-
-<p>The Commons, conscious of strength, perhaps a little over-estimating
-it, were not slow in pressing Church reforms, though they proceeded
-with some caution. At the end of August, they resolved that
-churchwardens should remove communion-tables from the east end of
-churches where they had stood altar-wise, and that they should take
-away the rails, level the chancel floors, and altogether place
-the buildings in the same state as they were in before the recent
-innovations. Perhaps excitement in our own day, respecting usages
-adopted at St. George's in the East, may serve as an illustration of
-the feeling awakened in the middle of the seventeenth century, by
-Anglican worship. Only it is to be remembered that instead of one St.
-George's in the East at that time, there were a hundred in different
-parts of the country. In villages and towns with High Church clergymen,
-and Low Church congregations, where semi-Popish arrangements had been
-adopted in the chancel, while rigid and ultra-Protestant Puritans sat
-in the nave, or absented themselves altogether&mdash;such feuds arose,
-that, to preserve the peace, as well as to check "innovations," the
-Lower House deemed it necessary to interfere. The opposition<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_171" id="Page_171">[171]</a></span> to
-Sunday afternoon lecturing, and the refusal of incumbents to admit
-lecturers into their pulpits, increased the strife; and, in reference
-to this, the Commons interfered by declaring it lawful for the people
-to set up a lecturer at their own charge.<a name="FNanchor_217_217" id="FNanchor_217_217"></a><a href="#Footnote_217_217" class="fnanchor">[217]</a> Bishops inhibited such
-proceedings; but the Commons declared the inhibition void. As bishops
-were members of the Upper House, all this tended to make the breach
-between the two branches of the legislature wider than before.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, September.</div>
-
-<p>The question of worship could not be allowed to rest. "Innovations"
-were still discussed; it was resolved in the Lower House, on the 1st
-September, that scandalous pictures and images should be removed from
-sacred edifices, and candlesticks and basins from the Communion-table,
-that there should be no "corporal bowing" at the name of Jesus, and
-that the Lord's Day should be duly observed.<a name="FNanchor_218_218" id="FNanchor_218_218"></a><a href="#Footnote_218_218" class="fnanchor">[218]</a> The Peers did not
-agree with the other House in all these proceedings; they were prepared
-to command, that no rails should be erected where none existed already;
-that chancels should be levelled if they had been raised within the
-last fifteen years; that all images of the Trinity should be abolished;
-and that any representation of the Virgin set up within twenty years
-should be pulled down. But the Lords declined to forbid bowing at the
-name of Jesus; and&mdash;omitting any direct reply to the message on the
-subject from the Lower House&mdash;they simply resolved to print and publish
-the order of the 16th of January, commanding that divine service
-should be performed according to Act of Parliament; that those who<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_172" id="Page_172">[172]</a></span>
-disturbed "wholesome order" should be punished; and that clergymen
-should introduce no ceremonies which might give offence.<a name="FNanchor_219_219" id="FNanchor_219_219"></a><a href="#Footnote_219_219" class="fnanchor">[219]</a> The
-Commons were highly displeased at this, and immediately published their
-own resolution on their own authority, adding, that they hoped their
-proposed reformations might be perfected; and that, in the mean time,
-the people "should quietly attend the reformation intended," without
-any disturbance of God's worship and the public peace.<a name="FNanchor_220_220" id="FNanchor_220_220"></a><a href="#Footnote_220_220" class="fnanchor">[220]</a></p>
-
-<p>The Houses, on the 9th of September, adjourned their sittings for six
-weeks. When the conflicting orders of Parliament respecting worship
-came before the nation, the Anglicans adhered to the one issued by
-the Lords for preserving things as they were, the Puritans upheld
-the other published by the Commons in favour of reformation: party
-strife consequently increased, leading to fresh disturbances of the
-peace. Resistance to the order of the Commons burst out in St. Giles'
-Cripplegate, St. George's Southwark, and other parishes. There the
-High Church party defended the threatened communion-rails, as though
-they had been the outworks of a beleaguered citadel. On the other
-hand, where Puritanism had the ascendancy, violent opposition was made
-to the reading of the liturgy, service books were torn and surplices
-rent.<a name="FNanchor_221_221" id="FNanchor_221_221"></a><a href="#Footnote_221_221" class="fnanchor">[221]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_173" id="Page_173">[173]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Reaction.</i></div>
-
-<p>A considerable reaction in the state of public feeling began to appear
-in many quarters. There were persons who, having hailed with gratitude
-and delight the earlier measures of the Long Parliament, now felt
-disappointed at the results, and at the further turn which affairs
-were taking. Always, in great revolutions, a multitude of persons
-may be found in whose minds sanguine hope has been inspired by the
-inauguration of change; but, being moderate in their opinions and quiet
-in their habits, they are so terribly alarmed at popular excitement,
-and by the apprehension of impending extravagances of procedure, that
-they call on the drivers of the chariot of reform to pull up, as
-soon as ever the horses have galloped a few yards and a little dust
-begins to rise around the vehicle. Want of skill, reckless haste, even
-mischievous intentions, are sure to be imputed to those who hold the
-reins, and the conviction gains ground that speedily the coach will be
-overturned.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, September.</div>
-
-<p>So it happened in this instance. People who had cheered on Pym and
-his compatriots a few months before, were now becoming thoroughly
-frightened. Semi-Puritans, and other good folks, who wished to see
-matters mended very quietly, thought changes were going a great
-deal too far; also self-interest aided the reaction.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_174" id="Page_174">[174]</a></span> Bishops had
-been assailed, but bishops as yet had neither been dethroned in the
-cathedral nor dismissed from the Upper House. They were provoked
-without being deprived of power, irritated without being divested of
-influence. They still lived in palaces, and had the establishments of
-noblemen, and at the same time they retained the means of attaching to
-them such of the clergy as waited for preferment. Persons of the latter
-description naturally dreaded the impoverishment of the prelates, and
-deprecated taking away the rewards of learning and piety.</p>
-
-<p>They did what they could to make Parliament odious. Many, too, were
-"daily poisoned by the discourses of the friends, kindred, and
-retainers to so many great delinquents, as must needs fear such a
-Parliament." This is stated by a candid contemporary, Thomas May,
-secretary to the Parliament, who dwells at large upon the reaction at
-this period, and points out its causes. Besides those now mentioned,
-he adds: "daily reports of ridiculous conventicles, and preachings
-made by tradesmen and illiterate people of the lowest rank, to the
-scandal and offence of many, which some in a merry way would put off,
-considering the precedent times, that these tradesmen did but take up
-that which prelates and the great doctors had let fall,&mdash;preaching the
-Gospel; that it was but a reciprocal invasion of each other's calling,
-that chandlers, salters, weavers, and such like, preached, when the
-archbishop himself, instead of preaching, was daily busied in projects
-about leather, salt, soap, and such commodities as belonged to those
-tradesmen."</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Reaction.</i></div>
-
-<p>He then proceeds: "but I remember within the compass of a year after,
-(when this civil war began to break out over all the kingdom, and men
-in all companies began to vent their opinions in an argumentative
-way,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_175" id="Page_175">[175]</a></span> either opposing or defending the Parliament cause, and
-treatises were printed on both sides,) many gentlemen who forsook
-the Parliament were very bitter against it for the proceedings in
-religion, in countenancing, or not suppressing, the rudeness of people
-in churches&mdash;acting those things which seemed to be against the
-discipline of the English Church, and might introduce all kinds of
-sects and schisms. Neither did those of the Parliament side agree in
-opinions concerning that point; some said it was wisely done of the
-Parliament not to proceed against any such persons for fear of losing
-a considerable party; others thought and said, that by so doing, they
-would lose a far more considerable party of gentlemen than could be
-gained of the other sort. They also affirmed, that laws and liberties
-having been so much violated by the King, if the Parliament had not so
-far drawn religion also into their cause, it might have sped better;
-for the Parliament frequently at that time, in all their expressions,
-whensoever they charged the corrupt statesmen of injustice and tyranny,
-would put Popery, or a suspicion of it, into the first place against
-them."<a name="FNanchor_222_222" id="FNanchor_222_222"></a><a href="#Footnote_222_222" class="fnanchor">[222]</a></p>
-
-<p>This reaction should be kept in mind, as it will serve to explain some
-things which followed.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_176" id="Page_176">[176]</a></span></p></div>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="illo176" >
- <img
- class="p0"
- src="images/illo176.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER VII.</h2>
-
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Debates by the Commons.</i></div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">After the Commons had resumed their sittings on the 20th of October,
-the difference which had arisen amongst the Puritan members became
-very apparent. The very next day, Sir Edward Dering questioned the
-legality of the recent order of the House respecting Divine worship;
-and the day after that, he indicated a still wider divergence from
-the policy of his former political friends. Upon a new bill being
-then introduced for excluding Bishops from Parliament&mdash;a bill which
-was, in fact, a reproduction of the old measure which the Lords had
-rejected&mdash;the Commons resolved to have a conference with the Upper
-House, respecting the thirteen accused prelates, and to request that
-the other occupants of the episcopal bench should be prevented from
-voting on this particular question, which so vitally affected their
-own personal interests. All this so alarmed the member for Kent that
-he hastily rose, and delivered a speech indicative of a still more
-decided veering toward the conservative point of the compass; for
-he went so far as to say that he did not conceive the House to be
-competent and fit to pronounce upon questions of Divinity. It seemed
-to him, he remarked, a thing unheard of, that soldiers, lawyers, and
-merchants should decide points which properly belonged to theologians.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_177" id="Page_177">[177]</a></span>
-Laymen, he considered, should maintain only those doctrines which
-were authorized and established, and should leave the exposition and
-advocacy of what was new to a regularly constituted ecclesiastical
-assembly, in short, "a synod of Divines chosen by Divines." Whether or
-not he was animated in his retrograde course by cheers which came from
-the conservative benches, Sir Edward the following day bewailed the
-miseries of the Church between "Papism" on the one hand, and "Brownism"
-on the other; and instead of dwelling, as he had been wont to do, on
-"Puritan sufferings," his sympathies were now entirely bestowed on the
-opposite party. He related a story of two clergymen who had preached
-thousands of excellent sermons, but who now, like other deserving men,
-saw their infected sheep, after long pastoral vigilance, straggling
-from the fold, and mingling with the sects. Government, he complained,
-had begun to permit a loose liberty of religion; and, amidst varieties
-of opinion, and the perils of unity, what, he asked, could be thought
-of but a council&mdash;"a free, learned, grave, religious synod?"<a name="FNanchor_223_223" id="FNanchor_223_223"></a><a href="#Footnote_223_223" class="fnanchor">[223]</a> Such
-a style of address seems strangely at variance with the speaker's
-earlier speeches in this very Parliament, and also with proceedings
-which the House had adopted in accordance with his own impetuous
-appeals. The course which he now pursued was in decided opposition to
-his conduct when he spoke from the gallery of the House on behalf of
-the bill for the abolition of Episcopacy; and subsequent proceedings by
-this gentleman, in the same new direction, are yet to come under our
-notice. But, after all, the lapse of four months had not essentially
-altered his character. He was in October only the same versa<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_178" id="Page_178">[178]</a></span>tile and
-impetuous, but well-meaning person, which he had shewn himself to be in
-May.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, September.</div>
-
-<p>Another member, who expressed his alarm at the distractions of the
-times, was Mr. Smith, of the Middle Temple. While denouncing the "Book
-of Sports" and the persecutions inflicted by the Anglican party, he
-deplored existing differences of religious opinion, and besought his
-countrymen to worship God with one mind, and not go every one a way
-by himself. In the stilted euphuism of the day, he lamented that
-uncertainty staggers the unresolved soul, and leads it into such a
-labyrinth, that, not knowing where to fix for fear of erring, it
-adheres to nothing, and so dies ere it performs that for which it was
-made to live. Uniformity in religious worship, he proceeded to say, is
-that which pleaseth God, and, if we will thus serve Him, we may expect
-His protection; and then, passing over to the constitutional question,
-the orator declared both prerogative and liberty to be necessary, and
-that like the sun and moon they gave a lustre to the nation, so long
-as they walked at proper distances. But, he added, when one ventures
-into the other's orbit, like planets in conjunction, they then occasion
-a deep eclipse. "What shall be the compass, then, by which these two
-must steer? Why, nothing but the same by which they subsist&mdash;the law,
-which if it might run in the free current of its purity, without being
-poisoned by the venomous spirits of ill-affected dispositions, would
-so fix the King to his crown that it would make him stand like a
-star in the firmament, for the neighbour world to behold and tremble
-at."<a name="FNanchor_224_224" id="FNanchor_224_224"></a><a href="#Footnote_224_224" class="fnanchor">[224]</a> Smith did not plunge into that ecclesiastical reaction which
-had carried Dering completely away; but he con<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_179" id="Page_179">[179]</a></span>tended for some measure
-of uniformity and for the suppression of increasing sects, whilst in
-political matters he recommended a course of moderation.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Debates by the Commons.</i></div>
-
-<p>Another individual&mdash;far different from this pedantic adviser, and
-incapable of the tergiversations of the representative for Kent, though
-he is not to be confounded with reckless revolutionists&mdash;was still
-inflexibly pushing forward those ecclesiastical and political reforms
-which he had inaugurated by the blow he struck at Strafford, the patron
-and upholder of arbitrary power. Pym supported the new bill against
-Bishops, and managed the conference respecting the impeachment of
-the obnoxious thirteen prelates, and the prevention of the remaining
-occupants of the Bench from voting upon this question. He asked whether
-those who had made the hateful canons, who had endeavoured to deprive
-the subject of his liberties, and who were accused of sedition, were
-fit to be continued as legislators? St. John, the Solicitor General,
-and "dark-lantern man," supported Pym, and supplied an erudite legal
-argument to shew that bishops did not sit in the Upper House as
-representatives of the clergy; and that their right of peerage differed
-from the claim of temporal lords&mdash;they having no vote in judgments
-touching life and death, and their consent not being essential to the
-integrity of an Act of Parliament.<a name="FNanchor_225_225" id="FNanchor_225_225"></a><a href="#Footnote_225_225" class="fnanchor">[225]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, October.</div>
-
-<p>Change and reaction went on. There had long been much talk about some
-"Grand Remonstrance," and a committee had been appointed as soon
-as Parliament assembled, to draw up such a document. In April the
-committee had been directed to collect a list of grievances, and on
-the 22nd of November the long delayed paper<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_180" id="Page_180">[180]</a></span> came before the House,
-to be "briskly debated." This remarkable production deals largely
-with ecclesiastical affairs; and the intimate connection between the
-religion and the politics of the times is apparent throughout its
-various contents. In a series of numbered propositions, amounting
-altogether to 206, the history of arbitrary government is carefully
-traced from the beginning of Charles' reign; religious grievances are
-made distinct and prominent; complaints appear of Papists, bishops,
-and courtiers, who had aimed at suppressing the purity and power of
-religion, and who had cherished Arminian sentiments; prelates and
-the rest of the clergy are depicted as triumphing in the degradation
-of painful and learned ministers; and the High Commission Court is
-compared to the Romish Inquisition. The vexatiousness of episcopal
-tribunals shares in the general censure, and the exile and depression
-of Puritans are noticed with the deepest sorrow;&mdash;preaching up the
-prerogative, sympathy with Papists, superstitious innovations, the late
-canons, the toleration of Papists, and the permission of a Papal nuncio
-at court, are all deplored as very great evils, whilst an opinion is
-expressed that there is little hope of amendment so long as Bishops
-and recusant Lords remain numerous, and continue to misrepresent the
-designs of the patriots.<a name="FNanchor_226_226" id="FNanchor_226_226"></a><a href="#Footnote_226_226" class="fnanchor">[226]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Debates by the Commons.</i></div>
-
-<p>Yet it is affirmed that there exists no intention of loosing the golden
-reins of discipline, and of leaving to private persons and particular
-congregations the right to take up what Divine service they pleased.
-Horror respecting a general toleration is plainly confessed, and
-the remonstrants advocate Conformity "to that order which the laws
-enjoin according to the Word of God," even while they are desirous
-of unburdening the con<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_181" id="Page_181">[181]</a></span>science from superstitious ceremonies and are
-taking away the monuments of idolatry. A general synod is suggested as
-the remedy for ecclesiastical evils, and care is advised to be taken
-for the advancement of learning, and the preaching of the Gospel. The
-two Universities are referred to as fountains of knowledge which should
-be made clear and pure.</p>
-
-<p>The sting of the Remonstrance is found in its head, not in its tail. In
-the petition prefixed, the King is asked to concur with his subjects
-in depriving the bishops of their votes in Parliament, in abridging
-their power over the clergy and people, in staying the oppression of
-religion, in uniting loyal Protestants together against disaffected
-Papists, and in removing unnecessary ceremonies, which were a burden
-to weak and scrupulous consciences. Such requests were opposed to
-his Majesty's ideas of the constitution of the Church, though the
-remonstrants were prepared to rebut the charge of there being anything
-whatever revolutionary in their proposals and requests.</p>
-
-<p>Looking at the current of Parliamentary debates for the last twelve
-months, the Remonstrance may be regarded as presenting to us the
-sentiments of the patriotic party. Sir Edward Dering, in May,
-had gone beyond this remonstrance, far beyond it; but Sir Edward
-Dering, in November, though the same character that he ever was,
-had become another kind of politician. The same remarks will apply
-to others. He now disputed some of the statements in this famous
-political instrument, vindicated several of the accused bishops and
-clergy, protested against the spoliation of ecclesiastical estates,
-and intimated his apprehension of the perilous consequences which
-would follow the changes now set on foot. Other members pronounced
-the measure to be unnecessary and unreasonable, because several of
-the grievances now<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_182" id="Page_182">[182]</a></span> complained of were already redressed; and they
-declared that the King, after his concessions, ought not on his return
-from Scotland to be received by his loyal subjects with ungrateful
-reproaches.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, November.</div>
-
-<p>More was lying underneath the Remonstrance than appeared upon the
-surface. Looking at the character of the King, his obvious want of
-sincerity, and his manifest intention to recover what he had lost of
-arbitrary power whenever he should have the opportunity; considering
-also the reinvigorated spirit of the party opposed to constitutional
-reforms; further, taking into account the reaction going on, which
-had withdrawn from the remonstrants certain active confederates;
-and pondering, too, the unsettled and disturbed condition of the
-country at large&mdash;the authors of this important measure foresaw that
-matters could not rest where they were, and that more must be done,
-or everything would be lost. Breaches made in the Constitution by its
-enemies, rendered extraordinary efforts necessary for the preservation
-of popular freedom. Calculating, therefore, on further and more serious
-struggles, the advanced party determined to make their instrument
-in question a manifesto, to which they might afterwards appeal in
-self-justification when that day of battle should come, which appeared
-to them then, both so likely and so near. This must be remembered, or
-the Remonstrance will not be understood.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Debates by the Commons.</i></div>
-
-<p>Regarded by its supporters as their palladium, it was strenuously
-opposed by courtiers and reactionists. The debate upon the measure,
-which took place on Monday, November the 22nd, lasted beyond midnight.
-After lights had been brought in, the members&mdash;amidst the gloom of St.
-Stephen's chapel and the glimmer of a few candles&mdash;continued hotly
-to dispute respecting this great question, with looks of sternest
-resolution; very<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_183" id="Page_183">[183]</a></span> distinct to us even now, although upon the darkness
-made visible, there also rest the shadows of two centuries and a
-half. Puritans and High Churchmen that night uttered sharp words
-against each other, as they stood face to face and foot to foot in
-conflict. A division arose on the clause for reducing the power of
-Bishops, when 161 voted for it and 147 against it. On the grand
-division soon afterwards, respecting the Remonstrance itself, 159
-voted that it should pass, 148 took the opposite side. This gave but a
-scant majority. Immediately on the announcement of the result, there
-arose a discussion as to the printing of the document&mdash;a discussion
-which became more violent than the former ones.<a name="FNanchor_227_227" id="FNanchor_227_227"></a><a href="#Footnote_227_227" class="fnanchor">[227]</a> The printing of
-the Remonstrance at once, prior to its being adopted by the Upper
-House, and prior to its being presented to the Sovereign, could not
-but be regarded as a step indicative of the elements of the English
-Constitution being thrown into a state of lamentable derangement. Hyde
-declared that he was sure the printing of it would be mischievous, and
-also unlawful: and then proceeded to assert for himself the right of
-protest, which, in a member of the Lower House, was an act as irregular
-as even the printing of the Remonstrance could be. Up started Jeffrey
-Palmer, "a man of great reputation," and likewise claimed that he<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_184" id="Page_184">[184]</a></span>
-might protest "Protest, protest," rung in wrathful tones from other
-lips; and some members, in the storm of their excitement, were on the
-point of bringing dishonour upon themselves and upon the House. "We had
-catched at each other's locks," says Sir Philip Warwick, "and sheathed
-our swords in each other's bowels, had not the sagacity and calmness of
-Mr. Hampden, by a short speech, prevented it, and led us to defer our
-angry debate until next morning."<a name="FNanchor_228_228" id="FNanchor_228_228"></a><a href="#Footnote_228_228" class="fnanchor">[228]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, November.</div>
-
-<p>In corroboration of this general statement, and for the filling up of
-this graphic outline, happily we can turn to the journal of D'Ewes, the
-Puritan, who, like Warwick, was present, but who took the other side in
-the controversy. In answer to a question, as to who claimed the right
-of protest, there were loud cries of "All! All!!" This reporter, who
-took part with the patriots, goes on to say: "And some waved their hats
-over their heads, and others took their swords in their scabbards out
-of their belts, and held them by the pummels in their hands, setting
-the lower part on the ground, so as if God had not prevented it, there
-was very great danger that mischief might have been done. All those
-who cried, 'All! all!' and did the other particulars, were of the
-number of those that were against the Remonstrance."<a name="FNanchor_229_229" id="FNanchor_229_229"></a><a href="#Footnote_229_229" class="fnanchor">[229]</a> Whether or
-not D'Ewes was right in attributing these acts of warlike defiance
-<i>exclusively</i> to his opponents&mdash;in the faint rays of the candle-light
-he could not have seen very distinctly all which was going on&mdash;he
-certainly substantiates the account given by Warwick of extensive
-violent confusion, a Parliamentary tempest in short, calmed by the
-wisdom and moderation of John Hampden. Before the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_185" id="Page_185">[185]</a></span> Commons broke up,
-on that memorable night, it was resolved by 124 against 101, that the
-declaration should "not be printed without the particular order of the
-House," a conclusion which left the publication of the Remonstrance
-open for the present.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Debates by the Commons.</i></div>
-
-<p>"The chimes of St. Margaret's were striking two in the morning," as
-Oliver Cromwell came down stairs, and, according to rumour, recorded by
-Clarendon, met Lord Falkland, and whispered in his ear, "that if the
-Remonstrance had been rejected, he would have sold all he had the next
-morning, and never have seen England more; and he knew there were many
-other honest men of the same resolution."<a name="FNanchor_230_230" id="FNanchor_230_230"></a><a href="#Footnote_230_230" class="fnanchor">[230]</a></p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_186" id="Page_186">[186]</a></span></p></div>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="illo186" >
- <img
- class="p0"
- src="images/illo186.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER VIII.</h2>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">Charles returned from the North improved in spirits, fancying he
-had made a favourable impression upon his Scottish subjects, and
-pondering sanguine schemes for crushing the power of Pym, and of all
-the patriots. The reaction towards the close of the summer of 1641,
-which we have already described, was decidedly in his favour&mdash;and there
-seemed room to expect that Parliament, after the course which the King
-now seemed disposed to pursue, might, in its eagerness for victory,
-place itself altogether in a false position.</p>
-
-<p>During his stay in Edinburgh, he had been anxious to fill up
-certain vacant bishoprics, but delayed doing so at the request of
-Parliament. Soon after his return, he made Williams,&mdash;then Bishop of
-Lincoln,&mdash;Archbishop of York; and appointed Dr. Winniffe to succeed
-Williams. Dr. Duppa was translated from Chichester to Salisbury; King,
-Dean of Rochester, was promoted to Chichester; Hall had the See of
-Norwich presented to him in the room of Exeter; where he was followed
-by Brownrigg, who had been Master of Catherine Hall, Cambridge; Skinner
-went from Bristol to Oxford; Westfield had the former See conferred on
-him, and Ussher received the Bishopric of Carlisle <i>in commendam</i>. A
-conciliatory<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_187" id="Page_187">[187]</a></span> temper appeared in the episcopal arrangements thus made
-by His Majesty, inasmuch as all the prelates whom he now appointed and
-advanced were popular men, and were well esteemed by the Puritan party.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>The King's Reception.</i></div>
-
-<p>Charles, on his arrival in town on the 25th of November, received a
-welcome which vied in splendour with the renowned receptions given to
-our Edwards and Henries. The Lord Mayor and Aldermen in their robes;
-citizens in velvet coats; and noblemen richly apparelled, with a goodly
-array of trumpeters, pursuivants, equerries, and sheriffs' men, wearing
-scarlet coats, and silver-laced hats crowned with feathers, marched
-to meet the Royal party at Moorgate, whence they proceeded&mdash;the King
-on horseback, the Queen in her richly embroidered coach,&mdash;by way of
-Bishopsgate, Cornhill, and Cheapside, to Guildhall; the streets being
-lined by the livery companies, and adorned with banners, ensigns, and
-pendants of arms. The conduits in Cheapside ran with claret, and along
-the line of procession the people shouted "God bless, and long live
-King Charles, and Queen Mary."<a name="FNanchor_231_231" id="FNanchor_231_231"></a><a href="#Footnote_231_231" class="fnanchor">[231]</a> A grand banquet followed on the
-hustings of the Old City Hall; the floor being covered with Turkey
-carpets, and the walls hung with rich tapestry. Their majesties sat
-in chairs of state, under a grand canopy, and the royal table was
-covered with "all sorts of fish, fowl, and flesh, to the number of
-120 dishes, of the choicest kinds," with "sweetmeats and confections,
-wet and dry." After a short repose, at about four o'clock, the Royal
-party advanced towards Whitehall; and as the evening shadows fell upon
-the spectacle, the footmen exchanged their truncheons for flambeaux,
-"which gave so great a light, as that the night seemed to be turned
-into<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_188" id="Page_188">[188]</a></span> day." Trumpets, bands of music, and the acclamations of the
-people,&mdash;according to the chroniclers&mdash;made the streets ring again.<a name="FNanchor_232_232" id="FNanchor_232_232"></a><a href="#Footnote_232_232" class="fnanchor">[232]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, November.</div>
-
-<p>This exhibition so artistically contrived, which had been a subject
-of much correspondence with the King, as well as of deliberation on
-the part of the citizens, had a no less religious than political
-significancy. A year before, Presbyterians and Sectaries had made
-themselves conspicuous by "Root and Branch petitions," and since then,
-their activity had not declined, or their numbers diminished. On the
-contrary, the sectaries had increased, and had given alarming signs of
-zeal, in purifying certain Churches from the abominations of idolatry,
-and in organizing ecclesiastical societies of their own quite apart
-from the establishment.</p>
-
-<p>In this state of things, the conservative portion of the corporation,
-and the citizens who sympathized with them, had, for the purpose of a
-party demonstration, elected a Lord Mayor who was a decided Royalist
-and a High Churchman. "The factious persons," remarks Sir Edward
-Nicholas, writing on this subject to the King, "were making a noise,
-and would not proceed to the election, when the sheriff proposed
-Alderman Gourney (who I hear is very well-affected and stout) and
-carried it; and the schismatics who cried 'no election,' were silenced
-with hisses, and thereupon the Sheriff dismissed the Court."<a name="FNanchor_233_233" id="FNanchor_233_233"></a><a href="#Footnote_233_233" class="fnanchor">[233]</a> This
-victory equally gratified Sir Edward and his master, and placed at
-the head of the costly civic reception, a gentleman in whom the King
-had the fullest confidence. More indeed was intended, both of loyal
-and religious demonstration, by the party who now took<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_189" id="Page_189">[189]</a></span> the lead in
-the City, than they were able to accomplish. A present of money and
-an address in favour of Episcopacy had been proposed, but without
-success.<a name="FNanchor_234_234" id="FNanchor_234_234"></a><a href="#Footnote_234_234" class="fnanchor">[234]</a> Notwithstanding, the King took care, in answer to the
-address of the recorder and corporation&mdash;as they stood by Moorgate,
-bare-headed,&mdash;to assure them of his determination, at the hazard of
-his life and of all that was dear to him, to maintain and protect the
-Protestant religion, as it had been established by his two famous
-predecessors, Queen Elizabeth and his father King James.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>The King's Reception.</i></div>
-
-<p>Some significancy is to be attached to a little display at the south
-door of St. Paul's Cathedral, where "the quire in their surplices,
-with sackbuts, and cornets, sung an anthem of praise to God, with
-prayers for their Majesties' long lives, that his Majesty was extremely
-pleased with it, and gave them very particular thanks."<a name="FNanchor_235_235" id="FNanchor_235_235"></a><a href="#Footnote_235_235" class="fnanchor">[235]</a> For
-unobjectionable as this kind of music might now-a-days appear even
-to a staunch nonconformist, it had a look, at that period, of stern,
-jealous, and watchful controversy, very obvious and very annoying to
-presbyterians and "sectaries;" so that, altogether, this City affair
-became a decided success for<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_190" id="Page_190">[190]</a></span> the King and the Church party, and as
-such, Royalists and Anglicans greatly rejoiced in it.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, December.</div>
-
-<p>"Londoners are a set of disaffected schismatics, bent upon upsetting
-the godly order of things which they received from their fathers,"
-was the opinion of many a country knight and yeoman, as he turned his
-attention to the metropolis, and thought of the current stories of the
-day. "No," said one, who sympathized with the Court, in a letter he
-wrote to a friend just at that time, "you much mistake, if you think
-that those insolent and seditious meetings of sectaries, and others
-ill affected, who have lately been at the Parliament House, to cry for
-justice against the delinquent bishops, are the representative body of
-the city. They are not. The representative body of the city is the Lord
-Mayor, Aldermen, and Common Council, who gave the entertainment to the
-King, and will stick to him to live and die in his service. As for the
-rest, when the House of Commons please to give laws to suppress them,
-we shall quickly see an end of these distractions both in Church and
-Commonwealth, and, therefore, I pray give no ill interpretation to our
-actions."<a name="FNanchor_236_236" id="FNanchor_236_236"></a><a href="#Footnote_236_236" class="fnanchor">[236]</a> These words show what capital the clique, to which the
-writer belonged, was determined to make out of the grand pageant which
-had just come off with so much <i>éclat</i>.</p>
-
-<p>The King himself, who was disposed to construe the conduct of the
-citizens as having a political and ecclesiastical signification, had
-on the occasion of his entry, knighted the Lord Mayor and Recorder,
-doubtless with a feeling which made it more than a formal ceremony. He
-had also conferred a like honour, a few days after<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_191" id="Page_191">[191]</a></span>wards, at Hampton
-Court, upon certain Aldermen, who had come to thank him for accepting
-their entertainment.</p>
-
-<p>The reception of these civic dignitaries in the old palace of Cardinal
-Wolsey occurred on the 3rd of December.<a name="FNanchor_237_237" id="FNanchor_237_237"></a><a href="#Footnote_237_237" class="fnanchor">[237]</a> A very different kind of
-audience had been held within the same walls two days before.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>The Remonstrance.</i></div>
-
-<p>A committee for presenting the Remonstrance had been appointed by the
-Commons, composed of persons not likely to be offensive to the King,
-including Sir Edward Dering, who, in spite of his opposition to the
-measure, was requested to read and present the document; but, when the
-time came, he "being out of the way," Sir Ralph Hopton took his place.
-The deputation started in the afternoon, and their object being well
-understood by the populace, they would attract much attention, as they
-travelled along under leafless trees, and a wintry sky, and drew up at
-last before the old gates at Hampton Court. After they had waited a
-quarter of an hour in the anteroom, the King sent a gentleman to call
-them to his presence, with an order that no one besides the deputation
-should be admitted. He received his "faithful Commons" with some
-anxiety, but in addition to his other encouragements, at that moment
-there remained the halo thrown round him by the late entry; and it
-would not be forgotten by the monarch as the members knelt before him,
-that the Remonstrance which they brought&mdash;(as obnoxious to royalty as
-it was dear to the patriots)&mdash;had been<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_192" id="Page_192">[192]</a></span> after all carried only by a
-scant majority. Sir Ralph Hopton, who headed the deputation, commenced
-reading the document on his bended knees, when his Majesty commanded
-all the members to rise: and as soon as that passage was reached, which
-alluded to the desire of the malignants to change the religion of the
-country, the King exclaimed, "The devil take him, whomsoever he be,
-that had a design to change religion." Upon reference to the disposal
-of the estates of the Irish rebels, he added, "We must not dispose of
-the bear's skin till he be dead." His Majesty proceeding to put some
-questions, the wary members replied, "We had no commission to speak any
-thing concerning this business." "Doth the House intend to publish this
-declaration?" Charles afterwards asked&mdash;thus touching the core of the
-matter. "We can give no answer," persisted the reticent diplomatists.
-"Well then," he rejoined, "I suppose you do not now expect an answer
-to so long a petition." A very reasonable remark, looking at the two
-hundred and more clauses which the petition contained.<a name="FNanchor_238_238" id="FNanchor_238_238"></a><a href="#Footnote_238_238" class="fnanchor">[238]</a> When the
-answer did come, it included this carefully-worded paragraph:&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, December.</div>
-
-<p>"Unto that clause which concerneth corruptions (as you style them) in
-religion, in Church government, and in discipline, and the removing of
-such unnecessary ceremonies as weak consciences might check, that for
-any illegal innovations, which may have crept in, we shall willingly
-concur in the removal of them. That if our Parliament shall advise us
-to call a national synod, which may duly examine such ceremonies as
-give just cause of offence to any, we shall take it into consideration,
-and apply ourself to give due satisfaction therein, but we are very
-sorry to hear in such general terms, corruption in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_193" id="Page_193">[193]</a></span> religion objected,
-since we are persuaded in our conscience, that no church can be found
-upon the earth that professeth the true religion with more purity of
-doctrine than the Church of England doth; nor where the government and
-discipline are jointly more beautified, and free from superstition,
-than as they are here established by law; which by the grace of God, we
-will with constancy maintain (while we live) in their purity and glory,
-not only against all invasions of popery, but also from the irreverence
-of those many schismatics and separatists, wherewith of late this
-kingdom and this city abound, to the great dishonour and hazard both of
-Church and State, for the suppression of whom we require your timely
-aid and active assistance."<a name="FNanchor_239_239" id="FNanchor_239_239"></a><a href="#Footnote_239_239" class="fnanchor">[239]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Arrest of the Five Members.</i></div>
-
-<p>After the Remonstrance had been presented, affairs remained hopeful to
-the Royal eye; and as the Commons had issued their ordinance touching
-religious worship, the King on the 10th of December published one of
-his own, enjoining strict conformity to the form of divine service as
-by law established. But whatever advantages he might possess at the
-close of 1641, all were forfeited by the monstrously rash attempt to
-arrest the five members at the beginning of 1642. That fatal act rung
-the death-knell of his hopes throughout the country, startling at
-once friends and foes. A letter by Captain Robert Slingsby to Admiral
-Pennington gives a Royalist version of the affair, which happened on
-the 4th of January.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, December.</div>
-
-<p>"All parts of the court being thronged with gentlemen and officers
-of the army, in the afternoon the King went with them all, his own
-guard and the pensioners, most of the gentlemen armed with swords and
-pistols. When we came into Westminster Hall, which was thronged with<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_194" id="Page_194">[194]</a></span>
-the number, the King commanded us all to stay there; and himself, with
-a very small train, went into the House of Commons, where never king
-was (as they say), but once, King Henry VIII." The writer, who remained
-in the lobby, then proceeds to report what occurred inside the House;
-depending for his information, it appears, on some member, from whose
-lips he had eagerly caught up the following account:&mdash;"He came very
-unexpectedly; and at first coming in commanded the Speaker to come
-out of his chair, and sat down in it himself, asking divers times,
-whether those traitors were there, but had no answer; but at last an
-excuse, that by the orders of the House, they might not speak when
-their Speaker was out of his chair. The King then asked the Speaker,
-who excused himself, that he might not speak but what the House gave
-order to him to say, whereupon the King replied, 'it was no matter, for
-he knew them all if he saw them.' And after he had viewed them all,
-he made a speech to them very majestically, declaring his resolution
-to have them, though they were then absent; promising not to infringe
-any of their liberties of Parliament, but commanding them to send the
-traitors to him, if they came there again. And after his coming out,
-he gave orders to the Serjeant-at-arms to find them out and attach
-them. Before the King's coming, the House were very high; and (as I
-was informed), sent to the city for four thousand men to be presently
-sent down to them for their guard: but none came, all the city being
-terribly amazed with that unexpected charge of those persons; shops all
-shut, many of which do still continue so. They likewise sent to the
-trained bands in the Court of Guard, before Whitehall, to command them
-to disband, but they stayed still."</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Arrest of the Five Members.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, December.</div>
-
-<p>The same correspondent then relates what he had<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_195" id="Page_195">[195]</a></span> himself witnessed in
-London. "Yesterday it was my fortune, being in a coach, to meet the
-King with a small train going into the City; whereupon I followed him
-to Guildhall, where the Mayor, all the Aldermen, and Common Council
-were met. The King made a speech to them, declaring his intention to
-join with the Parliament in extirpation of popery and all schisms and
-sectaries; of redressing of all grievances of the subject, and his
-care to preserve the privileges of the Parliament: but to question
-these traitors, the reason of his guards for securing himself, the
-Parliament, and them from those late tumults, and something of the
-Irish; and at last had some familiar discourse to the Aldermen, and
-invited himself to dinner to the Sheriff. After a little pause a cry
-was set up amongst the Common Council, 'Parliament, privileges of
-Parliament;' and presently another, 'God bless the King'&mdash;these two
-continued both at once a good while. I know not which was louder.
-After some knocking for silence, the King commanded one to speak, if
-they had anything to say; one said, 'It is the vote of this Court
-that your Majesty hear the advice of your Parliament'&mdash;but presently
-another answered&mdash;'It is not the vote of this Court, it is your own
-vote.' The King replied, 'Who is it that says, I do not take the
-advice of my Parliament? I do take their advice, and will; but I must
-distinguish between the Parliament and some traitors in it;' and those
-he would bring to legal trial. Another bold fellow, in the lowest rank,
-stood up upon a form, and cried, 'The privileges of Parliament;' and
-another cried out, 'Observe the man, apprehend him.' The King mildly
-replied, 'I have, and will observe all privileges of Parliament, but no
-privileges can prevent a traitor from a legal trial'&mdash;and so departed.
-In the outer hall were a multitude of the ruder people, who, as<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_196" id="Page_196">[196]</a></span> the
-King went out, set up a great cry, 'The privileges of Parliament.' At
-the King's coming home, there was a mean fellow came into the privy
-chamber, who had a paper sealed up, which he would needs deliver to
-the King himself&mdash;with his much importunity he was urged to be mad or
-drunk, but he denied both. The gentleman usher took the paper from him
-and carried it to the King, desiring some gentleman there to keep the
-man. He was presently sent for in, and is kept a prisoner, but I know
-not where."<a name="FNanchor_240_240" id="FNanchor_240_240"></a><a href="#Footnote_240_240" class="fnanchor">[240]</a> The arrest, which with its accompanying circumstances
-is vividly brought before us in this letter by Slingsby, was a fatal
-crisis in the history of Charles I. He thought by one stroke of policy
-to crush his enemies, but the avenging deities, shod in felt, were
-turning round on the infatuated prince, who could not perceive his own
-danger, but was in a fool's paradise, dreaming of restored absolutism.
-The liberties of the country having now become more obviously, perhaps
-more completely, than before, imperilled by the sovereign's misconduct,
-the national indignation was immediately aroused; and whatever Anglican
-and Royalist reaction might have set in from Michaelmas to Christmas,
-the tide turned, and furiously rushed in the opposite direction after
-New Year's Day. Such a defiance of the Constitution by the King, such a
-manifestation of despotism, after promising to rule according to law,
-left no doubt as to his character, his principles, and his motives.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Westminster Riots.</i></div>
-
-<p>The arrest was interpreted as an assault upon the interests of
-Puritanism, no less than upon the liberties of the nation; because the
-one cause had become identified with the other, and the friends of
-reformation in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_197" id="Page_197">[197]</a></span> the Established Church, and the separatists who stood
-outside of it, saw that their hopes would be entirely cut off if the
-King were permitted to re-establish his despotic rule, or if he were
-allowed to perpetrate with impunity such a political crime as the
-arrest involved.</p>
-
-<p>Other circumstances had helped forward the political reaction in favour
-of the Puritan cause. Not only had the popular dislike to Bishops
-continued in London, Southwark, and Lambeth, in spite of all which
-might appear to the contrary in the civic doings on the King's return,
-but the revived spirit of ecclesiastical conservation roused afresh
-the spirit of ecclesiastical revolution. After petitions had flowed
-in from different parts of the country in favour of Episcopacy, the
-Aldermen,<a name="FNanchor_241_241" id="FNanchor_241_241"></a><a href="#Footnote_241_241" class="fnanchor">[241]</a> Common Council, and other inhabitants of London, went
-down to Westminster in sixty coaches, carrying a counter petition for
-removing prelates and popish peers from their seats in Parliament.
-Crowds also assembled on Blackheath for a similar purpose; and the
-Puritan clergy of London again addressed the House, for taking
-away whatever should appear to be the cause of those grievances
-which remained in existence.<a name="FNanchor_242_242" id="FNanchor_242_242"></a><a href="#Footnote_242_242" class="fnanchor">[242]</a> The Prayer Book&mdash;said these
-ministers&mdash;continued to be vexatiously enforced, and what remedy, asked
-they, for this and other evils could there be but the debate of a free
-synod, and till that was held some relaxation on matters of ceremony?
-The London apprentices at such a time could not be quiet, and impelled
-by their own zeal, and perhaps also guided by their masters' commands,
-they in large numbers put their hands to a farther "Root and Branch"
-petition.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, December.</div>
-
-<p>Every day the lobbies of the Houses were thronged by people eagerly
-watching the fate of the documents which<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_198" id="Page_198">[198]</a></span> expressed their opinions.
-Every day the area of Westminster Hall echoed with the tramp of
-jostling crowds and the loud buzz of angry talk touching Church and
-Bishops. Episcopalians came face to face with Puritans and Separatists.
-Staid and sober citizens anxious for reform, were elbowed by rollicking
-country squires, who wished to see things restored to the state in
-which they had been in the days of Lord Strafford. Cavaliers, full of
-pride and state, crossed the path of patriots whom they denounced as
-the enemies of their country. Soldiers, with swords by their side,
-marched up and down amidst the rabble, who carried staves or clubs.
-Roistering apprentices, with idlers and vagabonds of all descriptions,
-putting on a semblance of religious zeal, shouted at the top of their
-voice favourite watchwords as they went along, and delighted in all
-sorts of mischief.<a name="FNanchor_243_243" id="FNanchor_243_243"></a><a href="#Footnote_243_243" class="fnanchor">[243]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Westminster Riots.</i></div>
-
-<p>December the 27th, being the Monday after Christmas Day, Colonel
-Lunsford, just appointed Lieutenant of the Tower&mdash;much to the
-disquietude of the Londoners, who denounced him as a Papist, and as
-being on that account utterly unfit for such a trust&mdash;came into the
-Hall; when<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_199" id="Page_199">[199]</a></span> some of the citizens beginning to abuse him, he and his
-companions drew their swords. The same day, Archbishop Williams walked
-towards the House of Peers with the Earl of Dover, when an apprentice
-lad, seeing his Grace, vociferated the popular cry of "No Bishop."
-This so aroused the Welshman's ire, that, leaving his noble friend,
-he rushed toward the vulgar urchin, and laid hands on him. This
-unbecoming act,&mdash;for "a Bishop should be no striker,"&mdash;made the wrath
-of the populace boil up afresh; and hemming in the prelate so that
-he could not stir, they continued shouting in his ears, "No Bishop,"
-"No Bishop:" until they proceeded to an act of violence, and tore his
-gown "as he passed from the stairhead into the entry that leads to
-the Lords' House."<a name="FNanchor_244_244" id="FNanchor_244_244"></a><a href="#Footnote_244_244" class="fnanchor">[244]</a> It is also stated that he was beaten by the
-prentices. A blustering "reformado," named David Hide, mingled in
-the fray, and looking savagely on the apprentices with their cropped
-hair, declared that he would cut the throats of "those round-headed
-dogs that bawled against bishops."<a name="FNanchor_245_245" id="FNanchor_245_245"></a><a href="#Footnote_245_245" class="fnanchor">[245]</a> "Round-headed,"&mdash;the words so
-aptly fitted to the London lads&mdash;took with the Cavalier gentlemen;
-they forthwith applied it to the whole Puritan party, and so David
-Hide's impromptu became Court slang, and rose into the dignity of a
-world-known appellation.</p>
-
-<p>The next day, certain people in the Abbey, who said that they were
-tarrying there a little while for some friends, who had just brought up
-a petition, but who were charged<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_200" id="Page_200">[200]</a></span> with coming to commit depredations
-in the sacred edifice, were attacked by the retainers of Archbishop
-Williams&mdash;who continued Dean of Westminster&mdash;and a sort of siege and
-assault followed. Amidst the riot and uproar several persons were
-hurt, and a stone thrown from the battlements<a name="FNanchor_246_246" id="FNanchor_246_246"></a><a href="#Footnote_246_246" class="fnanchor">[246]</a> fatally injured Sir
-Richard Wiseman, who appeared conspicuous amongst the anti-episcopal
-citizens.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, December.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Westminster Riots.</i></div>
-
-<p>On Wednesday, the 29th, between three and four<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_201" id="Page_201">[201]</a></span> o'clock in the
-afternoon, when "the scum of the people<a name="FNanchor_247_247" id="FNanchor_247_247"></a><a href="#Footnote_247_247" class="fnanchor">[247]</a>" had floated down to
-Westminster, there occurred a disturbance which, in a confused way,
-is apparent in the records of the period, but which becomes more
-luminous when examined in the light of the depositions of witnesses,
-still preserved amongst the State papers.<a name="FNanchor_248_248" id="FNanchor_248_248"></a><a href="#Footnote_248_248" class="fnanchor">[248]</a> The tumult seems to
-have commenced by Whitehall Gate. Some military gentlemen were walking
-"within the rails," in the direction of Charing Cross. The difficulty
-is to make out who commenced the quarrel. One deponent says, the
-apprentices called the "red coats a knot of Papists," meaning, of
-course, the Royalist officers. Another declared, the gentlemen within
-the rails cried, "If they were the soldiers they would charge the mob
-with pikes and shoot them." Thereupon&mdash;so it was affirmed&mdash;the people
-replied, "You had best do it, red coats," and threw at them clots of
-dry dust. Then the cavalier swordsmen leaped over the rails, and, sword
-in hand, dashed into the midst of the mob. Other gentlemen came out
-of the Court gate and joined their friends; upon which the parties
-fell to, pell-mell. One witness says, that he saw but one sword drawn
-on the citizens' side, but he saw many of the citizens wounded by
-the gentlemen. Another affirms, that one of the gentlemen received a
-wound in the forehead. It is manifest that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_202" id="Page_202">[202]</a></span> the disturbance was made
-the very most of by each party, so as to reflect discredit upon the
-opposite side: for in a letter written the next morning, the writer,
-after recording how apprentices were wounded, and how they lost
-their hats and cloaks, gravely states, "It is feared they will be at
-Whitehall this day to the number of <i>ten thousand</i>." The City was in
-an uproar on account of the outrage on the apprentices, and the Court
-gentry were full of indignation at the abuse which the apprentices
-had heaped on the Bishops. The High Church Lord Mayor and Sheriffs,
-who rode about all night to preserve peace, had the City gates shut,
-the watch set, and the trained-bands called out. By those of a
-different class in politics this was thought quite unnecessary; as they
-implicitly believed that the citizens would commit no act of violence
-if the courtiers would but keep their swords in their scabbards. The
-majority of the Commons, too, were jealous of interfering with those
-whom they hailed as friends to reform; while the King, the Court, and
-the Archbishop, exaggerated the disturbance, and were for coercing the
-people as enemies of order. The whole story, as it appears from the
-documents we have mentioned, indicates rudeness and insolence on the
-part of the populace, but not any disposition in the first instance to
-proceed to violence. Their opponents sought to bolster up their own
-cause by highly-coloured reports of the uproar; the irritated pride and
-hot revenge of a few royalist officers having really brought on the
-bloodshed, to be followed by the blackest recrimination on the Puritan
-side.<a name="FNanchor_249_249" id="FNanchor_249_249"></a><a href="#Footnote_249_249" class="fnanchor">[249]</a> The squabble would be beneath our notice, were it not for
-the consequences which followed<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_203" id="Page_203">[203]</a></span> it;<a name="FNanchor_250_250" id="FNanchor_250_250"></a><a href="#Footnote_250_250" class="fnanchor">[250]</a> and for its significance as
-illustrating the way in which religious questions became mixed up with
-political ones, and how both, in some cases, sunk down to the most
-vulgar level.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Protest of the Bishops.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, December.</div>
-
-<p>Bishop Hall relates, in connection with the riot, that in the afternoon
-of the 28th of December, the Marquis of Hartford came up to the
-Bishops' bench, and informed their lordships that they were in danger,
-because the people were watching outside with torches, and would
-look into every coach to discover them; he adds that a motion made
-for their safety was received with smiles; and that some sought the
-protection of certain peers, whilst others escaped home by "secret
-and far-fetched passages."<a name="FNanchor_251_251" id="FNanchor_251_251"></a><a href="#Footnote_251_251" class="fnanchor">[251]</a> From the same authority&mdash;corroborated
-by other witnesses&mdash;we also learn, that Archbishop Williams, with the
-cry of "No Bishop" ringing in his ears, with a still more unpleasant
-recollection of the apprentice's attack, and also alarmed by the
-Marquis of Hartford's story, determined to protest against this state
-of things, not simply as a violation of his personal liberty, but as
-a violation of the freedom and rights of the Upper House. We Bishops,
-he argued, can no longer perform our Parliamentary duties if this be
-the case, and without the bishops the House of Lords is a nullity in
-the legislature. Upon this view being taken, twelve prelates, Williams
-being one of the number, repaired to the "Jerusalem Chamber in the
-Dean's lodgings"&mdash;that room which has witnessed so many ecclesiastical
-discussions, and which is so linked to the fortunes of the Church of
-England&mdash;and there drew up a protest against whatever should be<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_204" id="Page_204">[204]</a></span> done
-during the absence of their order from the House of Lords.<a name="FNanchor_252_252" id="FNanchor_252_252"></a><a href="#Footnote_252_252" class="fnanchor">[252]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, December.</div>
-
-<p>To this protest signatures were hastily procured. On the 27th, Williams
-was assaulted; on the 29th, the protest reached the house of the Bishop
-of Lichfield, between six and seven o'clock at night, he not having
-heard of it before.<a name="FNanchor_253_253" id="FNanchor_253_253"></a><a href="#Footnote_253_253" class="fnanchor">[253]</a></p>
-
-<p>The document had been drawn up without proper deliberation, and after
-being signed, it was immediately presented to the King.<a name="FNanchor_254_254" id="FNanchor_254_254"></a><a href="#Footnote_254_254" class="fnanchor">[254]</a> Much as
-he might sympathize with the prelates, he had prudence enough now to
-do nothing more than at once refer the matter to the House of Lords,
-who, in their turn, invited the Commons to a conference on the subject.
-The Lower House promptly re<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_205" id="Page_205">[205]</a></span>solved to impeach the prelates;&mdash;only one
-member offering any opposition, and that simply on the ground that
-he did not believe they were guilty of high treason, but were only
-stark mad, and ought to be sent to Bedlam. Upon receiving a message,
-notifying the impeachment, the Upper House immediately despatched Black
-Rod to summon the accused Spiritual Lords to the bar, where they soon
-appeared. The same night saw ten of the prelates safe in the Tower.<a name="FNanchor_255_255" id="FNanchor_255_255"></a><a href="#Footnote_255_255" class="fnanchor">[255]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Protest of the Bishops.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, December.</div>
-
-<p>The protest produced an "immense sensation." Unpopular before with
-the Puritans and the patriots, the bishops now became more unpopular
-than ever, with the former, on account of their alleged pride and
-arrogance; with the latter, on account of their esteeming themselves
-essential to the integrity of Parliament; and with all, on account
-of their obstinately obstructing the paths of reform. Still, the
-party most in advance felt rather glad than otherwise at this act of
-Episcopal imprudence, since it made the bench increasingly odious; and
-therefore afforded another and still stronger argument for hastening
-forward its overthrow.<a name="FNanchor_256_256" id="FNanchor_256_256"></a><a href="#Footnote_256_256" class="fnanchor">[256]</a> Even Episcopalians blamed the protesters,
-considering they had much hindered the cause they should have helped;
-and Clarendon pronounces their proceedings to have been ill judged.
-But an excuse has been offered, on the ground that the conduct of the
-Bishops if not constitutional was chivalrous. It has been said, "To go
-out in smoke and smother is but a mean<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_206" id="Page_206">[206]</a></span> way of coming to nothing."
-"To creep and crawl to a misfortune is to suffer like an insect." "A
-man ought to fall with dignity and honour, and keep his mind erect,
-though his fortune happens to be crushed."<a name="FNanchor_257_257" id="FNanchor_257_257"></a><a href="#Footnote_257_257" class="fnanchor">[257]</a> Without staying to ask
-whether there be not concealed under this plea a spirit out of harmony
-with the religion professed by the prelates, we may remark that no one
-could have blamed them for courageously defending what they deemed
-the rights of their order. They might justly have protested against
-the tumultuous conduct of the people, and have sought protection in
-attending the House; but to protest against what was done in the
-Legislature during their absence was quite another thing, and appears
-to have been as unconstitutional as any violence employed in order
-to hinder their discharge of Parliamentary duties. An accusation of
-treason, however, brought against them for their strange proceedings,
-appears extravagant; although sufficient grounds existed for censure,
-and the imposition perhaps of some kind of penalty: but the lawyers
-were spared all trouble with reference to this subject by the abolition
-of the Episcopal bench, and the political insignificance to which the
-order had been reduced by their extreme unpopularity. The protesting
-Bishops remained in confinement until the 5th of May following, when
-they were dismissed on bail.<a name="FNanchor_258_258" id="FNanchor_258_258"></a><a href="#Footnote_258_258" class="fnanchor">[258]</a></p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_207" id="Page_207">[207]</a></span></p></div>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="illo207" >
- <img
- class="p0"
- src="images/illo207.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER IX.</h2>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">The bill of October for removing Bishops from the House of Peers had hung fire.
-On its reaching the Upper House it had been once read, and then laid
-aside. The conduct of the bishops, which led to their impeachment,
-also induced the Commons to urge upon the Lords the passing of this
-measure. After some hesitation, they read the bill a third time, on
-the 5th of February; and the Commons, now become impatient, expressed
-their sorrow, three days afterwards, that the royal assent had not been
-immediately given. The King's reluctance was at the same time expressed
-at a conference on the 8th of February, by the Earl of Monmouth, who
-said, "that it was a matter of weight which his Majesty would take
-into consideration, and send an answer in convenient time."<a name="FNanchor_259_259" id="FNanchor_259_259"></a><a href="#Footnote_259_259" class="fnanchor">[259]</a> On
-the 14th of February came the tardy "Le Roy le veult." No prelate now
-remaining to read prayers, the Peers ordered that the Lord Chancellor's
-or the Lord Keeper's chaplain should "say prayers before the Lords in
-Parliament," and in his absence, the Lord Chancellor or Lord Keeper
-should appoint some other person for that service. The vacant benches,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_208" id="Page_208">[208]</a></span>
-staring their lordships in the face, appeared unsightly; in consequence
-of which they named a committee to consider "how the peers should sit
-in the House, now that the Bishops' seats were empty."<a name="FNanchor_260_260" id="FNanchor_260_260"></a><a href="#Footnote_260_260" class="fnanchor">[260]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1642, February.</div>
-
-<p>Thus fell, after threatening assaults for fourteen months, the temporal
-power of the prelates. Their exclusion from the Upper House is opposed
-to the ancient laws and customs of the realm, and it does violence
-to those ideas of the English Constitution which are based upon the
-history of the middle ages. Then Church and State were bound in the
-closest ties, and Churchmen, from their presumed superior intelligence,
-were esteemed amongst the fittest men to make laws and to direct public
-affairs. But matters had undergone a vast change by the middle of the
-seventeenth century, and many persons of enlarged minds had come to
-perceive, that there was no more necessity for seeking senators than
-seeking chancellors from the clerical ranks; that neither the liberties
-of the subject, nor the prerogatives of the crown, appeared to be in
-danger from the change; and that the removal of the bench of Bishops
-would not destroy the integrity and completeness of the Upper House,
-or put out of working gear the machinery of the Constitution. On
-political grounds they saw no valid objection to the measure, whilst in
-a religious point of view they deemed it highly desirable.</p>
-
-<p>The Act which deprived Bishops of their legislative functions did not
-touch their revenues; but there followed, within a little more than two
-months, an ordinance which absolutely deprived some amongst them of
-their estates, personal as well as real, and placed the possessions of
-all the rest in jeopardy; so that from affluence<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_209" id="Page_209">[209]</a></span> they were reduced to
-poverty, or to the imminent hazard of losing whatever they had.</p>
-
-<p>Those who lived beyond the year 1650 will be noticed hereafter. Those
-who died before that time are recorded now.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Bishops.</i></div>
-
-<p>Robert Wright, bishop of Coventry and Lichfield, one of the protesters,
-remained in the Tower eighteen weeks; and when set at liberty, retired
-to his episcopal castle of Eccleshall, in Staffordshire, which
-he&mdash;like a military Churchman of the middle ages&mdash;defended against the
-Parliament. He died during a siege in the summer of 1643.</p>
-
-<p>Dr. Accepted Frewen, nominated by the King as successor to Wright,
-derived but little from his see before the Restoration.<a name="FNanchor_261_261" id="FNanchor_261_261"></a><a href="#Footnote_261_261" class="fnanchor">[261]</a></p>
-
-<p>Thomas Westfield, bishop of Bristol, who died in 1644, won the good
-opinion of all parties; so that the Puritan committee, appointed by
-the ordinance for sequestering delinquents' estates, on being informed
-that his tenants refused to pay their rents, ordered them to yield to
-him the revenues of his bishopric, and gave him and his family a safe
-conduct to Bristol. It is said of him, that "he made not that wearisome
-which should be welcome; never keeping his glass (the hour glass in the
-pulpit), except upon extraordinary occasions, more than a quarter of an
-hour: he made not that common which should be precious, either by the
-coarseness or cursoriness of his manner. He never, though almost fifty
-years a preacher, went up into the pulpit but he trembled; and never
-preached before the King but once, and then he fainted."<a name="FNanchor_262_262" id="FNanchor_262_262"></a><a href="#Footnote_262_262" class="fnanchor">[262]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641-1650.</div>
-
-<p>His immediate successor in the see, Thomas Howell, consecrated at
-Oxford during the siege of that city, is<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_210" id="Page_210">[210]</a></span> reported to have been
-treated at first by the people of Bristol with great indignity and
-violence&mdash;his palace being turned into a malt-house and a mill&mdash;but
-the mildness of his disposition overcame all enemies, and though he
-found few well-affected on his appointment to the diocese, he left few
-ill-affected towards him at his death. He died in 1646, and was buried
-in his own cathedral.</p>
-
-<p>George Coke, bishop of Hereford, forfeited his estate, like the other
-protesters. Colonel Birch, a Parliamentary officer, took possession of
-his palace on the surrender of the episcopal city in 1645. His wife and
-children had an exhibition granted for one year out of his sequestered
-estate at Eardsley, on condition that neither she nor her husband
-should assist the malignants. He died in 1646.</p>
-
-<p>Morgan Owen, bishop of Llandaff&mdash;said to be under the influence of
-Laud, and connected with him by the Puritans, in a story respecting
-some popish image of the virgin at Oxford&mdash;was a protester, and
-imprisoned accordingly. His death occurred towards the end of 1644.</p>
-
-<p>Walter Curle, bishop of Winchester, resided in that city when the
-Parliamentary forces besieged it. Upon its surrender, he retired
-to Subberton, in Hampshire, where he died in 1647, after suffering
-the sequestration of his own proper estate for refusing to take the
-covenant.</p>
-
-<p>John Towers, bishop of Peterborough, having been confined for his
-connection with the protest, subsequently repaired to the King, at
-Oxford, and remained there till its surrender to the Parliament, when
-he returned to Peterborough, and there found himself, as a delinquent,
-stripped of his revenues. He died in 1649.<a name="FNanchor_263_263" id="FNanchor_263_263"></a><a href="#Footnote_263_263" class="fnanchor">[263]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_211" id="Page_211">[211]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Bishops.</i></div>
-
-<p>John Prideaux, a man of eminent learning, promoted to the bishopric
-of Worcester amidst the troubles of 1641, excommunicated all in his
-diocese who took up arms on the Parliament's behalf. By such conduct
-of course he subjected himself to penalties; and it is related, that
-he turned his books and everything else into bread for himself and his
-family, so that, when he was saluted in the usual way, "How doth your
-lordship do?" he facetiously replied, "Never better in my life, only
-I have too great a stomach, for I have eaten that little plate which
-the sequestrators left me; I have eaten a great library of excellent
-books; I have eaten a great deal of linen, much of my brass, some of
-my pewter, and now I am come to eat iron, and what will come next I
-know not."<a name="FNanchor_264_264" id="FNanchor_264_264"></a><a href="#Footnote_264_264" class="fnanchor">[264]</a> This humorous prelate died in 1650, leaving to his
-children&mdash;"no legacy but pious poverty, God's blessing, and a father's
-prayers."</p>
-
-<p>John Williams, archbishop of York, who has appeared prominently in
-this volume, after the imprisonment and sequestration which he brought
-upon himself by the conduct which we have already described, took, by
-royal command, the charge of Conway Castle and the government of North
-Wales, in which country he was born; and, at last&mdash;either in accordance
-with his established character for trimming his sails according to the
-wind, or to gratify a personal grudge against the Royalist captain, by
-whom he had been violently displaced&mdash;he joined a Parliamentary troop
-in order to recover his old fortress; after which military transaction
-he ended his strange and chequered career, in 1650, at Glodded, in the
-house of his kinswoman, Lady Mostyn. It is related of him, that during
-the last year of his life, he rose out of bed regu<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_212" id="Page_212">[212]</a></span>larly at midnight
-for one quarter of an hour, when he knelt on his bare knees, and prayed
-earnestly, "Come, Lord Jesus, come quickly, and put an end to these
-days of sin and misery."<a name="FNanchor_265_265" id="FNanchor_265_265"></a><a href="#Footnote_265_265" class="fnanchor">[265]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, October.</div>
-
-<p>On returning to the complicated web of religious interests and
-excitements at the close of the year 1641, some dark threads remain to
-be unravelled.</p>
-
-<p>The following letter was written in London on the 4th of November,
-1641, and indicates the alarm excited by intelligence just received
-from Ireland:&mdash;<a name="FNanchor_266_266" id="FNanchor_266_266"></a><a href="#Footnote_266_266" class="fnanchor">[266]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Irish Rebellion.</i></div>
-
-<p>"This week hath brought forth strange discoveries of horrible treasons
-hatched by the Papists in Ireland, and that upon the 23rd of October
-past, they should have been put in execution throughout the north of
-that kingdom upon all the Protestants at one instant, who were then
-designed to have their throats cut by them; but, God be thanked, the
-night before, being the 22nd October, one Owen Connellie, a servant
-of Sir John Clotworthy, a member of the House of Commons, being then
-newly made acquainted with the wickedness of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_213" id="Page_213">[213]</a></span> plot, by a friend of
-his, that the next day should have been an actor in it, went (though
-with much ado) to the Lords the Justices in Dublin, and revealed it:
-whereupon the gates were instantly commanded to be shut, and a matter
-of thirty-eight that were in town of the conspirators taken, whereof
-the Lord Marquis and Mac Mahon are the chief, and have since confessed,
-that by the next morning they expected to come to their aid twenty well
-armed Papists, out of every county in Ireland, that they might all,
-upon a sudden, have surprised the castle with the ammunition, and so
-commanded the city and the lives of all the inhabitants. The treason
-being thus discovered did spread apace throughout the north of Ireland,
-where the rebellion first began, and in several places in several
-bodies are of the Papists up in arms above 10,000 men, which doth much
-perplex the poor Protestants, and [there is] great fear whether they
-shall be able to suppress or resist them. Whereupon our Parliament
-hath ordered my Lord of Leicester, Lord Lieutenant, and all other
-commanders here, speedily to repair thither, and do furnish £50,000 to
-carry along with them, which the City of London advances for providing
-of men and arms to secure that kingdom. Some blood the villains have
-shed, and committed great outrages, and taken some castles and places
-of strength; but if they had taken Dublin, upon the rack divers have
-confessed, in a short time they would not have left a Protestant alive
-in the whole kingdom; but God, in His mercy, hath prevented that
-slaughter, and hath turned part of it upon themselves. The traitors
-give out the late tyranny of the Lord of Strafford upon them moved them
-to it; and that, by the example of the Scots, they hoped to purchase
-such privileges, by this means, in their religion, as otherwise they
-never expected to have granted<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_214" id="Page_214">[214]</a></span> to them. You see the distempers of the
-three kingdoms&mdash;God forgive them that have been the cause of it, and
-then to be despatched into the other world, that they may trouble us no
-more in this again."<a name="FNanchor_267_267" id="FNanchor_267_267"></a><a href="#Footnote_267_267" class="fnanchor">[267]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, October.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Irish Rebellion.</i></div>
-
-<p>It is difficult for us&mdash;now that the reformation has become a remote
-event, and Protestantism holds undisputed supremacy; now that the
-principles of liberty are well understood, and the asperities and
-virulence of old controversies, except in a few cases, have, been
-softened down&mdash;to enter into the anti-papal feelings which moved our
-stout-hearted fathers more than two centuries ago. At that period, the
-Reformation, under Elizabeth, had lasted little more than eighty years.
-The parents of some who were now living had witnessed the cruelties
-of the Marian persecution; the men and women under Charles the First,
-had, as boys and girls, in ingle-nook at Christmas-tide, felt their
-blood run cold whilst listening to stories of the Smithfield fires
-from eye-witnesses. A few, then in London, had actually beheld with
-their own eyes a scene which stirs our hearts when only represented
-by the pencil&mdash;Elizabeth haranguing her troops at Tilbury Fort. More
-had heard, with their own ears, the current contemporary talk about
-the Spanish Armada, as it sailed up the channel, and had caught the
-first tidings of the proud armament being scattered to the winds&mdash;just
-after the subsiding of the storm which sunk the accursed ships&mdash;and
-they could never forget how the nation drew breath after a gasp of
-most awful suspense in 1588. These last events were about as near to
-the times we<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_215" id="Page_215">[215]</a></span> are describing, as the Battle of Waterloo is to our
-own. The gunpowder plot was an incident of no very distant occurrence;
-only as far back in the memory of members of the Long Parliament, as
-the Bristol riots, and the Swing rick burning in our own. Numbers of
-the gentlemen in high-crowned hats and short cloaks, who walked into
-the House of Commons in 1641, filled with alarm respecting Popery,
-had participated in the sensation produced by that discovery, which
-is celebrated now only by a few boys on the 5th of November. Besides
-all this, the sufferings of French Huguenots were fresh in everybody's
-mind. Refugees who had escaped the galleys were still in London. The
-massacre at Paris, commemorated by the Pope's medal, hardly fell
-beyond the recollections of existing persons, whilst new religious
-conflicts in France, and the siege of Rochelle, had occurred but a
-few years before. The thirty years' war in Germany was not concluded;
-and the battle of Prague, the execution of the Protestant patriots in
-front of the Rathhaus, the expulsion of the disciples of Huss, and
-the barbarities of the Papists throughout Bohemia, were in everyone's
-memory.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, October.</div>
-
-<p>With so many alarming events recently connected with Popery, and
-while the question of the Reformation in Europe appeared unsettled,
-and Jesuits were intriguing, and catholic tendencies had reached
-such a height in the Church of England, it is no wonder that staunch
-Protestants at home, who made common cause with staunch Protestants
-abroad, had such an intense dread of their old enemy. It was then with
-the Puritans of England, as it has ever been, and still is, with the
-Protestants of France. The latter have never forgotten the massacre
-of St. Bartholomew, and the revocation of the Edict of Nantes. They
-have cherished, more than we have, the traditions<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_216" id="Page_216">[216]</a></span> of a suffering
-Church, a Church struggling to keep its ground against neighbours
-as powerful as they are antagonistic. Catholic tendencies do not
-appear amongst the descendants of the Huguenots; the line is distinct
-between the two Churches, and the trumpet of defiance, in the case
-of French Protestantism, gives no uncertain sound. A like relative
-position to papal Europe was maintained by the Puritans of 1641, with
-animosities even more intense, inasmuch as the tragedies remembered
-were more recent, and the danger apprehended seemed just at hand: and
-it explains how the outburst of a neighbouring rebellion on the part of
-the spiritual subjects of the Pope, struck terror in all Protestants
-throughout this kingdom, from the Orkneys to the Land's End.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Irish Rebellion.</i></div>
-
-<p>The Protestant Church never flourished in Ireland. Bedell, Bishop
-of Kilmore, and Bramhall, then Bishop of Derry, laboured to produce
-reform. Bedell, seeing that the native Irish were little regarded
-by the Protestant clergy and were left almost entirely in the hands
-of the Popish priests, aimed at instructing them in the truths of
-Christianity; a wise method, which however did not meet the views of
-Strafford, whose policy was "to enforce religious unity by Church
-discipline, and to invigorate Church discipline with the secular
-arm."<a name="FNanchor_268_268" id="FNanchor_268_268"></a><a href="#Footnote_268_268" class="fnanchor">[268]</a> Bramhall, in 1633, gave a deplorable account of the Irish
-Church to Archbishop Laud. It was hard to say whether the fabrics
-were more ruinous, or the people more irreverent. One parochial
-church, in Dublin, had been turned into a stable, a second into a
-dwelling, and a third into a tennis court, the vicar acting as keeper.
-The vaults of Christchurch, from one end to another, were used as
-tippling rooms, and were frequented for that purpose at the time
-of Divine service.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_217" id="Page_217">[217]</a></span> The very altar had become a seat for maids and
-apprentices. The bishop also doubted the orthodoxy of his clergy. The
-inferior sort of ministers (he said) were below contempt in respect
-of poverty and ignorance, and the boundless heaping together of
-benefices by <i>commendams</i> and <i>dispensations</i> was but too apparent.
-Rarely ten pounds a year fell to the incumbent, and yet one prelate
-held three-and-twenty benefices.<a name="FNanchor_269_269" id="FNanchor_269_269"></a><a href="#Footnote_269_269" class="fnanchor">[269]</a> Such a state of things, not
-described by an enemy but by a friend, speaks volumes. Bramhall, in
-meditating reform, followed too much Laud's method, first looking at
-the external condition of the Church, striving to improve edifices, to
-preserve and rightly administer emoluments, to regulate worship and
-secure uniformity&mdash;doubtless with far higher ultimate aims&mdash;instead of
-going at once to the root of the evil, and promoting the spread of the
-Gospel of Christ, and the revival of spiritual religion. Some outward
-improvement followed the Churchman's endeavours, but very little of
-that pure vital piety, and that Christian love, without which a Church,
-no less than an individual, is but as "sounding brass and a tinkling
-cymbal." Protestantism, even with the best endeavours of its advocates,
-had not laid hold on the Irish heart; and Papists, who were immensely
-in the majority, looked with bitter feeling on the chronic disease of
-Ireland&mdash;the absorption of ecclesiastical emoluments by a sect in the
-minority. Puritanism too was active. People complained of "the unblest
-way of the prelacy," of fines, fees, and imprisonments, of silencing
-and banishing "learned and conscionable ministers," and of the prelates
-favouring popery.<a name="FNanchor_270_270" id="FNanchor_270_270"></a><a href="#Footnote_270_270" class="fnanchor">[270]</a><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_218" id="Page_218">[218]</a></span> Moreover, political heart-burnings mingled with
-all this ecclesiastical strife.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, October.</div>
-
-<p>The Popish rebellion broke out in October. On the 1st of November,
-Mr. Pym rose in the House of Commons, and stated that a noble lord, a
-Privy Councillor, with other noble lords, stood at the door, waiting
-to deliver important intelligence. Chairs were ordered to be placed
-for these distinguished visitors, who entered uncovered&mdash;the serjeant
-carrying the mace before them. The Commons doffed their hats till
-the strangers were seated; when, having covered their heads again,
-each, in breathless silence, with eager inquisitive eye, perhaps with
-pressed ear, listened to the Lord Keeper, as he proceeded to tell them
-the purpose for which he had come. The alarm increased as the Earl of
-Leicester, Lord Lieutenant of Ireland, one of the deputation from the
-Lords, took off his hat, and said: That letters and papers had been
-sent from Ireland by the Lord Justices, communicating information of
-the shedding of much blood; that all Protestants were to be cut off;
-that no British man, woman, or child was to be left alive; that the
-horrid deed had been fixed for Saturday, the 23rd of October, being the
-feast of St. Ignatius; that the King's forts were to be seized, and
-the Justices and Privy Council slain. A timely supply of men and money
-therefore was needed to save the country.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Irish Rebellion.</i></div>
-
-<p>These vague tidings ran through England like wildfire, and then there
-followed details of unparalleled barbarities. It was reported, that in
-the county of Armagh alone, a thousand Protestants were forced over
-the Bridge of Portadown, and drowned in the River Bann. A wife was
-compelled to hang her own husband. Two-and-twenty people were put into
-a thatched house, and burned alive. Women, great with child, had their
-bellies ripped up, and were then drowned. Three hundred Protestants<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_219" id="Page_219">[219]</a></span>
-were stripped naked, and crowded into the Church of Loghill, a hundred
-of whom were murdered, one being quartered alive, whose quarters
-were flung in the face of the unhappy father. A hundred men, women,
-and children were driven like hogs for six miles to a river, into
-which they were pitched headlong with pikes and swords.<a name="FNanchor_271_271" id="FNanchor_271_271"></a><a href="#Footnote_271_271" class="fnanchor">[271]</a> These
-instances are only a few taken from the reports: page after page in
-Rushworth, and other collections, is filled with the like enormities.
-The computation was that between one and two hundred thousand persons
-perished in these massacres. Common sense, knowledge of human nature,
-and the recollection of rumours in our own time respecting Indian
-massacres and Jamaica atrocities, must lead us to suspect the accuracy
-of these reports.</p>
-
-<p>Allowance should be made for exaggeration at a time of maddening
-terror, and in the case of an excitable and imaginative people like
-the Irish. It should also be remembered that our poor sister island
-had endured wrongs from a Protestant Government; that the Puritans had
-alarmed the Papists; that the Papists had exasperated the Puritans;
-and that mutual intolerance increased mutual hatred. But, after all
-fair abatements, that Irish Rebellion must be regarded as one of the
-blackest crimes recorded in history, as an outburst of demoniacal fury,
-which nothing could excuse, and which the utmost provocation could but
-slenderly palliate.<a name="FNanchor_272_272" id="FNanchor_272_272"></a><a href="#Footnote_272_272" class="fnanchor">[272]</a> If, as supposed by some, it was a desperate
-stroke for Popish ascendancy in Ireland, encouraged by the example
-of the Scots, who by rising in arms had asserted their right to a
-Presbyterian Government, it must be admitted by all to have been, as
-Carlyle says, "a most wretched imitation."</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_220" id="Page_220">[220]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, October.</div>
-
-<p>It is not our business to investigate the sources of the Irish
-rebellion, or to weigh evidence as to its horrors. Enough is admitted
-by historians of every school to shew that it was a very great
-calamity, and all to be done here is to indicate the impression it made
-in England, and how it further complicated the already intricate causes
-which conspired to complete the great ecclesiastical revolution of the
-age.</p>
-
-<p>Puritans in England were terror-stricken. Fasts were held, and young
-people were worn out by abstinence and prayer. Amidst a crowded
-congregation, near Bradford, where all were groaning and weeping, there
-came a man, who cried, "Friends, we are all as good as dead men, for
-the Irish rebels are coming; they are come as far as Rochdale, and
-Littleborough, and the Batings, and will be at Halifax and Bradford
-shortly."<a name="FNanchor_273_273" id="FNanchor_273_273"></a><a href="#Footnote_273_273" class="fnanchor">[273]</a> Upon hearing this, the congregation fell into utter
-confusion, and began to run for their lives,&mdash;screaming about the
-bloody Papists, and expecting every moment to meet the cut-throats.
-Not only were ignorant multitudes thus panic-stricken, but Richard
-Baxter believed that the Irish had threatened to come over, and, he
-remarks, that such threats, "with the name of 200,000 murdered, and
-the recital of the monstrous cruelties of those cannibals, made many
-thousands in England think that nothing could be more necessary than
-for the Parliament to put the country into an armed posture for their
-own defence."<a name="FNanchor_274_274" id="FNanchor_274_274"></a><a href="#Footnote_274_274" class="fnanchor">[274]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Irish Rebellion.</i></div>
-
-<p>Not only did aversion to Popery proper increase through what had
-happened in Ireland, but that aversion regarded much which bore but a
-very partial resemblance to Popery.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_221" id="Page_221">[221]</a></span> It was not easy then, with cool
-discrimination, to distinguish between things which differed; and some
-things, it must be remembered, were more alike then than they are at
-present. What would be folly in one age may be something like wisdom in
-another; what would be groundless fear now might be caution then; that
-which all would pronounce insanity in a Protestant of the nineteenth
-century was probably only a reasonable apprehension in a Puritan of the
-seventeenth. At that time there not only rose a stronger determination
-to resist the power of Rome, but also a stronger determination to put
-an end to the power at Lambeth. The tiara became more hateful than
-ever, and not less so the mitre: images of the Virgin were pronounced
-intolerable, so were all superstitious ornaments in churches. The
-Popish rebellion helped on the measure for removing Bishops from
-amongst the rulers of the country, and imparted a fresh impulse to the
-desire for abolishing Episcopacy.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641, October.</div>
-
-<p>The actual plot in Ireland gave countenance to the belief of imaginary
-plots in England. One day in November, John Hampden went up to the
-Lords to let them know that a man had come to the door of the House
-of Commons, and sent in word how he had matters of a high nature to
-reveal concerning certain noble Peers and honourable Commons. They had
-therefore sent the man to their Lordships' House, for examination.
-Upon this, one Thomas Beal, a tailor of Whitecross Street, appeared,
-who told a long rambling story to the effect, that on that very day,
-at twelve o'clock, as he went into the fields near the Pest House, and
-was walking on a private bank, he heard some people talking warily.
-Going nearer, he heard somebody say, "it was a wicked thing that the
-last plot did not take," but that one now was going on which would be
-the making<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_222" id="Page_222">[222]</a></span> of them all. A hundred and eight conspirators were to kill
-one hundred and eight members of Parliament&mdash;all Puritans&mdash;and the
-sacrament was to be administered to the murderers. Beal was commanded
-to withdraw, and an order followed to arrest certain Jesuits on
-suspicion. This conspiracy, as might be expected from the man's story,
-turned out to be mere smoke.<a name="FNanchor_275_275" id="FNanchor_275_275"></a><a href="#Footnote_275_275" class="fnanchor">[275]</a> Yet we relate the circumstance as an
-illustration of the excitement of the period; and to exemplify how men,
-like the inhabitants of the Hartz mountains looking at the clouds, saw
-their own fears reflected in gigantic shadows, which they mistook for
-most awful and threatening realities.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_223" id="Page_223">[223]</a></span></p></div>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="illo223" >
- <img
- class="p0"
- src="images/illo223.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER X.</h2>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">The cause of English Episcopacy sank into a hopeless condition.
-Whatever streaks of light had just before been flickering on its
-horizon had now totally vanished; not that the removal of the prelates'
-bench from the House of Peers sealed its fate, for, apart from
-legislative authority and political position, Episcopal office and
-influence might have been retained. But the policy of Laud and Montague
-had been such as to estrange from the Order the affections of the
-Puritans, then the most active and influential part of the religious
-population of the country. The complicity of Church rulers in the
-unpopular proceedings of the High Commission and Star Chamber Courts,
-and their sympathy in Strafford's scheme of arbitrary rule, had torn
-away from them the last ties of attachment on the part of the middle
-classes, which, in modern England, form the only trustworthy stays
-of power in Church or State. The effect of the protest of Archbishop
-Williams and his associates had confirmed the mean opinion in which
-all the bishops were held, and had now rendered a case before very
-doubtful, wholly desperate. Charles, who from the beginning had been
-ready to stake the crown in his struggle for the Episcopal Church,
-had by his arrest of the five members exasperated to the utmost the
-supporters of the Consti<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_224" id="Page_224">[224]</a></span>tution, and placed himself in a false position
-towards the House of Commons; so that, while imperilling his own
-prerogatives, he also injured the Church, with which he identified the
-interests of his throne.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641-2.</div>
-
-<p>Even the secession of certain conspicuous advocates from the ranks of
-ecclesiastical reform to the opposite side served to weaken, not to
-help, the cause of ecclesiastical conservatism.</p>
-
-<p>Sir Edward Dering's course has been described. We have seen him to be
-one of those men, who, after looking at both sides of a question, and
-endeavouring to keep the mean between extremes, at length come to look
-at one side so much more than the other, that they unconsciously swerve
-in a direction divergent from their original career, and then, with
-exquisite simplicity, wonder that they are charged with vacillation.
-Such persons are also apt to be impetuous, and to speak unguardedly
-in the heat of debate; and, while honestly hating the character of
-turn-coats, they expose themselves to that odious accusation. Sir
-Edward had looked at Anglicanism and at Nonconformity, trying to
-steer a middle course; but circumstances of late having brought
-before him most prominently the dangers of schism, he now inveighed
-against it with the same zeal, which, in the spring and summer of
-1641, had inflamed his anti-prelatical orations. It is very easy to
-make good against this honest but shallow politician the charge of
-self-contradiction. It is curious to see in his "Defence" how one who
-courted popularity winced under the accusation of being an apostate,
-and how he parried the charge of going over to the enemy's camp. At an
-hour when parties were plunging into a mortal struggle, a much wiser
-man, counselling moderation, would have had little chance of making
-himself heard; and certainly<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_225" id="Page_225">[225]</a></span> Dering's laboured distinction between
-ruin and reform did as little toward preventing the first as promoting
-the second; and it could only produce a grim smile in the iron face of
-a Puritan, when the recent church reformer cautioned his friends, in
-classic phrase, against "breaking asunder that well ordered chain of
-government, which from the chair of Jupiter reacheth down by several
-golden even links to the protection of the poorest creature that now
-lives among us."<a name="FNanchor_276_276" id="FNanchor_276_276"></a><a href="#Footnote_276_276" class="fnanchor">[276]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Secessions from the Popular Party.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1641-2.</div>
-
-<p>Another seceder was Lord Falkland, who though a far different man from
-Dering, yet possessed an amount of impetuosity which at times mastered
-his wisdom; for instance, when on one occasion the Speaker desired the
-Members of the House to concur in a vote of thanks by a movement of
-the hat, Falkland, with a sort of childish irritability, "clasped his
-hands together upon the crown of his hat, and held it close down to his
-head."<a name="FNanchor_277_277" id="FNanchor_277_277"></a><a href="#Footnote_277_277" class="fnanchor">[277]</a> It is somewhat singular that such a man should be held up
-as an example of moderation&mdash;that one so impulsive and demonstrative
-should have won renown for calmness and caution. The truth is, that he
-had looked even more closely than Dering had done at the two sides of
-the great controversy, and by dwelling exclusively first on the one
-and then on the other, had incurred, like his parliamentary friend,
-the charge of tergiversation. He saw more strongly the objections to
-a question than the grounds of its support. "The present evil always
-seemed to him the worst&mdash;he was always going backward and forward;
-but it should be remembered to his honour, that it was always from
-the stronger to the weaker side that he deserted: while Charles<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_226" id="Page_226">[226]</a></span> was
-oppressing the people, Falkland was a resolute champion of liberty.
-He attacked Strafford, he even concurred in strong measures against
-Episcopacy; but the violence of his party annoyed him and drove him
-to the other party, to be equally annoyed there."<a name="FNanchor_278_278" id="FNanchor_278_278"></a><a href="#Footnote_278_278" class="fnanchor">[278]</a> Falkland
-deserted his former friends in October, on the reintroduction of the
-Bill for taking away the bishops' votes; on the ground, that, though
-at first he thought it might prove an effectual compromise, and might
-save Episcopacy by sacrificing its political power, yet he afterwards
-entertained the opinion that it would have no such effect. The charge
-of dishonesty never can be brought against him; his character in this
-respect, like polished armour, could not be dimmed for more than a
-moment by the breath of scandal. A perfect Bayard in his chivalrous
-career, <i>sans peur et sans reproche</i>, however he might diverge from
-his previous path, he can never be justly regarded as a renegade.
-The persuasion of his friend Hyde, his sympathies as a tasteful and
-accomplished gentleman with the cavalier party, and beyond all, perhaps
-a sort of religious reverence for royalty, had more than anything to do
-with his change of policy in October, and his acceptance of office in
-the King's councils in January. And it does not appear, that, though
-he dreaded extreme measures against the Church, he had any more zeal
-for prelates after than before his separation from his old friends.
-It was for the crown rather than the mitre that he threw his weight
-into the royal scale. He approved of moderate Episcopacy, but for that
-he did not make his great sacrifice. He could not say with Sir Edward
-Verney, "I have eaten the King's bread, and served him near thirty
-years;" but he could adopt the veteran's declaration, "I will not do<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_227" id="Page_227">[227]</a></span>
-so base a thing as to forsake him." He was not prepared to exclaim, "I
-chose rather to lose my life, which I am sure I shall do, to preserve
-and defend those things which are against my conscience;" but he
-might have adopted the words of the same brave soldier, "I will deal
-freely with you, I have no reverence for Bishops for whom this quarrel
-subsists."<a name="FNanchor_279_279" id="FNanchor_279_279"></a><a href="#Footnote_279_279" class="fnanchor">[279]</a> The heart of many a Royalist went more with King than
-Church.<a name="FNanchor_280_280" id="FNanchor_280_280"></a><a href="#Footnote_280_280" class="fnanchor">[280]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Secessions from the Popular Party.</i></div>
-
-<p>These changes left the staunch opponents of Episcopacy more unfettered
-in action, and served to consolidate party elements which, for a
-long time, had been held in a state of solution. Though it would be
-inaccurate to speak of two distinct and compact parties before the end
-of 1641, such parties are to be recognized after the beginning of 1642.
-Men were then forced to take a side, to assume a definite position.
-A grand issue was joined. Half measures were no longer possible.
-Questions became distinct. The device and cognizance on each of the
-opposite banners might be as unmistakably understood as they were
-plainly emblazoned&mdash;on the one side, "Church and King," on the other,
-"Constitutional Reform in Church and State." There may be quibbles
-about the accuracy of such watchwords, but those now mentioned are
-as applicable to the two parties of the seventeenth century, as any
-familiar ones now are to the political distinctions of the nineteenth.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1642, January.</div>
-
-<p>Politicians who remained staunch in the defence of Parliamentary
-power against Kingly despotism were much more agreed in reference to
-the State than in reference to the Church. On the negative side of
-ecclesiastical revolution they pretty well understood each other. What
-should be put down they knew; but not precisely what should be set<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_228" id="Page_228">[228]</a></span>
-up. That prelacy of the Stuart type should be expelled was a foregone
-conclusion in 1642; but what sort of rule should take its place,
-whether very moderate Episcopacy, or thorough Presbyterianism like
-that of Scotland, the leaders of the movement had not determined. It
-is, however, quite evident that great modifications in the direction
-of Presbyterianism were under contemplation: for Presbyterians were
-numerous in London; their leaders were active amongst the citizens;
-and the Scotch, through their commissioners, were earnestly doing
-all they could to promote the cause which was dear to their hearts.
-But the sectaries, who were hated equally by the Presbyterian and
-Prelatist, were also on the increase. So numerous indeed had they
-become that Bishop Hall, in his last speech in the House of Lords,
-declared with spleen unworthy of so good a man, that there were eighty
-congregations of them in London, "instructed by guides fit for them,
-cobblers, tailors, felt-makers, and such like trash, which all were
-taught to spit in the face of their mother, the Church of England,
-and to defy and revile her government."<a name="FNanchor_281_281" id="FNanchor_281_281"></a><a href="#Footnote_281_281" class="fnanchor">[281]</a> Letters of the Royalists
-at that period abound in complaints respecting the increased activity
-and boldness of people who were condemned as schismatics. Those so
-designated had views of ecclesiastical polity very different from
-Presbyterian opinions, and were destined to check the progress of the
-latter much more effectually than to contribute to the downfall of
-Episcopacy. Some of them even (but only some) went so far as to cry,
-"Away with the thought of a national Church. It is impossible for a
-national Church to be the true Church of Christ. Let us have no Church
-but Congregations, and let them be without superintendency." To this
-we<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_229" id="Page_229">[229]</a></span> may add that the separatists in general objected to the distinction
-between clergy and laity, and maintained that the Church is a body, all
-the members of which are kings and priests.<a name="FNanchor_282_282" id="FNanchor_282_282"></a><a href="#Footnote_282_282" class="fnanchor">[282]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Royal Flight.</i></div>
-
-<p>Charles and his Queen left London on the triumphant return of the five
-members to Westminster. So hasty was the royal flight, that befitting
-accommodation for their Majesties could not be provided. They first
-journeyed to Hampton Court, but their subsequent movements were so
-secret, that even courtiers did not know whither the royal pair were
-bending their steps.<a name="FNanchor_283_283" id="FNanchor_283_283"></a><a href="#Footnote_283_283" class="fnanchor">[283]</a></p>
-
-<p>Under Secretary Bere, writing to Admiral Sir John Pennington, on the
-13th of January, thus speaks of the startling events then taking
-place:&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1642, January.</div>
-
-<p>"Sir&mdash;The last week I told you but the beginning of those bad ensuing
-news we must now daily expect, unless it please God to give a strange
-if not miraculous change whereby to settle the distraction of affairs.
-The committees, sitting all last week in the city, returned again to
-Parliament on Tuesday, and the persons accused with them; for whom
-both City and county have shewn so much affection, that they came
-accompanied with such multitudes, as had as much of the triumph as
-guard: and by water the seamen made a kind of fleet of boats, all armed
-with muskets and murdering pieces, which gave volleys all the way they
-went. The King and Queen took the day before a resolution to leave
-this town, which was also so sudden, that they could not have that
-accommodation befitting their Majesties. They went to Hampton Court
-that night, next day to Windsor; whence it is conceived they will also
-depart as this day, but whither is<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_230" id="Page_230">[230]</a></span> uncertain. The Prince and Prince
-Elector is with them; but few Lords, Essex and Holland being here, who
-offered up both their places before his going, but his Majesty would
-not accept the surrender. Mr. Secretary Nicholas is likewise gone, and
-hath left me to attend such services as shall occur, which, if the King
-shall persist in his resolution to retire, will not be much. However,
-I will expect the issue, and, if I be not sent for, think myself not
-unhappy in my stay, to be freed of an expenseful and troublesome
-journey. My Lady Nicholas is much afflicted, and, I believe, as well
-as he, would for a good round sum he had never had the seals. My
-Lord-Keeper, refusing to put the great seal to the King's proclamation
-against the persons accused, did also make tender of his charge, but
-howsoever remains still with it; and thus, Sir, you see to what height
-of distempers things are come. The public voice runs much against
-Bristol and his son, as great instruments of these misunderstandings.
-In the meantime they are united in the Houses, and the accord between
-the Upper House and Commons grows daily more easy; so that it is hoped
-some good and moderate resolutions will be taken for the procuring his
-Majesty's return with his contentment (which I pray God may be), for
-otherwise there can be expected nothing but confusion.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>"I understand even now that the King is remained this day at Windsor,
-and it is hoped will not go further; the French Ambassador having been
-there, and offering to interpose for an accommodation between his
-Majesty and the Parliament, in the King his master's name, whence it is
-hoped may ensue some good effect. This day divers Lords are going to
-Court with a message from the Houses. I had almost forgotten to tell
-you of a new<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_231" id="Page_231">[231]</a></span> Secretary of State made last Saturday, to wit, the Lord
-Falkland, and he hath the Diet."<a name="FNanchor_284_284" id="FNanchor_284_284"></a><a href="#Footnote_284_284" class="fnanchor">[284]</a></p>
-
-<p>From Windsor, Charles went to York, which now became a focus of
-political and ecclesiastical activity and intrigue. Declarations,
-manifestoes, and commands were issued by royal authority from the
-North to be contradicted and disobeyed by such members of the two
-Houses as continued at their posts in the South.<a name="FNanchor_285_285" id="FNanchor_285_285"></a><a href="#Footnote_285_285" class="fnanchor">[285]</a> The Puritan
-patriots flocked to St. Stephen's with petitions complaining of Popish
-malignants, Irish rebels, and other hindrances to reform; while
-Royalist Churchmen as eagerly besieged the King's presence chamber in
-the ancient archiepiscopal city with addresses lamenting the disorders
-of the times, and praying for the support of old-fashioned loyalty,
-with Prayer Book, Cathedrals, and Bishops.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Attempts at Mediation.</i></div>
-
-<p>Attempts to mediate between the two contending powers were made
-in vain: for no mediator existed possessing such a character for
-impartiality as was needful<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_232" id="Page_232">[232]</a></span> to reconcile, or even mitigate the
-quarrel. Louis XIII. of France offered his services, but his
-relationship to Henrietta Maria, and his being a Popish and absolute
-monarch, disqualified him for the office of peace-maker.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1642.</div>
-
-<p>The Scotch, with the best intentions, but with even more
-unfitness&mdash;having taken up arms against Episcopacy, having been in
-the pay of Parliament, and having fostered a Presbyterian spirit in
-England&mdash;proffered their help. The Commissioners, who had just returned
-to London, and had taken umbrage at the treatment which they had
-received from the Royalist and High Church Lord Mayor&mdash;complaining that
-he had assigned to them lodgings in a plague-stricken house<a name="FNanchor_286_286" id="FNanchor_286_286"></a><a href="#Footnote_286_286" class="fnanchor">[286]</a>&mdash;made
-their appearance at Windsor Castle, in the month of January, to tell
-his Majesty, that the liberties of England and Scotland must stand and
-fall together, and to ascribe the existing disorders of the country to
-the plots of Papists and prelates, who aimed at subverting the purity
-and truth of religion.<a name="FNanchor_287_287" id="FNanchor_287_287"></a><a href="#Footnote_287_287" class="fnanchor">[287]</a> Yet, while thus manifestly taking the
-Parliament side in the controversy, the Scotch coolly offered their
-services to compose the difference between the King and his subjects.
-Nothing could come of this, nor of a renewal of the offer in May sent
-from the Council in Edinburgh to Charles, at York, through the hands
-of their Chancellor. Even the most impartial advice and the wisest
-diplomacy now must have been too late, for the dispute had gone beyond
-any healing power, since both parties laid their hands on the scabbards
-of their swords, and, in fact, the blade was already half drawn by each.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Manifestoes.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1642.</div>
-
-<p>It is not our province to enter upon the question between King and
-Parliament, touching the militia. It is sufficient to observe that,
-when such a question arose, war<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_233" id="Page_233">[233]</a></span> could not be far off. Nor does it
-become us to notice the simply political aspects of those voluminous
-papers belonging to the Civil War which have been collected by
-Rushworth,<a name="FNanchor_288_288" id="FNanchor_288_288"></a><a href="#Footnote_288_288" class="fnanchor">[288]</a> containing the manifestoes of the two belligerents,
-who&mdash;like all belligerents down to the Prussians and Austrians this
-very summer&mdash;writing what they know would be read by the whole world,
-sought to throw the whole blame of the quarrel on each other; and
-while both were buckling on their armour, neither liked to be seen
-striking the first blow. It must be confessed, that in these patiently
-prepared, and able, though tedious documents, the thrusts at the enemy
-are more effective than the counter-thrusts. Both King and Parliament
-wished to be thoroughly constitutional in the form of everything which
-they said and did; and on the side where justice lay it was far more
-easy for them to be so, when assailing their antagonists than when
-they were defending themselves. In other words, it was easy for the
-Parliament to prove that the King had violated the Constitution; but
-it was not so easy to prove that, when taking all power into their own
-hands&mdash;especially when taking up arms&mdash;they kept within the formal
-lines of the English Constitution. The legal fiction of arming in the
-King's name against the King's person; the separation of Charles Stuart
-and the Sovereign of England into two entities; the defence of the
-abstract rule by violence against the concrete ruler, are refinements,
-which, however sound they may be in political metaphysics, do not
-carry conviction to plain English understandings.<a name="FNanchor_289_289" id="FNanchor_289_289"></a><a href="#Footnote_289_289" class="fnanchor">[289]</a><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_234" id="Page_234">[234]</a></span> Besides, the
-reasonings of the great Parliamentary lawyers,&mdash;which were learned,
-profound, and subtle in the extreme,&mdash;require much more of erudition
-and perspicacity, that they may be followed and appreciated, than
-people commonly, either in that age or this, could be supposed to
-possess.<a name="FNanchor_290_290" id="FNanchor_290_290"></a><a href="#Footnote_290_290" class="fnanchor">[290]</a> But putting legal technicalities aside; looking at the
-matter on broad grounds of justice; viewing the government of England
-at that period as already unconstitutionalized, by the King's aiming to
-rule without Parliaments; considering also that a regal revolution had
-in fact been going on for twenty years, the vindication of the popular
-party is triumphant. To save what was free in the Constitution, there
-was a necessity perforce for breaking down, at all hazards, whatever
-of arbitrary power had crept into the working of affairs. The King had
-been striving to destroy Parliamentary action, and nothing which he had
-conceded could remove the suspicion that he remained the same despot
-in spirit which he had ever been, and that now he only waited for a
-conve<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_235" id="Page_235">[235]</a></span>nient season, when he might withdraw his concessions, lock up
-the doors at Westminster, and, with the key in his pocket, entrench
-himself at Whitehall, as absolute a tyrant as his brother of France.
-Parliament then was compelled, if it would save the liberties of the
-country, to work by itself for the repair of mischief already done. The
-State had reached a revolutionary crisis; and only by revolutionary
-means could it be brought back to a constitutional and normal
-condition. What Quin said to Warburton of the execution of Charles, may
-be more fitly applied to the taking up arms against him. When asked by
-what law he would justify the deed? The witty actor rejoined, "By all
-the laws he had left them." "It is the sum of the whole controversy,"
-says Walpole, "couched in eight monosyllables."<a name="FNanchor_291_291" id="FNanchor_291_291"></a><a href="#Footnote_291_291" class="fnanchor">[291]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Manifestoes.</i></div>
-
-<p>With the religious points of the declarations we have alone to do. On
-the 9th of April, the Lords and Commons declared that they intended a
-reformation of the Church; and that, for the better effecting thereof,
-they wished speedily to have consultation with godly and learned
-divines; and because this would never of itself attain all the end
-sought therein, they would use their utmost endeavours to establish
-learned and preaching ministers with a good and sufficient maintenance
-throughout the whole kingdom; wherein many dark corners were miserably
-destitute of the means of salvation, and many poor ministers wanted
-necessary provision.<a name="FNanchor_292_292" id="FNanchor_292_292"></a><a href="#Footnote_292_292" class="fnanchor">[292]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1642.</div>
-
-<p>On the 3rd of June, the King stated that he was resolved to defend the
-true Protestant religion established in the reign of Queen Elizabeth,
-to govern by law for the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_236" id="Page_236">[236]</a></span> future; and that he had no intention to
-make war with his Parliament, except it were in the way of defence. In
-June the Parliament presented to the King certain propositions. Those
-relating to religion were:&mdash;That the laws against priests and Popish
-recusants be strictly put in execution, and a more effectual course
-be taken to disable them from making any disturbance; that the Popish
-lords in the House of Peers be deprived of their votes, and a Bill be
-drawn for the education of the children of Papists in the Protestant
-religion; that his Majesty do consent to such a Reformation of the
-Church as Parliament shall devise, and be pleased to give consent
-to the laws for removing innovations, pluralities, and scandalous
-ministers.<a name="FNanchor_293_293" id="FNanchor_293_293"></a><a href="#Footnote_293_293" class="fnanchor">[293]</a> The King replied, that as to the Popish peers he was
-content that they should give their votes by proxy through Protestant
-lords; as to the education of Papists by Protestants, it was the very
-thing he wished: but, touching the Reformation to be made of the Church
-Government and Liturgy, he told them he hoped that what he had formerly
-declared had been sufficiently understood. He had said, in his answer
-to the petition presented at Hampton Court, that, for any illegal
-innovations which might have crept in, he should willingly concur
-in their removal, and that if Parliament should advise the calling
-a national synod he should take it into consideration: but he was
-persuaded that no Church upon the earth could be found with more purity
-of doctrine than the Church of England, that nowhere did government and
-discipline exist more free from superstition; and that he would with
-constancy maintain them in their purity and glory, not only against
-all invasions of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_237" id="Page_237">[237]</a></span> Popery, but also from the irreverence of schismatics
-and separatists, for the suppression of whom he required their timely
-assistance.<a name="FNanchor_294_294" id="FNanchor_294_294"></a><a href="#Footnote_294_294" class="fnanchor">[294]</a> Much of the royal reply had a specious look, and, if
-honestly meant, might have served as a ground for reconciliation; but
-to the Parliament, with their deep conviction of the King's insincerity
-founded on the experience of years, all his honied phraseology only
-seemed to cover hidden stings: and to persons bent on securing
-toleration for the sects&mdash;a daily increasing party&mdash;there was nothing
-in the King's words but what shewed the hopelessness of their cause if
-left to him.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Manifestoes.</i></div>
-
-<p>All these documents considered in reference to what they professed,
-were so much waste paper. Ostensibly they spoke of peace&mdash;virtually
-they meant war.</p>
-
-<p>Indications of a coming conflict were visible. The people divided into
-two parties, and gave signs by hoisting colours. Tawny ribbons were
-mounted in the hats of the Royalists,<a name="FNanchor_295_295" id="FNanchor_295_295"></a><a href="#Footnote_295_295" class="fnanchor">[295]</a> the Parliamentarians wore
-orange. Cavaliers insulted roundheads, and roundheads retaliated on
-cavaliers. The latter, it was reported, put the former to the test by
-requiring them to swear "a round oath." Pamphlets were published in
-vindication of taking up arms. In one of these publications, bearing
-the title of "Powers to be Resisted," it is declared, that if it be
-lawful in any case to contend with the sword it is in this; and, in
-reply to the objection, "No, not with the sword, but with prayer,"
-comes the curious <i>reductio ad absurdum</i>, "contend against swine
-and dogs with prayer! I never heard the like since I was born; a
-vain thing, it is sure, to pray the swine not to trample the pearl
-under foot, to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_238" id="Page_238">[238]</a></span> pray the dogs not to rend you."<a name="FNanchor_296_296" id="FNanchor_296_296"></a><a href="#Footnote_296_296" class="fnanchor">[296]</a> Disturbance and
-insecurity appeared already. The quaint little newspapers of the day
-make complaints of assaults and pillage. The Kent waggoners, for
-example, were stopped on the road to London, and the well-laden wains
-robbed by cavalier banditti.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1642.</div>
-
-<p>Fearful times had already come, and times still more fearful were
-at hand. The people of England trembled at the idea of a civil war;
-the insurrection of Wyat, and Kett's rebellion, had left grave
-recollections in London and Norfolk; but the blood shed in the wars of
-the Roses&mdash;a more terrible memory&mdash;now rose before peaceful households
-in crimson colour. Mental agitation increased at the sight of natural
-phenomena, which that agitation interpreted as supernatural portents;
-omens were detected in slightly unusual incidents, with a feeling akin
-to ancient Greek and Roman hope or terror under the augur's divination.
-Signs blazed in heaven&mdash;noises burst through the air&mdash;people talked
-of "a celestial beating of drums," and "discharging of muskets and
-ordnance for the space of an hour and more." Not satisfied with a
-recognition in the skies of the excitements on the earth, each of
-the two parties claimed the Divine Being on their own side, and had
-wonders to tell of judgments smiting opponents. Royalist churchmen
-related a story of a certain Puritan churchwarden who<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_239" id="Page_239">[239]</a></span> had taken down
-a painted glass window, and within two days his wife was exceedingly
-tormented in her limbs, raging and crying most fearfully. Parliamentary
-Puritans, with equal extravagance, declared how some wicked Royalist
-had stuck on the top of a pole a man in a tub to be shot at, and soon
-afterwards the Royalist was seized with convulsions. One who drank to
-the confusion of Roundheads, on beginning to dance, broke his leg.
-The divine indignation on account of setting up May-poles was equally
-apparent.<a name="FNanchor_297_297" id="FNanchor_297_297"></a><a href="#Footnote_297_297" class="fnanchor">[297]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>The Coming Struggle.</i></div>
-
-<p>In connection with all this, hostile preparations were made on both
-sides. Members of the House of Commons contributed horses, money,
-and plate for the service of Parliament,<a name="FNanchor_298_298" id="FNanchor_298_298"></a><a href="#Footnote_298_298" class="fnanchor">[298]</a> whilst clergymen and
-their families sent spoons, cups, and beakers of silver, to be turned
-into money for the payment of the forces.<a name="FNanchor_299_299" id="FNanchor_299_299"></a><a href="#Footnote_299_299" class="fnanchor">[299]</a> On the other hand, the
-friends of the King manifested their loyalty and devotion; but they did
-not make sacrifices with the same ardour, and to the same extent, as
-their fellow-countrymen who embraced the cause of the opposite party.
-Clarendon bitterly complains of the lukewarmness of the Royalists, and
-observes, that if they had lent their master a fifth part of what they
-afterwards lost, he would have been able to preserve his crown, and
-they would have retained their property.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1642.</div>
-
-<p>The enlistment of soldiers was still more important than filling the
-military chests; and here again the advantage was on the side of the
-Parliament; the militia<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_240" id="Page_240">[240]</a></span> increased more rapidly than the forces
-gathered by the King's commission of array.<a name="FNanchor_300_300" id="FNanchor_300_300"></a><a href="#Footnote_300_300" class="fnanchor">[300]</a> Hampden, as the wheat
-ripened in the Chiltern Hundreds, was engaged in raising volunteers;
-Cromwell made himself useful in Cambridge and the Fen Country after
-a similar fashion; Lord Brooke, too, rode up and down amongst the
-fields and orchards of Worcestershire on the same business; and soon
-England bristled all over with officers beating up recruits. As
-cavalier nobles and squires assembled their tenantry under the royal
-standard, there were other landed proprietors who espoused the popular
-cause, and who were still more successful in securing followers. At
-the same time, town halls and market-places echoed with appeals to
-citizens and burgesses to fight for the liberties of their country;
-whilst in various places ammunition and stores were collected with
-corresponding activity and zeal. Castles and manor-houses were stripped
-of armour which had hung for years upon the time-stained walls; and
-parish churches yielded up from the tombs of ancient knights rusty
-helmets and hauberks. Old bills and bows, matchlocks and pistols,
-pikes and lances, and even staves and clubs, were piled up as part of
-the extemporised equipment. After a little while, military matters
-took something of artistic form, and regiments well accoutred might
-be seen marching under the flags of their respective colonels.
-Redcoats, following Denzil Holles, tramped along the streets of
-London; purple rank and file drew up at Lord Brooke's command under
-the tower of Warwick Castle; Hampden saw with pride<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_241" id="Page_241">[241]</a></span> his green coats
-winding through the vales of Buckinghamshire; and Lord Say and Sele
-appeared at the head of a regiment in jackets of blue. Haselrig led
-on his troops of "lobsters"&mdash;so called from the cuirasses worn by
-his horsemen; and last, but not least, Cromwell rode at the head
-of cavalry, who, from the completeness of their armour, as well as
-the invincibleness of their courage, have always been known as his
-"Ironsides."<a name="FNanchor_301_301" id="FNanchor_301_301"></a><a href="#Footnote_301_301" class="fnanchor">[301]</a> The Parliamentary officers tied an orange scarf over
-their accoutrements, and the standard of each regiment bore on one side
-the colonel's device, and on the other the Parliament's watchword,
-"God with us." Presbyterian divines became Parliamentary chaplains, in
-which capacity Dr. Spurstow was attached to John Hampden, and Simeon
-Ash&mdash;"good old Ash," as afterwards he used to be called&mdash;followed
-Lord Brooke. Marshall and Burgess attended upon the Earl of Essex,
-commander-in-chief.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Character of the Army.</i></div>
-
-<p>The character of the Parliamentary army was not at first what it
-afterwards became. When the war commenced, as Cromwell subsequently
-remarked, "there were numbered among the soldiery, old, decayed
-serving men and tapsters," who dishonoured the cause; Papists,
-too, were reported to be in the ranks, strange as that report may
-appear. Charles, after the battle of Edgehill, flung the reproach in
-the face of his enemies, and declared that all men knew the great
-number of Papists who fought under their banner.<a name="FNanchor_302_302" id="FNanchor_302_302"></a><a href="#Footnote_302_302" class="fnanchor">[302]</a> The Parliament
-indignantly<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_242" id="Page_242">[242]</a></span> repelled the accusation, as utterly inconsistent with
-their avowed opinions and designs. So undoubtedly it was, and if any
-adherents of the popish religion actually existed in the patriot camp,
-they could be there only as Jesuits in disguise, in order to corrupt
-the good affection of their comrades; still, it would appear that such
-a charge could never have been hazarded but for the miscellaneous
-character of the troops at the commencement of the outbreak. Religious
-instruction and discipline, however, were speedily instituted; the men
-were furnished with copies of the Scriptures;<a name="FNanchor_303_303" id="FNanchor_303_303"></a><a href="#Footnote_303_303" class="fnanchor">[303]</a> the preaching of
-the Gospel prevailed in every place where the forces were quartered;
-and various means were employed to improve the moral and spiritual
-condition of the soldiers.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1642.</div>
-
-<p>Turning to look for a moment at the Royalists, we observe that there
-were sound-hearted Protestants and truly religious men amongst them,
-but there were also considerable numbers of Roman Catholics;<a name="FNanchor_304_304" id="FNanchor_304_304"></a><a href="#Footnote_304_304" class="fnanchor">[304]</a>
-others&mdash;we fear they were the majority&mdash;cared very little, if<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_243" id="Page_243">[243]</a></span> at
-all, for religion, either in substance or form. Some scoffed at sacred
-things, and made a boast of their profanity and licentiousness. If
-Puritans quoted Scripture, sometimes with more reverence than wisdom,
-Royalists could use it with a blasphemous kind of vulgar wit which
-it is shocking to record. For example, on an ensign captured in
-Dorsetshire, a cannon was painted, with this motto: "O Lord, open thou
-my lips, and my mouth shall shew forth thy praise."</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Nature of the Struggle.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1642.</div>
-
-<p>The ecclesiastical aspects of the civil war may be seen in the State
-Papers issued at the time. For the present, it suffices to observe
-that the English and the Scotch differed in their views respecting the
-relation in which the religious and political questions of the day
-stood to each other. The Scotch entered the field under the banner
-of Church, Crown, and Covenant, to carry on a contest, if not purely
-religious, yet one which was so in the main. Political considerations
-were subordinate: the flag was unfurled, and the sword drawn for
-Presbyterianism against Popery and against Prelacy. The rights of
-synods, and the interests of pure and undefiled religion, more than the
-privileges of Parliament, constituted the precious national treasure,
-to secure which the veteran General Leslie encamped with that great
-host, which Baillie so graphically describes. In the case of the
-Parliamentary army of England, it was otherwise. In the beginning,
-indeed, the Lancashire Puritans, when taking up arms, proceeded
-entirely on religious grounds, and emulated their more northern
-neighbours in that respect. They dreaded the Papists living amongst
-them; and it was against those Papists, not against the King, as they
-expressly declared, that they threw themselves into the civil war.
-During the siege of Manchester, the inhabitants, in their answer to the
-Royalist Lord Strange,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_244" id="Page_244">[244]</a></span> identified his proceedings with the cause of
-the Roman Catholics, many of whom were marching under his flag.<a name="FNanchor_305_305" id="FNanchor_305_305"></a><a href="#Footnote_305_305" class="fnanchor">[305]</a>
-And in connection with this prominence, in one part of the country
-at least, given to the religious phase of the conflict, it should be
-remembered that English Puritans never counted religion in any of its
-relations as less than supreme; that they always professed obedience to
-Christianity as the supreme law of life; and that they were thoroughly
-religious, as to motive and spirit, in all their military service.
-So completely was this the case, that no Crusader could be more
-devout, as he buckled on his sword to fight for the rescue of the Holy
-Sepulchre, than the Roundhead was, when he buttoned his 'souldier's
-pocket bible' in his waistcoat, and shouldered his musket to fight
-against Rome and the devil&mdash;as well as against political despotism.
-But still, this latter object appears most conspicuous in our civil
-war. Pym and his associates were emphatically Parliament men: they
-engaged in a Parliament struggle, to save the English Constitution from
-the absorbing encroachments of the King's prerogative. Ecclesiastical
-questions necessarily connected themselves with such as were political,
-but the former were kept subordinate; and, when appearing in State
-documents, they occupy a far less space, and are treated with much less
-minuteness and fulness than the latter. The previous history of our
-country had given this shape to the controversy. As prior circumstances
-in Scotland had made the war for the Scotch principally one on behalf
-of the rights of the Church, prior circumstances in England made it for
-the English principally a war on behalf of civil liberty. Through a
-victory achieved for the Church, the Scotch intended to establish the
-political well-being of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_245" id="Page_245">[245]</a></span> their country; through a victory obtained for
-the Parliament, the English meant to promote the spiritual interests of
-the Church. The relation between the two aspects of the conflict, in
-each case, came to be regulated accordingly.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_246" id="Page_246">[246]</a></span></p></div>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="illo246" >
- <img
- class="p0"
- src="images/illo246.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XI.</h2>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">To employ an apt but homely figure used by Mrs. Hutchinson, the
-smoke ascended from the tops of the chimneys before the flame broke
-out. As early as April, the King appeared at the gates of Hull,
-where he was denied entrance by Sir John Hotham. In the middle of
-June, the Commission of Array at Leicester came into collision with
-the Parliamentary militia. In August, the brave Lord Brooke set out
-from Warwick Castle with three hundred musketeers and two hundred
-horse, gathering round him recruits to the number of three thousand;
-the country sending "six loads of harrows to keep off horses, and a
-cart-load of bread and cheese, and great store of beer."<a name="FNanchor_306_306" id="FNanchor_306_306"></a><a href="#Footnote_306_306" class="fnanchor">[306]</a> Reluctant
-to shed blood, the Puritan commander charged his soldiers, for the
-kingdom's sake, not to fire a single pistol except in self-defence.
-Happily, there arose no occasion for firing at all, as the Royalists,
-under the Earl of Northampton, threw down their arms, and ran away.
-The King, in revenge of Brooke's conduct, bestowed that nobleman's
-castle as an escheat on the Lord of Compton-Winyates, after which the
-patriot, in defiance of this injustice and insult, planted ordnance at
-the gate and keep of his feudal fortress, and on the top<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_247" id="Page_247">[247]</a></span> of Cæsar's
-tower. Lord Compton, forcibly claiming the royal grant, assailed the
-stronghold left under the charge of Sir Edward Peto, and planted cannon
-on the church to bombard the castle. Dislodged by shots, the besieger
-endeavoured to starve out the garrison; but Sir Edward, with grim
-Puritan resolution, hoisted a flag displaying the figures of a Bible
-and a winding sheet, which presented very significant symbols of the
-objects and spirit of the rising war.<a name="FNanchor_307_307" id="FNanchor_307_307"></a><a href="#Footnote_307_307" class="fnanchor">[307]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Outbreak of War.</i></div>
-
-<p>On the afternoon of Monday, the 22nd of August, there occurred the
-world-famous act of setting up the King's standard at Nottingham. After
-dinner, he with his company rode into the town from Leicester Abbey.
-The standard was taken out of the castle and carried into a field
-behind the castle wall. It resembled one of the city streamers used
-at the Lord Mayor's show; it had about twenty supporters; on its top
-hung a flag with the royal arms quartered, and a hand pointing to the
-crown, with the motto, "Give Cæsar his due." It was conducted to the
-field in great state by the King, Prince Rupert, and divers Lords. A
-proclamation respecting the war had been prepared, which his Majesty
-read over, and, seeming to dislike some expressions, called for pen and
-ink, and with his own hand crossed out or altered them; after which,
-when the paper was read, the multitude threw up their hats and cried,
-"God save the King." It was now late in the month of August, the days
-were closing in, and the evening shadows fell on the King and his
-staff as they engaged in this act which finally plunged England into a
-civil war. A violent storm of wind arose and blew down the standard,
-almost as soon as it was unfurled.<a name="FNanchor_308_308" id="FNanchor_308_308"></a><a href="#Footnote_308_308" class="fnanchor">[308]</a> As the cavaliers, in the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_248" id="Page_248">[248]</a></span> dim
-twilight, wheeled off from the spot, did not their hearts beat with a
-sense of something very awful done that night?</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1642, August.</div>
-
-<p>As from one end of England to the other rumours of war were current,
-pious men betook themselves to the exercises of devotion; and the two
-Houses of Parliament, on hearing that the standard had been set up at
-Nottingham, published an ordinance for observing, with more than usual
-humiliation, the monthly fast, the services of which were to last from
-<i>nine in the morning till four in the afternoon</i>. At the same period,
-a religious service in London, known as "the Morning Exercise," was
-commenced, in connection with which special intercessions were offered
-up on behalf of the Parliamentary forces.<a name="FNanchor_309_309" id="FNanchor_309_309"></a><a href="#Footnote_309_309" class="fnanchor">[309]</a></p>
-
-<p>But whilst peaceable Puritans were praying, their armed brethren were
-marching through the country. In the State Paper Office there are
-letters, probably intercepted ones, written by a Roundhead soldier
-named Wharton, reporting to a friend the adventures of the regiment to
-which he belonged. They are so curious and interesting, and throw such
-light on the feelings of a religious nature which existed in the hearts
-of the Parliament soldiers, that we cannot forbear making use of them
-largely in this part of our narrative.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Troops on the March.</i></div>
-
-<p>He informs us, that in the month of August, 1642, he and his comrades
-marched to Acton, and were belated. Many were constrained to lodge in
-beds "whose feathers were above a yard long." They sallied out into
-the town, and coming to the house of one Penruddock, a Papist, they
-were "basely affronted by him<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_249" id="Page_249">[249]</a></span> and his dog;" whereupon they entered
-and pillaged the dwelling; and then proceeded to the church, where
-they "defaced the ancient and sacred glazed pictures, and burned the
-holy rails;" the soldiers brought more holy rails to be burnt, and
-abstained from pillaging Lord Portland's house, together with another
-inhabited by Dr. Ducke, only in consequence of a prohibition from their
-commanders. Mention is made of converting the surplice at Hillingdon
-into handkerchiefs, of burning the rails and also a service book at
-Uxbridge, and of similar outrages, perpetrated in other places; as well
-as of soldiers visiting Papists by stealth, and forcing them to give
-loaves and cheeses, which the captors triumphantly carried away on the
-points of their swords. Colonel Hampden, accompanied by many gentlemen
-well-horsed, welcomed these detachments to Aylesbury with great joy;
-after which they marched out with 400 musqueteers and a hundred horse,
-to Watlington, in Oxfordshire. At Great Missenden they had noble
-entertainment from the whole town, and especially from Sir Bryan
-Ireson, and the minister. On Sunday, a pulpit was built in the market
-place of Aylesbury, where they heard "two worthy sermons." Grievous
-complaints are made of their Lieutenant-Colonel, who is described in no
-measured terms, as one whom they all desired that the Parliament would
-depose or God convert, or "the devil fetch away quick."<a name="FNanchor_310_310" id="FNanchor_310_310"></a><a href="#Footnote_310_310" class="fnanchor">[310]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1642, September.</div>
-
-<p>From Northampton the same correspondent writes informing his friend
-that on Wednesday a fast was kept at Coventry&mdash;which is described as
-a city, having four steeples, three churches, and two parishes, and
-not long<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_250" id="Page_250">[250]</a></span> since, but one priest&mdash;where they heard two sermons, but
-before the third was ended an "alarum" came for them to march. By
-ten o'clock they got their regiments together, and about two in the
-morning proceeded towards Northampton.<a name="FNanchor_311_311" id="FNanchor_311_311"></a><a href="#Footnote_311_311" class="fnanchor">[311]</a> The military pillaged the
-parson of Barby, and brought him away prisoner with his surplice and
-other relics. At Long Buckby the soldiers had hard quarters, insomuch
-that they were glad to "dispossess the very swine, and as many as
-could quartered in the church." Some stragglers sallied into the
-neighbourhood of the town, and returned "in state, clothed in surplice,
-hood, and cap, representing the Bishop of Canterbury." On Friday
-morning, Mr. Obediah Sedgwick "gave a worthy sermon," and Wharton's
-company marched rank and file to hear him. Mr. John Sedgwick had been
-appointed to preach in the afternoon, but news having arrived that
-Prince Rupert had plundered Harborough, and fired some adjacent towns,
-this circumstance spoiled the service. On Sabbath morning Mr. Marshall,
-"that worthy champion of Christ," preached, and in the afternoon Mr.
-Ash officiated. These by their sermons "subdued and satisfied more
-malignant spirits than 1,000 armed men could have done, so that we have
-great hopes of a blessed union."</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Troops on the March.</i></div>
-
-<p>Writing from Worcester (September 26th), Wharton complains of the
-barbarity practised by the cavaliers&mdash;rela<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_251" id="Page_251">[251]</a></span>ting how they stripped,
-stabbed, and slashed the dead, and then states that on Sabbath morning,
-his fellow-soldiers entered a vault of the college where his Excellency
-was to hear a sermon, and found secreted there eleven barrels of
-gunpowder and a pot of bullets. It is added that his Excellency
-prohibited any soldier to plunder churches or private houses under pain
-of death. In another communication, (dated September 30th), after an
-interesting account of the situation, buildings, and curiosities of the
-city, he paints its moral and spiritual condition, in most frightful
-colours, as so vile, and the country so base, so papistical, so
-atheistical, and abominable that it resembled Sodom, and was the very
-emblem of Gomorrah, and doubtless worse than either Algiers or Malta,
-a very den of thieves, and a refuge for all the hell-hounds in the
-country. Though the citizens cried <i>peccavi</i> their practical motto was
-<i>iterum faciam</i>; but they only did as they were taught by Dr. Prideaux,
-lately made bishop, and by other popish priests, who had all run away.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1642, October.</div>
-
-<p>Respecting Hereford, he remarks, October the 7th, "On Sabbath day,
-about the time of morning prayer, we went to the minster, where the
-pipes played and the puppets sang so sweetly, that some of our soldiers
-could not forbear dancing in the holy quire, whereat the <i>Baalists</i>
-were sore displeased. The anthem ended, they fell to prayer, and
-prayed devoutly for the King and the bishops, and one of our soldiers
-with a loud voice said, 'What! never a bit for the Parliament,' which
-offended them much more. Not satisfied with this human service we went
-to divine, and, passing by, found shops open and men at work, to whom
-we gave some plain dehortations, and went to hear Mr. Sedgwick, who
-gave us two famous sermons, which much affected the poor inhabitants,
-who wondering, said they never heard the like before, and I<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_252" id="Page_252">[252]</a></span> believe
-them. The Lord move your hearts to commiserate their distress, and to
-send them some faithful and painful minister, for the revenues of the
-college will maintain many of them. I have sent you the gods of the
-cavaliers enclosed, they are pillage taken from Sir William Russel, of
-which I never yet got the worth of one farthing."</p>
-
-<p>The writer of these letters was a stern Puritan, with an almost equal
-hatred of Prelacy and Popery, and also a fierce Iconoclast, with
-not an atom of regard for what is æsthetical in worship&mdash;tearing up
-surplices as the rags of the mother of harlots, and looking with
-grim satisfaction on altar rails crackling in the fire as so much
-superstitious refuse and defilement swept out of the Church of God, and
-meet only to be destroyed.</p>
-
-<p>Contemporary with these epistles is one from a minister at Berwick,
-which presents to us another illustration of what happened in those
-times, by revealing to us his secret troubles&mdash;thus indicating the
-violence of feeling prevalent amongst the Roman Catholics of the wild
-Border Country, towards zealous apostles of Puritanism: "Never had
-I more need of your prayers than at present: the Papists are very
-insolent, use me most basely by railing on me, &amp;c. But especially the
-Scottish fugitives, Mr. Sideserfe and his adherents, are so exasperated
-against me for my fidelity, that there is no small fear of my life
-and safety. One in his cups said yesterday, that they would not be
-satisfied until they had my life; but I say with the apostle, my life
-is not dear unto me, that I may finish my course with joy and fulfil
-the ministry which I have received of the Lord Jesus. They rail upon
-the Parliament, and threaten to send for a troop of horse to fetch me
-from Berwick, but my times are in the Lord's hands. I have one hundred
-pounds in London: I would<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_253" id="Page_253">[253]</a></span> the Parliament had it for and towards the
-defence of the kingdom, if it would be accepted. The Lord maintain His
-own cause, go out with His armies, and make a good end for us, for I
-know your prayers will not be wanting."<a name="FNanchor_312_312" id="FNanchor_312_312"></a><a href="#Footnote_312_312" class="fnanchor">[312]</a></p>
-
-<p>As the Parliamentary soldiers were marching up and down the country,
-after the fashion described in Nehemiah Wharton's letters, Royalists
-were working out their will in another kind of lawless way. They had no
-psalm-singing or prayer, they built no pulpits in market-places, and
-if they did not retaliate upon conventicles the puritan treatment of
-parish churches, it was simply because conventicles did not exist, or
-were not within their reach. Royalist excesses were of another order.
-Whitelocke, describing the plunder of his own house, tells us that
-the enemy consumed whatever they could find, lighted their pipes with
-his MSS., carried away his title deeds, littered their horses with
-his wheat sheaves, broke down his park pales, killed his deer, broke
-open his trunks and chests, cut his beds and let out the feathers,
-and seized his coach and horses. In a word, they committed "all the
-mischief and spoil that malice and enmity could provoke barbarous
-mercenaries to commit."<a name="FNanchor_313_313" id="FNanchor_313_313"></a><a href="#Footnote_313_313" class="fnanchor">[313]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Battle of Edgehill.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1642, October.</div>
-
-<p>The first serious conflict between the two armies happened at Edgehill,
-on Sunday, October the 23rd. The Puritan forces were marching to
-worship at Keynton church, when news reached them of the enemy being
-only two miles distant. Upon hearing this, they proceeded that
-morning&mdash;as the autumnal tints dyed the landscape&mdash;to a broad field at
-the hill foot, called the Vale of the Red Horse, where, as they took
-up their position, the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_254" id="Page_254">[254]</a></span> Royalists came down and arranged their forces
-in front of them. Amongst the cavaliers rode Sir Jacob Astley, whose
-prayer and charge were so characteristic of the bluff piety of the
-best of that class, "O Lord, Thou knowest how busy I must be this day.
-If I forget Thee do not forget me. March on, boys!" Then began the
-rush of pikes, the crack of musketry, and the roar of cannon, which
-lasted till dark. Richard Baxter was preaching that day at Alcester,
-and heard the tumult of the distant fight. Some fugitives ran into the
-town, startling and alarming the inhabitants with the news, that the
-Parliament had been defeated; but early next morning other messengers
-relieved the panic-stricken inhabitants by the assurance that while
-Prince Rupert's men were plundering the waggons of Lord Essex's routed
-wing, the main body with the right wing had prevailed and won the
-day. The preacher walked over to the spot next morning, and found the
-Parliamentary General in possession of the field.<a name="FNanchor_314_314" id="FNanchor_314_314"></a><a href="#Footnote_314_314" class="fnanchor">[314]</a></p>
-
-<p>The battle decided nothing, but it nourished the hopes of Parliament.
-A few days afterwards, the House of Lords ordered the Lord Mayor of
-London to summon a Common Hall at five o'clock, when a committee of
-peers and commons met the citizens, and amidst the gathering shadows of
-the afternoon, told the eagerly-listening crowd the story of the fight;
-Lord Say and Sele closing his speech with the exhortation, "Up and be
-doing, and the Lord be with you."<a name="FNanchor_315_315" id="FNanchor_315_315"></a><a href="#Footnote_315_315" class="fnanchor">[315]</a></p>
-
-<p>On the 8th of November, the citizens again assembled. Charles was
-moving up to London, Rupert was scouring the suburbs, and within the
-walls there was general alarm.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_255" id="Page_255">[255]</a></span> Lord Brooke, who attended the meeting,
-after giving a confused report of what had been done at Edgehill, urged
-his audience to stand up for liberty and religion. "When you shall hear
-the drums beat," he exclaimed, "say not, I beseech you, I am not of the
-train band, nor this, nor that, nor the other&mdash;but doubt not to go out
-to the work, and fight courageously, and this shall be the day of your
-deliverance."</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Church Politics in London.</i></div>
-
-<p>A few days later the Royalist forces were at Brentford. The City
-volunteers now rallied round old General Skippon, whose homely words
-went to their hearts: "Come, my boys, my brave boys, let us pray
-heartily and fight heartily. I will run the same fortunes and hazards
-with you. Remember the cause is for God, and for the defence of
-yourselves, your wives, and children." The train bands marched out on
-Sunday, the citizens, after sermon, carrying them provisions.<a name="FNanchor_316_316" id="FNanchor_316_316"></a><a href="#Footnote_316_316" class="fnanchor">[316]</a>
-At the time when the cavaliers were spurring their horses toward the
-metropolis, a declaration of the two Houses appeared in answer to one
-by his Majesty. In the course of a general argument which the document
-contained, there occurred a disavowal of any intention to reject the
-Book of Common Prayer. It was intended, they said, only to take out
-of it what was evil and justly offensive, and what was considered
-unnecessary and burdensome. They also protested against Brownists and
-Anabaptists, entirely disavowing any sympathy with such persons; though
-they said they agreed with many who were falsely designated by such
-opprobrious appellations. These references were made to the Separatists
-because the King and the Anglicans were always reviling them, sometimes
-in strong terms; for example, the Earl of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_256" id="Page_256">[256]</a></span> Newcastle declared that they
-were worse than Papists, and deserted a heavier punishment.<a name="FNanchor_317_317" id="FNanchor_317_317"></a><a href="#Footnote_317_317" class="fnanchor">[317]</a> Such
-abuse really was pointed at the Commons themselves, who were not only
-suspected but often broadly accused of schismatical predilections. His
-Majesty's wrath also boiled over, and in one of his many declarations
-he told his "loving subjects" of seditious members, who being joined
-with the Anabaptists and Brownists of London, first changed the
-government of the city, and then by their pride and power would fain
-undo the whole kingdom. Pennington, who now occupied the mayoralty, was
-described as guilty of treason, and also as reviling the Prayer Book;
-and as robbing and imprisoning whomsoever he thought fit, and with the
-rabble who composed his faction giving law to Parliament.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1642, November.</div>
-
-<p>The quarrel between the King and the City now became still darker
-and deeper. A letter from the Hague, directed to Secretary Nicholas,
-and brought to London in a Gravesend boat&mdash;which was stopped at
-the moment of shooting London Bridge&mdash;contained evidence of the
-King's negotiations for bringing over foreign troops: this letter
-consequently was soon printed and circulated through the city. The
-two Houses ordered the clergy to read it in their churches; and the
-devoted Lord Mayor requested them to make it a ground of appeal to the
-parishioners respecting a sum of £30,000 which was about to be raised
-for Parliament. Churchwardens were to hold meetings after service in
-the afternoon on the 27th of November, to raise "a proportionable
-fund,"<a name="FNanchor_318_318" id="FNanchor_318_318"></a><a href="#Footnote_318_318" class="fnanchor">[318]</a> which we may well imagine that we see accomplished by dim
-candle-light in churches, vestries, and other places, on that wintry
-Sunday night.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_257" id="Page_257">[257]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Church Politics in London.</i></div>
-
-<p>The City and the Parliament were thoroughly united this midwinter; and
-therefore the City and the Sovereign continued in violent opposition.
-At a Common Hall, held on the 13th of January&mdash;when all the companies
-came in their city habits, and there were present the Committee of both
-Houses, the Lord Mayor and Aldermen, and such a confluence of liverymen
-as had not been seen in the memory of the oldest man&mdash;a petition to the
-King was read, and then the royal answer, in which his Majesty asked
-his petitioners whether they believed that the indignities done to the
-Prayer Book, the violent treatment of Episcopal clergymen, and the
-cherishing and countenancing of all manner of sectaries, were likely
-to defend and maintain the Protestant religion. Mr. Pym, being present
-at the meeting, delivered a speech, in which he denied his Majesty's
-allegations, maintaining that the magistrates did not give countenance
-to the sectaries; adding this home-thrust, which Charles so often had
-to meet, that if they did, his Majesty could not consistently object,
-inasmuch as, having sworn to support the Protestant religion, he, in
-the meantime, raised an army of Papists.<a name="FNanchor_319_319" id="FNanchor_319_319"></a><a href="#Footnote_319_319" class="fnanchor">[319]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643, January.</div>
-
-<p>Another City meeting followed on the 17th, when Alderman Garroway
-appeared as an advocate of the Episcopal Church; and it will be
-instructive to notice his speech, as shewing the line of remark which
-at the time was adopted on that side of the controversy. "Mr. Pym told
-us," said the Alderman, "there was no proof that my Lord Mayor and the
-other persons named were countenancers of Brownists, Anabaptists, and
-other sectaries. Where should this proof be made? Do we not all know
-this to be true? Are they not all so much countenanced, as there is no
-countenance left for any<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_258" id="Page_258">[258]</a></span>body else? Did not my Lord Mayor first enter
-upon his office with a speech against the Book of Common Prayer? Hath
-the Common Prayer ever been read before him? Hath not Captain Venn said
-that his wife could make prayers worth three of any in that book? Oh,
-masters, there have been times that he that should speak against the
-Book of Common Prayer in this city, should not have been put to the
-patience of a legal trial. We were wont to look upon it as the greatest
-treasure and jewel of our religion; and he that should have told us he
-wished well to our religion, and yet would take away the Book of Common
-Prayer, would never have gotten credit. I have been in all the parts
-of Christendom, and have conversed with Christians in Turkey. Why,
-in all the reformed churches there is not anything of more reverence
-than the English liturgy; not our Royal Exchange, or the name of Queen
-Elizabeth, so famous. In Geneva itself I have heard it extolled to the
-skies. I have been three months together by sea, not a day without
-hearing it read twice. The honest mariners then despised all the world
-but the King and the Common Prayer Book. He that should have been
-suspected to wish ill to either of them would have made an ill voyage.
-And let me tell you, they are shrewd youths, those seamen. If they
-once discern that the person of the King is in danger, or the true
-Protestant professed religion, they will shew themselves mad bodies
-before you are aware of it."<a name="FNanchor_320_320" id="FNanchor_320_320"></a><a href="#Footnote_320_320" class="fnanchor">[320]</a></p>
-
-<p>Whilst the Alderman was speaking, there arose, according to the
-reporter, much interruption. Citizens hissed, and cried, "No more, no
-more!" It was an hour after he rose to speak ere the uproar ceased. He
-was not to be put down, however, but patiently continued repeating<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_259" id="Page_259">[259]</a></span>
-the same sentence till people were quiet. At last the Court broke up,
-and every man departed&mdash;"so great a company going before and following
-after Alderman Garroway to his house, that the streets were as full
-as at my Lord Mayor's show." Some one recommended them to act with
-discretion. "Discretion!" exclaimed a butcher, "we shall be undone
-with it. Let us proceed as these people have taught. When we asked
-them what we should have in the place of bishops, they told us bishops
-were naught we all knew, and, when they were gone, we should think of
-somewhat that is better in their room. Let us now take away what we
-know is naught, and we shall do well enough after. I owe them a good
-turn for the honour they have done my trade."</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Popular Preachers in London.</i></div>
-
-<p>Whatever truth there might be in the charge that the sectaries were
-encouraged by Pennington and others, certainly Presbyterianism
-received the support of by far the majority of the London citizens.
-Two Presbyterian clergymen at this time enjoyed great popularity in
-the metropolis&mdash;Stephen Marshall and Edmund Calamy. Marshall held the
-lectureship of St. Margaret's Church, Westminster. His pulpit talents
-were of a superior order, and were employed in the exhibition of truths
-dear to Puritan affections; but, like others of his age and creed,
-he introduced into his sermons the absorbing questions of the day.
-Knowing that they filled the minds of his hearers, and deeming them of
-vital interest to his country and the Church, he judged that by such
-preaching he really walked in the footsteps of old Hebrew prophets.
-We find Calamy, the historian, admitting that Marshall encouraged the
-taking up arms for securing the Constitution, when it appeared, not
-only to him and his brethren, but to a number of as worthy gentlemen
-as ever sat<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_260" id="Page_260">[260]</a></span> in St. Stephen's chapel, to be in no small danger.<a name="FNanchor_321_321" id="FNanchor_321_321"></a><a href="#Footnote_321_321" class="fnanchor">[321]</a>
-Men, in those troublous times, must not be judged by such standards of
-propriety as are upheld amidst the comfortable respectability of our
-own peaceful era; and the same allowance must be made for both sides.
-If we do not wonder at the stern animosity of the Royalist churchman,
-neither should we be surprised at the martial zeal of Parliamentary
-presbyters.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643, January.</div>
-
-<p>The lectureship at St. Margaret's brought Marshall into close
-connection with the Commons, which naturally, under the circumstances,
-imparted a political tinge to his oratory. But Calamy,<a name="FNanchor_322_322" id="FNanchor_322_322"></a><a href="#Footnote_322_322" class="fnanchor">[322]</a> being
-perpetual curate of Aldermanbury, had to do with parishioners whose
-spiritual wants came immediately under his notice; and he delighted
-in that experimental strain of discourse which ever touches the
-hearts of men. What made him acceptable to the citizens in his own
-neighbourhood, made him acceptable to the citizens generally. No church
-was so thronged as his. Admired by the Puritan, he was lampooned by
-the Royalist. "Well, who's for Aldermanbury?" asked the latter, in
-one of the scurrilous party tracts, of which some are reprinted in
-well-known collections, and many more are preserved in the British
-Museum. "You would think a ph&#339;nix preached there. A foot-ball in
-cold weather is as much followed as Calamy by all his rampant dog-day
-zealots." Reporters, not for the press, but for private edification,
-waited on the divine, as we learn from the pamphleteer, who proceeds to
-exclaim, "Instead of a dumb shew, enter the sermon daubers. Oh! what a
-gracious sight is a silver ink-horn. How blessed a gift is it to write
-short-hand! What<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_261" id="Page_261">[261]</a></span> necessary implements for a saint are cotton wool
-and blotting-paper. These dabblers turn the Church into a scrivener's
-shop. A country fellow, last term, mistook it for the six clerks'
-office."<a name="FNanchor_323_323" id="FNanchor_323_323"></a><a href="#Footnote_323_323" class="fnanchor">[323]</a> This vulgar ridicule at once testifies to the popularity
-of Calamy, illustrates the manners and customs of the time in places of
-worship, and shews that, whatever might be the religious extravagances
-of some Presbyterians, they were more than matched by the godless
-ridicule of people who claimed to be exceedingly zealous for Episcopacy.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Popular Preachers in London.</i></div>
-
-<p>Coincident with the increasing popularity of these preachers, the
-actual outbreak of the Civil Wars, and the excitement in London
-respecting ecclesiastical affairs, were certain measures adopted by
-Parliament for abolishing Episcopacy. The Scotch did not fail to
-press this subject most earnestly upon their English brethren. They
-looked at it in the lurid light which their own annals had thrown on
-the institution, and in their view it had become identified with the
-arrogance and intolerance of Popery and Anglicanism. Unable to rest
-till England was saved from what they considered to be the secret of
-its weakness, and the precursor of its ruin, the General Assembly of
-Scotland sent a letter to Parliament, urging a thorough reformation,
-with a view to "one confession of faith, one directory of worship, one
-public catechism, and one form of Church government."<a name="FNanchor_324_324" id="FNanchor_324_324"></a><a href="#Footnote_324_324" class="fnanchor">[324]</a></p>
-
-<p>The answer of the English Parliament was both cautious and promising.
-No assurance was returned that organic unity with the Scotch should be
-attempted, but a hope was expressed of more free communion in worship,
-of security against Papists and "other sectaries," and of the gathering
-together in England of an Assembly<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_262" id="Page_262">[262]</a></span> of learned Divines. The fate of
-prelacy, however, was sealed by the following important declaration,
-which was embodied in the answer:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>"That this Government by Archbishops, Bishops, their Chancellors and
-Commissaries, Deans and Chapters, Archdeacons, and other ecclesiastical
-officers depending upon the hierarchy, is evil, and justly offensive
-and burdensome to the kingdom, a great impediment to reformation and
-growth of religion, very prejudicial to the State and Government of
-this kingdom; and that we are resolved that the same shall be taken
-away."<a name="FNanchor_325_325" id="FNanchor_325_325"></a><a href="#Footnote_325_325" class="fnanchor">[325]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643, January.</div>
-
-<p>On the 30th of the following December, a Bill for the utter abolition
-of Episcopacy was read a first time;<a name="FNanchor_326_326" id="FNanchor_326_326"></a><a href="#Footnote_326_326" class="fnanchor">[326]</a> and on the 26th of January
-following, 1643, the Bill was reported in the House of Lords as having
-been approved by the committee and read the third time. What had been
-threatened for nearly two years was done at last in a few hours. The
-emergency of the moment, and the critical state of the war, caused now
-the hasty passing of the measure, for which a long train of events had
-opened the way.</p>
-
-<p>Other acts of a like complexion gather around this central one. On the
-23rd of December, an order was given to secure the library, writings,
-and goods in Lambeth House, belonging to the see of Canterbury, and to
-take the keys of the palace, which was now to be used as a prison. On
-the 3rd and 5th of January, a similar disposal was made of Ely House
-and the palace of the Bishop of London, near St. Paul's. On the 30th
-of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_263" id="Page_263">[263]</a></span> December, the Lords and Commons, ignoring altogether the laws and
-customs of the Episcopal Church, ordered a clergyman to be instituted
-to the vicarage of Chard, in Somersetshire; and on January the 7th, a
-Bill against pluralities and non-residence received a third reading by
-the Lords.<a name="FNanchor_327_327" id="FNanchor_327_327"></a><a href="#Footnote_327_327" class="fnanchor">[327]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Negotiations at Oxford.</i></div>
-
-<p>Be it remembered, that all these Bills, after passing both Houses,
-remained without Royal assent; and therefore could not be regarded
-as Acts of Parliament according to the principles of the English
-Constitution: a circumstance which, of course, the Sovereign and the
-Royalist party took care to urge against them.</p>
-
-<p>The Scotch Presbyterians, after having failed in their attempts at
-the beginning of the year 1642 to mediate between the King and the
-Parliament, continued anxiously to watch the progress of affairs in
-England, with a view to the accomplishment of that union between the
-two countries upon which they had already set their hearts. Willing,
-and even anxious, to take a part in the war, they waited until such
-applications for aid should be made by either of the belligerents as
-might seem most likely to terminate the strife in favour of their
-own Church schemes. Doubtless they would have helped the King, if,
-on the one hand, he would have renounced Episcopacy and embraced
-Presbyterianism, or if, on the other hand, Parliament had opposed
-Presbyterianism and maintained Episcopacy. But Charles despaired of
-their assistance, knowing well the religious antipathies existing
-between himself and them; and Parliament at first forbore to solicit
-their military help, not then feeling their very great need of it.</p>
-
-<p>Even when a turn in affairs made it appear valuable, Par<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_264" id="Page_264">[264]</a></span>liament did
-not ask for it with as much earnestness as the northern brethren
-would have wished. It is plain, from Baillie's letters, that he and
-his friends were readier to draw the sword for the true Kirk on this
-side the Tweed than the English at present were to enter on a military
-alliance with Scotland for ecclesiastical objects. After a diplomatic
-lull&mdash;in which for a long time, says the worthy man, we "lay verie
-calm and secure,"<a name="FNanchor_328_328" id="FNanchor_328_328"></a><a href="#Footnote_328_328" class="fnanchor">[328]</a> and when intrigues amongst the Scotch Royalists
-filled the Presbyterian magnates with alarm&mdash;they turned their thoughts
-towards Oxford, and sent Commissioners to treat with the King.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643, January.</div>
-
-<p>The Earl of Loudon, now Chancellor of Scotland, came to Oxford as the
-principal lay commissioner, and Alexander Henderson accompanied him
-as an ecclesiastical one. The latter bore a petition from the General
-Assembly, prepared by himself. This petition dwelt upon the insolence
-and presumption of Roman Catholics, and entreated that there might
-be an established uniformity in religion. It was urged that, since
-prelatical government had been taken away, a government by assemblies,
-as in other reformed kirks, should follow.<a name="FNanchor_329_329" id="FNanchor_329_329"></a><a href="#Footnote_329_329" class="fnanchor">[329]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Negotiations at Oxford.</i></div>
-
-<p>Another embassy, with somewhat different designs, reached the same
-place soon afterwards. It included the Earl of Northumberland, with
-other noblemen and gentlemen, Bulstrode Whitelocke, who relates
-particulars of the visit, being one of them.<a name="FNanchor_330_330" id="FNanchor_330_330"></a><a href="#Footnote_330_330" class="fnanchor">[330]</a> They were sent by
-the Parliament to confer with the King for an ultimate peace with an
-immediate cessation of arms, upon terms which were strictly prescribed
-in their commission. These am<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_265" id="Page_265">[265]</a></span>bassadors were not plenipotentiaries,
-but they were selected for their known moderation, as persons likely,
-on that account, to be acceptable to the monarch. They travelled with
-the King's safe conduct in a style which was no doubt very superior to
-that of the emissaries from the North. They had "six gallant horses in
-every coach," and the whole party was attended by a number of servants
-on horseback. This imposing procession, however, failed to awe the
-"rascality of the town;" for they, and even "some of better rank but
-like quality," reviled the distinguished visitors as so many rebels
-and traitors. However, Charles received them all in the gardens of
-Christ Church very graciously, and held out his hand for each to kiss.
-Immediately they proceeded to business, and the Earl of Northumberland,
-"with a sober and stout carriage," read to the King the propositions
-of the two Houses. The Monarch began to interrupt. The Earl smartly
-replied, "Your Majesty will give me leave to proceed." Charles
-stuttered out, "I&mdash;I," and then paused, allowing the bold nobleman to
-have his way.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643, February.</div>
-
-<p>The ecclesiastical proposals were as follows:&mdash;<a name="FNanchor_331_331" id="FNanchor_331_331"></a><a href="#Footnote_331_331" class="fnanchor">[331]</a></p>
-
-<p>(1) "That your Majesty will be pleased to give your royal assent unto
-the Bill for taking away superstitious innovations;</p>
-
-<p>(2) "To the Bill for the utter abolishing and taking away of all
-archbishops, bishops, their chancellors and commissaries, deans,
-sub-deans, deans and chapters, archdeacons, canons and prebendaries,
-and all chanters, chancellors, treasurers, sub-treasurers, succentors
-and sacrists, and all vicars choral and choristers, old vicars, and
-new vicars of any cathedral or collegiate church, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_266" id="Page_266">[266]</a></span> all other their
-under officers out of the Church of England;</p>
-
-<p>(3) "To the Bill against scandalous ministers;</p>
-
-<p>(4) "To the Bill against pluralities; and</p>
-
-<p>(5) "To the Bill of consultation to be had with godly, religious, and
-learned Divines. That your Majesty will be pleased to promise to pass
-such other good Bills for settling of Church government, as, upon
-consultation with the Assembly of the said Divines, shall be resolved
-on by both Houses of Parliament, and by them be presented to your
-Majesty."</p>
-
-<p>To these five propositions no explicit reply was given by the King;
-but, in reference to religion generally, he said that, as he would
-"readily consent (having done so heretofore) to the execution of all
-laws already made, and to any good Acts to be made for the suppressing
-of Popery, and for the firm settling of the Protestant religion, now
-established by law; so he desired that a good Bill might be framed for
-the better preserving of the Book of Common Prayer from the scorn and
-violence of Brownists, Anabaptists, and other sectaries, with such
-clauses for the ease of tender consciences as his Majesty hath formerly
-offered."</p>
-
-<p>Such an answer virtually negatived what the Parliament proposed. It
-does not seem that any debate arose on the ecclesiastical points
-between the King and the Commissioners. Their diplomacy entirely
-referred to the question of a cessation of arms, which, after all,
-could not be effected; and the embassage returned to Westminster
-without accomplishing any part of their object.</p>
-
-<p>The Scotch were not more successful; but in the King's council their
-petition created much discussion, the main question being, "What answer
-shall be given to these gentlemen from the North?"</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_267" id="Page_267">[267]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Answer to the Scottish Petition.</i></div>
-
-<p>"Many of the Lords," says Clarendon, "were of opinion that a short
-answer would be best, that should contain nothing but a rejection of
-the proposition, without giving any reason; no man seeming to concur
-with his Majesty, with which he was not satisfied, and replied with
-some sharpness upon what had been said. Upon which the Lord Falkland
-replied, having been before of that mind, desiring that no reasons
-might be given; and upon that occasion answered many of those reasons
-the King had urged, as not valid to support the subject, with a little
-quickness of wit (as his notions were always sharp, and expressed
-with notable vivacity), which made the King warmer than he used to
-be; reproaching all who were of that mind with want of affection for
-the Church; and declaring that he would have the substance of what he
-had said, or of the like nature, digested into his answer; with which
-reprehension all sat very silent, having never undergone the like
-before. Whereupon, the King, recollecting himself, and observing that
-the Chancellor of the Exchequer had not yet spoken, called upon him to
-deliver his opinion, adding, that he was sure he was of his Majesty's
-mind with reference to religion and the Church."<a name="FNanchor_332_332" id="FNanchor_332_332"></a><a href="#Footnote_332_332" class="fnanchor">[332]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643, February.</div>
-
-<p>From Clarendon's narrative we discover, that with all Falkland's
-vivacity, he shewed lukewarmness in the cause of Episcopacy, and that
-the zeal of the King on its behalf went beyond that of his advisers.
-The historian reports his own speech, in which he recommended that
-reasons should be given, but not in the way his royal master wished.
-The result may be seen in a paper in the King's name, probably drawn
-up by the Chancellor.<a name="FNanchor_333_333" id="FNanchor_333_333"></a><a href="#Footnote_333_333" class="fnanchor">[333]</a> No concessions, it was stated, could be
-made until propositions in a digested form should be submitted<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_268" id="Page_268">[268]</a></span> to the
-free debate of both Houses. The King would not be unwilling to call a
-synod of godly and learned Divines, regularly chosen according to the
-laws and constitutions of the kingdom, to which representatives from
-Scotland might be admitted&mdash;an Assembly which, in fact, would be a
-Convocation, whose spirit and proceedings were very well known. He gave
-no opinion on any Bills offered to him, but only expressed his wonder
-that the royal judgment should be prejudged, and that the Divine anger
-should be threatened for his non-consent. A sentence occurred towards
-the end which, though by no means agreeable to those for whom it was
-intended, certainly contained a large amount of truth. "Nor are you a
-little mistaken, if either you believe the generality of this nation to
-desire a change of Church government, or that most of those who desire
-it, desire by it to introduce that which you only esteem a reformation,
-but are as unwilling to what you call the yoke of Christ and obedience
-to the Gospel, as those whom you call profane and worldly men, and so
-equally averse both to Episcopacy and Presbytery; for if they should
-prevail in this particular, the abolition of the one would be no let
-to the other, nor would your hearts be less grieved, your expectations
-less frustrated, your hopes less ashamed, or your reformation more
-secured."</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Treatment of the Scotch.</i></div>
-
-<p>The Scotch mission ended in disappointment. Much hope had been built
-upon the King's friendliness towards Mr. Henderson during the royal
-visit to Edinburgh. All remembered the minister's standing next the
-royal chair in sermon time, and the loving cup which passed round
-at the banquet. People fancied "Mr. Henderson would do wonders with
-the King;" and perhaps the King thought he could do wonders with Mr.
-Henderson, for he strove to persuade him of the justice and necessity
-of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_269" id="Page_269">[269]</a></span> taking up arms against the Parliament. But as that gentleman did
-not find the King so pliable as he wished; neither did the King find
-that gentleman so "credulous as he expected." Charles "did at once
-change his countenance," we are informed, when he discovered that his
-Scotch chaplain had written the petition which he had received, and
-that the document had been already circulated throughout the kingdom.
-Reports also had reached the royal ears of certain violent sermons
-and prayers uttered in Edinburgh, which tended to make the visitors
-at Oxford "verie unsavourie." Their life in the University city&mdash;so
-they complained&mdash;was uncomfortably spent. They were wearied out with
-delays; they had no private nor familiar conference, but all was done
-"in public, in a very harsh way;" letters sent to them by their friends
-were opened; and, in addition to this great insult, they were abused by
-all sorts of people, and they even feared that they should be poisoned
-or stabbed. "This policy," adds Baillie, "was like the rest of our
-unhappy malcontents' wisdom extremely foolish; for it was very much for
-the King's ends to have given to our Commissioners far better words and
-a more pleasant countenance."<a name="FNanchor_334_334" id="FNanchor_334_334"></a><a href="#Footnote_334_334" class="fnanchor">[334]</a></p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_270" id="Page_270">[270]</a></span></p></div>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="illo270" >
- <img
- class="p0"
- src="images/illo270.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XII.</h2>
-
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Westminster Assembly.</i></div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">Some desire for a conference of Divines manifested itself immediately
-after the opening of the Long Parliament. Baillie had scarcely reached
-London, on his first mission, in 1640, when he began to speak of an
-Assembly in England, which was to be called together to perfect the
-work of reform; though, with characteristic wariness, the Scotch
-Commissioner said that such an Assembly "at this time would spoil
-all," because the clergy were so "very corrupt."<a name="FNanchor_335_335" id="FNanchor_335_335"></a><a href="#Footnote_335_335" class="fnanchor">[335]</a> Dering, in the
-debates of October, 1641, as we have seen, recommended a synod of grave
-Divines; and the same measure was sanctioned by the grand Remonstrance
-in the winter of the same year. The Puritan clergy also, in a petition
-presented on the 20th of December, intreated that the consideration of
-ecclesiastical matters might be entrusted to a free synod, differing
-in constitution from the Convocation of the clergy.<a name="FNanchor_336_336" id="FNanchor_336_336"></a><a href="#Footnote_336_336" class="fnanchor">[336]</a> Other proofs
-of the prevailing wish might be adduced. At length, on the 15th of
-October, 1642, a Bill was introduced into Parliament for the purpose
-so much desired; and on its passing through a committee of the Commons
-two significant resolutions were adopted; first, that the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_271" id="Page_271">[271]</a></span> vote
-against Bishops should be appended to the Bill; and secondly, that the
-Parliament did not intend wholly to abrogate the Prayer Book. These
-additions indicated the existence of an anti-episcopal spirit, together
-with a lingering love for the ancient liturgy. Revolutionary ideas were
-still kept in check by conservative instincts, and whilst the tide of
-change was at the flood, sweeping the Church forward to a new position,
-the legislators were not prepared to let it drift away entirely from
-its ancient moorings. For want of the royal assent, this Bill for
-an assembly, after having passed both Houses, was, constitutionally
-considered, a dead letter. So, to remedy as far as possible the
-defect&mdash;the country having reached the crisis of a revolution, and the
-King's concurrence in the measure being hopeless&mdash;Parliament, convinced
-of its urgent importance, boldly issued an ordinance, bearing date
-the 12th of June, 1643, commanding that an Assembly of Divines should
-be convened at Westminster on the 1st of July following. The document
-recognized the Church of England as still undestroyed, by alluding
-to "many things in its liturgy, discipline, and government requiring
-further and more perfect reformation." The theory of proceeding was not
-to overturn and ruin one establishment first and then to create and
-fashion another, but only to alter that which continued in existence;
-yet the resolution to abolish prelatical government as soon as
-possible, being cited in the ordinance, that instrument, though it did
-not in itself go so far as formally to extinguish episcopal rule, left
-no doubt of a foregone conclusion in the mind of the legislators that
-an end must be put to the ancient hierarchy. Ecclesiastical government
-was to be settled so as to be most agreeable to God's Word, and most
-adapted to procure and preserve the peace of the Church at home, as
-well as to promote nearer agreement<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_272" id="Page_272">[272]</a></span> with the Church in Scotland, and
-other reformed communions abroad. This document, without mentioning
-Presbyterianism, plainly pointed to it.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643, July.</div>
-
-<p>Thirty lay assessors were named first, and the priority of their
-enumeration indicates that the lay element occupied no subordinate
-place.<a name="FNanchor_337_337" id="FNanchor_337_337"></a><a href="#Footnote_337_337" class="fnanchor">[337]</a></p>
-
-<p>Some of the persons selected were so eminent that it was impossible
-they should not occupy a very influential position in the conference to
-which they were called. John Selden, Bulstrode Whitelocke, Oliver St.
-John, Sir Benjamin Rudyard, John Pym, and Sir Harry Vane were of the
-number. Selden and Whitelocke frequently attended, and took a leading
-part in some of the debates.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Constitution of the Assembly.</i></div>
-
-<p>Lay names were followed by those of one hundred and twenty one Divines.
-Episcopalians were not excluded. Ussher, of world-wide celebrity,
-Archbishop of Armagh and Bishop of Carlisle; Brownrigg, Bishop of
-Exeter; Westfield, of Bristol; and Prideaux, of Worcester, are to be
-found on the roll, with five more persons included, who afterwards
-became Bishops.<a name="FNanchor_338_338" id="FNanchor_338_338"></a><a href="#Footnote_338_338" class="fnanchor">[338]</a> These appointments would fall in with the views of
-such Members of Parliament as still wished for a modified Episcopacy.
-But names of this order, whilst they saved appearances and gave
-additional weight to the convention, were too few to tell in divisions;
-nor could any Episcopalians, identified with a sinking cause, and
-unbacked by any strong party amongst the Commons, expect to have much
-influence in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_273" id="Page_273">[273]</a></span> the proposed deliberations. A small band of persons,
-called <i>Independents</i>, of whom we shall have to speak at large, were
-also amongst the theologians summoned: but what they lacked in numbers
-and in position was compensated for by force of character and vigour of
-intellect, and by what availed even more&mdash;the enjoyment of friendship
-with those who were destined ere long to guide the entire affairs of
-the kingdom. Indeed, according to Calamy&mdash;a safe authority for the
-statement&mdash;one of the Independent brethren, Philip Nye, had "a great
-concern in choosing the members of the Assembly of Divines who were
-summoned from all parts."<a name="FNanchor_339_339" id="FNanchor_339_339"></a><a href="#Footnote_339_339" class="fnanchor">[339]</a></p>
-
-<p>The decided, nay, the overwhelming majority of those summoned to
-Westminster were Presbyterians. For that party in England had by this
-time been greatly multiplied, and it had also much power in Parliament,
-and derived advantage from the favour naturally manifested towards it
-by the Scotch.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643, July.</div>
-
-<p>The Assembly of Divines was appointed by secular authority: in this
-respect, however, it only resembled other ecclesiastical conventions.
-&#338;cumenical synods, as they are ostentatiously called, have in
-point of fact been "Imperial gatherings."<a name="FNanchor_340_340" id="FNanchor_340_340"></a><a href="#Footnote_340_340" class="fnanchor">[340]</a> That they owed their
-existence<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_274" id="Page_274">[274]</a></span> to the civil power was a necessity arising from the union
-between Church and State; and the necessity is recognized in the
-twenty-first Article of the Church of England, where it is said that
-"General councils may not be gathered together, but by the commandment
-and will of princes." Convocations of clergy according to this
-Article, and according to the fundamental principles of the English
-constitution, are entirely dependent upon the Crown. Parliament,
-therefore, by constituting the Westminster Assembly, so as to make it
-rest on a political basis, did not invade the ecclesiastical rights
-of the Establishment, it only usurped the ecclesiastical power of
-the Crown. And it may be worth observing that the same authority,
-in selecting the place and time of meeting, in making provision for
-those whom it called together, and in paying their expenses,<a name="FNanchor_341_341" id="FNanchor_341_341"></a><a href="#Footnote_341_341" class="fnanchor">[341]</a>
-did but adopt the policy of Constantine at the Council of Nicæa. But
-the Parliament went still further in the appointment and control of
-the Westminster Assembly than emperors and kings had ever done in
-reference to &#338;cumenical councils and national convocations.<a name="FNanchor_342_342" id="FNanchor_342_342"></a><a href="#Footnote_342_342" class="fnanchor">[342]</a> It
-first nominated the individuals who were to be members, and then it
-took the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_275" id="Page_275">[275]</a></span> direction of affairs entirely into its own hands, without
-relaxing its hold for a moment: the carefully-worded warrant allowing
-no liberty beyond this&mdash;that the Divines should consult and advise
-on matters and things <i>proposed to them</i> by both or either of the
-Houses, and give their advice and counsel as often as required; and
-in all cases of difficulty refer to the authority which had called
-them together. A clause is inserted forbidding the assumption of any
-ecclesiastical jurisdiction, or any power whatever, except that which
-the ordinance carefully defined. And also&mdash;in this respect, exceeding
-the regal control over Convocation&mdash;Parliament chose the Prolocutor of
-the Assembly, and filled up vacancies when they occurred. Nor should it
-be forgotten that the State exercised in reference to ecclesiastical
-matters all the functions which we have described, not because there
-remained no Episcopal clergy to elect members of Convocation, nor
-because there existed no Presbyteries to delegate members to a General
-Assembly, but simply because a perfect horror of ecclesiastical
-despotism had taken possession of the minds of those who had now become
-the civil rulers of the realm.</p>
-
-
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Meeting of the Assembly.</i></div>
-
-<p>On the day appointed (Saturday, July 1, 1643), many of the Assembly,
-together with a large congregation of other persons, gathered within
-the walls of the grand national abbey of Westminster, "both Houses
-of Parliament being present."<a name="FNanchor_343_343" id="FNanchor_343_343"></a><a href="#Footnote_343_343" class="fnanchor">[343]</a> The Prolocutor, Dr. Twiss&mdash;of
-whom it was said that the school, not the pulpit, was his proper
-element&mdash;preached from John xiv. 18, "I will not<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_276" id="Page_276">[276]</a></span> leave you
-comfortless, I will come to you;" from which text he exhorted his
-hearers faithfully to discharge their high calling to the glory of God
-and the honour of His Church; and, whilst lamenting that the royal
-assent was wanting to give them comfort and encouragement, the preacher
-hoped through the efficacy of their prayers that the sanction of his
-Majesty might in due time be obtained, and that a happy union might be
-accomplished between King and Parliament. After the conclusion of the
-discourse, the Divines and other members ascended the broad flight of
-steps leading to Henry the Seventh's chapel, where, upon the roll being
-called over, sixty-nine persons answered to their names.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643, July.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Meeting of the Assembly.</i></div>
-
-<p>The vaulted roof springing from the clustered pillars in the
-walls&mdash;like branches of lofty trees interlaced together, forming
-a rich canopy of leaves, while the bossed pendants resemble
-stalactites&mdash;though appearing to most persons now, even those who
-feel strong Puritan sympathies, a monument of exquisite taste and
-consummate skill&mdash;would be regarded by those who on this occasion
-assembled beneath its shadow, as mainly, if not exclusively, a symbol
-of that "petrifaction of Christianity" which to their great grief had
-over-arched mediæval Christendom. Dressed in black cloaks, and wearing
-bands, and skull caps, as they walked over pavements heretofore trodden
-by prelates and priests in mitres and copes, they would be reminded
-of what they deemed superstitious and idolatrous worship; and as
-they now met in assembly where Convocations had before been wont to
-gather,<a name="FNanchor_344_344" id="FNanchor_344_344"></a><a href="#Footnote_344_344" class="fnanchor">[344]</a> they would think of obnoxious canons, and of Archbishop
-Laud, with feelings of pain&mdash;if not of bitterness&mdash;such as the charms
-of Gothic architecture had no power to subdue.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_277" id="Page_277">[277]</a></span> Their principles,
-and the principles of the Church before the Reformation, were in
-mutual opposition. And, as we watch the Divines entering within those
-gates&mdash;well described by one who himself came from the land of the
-Pilgrim Fathers, as "richly and delicately wrought, and turning heavily
-upon their hinges, as if proudly reluctant to admit the feet of common
-mortals into this most gorgeous of sepulchers"<a name="FNanchor_345_345" id="FNanchor_345_345"></a><a href="#Footnote_345_345" class="fnanchor">[345]</a>&mdash;we may fancy that
-the gates, if they had sympathy with those who caused them to be hung
-there, would open that morning more reluctantly than they had ever done
-before. Altogether, the scene and the purpose for which the Assembly
-met marked a new era, not only in the history of the Abbey but in the
-annals of the Church and the nation.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643, July.</div>
-
-<p>Westfield, Bishop of Bristol, and some few other Episcopalians out
-of the number summoned, were present at this first meeting; and, as
-Fuller says, they "seemed the only Nonconformists amongst them for
-their conformity, whose gowns and canonical habits differed from
-all the rest."<a name="FNanchor_346_346" id="FNanchor_346_346"></a><a href="#Footnote_346_346" class="fnanchor">[346]</a> The majority of the Episcopal Divines, however,
-declined to attend, because the Assembly had been prohibited by royal
-proclamation; and because, not being chosen by the clergy, it had no
-proper representative character. They objected to it also on account of
-its containing a mixture of the laity; whilst all its members, whether
-divines or laymen, were of the Puritan stamp, and were, according to
-the terms of the ordinance which gave it existence, virtually pledged
-to the demolition of the hierarchy. The reply which was afterwards
-given by the Parliament to the objection that the Assembly had not been
-ecclesiastically elected, instead of mending the matter in the eyes of
-a High Churchman, would only make it<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_278" id="Page_278">[278]</a></span> appear all the worse; for the
-Parliament plainly declared the Assembly to be no national synod or
-representative body at all, but only a committee of advice;&mdash;adding
-that the civil power had a right to choose its own counsel, and ought
-not to be dependent for that upon the nomination of clergymen.<a name="FNanchor_347_347" id="FNanchor_347_347"></a><a href="#Footnote_347_347" class="fnanchor">[347]</a> For
-the reasons just indicated, the few Episcopalians who at first appeared
-in the Assembly speedily dropped off. Brownrigg, Bishop of Exeter,
-sent a letter on the 12th of July, excusing absence in consequence of
-"the tie of the Vice-Chancellorship in the University that lay upon
-him:" probably there were other ties which hindered his Lordship's
-attendance, but what they were he did not care to specify.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Parliamentary Directions.</i></div>
-
-<p>On Thursday, July the 6th, the Divines and lay assessors assembled
-again, when they received further directions from Parliament of a
-very precise description. The directions were, that two assessors or
-vice-chairmen should be associated with the Prolocutor to supply his
-place in case of absence; that scribes or secretaries should keep a
-record of the proceedings; and that these officers should be Henry
-Roborough and Adoniram Byfield, Divines not members of the Assembly;
-that every member, on his entrance, should make a solemn protestation
-not to maintain any thing but what he believed to be truth; that
-no question should be resolved on the day it was propounded; that
-whatever any one undertook to prove to be necessary, he should make
-good from Scripture; that no one should continue to speak after the
-Prolocutor had silenced him, unless the Assembly desired him to
-proceed; that the members should have liberty to record their dissent
-from the conclusions adopted by the majority; and that all things
-agreed upon<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_279" id="Page_279">[279]</a></span> and prepared for the Parliament should be openly read and
-allowed.<a name="FNanchor_348_348" id="FNanchor_348_348"></a><a href="#Footnote_348_348" class="fnanchor">[348]</a> The bye-laws which were to regulate their proceedings
-were thus so minutely prescribed, that very little indeed was left
-for the Divines to perform in the way of preliminary arrangement. All
-which they actually did in this respect was to nominate Mr. White<a name="FNanchor_349_349" id="FNanchor_349_349"></a><a href="#Footnote_349_349" class="fnanchor">[349]</a>
-and Dr. Burgess as assessors, and to resolve that the sittings should
-be opened with prayer; that afterwards the names of members should
-be called over; that the hour of meeting in the morning should be
-ten o'clock, the afternoon being reserved for committees; and that
-three of the Divines should officiate weekly as chaplains&mdash;one to the
-House of Lords, another to the House of Commons, and a third to the
-Committee of both kingdoms. Still further, to illustrate how, with this
-modicum of liberty in relation to the management of its own business,
-the Westminster Assembly found itself under the authority of its
-neighbouring masters, especially those in St. Stephen's Chapel&mdash;we may
-observe that on the 27th of July an order from both Houses was read,
-requiring a letter to be written to the United Provinces in behalf of
-Ireland. On the 28th of July an ordinance from the Commons followed,
-for appointing a committee to examine plundered ministers, with a
-view to their admission into sequestrated livings; and on the 14th of
-August there came a command to send divers metropolitan divines up and
-down the country, to stir up the zeal of the people in the cause of
-patriotism, and to vindicate the justice of Parliament in taking up
-arms for the defence of its liberties.<a name="FNanchor_350_350" id="FNanchor_350_350"></a><a href="#Footnote_350_350" class="fnanchor">[350]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643, October.</div>
-
-<p>The first subject of a strictly theological kind sub<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_280" id="Page_280">[280]</a></span>mitted to
-the Assembly was the revision of the Thirty-nine Articles of the
-Church of England. A sub-committee spent ten weeks in debating upon
-the first fifteen; and the result appeared in a draft of proposed
-alterations.<a name="FNanchor_351_351" id="FNanchor_351_351"></a><a href="#Footnote_351_351" class="fnanchor">[351]</a> In the middle of October, we discover the Divines,
-through the dim light thrown on their proceedings by Lightfoot's
-Journal, "busy upon the sixteenth Article," and upon "that clause of it
-which mentioneth departing from grace," when an order came from both
-Houses of Parliament, commanding them speedily to take in hand the
-discipline and liturgy of the Church.</p>
-
-<p>The circumstances of the country shaped the proceedings of the Divines
-no less than those of the Legislators. It may be said of the new system
-they were engaged to construct that&mdash;"the street" of the city was
-built again, and "the wall, even in troublous times." War had begun to
-kindle its fires far and wide; and it is necessary for us to turn our
-attention to military affairs and the fortunes of the battle-field, in
-order that we may understand what followed in the Westminster Assembly.</p>
-
-<p>A heavy blow had befallen the Parliament in the month of March, 1643,
-when Lord Brooke had been killed at the siege of Lichfield. He had
-prepared for an assault on the Royalist troops, who were in possession
-of the cathedral; and just as he was standing under the porch of
-a house, and directing a battery against the Close gate&mdash;the spot
-is still pointed out to the visitor in that quiet little city&mdash;the
-Puritan commander was shot by a musket ball. His death created a great
-sensation, and was differently interpreted by contemporaries, according
-to their political and ecclesiastical opinions. Laud pronounced it a
-Divine judgment for Brooke's sins. Parliamentarians<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_281" id="Page_281">[281]</a></span> celebrated it as a
-glorious sacrifice offered up in the cause of patriotism and religion.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>John Hampden.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643, June.</div>
-
-<p>Another loss had to be sustained in the month of June. Early one
-Sunday morning, Prince Rupert, with a skirmishing party, drew up his
-men in order of battle amidst the standing corn of Chalgrove Field.
-John Hampden, who had spent the night in the immediate neighbourhood,
-adventured, contrary to the wishes of his friends, to throw himself
-into this at first apparently unimportant action. With characteristic
-bravery, he led an attack, and, on the first charge at the head of his
-troops, received in his shoulder two carbine balls. He rode off the
-field, "his head bending down, and his hands resting on his horse's
-neck." Though fainting with pain, he cleared a brook on the road to
-Thame, and on reaching that town had his wounds dressed. Conscious
-of danger, he first despatched letters of counsel to Parliament, and
-then prepared for his departure from the world. After six days of
-severe suffering, and about seven hours before his death, he received
-the Lord's supper, declaring that, "though he could not away with
-the governance of the Church by bishops, and did utterly abominate
-the scandalous lives of some clergymen, he thought its doctrine in
-the greater part primitive and conformable to God's word, as in
-holy Scripture revealed." Dr. Giles, the rector of Chinnor, and Dr.
-Spurstow, the chaplain of his regiment, attended him in his last
-moments. He died in prayer, uttering, "O Lord, God of Hosts! great is
-Thy mercy, just and holy are Thy dealings unto us sinful men. Save
-me, O Lord, if it be Thy good will, from the jaws of death; pardon my
-manifold transgressions. O Lord, save my bleeding country. Have these
-realms in Thy special keeping. Confound and level in the dust those
-who would rob the people of their liberty and lawful<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_282" id="Page_282">[282]</a></span> prerogative. Let
-the King see his error, and turn the hearts of his wicked counsellors
-from the malice and wickedness of their designs. Lord Jesus, receive
-my soul! O Lord, save my country! O Lord, be merciful to...." As he
-uttered these words, his speech failed, and then, falling backwards, he
-expired. His remains were conveyed to the churchyard of Great Hampden,
-close beside the old family mansion, where the patriot had spent so
-much of his life in the studies and the sports of a country gentleman.
-Through lanes under the beech-covered chalk hills of the Chilterns,
-a detachment of his favourite troops, bare-headed, carried him to
-his last resting-place&mdash;their arms reversed, their drums and ensigns
-muffled&mdash;mournfully chanting, as they slowly marched along, the dirge
-from the Book of Psalms: "Lord, thou hast been our dwelling-place in
-all generations;&mdash;thou turnest man to destruction;&mdash;thou carriest them
-away as with a flood;&mdash;they are as a sleep; in the morning they are
-like grass which groweth up, in the morning it flourisheth and groweth
-up, in the evening it is cut down and withereth." When the funeral
-was over, the soldiers, returning from the village church to their
-quarters, made the green woods and the white hills that summer day
-resound to the beautiful prayer and the cheerful song, so appropriate
-to their present circumstances: "Judge me, O God, and plead my cause
-against an ungodly nation. O, deliver me from the deceitful and unjust
-man! For thou art the God of my strength, why dost thou cast me off?
-Why go I mourning because of the oppression of the enemy? O send out
-thy light and thy truth: let them lead me; let me bring them unto thy
-holy hill, and to thy tabernacles. Then will I go unto the altar of
-God, unto God my exceeding joy: yea, upon the harp will I praise thee,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_283" id="Page_283">[283]</a></span>
-O God, my God. Why art thou cast down, O my soul? and why art thou
-disquieted within me? Hope in God, for I shall yet praise him, who is
-the health of my countenance and my God."<a name="FNanchor_352_352" id="FNanchor_352_352"></a><a href="#Footnote_352_352" class="fnanchor">[352]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>John Hampden.</i></div>
-
-<p>The death of Hampden was bewailed even more than that of Brooke. "The
-memory of this deceased Colonel," said the <i>Weekly Intelligencer</i>, "is
-such that in no age to come but it will more and more be had in honour
-and esteem; a man so religious, and of that prudence, judgment, temper,
-valour, and integrity, that he hath left few his like behind him." The
-old newspaper was right in its prediction of Hampden's growing fame.</p>
-
-<p>Other calamities overtook the Parliament cause. From the spring of the
-year, success had followed the King's banners. Royalists occupied Devon
-and Dorset; and the Earl of Wilmot had beaten Waller at Lansdowne and
-at Devizes. Summer saw the defeat of Lord Fairfax in Yorkshire. But
-Charles' victories at that period culminated in the taking of Bradford,
-after the battle of Atherton Moor, and in the capture of Bristol just
-before the siege of Gloucester.</p>
-
-<p>Bradford and Gloucester were Puritan towns, beleaguered by what they
-looked upon as prelatical armies; and the incidents connected with
-the siege of each serve at once to bring out some curious features
-in the memorable strife, and to shew the declining condition of the
-Parliament, at the time when the Westminster Assembly held its first
-sittings. Bradford had suffered assault so early as December, 1642.
-The Royalists, who were encamped at Bowling Hill, had selected Sunday
-morning, as the Puritans were attending church, to plant their guns
-against the steeple; but a snowfall, the bursting of a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_284" id="Page_284">[284]</a></span> cannon, and
-other misadventures on the part of the besiegers, for a time saved
-the besieged. The following midsummer, the church, which was still
-the prize in dispute, endured "many a shake," whilst the people hung
-up wool-packs by the side of the building, only to see, however,
-almost immediately afterwards, the ropes cut down by the shots of the
-enemy.<a name="FNanchor_353_353" id="FNanchor_353_353"></a><a href="#Footnote_353_353" class="fnanchor">[353]</a></p>
-
-<p>On Lord's-day morning, the Royalists beat drums for a parley, and spent
-all the day in removing their guns "into the mouth of the town," the
-inhabitants being so reduced that they had little ammunition, and for
-their matches were compelled to use "untwisted cords dipped in oil."
-About sunset the parley ended, when a shot killed three men who were
-sitting on a bench; and during all night the valley shone with the
-flash of artillery. When resistance became useless, the vanquished
-thought that the Earl of Newcastle, who commanded the King's troops,
-would shew them no mercy; but he gave them quarter, on the ground, as
-was superstitiously rumoured, that an apparition on a Sunday night had
-pulled the clothes from off his bed several times, crying in tones
-of lamentation, "Pity poor Bradford." "A young Puritan gentleman,"
-reported as having attempted to break through the enemy's lines, became
-famous in after days as David Clarkson, the Nonconformist divine.<a name="FNanchor_354_354" id="FNanchor_354_354"></a><a href="#Footnote_354_354" class="fnanchor">[354]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643, August.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Siege of Gloucester.</i></div>
-
-<p>The siege of Gloucester was commenced on August the 10th, 1643. The
-Parliamentary committee, believing that the metropolis would not be
-safe if Gloucester were taken,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_285" id="Page_285">[285]</a></span> sent a strong force for its relief,
-under the Earl of Essex, for the better furtherance of the service,
-and required all persons "dwelling within the lines of communication"
-immediately to shut up their shops, and to keep them closed till
-the beleaguered should be delivered. The King, sitting down about a
-quarter of a mile distant from the old cathedral city, despatched two
-heralds to demand surrender. They returned to the royal camp with two
-men, lean and pale, of "bald visages," and in such strange garb and
-carriage&mdash;according to Clarendon<a name="FNanchor_355_355" id="FNanchor_355_355"></a><a href="#Footnote_355_355" class="fnanchor">[355]</a>&mdash;that the merriest were made sad,
-and yet even the grave were provoked to laughter. These poor Puritan
-envoys, whom the Royalist historian saw with jaundiced eyes, manifested
-not a little bravery and firmness, when they delivered a message from
-their fellow-townsmen in these memorable words&mdash;"We do keep this city
-according to our oath and allegiance, to and for the use of his Majesty
-and his royal posterity; and do accordingly conceive ourselves wholly
-bound to obey the commands of his Majesty, signified by both Houses
-of Parliament; and are resolved, by God's help, to keep this city
-accordingly."<a name="FNanchor_356_356" id="FNanchor_356_356"></a><a href="#Footnote_356_356" class="fnanchor">[356]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643, September.</div>
-
-<p>The Gloucester men, made of this sturdy mettle, forthwith set to
-work and raised entrenchments; and the Gloucester women seem to have
-caught the spirit of their husbands and fathers, for matrons and
-maids wrought all the afternoon in the little mead, fetching in turf
-to repair the works, whilst the soldiers, on the other side, cut off
-the pipes which supplied the city conduits, and diverted the waters
-which drove the mills. On Sunday, which seems to have been with the
-Royalists a favourite day for such work, the engineers planted pieces
-of ordnance<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_286" id="Page_286">[286]</a></span> on a battery at Gawdy Green, and thence plied their shots;
-but breaches were no sooner made in the fortifications than they were
-mended, through the untiring energy and courage of the inhabitants, who
-employed wool-sacks in repairing the damage done. From day to day for
-three whole weeks, some incident occurred to alarm or encourage the
-people, till, on Sunday, September the 3rd, when they were at church,
-news came that the besiegers had planted a store of cannon-baskets at
-the east gate, and that it was supposed they intended there to spring
-a mine. The Puritan preacher hearing this, dismissed his audience
-without any sermon, when the men, equally prepared to pray or fight,
-immediately began to line the houses over the east gate, and to make a
-strong breastwork across the street.</p>
-
-<p>The renowned William Chillingworth, we may observe in passing, "was
-in Charles's camp, engaged in bringing his classical knowledge to
-bear upon the contrivance of engines ("after the manner of the
-Roman <i>testudines cum pluteis</i>.") They ran upon cart wheels, we are
-told, with a musket-proof covering to conceal the assailants, who
-shot through holes; and these machines&mdash;which were odd things for
-a clergyman to make&mdash;were also furnished with a protection to rest
-on the breastworks, and so to form a complete bridge over the ditch
-into the city. The employment of a divine in military matters was
-then by no means a peculiar circumstance; for it is a little curious
-that his antagonist, Francis Cheynell, Fellow of Merton College,
-Oxford, accompanied the Earl of Essex into Cornwall, where he shewed a
-soldierly courage, and where it was said his commands were as readily
-obeyed as the general's own.<a name="FNanchor_357_357" id="FNanchor_357_357"></a><a href="#Footnote_357_357" class="fnanchor">[357]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_287" id="Page_287">[287]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>After much suffering by the citizens of Gloucester, the siege was
-raised by the Earl of Essex, on the 5th of September.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Effect of War on the Assembly.</i></div>
-
-<p>These military events at the very beginning powerfully influenced the
-Westminster Assembly. As the members mourned the loss of illustrious
-captains, reports of disastrous turns in the fate of war would be
-brought to London from Yorkshire, by the letter-carriers, who rode
-along the dusty roads in those long summer days; and the Divines,
-amidst their theological discussions, would anxiously listen to tidings
-respecting the army. The success of their cause, if not their personal
-safety, depended upon the acquisition of some military advantages
-at that critical juncture, and therefore&mdash;whilst feeling that only
-God could help them&mdash;they presented, on the 19th of July, to the two
-Houses, a petition, in which&mdash;after expressing their fear of the
-Divine wrath, manifested by the sad and unexpected defeats in the
-north and west&mdash;they implored, as watchmen set on the walls of the
-Church and the kingdom, that a day of solemn fasting and humiliation
-might be fixed for universal observance throughout the cities of
-London and Westminster: and with a further view of removing Divine
-displeasure, they entreated, that Parliament would speedily set up
-Christ more gloriously in all His ordinances within the kingdom, and
-remove throughout the land all things which were amiss. Then followed
-a painful enumeration of national evils, including brutish ignorance,
-pollution of the Lord's Supper, corruption of doctrine, profanation of
-the Sabbath, blind guides and scandalous ministers, and finally, the
-prevalence of vice, idolatry, and superstition.<a name="FNanchor_358_358" id="FNanchor_358_358"></a><a href="#Footnote_358_358" class="fnanchor">[358]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_288" id="Page_288">[288]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643, August.</div>
-
-<p>The fall of Bristol on the 26th of July, preparing as it did for the
-siege of Gloucester, further alarmed the Assembly, who would not fail
-also to watch with trembling anxiety the progress of the assaults on
-the latter city. In the month of August, all London too was in a state
-of excitement, as disastrous news from the west reached it day by day.
-Some of the citizens were in favour of propositions of peace voted
-in the House of Lords; others&mdash;the majority&mdash;influenced by Alderman
-Pennington and by Pym, who eventually prevailed on the Commons to
-reject the Peers' propositions, were for resisting the royal army to
-the utmost, though the waves of war should surge up to the very walls.
-In the strife the pulpits had a share; and on the Sunday after the
-propositions were submitted to the Commons, the Divines of the popular
-party eloquently appealed to their disheartened hearers in favour of
-opposing the overtures of the Upper House, at a moment when the Monarch
-was successful in the field, and persisted in his proclamations against
-the freedom of the Parliament.<a name="FNanchor_359_359" id="FNanchor_359_359"></a><a href="#Footnote_359_359" class="fnanchor">[359]</a></p>
-
-<p>In the midst of these untoward events, help from Scotland had become
-more than ever necessary, and the eyes of Statesmen, Divines, and
-Citizens were turned in that direction. Yet some even of the staunch
-Presbyterians of England were reluctant in this extremity to rely
-upon their neighbours; and Calamy, in a speech at Guildhall, when the
-question was mooted, pronounced it a great shame that Englishmen should
-stand in need of others to aid them in the preservation of their own
-lives and liberties.<a name="FNanchor_360_360" id="FNanchor_360_360"></a><a href="#Footnote_360_360" class="fnanchor">[360]</a> Repeated references to the unwillingness
-of the nation to ask and receive assistance from the north occur in
-Baillie's letters.<a name="FNanchor_361_361" id="FNanchor_361_361"></a><a href="#Footnote_361_361" class="fnanchor">[361]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_289" id="Page_289">[289]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Commissioners sent to Scotland.</i></div>
-
-<p>But Parliament, being compelled by circumstances, resolved, as early as
-July, to send Commissioners to negotiate a treaty of assistance with
-their brethren of the north. Sir Harry Vane was one of the number.<a name="FNanchor_362_362" id="FNanchor_362_362"></a><a href="#Footnote_362_362" class="fnanchor">[362]</a>
-With this embassy the Westminster Assembly determined to unite an
-ecclesiastical deputation, and chose for the purpose Stephen Marshall,
-the Presbyterian, and Philip Nye, the Independent. Letters were sent
-through their hands both to the Convention of States, and to the
-General Assembly, seeking succour for the war and the addition of some
-Scotch Divines to the meeting at Westminster. The letter to the General
-Assembly of Scotland set forth the deplorable condition of England, as
-on the edge of a precipice, ready to plunge into the jaws of Satan; and
-the perils of the Church, as threatening the safety of Protestantism
-at large. Prayers and advice were implored with a view to promote the
-kingdom's peace with God, and to strengthen the people in standing up
-against Antichrist.</p>
-
-<p>On Monday, the 7th of August, the English Commissioners landed at
-Leith; and Baillie reports that the Lords went down to welcome them at
-the harbour, and then conveyed them up to Edinburgh in a coach.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643, August.</div>
-
-<p>The General Assembly shewed how impressed it was with the idea that
-the visit now paid was no ordinary one. "We were exhorted," says our
-informant, in all these minute matters "to be more grave than ordinary;
-and so, indeed, all was carried to the end with much more awe and
-gravity than usual." With a punctilious formality, borrowed, it was
-said, from the like usage in the reception of their own Commissioners
-by the English Parliament, the Scotch arranged that the access of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_290" id="Page_290">[290]</a></span>
-delegates to the Assembly should be at first only that of private
-spectators; "for which end a place commodious above in a loft, was
-appointed for them." Then followed an interview between them and a
-deputation from the General Assembly, to whom were presented the
-documents brought from London. One paper, subscribed by above seventy
-English Divines, supplicating help "in a most deplorable style," as
-soon as it was read drew tears from many eyes. The loss of Bristol
-was reported, and fear was expressed lest his Majesty might march to
-London. Cautiously did the Scotch consult sundry times with the prime
-nobles, in the Moderator's chamber, before taking any decided step. One
-night all present were bent on peaceful mediation, proposing to act
-as friends between the belligerents, and not to espouse exclusively
-the side of either. Lord Warristone "alone did shew the vanity of that
-motion and the impossibility of it." Words now would come too late, and
-the Scotch must arm or do nothing; they must cross the Tweed with pike
-and gun, or leave English Puritans to their hard fate. The Assembly
-at length decided on recommending military aid on these grounds:&mdash;the
-war was a religious one; the Protestant faith was in danger; gratitude
-for former assistance required a suitable return; both Churches were
-embarked on the same bottom; the prospects of uniformity between the
-two kingdoms would strengthen the Protestant cause all over Europe;
-and, finally, the English Parliament stood in friendly relation to the
-Scotch, who felt that they could never trust King Charles.<a name="FNanchor_363_363" id="FNanchor_363_363"></a><a href="#Footnote_363_363" class="fnanchor">[363]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Commissioners in Scotland.</i></div>
-
-<p>Terms of union now became the absorbing question, and hard debates
-ensued. The English Commissioners<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_291" id="Page_291">[291]</a></span> preferred a civil league, and the
-Scotch were earnest for a religious covenant. The former wished for
-a bond of reciprocal aid between nation and nation to maintain the
-interests of civil liberty; the latter longed for a holy confederation
-between church and church, for the maintenance of Protestant truth and
-worship, against papal and prelatic superstitions. As Vane and Nye
-belonged to a party in England which advocated religious toleration,
-and as the latter avowed himself an Independent, they would both
-be averse to the establishment of such uniformity as was advocated
-by Presbyterians, and would be anxious to keep a door open for the
-admission of congregational liberty. "Against this," Baillie states,
-"we were peremptory." What was to be done? Succour from the Scotch
-was indispensable, but the Scotch had determined not to grant it save
-on their own conditions. The English Commissioners therefore felt
-compelled to enter into a compromise; and stipulating that it should be
-a <i>League</i> to meet their own views of it as a civil compact, they yet
-allowed it to be a <i>Covenant</i> for the satisfaction of those who chiefly
-valued its religious character and bearings. Without impugning the
-motives of either party, we must say, now that the lapse of more than
-two centuries has hushed to silence the tempestuous controversy, that
-this modification of the compact seems very much like playing at a game
-of words, and that, after all this hair-splitting, the two contracting
-powers became equally bound to the whole agreement, however they
-might choose to interpret the phraseology. The English Commissioners,
-by accepting the Covenant, pledged themselves to the cause of which
-the Scotch Presbyterians regarded it as the symbol; and looking at
-the ecclesiastical opinions of Vane and Nye, we cannot defend their
-conduct on this occasion against the charge of incon<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_292" id="Page_292">[292]</a></span>sistency. The
-Commissioners believed they had accomplished an important object by
-what they had done; and when the Solemn League and Covenant came before
-the General Assembly, a hearty affection toward England was "expressed
-in tears of pity and joy by very many grave, wise, and old men," as
-the moderator, Mr. Henderson, after making an oration, read over the
-document twice amidst loud applause.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643, August.</div>
-
-<p>Three Scotch Commissioners, with Philip Nye, set sail on the thirtieth
-of August; but eight days before they started, the English had
-despatched a ketch, with a duplicate copy of the famous instrument, and
-on the first of September it reached the Westminster Assembly.</p>
-
-<p>Some of the members, especially the Scotch Divines, were prepared
-to receive it exactly as it was, cordially sympathizing in all its
-sentiments, but others, particularly Dr. Twiss, the Prolocutor, Dr.
-Burgess, and Mr. Gataker, stumbled at the condemnation of <i>prelacy</i>.
-They were averse "to the English diocesan frame," and if that was
-meant by the word prelacy they could agree in the condemnation of it;
-nevertheless they were advocates for the ancient and moderate form
-of Episcopacy, with some admixture of Presbyterian rule, and could
-not agree to the use of any expression which, with regard to that
-rule, might seem to convey any censure. To meet this difficulty, a
-parenthesis was introduced describing the exact nature of the prelacy
-opposed viz., "Church government by Archbishops, Bishops, Deans and
-Chapters, Archdeacons, and all other ecclesiastical offices depending
-on that hierarchy."<a name="FNanchor_364_364" id="FNanchor_364_364"></a><a href="#Footnote_364_364" class="fnanchor">[364]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_293" id="Page_293">[293]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>The Covenant.</i></div>
-
-<p>Covenants were, of old, favourites with the nation of Scotland,
-and they present in their spirit, though not their form, a strong
-resemblance to that very noble Hebrew one, in the days of Asa, the king
-of Judah, when "the people entered into a covenant to seek the Lord God
-of their fathers with all their heart and with all their soul"&mdash;"and
-they sware unto the Lord with a loud voice"&mdash;"and all Judah rejoiced at
-the oath."<a name="FNanchor_365_365" id="FNanchor_365_365"></a><a href="#Footnote_365_365" class="fnanchor">[365]</a></p>
-
-<p>The first Scotch Covenant was taken in 1557, "to establish the most
-blessed word of God and His congregation," and to "forsake and renounce
-the congregation of Satan;" by which, of course, we are to understand
-the apostate Church of Rome. Another succeeded in 1581, protesting
-against Popish doctrines and rites, as being full of superstition and
-idolatry. In 1638, a third is found, including a transcript of the
-confession of 1581, a summary of Parliamentary acts condemnatory of
-the Papal religion, and a new declaration drawn up by Henderson; the
-subscribers to which swore they would continue in their Protestant
-profession, defend it against errors and corruptions, and stand by the
-King in support of the religion, laws, and liberties of the realm.<a name="FNanchor_366_366" id="FNanchor_366_366"></a><a href="#Footnote_366_366" class="fnanchor">[366]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643, September.</div>
-
-<p>The New League and Covenant of 1643, the origin of which we have just
-described, differed from former ones by the addition of an express
-resolve to extirpate <i>prelacy</i> as well as popery. It consisted of six
-articles, pledging subscribers to preserve the established religion
-of Scotland, to endeavour to bring the Church of God in the three
-kingdoms to the nearest possible uniformity and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_294" id="Page_294">[294]</a></span> conjunction, to
-aim at the extirpation of popery and prelacy, superstition, heresy,
-schism, profaneness, and whatsoever is contrary to sound doctrine and
-the power of godliness, to preserve the privileges of Parliament and
-the liberties of the kingdom, to search out malignants, and promote
-peace, and to defend every one belonging to the brotherhood of the
-Covenant.<a name="FNanchor_367_367" id="FNanchor_367_367"></a><a href="#Footnote_367_367" class="fnanchor">[367]</a></p>
-
-<p>With intense ardour was the engagement entered into by the Scotch,
-who venerated and loved these symbols of confederation. The Covenant
-passed from city to city, from town to town, from village to village,
-gathering together the men of the plain and the men of the mountain,
-like the fiery cross, which summoned the clan round their chieftain's
-banner.</p>
-
-<p>
-"O'er hill and dale the summons flew,
-Nor rest nor pause the herald knew,
-Not faster o'er thy feathery braes,
-Balquidder speeds the midnight blaze,
-Rushing in conflagration strong,
-The deep ravines, and dells along.
-Each valley, each sequester'd glen,
-Mustered its little horde of men
-That met, as torrents from the height,
-In highland dales, when streams unite,
-Still gathering as they pour along,
-A voice more loud, a tide more strong."
-</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Taking of the Covenant.</i></div>
-
-<p>The Scotch wished to see the Covenant embraced with the same love
-and zeal in the cities, towns, and villages of England, but in this
-they were disappointed. The adoption of the Covenant, however, at
-Westminster, was a very solemn ceremony. The Assembly met on Monday,
-September the 25th, 1643, in St. Margaret's Church&mdash;an edifice almost
-lost in the shadow of the neighbouring Abbey,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_295" id="Page_295">[295]</a></span> but deeply interesting
-as the place of worship still used on special occasions by the Houses
-of Parliament. The building then was somewhat different from what
-it is now, for it did not possess at that time the antique centre
-window of stained glass; but the graves of Sir Walter Raleigh, and of
-Caxton, the printer, existed beneath the pavement, and their names
-were symbolical of the art and the enterprise which had contributed
-largely to the great revolution betokened by this notable gathering.
-Besides the Divines, and the rest of the Assembly, the House of
-Commons, and the Commissioners from Scotland attended the service.
-White of Dorchester commenced the service by offering prayer to the
-Almighty. Then Philip Nye read and explained the terms of the Covenant,
-commending it as a defence against popery and prelacy, and a stimulus
-to further reformation.<a name="FNanchor_368_368" id="FNanchor_368_368"></a><a href="#Footnote_368_368" class="fnanchor">[368]</a> Dr. Gouge presented a second prayer.<a name="FNanchor_369_369" id="FNanchor_369_369"></a><a href="#Footnote_369_369" class="fnanchor">[369]</a>
-Mr. Henderson, the Scotch Commissioner, described the deliverance of
-his countrymen from prelatical domination, declared the purity of their
-intentions in what they had done, and gratefully acknowledged the
-blessings of heaven upon their work and service. After the Covenant
-had been read, the Assembly rose, and with that solemnity which marked
-the Puritan mode of performing such acts, they lifted up their right
-hands to heaven, worshipping the great name of God; by their gesture
-reminding us of another oath, less spiritual but not less solemn, sworn
-by the Swiss patriots, under the shadow of the Seelisberg, on the rich
-green slope by the shore of the lake of Uri. After this ceremony,
-the Commons and the Divines adjourned to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_296" id="Page_296">[296]</a></span> the chancel, and there
-wrote their names on the parchment rolls, containing the words of the
-Covenant.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643, September.</div>
-
-<p>On the 20th of September, being the Wednesday before the Monday on
-which the Covenant was sworn, a battle was fought at Newbury; and the
-particulars of this action must have reached the Assembly before they
-held up their hands to heaven; perchance some held them up all the
-more firmly in consequence of what they had just been told respecting
-the persistent valour of the army. For all along the valley, more than
-half a mile in length, Essex's men, wearing fern and broom in their
-hats, had fought from four o'clock in the morning until ten at night.
-After a struggle, hand to hand, in the darkness, the King's forces
-stood in order on the further side of the Green, and Essex expected
-a fresh engagement next day; but the enemy retreated in the night,
-and consequently the Parliament claimed the victory. One fell in that
-engagement, whose death, with its never to be forgotten touches of
-sadness, deeply affected some who faced him in battle, after sitting
-beside him in council. Lord Falkland, on rising that morning, had
-put on a clean shirt, saying he would not be found in foul linen
-amongst the slain; and when his friends attempted to dissuade him from
-fighting, replied, "I am weary of the times, and foresee much misery to
-my country, and believe I shall be out of it before night." And so he
-was.<a name="FNanchor_370_370" id="FNanchor_370_370"></a><a href="#Footnote_370_370" class="fnanchor">[370]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_297" id="Page_297">[297]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Treaty with the Scotch.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643, November.</div>
-
-<p>The Covenant prepared in Scotland having been adopted in England, the
-two countries entered into a treaty on the 29th of November, 1643.
-The first of the Articles declared, that the Covenant now to be sworn
-throughout both kingdoms was "a most noble near tie and conjunction
-between them against the papist and prelatical faction, and for
-pursuance of the ends expressed in the said Covenant." The Scotch
-agreed to levy and send an army of 18,000 foot, 2,000 horse, and 1,000
-dragoons, to be ready at some general rendezvous near the borders of
-England; and the English promised that the charges so incurred should
-be refunded when peace was settled, with Scotch consent. The money
-was to be raised out of the forfeited estates of papists, prelatists,
-malignants, and their adherents; and £100,000 was to be paid at
-Leith or Edinburgh with all convenient speed, half of the sum being
-conveyed at once by the bearers of the treaty.<a name="FNanchor_371_371" id="FNanchor_371_371"></a><a href="#Footnote_371_371" class="fnanchor">[371]</a> English<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_298" id="Page_298">[298]</a></span> solicitude
-respecting this compact oozes out in the quaint old diurnals of that
-day. "The Covenant," say they, "will doubtless give more life to the
-preparations of their brethren, if they be not already on their march
-into this kingdom, which we have good grounds to surmise they be; but
-no letters as yet come to confirm the same." A communication from the
-north is joyfully quoted, to the effect that the artillery, ammunition,
-arms, and men were all in readiness; and it is added, "upon the first
-notice of your agreement in the Covenant and propositions, they will be
-setting forward without doubt."<a name="FNanchor_372_372" id="FNanchor_372_372"></a><a href="#Footnote_372_372" class="fnanchor">[372]</a> On the 6th of September we read of
-a consultation about the Scotch Covenant, and the advance of moneys,
-and of letters sent to hasten forward their preparations. The northern
-rulers stipulated that the war should be carried on for the sake of
-the Covenant; and bleeding England, accepting help on such terms, and
-agreeing to pay expenses, the journalists waited eagerly for tidings
-of the advancing troops. Baillie, in his manse at Kilwinnin, writing a
-news-letter which would make some columns in the <i>Times</i>, informed his
-reverend dear cousin, Mr. William Spang, about a fortnight after the
-newspaper had circulated rumours of Scotch preparations, that so soon
-as the Covenant was signed by any considerable number in England, and a
-certain amount of money remitted to Scotland, he and his friends would
-turn to God by fasting and prayer, and promote the levy of 32,000 foot
-and 4,000 horse. This number far exceeded what had been stipulated for
-in the treaty; but no doubt the exaggeration was simply owing to the
-heated zeal of the honest news-writer. In the same quaint and lively
-pages, which, while they reflect passing events, also indicate<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_299" id="Page_299">[299]</a></span> what
-the Scotch thought of their own proceedings and of the condition of
-the English, we find Baillie saying, "Surely it was a great act of
-faith in God, and huge courage and unheard-of compassion, that moved
-our nation to hazard their own peace and venture their lives and all,
-for to save a people so irrecoverably ruined both in their own and in
-all the world's eyes." In December, writing from Worcester House, in
-the Strand&mdash;a mansion which had been fitted up by Parliament for the
-Commissioners with furniture taken out of the King's wardrobe&mdash;the same
-writer alludes to the undecisive conduct of the English war, adding,
-"they may tig tag on this way this twelvemonth. Yet if God send not in
-our army quickly, and give it not some notable success, this people
-are likely to faint; but it is the hope of all the godly, it is the
-confidence and public prayers of all the good ministers here, that God
-will honour the Scots to be their saviours." "All things are expected
-from God and the Scots."<a name="FNanchor_373_373" id="FNanchor_373_373"></a><a href="#Footnote_373_373" class="fnanchor">[373]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Treaty with the Scotch.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643, November.</div>
-
-<p>The articles of the treaty, together with these waifs and strays sifted
-out of early newspapers and old letters, enable us to comprehend how
-matters stood in relation to the Covenant. The Scotch contingents were
-to march across the border for ends set forth in that document: and
-the adoption of it in England was demanded before a single pikeman
-would cross the Tweed. The feeling of our neighbours, in short, had
-culminated to this point, that England resembled the man fallen among
-thieves, and that they themselves were playing the part of the good
-Samaritan. And so much of truth lay at the bottom of this assumption,
-that it must be admitted our fathers did most surely need the military
-assistance of their brethren;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_300" id="Page_300">[300]</a></span> and that not without a sufficient
-consideration&mdash;partly religious and partly pecuniary, for the whole of
-which a careful stipulation was made&mdash;could the assistance be secured.
-Without charging the North with a huckstering policy, or representing
-the South as over-driven in the bargain; we must regard the taking
-of the Covenant, and the affording of the required supplies, as so
-much payment rendered for so much help. Nor does it seem at all less
-plain, that the army marched under the banner of the Covenant for
-the establishment of uniformity. The Assembly in Edinburgh, and the
-Parliament under its control, shewed as strong a zeal for a single
-form of religion as English Kings and English Bishops had ever done.
-The contrast between the duplicity of Charles and the honesty of
-Henderson&mdash;between the ritualism of Laud and the simple worship of
-Baillie&mdash;certainly ought to be recognized; but then, also, it must
-be admitted that all these persons had their hearts fixed on the
-establishment of one Church, one creed, and one service, without the
-toleration of a second; in other words, the enjoyment of full liberty
-for their own consciences, but not the bestowment of a shred for the
-conscience of any one besides. The Church of the Covenant is not
-specified by name, it is simply described as meant to be "according
-to the Word of God and the example of the best reformed churches;"
-but as we know the persons who drew up the instrument, what but
-Presbyterianism can be understood as the ecclesiastical system intended
-by these expressions?</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_301" id="Page_301">[301]</a></span></p></div>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="illo301" >
- <img
- class="p0"
- src="images/illo301.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XIII.</h2>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">In the month of December, 1643, just after the Scotch treaty had been
-ratified, and while the Puritans waited for their allies, a great man
-passed away from the scene of strife. A journal reported how some at
-Oxford drank "a health to his Majesty, by whom we live and move and
-have our being; and to the confusion of Pym, his God, and his Gospel."
-Whether the report be an exaggeration of fact, or, as we would hope,
-a pure fiction, certainly Pym was an object of intense dislike to the
-Royalists, and his death removed a formidable antagonist. Crushed by
-toil and anxiety, his health had rapidly failed; and, while his body
-suffered from disease, and his mind from anxiety, he had to endure
-the fury of a populace which now sought to dash in pieces the god of
-its former idolatry. As the patriot lay on his death-bed, men, in
-women's clothes, instigated by those who wished to thwart the rigorous
-prosecution of the war, besieged the House of Commons, madly crying
-out, "Give us the traitor, that we may tear him to pieces, give us the
-dog Pym!"<a name="FNanchor_374_374" id="FNanchor_374_374"></a><a href="#Footnote_374_374" class="fnanchor">[374]</a> The brutality of the mob had its match in the malignity
-of the Royalists, who, if rumour be true, kept horses idle in the
-stables, waiting to carry down to Oxford tidings of the wished-for
-stroke.<a name="FNanchor_375_375" id="FNanchor_375_375"></a><a href="#Footnote_375_375" class="fnanchor">[375]</a> Report further spoke of knight<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_302" id="Page_302">[302]</a></span>hood as promised to the
-first who should bring the news. It was also stated that the night
-after Pym's decease, bonfires were blazing in the University streets to
-celebrate the event.<a name="FNanchor_376_376" id="FNanchor_376_376"></a><a href="#Footnote_376_376" class="fnanchor">[376]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643, December.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Burial of Pym.</i></div>
-
-<p>Westminster Abbey has witnessed many noble funerals. The pavement has
-but just closed over the remains of a renowned parliamentary chief,
-and we have a fresh remembrance of the long procession and the solemn
-service, the crowds of spectators and the general mourning at the
-burial of Lord Palmerston. The obsequies of John Pym were perhaps still
-more imposing. Preceded by servants and friends, by numerous persons of
-distinction according to their rank, and by the Westminster Assembly
-of Divines, attended also by some little pomp of heraldry, the remains
-of that illustrious statesman were borne on the shoulders of certain
-of his fellow-commoners up the nave of the cathedral, followed by his
-family, and by the members of both Houses of Parliament.<a name="FNanchor_377_377" id="FNanchor_377_377"></a><a href="#Footnote_377_377" class="fnanchor">[377]</a> They
-crowded the vast<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_303" id="Page_303">[303]</a></span> building, whilst Stephen Marshall preached a sermon
-describing the virtues of the deceased. "He maintained," said the
-minister, "the same evenness of spirit which he had in the time of his
-health, professing to myself, that it was to him a most indifferent
-thing to live or die; if he lived, he would do what service he could,
-if he died, he should go to that God whom he had served, and who would
-carry on his work by some others. To others he said that if his life
-and death were put into a balance he would not willingly cast in one
-drachm to turn the balance either way. This was his temper all the time
-of his sickness." "Such of his family or friends who endeavoured to be
-near him (lest he should faint away in his weakness) have overheard him
-importunately pray for the King's Majesty and his posterity, for the
-Parliament and the public cause, for himself begging nothing. And a
-little before his end, <i>having recovered out of a swound</i>, seeing his
-friends weeping around him, he cheerfully told them he had looked death
-in the face, and knew, and therefore feared not the worst it could
-do, assuring them that his heart was filled with more comfort and joy
-which he felt from God, than his tongue was able to utter, and (whilst
-a reverend minister was at prayer with him) he quietly slept with his
-God."<a name="FNanchor_378_378" id="FNanchor_378_378"></a><a href="#Footnote_378_378" class="fnanchor">[378]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_304" id="Page_304">[304]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643, December.</div>
-
-<p>This incident&mdash;in an early stage of our Civil Wars&mdash;of Pym carried to
-the grave by his fellow patriots, forcibly reminds us of the interment
-of Mirabeau with similar honours, at the beginning of the French
-Revolution. Unlike as to moral and religious character, these two
-eminent men, as to ability for guiding public affairs, and swaying a
-nation's destinies, had much in common: and whilst we speculate on
-the probable consequences of the lengthened life of the brilliant
-Frenchman in curbing party excesses and preventing terrible scenes, we
-may also conjecture that happy consequences would have followed, had
-the illustrious Englishman been longer spared. The loss of John Hampden
-is often deplored, as of one whose wise counsel and force of character
-might have saved his country a series of mistakes and much suffering,
-had Divine providence lengthened his days. The loss of John Pym, for
-reasons of the same kind, is probably still more to be lamented.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Court Intrigues.</i></div>
-
-<p>At this period, plots were of frequent occurrence.<a name="FNanchor_379_379" id="FNanchor_379_379"></a><a href="#Footnote_379_379" class="fnanchor">[379]</a> Basil Brooke,
-a noted Royalist and Roman Catholic, planned a scheme for detaching
-the City of London from the cause of the Covenant, and from the Scotch
-alliance. By means of defeating Presbyterian schemes, he aimed at
-procuring peace favourable to the King.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_305" id="Page_305">[305]</a></span> Propositions from his Majesty,
-and signed by his hand, were to be presented to the Lord Mayor, so
-that the latter should be obliged to convene a meeting to petition
-Parliament to treat with the monarch: upon which, should Parliament
-refuse, "a party in both Houses would appear with the City, and so
-either carry all to the King, or put all in confusion." The utterly
-idle conception of achieving a desired result by means in themselves
-impracticable, or, if even carried out, not such as to ensure the
-effect contemplated, only led to exposure and defeat. Keen-witted men
-in Parliament and in the City discovered the plot, and turned it to an
-account the very opposite of that which the plotters intended.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643, December.</div>
-
-<p>The court party at the same time endeavoured to intrigue with the
-Independents, whose want of sympathy in Presbyterian projects had
-become obvious to all. Flattering offers were made to them if they
-would break with the Scotch, abandon the Covenant, join the Royalists,
-and agree to the establishment of a moderate Episcopacy. Toleration
-was promised upon these conditions, and it was said: "Mr. Nye should be
-one of the King's chaplains, and several other Independents should be
-highly preferred and rewarded."<a name="FNanchor_380_380" id="FNanchor_380_380"></a><a href="#Footnote_380_380" class="fnanchor">[380]</a> With these larger intrigues were
-mixed up certain minor ones for the purpose of inducing officers of
-the garrison at Windsor Castle and Aylesbury to betray those places
-into the King's hands. The person who appears most prominently among
-the Royalist agents in these schemes was one Serjeant-major Ogle, who
-had been taken prisoner by the Parliament, and who was lodged in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_306" id="Page_306">[306]</a></span>
-Winchester House. References to him, as a notorious plotter in the
-service of his Majesty, occur in the publications of that day, and
-he also figures in that capacity upon the pages of the Parliamentary
-journals.<a name="FNanchor_381_381" id="FNanchor_381_381"></a><a href="#Footnote_381_381" class="fnanchor">[381]</a> His own version of the part he played comes to light in
-the following letter found in the State Paper Office. Giving an account
-of himself at a later period, he says:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>"It pleased his Majesty," that blessed martyr, my ever-blessed master,
-to give his express orders unto me (then a prisoner in Winchester
-House, only upon his Majesty's interest), to proceed with Mr. Nye,
-Goodwin, Homstead, Grafton, Moseley, Devenish, and some other of the
-Independent faction, according to a letter of mine unto the Earl of
-Bristol, intimating their desires to his Majesty, on their own and all
-the rests' behalf, in order to their plenary satisfaction and freedom
-from pressure of conscience in point of worship, which they judged
-might more easily and safely be obtained, and by them more honestly
-and honourably accepted from the King than the Covenant then in its
-triumphant career in London, they having failed of their expectation
-from the address they made to his Majesty by Sir Basil Brooke. Upon
-receipt of which warrant from his Majesty, I did conclude upon certain
-articles, or rather propositions, in order to a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_307" id="Page_307">[307]</a></span> treaty upon their
-coming to Oxford, for which purpose I received a safe conduct from his
-Majesty, with a blank for such names as I thought fit to insert, and
-a hundred pounds out of his Majesty's county, towards relief of my
-necessities.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Court Intrigues.</i></div>
-
-<p>"The general, upon which all particulars were founded, was, that if
-his Majesty pleased to give them assurance of liberty of conscience,
-upon their submission to the temporal authority, they would employ
-their whole interest in opposition to the Scotch Covenant, to serve his
-Majesty against the two Houses, and submit to a moderate Episcopacy,
-which they judged to be far more tolerable than the other, and, indeed,
-the only way to settle the nation: and from this general one particular
-was, that they would deliver to the King Aylesbury and Windsor
-garrisons as pledges for performance of their future assistance upon
-his Majesty's command, after their coming to Oxford, and satisfaction
-received."<a name="FNanchor_382_382" id="FNanchor_382_382"></a><a href="#Footnote_382_382" class="fnanchor">[382]</a></p>
-
-<p>It is to be observed that Ogle's letter plainly implicates the King as
-a prime mover in these wished-for intrigues with the Independents.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1644, January.</div>
-
-<p>In the midst of these contrivances, and immediately after the detection
-of that in which Sir Basil Brooke was the chief actor, the corporation
-of London, (according to civic custom on occasions of great public
-interest), invited the Houses of Parliament to a grand banquet, as a
-proof of union in one common cause, and as a celebration of recent
-victory over common enemies. The invitation was formally accepted, and
-entered in the journals, and the Commons added to their acceptance
-of the invitation a request that, on the morning of the festive day,
-there should be in such place as the City might think fit, and by such
-a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_308" id="Page_308">[308]</a></span> minister as the City might choose, a sermon for the commemoration
-of the recent deliverance. The Assembly of Divines also received an
-invitation to the festival; and further, the sheriff and aldermen, in
-chains and gowns, called on Baillie and his colleagues at Worcester
-House to join the other notabilities who were to be present at the
-municipal entertainment. On Thursday, the 18th of January, the
-Parliament, the Assembly, and the Scotch Commissioners met between nine
-and ten o'clock in the morning at Christ Church in the City, to hear
-Stephen Marshall, the preacher selected by the corporation to deliver a
-sermon at the request of the Commons.</p>
-
-<p>The exordium to his discourse was ingenious.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Stephen Marshall's Discourse.</i></div>
-
-<p>"Right honourable and well-beloved in our Lord,</p>
-
-<p>"This day is a day purposely set apart for feasting, and it is like one
-of the Lord's feasts, where you have a feast and an holy convocation,
-and you are first met here to feast your souls with the fat things of
-God's house, with a feast of fat things, full of marrow; and wine on
-the lees well refined; and afterwards to feast your bodies with the
-fat things of the land and sea, both plenty and dainty. But if you
-please you may first feast your eyes. Do but behold the face of the
-assembly. I dare say it is one of the excellentest feasts that ever
-your eyes were feasted with. Here in this assembly you may first see
-the two Houses of Parliament&mdash;the honourable Lords and Commons, who
-after thus many years wrestling with extreme difficulties, in their
-endeavouring to preserve an undone kingdom, and to purge and reform a
-backsliding and a polluted Church, you may behold them still not only
-preserved from so many treacherous designs, and open violences, but
-as resolved as ever to go on with this great work which God hath put
-into their hands. Here you may also see his excellency my most honoured
-lord,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_309" id="Page_309">[309]</a></span> and near him that other noble lord the commander of our forces
-by sea, as the other is by land; and with them abundance of lords and
-resolute commanders; all of them with their faces like lions, who after
-so many terrible battles, and abundance of difficulties, and charging
-in the faces of so many deaths, are yet all of them preserved, and not
-a hair of their head fallen to the ground. Here also you may behold the
-representative body of the City of London, the Lord Mayor, the Court
-of Aldermen, the Common Council, the militia, and in them the face and
-affection of this glorious city; this city which, under God, hath had
-the honour of being the greatest means of the salvation of the whole
-kingdom, and after the expense of millions of treasure, and thousands
-of their lives, still as courageous and resolute to live and die in the
-cause of God as ever heretofore. Here you may likewise see a reverend
-assembly of grave and learned divines, who daily wait upon the angel in
-the mount, to receive from him the lively oracles and the pattern of
-God's house to present unto you. All these of our own nation, and with
-them you may see the honourable, reverend, and learned commissioners of
-the Church of Scotland, and in them behold the wisdom and the affection
-of their whole nation, willing to live and die with us; all these may
-you behold in one view. And not only so, but you may behold them all of
-one mind, after so many plots and conspiracies to divide them one from
-another. And, which is yet more, you may see them all met together this
-day on purpose both to praise God for this union, and to hold it out
-to the whole world, and thereby to testify that as one man they will
-live and die together in this cause of God. Oh, beloved, how beautiful
-is the face of this assembly! Verily, I may say of it, as it was said
-of Solomon's throne, that the like was never to be seen in any other<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_310" id="Page_310">[310]</a></span>
-nation. I question whether the like assembly was ever to be seen this
-thousand years upon the face of the earth. Methinks I may call this
-assembly the host of God; I may call this place Mahanaim, and I believe
-there are many in this assembly that would say as old Jacob did when he
-had seen his son Joseph's face, 'Let me now die, seeing my son Joseph
-is yet alive.' And for mine own part, I am almost like the Queen of
-Sheba, when she had seen the court of Solomon, it is said that she had
-no spirit in her; and I could send you away and say that you had no
-cause to weep to-day or to-morrow, but to eat the fat and drink the
-sweet, and send portions one unto another; and I should send you away
-presently, but that I have first some banqueting stuff for your souls,
-such as the hand of God hath set before you for your inward refreshing;
-the ground whereof you shall find in the twelfth chapter of the first
-book of Chronicles, and three last verses:&mdash;'All these men of war, that
-could keep rank, came with a perfect heart to Hebron, to make David
-king over all Israel: and all the rest also of Israel were of one heart
-to make David king. And there they were with David three days, eating
-and drinking; for their brethren had prepared for them. Moreover, they
-that were nigh them even unto Issachar, and Zebulun and Naphtali,
-brought bread on asses, and on camels, and on mules, and on oxen, and
-meat, meal, cakes of figs, and bunches of raisins, and wine, and oil,
-and oxen, and sheep abundantly: for there was joy in Israel.'"<a name="FNanchor_383_383" id="FNanchor_383_383"></a><a href="#Footnote_383_383" class="fnanchor">[383]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1644, January.</div>
-
-<p>After the preacher had delivered a pertinent discourse from this text,
-which was felicitously chosen, the guests who had attended the church
-marched in long and imposing procession to Merchant-Taylors' Hall,
-where the banquet was served.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_311" id="Page_311">[311]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Corporation Banquet.</i></div>
-
-<p>Train bands lined the streets. Common Councilmen in their gowns
-walked first. The Mayor and Aldermen, arrayed in scarlet, followed
-on horseback. The General and Admiral of the Parliament, with the
-rest of the Lords and the Officers of the Army, trudged on foot. Then
-came the Commons, with their Speaker and his mace-bearer; and next to
-these the Westminster Divines. It had been appointed that the Scotch
-Commissioners, clerical and lay, should have a post of honour between
-the Commons and the Assembly, but as Lord Maitland went with the other
-lords, the modesty of his clerical companions would not let them take
-precedence of the English brethren. So Baillie and his colleagues
-"stole away to their coach," and when there was no room for coaches
-along the thronged streets, they went on foot, "with great difficulty
-through huge crowdings of people." Passing through Cheapside they
-saw,&mdash;where the Cross used to stand,&mdash;a great bonfire kindled, "many
-fine pictures of Christ and the saints, of relics, beads, and such
-trinkets," being piled up for the special entertainment of the reverend
-gentlemen, and kindled into a blaze just as they marched by. The feast
-cost £4,000, though, in the spirit of Puritan moderation, it included
-neither dessert, nor music, only "drums and trumpets." The Mayor sat
-on the dais. Two long tables supplied the Divines; Dr. Twiss the
-Prolocutor, sitting at the head. The Speaker of the Commons proposed
-the health of the Lords. The Lords stood up, every one with his glass,
-and drank to the Commons. The Mayor toasted both in the name of the
-citizens. The sword-bearer, wearing his cap of maintenance, carried the
-loving cup from the chief magistrate to the Commissioners. The whole
-ceremony was to them a "fair demonstration" of union between those
-whom the Oxford plotters endeavoured to divide. The feast ended<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_312" id="Page_312">[312]</a></span> with
-the singing of the 67th Psalm, "whereof Dr. Burgess read the line."
-"A religious precedent," says Vicars, in his Chronicle, "worthy to
-be imitated by all godly Christians in their both public and private
-feastings and meetings."<a name="FNanchor_384_384" id="FNanchor_384_384"></a><a href="#Footnote_384_384" class="fnanchor">[384]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1644, January.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Iconoclastic Crusades.</i></div>
-
-<p>The Cheapside bonfire of papistical trinkets illuminated the spot where
-once stood the famous cross. That cross, also the one at Charing,
-and even the venerable building of a like description in St. Paul's
-Churchyard&mdash;although so rich in memories of the Reformation&mdash;had
-been destroyed by the axes of puritanical zeal. In his honest hatred
-of superstition, the Puritan did not perceive that objects once
-devoted to its service, if intrinsically beautiful, might yet deserve
-preservation, and that monuments of antiquity, though they may not
-advance the cultivation of taste, may render valuable aids to the
-study of history. But the use and appreciation of ancient art is of
-modern growth, and the Puritan must not be blamed for being, in this
-respect, only on a level with the reformers of an earlier age, and
-with many of his own contemporaries of a different creed.<a name="FNanchor_385_385" id="FNanchor_385_385"></a><a href="#Footnote_385_385" class="fnanchor">[385]</a> The
-House of Commons had early<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_313" id="Page_313">[313]</a></span> taken in hand the destruction of what were
-deemed relics of idolatry, although, being unsupported by the Lords,
-they accomplished little. But in the spring of 1643, by order of the
-two Houses, Sir Robert Harlow executed the iconoclastic crusade just
-noticed, which proved the beginning of a wholesale destruction which
-continued throughout the following winter. Acting under the advice of
-the Assembly, as well as in accordance with their own impulses, the
-Commons, in the month of August, issued an ordinance for demolishing
-altars, for removing tapers, candlesticks, and basins, and for defacing
-crosses, images, and pictures of the persons of the Trinity, and of
-the Virgin Mary.<a name="FNanchor_386_386" id="FNanchor_386_386"></a><a href="#Footnote_386_386" class="fnanchor">[386]</a> Monuments of the dead, not commonly reputed
-for saints, were to be spared. Accordingly, in December, images in
-Canterbury Cathedral were dashed down, and stained windows broken
-in pieces. Something of the same wilful destruction followed a few
-days afterwards in Westminster Abbey; copes and surplices, it may be
-observed, having been taken away in the previous October, up to which
-time they had been in use even there.<a name="FNanchor_387_387" id="FNanchor_387_387"></a><a href="#Footnote_387_387" class="fnanchor">[387]</a> St. Paul's Cathedral<a name="FNanchor_388_388" id="FNanchor_388_388"></a><a href="#Footnote_388_388" class="fnanchor">[388]</a>
-shared a like fate, and sacred articles of silver<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_314" id="Page_314">[314]</a></span> belonging to it
-were sold for the replenishment of the war treasury.<a name="FNanchor_389_389" id="FNanchor_389_389"></a><a href="#Footnote_389_389" class="fnanchor">[389]</a> As to the
-defacement of churches, the Puritans have been blamed for things in
-which they had no concern. What was really owing to the violence of
-reformers, the depredations of Royalists, and the neglect and folly
-of churchwardens has been put to their account. Yet when all this is
-allowed for, enough remains to sustain serious indictments against the
-accused, and little mercy would they find at the hands of a tribunal of
-antiquaries.</p>
-
-
-
-<div class="sidenote">1644, January.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Iconoclastic Crusades.</i></div>
-
-<p>In the city of Norwich, (January, 1644) the Puritan corporation
-appointed a committee to repair several churches, and take notices of
-scandalous pictures, crucifixes, and images:<a name="FNanchor_390_390" id="FNanchor_390_390"></a><a href="#Footnote_390_390" class="fnanchor">[390]</a> whereupon they went
-to work, breaking windows, filing bells, tearing down carved work,
-stripping brasses off monuments, and pulling down the pulpit with
-its leaden cross in the green yard. Popish paintings, taken from the
-cathedral and other churches, were burnt in the old market-place, "a
-lewd wretch" (according to Bishop<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_315" id="Page_315">[315]</a></span> Hall) walking before the train
-with his cope trailing in the dust, and a service book in his hand,
-"imitating in an impious scorn the tune, and usurping the words of the
-litany."<a name="FNanchor_391_391" id="FNanchor_391_391"></a><a href="#Footnote_391_391" class="fnanchor">[391]</a> There is further evidence of remorseless destruction
-in the journal of William Downings, of Stratford, a parliamentary
-visitor, appointed under a warrant from the Earl of Manchester, for
-demolishing superstitious pictures and ornaments within the county of
-Suffolk, in the years 1643 and 1644. But in some places the populace
-opposed the execution of the Parliamentary decree. At Kidderminster the
-Puritan churchwarden set up a ladder, which was too short to enable
-him to reach the crucifix on the top of the town cross; and, while
-he was fetching another, a mob assembled to defend what many admired
-only for the reason that their neighbours disliked it.<a name="FNanchor_392_392" id="FNanchor_392_392"></a><a href="#Footnote_392_392" class="fnanchor">[392]</a> Baxter,
-then minister in the town, calls these defenders of crucifixes and
-images "a drunken crew," and declares that they beat and bruised two
-neighbours who had come to look after him and the churchwardens, and
-would have belaboured both in the same way, could they but have caught
-them.<a name="FNanchor_393_393" id="FNanchor_393_393"></a><a href="#Footnote_393_393" class="fnanchor">[393]</a> If sometimes the iconoclasts were defeated, at other times
-they overcame their adversaries. A church near Colonel Hutchinson's
-house at Owthorpe,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_316" id="Page_316">[316]</a></span> in Nottinghamshire, had a painted window with a
-crucifixion, the Virgin Mary and the Evangelist John. The clergyman
-took down the heads of the figures, and laid them by carefully in his
-closet, and tried to persuade his churchwardens to certify that the
-Parliamentary order was executed; but they took care to call on the
-Colonel and bring him to see the church and the minister, who was at
-last compelled to blot out all the paintings and break all the glass
-which was tainted with superstition.<a name="FNanchor_394_394" id="FNanchor_394_394"></a><a href="#Footnote_394_394" class="fnanchor">[394]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1644, January.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Iconoclastic Crusades.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1644, January.</div>
-
-<p>The amount of damage done in different parts of the country would
-depend on circumstances, on the disposition of the magistrates, and
-especially on the conduct of the military. It is certain that the
-havoc of Downings' iconoclasm is not a specimen of what generally took
-place. The state of numerous churches throughout the kingdom shews
-that Puritanism in many places touched them lightly, if at all. We
-know more about the cathedrals. These suffered severely. Peterborough,
-perhaps, was treated worse than any, the choir being stripped of its
-carved fittings and coloured glass, the cloisters being completely
-pulled down.<a name="FNanchor_395_395" id="FNanchor_395_395"></a><a href="#Footnote_395_395" class="fnanchor">[395]</a> Part of the nave at Carlisle was destroyed, in order
-that guard houses and batteries might be constructed. The chapter house
-of Hereford was ruined, and 170 crosses torn up.<a name="FNanchor_396_396" id="FNanchor_396_396"></a><a href="#Footnote_396_396" class="fnanchor">[396]</a> At Chichester,
-ornaments, monuments, and windows were destroyed. Sawpits were dug in
-the nave of Rochester.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_317" id="Page_317">[317]</a></span> The lady chapel of Ely was cruelly shattered.
-Norwich Cathedral sustained much injury; and so did Lichfield,
-which the cavaliers turned into a citadel. Monuments were smashed
-at Gloucester and Lincoln. But, in Winchester, though Waynflete's
-chantry was defaced, the cathedral is said to have suffered less than
-it otherwise would have done, from the circumstance of the captain of
-the troop stationed there being an old Wykehamist. Though stalls were
-pulled down at Worcester, numerous monuments and effigies still remain
-within that edifice. Only painted windows were taken down at Exeter
-and Oxford; some of the latter being preserved after their removal.
-Notwithstanding what is reported in the <i>Mercurius Rusticus</i>, the
-ornaments of Westminster Abbey, which at the beginning of the conflict
-fell into Puritan hands, so far escaped violence, that it is said "a
-history of ecclesiastical sculpture, from the reign of Henry III. to
-the present day, might be fairly illustrated from the stores of that
-Church alone."<a name="FNanchor_397_397" id="FNanchor_397_397"></a><a href="#Footnote_397_397" class="fnanchor">[397]</a> Other noble cathedrals were but slightly damaged.
-Salisbury was free from "material<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_318" id="Page_318">[318]</a></span> profanation."<a name="FNanchor_398_398" id="FNanchor_398_398"></a><a href="#Footnote_398_398" class="fnanchor">[398]</a> There is no
-mention of harm done at Bristol, Durham, Chester, and York. Throughout
-England, tradition is constant in her story, that the violation of
-churches was the work of soldiers.</p>
-
-<p>The excess to which ceremonial worship had been carried by the
-Laudian clergy, and the almost Popish reverence with which images
-and pictures had been regarded by some of them, inspired an intense
-Protestant indignation in numbers of Englishmen. They prized the
-Reformation, and thought they saw in the Anglo-Catholicism of their
-day a national defection from the faith of their fathers, like setting
-up the calves in Bethel and Dan, or the idolatrous service of Baal
-in Samaria. And whilst fearing the return of Romanism, with Romanism
-they identified things which have no necessary connection with it.
-Their zeal, though religious and disinterested, lacked wisdom, and had
-mixed up with it such alloy as commonly adheres to that passion in the
-breasts of mortals. It resembled the fierceness and fury of a noted
-reformer of Israel, who "brought forth the images out of the house
-of Baal and burned them;" nor was it untouched by a spirit of proud
-self-complacency like his when he cried: "Come see my zeal for the Lord
-of Hosts." Again and again, as we mark Puritan doings in cathedrals and
-churches, we are ready to exclaim: "The driving is like the driving of
-Jehu the son of Nimshi, for he driveth furiously."<a name="FNanchor_399_399" id="FNanchor_399_399"></a><a href="#Footnote_399_399" class="fnanchor">[399]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_319" id="Page_319">[319]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Cromwell at Ely.</i></div>
-
-<p>A broad construction was given to the meaning of orders for suppressing
-superstition and idolatry. In the month of January, 1644, when
-Oliver Cromwell was Governor of Ely, a Mr. Hitch officiated in the
-cathedral in the usual way. No express law, as yet, had been made
-against the Prayer Book or choral worship. But, interpreting the
-latter as "superstitious," and apprehending that its continuance would
-irritate his soldiers, Cromwell wrote to this clergyman and required
-him to forbear a service which he styled "unedifying and offensive."
-The clergyman persisted. The Governor,&mdash;wearing his hat according
-to custom,&mdash;with his men, entered the church, and found Mr. Hitch
-chaunting in the choir. "I am a man under authority," said Oliver, "and
-am commanded to dismiss this assembly"&mdash;the only authority, in fact,
-being the order about superstition, backed by the probability of a
-disturbance in case the service was continued. When Hitch determinately
-went on, Cromwell's words, "Leave off your fooling and come down, sir,"
-broke up the cathedral worship, and shewed the sort of man the clergy
-had to deal with.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1644, February.</div>
-
-<p>While crosses, images, and choral services were put down, the Solemn
-League and Covenant was set up. The zeal with which the Parliament
-attempted the last, scarcely fell below that with which they
-accomplished<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_320" id="Page_320">[320]</a></span> the first. An exhortation on the subject by the Divines
-at Westminster publicly appeared. It contains no threatenings of
-penalty in case of refusal, but only an abundance of argument and
-rhetorical persuasion. Various objections are answered&mdash;one especially,
-which, read in connexion with the events of the Restoration, is rather
-curious:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>"As for those clergymen who pretend that they, above all others, cannot
-covenant to extirpate that Government because they have, as they say,
-taken a solemn oath to obey the bishops <i>in licitis et honestis</i>, they
-can tell, if they please, that they that have sworn obedience to the
-laws of the land, are not thereby prohibited from endeavouring by all
-lawful means the abolition of those laws when they prove inconvenient
-or mischievous; and if yet there should any oath be found into which
-any ministers or others have entered, not warranted by the laws of God
-and the land, in this case they must teach themselves and others that
-such oaths call for repentance, not pertinacity in them."<a name="FNanchor_400_400" id="FNanchor_400_400"></a><a href="#Footnote_400_400" class="fnanchor">[400]</a></p>
-
-<p>Though no threats are found in the exhortation, Parliament sent
-instructions to commanders-in-chief and governors of towns and
-garrisons, that the Covenant should be taken by all soldiers under
-their command. The committees of the several counties had to see
-that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_321" id="Page_321">[321]</a></span> copies were dispersed over the country, its contents read in
-the churches, and the oath tendered to ministers, churchwardens, and
-constables. Law officers under the Crown were subjected to loss of
-office, and lawyers to restraint from practising in the Courts, if
-they did not submit to the new test.<a name="FNanchor_401_401" id="FNanchor_401_401"></a><a href="#Footnote_401_401" class="fnanchor">[401]</a> If a minister refused to
-present it to his parishioners, the committee was to appoint another
-minister to do so in his place.<a name="FNanchor_402_402" id="FNanchor_402_402"></a><a href="#Footnote_402_402" class="fnanchor">[402]</a> It was ordered, at an earlier
-date, that no one who declined the Solemn League should be elected a
-common-councilman of London, or have a vote in such election, or hold
-any office of trust in the City.<a name="FNanchor_403_403" id="FNanchor_403_403"></a><a href="#Footnote_403_403" class="fnanchor">[403]</a> Every congregation was to obtain
-a copy of the document fairly printed in large letters, fit to be hung
-up in the place of worship.<a name="FNanchor_404_404" id="FNanchor_404_404"></a><a href="#Footnote_404_404" class="fnanchor">[404]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>The Solemn League and Covenant.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1644, March.</div>
-
-<p>Sermons were preached and published, containing numerous scriptural
-quotations, pertinent and impertinent, in favour of covenanting. The
-Presbyterians regarded it as a symbol of their Church, and made it
-a bulwark of their system; and others, who had no sym<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_322" id="Page_322">[322]</a></span>pathy with
-them, and who afterwards opposed their proceedings, were, at first,
-scarcely less extravagant in extolling its merits.<a name="FNanchor_405_405" id="FNanchor_405_405"></a><a href="#Footnote_405_405" class="fnanchor">[405]</a> The devices
-of the engraver came under contribution, and there may be seen a
-curious series of plates executed at that period, one representing
-the Divines swearing to the Covenant with uplifted hands; and another
-exhibiting Prelatists in gowns and caps coming out of Church, whilst a
-Puritan is shutting the door upon them, saying, "Every plant that my
-heavenly Father hath not planted shall be plucked up."<a name="FNanchor_406_406" id="FNanchor_406_406"></a><a href="#Footnote_406_406" class="fnanchor">[406]</a> Copies of
-the instrument, with a long array of names appended to it, sometimes
-present themselves amongst corporation records and parish archives,
-suggestive of scenes once enacted in church-porches and chancels.<a name="FNanchor_407_407" id="FNanchor_407_407"></a><a href="#Footnote_407_407" class="fnanchor">[407]</a>
-Other written vows belong to that covenanting age. At Nottingham, the
-governor and garrison took between them a mutual oath to be faithful
-to each other, and to hold out until death, without listening to any
-parley, or accepting any terms from their enemies. Lucy Hutchinson
-describes how women as well as men entered into such pledges;<a name="FNanchor_408_408" id="FNanchor_408_408"></a><a href="#Footnote_408_408" class="fnanchor">[408]</a> and
-an instance of a female adherent to the famous bond is found in a MS.
-life of Mrs. Stockton, preserved in Dr. Williams' library.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_323" id="Page_323">[323]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>The Solemn League and Covenant.</i></div>
-
-<p>Parliament imposed the Covenant upon the Irish. The Royalist
-authorities did all in their power to resist the imposition. The
-Lords-Justices and the Council laid an embargo on its adoption by the
-military, and condemned it as seditious. But old Scotch officers,
-commanding troops in the sister island, heeded not the mandate, and the
-proscribed symbol received a warm welcome in the camp, and also in the
-northern cities, where the Protestants rallied around it. With great
-solemnity, the soldiers swore to it in the church of Carrickfergus.
-Throughout Down and Antrim it became popular. At Coleraine it contended
-with opposition, but at Derry, which place abounded in anti-prelatists,
-it won a tumultuous victory over the opposite party.<a name="FNanchor_409_409" id="FNanchor_409_409"></a><a href="#Footnote_409_409" class="fnanchor">[409]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1644, March.</div>
-
-<p>As it has been from the beginning in the history of tests,<a name="FNanchor_410_410" id="FNanchor_410_410"></a><a href="#Footnote_410_410" class="fnanchor">[410]</a> so it
-was with the Covenant. It bore the character of a compromise; and,
-accordingly, that which was meant at the same time to declare truth and
-to accomplish union, received different explanations from different
-persons. First, the Presbyterians thought themselves bound by it to
-oppose schism as well as prelacy; next, the Independents, it was said,
-deeming Presbyterianism superstitious, conceived that the Covenant gave
-authority to oppose that system; and, thirdly, the cavaliers, swearing
-by it to preserve and defend the King's majesty, concluded they might
-lawfully oppose both the other parties. In this way the subject is
-represented in a publication of later date, written by one who had no
-sympathy<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_324" id="Page_324">[324]</a></span> whatever with the movement; and there is much truth, no
-doubt, in the representation, as well as in the following remark by
-the same writer, in reference to the ambiguity of the terms employed
-in the symbol: "It must needs own almost anything, especially seeing
-the sense of it hath never been plainly demonstrated, but left to men's
-own interpretation in several particulars."<a name="FNanchor_411_411" id="FNanchor_411_411"></a><a href="#Footnote_411_411" class="fnanchor">[411]</a> But whilst each could
-discover something in the Covenant of a negative kind, which he could
-turn to account in opposing his adversaries, nearly all persons in
-England, except the most advanced Presbyterians, saw there were things
-in it of a positive kind, which they knew not how to adopt.</p>
-
-<p>Hence, in spite of its various interpretations, and also in spite of
-Parliamentary orders and Presbyterian activity, great numbers refused
-or evaded the test.<a name="FNanchor_412_412" id="FNanchor_412_412"></a><a href="#Footnote_412_412" class="fnanchor">[412]</a> Where<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_325" id="Page_325">[325]</a></span> zealots were able, they enforced it
-rigorously; but in unsettled times the imposition of anything of the
-kind is sure to be encumbered by great difficulties. Some even who
-held Presbyterian opinions disliked this form of expressing them; and
-we find that Richard Baxter prevented his flock at Kidderminster from
-submitting to the Covenant, lest, as he said, it should ensnare their
-consciences; and also he prevailed on the ministers of Worcestershire
-not to offer it to their people.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>The Solemn League and Covenant.</i></div>
-
-<p>The truth is, that while the Covenant in Scotland was a reality,
-inasmuch as it sprung from the hearts of the people, and expressed a
-sentiment to which they were devoted, the case was far otherwise in our
-own country. Imported here, it never rallied around it the sympathies
-of the nation. Exasperating High Churchmen, it did not please the
-Puritans. Many could not go so far as it went and many were anxious
-to go much further still. Moderate Episcopalians were reluctant to
-adopt it, because they were not prepared for the total abolition of
-Episcopacy; and, on the other hand, many Independents disliked it,
-because its condemnation of schism, they knew, was regarded in some
-quarters as a condemnation of themselves. They were advocates for
-a liberty and a toleration to which the spirit of the Covenant was
-thoroughly opposed. That the Scotch should insist upon its adoption by
-the English, and that the rulers of this<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_326" id="Page_326">[326]</a></span> country should accept the
-condition, and endeavour to enforce it upon all their subjects, was
-an unfortunate mistake, destined to be attended in some instances by
-failure, in others by mischief, in all by disappointment.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643, September.</div>
-
-<p>The adoption of the Covenant by the Westminster Assembly will be in
-the reader's remembrance; and to the subsequent proceedings of that
-venerable body his attention is now to be directed.</p>
-
-<p>The Divines first met in Henry the Seventh's Chapel. That stone
-building, pleasantly cool in summer, became too cold for them as autumn
-drew on. They then, by order of Parliament, adjourned to the Jerusalem
-Chamber.<a name="FNanchor_413_413" id="FNanchor_413_413"></a><a href="#Footnote_413_413" class="fnanchor">[413]</a> "What place more proper for the building of Zion, as
-they propounded it," asks Fuller, "than the Chamber of Jerusalem, the
-fairest of the Dean's lodgings where King Henry IV. died?" Romance
-and poetry, through the pens of Fabian and Shakespeare, have thrown
-their hues over this memorable room; other and higher associations now
-belong to it as the birth-place of a confession of faith still dear to
-the Church of Scotland, and as the spot where the Puritan advocates of
-religious liberty fought one of its early and most earnest battles.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>The Westminster Assembly.</i></div>
-
-<p>The Chamber adjoins the Abbey, at the south corner of the west front.
-There is a painted window on the north side, and two plain ones give
-light on the west. The walls are hung with tapestry, representing
-the Circumcision, the Adoration of the Magi, and, apparently,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_327" id="Page_327">[327]</a></span> the
-Passage through the Wilderness. A portrait of Richard II.&mdash;generally
-considered the oldest extant picture of an English sovereign&mdash;hangs at
-the south end of the apartment; and a curiously-carved chimney-piece,
-put up by Williams, Dean of Westminster, spans the fire-place. The room
-was rather different in appearance at the time of the Assembly. The
-situation of the fire-place was the same, and the mantel-piece had but
-just been erected. The arras, however, was brought into the Chamber
-after the coronation of James II., on which occasion it had been used
-in the Abbey; and the portrait of Richard II. did not come there till
-1755, when it was removed from the Abbey choir.<a name="FNanchor_414_414" id="FNanchor_414_414"></a><a href="#Footnote_414_414" class="fnanchor">[414]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643, September.</div>
-
-<p>Baillie paints the place and the Assembly as he saw it. Near the
-door, and on both sides, were stages of seats; the Prolocutor's chair
-being at the upper end, "on a frame." In chairs before him were the
-assessors. Before them, through the length of the room, ran a long
-table, at which sat the secretaries, taking notes. The house, says
-Baillie, was well hung with tapestry, and a good fire blazed on
-the hearth&mdash;"which is some dainty at London." Opposite the table,
-to the right of the president, on the lowest of the three or four
-rows of forms, appeared the Scotch Commissioners, Baillie himself a
-conspicuous individual of the group. Behind were Parliament members
-of the Assembly. On the left, running from the upper end to the
-fire-place, and at the lower end, till they came round to the seats
-of the Scotchmen, were forms for the Divines, which they occupied as
-they pleased, each, however, commonly retaining the same spot. From the
-chimney-piece to the door was an open passage; the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_328" id="Page_328">[328]</a></span> Lords who now and
-then dropped in, filling chairs round the fire. There must have been
-plenty of room in the Chamber for the accommodation of the Assembly, as
-ordinarily there were not present above threescore members. Everything
-proceeded in perfect order, and each meeting commenced and closed
-with prayer. As we read Baillie's description, we can see the Divines
-divided into committees, can watch them preparing matters for the
-Assembly, and can hear them speak without interruption, as each one
-addresses the reverend Prolocutor. The harangues are long and learned,
-and are well prepared beforehand with "replies," "duplies," "triplies."
-Then comes the cry, "Question&mdash;question;" the scribe, Mr. Byfield,
-immediately rises, approaches the chair, and places the proposition
-in Dr. Twiss's hand, who asks, "As many as are in opinion that the
-question is well in the stated proposition, let them say Aye;" "As many
-as think otherwise, say No." Perhaps Ayes and Noes "be near equal;"
-then the Prolocutor bids each side stand up, and Mr. Byfield counts.
-When any one deviates from the point in hand, there are exclamations of
-"Speak to order." Nobody is allowed to mention another by name, but he
-must refer to him as "the reverend brother who lately or last spoke, on
-this hand, on that side, above, or below." These methods of proceeding
-deeply interested Robert Baillie, who, by his minute description of
-them, greatly interests us. The Prolocutor, far too quiet a man for the
-Scotch delegate, is represented by him as "very learned, but merely
-bookish, and among the unfittest of all the company for any action;
-so after the prayer he sits mute." This, most persons will think, a
-chairman ought to do; but Baillie wished to have a President with more
-zeal for Presbyterianism, and therefore he preferred Dr. Burgess&mdash;in
-his estimation "a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_329" id="Page_329">[329]</a></span> very active and sharp man," who supplied, so far as
-was "decent, the Prolocutor's place."<a name="FNanchor_415_415" id="FNanchor_415_415"></a><a href="#Footnote_415_415" class="fnanchor">[415]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">Members of the Assembly.</div>
-
-<p>Twiss did not long retain the office which his modesty and infirmities
-had made him reluctant to accept. He fell down one day in the
-pulpit, and "was carried to his lodgings, where he languished about
-a twelvemonth," and then expired, July the 20th, 1646.<a name="FNanchor_416_416" id="FNanchor_416_416"></a><a href="#Footnote_416_416" class="fnanchor">[416]</a> His
-preference of a contemplative to an active life appeared in his
-exclamation after the attack which proved his death-stroke: "I shall
-have at length leisure to follow my studies to all eternity," and
-throughout he seems to have been as loyal as he was religious; for he
-often wished the fire of contention might be extinguished, even if it
-were in his own blood. A funeral in Westminster Abbey marked the public
-opinion of his worth; and there Dr. Robert Harris preached a sermon for
-him on Joshua i. 2, "Moses my servant is dead." The Assembly and the
-House of Commons followed his remains to the grave. Mr. Charles Herle,
-educated at Exeter College, Oxford, succeeded him in the office of
-Prolocutor.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643, September.</div>
-
-<p>There was an overwhelming majority of Presbyterians in the Jerusalem
-Chamber. Amongst the most eminent were Burgess and Calamy, Marshall and
-Ash. In the notes of the Assembly's proceedings taken by Lightfoot,
-these names repeatedly occur, together with the less familiar ones of
-Herle, Seaman, Cawdry, and others. The Scotch Commissioners, Henderson
-and Baillie&mdash;with whom were associated George Gillespie, a young man
-of rich promise, and Samuel Rutherford, whose "Letters" on religious
-subjects are well known&mdash;likewise took a prominent part in the debates.
-It is proper here also to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_330" id="Page_330">[330]</a></span> remember that Presbyterianism, predominant
-in the Assembly, was at the time supreme in the Senate. All the
-staunch Prelatists, and many moderate Episcopalians, had left the Long
-Parliament in St. Stephen's Chapel to join Charles's mock Parliament at
-Christ Church, Oxford. Advocates who exposed ecclesiastical abuses with
-the view of simply reforming the old establishment had disappeared. Of
-those who remained it would be uncandid to deny that some were sincere
-converts to the new system; and it would be credulous to believe that
-there were not others who, seeing which way the stream flowed, struck
-in with the current. At any rate, a Presbyterian policy prevailed in
-1644. Holles, Glynne, Maynard, Rudyard, Rouse, and Prynne, together
-with Waller, Stapleton, and Massey, were the most distinguished members
-of the party; yet, though possessing amongst them considerable ability
-and learning, they were none of them men of great intellectual power or
-of any political genius.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Members of the Assembly.</i></div>
-
-<p>The Erastians, as they are called, must not be overlooked. John
-Selden, already noticed, led the van, and his learning and reputation
-made him a formidable opponent. To gain any advantage when breaking a
-lance with such a person was counted a high distinction in theological
-chivalry, and this honour has been duly emblazoned by Scotch heralds
-more than once in favour of young George Gillespie, whom we have just
-mentioned. The solid and industrious Bulstrode Whitelocke, and St. John,
-"the dark-lantern man," helped to form a small body of reserve on the
-same side, who, on special occasions, behaved themselves valorously
-in the Westminster field. The chief Divine who thoroughly advocated
-Erastianism was Thomas Coleman, Vicar of Blyton, in Lincolnshire, of
-some considerable note in his own day. But a far greater man&mdash;acting,
-however, only occasionally in con<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_331" id="Page_331">[331]</a></span>nexion with the party&mdash;was the
-renowned Dr. Lightfoot, who in rabbinical lore may be regarded as
-equal, if not superior, to John Selden.<a name="FNanchor_417_417" id="FNanchor_417_417"></a><a href="#Footnote_417_417" class="fnanchor">[417]</a></p>
-
-<p>But another class, entertaining different views, claim<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_332" id="Page_332">[332]</a></span> our
-attention: the five dissenting brethren&mdash;Nye, Goodwin, Bridge,
-Burroughs, and Simpson.<a name="FNanchor_418_418" id="FNanchor_418_418"></a><a href="#Footnote_418_418" class="fnanchor">[418]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643, September.</div>
-
-<p>Philip Nye, a man of ability in some respects, and of bustling habits,
-stands out as chief of the five. Zealous in his commendations of the
-Covenant, he with equal zeal opposed Presbyterianism: the very thing
-which, according to the fairest rules of interpretation, it must be
-held to symbolize. He has been charged with disingenuousness; but
-experience in the matter of subscription makes charitable people slow
-to urge the charge. Those who vindicate subscription in "non-natural
-senses" ought to be the last to fling a stone at Philip Nye; and those
-who take the opposite side can hardly praise him for consistency of
-conduct. How the Covenant could be adopted by any one professing
-Independency is a puzzle, and the puzzle in Nye's case is the greater,
-because, not content with quietly assenting to it as many others did,
-he appears to have been a chief instrument in bringing it over the
-border, and in enforcing it upon his companions.</p>
-
-<p>Thomas Goodwin surpassed Nye in learning and in other respects.
-His writings present him to us as an accomplished theologian, and
-a many-sided thinker, and shew that scarcely any forms of thought
-in metaphysical divinity escaped his notice.<a name="FNanchor_419_419" id="FNanchor_419_419"></a><a href="#Footnote_419_419" class="fnanchor">[419]</a> The breadth and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_333" id="Page_333">[333]</a></span>
-excursiveness of his reflective powers are the more remarkable when
-viewed in connexion with his rigid Calvinism. He joined Philip Nye
-in a preface to "Cotton's Keys," and in it expounded ecclesiastical
-opinions, in accordance with those of the New England churches.</p>
-
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Members of the Assembly.</i></div>
-
-<p>William Bridge&mdash;once a Norwich clergyman, then a refugee in
-Holland&mdash;won a reputation for learning as well as piety. His library,
-well stocked with fathers, schoolmen, and critics, so attracted him,
-that he rose at four o'clock both winter and summer, that he might have
-time for reading these favourites. Being a man of broad sympathies, he
-accustomed himself to enquiries beyond the range of his profession, and
-boldly handled constitutional questions. Adopting the opinion, that
-"the people formed the first subject and receptacle of civil power;"
-an opinion which was the mainstay of the Parliament's policy, Bridge
-shrunk not from declaring, "In case a prince shall neglect his trust,
-so as not to preserve his subjects, but to expose them to violence,
-it is no usurpation in them to look to themselves, but an exercise of
-that power which was always their own."<a name="FNanchor_420_420" id="FNanchor_420_420"></a><a href="#Footnote_420_420" class="fnanchor">[420]</a> He had suffered under Laud,
-and knew what it was to walk in paths of confessorship, so that his
-exhortations had no little power to comfort, when he said to his people
-in trouble: "Certainly, if God's charge be your charge, your charge
-shall be His charge, and being so, you have His bond that they shall
-never want their daily bread."</p>
-
-
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643, September.</div>
-
-<p>Jeremiah Burroughs seems to have possessed singular candour, modesty,
-and moderation, and probably was the gentlest of the five; perhaps he
-was not always quite<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_334" id="Page_334">[334]</a></span> consistent,<a name="FNanchor_421_421"></a> id="FNanchor_421_421<a href="#Footnote_421_421" class="fnanchor">[421]</a> being no lover of controversy,
-but a man who felt himself at home in devotional meditations. He died
-before the Westminster Assembly broke up,<a name="FNanchor_422_422" id="FNanchor_422_422"></a><a href="#Footnote_422_422" class="fnanchor">[422]</a> and one of the last
-sermons which he preached was entitled "<i>Irenicum</i>, or an Attempt to
-heal Divisions among Christians."</p>
-
-<p>Sydrach Simpson bore a character for learning, piety, and moderation
-though at one time he was silenced by the Assembly, for differing from
-them in matters of discipline.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Toleration.</i></div>
-
-<p>The discussions in which the Independents engaged with their brethren,
-turned upon the office of Apostles, the distinction between pastors and
-teachers, the character of ruling elders, ordination, the election of
-ministers, and the like; but their main controversy hinged on a deeper
-question. The Presbyterians were anxious to meet the difficulties
-felt by the Independents, so far as the establishment of one uniform
-religion would allow; the former were prepared to permit in their large
-and carefully ramified scheme of ecclesiastical government some little
-liberty of action, provided that on the whole there was obedience to
-the established system. Freedom from synodical censure upon certain
-points was to be conceded to those who upon others submitted to
-Presbyterian<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_335" id="Page_335">[335]</a></span> authority. The Assembly would build a huge cathedral
-for the nation, with small side chapels here and there for the use
-of certain crotchety people, who might privately pass in and out if
-they would but always enter through the great door, and walk up the
-main aisle. This is not what men, calling themselves 'Independent,'
-have ever liked. The five dissenting brethren did not object to the
-cathedral being built for those who wished it&mdash;but for their own parts,
-they desired their own places of worship to be quite outside.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643.</div>
-
-<p>It will be instructive here to pause a moment, and to compare the
-ground taken by the Independents in this controversy with that occupied
-by other advocates of toleration of a different class at the same time.
-Chillingworth, in his famous work on the "Religion of Protestants,"
-observes in a passage of singular eloquence, that the imposing of the
-senses of men upon the words of God, and the laying of them upon the
-conscience under penalty of death and damnation&mdash;involving the vain
-conceit that we can speak of the things of God better than in the words
-of God&mdash;is the only fountain of all the schisms of the Church, and
-that which makes these schisms immortal. He brands the practice as the
-common incendiary of Christendom, and that which tears into pieces, not
-merely the coat, but the members of Christ. "Take away," he says, in
-burning words, "these walls of separation, and all will quickly be one.
-Take away this <i>persecuting</i>, <i>burning</i>, <i>cursing</i>, <i>damning</i> of men,
-for not subscribing to the <i>words of men</i> as the words of God; require
-of Christians only to believe Christ and to call no man Master but Him
-only; let those leave claiming infallibility that have no title to it,
-and let them that in their words disclaim it, disclaim it likewise in
-their actions; in a word, take<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_336" id="Page_336">[336]</a></span> away tyranny, which is the devil's
-instrument to support errors, and superstitions, and impieties, in the
-several parts of the world, which could not otherwise long withstand
-the power of truth&mdash;I say take away tyranny, and restore Christians
-to their just and full liberty of captivating their understanding to
-Scripture only; and as rivers, when they have a free passage, run
-all to the ocean, so it may well be hoped, by God's blessing, that
-universal liberty, thus moderated, may quickly reduce Christendom to
-truth and unity."<a name="FNanchor_423_423" id="FNanchor_423_423"></a><a href="#Footnote_423_423" class="fnanchor">[423]</a></p>
-
-<p>John Hales, in his little tract on "Schism," complains that it has
-been the common disease of Christians from the beginning, not to
-content themselves with that measure of faith which God and Scriptures
-have expressly afforded us, but to attempt devising things, of which
-we have no light, either from reason or revelation; "neither have
-they rested here, but upon pretence of Church authority (which is
-none) or tradition (which for the most part is but feigned) they have
-peremptorily concluded, and confidently imposed upon others a necessity
-of entertaining conclusions of that nature; and, to strengthen
-themselves, have broken out into divisions and factions, opposing man
-to man, synod to synod, till the peace of the Church vanished, without
-all possibility of recall."</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Toleration.</i></div>
-
-<p>The object of both these great reasoners was, without violating
-conscience, to secure union. They aimed at comprehension, but it was
-comprehension such as all Puritans condemned. Chillingworth would have
-had "the public service of God conducted so that all who believe the
-Scriptures and live accordingly, might without scruple, or honesty,
-or protestation against any part, join<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_337" id="Page_337">[337]</a></span> in it;" and Hales went so
-far as to say: He did not see that men of different opinions in
-religion might not hold communion in sacred things, and both go to
-one church. "Why may I not go," he asks, "if occasion require, to an
-Arian Church, so there be no Arianism expressed in their liturgy? And
-were liturgies, and public forms of service so framed as that they
-admitted not of particular and private fancies, but contained only
-such things as in which all Christians do agree, schisms on opinion
-were utterly vanished." It is needless to say that this is a species
-of latitudinarianism which most religious men would consider to be
-inconsistent with a definite doctrinal belief.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643.</div>
-
-<p>The most remarkable treatise on the subject of toleration belonging
-to that age is Jeremy Taylor's "Liberty of Prophesying." In point of
-eloquence no other work of the kind can be compared with it; and though
-defective it is still worthy, for the sake of its reasoning as well as
-its rhetoric, to be a text book for the student of religious liberty.
-The author dwells, in his own matchless way, on the difficulties of
-Scripture, the uncertainty of tradition, the insufficiency of councils,
-the fallibility of popes and fathers, the incompetency of the Church,
-in its "diffusive character," to be judge of controversies, and the
-impertinence of any pretence to such a possession of the spirit as
-preserves from error. Reason is pronounced the best interpreter, and,
-though some causes of error in the exercise of reason are culpable,
-many are innocent.<a name="FNanchor_424_424" id="FNanchor_424_424"></a><a href="#Footnote_424_424" class="fnanchor">[424]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_338" id="Page_338">[338]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Toleration.</i></div>
-
-<p>To base toleration on the uncertainty of truth is a very insecure
-method of proceeding. The alliance of scepticism damages the cause
-of freedom. Colour is given to the charge, that religious liberty
-springs from religious indifference. It has cost two centuries of
-experience and discipline to indoctrinate society with the lesson,
-that the decision of religious questions without any imposition of
-human authority is a right of conscience; and that the more earnest
-we are in the love of truth, the more careful we should be not to
-sully its sanctity by the unrighteous enforcement of its principles.
-Taylor fought manfully for freedom, but he did not see the highest
-vantage ground within his reach. Moreover, in his Essay, comprehension
-within the Church often seems confounded with religious liberty in the
-State. No clear distinction is maintained between principles which
-regulate the one, and principles which vindicate the other. Yet the
-reader of the treatise may pick out and sort them, for there they are.
-Taylor teaches the doctrine&mdash;that the duty of faith is completed in
-believing the Articles of the Apostles' Creed;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_339" id="Page_339">[339]</a></span> that to multiply tests
-of orthodoxy and to require assent to points of doubtful disputation
-"is to build a tower on the top of a bulrush;" and "that the further
-the effect of such proceedings doth extend, the worse they are." With
-an amiable self-delusion, characteristic of his pure and child-like
-nature, he dreamed of a church, combining all varieties of belief
-consistent with faith in the fundamental verities of the gospel.
-Though protesting against persecution, he contended for discipline,
-but confined excommunication simply to an act of spiritual severance.
-It is difficult to catch exactly what he means by "communicating with
-dissenting churches"&mdash;yet the tone of his remarks, and his reference
-to the Greek Church, prevent us from supposing that he used the
-appellation in the way it is commonly employed at present. The division
-of kingdoms seems to have been with him the only justification of a
-division of churches; and probably his theory of a national church
-would not be very different from Dr. Arnold's. He, at the same time,
-claims toleration for all <i>opinions</i>, not expressed in overt acts
-injurious to the State; and though he hampers his principle with
-certain qualifications, which threaten the civil rights of some persons
-hostile to Christianity, yet his views, if consistently carried out
-in his own gentle and charitable spirit, would leave little to be
-complained of by any one. On the whole, Jeremy Taylor was fuller and
-more satisfactory in his views of comprehension and liberty than was
-either Chillingworth or Hales.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643.</div>
-
-<p>Dr. Ralph Cudworth and Dr. Henry More, though they did not propound
-any theory of toleration, advocated principles and breathed a spirit
-in their teaching such as could not fail to promote the interests of
-religious liberty. There is a beautiful sermon by the former of these
-Divines preached before the House of Commons, in 1647, in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_340" id="Page_340">[340]</a></span> which the
-following characteristic passage occurs:&mdash;"The golden beams of truth
-and the silken cords of love, twisted together, will draw men on with
-a sweet violence, whether they will or no. Let us take heed we do not
-sometimes call that zeal for God and His Gospel, which is nothing else
-but our own temptations and stormy passions. True zeal is a sweet,
-heavenly, and gentle flame, which makes us active for God, but always
-within the sphere of love. It never calls for fire from heaven to
-consume those that differ a little from us in their apprehensions. It
-is like that kind of lightning (which the philosophers speak of) which
-melts the sword within, but singeth not the scabbard. It strives to
-save the soul, but hurteth not the body."<a name="FNanchor_425_425" id="FNanchor_425_425"></a><a href="#Footnote_425_425" class="fnanchor">[425]</a></p>
-
-<p>More, who went beyond Cudworth in decided attachment to Episcopacy;
-sharing in the spirit of his great contemporary, strongly condemned
-rancour and persecution. "He thought," observes his biographer, "that
-all persons making conscience of their ways, and that were themselves
-peaceable and for granting a liberty unto others, ought not to be
-severely used or persecuted, but borne with as befits weak members till
-God shall give them greater light."<a name="FNanchor_426_426" id="FNanchor_426_426"></a><a href="#Footnote_426_426" class="fnanchor">[426]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_341" id="Page_341">[341]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Toleration.</i></div>
-
-<p>The groundwork of toleration selected by the Independents differed
-from that of the Episcopalians. The Independents had ideas of
-Christian faith, Christian worship, and Christian discipline far more
-definite and fixed than those of Chillingworth or Hales, or even
-Taylor; and could not join in any acts or associations inconsistent
-with their deeply-formed and devout opinions. Arianism, for example,
-might be deemed simply an intellectual error by men like Hales; but
-no Athanasian could be stronger in his maintenance of the doctrine
-of the Trinity, and the importance attached to it, than were these
-dissenting brethren. They were as remote as possible from anything like
-latitudinarian theology. Christian dogmas, so called, were held by them
-with an intense tenacity. Toleration is sometimes reckoned a daughter
-of indifference, but most certainly in their case toleration can be
-ascribed to no such parentage. Moreover, the very general kind of
-devotion in the house of God which would have satisfied Chillingworth,
-would have starved the spiritual cravings of Jeremiah Burroughs and his
-companions.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643.</div>
-
-<p>Nor did the brethren wish for only one church, as did those eminent
-Episcopalians. They could not, for it was their primary principle
-that "churches" or "congregations"&mdash;with them identical terms&mdash;ought
-to be many. In the existence of one holy Catholic Church, embracing<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_342" id="Page_342">[342]</a></span>
-all true Christians, they firmly believed; but they held in perfect
-consistency with this, that there must be numerous and distinct
-organized communities, not only in the world, but in the same realm,
-to be united only by common Christian sympathies. On this point they
-would be at issue with Jeremy Taylor, as well as with Chillingworth and
-Hales. They would object to his notion of national churches, as well as
-to his standard of Christian faith. Their ideas of communion were much
-more strict, though the extent of their toleration in some respects was
-more comprehensive. With Taylor's Catholic predilections they would
-have no sympathy, nor could they agree with him in all he said about
-Anabaptists. When they came to the same conclusion with the eloquent
-Churchman, it was by a different course of reasoning.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Toleration.</i></div>
-
-<p>The fundamental principles of Independency, consistently carried out,
-could not but lead to the advocacy of a perfect freedom of profession
-and worship. If churches be select communities composed of Christian
-believers, standing apart from political powers, and independent of
-each other in their organization, then it clearly follows that no
-ecclesiastical authority can touch those who are outside the pale of
-all particular churches that no temporal penalties can be inflicted
-on those who are within any such pale and that full liberty of action
-must be allowed to religionists of every class, and to those also who
-have no religion at all. Accordingly, Mr. Hallam, an unprejudiced
-enquirer into this subject, has declared that "the congregationalist
-scheme leads to toleration, as the national church scheme is adverse to
-it, for manifold reasons which the reader will discover."<a name="FNanchor_427_427" id="FNanchor_427_427"></a><a href="#Footnote_427_427" class="fnanchor">[427]</a> A few
-Independents at an early period discerned the legitimate consequences<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_343" id="Page_343">[343]</a></span>
-of their principles. A Brownist petition prepared in the year 1640
-prays, "that every man may have freedom of conscience," not excepting
-Papists; and in a pamphlet published in 1644 it is asked, "whether if
-security be taken for civil subjection, Papists might not be tolerated?
-Otherwise," it is added, "if England's government were the government
-of the whole world, not only they, but a world of idolaters of all
-sorts, yea the whole world, must be driven out of the world."<a name="FNanchor_428_428" id="FNanchor_428_428"></a><a href="#Footnote_428_428" class="fnanchor">[428]</a> But
-the five brethren did not advocate the cause of liberty to that wide
-extent; and afterwards, during the civil wars and the Protectorate,
-many Independent Divines, including the leaders of the party, carefully
-limited their conception of religious freedom.<a name="FNanchor_429_429" id="FNanchor_429_429"></a><a href="#Footnote_429_429" class="fnanchor">[429]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643.</div>
-
-<p>But there was one Independent clergyman&mdash;John Goodwin&mdash;not a member of
-the Westminster Assembly&mdash;who with pre-eminent perspicuity and force
-expounded the doctrine of toleration. Justice has not been often done
-to this very able man, owing, perhaps, to the prejudice against him
-on account of his Arminianism, and to his bold defence of Charles's
-execution. Calvinists and Royalists were likely to look at him with
-jaundiced eyes; and it cannot be denied that when assailed, as he often
-was, Goodwin could give a Roland for an Oliver; and that in a way such
-as severely galled the victims of his criticism.<a name="FNanchor_430_430" id="FNanchor_430_430"></a><a href="#Footnote_430_430" class="fnanchor">[430]</a> He remained until
-1645 vicar of St.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_344" id="Page_344">[344]</a></span> Stephen's, Coleman Street, and at the commencement
-of the sittings of the Westminster Assembly, though suspected by
-some of holding Calvinism very loosely, he had not yet entirely
-abandoned that system. Open and earnest in his advocacy of Independent
-principles, defending them both from the pulpit and from the press,
-he also, whilst remaining vicar and discharging his parochial duties,
-gathered in his parish an Independent church; not, however, preaching
-separately to that community, but in his more private relationship as
-an Independent pastor, praying and holding religious conversation with
-them in his own house&mdash;whilst the doors were thrown open for any one to
-attend the meetings who pleased.</p>
-
-<p>Goodwin heartily approved of the "Narration," though he had no part in
-the composition of that performance, and when it came under the attack
-of Presbyterians, he broke a lance on its behalf with the assailants,
-in a very chivalrous fashion. We do not remember any other statement of
-the doctrine of toleration in the writings of the Independents of that
-day so unequivocal as his, expressed in the following words:<a name="FNanchor_431_431" id="FNanchor_431_431"></a><a href="#Footnote_431_431" class="fnanchor">[431]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Toleration.</i></div>
-
-<p>"The grand pillar of this coercive power in magistrates is this angry
-argument: 'What, would you have all religions, sects, and schisms
-tolerated in Christian churches? Should Jews, Turks, and Papists be
-suffered in their religions, what confusion must this needs breed both
-in church and state!' I answer: If, by a toleration, the argument means
-either an approbation or such a connivance which takes no knowledge
-of, or no ways opposeth such religions, sects, or<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_345" id="Page_345">[345]</a></span> schisms as are
-unwarrantable, they are not to be tolerated; but orthodox and able
-ministers ought in a grave, sober, and inoffensive manner, soundly
-from the Scriptures to evince the folly, vanity, and falsehood of all
-such ways. Others, also, that have an anointing of light and knowledge
-from God, are bound to contribute occasionally the best of their
-endeavours towards the same end. In case the minister be negligent,
-or forgetful of his duty, the magistrate may and ought to admonish
-him that he fulfil his ministry. If a person, one or more, being
-members of a particular church, be infected with any heretical or
-dangerous opinion, and after two or three admonitions, with means of
-conviction used to regain him, shall continue obstinate, he ought to
-be cast out from amongst them by that church. If it be a whole church
-that is so corrupted, the neighbour churches, in case it hath any,
-ought to admonish it, and to endeavour the reclaiming of it. If it be
-refractory, after competent admonition and means used for the reducing
-of it, they may and ought to renounce communion with it, and so set a
-mark or brand of heresy upon the forehead of it.</p>
-
-<p>If, by a toleration, the argument means a non-suppression of such
-religions, sects, and schisms by fining, imprisoning, disfranchising,
-banishment, death, or the like, my answer is&mdash;<i>That they ought to be
-tolerated; only upon this supposition, that the professors of them be
-otherwise peaceable in the state, and every way subject to the laws and
-lawful power of the magistrate</i>."<a name="FNanchor_432_432" id="FNanchor_432_432"></a><a href="#Footnote_432_432" class="fnanchor">[432]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_346" id="Page_346">[346]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Toleration.</i></div>
-
-<p>There is a good deal of controversy as to who was first in the field
-of toleration. The honour most likely belongs to Leonard Busher. He
-will be noticed hereafter in connection with the early Baptists. But
-the controversy is of little importance in relation to the general
-interests of mankind, compared with the fact that John Locke, at a
-later period, was the apostle to teach the doctrine effectively to the
-English nation. He discovers who proves, and the merit of discovery
-is due to him who first establishes a principle; but he, who adopting
-what was established before, is more successful in his advocacy of
-it than his predecessors were, will and ought to be regarded as a
-superior benefactor of his race, though he may have attributed to him
-more of the merit of originality than he deserves. Locke brought the
-doctrine of toleration out of the domain of theology, and placed it on
-the basis of political righteousness;<a name="FNanchor_433_433" id="FNanchor_433_433"></a><a href="#Footnote_433_433" class="fnanchor">[433]</a> he established it by common
-sense reasoning adapted to the English understanding; besides, he did
-this in the exercise of a peculiar and independent genius; and, what
-is a more important consideration, his contemporaries were prepared
-for his instructions by preceding struggles and by possessing already
-an instalment of legal toleration. Locke is to be distinguished from
-Busher, Goodwin, and Owen, and from Chillingworth, Hales, and Taylor.
-He comes more in a line<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_347" id="Page_347">[347]</a></span> with the first than with the second three
-names; but he did what they had none of them the power to do&mdash;he made
-the doctrine popular. A parallel may be drawn in this respect between
-the history of the principle of government non-interference with a man
-and his conscience, and the principle of government non-interference
-with commercial interests and the natural laws of demand and supply.
-Long after the discovery and illustration of the latter principle,
-a great statesman made plain to the common understanding of his
-fellow-countrymen what had been before apprehended by only a few
-philosophers. John Locke occupies a position in the history of
-toleration like that of Richard Cobden in the history of free trade.</p>
-
-<p>After all, the Independents must be reckoned the chief and most
-influential of the early apostles of toleration, and to their rise and
-progress we shall direct attention in the following chapter.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_348" id="Page_348">[348]</a></span></p></div>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="illo348" >
- <img
- class="p0"
- src="images/illo348.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XIV.</h2>
-
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Early Congregational Churches.</i></div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">A Congregational Church existed in London so early as 1568. It
-consisted of poor people, numbering about 200, "of more women than
-men," who openly separated from the Establishment, and sometimes in
-private houses, sometimes in fields, and occasionally even in ships,
-held meetings, and administered the sacraments.<a name="FNanchor_434_434" id="FNanchor_434_434"></a><a href="#Footnote_434_434" class="fnanchor">[434]</a> Some of these
-early Independents were sent to Bridewell. In a declaration signed
-by Richard Fitz, the pastor, occurs the following brief statement
-of principles:&mdash;"First and foremost, the glorious Word and Evangel
-preached, not in bondage and subjection, but freely and purely;
-secondly, to have the sacraments ministered purely only, and altogether
-according to the institution and good word of the Lord Jesus, without
-any tradition or invention of man; and, last of all, to have, not the
-filthy canon law, but discipline only, and altogether agreeable to the
-same heavenly and almighty word of our good Lord Jesus Christ."<a name="FNanchor_435_435" id="FNanchor_435_435"></a><a href="#Footnote_435_435" class="fnanchor">[435]</a>
-In these quaint words of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_349" id="Page_349">[349]</a></span> Richard Fitz, and his obscure brethren, lie
-folded up the great truth that the Christian religion is simply a moral
-power, based on a Divine foundation, not asking, because not needing,
-support from political governments, or aid from physical force. These
-humble men really believed that Jesus Christ established His empire
-upon the consent and not the fears of man, "and trusted Himself
-defenceless among mankind."<a name="FNanchor_436_436" id="FNanchor_436_436"></a><a href="#Footnote_436_436" class="fnanchor">[435]</a> Not caring for earthly sanctions, they
-threw themselves on the world with only Heaven for their protector.
-Through Christian faith they did what at the time they could not
-comprehend, being utterly unconscious of the importance of the act
-which they performed.</p>
-
-<p>This Church in London existed before the well-known Robert Browne
-appeared as the advocate of advanced Nonconformist views. In 1571 he
-was cited on that account before the commissioners at Lambeth; and
-ten years later the Bishop of Norwich, in a letter to Lord Burleigh,
-referred to him as a person "to be feared, lest if he were at liberty
-he would seduce the vulgar sort of the people, who greatly depend on
-him."</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1581.</div>
-
-<p>Burleigh said in reply:&mdash;<a name="FNanchor_437_437" id="FNanchor_437_437"></a><a href="#Footnote_437_437" class="fnanchor">[437]</a></p>
-
-<p>"I understand that one Browne, a preacher, is by your lordship and
-others of the Ecclesiastical Commission committed to the custody of
-the Sheriff of Norfolk, where he remains a prisoner, for some matters
-of offence uttered by him by way of preaching; wherein I perceive,
-by sight of some letters, written by certain godly preachers in your
-lordship's diocese, he hath been dealt with, and by them dissuaded from
-that course he hath taken. Forasmuch as he is my kinsman, if he be son
-to him whom I take him to be, and that his error<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_350" id="Page_350">[350]</a></span> seemeth to proceed
-of zeal, rather than of malice, I do therefore wish he were charitably
-conferred with and reformed; which course I pray your lordship may
-be taken with him, either by your lordship, or such as your lordship
-shall assign for that purpose. And in case there shall not follow
-thereof such success as may be to your liking, that then you would be
-content to permit him to repair hither to London, to be further dealt
-with, as I shall take order for, upon his coming; for which purpose
-I have written a letter to the sheriff, if your lordship shall like
-thereof."<a name="FNanchor_438_438" id="FNanchor_438_438"></a><a href="#Footnote_438_438" class="fnanchor">[438]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Congregationalism&mdash;Robert Browne.</i></div>
-
-<p>Sir Robert Jermyn, in a letter to Burleigh (1581), alludes to Browne
-as a man who "had many things that were godly and reasonable, and, as
-he thought, to be wished and prayed for, but with the same there were
-other things strange and unheard." He further begged the Lord Treasurer
-to advise Browne to be more careful in his conduct, and to threaten him
-with sharp censure as an example to others, since he was but a mere
-youth in age and experience. The Bishop of Norwich, also, writing to
-the Lord Treasurer about this troublesome clergyman, observed "that
-Mr. Browne's late coming into his diocese, and teaching strange and
-dangerous doctrine in all disordered manner, had greatly troubled the
-whole country, and brought many to great disobedience of all law and
-magistrates&mdash;that yet, by the good aid and help of the Lord Chief
-Justice, and Master Justice Anderson, his associate, the chiefest of
-such factions were so bridled, and the rest of their followers so
-greatly dismayed, as he verily hoped of much good and quietness to have
-thereof ensued, had not the said Browne returned again contrary to his
-expectation, and greatly prejudiced<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_351" id="Page_351">[351]</a></span> those their good proceedings,
-and having private meetings in such close and secret manner that he
-knew not possibly how to suppress the same."<a name="FNanchor_439_439" id="FNanchor_439_439"></a><a href="#Footnote_439_439" class="fnanchor">[439]</a> Browne, at length,
-through the influence of his illustrious relative, succumbed to the
-ecclesiastical authority which before he had daringly resisted,
-and became master of St. Olave's Grammar-school, in Southwark. His
-subsequent career covered him with disgrace. He had a wife with whom
-for many years he never lived, a church in which he never preached,
-and the circumstances of his death, like the scenes of his life, were
-stormy and turbulent.<a name="FNanchor_440_440" id="FNanchor_440_440"></a><a href="#Footnote_440_440" class="fnanchor">[440]</a> Whatever sympathy with some of Browne's
-principles might be felt by the Independents of the next age, they
-repudiated any connection with Browne's name, and held his character
-and history in the utmost abhorrence.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1583.</div>
-
-<p>Browne's influence told considerably in the Eastern Counties, where
-a strong leaven of ultra-Protestantism has existed ever since the
-Lollard days. Even Kett's rebellion, often treated as a Roman Catholic
-outbreak, looks more like a peasants' war in aid of the Reformation
-than anything else. Bury St. Edmunds, where Brownism flourished,
-witnessed the death of Copping and Thacker, two Congregational
-martyrs, hanged in 1583. In Essex, a movement which looked like
-Congregationalism won some measure of sympathy from the upper classes,
-and even the wife of Sir Nicholas Bacon, Lord Keeper of the Great
-Seal, attended meetings held in Rochford Hall by Mr. Wright, who had
-been ordained in the Netherlands. Writing to Lord Burleigh, that lady
-observed, "I hear, them in their public exercises, as a chief duty
-com<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_352" id="Page_352">[352]</a></span>manded by God to be done, and also I confess, as one that hath
-found mercy, that I have profited more in the inward feeling knowledge
-of God his holy will, though but in a small measure, by such sincere
-and sound opening of the Scriptures by an ordinary preaching within
-these seven or eight year, than I did by hearing odd sermons at Paul's
-well nigh twenty year together."<a name="FNanchor_441_441" id="FNanchor_441_441"></a><a href="#Footnote_441_441" class="fnanchor">[441]</a></p>
-
-<p>It is a curious circumstance to find Lord Bacon's mother connected
-with a minister who maintained, as Wright did, that every pastor was a
-bishop, and that he should be chosen by his own congregation, opinions
-which constitute the essence of modern Congregationalism. From these
-opinions the ecclesiastical authorities sought to convert him by
-imprisonment; and with that forcible argument another was associated,
-which is so original that we cannot resist the temptation of quoting
-it. Mr. Barwick, a conforming clergyman, commended to Wright the Church
-of England as a church most admirable on account of its being free from
-the two opposite extremes of Popery and Puritanism. "God delights in
-mediocrity," says this logician, and the logic is worth being noted for
-its curiosity: "Man was put in the <i>midst</i> of Paradise; a rib was taken
-out of the <i>midst</i> of man; the Israelites went through the <i>midst</i>
-of the Red Sea, and of Jordan; Samson put firebrands in the <i>midst</i>,
-between the foxes'<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_353" id="Page_353">[353]</a></span> tails; David's men had their garments cut off by
-the <i>midst</i>; Christ was hanged in the <i>midst</i> between two thieves."</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Congregationalism&mdash;Henry Browne.</i></div>
-
-<p>Perhaps Henry Barrowe,&mdash;a lawyer of Gray's Inn, and in his young days
-a courtier,&mdash;of all men in the reign of Elizabeth, propounded the
-clearest views of Congregationalism. He strongly objected to forms
-of prayer, especially the Common Prayer Book; to the sacraments, as
-administered in the Church of England; to the ecclesiastical laws and
-canons; to the idea that the establishment was a true church; to the
-extent of the Queen's ecclesiastical supremacy, and to the abolition
-of the judicial law of Moses. He denied that it was lawful for any
-private person to intermeddle with the prince's office, and to reform
-the State without his good liking and licence; but he virtually
-admitted the right of private Christians to share in the regulation of
-ecclesiastical matters: for he expressly contended that the government
-of Christ's Church belongeth not to the profane or unbelieving, neither
-could it, he said, without manifest sacrilege, be set over parishes
-as they then stood in confusion, no difference being made between the
-faithful and unbelieving, all being indifferently received into the
-body of the Church; but over every particular congregation of Christ
-he concluded that there ought to be an eldership, and that every such
-congregation ought to aim at its establishment.<a name="FNanchor_442_442" id="FNanchor_442_442"></a><a href="#Footnote_442_442" class="fnanchor">[442]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1593.</div>
-
-<p>In 1592 a Church was formed in Nicholas Lane. Spies were on the look
-out, and a wary doorkeeper admitted the little congregation as they
-stealthily dropped in one by one. Mr. Francis Johnson and Mr. Greenwood
-were of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_354" id="Page_354">[354]</a></span> the number. The first of these rose and prayed for half an
-hour, and, opening his Genevan Bible, discoursed to the assembly
-on the constitution of primitive brotherhood. The brethren formed
-themselves into such a communion, and gave to each other the right hand
-of fellowship. Mr. Johnson was chosen pastor, after which he baptized
-seven persons. "But they had neither godfathers nor godmothers; and
-he took water and washed the faces of them that were baptized." He
-afterwards broke the bread, consisting of five white loaves, which,
-with a cup of wine, were distributed amongst the members by Mr. Bowman
-and Mr. Lee, who had been elected deacons: after which a collection was
-made for the poor.<a name="FNanchor_443_443" id="FNanchor_443_443"></a><a href="#Footnote_443_443" class="fnanchor">[443]</a></p>
-
-<p>Not only in Nicholas Lane, but in Aldgate and Smithfield, were
-gatherings of this description, and especially in Islington, where
-meetings of persecuted Protestants had been held in Mary's reign. As
-the dew sparkled on the grass, as the birds twittered on the hedges,
-and as the sun bathed the landscape in golden light&mdash;the memories of
-the congregation in the Islington woods would go back to Roger Holland
-and his brother confessors, who on that very greensward, and under the
-shadow of those old trees, had studied their Bibles, and then been
-burned for doing so.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Barrowe and Browne.</i></div>
-
-<p>Barrowe and Greenwood were indicted at the Old Bailey, in 1593, for
-publishing seditious books, but from the examination preserved in the
-Egerton papers,<a name="FNanchor_444_444" id="FNanchor_444_444"></a><a href="#Footnote_444_444" class="fnanchor">[444]</a> it appears that the specific accusations against
-them related simply to religious opinions.</p>
-
-<p>By a refinement of cruelty these poor men were conveyed<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_355" id="Page_355">[355]</a></span> to
-Tyburn in the death-cart&mdash;to receive a delusive respite under the
-gallows-tree&mdash;to be brought back again to Newgate&mdash;and when they
-had thought that the bitterness of death was past, to be a second
-time dragged to the place of execution, to return no more. This
-extraordinary proceeding, which at first looks like a piece of
-intentional barbarity, receives its explanation from a contemporary
-letter in the State Paper Office.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1609.</div>
-
-<p>"The Parliament is to end this week. * * * There was a bill preferred
-against the Barrowists and Brownists, making it felony to maintain
-any opinions against the ecclesiastical government, [which by the
-bishops' means did pass the Upper House, but found so captious by the
-Nether House, as it was thought it would never have passed in any
-sort, for that it was thought all the Puritans would have been drawn
-within the compass thereof. Yet by the earnest labouring of those that
-sought to satisfy the bishops' humours,] it is passed to this effect:
-That whosoever shall be an obstinate recusant, refusing to come to
-any church, and do deny the Queen to have any power or authority in
-ecclesiastical causes, and do, by writing or otherwise, publish the
-same, and be a keeper of conventicles also, being convicted, he shall
-abjure the realm within three months, and lose all his goods and
-lands; if he return without leave it shall be felony. Thus have they
-minced it, as is thought, so as it will not reach to any man that
-shall deserve favour in a concurrence of so many faults and actions.
-The week before, upon the late conventicle you wrote of last, Barrowe
-and Goodman,<a name="FNanchor_445_445" id="FNanchor_445_445"></a><a href="#Footnote_445_445" class="fnanchor">[445]</a> with some others, were indicted, arraigned, and
-condemned upon the statute of writing and publishing seditious books,
-and should have been executed, but as<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_356" id="Page_356">[356]</a></span> they were ready to be trussed
-up were reprieved, but the day after, the Court House had shewn
-their dislike of this bill, were early in the morning hanged. It is
-said 'their reprieval proceeded of [a supplication made to the Lord
-Treasurer, complaining that in a land where no Papist was touched for
-religion by death, their blood (concurring in opinion touching faith
-with that which was professed in the realm) should be first shed.
-Desiring, therefore, conference to be removed from their errors by
-reason, or else for satisfaction of the world, touching their opinions,
-which was communicated by him to the Archbishop of Canterbury, who,
-notwithstanding, was very peremptory, so as the Lord Treasurer gave
-him and the Bishop of Worcester some round taxing words, and used some
-speech to the Queen, but was not seconded by any, which hath made him
-more remiss, as is thought. It is plainly said that their execution,
-proceeding of malice of the bishops, to spite the Nether House, which
-hath procured them much hatred among the common people affected that
-way."]<a name="FNanchor_446_446" id="FNanchor_446_446"></a><a href="#Footnote_446_446" class="fnanchor">[446]</a> * * * *</p>
-
-<p>John Penry, another Congregational martyr&mdash;who uttered the following
-memorable words:&mdash;"If my blood were an ocean sea, and every drop
-thereof were a life unto me, I would give them all, by the help of the
-Lord, for the maintenance of my confession"&mdash;perished on the gallows
-for the advocacy of his opinions, as if he had been the worst of
-criminals, at a place in Southwark called St. Thomas-a-Watering. Roger
-Rippon, of the same religious profession as Penry, died in prison;
-and his friends, moved by intense sympathy with the sufferer,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_357" id="Page_357">[357]</a></span> and
-by indignation against his unmerited fate, paraded before the house
-of Justice Young (the magistrate who had committed him) the coffin
-containing the sufferer's remains, on the lid of which appeared
-the following inscription:&mdash;"This is the corpse of Roger Rippon, a
-servant of Christ, and her Majesty's faithful subject; who is the
-last of sixteen or seventeen, which that great enemy of God, the
-Archbishop of Canterbury, with his High Commissioners, have murdered
-in Newgate within these four years, manifestly for the testimony of
-Jesus Christ. His soul is now with the Lord, and his blood crieth for
-speedy vengeance against that great enemy of the saints, and against
-Mr. Richard Young, who in this and many the like points hath abused
-his power, for the upholding of the Romish Antichrist, prelacy, and
-priesthood."<a name="FNanchor_447_447" id="FNanchor_447_447"></a><a href="#Footnote_447_447" class="fnanchor">[447]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Congregationalism&mdash;Jacob.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1632, May.</div>
-
-<p>Henry Jacob is a commanding figure in Congregational annals.<a name="FNanchor_448_448" id="FNanchor_448_448"></a><a href="#Footnote_448_448" class="fnanchor">[448]</a>
-Originally a clergyman in the county of Kent, he had written in
-defence of the Church of England, but afterwards, perhaps influenced
-by an answer to his book from the pen of Francis Johnson, a zealous
-separatist, he warmly espoused the cause of Nonconformity.<a name="FNanchor_449_449" id="FNanchor_449_449"></a><a href="#Footnote_449_449" class="fnanchor">[449]</a> To him
-has been attributed a tract, published in 1609, entitled: "An Humble
-Supplication for Toleration and Liberty to enjoy and observe the
-Ordinances of Jesus<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_358" id="Page_358">[358]</a></span> Christ in the Administration of His Churches in
-lieu of Human Constitutions." In this publication it is maintained,
-that "our Lord Jesus hath given to each particular church or ordinary
-congregation this right and privilege, namely, to elect, ordain, and
-deprive her own ministers; and to exercise all the other parts of
-lawful ecclesiastical jurisdiction under Him." Toleration is sought
-in order that "each particular church may put in execution this her
-particular privilege;" but, the writer adds: "We do humbly beseech
-your Majesty not to think, that by our suit, we make an overture and
-way for toleration unto Papists, our suit being of a different nature
-from theirs. The inducements thereof, such as cannot conclude aught in
-favour of them, whose doctrine is heresy, and a profession directly
-contrary to the lawful state and government of free countries and
-kingdoms, as your Majesty hath truly and judiciously observed."<a name="FNanchor_450_450" id="FNanchor_450_450"></a><a href="#Footnote_450_450" class="fnanchor">[450]</a></p>
-
-<p>In other tracts which bear Henry Jacob's name,<a name="FNanchor_451_451" id="FNanchor_451_451"></a><a href="#Footnote_451_451" class="fnanchor">[451]</a> he explained his
-views of Independency, and in accordance with them he founded a church
-in the year 1616. The ceremony connected with the institution is
-described as consisting of fasting and prayer, and the joining together
-of the hands of the members as they solemnly covenanted to walk
-together in all God's ways and ordinances, according as He had already
-revealed them, or should further make them known. Jacob was succeeded
-in the pastorship of the Congregational Church by John Lathrop,<a name="FNanchor_452_452" id="FNanchor_452_452"></a><a href="#Footnote_452_452" class="fnanchor">[452]</a>
-who suffered from the tyranny of the High Commission Court. With
-reference to the proceedings carried on against him and certain members
-of his flock, some fresh information may be gathered from one of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_359" id="Page_359">[359]</a></span>
-Rawlinson MSS. As it illustrates both the extent to which private
-meetings of the Separatists were carried, and the interruption which
-they experienced, we will here introduce a few passages from that
-curious document.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Persecution of Congregationalists.</i></div>
-
-<p>On the 2nd of May, 1632, certain conventiclers, as they are called,
-were taken at the house of Barnett, a brewer's clerk, residing at
-Blackfriars.<a name="FNanchor_453_453" id="FNanchor_453_453"></a><a href="#Footnote_453_453" class="fnanchor">[453]</a> At first John Lathrop, who is described as their
-minister, did not appear, "but kept himself out of the way awhile;
-therefore the man of the house wherein they were taken, was first
-called." He was asked when he last attended the parish church? He
-replied that he was present in the parish church at the time when,
-according to the allegation, the meeting was held at his house, but
-that his wife did not then attend worship with him. The accused persons
-were all required to take the <i>ex officio</i> oath, but they excused
-themselves from doing so at least for the present, and requested time
-for further consideration of that subject. Archbishop Abbot addressed
-them as follows:&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1632, May.</div>
-
-<p>"You shew yourselves most unthankful to God, to the King, and to the
-Church of England, that when (God be praised) through his Majesty's
-care and ours you have preaching in every church, and men have
-liberty to join in prayer and participate of the sacraments, and have
-catechisings, and all to enlighten you, and which may serve you in
-the way of salvation, you in an unthankful manner cast off all this
-yoke, and in private unlawfully assemble yourselves together, making
-rents and divisions in the Church. If anything be amiss, let it be
-known; if anything be not agreeable to the Word of God, we<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_360" id="Page_360">[360]</a></span> shall be
-as ready to redress it as you; but whereas it is nothing but your own
-imaginations, and you are unlearned men that seek to make up a religion
-of your own heads, I doubt no persuasion will serve the turn, we must
-take this course; you are called here, let them stand upon their bonds,
-and let us see what they will answer; it may be they will answer what
-may please us." Laud, then Bishop of London, proceeded to observe, in
-a very characteristic manner&mdash;"It is time to take notice of these; nay
-this is not the fourth part of them about this City. You see these came
-of set purpose; they met not by chance; they are desperately heretical;
-they are all of different places, out of Essex, St. Austin's, St.
-Martin's le Grand, Buttolph's, Aldgate, Thisleworth, (Isleworth) St.
-Saviour's; let these be imprisoned. Let me make a motion. There be
-four of the ablest men of them; let these four answer and be proceeded
-against, and the while if the rest come in, they shall be received,
-but if they will not, I know no reason why four or five men should not
-answer for all."</p>
-
-<p>When Lathrop was present before the Commissioners, the Bishop, after
-having asked some very insulting questions, demanded, "Where are your
-orders?" to which Lathrop replied&mdash;"I am a minister of the Gospel of
-Christ, and the Lord hath qualified me." "Will you lay your hand on
-the book, and take your oath?" enquired the Court; to which question
-the minister returned a distinct negative. The following curious
-conversation between the Commissioners and certain accused parties is
-worth being transcribed. Eaton, together with "two women and a maid,"
-appeared, and were asked by the Court why they were assembled in a
-conventicle, when others were at church?</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Persecution of Congregationalists.</i></div>
-
-<p><i>Eaton.</i> "We were not assembled in contempt of the magistrate."</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_361" id="Page_361">[361]</a></span></p>
-
-<p><i>London.</i> "No! it was in contempt of the Church of England."</p>
-
-<p><i>Eaton.</i> "It was in conscience to God (may it please this Honourable
-Court); and we were kept from church, for we were confined in the house
-together by those that beset the house, else divers would have gone to
-church, and many came in after the sermons were done."</p>
-
-<p><i>London.</i> "These were first discovered at Lambeth, and then at other
-places, and now taken here; they have in their meetings books printed
-against the Church of England."</p>
-
-<p><i>Archbishop of Canterbury.</i> "Where were you in the mornings before you
-came hither to this house?"</p>
-
-<p>[<i>Eaton.</i>] "We were in our own families."</p>
-
-<p><i>Canterbury.</i> "What did you?"</p>
-
-<p><i>Eaton.</i> "We read the Scriptures, and catechised our families; and may
-it please this honourable Court to hear us speak the truth, we will
-shew you what was done, and (free us of the contempt of authority) we
-did nothing but what you will allow us to do."</p>
-
-<p><i>London.</i> "Who can free you? These are dangerous men; they are a
-scattered company sown in all the City, and about St. Michael of the
-Querne, St. Austin's, Old Jury, Redriffe, and other remoter places.
-Hold them the book."</p>
-
-<p><i>Eaton.</i> "I dare not swear, nor take this oath, though I will not
-refuse it; I will consider of it."</p>
-
-<p><i>Sir Henry Marten.</i><a name="FNanchor_454_454" id="FNanchor_454_454"></a><a href="#Footnote_454_454" class="fnanchor">[454]</a> "Hear, hear! You shall swear but to answer
-what you know, and as far as you are bound by law. You shall have time
-to consider of it, and have it read over and over till you can say it
-without<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_362" id="Page_362">[362]</a></span> book if you will; when you have first taken your oath that you
-will make a true answer."</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1632, May.</div>
-
-<p><i>Eaton.</i> "I dare not; I know not what I shall swear to."</p>
-
-<p><i>King's Advocate.</i><a name="FNanchor_455_455" id="FNanchor_455_455"></a><a href="#Footnote_455_455" class="fnanchor">[455]</a> "It is to give a true answer to articles put
-into the Court against you, or that shall be put in touching this
-conventicle of yours, and divers your heretical tenets, and what words
-and exercises you used, and things of this nature."</p>
-
-<p><i>Eaton.</i> "I dare not."</p>
-
-<p><i>Archbishop of Canterbury.</i> "What say you, woman?"</p>
-
-<p><i>Sara Jones.</i> "I dare not worship God in vain."</p>
-
-<p><i>Bishop of London.</i> "Will you not swear and take an oath when you are
-called to it by the magistrate?"</p>
-
-<p><i>S. Jones.</i> "Yes! I will answer upon my oath to end a controversy
-before a lawful magistrate."</p>
-
-<p><i>Earl of Dorset.</i> "What dost thou think, woman, of these grave Fathers
-of the Church, that these here be not lawful magistrates?"</p>
-
-<p>[<i>S. Jones.</i>] "I would do anything that is according to God's word."</p>
-
-<p>[<i>Richard Neile</i>] <i>Archbishop of York.</i> "Would you? then you must take
-your oath now you are required by your governors; you must swear in
-truth, in judgment, in righteousness."</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Persecution of Congregationalists.</i></div>
-
-<p><i>S. Jones.</i> "Yes, and they that walk in righteousness shall have peace;
-but I dare not forswear myself."</p>
-
-<p><i>Canterbury.</i> "Come, what say you?"</p>
-
-<p><i>Pennina Howes</i> (a maid). "I dare not swear this oath till I am better
-informed of it, for which I desire time."</p>
-
-<p><i>Sir Henry Marten.</i> "Must you not be ready to give an account of your
-faith?"</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_363" id="Page_363">[363]</a></span></p>
-
-<p><i>P. Howes.</i> "Yes! I will give an answer of my faith if I be demanded,
-but not willingly forswear myself."</p>
-
-<p><i>King's Advocate.</i> "What, will you take your oath, good woman?"</p>
-
-<p><i>Sara Barbone.</i> "I dare not swear; I do not understand it; I will tell
-the truth without swearing."</p>
-
-<p><i>Archbishop of Canterbury.</i> "Take them away."</p>
-
-<p>So they were all committed to the New Prison. And it was appointed that
-at the next Court, being a fortnight after this, because of Ascension
-Day, they should be brought again to the Consistory at St. Paul's,
-because of trouble and danger in bringing so many prisoners as these
-were over the water to Lambeth.</p>
-
-<p>These people were immediately committed to the New Prison; and on the
-8th of the same month (May) they were brought up again before the
-same tribunal, when again they declined to take the obnoxious oath.
-On the 7th of June, it was reported to the Court that some of the
-conventiclers had escaped; and on the 17th more persons were arraigned,
-who had been seized at a meeting held in a wood near Newington, in
-Surrey. These also refused to be sworn, after which the Bishop of
-London and the Archbishop of Canterbury repeated their expostulations.
-The High Commission, on the 21st, had brought before it Ralf Grafton,
-an upholsterer, dwelling in Cornhill, and reported to be a rich man,
-charged with being a principal ringleader of "those conventiclers that
-met at Blackfriars." Upon his declaring, "I dare not take the oath,
-and I am no ringleader of any to evil," the Archbishop said: "You met
-without law; you had no authority; <i>p&#339;na ad paucos</i>, <i>metus ad
-omnes</i>; wherefore, the Court, for his contempt in refusing to take the
-oath, set a fine of two hundred pounds upon him, and committed him to
-prison." Grafton replied: "I have<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_364" id="Page_364">[364]</a></span> bail here ready, if you please to
-take it; I do tender it to you." Upon this the Bishops exclaimed: "No;
-away with him to prison; if he come not in by the day of mitigation,
-let the fine stand!"<a name="FNanchor_456_456" id="FNanchor_456_456"></a><a href="#Footnote_456_456" class="fnanchor">[456]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1630.</div>
-
-<p>In connection with these notices of persecution endured by frequenters
-of conventicles, we may present the following picture of their method
-of worship, as depicted by one of their enemies in that style of minute
-and graphic detail which so characteristically marks the narrative
-of events given by common people in the sixteenth and seventeenth
-centuries:&mdash;"To shew the manner of their assembling, or dissembling,
-in that house where they intend to meet, there is one appointed to
-keep the door, for the intent to give notice if there should be any
-insurrection, warning may be given to them. They do not flock together,
-but come two or three in a company. Any man may be admitted thither,
-and all being gathered together, the man appointed to teach stands in
-the midst of the room, and his audience gather about him. He prayeth
-about the space of half an hour; and part of his prayer is, that those
-which came thither to scoff and laugh, God would be pleased to turn
-their hearts, by which means they think to escape undiscovered. His
-sermon is about the space of an hour,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_365" id="Page_365">[365]</a></span> and then doth another stand
-up, to make the text more plain; and at the latter end he entreats
-them all to go home severally, lest the next meeting they should be
-interrupted by those which are of the opinion of the wicked. They seem
-very steadfast in their opinions, and say, rather than they will turn,
-they will burn."<a name="FNanchor_457_457" id="FNanchor_457_457"></a><a href="#Footnote_457_457" class="fnanchor">[457]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Independents and Brownists.</i></div>
-
-<p>Though certain Independents of the seventeenth century disavowed all
-connection with the Brownists, that name was often applied to them;
-and in some instances it is difficult to decide whether by the title
-we are to understand persons whose origin might be traced to the
-teaching of Cecil's relative, or persons who had been made converts by
-more recent apostles of Independency.<a name="FNanchor_458_458" id="FNanchor_458_458"></a><a href="#Footnote_458_458" class="fnanchor">[458]</a> Allusions are discovered
-in the Corporation Records of Yarmouth for the years 1629 and 1630 to
-Brownists then living in that town. The Earl of Dorset, writing in the
-latter of these years to the bailiffs, aldermen, and commonalty, after
-a reference to the party spirit prevalent in the borough, observes:
-"I should want in my good care of you if I should not let you know
-that his Majesty is not only informed, but incensed against you for
-conniving at and tolerating a company of <i>Brownists</i> amongst you. I
-pray you remember there was no seam in our Saviour's garment. <i>Root out
-that pestiferous sect forth from your town; they are as dangerous to
-the soul as the plague is to the body.</i> But I know not whether in this
-you be traduced, as well as (I am sure) you have been in other things.
-They are arrows shot forth from the same quiver, and drawn by the same
-hands; and perhaps the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_366" id="Page_366">[366]</a></span> mark aimed at through that false perspective
-is but to place in his Majesty an ill opinion of you. If you be
-innocent, let me know, and I shall endeavour to clear you. Howsoever,
-I pray, give testimony of your obedience and good zeal to religion in
-<i>chasing those companions from your society. God cannot prosper you
-while they live amongst you, and you willingly protect and harbour
-them</i>; and I am sure it will alienate his Majesty's respect from you
-and enforce him to take some course against you, when you shall so
-neglect your duties in that kind."<a name="FNanchor_459_459" id="FNanchor_459_459"></a><a href="#Footnote_459_459" class="fnanchor">[459]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1630.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Independents and Brownists.</i></div>
-
-<p>The Corporation gave heed to the Earl's exhortation, and in reply,
-dated the 13th of September, 1630, manifested abundant zeal in rooting
-out schism.</p>
-
-<p>"Concerning those <i>separatists</i> by your lordship mentioned, we must
-acknowledge that there be amongst us still some persons of that sect,
-to the number of thirty, and not above; the most of them women; not
-any one of them ever yet bearing the meanest office amongst us, and,
-one only excepted, not any one of ability to be a subsidy man. What
-courses we have taken from time to time for the suppressing of them,
-the Lord's Grace of York, whilst he was our diocesan, could bear us
-record, to whom (as we have since done to our present diocesan, as
-also to the Lord Bishop of London) we tendered an impartial list of
-all their names, without favour or affection, craving his lordship's
-aid for their reformation. The ecclesiastical courts have from time
-to time received presentments of them. The judges of assize have
-been solicited by us. What authority soever the law has put into our
-hands, we have not spared to execute to the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_367" id="Page_367">[367]</a></span> uttermost, by indicting
-them constantly at our public sessions, by fining them according to
-statute, by imprisoning the ringleaders amongst them, and by <i>forcing
-some of them to avoid, not only the place, but the kingdom</i>. If, beyond
-this, we could be directed by and to any course whereby we might free
-ourselves of them, we should not only willingly, but thankfully embrace
-it. In the meantime, vouchsafe the acceptance of this our humble
-protestation, that, as for ourselves, being the representatives of the
-town, we are, all and every one of us, free from faction and schism,
-either in religion or discipline, and every ways conformable to the
-doctrine and government of this Church, whereof we profess ourselves to
-be members."<a name="FNanchor_460_460" id="FNanchor_460_460"></a><a href="#Footnote_460_460" class="fnanchor">[460]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1630.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Independents and Brownists.</i></div>
-
-<p>In connection with this reference to the Brownists and the poor
-Separatists of Yarmouth, (for amongst them, it is said, there was not
-"one subsidy man,") it may be observed that two classes of Independents
-are distinctly visible at that period. As some Independents, mostly
-the obscure, went further than others in their doctrine of toleration;
-so some Independents, principally of the same class, went further than
-others in the doctrine of voluntaryism. Any broad and philosophical
-exposition of that now much discussed principle we have not been able
-to discover in the writings of that day; others, better acquainted
-with the immense pamphlet literature of the times, may prove more
-successful. But, at an earlier period, in a Confession of Faith
-published in 1616, there occurs the following simple and explicit
-statement on the subject:&mdash;"We believe that tithes for the pastor's
-maintenance under the Gospel are not the just and due means<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_368" id="Page_368">[368]</a></span> thereof.
-Howbeit, yet we do not think these tithes absolutely unlawful, if
-they remain voluntary; but when they are made necessary we think
-them not to be so lawful. The same do we judge also of whatsoever
-other set maintenance for ministers of the Gospel is established
-by temporal laws. We grant, that for the minister's security, such
-established maintenance is best; but for preserving due freedom in the
-congregation, sincerity in religion, and sanctity in the whole flock,
-the congregation's voluntary and conscionable contribution for their
-pastor's sustenance and maintenance is, doubtless, the safest and
-most approved&mdash;nay, it seemeth the only way; wherewith the Apostles
-caused their times to be content, neither did they care for other order
-therein; which certainly they would and should have done if other order
-had been better. Only they are careful (and that very religiously)
-to command all churches of conscience and duty to God to give (not
-sparingly, but liberally, and not as alms, but as duty), for upholding,
-advancing, and countenancing of the holy worship and service of God,
-which is either much strengthened or weakened, much honoured or abased
-among men, according as is the pastor's maintenance."<a name="FNanchor_461_461" id="FNanchor_461_461"></a><a href="#Footnote_461_461" class="fnanchor">[461]</a> And in
-other tracts, largely quoted by Mr. Hanbury, in his "Memorials," there
-are passages expressing ideas on the subject of ministerial support
-in advance of those which were entertained by more distinguished
-Independents. The latter countenanced and advocated the acceptance of
-tithes; but in a Puritan tract, written before, though not published
-until 1644, notice is taken of a very sharp attack on the tithe system
-by the sect commonly<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_369" id="Page_369">[369]</a></span> called Brownists or Separatists. It is objected,
-say the Presbyterian authors, "that we are not maintained according to
-the direction Christ hath given in His Testament; but our maintenance
-is Jewish and anti-Christian." "Our ministers receive maintenance
-from all sorts of men in their parish without difference." This they
-call "an execrable sacrilege, and covetous-making merchandize of
-the holy things of God; a letting out of ourselves to hire, to the
-profane for filthy lucre." Tithes, in particular, are denounced by
-these Nonconformists, but the principle of their objection goes to a
-much deeper point than to touch or remove these particular imposts;
-it also cuts at the root of all kinds of ministerial support, except
-that which is exclusively voluntary.<a name="FNanchor_462_462" id="FNanchor_462_462"></a><a href="#Footnote_462_462" class="fnanchor">[462]</a> In another publication,
-written by Burton against his late fellow-sufferer William Prynne,
-there is a decided assault both on tithes and on parishes; the former
-being pronounced unapostolic, and the latter a human and political
-institution. But, whilst maintaining that Christ will provide for His
-faithful and painful ministers, this champion of voluntary churches
-puts in a caveat in favour of the state appointing some kind of
-"maintenance for the preaching of the word, as is done in New England
-to those who are not members of Churches."<a name="FNanchor_463_463" id="FNanchor_463_463"></a><a href="#Footnote_463_463" class="fnanchor">[463]</a> At a later period,
-Independents objected to tithes, yet they accepted support from the
-Government in another form.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1642.</div>
-
-<p>Upon the opening of the Long Parliament, Congregationalism took deep
-root, and afterwards spread its branches over East Anglia. As the Dutch
-church in the city of Norwich, the Dutch aspect of Yarmouth<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_370" id="Page_370">[370]</a></span> Quay, and
-the settlement of a colony of Flemings in the village of Worstead, shew
-that there was an early intercommunication between the inhabitants of
-the Low Countries and the county of Norfolk; so also the connection
-between the English Independents in Holland and the Nonconformists
-of the eastern counties indicate that there was intercourse between
-the people of the opposite shores at a later period, in relation to
-Puritanism and Independency. Links of union appear in the persons of
-the Congregational pastors, Robinson and Bridge, who each resided one
-part of his life in Norfolk and another in Holland.</p>
-
-<p>The oldest Congregational Church in the county of Norfolk was formed in
-Yarmouth, and consisted of persons who had just returned from Holland,
-where they had been in exile for conscience' sake.</p>
-
-<p>"Inchurching," as it is quaintly termed, created much solicitude, and
-the Yarmouth people wrote to Rotterdam for sanction and advice before
-taking any decided step. In 1642, a formal document of dismissal was
-sent; after which it became an enquiry, whether the Church should
-choose Yarmouth or Norwich as the place of assembly. Unable to settle
-this question, they deferred it for a time, and simply resolved upon
-"inchurching, judging ten or twelve to be a competent number." Soon
-afterwards, an answer came "that Yarmouth was safer for the present,"
-and a Church covenant having been adopted and ratified at Norwich, the
-people unitedly chose Mr. Bridge as their pastor. The Independents of
-Norwich held religious worship by themselves in some private house,
-and joined with the townspeople of Yarmouth only in the celebration
-of the Lord's supper. But at length, becoming tired of their journeys
-in passing<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_371" id="Page_371">[371]</a></span> to and fro, the former constituted themselves a distinct
-community.<a name="FNanchor_464_464" id="FNanchor_464_464"></a><a href="#Footnote_464_464" class="fnanchor">[464]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Presbyterians and Independents.</i></div>
-
-<p>The Presbyterians at Yarmouth betrayed some jealousy of their
-Independent neighbours; for Sir Edward Owner, an alderman and justice
-of the peace, who represented the town in the Long Parliament,
-waited, in company with the Presbyterian Incumbent of the parish of
-St. Nicholas, upon Mr. Bridge, to express displeasure at his having
-gathered a Church in what was called the "Congregational way." After
-this occurrence, the Church resolved "that for a time they would
-forbear to receive any into their fellowship, until they gave notice to
-the town that they could forbear no longer."</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Bridge, when elected to the pastorate of this new community, held
-the office of town preacher in Yarmouth, and was also a member of
-the Assembly of Divines. He had preached before the House of Commons
-in February, 1643; and it was in the May of the same year, whilst at
-home, during a temporary suspension of his Westminster duties, that his
-brethren called him to be their Bishop. Notwithstanding his position at
-Westminster and his Congregational office at Yarmouth, the Corporation
-retained him in his municipal chaplaincy and allowed him fifty
-pounds a year during his absence. The continuance of this connection
-no doubt led to the interference of the bailiffs with his pastoral
-relations, and explains the effect produced by the interview; but
-the Church, notwithstanding this circumstance, speedily asserted its
-independence, and by doing so did not at all affect the public position
-of their pastor, or diminish the influence which he exercised over his
-fellow-townsmen.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_372" id="Page_372">[372]</a></span></p></div>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="illo372" >
- <img
- class="p0"
- src="images/illo372.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XV.</h2>
-
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>The Royalist Army.</i></div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">Charles went to Oxford after the battle of Edge Hill, and there,
-during the civil wars, set up his head quarters. Occasionally he was
-absent with the army, but that central city, which was so convenient
-for the purpose in many respects, he made his fortress and his home.
-It underwent great alterations. Fortifications were contrived by
-Richard Rallingson, who also drew "a mathematical scheme or plot of
-the garrison;" and in an old print, by Anthony Wood, may be traced
-the zig-zag lines of defence, which were drawn on every side about
-the city.<a name="FNanchor_465_465" id="FNanchor_465_465"></a><a href="#Footnote_465_465" class="fnanchor">[465]</a> Gownsmen transformed themselves into cavaliers, and
-exchanged college caps for steel bonnets. Streets echoed with the tramp
-of war horses and the clatter of iron-heeled hoots. Wagons, guarded
-by pikemen, and laden with ammunition and stores, rolled through the
-picturesque gateways; and valiant and loyal subjects rallied around
-their Sovereign in the hour of his need,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_373" id="Page_373">[373]</a></span> ready to shed their last
-drop of blood beneath his standard. The colleges melted down their
-plate to supply military chests; and Magdalen especially stood true to
-the King's cause. Rupert took up his residence there, and the sound of
-his trumpets calling to horse disturbed the silence of the beautiful
-cloisters. Whilst most of the Fellows, being Divines, could only help
-with their prayers and their purses, one of them, who was a doctor of
-civil law, raised a troop of under-graduates, and fell fighting in his
-Majesty's service.<a name="FNanchor_466_466" id="FNanchor_466_466"></a><a href="#Footnote_466_466" class="fnanchor">[466]</a> Amidst the excitement which followed the King's
-turns of fortune, he gathered together the relics of his court, and
-established in Christ Church Hall a mock parliament, which was intended
-to rival the real one at Westminster. Charles had grasped at absolute
-power, now nothing remained but the shadow of dominion. At Oxford he
-but played at kingship.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>The Royalist Army.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643.</div>
-
-<p>In the Royal army, of which, perhaps, the worst portion might be
-found at Oxford, the principal officers were men of high spirit and
-courage, with a strong dash in them of old English chivalry; but, with
-some of the virtues of mediæval knighthood, they possessed a more
-than ordinary share of its vices. In retired parts of the country,
-especially in Cornwall, yeomen and peasants, of pure life and artless
-manners, followed Royalist commanders with a sort of feudal devotion;
-but it must be admitted, with regard to most of the regiments who
-fought for the King, that the men in the ranks were worse than those in
-command&mdash;for, wanting that tone of manners which marks the well-bred
-gentleman, they had nothing to check the ebullitions of coarse impiety
-and brutal ruffianism. We are not concerned to vindicate the soldiers
-on the other side. No doubt they were chargeable with excesses, some
-of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_374" id="Page_374">[374]</a></span> which have been indicated in these pages. Irreligious people mixed
-with Puritans; tapsters and serving men appeared among patriots;
-but, whatever the drawbacks on the reputation of the Parliamentary
-forces, there is but little doubt that the moral character of the men
-on the other side was far worse. Indeed, this is virtually admitted
-by Royalists themselves; for Clarendon paints dark pictures of the
-debauchery of the Lords Goring and Wilmot; and Chillingworth, in a
-sermon preached at Oxford in the autumn of 1643, while charging the
-enemy with Pharisaism, hypocrisy, falsehood, want of justice, and
-pretence of reformation, is also unsparing in his reproofs of Royalist
-profanity, irreligion, and blasphemy.<a name="FNanchor_467_467" id="FNanchor_467_467"></a><a href="#Footnote_467_467" class="fnanchor">[467]</a></p>
-
-<p>Fiery resentment burned in both camps, and was industriously fanned by
-the newspapers of the day. Parliamentary journals had nothing but what
-was good to say of their own party, and nothing but what was bad of
-their adversaries. Led away by idle rumours, editors and correspondents
-made mountains of molehills, and often stated as facts what only
-existed in their own distempered brains; all this the scribblers for
-the Oxford press paid back with interest.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>The Royalist Army.</i></div>
-
-<p>Reports were industriously circulated throughout the country affecting
-the religious character of the King and court, upon the tender point
-of popish sympathies. An Irish minister, who had spent seven weeks at
-the University in the summer of 1643, afterwards declared that Irish
-Papists, who had committed atrocious barbarities in the rebellion,
-were received at court with signal favour; that Franciscans and
-Jesuits encouraged the soldiers to fight against the Roundheads, and
-were themselves enrolled<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_375" id="Page_375">[375]</a></span> as cornets; that Roman Catholic worship
-was performed in every street, and, <i>he believed</i>, that for every
-single sermon in the city there were four masses.<a name="FNanchor_468_468" id="FNanchor_468_468"></a><a href="#Footnote_468_468" class="fnanchor">[468]</a> How much of truth
-there might be in these broad accusations, it is impossible for us to
-determine; but the adage no doubt is applicable here, that where there
-is much smoke there is some fire.<a name="FNanchor_469_469" id="FNanchor_469_469"></a><a href="#Footnote_469_469" class="fnanchor">[469]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643.</div>
-
-<p>Charles met all such charges with recriminations. He felt shocked,
-he said, at the impieties and profanations which were committed in
-sacred places; at the countenance which was given to ignorant and
-scandalous laymen who had usurped the ministry; at the suspension and
-reviling of Common Prayer which had become so prevalent; at religion
-being made the cause and ground of rebellion; and at the destruction
-of discipline in the "most unblemished Church of Christendom."<a name="FNanchor_470_470" id="FNanchor_470_470"></a><a href="#Footnote_470_470" class="fnanchor">[470]</a>
-Nothing could appear right in his estimation which the Parliament did,
-and even their ordinances for national fasts were met with counter
-ordinances for fasts at another season. Prelatists and Puritans would
-not, even for the sins of the nation, fast on the same day; for as at
-Westminster one party commanded that the last Wednesday in the month
-should be devoted to humiliation and prayer, at<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_376" id="Page_376">[376]</a></span> Oxford the other
-party denounced that appointment, and substituted the second Friday.
-The Royalists threatened to sequester the estates of such clergymen
-as would not obey their command; and, amidst all this most unseemly
-strife, we hear Thomas Fuller exclaiming, in his "Meditations on the
-Times," "Alas! when two messengers, being sent together on the same
-errand, fall out and fight by the way, will not the work be worse
-done than if none were employed? In such a pair of fasts, it is to
-be feared that the divisions of our affections rather would increase
-than abate God's anger towards us. Two negatives make an affirmative.
-Days of humiliation are appointed for men to deny themselves and their
-sinful lusts. But do not our two fasts more peremptorily affirm and
-avouch our mutual malice and hatred? God forgive us: we have cause
-enough to keep <i>ten</i>, but not care enough to keep <i>one</i> monthly day of
-humiliation."<a name="FNanchor_471_471" id="FNanchor_471_471"></a><a href="#Footnote_471_471" class="fnanchor">[471]</a></p>
-
-<p>To rebut the charge of popery, the King publicly received the sacrament
-at the hands of Archbishop Ussher, in Christ Church, at the same time
-making a solemn protestation, that he had prepared his soul to be a
-worthy receiver, that he derived comfort from the blessed sacrament,
-and that he supported the true reformed Protestant religion, as it
-stood in its beauty in the days of Elizabeth, without any connivance at
-popery. He imprecated, in conclusion, Divine wrath upon himself, if his
-heart did not join with his lips in this protestation.<a name="FNanchor_472_472" id="FNanchor_472_472"></a><a href="#Footnote_472_472" class="fnanchor">[472]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>The King at Oxford.</i></div>
-
-<p>For his conduct on this occasion he is accused of hypocrisy, because
-a few days afterwards he agreed to a truce with Ireland, and to the
-toleration of Papists in that country. To grant such a truce and such
-a toleration<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_377" id="Page_377">[377]</a></span> would not in the present day be deemed inconsistent with
-the sincerest Protestantism; but the matter was otherwise regarded
-at that time, and most advocates of religious liberty then denied
-the privilege to Roman Catholics, because they knew that Catholics
-would deny the privilege to them. Indeed, they reckoned such persons
-no better than social incendiaries, and incorrigible rebels against
-constitutional government; and, however unreasonable it may seem to
-us, they considered that to allow any scope for popish worship was
-to connive at the practices of popish treason. Charles himself was
-by no means prepared to place the toleration of Roman Catholics on
-its righteous grounds. He was willing, when it served his purpose, to
-declare himself of one mind with those who condemned all religious
-freedom; and he must have wished the declaration made by him, upon
-receiving the Lord's supper from the hands of Ussher, to be understood
-as meaning that he would not tolerate popery at all. Therefore,
-to proclaim toleration to Irish Catholics immediately after this
-declaration could not but lay him open to the charge of hypocrisy on
-the part of his contemporaries. But at the same time we have no doubt
-that his expression of attachment to the Protestant religion as it
-stood in the days of Elizabeth, understanding by that expression a
-religion both anti-papal and anti-puritanical, was perfectly sincere.
-Prelacy was an essential principle in the reformed religion of Charles;
-and with prelacy were associated in his mind forms of worship which
-many of his subjects pronounced to be "flat popery." His notions of
-reformation, perhaps, mainly hinged on a separation from Rome, with the
-abolition of monachism and the removal of certain gross abuses which
-had been prevalent in the mediæval church. He inherited, in fact, the
-Protestantism of the Tudors: but at the same time<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_378" id="Page_378">[378]</a></span> he had none of the
-magnanimity of Elizabeth, none of that religious patriotism which made
-her the idol of her subjects, none of that indignation against popish
-wrongs and cruelties, which she so strongly felt and expressed&mdash;as,
-for example, when she dressed herself in deep mourning to receive the
-gay French ambassador after the St. Bartholomew massacre:&mdash;in short,
-Charles had none of that spirit which made Elizabeth appear, without
-any tinge of hypocrisy, so much more of a Protestant than she really
-was. And we may add, that he had a trick of saying and doing things
-with a smooth artificial gravity which awakened suspicion, so that even
-when really honest he found it difficult to obtain credit for sincerity.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643.</div>
-
-<p>It is remarkable that we do not find any High Church Bishops with
-the King at Oxford. Even Skinner, Bishop of the diocese, had retired
-from the city to the rectory of Taunton. The absence of others may be
-attributed to personal restraint, or the dangers of travelling in a
-time of civil war, or a sense of duty towards their scattered flocks,
-or a disinclination to throw themselves into a military camp. But some
-other prelates and clergymen of a different character come under our
-notice, as present at Oxford at this critical period.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Bishops at Oxford.</i></div>
-
-<p>Bryan Duppa, Bishop of Salisbury&mdash;whose fine face and silvery locks,
-set off to advantage by the robes of the Garter, may be seen in his
-portrait on the walls of Christ Church&mdash;upon being stripped of his
-episcopal revenues waited on his Majesty, and was entrusted by him with
-business of the greatest importance. Archbishop Ussher preached before
-the court, carried on his literary labours in the University, and, as
-an opponent of the toleration of Papists, took part in a discussion
-held in the royal presence upon that subject. Soon afterwards<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_379" id="Page_379">[379]</a></span> he
-further offended the Roman Catholics by a discourse from the words of
-Nehemiah, iv. 11:&mdash;"And our adversaries said, they shall not know,
-neither see, till we come in the midst among them, and slay them,
-and cause the work to cease." In this discourse he contended, that
-no dependence could be placed on Romanists, and that on the first
-opportunity they would act towards the Protestants of England as
-they had recently done towards the Protestants of Ireland. He also
-preached sermons to his Royalist auditory in a tone of remarkable
-fidelity and earnestness, dwelling upon the folly of expecting that
-God would prosper the cause of those who provoked Him to anger by the
-dissoluteness of their lives.<a name="FNanchor_473_473" id="FNanchor_473_473"></a><a href="#Footnote_473_473" class="fnanchor">[473]</a></p>
-
-<p>Perhaps Jeremy Taylor also might be found at Oxford, after having lost
-the rectory of Uppingham, in Rutlandshire. Wood says that he preached
-before the King, and followed the Royal army in the capacity of a
-chaplain; and probably it was during this part of his life that he
-reaped some of those military allusions which we find in his sermons.
-As, for example, when he compares the man who prays in a discomposed
-spirit, to him that sets up his closet in the outquarters of an army,
-and chooses a frontier garrison to be wise in: and when he speaks of
-the poor soldier, standing in the breach, "almost starved with cold and
-hunger," "pale and faint, weary and watchful," and of the same person
-in his tent by dim lantern light, having a "bullet pulled out of his
-flesh, and shivers from his bones, and enduring his mouth to be sewed
-up, from a violent rent, to its own dimensions."<a name="FNanchor_474_474" id="FNanchor_474_474"></a><a href="#Footnote_474_474" class="fnanchor">[474]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643.</div>
-
-<p>Dr. Thomas Fuller, we may add, after being deprived<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_380" id="Page_380">[380]</a></span> of his preferment
-at the Savoy, and leaving behind him his library, found refuge in
-Lincoln College, and preached before the King; the losses which this
-cheerful Divine suffered at the time leading him to observe, with
-his accustomed humour, "that his going to Oxford cost him all that
-he had, a dear seventeen weeks compared with the seventeen years he
-spent in Cambridge." Whilst Fuller tarried in the former University,
-there arrived Lord Hopton, an eminent Royalist officer of moderate
-opinions and of a pacific disposition. The ejected minister of the
-Savoy became a chaplain to the regiment of this brave soldier and
-sincerely religious man, and he hoped by filling this office to wipe
-off the stain of disaffection with which his enemies had endeavoured
-to spot his fame. He accompanied Hopton to the west, where he accepted
-a nominal chaplaincy to the infant Princess Henrietta, who was born at
-Bedford House, in the city of Exeter, on the 16th June, 1644.<a name="FNanchor_475_475" id="FNanchor_475_475"></a><a href="#Footnote_475_475" class="fnanchor">[475]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Clergy at Oxford.</i></div>
-
-<p>Another eminent churchman was now at Oxford. William Chillingworth,
-after the raising of the siege of Gloucester, left the construction
-of his Roman <i>testudines</i>, and more befittingly employed himself in
-preaching before the University, and in writing polemical tracts,
-especially one, entitled "The Apostolical Institution of Episcopacy."
-This publication, which was not answered for years afterwards, is
-very characteristic of its author, and takes a ground of defence for
-the Church of England not at all agreeable to high Prelatists; for he
-reduces Episcopal government to the smallest dimensions, specifying its
-essence to be no more than the appointment of one person of eminent
-sanctity, to take care of all the churches<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_381" id="Page_381">[381]</a></span> in a diocese&mdash;his authority
-being bounded by law and moderated by assistants. Even this scantling
-of rule he seems to defend rather than enforce&mdash;stating as the ground
-of adopting it, that there is <i>no record of our Saviour against it</i>,
-that it is <i>not repugnant</i> to the apostolic government, and that it is
-<i>as compliable</i> with the reformation of the Church, as any other kind
-of polity.<a name="FNanchor_476_476" id="FNanchor_476_476"></a><a href="#Footnote_476_476" class="fnanchor">[476]</a> Chillingworth did not long survive his employment at
-Oxford; and the short remaining history of his life is so curious, so
-illustrative of the religious aspects of the war, and of the oddities
-of people engaged in it, that we venture to transfer it to these pages.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643.</div>
-
-<p>He was taken prisoner in Arundel Castle; whither, in the month of
-January, 1644, he had repaired, to recover from an indisposition
-brought on by the inclemency of the winter. As he was not fit to travel
-to London with the captured garrison, the victorious Parliamentarians
-removed the distinguished Episcopalian to Chichester, a favour for
-which he was indebted to Mr. Cheynell, whose story is curiously
-entwined with his own. Cheynell, a rigid, zealous Presbyterian,
-"exactly orthodox, and very unwilling that any should be supposed
-to go to heaven but in the right way," had been ejected from his
-living in Sussex by the Royalists, and happened to be at Chichester
-when Chillingworth reached it as a prisoner. With sympathy for his
-old antagonist, Cheynell procured for him lodgings in the bishop's
-palace. Chillingworth, who had never been violent enough to please
-the Royalists, was infamously denounced by one of them; but Cheynell
-defended his reputation, guarded his health, and, as he informs us,
-took care of "something more precious than<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_382" id="Page_382">[382]</a></span> either, to wit, his beloved
-soul." Yet he wearied him with interrogations and arguments about King
-and Parliament, Prelate and Puritan. "I desired," he says, "to know
-his opinion concerning that liturgy, which had been formerly so much
-extolled, and even idolized amongst the people; but all the answer that
-I could get was to this purpose, that there were some truths which
-the ministers of the gospel are not bound, upon pain of damnation,
-to publish to the people; and, indeed, he conceived it very unfit to
-publish anything concerning the Common Prayer Book or the Book of
-Ordination for fear of scandal." "When I found him pretty hearty one
-day, I desired him to tell me whether he conceived that a man living
-and dying a Turk, Papist, or Socinian; could be saved." No doubt the
-question was so pointed, on account of the dying man's reputation for
-latitudinarianism, or as he believed it to be, charity, and in this
-respect Chillingworth was consistent to the last. "All the answer that
-I could gain from him," says Cheynell, "was that he did not absolve
-them, and would not condemn them." It is pleasant amidst all this
-gossip, and much more of the same description, to find Cheynell telling
-his old friend and controversialist that he prayed for him in private,
-and asking him whether he desired public intercession as well. He
-replied, "Yes, with all his heart, and he said withal, that he hoped he
-should fare better for their prayers."<a name="FNanchor_477_477" id="FNanchor_477_477"></a><a href="#Footnote_477_477" class="fnanchor">[477]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Clergy at Oxford.</i></div>
-
-<p>After Chillingworth's death, Cheynell had the corpse laid out in a
-coffin covered with a hearse-cloth. The friends of the deceased were
-entertained, according to their own desire, with wine and cakes. Those
-who bore his remains to the grave were Episcopalians; and&mdash;as a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_383" id="Page_383">[383]</a></span>
-further touch of description to illustrate those times&mdash;it may be added
-that, according to the custom of the country, they had each a bunch of
-rosemary, a mourning ribband, and a pair of gloves. Different opinions
-were expressed as to where the churchman ought to be interred. It was
-at last decided in favour of Chichester, liberty being granted to "all
-the malignants" to attend the hearse. When they came to the grave,
-Cheynell, as he held in his hand what he called the "<i>mortal</i> book" of
-the great Protestant advocate&mdash;the very book which has received the
-praises of all generations since as <i>immortal</i>&mdash;proceeded with strange
-infatuation to denounce it in terms of the most violent abuse, after
-which he flung the volume into the open grave.<a name="FNanchor_478_478" id="FNanchor_478_478"></a><a href="#Footnote_478_478" class="fnanchor">[478]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643.</div>
-
-<p>Charles, whilst remaining at Oxford, had amongst the Episcopal
-clergy other staunch friends residing elsewhere. Of this number was
-John Barwick, a Fellow of St. John's, Cambridge,<a name="FNanchor_479_479" id="FNanchor_479_479"></a><a href="#Footnote_479_479" class="fnanchor">[479]</a> who acted as
-chaplain to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_384" id="Page_384">[384]</a></span> Bishop Morton during the civil wars, and who continued
-with him as long as he remained in Durham House. This he did, his
-biographer tells us, for the express purpose of being serviceable to
-the King; concealing himself there "as in a great wood," carrying on
-a private correspondence betwixt London and Oxford, conveying, on the
-one hand, to the loyalists his Majesty's orders and commands, and,
-on the other hand, to his royal master, what he could pick up of the
-"designs and endeavours of the rebels." Resolving to tell no lies, but
-rather "with silence to answer all captious and ensnaring questions,"
-he yet clandestinely wrote and received letters in cypher, the key
-to which he carefully kept. The letters were slid in by stealth,
-amidst pedlar's wares, and carried to and fro, "as it were through
-a lattice, and enveloped in mist." He employed adventurous women to
-disperse everywhere, among friends and foes, books favourable to the
-Royal cause; such emissaries trudging on foot, receiving the books
-from bargemen on the Thames, and distributing them wherever they had
-opportunity. Letters were sometimes sewed in the covers of volumes,
-and secret marks were given to notify their insertion. When the Royal
-cause became desperate, and the King was shut up "as in a net within
-the walls of Oxford," he continued to write to Barwick to do what he
-could, especially by securing, through favour of the Parliamentary
-authorities, those individuals for his personal attendants, upon
-whose faithfulness his Majesty could depend. These notices, extracted
-from "Barwick's Life"&mdash;not, on the whole, a very trustworthy book,
-though accurate enough, no doubt, in reference to his contrivances and
-intrigues in favour of the King&mdash;throw an interesting light upon a
-great deal which was clandestinely going on at the time in the royal
-service.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_385" id="Page_385">[385]</a></span></p></div>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="illo385" >
- <img
- class="p0"
- src="images/illo385.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XVI.</h2>
-
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643.</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">The Long Parliament, almost from the beginning, took ecclesiastical
-affairs entirely into its own hands. It assumed control over church
-property, not, indeed, touching the rights of Puritan patrons, but
-interfering to a large extent with those advowsons and presentations
-which belonged to High Churchmen.</p>
-
-<p>As time rolled on, and especially when the war began, not only rights
-of this description which had belonged to Royalists were forfeited
-entirely; but we may state in passing, that a wholesale sequestration
-of property followed, it being then enacted that the estates real
-and personal of Bishops, Deans and Chapters, and other persons, who
-had either taken up arms against the Parliament, or <i>contributed aid
-or assistance</i> to such as did, should be seized, and employed for
-the benefit of the Commonwealth.<a name="FNanchor_480_480" id="FNanchor_480_480"></a><a href="#Footnote_480_480" class="fnanchor">[480]</a> Such nets swept within their
-meshes an abundance of spoil. Ecclesiastical corporations and Royalist
-nobles, squires, and clergymen, suffered the deprivation not only
-of their ancient privileges, but of their property and possessions.
-One forfeiture in particular may be mentioned, illustrative of the
-control which Parliament assumed over the benefices of the Church. An
-ordinance appeared com<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_386" id="Page_386">[386]</a></span>manding the Archbishop of Canterbury to collate
-to benefices such persons, and such persons only, as were nominated
-by Parliament.<a name="FNanchor_481_481" id="FNanchor_481_481"></a><a href="#Footnote_481_481" class="fnanchor">[481]</a> For disobedience to this ordinance he was the
-following month wholly suspended from the duties and privileges of
-his office. The temporalities of the archbishopric were claimed by
-the High Court of Parliament, which ordered that Edward Corbet, a
-Puritan clergyman, whom Laud had refused to collate, should be by the
-Vicar General inducted to the living of Chartham, in Kent, a benefice
-in the Archbishop's gift. The revenues of Deans and Chapters were
-collected and administered by committees, who paid such sums to such
-persons for such purposes as Parliament might appoint. The system of
-pew-rents adopted in some places, like everything else in the Church of
-England, now came under Parliamentary control. Numerous benefices had
-been vacated through the death or the ejection of incumbents. How were
-the vacancies to be filled up? In some instances returned refugees,
-who had suffered in the days of Laud, were instituted to the vacant
-benefices.<a name="FNanchor_482_482" id="FNanchor_482_482"></a><a href="#Footnote_482_482" class="fnanchor">[482]</a> Scotch Divines, and ministers of other Protestant
-Churches, were also declared eligible for appointment. At the same
-time Episcopal ordinations were not nullified, and the validity of all
-Presbyterian ordinations, as a matter of course, was acknowledged by a
-Presbyterian Parliament.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Committees for Ecclesiastical Affairs.</i></div>
-
-<p>The Committees for <i>scandalous</i> ministers had early in 1643 been
-followed by a Committee for <i>plundered</i> ministers,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_387" id="Page_387">[387]</a></span> that title being
-used to designate clergymen who had been ejected from their livings
-by the Royal army. The Committee for plundered ministers provided
-them with relief; and the instruction given to this body directed
-their attention to malignant clergymen, holding benefices in and about
-town, whose benefices after being sequestered might be appropriated
-to ministers of a different character. As the plundered were thus put
-in the place of the scandalous, the Committee for the plundered took
-cognizance of what had previously been submitted to the Committee
-for the scandalous. In July they received power to consider cases
-of scandal apart from charges of malignity, and to dismiss those
-whose characters would not bear examination. On the 6th of September
-the Commons ordered the Deputy-Lieutenants and the Committees
-of Parliament, or any five or more of their number, to take the
-examinations of witnesses against any ministers who were scandalous in
-life or doctrine, and also against any who had of late deserted their
-cures or assisted the forces raised against Parliament.<a name="FNanchor_483_483" id="FNanchor_483_483"></a><a href="#Footnote_483_483" class="fnanchor">[483]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643.</div>
-
-<p>This order, upon being examined, shews that subordinate authorities
-were appointed to co-operate with the superior one&mdash;that they were
-commissioned to discharge magisterial functions in the provinces by
-collecting evidence, which they were required to transmit to the
-Committee sitting in London. It is also obvious that this parent
-Committee itself stood in the same relation to Parliament as other
-Committees, and that its business was to communicate information
-to the House, not to exercise any independent control. A very
-notable puritan phenomenon is this often-vilified body, with its<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_388" id="Page_388">[388]</a></span>
-manifold provincial ramifications. Persons may fairly object to
-Parliament men being invested with such ecclesiastical powers, and
-they may also consistently complain of the innovations made by such
-an arrangement upon the ancient ecclesiastical system of England;
-but nobody can charge this Committee with setting to work in an
-unbusiness-like manner, or with acting in an arbitrary and impulsive
-way. No sinecurists&mdash;anything but idle&mdash;toiling day by day, and that
-for several hours together, they did their work from beginning to
-end by line and rule. No committee ever proceeded with more order
-and with greater regularity. They had definite principles of action,
-and they carefully followed them. The minutes which they kept, with
-the signatures of the chairmen, are still extant,<a name="FNanchor_484_484" id="FNanchor_484_484"></a><a href="#Footnote_484_484" class="fnanchor">[484]</a> and speak for
-themselves.</p>
-
-<p>Therein we see how one day they resolved to report to the House the
-conclusions at which they had arrived, and the course which they
-recommended to be pursued; and how, another day, they finally declared
-what should be done "by virtue of an order of both Houses."</p>
-
-<p>Dipping into these records, we find the Committee resolving upon the
-augmentation of poor livings. For example, £8 payable to Ussher, Bishop
-of Carlisle, out of the impropriate tithes of Allhallows, Cumberland,
-and the further annual sum of £20, out of the impropriate tithes
-forfeited by a delinquent, are granted, March 3rd, 1646, for the
-purpose of increasing the stipend of such minister as the Committee
-should approve to officiate in the church of Allhallows. A grant of
-£40, out of a Papist's impropriation, is made on the 15th of July,
-1646, for the maintenance of a minister to a chapelry in Lancashire,
-subject to the ap<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_389" id="Page_389">[389]</a></span>probation of the Divines appointed by ordinance of
-Parliament for examination of ministers in that county. The incomes
-of several vicarages are noticed as augmented by grants out of
-forfeited revenues. Grants also appear for weekly lectures by assistant
-ministers; for instance, at Tamworth, "by reason of the largeness
-of parish, and the concourse thereto from other places." A petition
-to the Committee for sequestration which met at Goldsmiths' Hall is
-reported as coming from the parish of Benton, and from two contiguous
-chapelries, complaining that there was but one minister for all those
-places, and that he was a reader and an alehouse keeper; and also
-stating that, by reason of the corruption of Episcopacy, only £10 a
-year out of the glebe lands and tithes had been paid to a curate, who,
-on account of his poverty, was constrained to keep an alehouse.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Tithes.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1644.</div>
-
-<p>Tithes, of course, were payable when harvest came. Each rector
-would, as of old, have the right of sending an agent among the corn
-shocks, that he might affix to every tenth some twig or other sign of
-ecclesiastical appropriation. But the revolution at the commencement
-of the civil wars had thrown into jeopardy such ecclesiastical claims.
-Not only could the farmer then, as always, expose the rector to damage
-and loss, but he could also successfully resist the setting out and
-appropriation altogether. Greater hazard still, perhaps, attached to
-the demand "of rates for tithes;" and altogether it is plain that the
-distress of the clergy must in some cases have been very great.<a name="FNanchor_485_485" id="FNanchor_485_485"></a><a href="#Footnote_485_485" class="fnanchor">[485]</a>
-Consequently, on<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_390" id="Page_390">[390]</a></span> the 8th of November, 1644, Parliament issued an
-ordinance stating, that there remained not any such compulsory means
-for recovery of tithes by ecclesiastical proceedings as before had
-been the case; and the remedy now provided was to make complaint to
-two justices of the peace, who were authorized to summon the person
-complained of, and after examination on oath, to adjudge the case with
-costs; a method which, at least for its simplicity and summariness,
-presented a striking contrast to all previous modes of procedure in
-ecclesiastical or civil courts. In case of non-payment, distraint
-might be made by order of the justices, and if there remained nothing
-available for that purpose, the defaulter could be committed to
-prison.<a name="FNanchor_486_486" id="FNanchor_486_486"></a><a href="#Footnote_486_486" class="fnanchor">[486]</a> The city of London was exempted from the operation of the
-ordinance, an exemption afterwards repealed. We may add that vicars
-probably would be exposed to special inconvenience in collecting their
-small tithes, whilst their incomes, even when fully paid, would in many
-cases be very inconsiderable. Hence, on turning over the Parliament
-Journals, we find orders given for the Ecclesiastical Commissioners to
-consider how poor vicarages and cures could be raised to a competent
-maintenance out of Cathedral revenues and impropriate parsonages.</p>
-
-<p>We may further observe that in the Norwich Corporation Records there
-are numerous entries illustrating the ways in which local Committees
-co-operated with the Committee at Westminster, for uniting parishes,
-enquiring into cathedral revenues, and supporting city clergymen.</p>
-
-<p>The House however was not content to leave all the details of
-ecclesiastical business even to their own far<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_391" id="Page_391">[391]</a></span>reaching and laborious
-Commissioners, but Argus-eyed, and Briareus-handed, looked into and
-managed almost everything itself.<a name="FNanchor_487_487" id="FNanchor_487_487"></a><a href="#Footnote_487_487" class="fnanchor">[487]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Church and Parliament.</i></div>
-
-<p>Although Parliament claimed the absolute right to control benefices,
-there were some things needful for the induction of clergymen
-which could not be comprehended within the range of Parliamentary
-functions. Ministers already accredited, having received Episcopal
-or Presbyterian orders, found no difficulty in the way of collation;
-but what method was to be pursued relative to ministerial candidates
-still unordained? To meet this difficulty the Westminster Assembly
-recommended the temporary appointment of committees for the ordination
-of ministers&mdash;only their temporary appointment&mdash;for whenever
-Presbyterianism should be fully established, then the Church would of
-course do all things after a Presbyterian fashion. Yet not without
-difficulty did the Divines reach a conclusion on this subject, as the
-Independents and Presbyterians differed to some extent respecting the
-nature of ordination.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1644.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Church and Parliament.</i></div>
-
-<p>The entire control of Church temporalities centred in Parliament.<a name="FNanchor_488_488" id="FNanchor_488_488"></a><a href="#Footnote_488_488" class="fnanchor">[488]</a>
-The arrangement had great inconvenience.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_392" id="Page_392">[392]</a></span> How such a scheme (had
-it continued) would have worked in the long run, may be conjectured
-from the contests inevitably arising, whenever the civil and sacred
-authorities have come into such close connexion. The quarrels of
-Hildebrand and Henry IV. are but conspicuous, perhaps extreme
-illustrations, of what naturally results from an intimate alliance
-of two such powers as Church and State when guided by different
-impulses. Only so long as sympathy prevailed between the two bodies at
-Westminster could coincident authority continue. The moment that any
-change of feeling arose between them, their co-operation would be at an
-end. The temporary rules which were adopted with regard to ordination
-were the same as those established with a view to permanence the year
-following.<a name="FNanchor_489_489" id="FNanchor_489_489"></a><a href="#Footnote_489_489" class="fnanchor">[489]</a> They required candidates to take the covenant, to
-undergo an examination in religion and learning, and to prove a call
-to the ministry. If the candidate happened to be deficient in Hebrew,
-Greek, and Latin, he had severer tests applied to his knowledge of
-logic and philosophy. But the machine did not always work smoothly.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_393" id="Page_393">[393]</a></span>
-For example, the Committee for plundered ministers sequestered a Mr.
-Leader, vicar of the parish of Thaxted, in Essex, and settled in
-his room a Mr. Hall. The patroness, Lady Maynard, would not present
-Mr. Hall, and preferred to appoint a Mr. Croxon, a man represented
-as notorious for drunkenness and profanity. Articles accordingly
-were exhibited against the latter, in consequence of which Croxon
-was sequestered. Lady Maynard being allowed again to nominate, the
-well-affected parishioners protested against the concession of that
-privilege. The Commissioners, however, stood by her ladyship's rights
-as patroness, and she now recommended another person of the same name
-as before. But on his being submitted to the Assembly, they would not
-sanction his appointment. Three times they declined, and the Lords
-approved of the refusal, yet after all, in some clandestine way, the
-candidate obtained an order for induction. This person, whom the
-Divines pronounced the most troublesome they ever had to do with, came
-to Thaxted Church, and insisted upon preaching. The sequestrators stood
-at the door of the desk to prevent his doing so; but the mayor and
-churchwarden espoused his cause, as did also the rabble of the parish.
-The latter assaulted the sequestrators, tore their hair, rent their
-neck-bands, and seized their hats and cloaks. "Let them alone," said
-the mayor, "and let the women decide the case." This fray in the parish
-church ended in the commitment of parson, mayor, and town-clerk to
-prison, "whence they were released on submission." This case gives us a
-curious insight into the local church politics of those days.<a name="FNanchor_490_490" id="FNanchor_490_490"></a><a href="#Footnote_490_490" class="fnanchor">[490]</a></p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_394" id="Page_394">[394]</a></span></p></div>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="illo394" >
- <img
- class="p0"
- src="images/illo394.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XVII.</h2>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">Laud, the principal author of the evils which induced the revolution,
-remained a prisoner. He had become a helpless old man; and it would
-have been better for the Puritans had they checked their resentment,
-and suffered their vanquished enemy to linger out his days as a captive
-or an exile; but unfortunately they determined otherwise. The Scotch
-Commissioners had presented Articles against him in the House of Lords
-on December the 17th, 1640; and on the following day the Commons
-had resolved to accuse him of high treason.<a name="FNanchor_491_491" id="FNanchor_491_491"></a><a href="#Footnote_491_491" class="fnanchor">[491]</a> In the following
-February, articles of accusation had been exhibited by the Commons,
-after which his case had been kept in abeyance for more than two years
-and a half. Though the idea of bringing him to trial had never been
-abandoned, mild views of his punishment had been entertained; for, in
-a newspaper published in May, 1643, it is stated that "the sending of
-the Arch<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_395" id="Page_395">[395]</a></span>bishop of Canterbury and of Bishop Wren to New England had
-been agitated in the House, and that Parliament would not banish them
-without a trial."<a name="FNanchor_492_492" id="FNanchor_492_492"></a><a href="#Footnote_492_492" class="fnanchor">[492]</a> In the opening of the year 1644, it was resolved
-that Laud should take his trial.</p>
-
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Laud's Trial.</i></div>
-
-<p>The trial lasted from March to July. The accused prelate received
-three or four days' notice of the time of his appearance, and of the
-particular articles which were to be alleged against him. From ten
-until one o'clock the managers of the prosecution stated their case and
-produced their evidence, when an adjournment followed till four o'clock
-in the afternoon. Then the prisoner made his defence, and one of the
-managers replied. The proceedings terminated between the hours of seven
-and eight, when the fatal boat moored at Westminster,&mdash;which had so
-often glided backwards and forwards on errands of vengeance,&mdash;returned
-with its grey-haired passenger to the archway of the Traitors'
-Gate.<a name="FNanchor_493_493" id="FNanchor_493_493"></a><a href="#Footnote_493_493" class="fnanchor">[493]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1644.</div>
-
-<p>The principal managers for the Commons were Serjeant Wylde, Mr.
-Maynard, and Mr. Nicolas. Prynne acted as solicitor, and arranged the
-whole proceedings. He had suffered so much at the Archbishop's hands,
-that, however watchful he might be over himself, he could scarcely
-suppress feelings which were incompatible with a just discharge of his
-legal responsibilities. With all his<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_396" id="Page_396">[396]</a></span> learning and great ability, we
-must admit that he was not remarkable for self-control; and the utmost
-stretch of candour cannot prevent our receiving, from his conduct on
-this occasion, the unpleasant impression that, in preparing materials
-for the conviction of his old enemy, he was swayed, to some extent at
-least, by personal resentment.<a name="FNanchor_494_494" id="FNanchor_494_494"></a><a href="#Footnote_494_494" class="fnanchor">[494]</a></p>
-
-<p>The accusations brought against Laud may be reduced to three: first,
-that he had aimed at subverting the rights of Parliament; secondly,
-that he had attempted to subvert the laws of the land by his conduct
-in reference to ship-money, by his illegal commitments, and by his
-support of the Canons of 1640; thirdly, that he had endeavoured to
-alter and subvert God's true religion established in this realm, to set
-up instead of it Popish superstition and idolatry, and to reconcile
-the Church of England to the Church of Rome. In support of this grave
-indictment relating to religion, much stress was laid on such facts
-as these: his introducing innovations, using images and crucifixes,
-consecrating churches and altars by superstitious rites and ceremonies,
-commanding the Book of Sports to be read, upholding doctrinal errors,
-persecuting<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_397" id="Page_397">[397]</a></span> Puritans, corresponding with Roman Catholic priests, and
-discouraging foreign Protestants.<a name="FNanchor_495_495" id="FNanchor_495_495"></a><a href="#Footnote_495_495" class="fnanchor">[495]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Laud's Trial.</i></div>
-
-<p>Laud, in his defence, when speaking of his ecclesiastical career, did
-not profess that he had sought, as the highest objects of his life,
-the gathering of souls into Christ's fold, and the promotion of truth
-and charity; but he plainly said that his main endeavour had been to
-secure an outward conformity. Nor did he, as most men would have done
-under the same circumstances, qualify his avowal of ritualistic zeal by
-expressing large and noble Christian sentiments. On the contrary, he
-simply declared: "Ever since I came in place I laboured nothing more
-than that the external worship of God (too much slighted in most parts
-of this kingdom) might be preserved, and that with as much decency and
-uniformity as might be; being still of opinion that unity cannot long
-continue in the Church, where uniformity is shut out at the Church
-door; and I evidently saw that the public neglect of God's service in
-the outward face of it, and the nasty lying of many places dedicated to
-that service, had almost cast a damp upon the true and inward worship
-of God, which, while we live in the body, needs external helps, and all
-little enough to keep it in any vigour."<a name="FNanchor_496_496" id="FNanchor_496_496"></a><a href="#Footnote_496_496" class="fnanchor">[496]</a> Yet we must confess that
-for Laud to adopt this strain was honest; and certainly, amongst his
-many faults, hypocrisy is not to be reckoned. Indeed, he made it his
-boast, and he had ground for so doing, that he did not shift from one
-opinion to another for worldly ends; and that he had never attempted to
-slide through the difficulties of the times by trimming his religious
-opinions.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_398" id="Page_398">[398]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1644.</div>
-
-<p>In dealing with the evidence against him, the Archbishop maintained
-that personal resentment influenced the witnesses in the statements
-which they made; and in that opinion probably he was to a considerable
-extent correct. Certain of their allegations had, no doubt, a spiteful
-appearance; but then it is impossible to forget how this merciless
-man had provoked such conduct towards himself by his own inexcusable
-demeanour towards others; and that by a law of Providence, righteous
-in itself, though executed by instruments not free from blame, such
-delinquents as Laud, after having sown the wind, are sure, sooner
-or later, to reap the whirlwind. Prynne, of course, tried to make
-everything tell against his enemy; yet even he could not help allowing
-that the prisoner at the bar "made as full, as gallant, and pithy a
-defence, and spake as much for himself as was possible for the wit
-of man to invent." This special pleader proceeds however to say, the
-very moment after making this admission, that Laud spoke "with so much
-art, sophistry, vivacity, oratory, audacity, and confidence, without
-the least blush, or acknowledgment of guilt in anything, as argued
-him rather obstinate than innocent, impudent than penitent, and a far
-better orator and sophister than Protestant or Christian."<a name="FNanchor_497_497" id="FNanchor_497_497"></a><a href="#Footnote_497_497" class="fnanchor">[497]</a> Prynne
-attributed the Primate's boldness to the King's pardon which he carried
-in his pocket.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Laud's Trial.</i></div>
-
-<p>When the whole evidence had been presented, a question arose whether
-the facts which had been adduced legally proved him to be guilty of the
-crime of treason. The Peers were not satisfied that such was the case;
-and in the present day, there are few, if any, constitutional lawyers
-who would admit that the proofs alleged brought<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_399" id="Page_399">[399]</a></span> the Archbishop within
-the scope of the Statute of Treasons. Owing to legal difficulties, the
-prosecution, in its original form, was dropped, and a Bill of Attainder
-was brought in. The Bill, after having been read a third time in the
-House of Commons, was sent up to the House of Lords. They admitted, as
-they had done before, that the accused was guilty of endeavouring to
-subvert the law, to destroy the rights of Parliament, and to overthrow
-the Protestant religion; but still, they asked, can all this prove him
-to be traitor to the King?<a name="FNanchor_498_498" id="FNanchor_498_498"></a><a href="#Footnote_498_498" class="fnanchor">[498]</a> The old points were debated over and
-over again. But what did that avail? Popular feeling against him had
-become intense; the London citizens were now more earnest than ever
-in petitioning for speedy justice against all delinquents; and some
-individuals went so far as to shut up their shops, declaring they would
-not open them until righteous vengeance fell upon the head of this
-arch-enemy of the people of God.<a name="FNanchor_499_499" id="FNanchor_499_499"></a><a href="#Footnote_499_499" class="fnanchor">[499]</a> Influenced by such clamour, if
-not convinced by the arguments of the Commons, the Lords present in
-the House on the 4th of January, 1645, passed the fatal Bill;<a name="FNanchor_500_500" id="FNanchor_500_500"></a><a href="#Footnote_500_500" class="fnanchor">[500]</a> and
-afterwards it was in vain that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_400" id="Page_400">[400]</a></span> the condemned produced a pardon, under
-the great seal, in arrest of execution.</p>
-
-
-
-<div class="sidenote">1645, January.</div>
-
-<p>The fatal proceedings against Laud are easily accounted for. The
-causes are found in the growing power of the anti-Episcopal party;
-the ascendancy of the Presbyterians, who for a long time had felt the
-deepest horror at Laud's career; the influence of the Scotch, who had a
-special hatred to the Primate for his designs on their country; and the
-activity of Prynne, who certainly had sufficient cause for detesting
-the mutilator of his ears. But the sentence of death executed upon him
-cannot be justified. Lord Campbell pronounces it "illegal, barbarous,
-and unprovoked," "as little to be palliated as defended." Hallam speaks
-of the whole business as "most unjustifiable," and "one of the greatest
-reproaches of the Long Parliament." Even Godwin admits that the
-prelate "fell a victim to the Scots, to the Presbyterians, and to the
-resentment of an individual who had formerly been the subject of his
-barbarity."<a name="FNanchor_501_501" id="FNanchor_501_501"></a><a href="#Footnote_501_501" class="fnanchor">[501]</a> We may add that the same legal objections apply to the
-Bill of Attainder against him which are urged in the case of Strafford;
-and further, that in one respect the treatment of the prelate was worse
-than the treatment of the statesman; inasmuch as, whilst some persons
-may defend the putting of the Earl to death as a political necessity,
-no one can regard in the same light the execution of the Archbishop.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Laud's Execution.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1645, January.</div>
-
-<p>Many men who have committed great errors have afterwards, in the midst
-of suffering, behaved in such a manner as somewhat to redeem their evil
-reputation. To<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_401" id="Page_401">[401]</a></span> a considerable extent it proved so in this instance. On
-its being proposed to him by the renowned Hugo Grotius that he should
-escape&mdash;a step which he believed his enemies were not averse to his
-taking&mdash;Laud replied: "They shall not be gratified by me in what they
-appear to long for; I am almost seventy years old, and shall I now go
-about to prolong a miserable life by the trouble and shame of flying?"
-"I am resolved not to think of flight, but continuing where I am,
-patiently to expect and bear what a good and a wise Providence hath
-provided for me, of what kind soever it shall be."<a name="FNanchor_502_502" id="FNanchor_502_502"></a><a href="#Footnote_502_502" class="fnanchor">[502]</a> He delivered
-on the scaffold a speech which was prefaced by the first verse of the
-twelfth chapter of the Epistle to the Hebrews,<a name="FNanchor_503_503" id="FNanchor_503_503"></a><a href="#Footnote_503_503" class="fnanchor">[503]</a> as if it had been
-a sermon; though, after the exordium, it forsook a homiletic form. He
-referred to himself as a martyr, declared that he forgave his enemies,
-and endeavoured to clear himself from the charge of favouring Popery
-and disliking Parliaments. Then, after praying, and pulling off his
-doublet, he said that no man could be more willing to send him out
-of the world than he himself was to go. Upon being asked by Sir John
-Clotworthy what special text of scripture he found most comfortable,
-he replied, "<i>Cupio dissolvi et esse cum Christo</i>." "A good desire,"
-answered the knight, who added, "there must be a foundation for that
-desire and assurance." Laud had no notion of Puritan "evidences," and
-simply rejoined, "No man can express it, it is to be found within."<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_402" id="Page_402">[402]</a></span>
-"It is founded," the Presbyterian went on to say, "upon a word though."
-Laud closed the conversation by adding, "That word is the knowledge of
-Jesus Christ, and that alone."<a name="FNanchor_504_504" id="FNanchor_504_504"></a><a href="#Footnote_504_504" class="fnanchor">[504]</a> The Archbishop's last prayer is
-the most beautiful thing connected with his history, and reminds us of
-Shakespeare's words&mdash;</p>
-
- <div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="i6">"Nothing in life</div>
- <div>Became him like the leaving it."</div>
- </div>
- </div>
- </div>
-
-<p>"Lord, I am coming as fast as I can; I know I must pass through the
-Shadow of Death before I can come to see Thee, but it is but <i>umbra
-mortis</i>, a mere shadow of death, a little darkness upon Nature, but
-Thou, by Thy merits and passion, hast broke through the jaws of death;
-so, Lord, receive my soul, and have mercy upon me, and bless this
-kingdom with peace and plenty, and with brotherly love and charity,
-that there may not be this effusion of Christian blood amongst them,
-for Jesus Christ's sake, if it be Thy will."<a name="FNanchor_505_505" id="FNanchor_505_505"></a><a href="#Footnote_505_505" class="fnanchor">[505]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Laud's Character.</i></div>
-
-<p>So perished William Laud, a man who has been magnified by one party
-into a martyr, and degraded by another into a monster. He was neither,
-but a narrow-minded individual, with little or no sensibility, fond
-of arbitrary power, a thorough bigot, and a ceremonialist to such
-an extent, that he acted as if salvation depended on adjusting the
-position of altars, presenting obeisances, regulating clerical attire,
-and "adding to it some of the frippery of the Romish ecclesiastical
-wardrobe, which had lain neglected ever since the Reforma<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_403" id="Page_403">[403]</a></span>tion."<a name="FNanchor_506_506" id="FNanchor_506_506"></a><a href="#Footnote_506_506" class="fnanchor">[506]</a>
-His religious weaknesses were not tempered with the smallest degree of
-Christian charity. Contemptible trifles he pressed upon the consciences
-of people with an iron hand. Yet Laud's reputation does not come down
-to us tainted with the vulgarities of avarice or sensuality. He was
-liberal and chaste; and, though proud, he was not addicted to luxury
-or ostentation. Possessed of considerable learning, and remarkable for
-activity and acuteness of mind; he patronized such studies as accorded
-with his tastes; and it should not be forgotten that, at Windsor,
-Reading, and Oxford, there still remain noble and lasting monuments of
-his beneficence.<a name="FNanchor_507_507" id="FNanchor_507_507"></a><a href="#Footnote_507_507" class="fnanchor">[507]</a></p>
-
-
-
-<p>As one of England's most conspicuous Churchmen, he may be ranked with
-Dunstan, Becket, and Wolsey;<a name="FNanchor_508_508" id="FNanchor_508_508"></a><a href="#Footnote_508_508" class="fnanchor">[508]</a> but he had not the princely bearing,
-the knowledge of mankind, and the skilful statesmanship of Wolsey&mdash;nor
-did he evince the high-minded spiritual ambition and independence of
-Becket&mdash;nor do we discover in him the mystic tone and artistic taste of
-Dunstan. But he had the pride, the intolerance, and the superstition of
-all three. In the middle ages he would have made as to ritualism a good
-monk, and if severity of discipline be a proof of excellence, by no
-means a bad abbot.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_404" id="Page_404">[404]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1645, January.</div>
-
-<p>It was on the very day of Laud's attainder that Parliament established
-the Presbyterian Directory, and prohibited the Anglican Prayer
-Book.<a name="FNanchor_509_509" id="FNanchor_509_509"></a><a href="#Footnote_509_509" class="fnanchor">[509]</a> That book, profoundly reverenced by all Anglo-Catholics, and
-held in scarcely less honour by some doctrinal Puritans, excited only
-the opposition of the Presbyterians and the other sects. Tracts of the
-period irreverently represent the liturgy as being the very <i>lethargy</i>
-of worship; the litany, as not merely "a stump, or a limb of Dagon,
-but the head of the Mass Book;" and the surplice, as "a Babylonish
-garment, spotted with the flesh," and as worse than the "plague-sore
-clout," which had been sent "to infect Master Pym, and the rest of the
-House."<a name="FNanchor_510_510" id="FNanchor_510_510"></a><a href="#Footnote_510_510" class="fnanchor">[510]</a> For this coarse abuse, the whole Presbyterian party must
-not be held responsible; but such abuse indicates the existence of
-feelings with which leading Presbyterians had to deal on their own side.</p>
-
-<p>Many persons disliked all prescribed forms, and represented them as
-muzzling the mouths of the saints, and stopping the course of the
-Spirit of God. "True prayer," they said, "is first in the heart, then
-in the mouth, but this sort of prayer is in the mouth before it can
-come into the heart at all: it is an abortive birth which never had
-a right conception."<a name="FNanchor_511_511" id="FNanchor_511_511"></a><a href="#Footnote_511_511" class="fnanchor">[511]</a> Yet the chief oracles both of Parliament
-and the Assembly, though advocates for <i>extempore</i> devotion, were
-not disposed to leave ministers altogether to their own impulses in
-conducting public devotion. They adopted a middle course, and whilst
-abandoning particular forms of prayer they provided a General Directory
-of worship.</p>
-
-<p>Parliament issued an order for that purpose to the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_405" id="Page_405">[405]</a></span> Assembly, sometime
-in October, 1643, but the business stood in abeyance until the
-following May, when the subject came up for discussion in the Jerusalem
-Chamber. Minor questions arose, such as whether laymen might assist
-clergymen by reading the Scriptures&mdash;a question determined in favour
-of probationers; and whether the Lord's Supper might be received by
-communicants sitting in pews&mdash;a question negatived by a resolution of
-adherence to Presbyterian usage. But the grand debate of the Assembly
-at that time related to the suspension of improper communicants. This
-matter involved principles of Church discipline, which could not be
-settled without much controversy, and which long perplexed statesmen
-and divines.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>The Directory.</i></div>
-
-<p>The preface to the Directory, which is a very important part of the
-book, adverts to the liturgy used in the Church of England, as an
-offence both to many of the godly at home, and to many of the reformed
-abroad. The imposition of it had heightened past grievances, and its
-unprofitable ceremonies had been a burden to the consciences of not a
-few. By it people had been kept from the Lord's table, and ministers
-had been driven into poverty and exile. While esteemed by Prelates as
-if it set forth the only way in which God could be worshipped, Papists
-had counted its use a concession to themselves, and a compliance with
-their Church. Moreover, a liturgy, it is said, encouraged an idle
-ministry. Therefore, it was now to be set aside, not from affectation
-of novelty, or to the disparagement of the first reformers, but as
-a further reformation of the Church of Christ, the easing of tender
-consciences, and the promotion of uniformity in the worship of God.
-The Directory contains no forms of prayer, but only suggestions as to
-topics of public supplication.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_406" id="Page_406">[406]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1645, May.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>The Directory.</i></div>
-
-<p>The Directory, upon being dispatched to Scotland,<a name="FNanchor_512_512" id="FNanchor_512_512"></a><a href="#Footnote_512_512" class="fnanchor">[512]</a> obtained there
-the sanction of the General Assembly; and on its return, after the
-book had been endorsed by the English Commons, it was presented to the
-House of Lords, who gave it their sanction. Presbyterian statesmen are
-sometimes charged with a rash abolition of old ecclesiastical laws,
-without the previous or immediate institution of others to occupy their
-room. It is alleged that these men short-sightedly pulled down the
-ancient buildings and left them in ruins, and that they were for some
-time not prepared to raise a new structure on the ancient site. This is
-an incorrect representation. Elizabeth's Act of Uniformity, it is very
-true, fell into desuetude from the opening of the Long Parliament; also
-many Puritans in the Establishment laid aside the Liturgy, and even
-reviled it. Notwithstanding, no specific law appears against it, until
-the Directory had been sanctioned by Parliament. The same ordinance
-which forbids the Liturgy enforces the Directory. In the first place
-that authority rehearses and repeals the statutes of uniformity, and
-at the same time declares that the Book of Common Prayer should not
-remain in any place of worship within the kingdom of England or the
-dominion of Wales. The same ordinance then goes on to declare that
-the Directory should be observed in all public religious exercises
-throughout the realm, and that fair register books of vellum for
-births, marriages, and burials should be kept by the minister and other
-officers<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_407" id="Page_407">[407]</a></span> of the Church. It is remarkable that no penalty whatever is
-mentioned for a breach of this ordinance. So far as the terms of it
-are concerned, it looks as if it might be broken with impunity; and
-it was so broken. In country parishes where Royalism was predominant,
-and such parishes were very numerous, parsons and churchwardens set at
-nought the enactment of the two Houses, and would not acknowledge as
-law that which had not received the Royal sanction. The Prayer Book was
-dear to them from associations with the past in their own lives and
-those of their fathers; and they were resolved still to read its litany
-and collects. Finding that simple advice and exhortation produced no
-effect in many quarters, Parliament adopted more stringent measures.
-It would appear that, as early as the month of May, 1645, penalties
-for contempt of the new enactment were under consideration,<a name="FNanchor_513_513" id="FNanchor_513_513"></a><a href="#Footnote_513_513" class="fnanchor">[513]</a> but
-an explicit threatening for disobedience was not uttered until the
-month of August. Then came an ordinance<a name="FNanchor_514_514" id="FNanchor_514_514"></a><a href="#Footnote_514_514" class="fnanchor">[514]</a> which&mdash;after providing for
-the supply of printed books of the Directory, and commanding that it
-should be read the Sunday after it was received&mdash;proceeded to declare
-that any person using the Book of Common Prayer in church or chapel
-should, for the first offence, pay the sum of five pounds, for the
-second offence the sum of ten pounds, and for the third offence suffer
-one year's imprisonment. Every minister was to pay forty shillings each
-time he offended. Those who preached or wrote against the Directory
-fell under additional liabilities to pay not less than five, and
-not more than fifty pounds. Thus a new Act of Uniformity succeeded
-the old one. The High Commission Court had been abolished, but its
-spirit had migrated into<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_408" id="Page_408">[408]</a></span> another body. Happily it is no easy thing to
-change a people's religion by Act of Parliament. Wherever the exercise
-of reason, and the study of Scripture are neglected, there remain
-sentiments, perhaps prejudices, which are too deeply sown to be raked
-out by any legal instrument, however sharp and close-set its teeth may
-be. Human conscience, whether rude and ill-informed, or disciplined
-and wise, always hates all tools of state husbandry employed for such
-ends. Accordingly, a good many people in England, when its rulers would
-force them into a new form of worship, deliberately and resolutely
-rebelled, some having to endure a considerable amount of suffering for
-conscience' sake.<a name="FNanchor_515_515" id="FNanchor_515_515"></a><a href="#Footnote_515_515" class="fnanchor">[515]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1645, August.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>The Directory.</i></div>
-
-<p>The Scotch soon began to lament the inefficacy of the new enactment.
-They complained that the Prayer Book was still used in some parts of
-England, where Parliament had undisputed authority; and, of course,
-in a kingdom which was cut up into two hostile camps, where Royalism
-remained in the ascendancy, the Liturgy would continue to be honoured,
-and the Directory would be disused. Errors, heresies, and schism were
-also deplored as still prevalent, by the brethren from the north,
-who watched with pious zeal all that was going forward on this side
-the Tweed, and were greatly distressed at the tardy<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_409" id="Page_409">[409]</a></span> progress of
-ecclesiastical reform, and at the little enthusiasm which was enkindled
-by the Covenant. In Ireland, the Directory met with an adverse fate.
-The bishops and clergy of Dublin in particular remained loyal to
-the Prayer Book. They pleaded their ordination vows, the oath of
-supremacy, the Act of Uniformity, the communion of the two Churches
-of England and Ireland in the bond of Common Prayer, the legality of
-its use, the freedom of the Church, and the attachment to the Liturgy
-cherished by the people. The Bishop of Killaloe, and several other
-dignitaries, signed a protest, and whatever opinions may be formed of
-their arguments, posterity will do honour to their conscientiousness.
-This was in 1647. Some persons continued, in spite of Parliamentary
-orders, to use the Prayer Book. The last instance of its being publicly
-read in Dublin occurred when the aged and venerable Archbishop Bulkeley
-delivered to his clergy a valedictory discourse in St. Patrick's
-Cathedral.<a name="FNanchor_516_516" id="FNanchor_516_516"></a><a href="#Footnote_516_516" class="fnanchor">[516]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1645 August</div>
-
-<p>In connection with the Directory, notice should be taken of certain
-forms of devotion which were published for the use of seamen. A book
-of that period exists, without date, entitled "A Supply of Prayer for
-the Ships, that want Ministers to pray with them." The preface states
-that there were thousands of ships without any ministers, and that the
-crews, therefore, either neglected religion altogether or used the Book
-of Common Prayer. What is glanced at as a matter of necessity might
-perhaps in some cases be matter of preference. Alderman Garroway, in
-his speech at Guildhall, it will be remembered, spoke of sailors as
-being fond of the old liturgy; and such sailors must have remained in
-the fleet even<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_410" id="Page_410">[410]</a></span> after the Presbyterian Earl of Warwick had become Lord
-High Admiral. Though the navy, as far as rulers were concerned, might
-be called Presbyterian, numbers of the men would feel no attachments
-in that direction. At all events, to avoid inconvenience, it was
-thought fit to frame prayers for the navy, "agreeing with the Directory
-established by Parliament." By whom the work was done we do not know,
-but clearly the spirit of it is Presbyterian. "Heal our rents and
-divisions," and "preserve us from breach of our solemn Covenant," are
-expressions found amongst its petitions. Eschewing the Apocrypha, it
-prescribes psalms and chapters from the Old and New Testament. Forms of
-devotion are given, rather as specimens and guides than anything else.
-"The company being assembled, they may thus begin with prayer," are the
-cautious words employed by the sturdy opponents of ritualism.<a name="FNanchor_517_517" id="FNanchor_517_517"></a><a href="#Footnote_517_517" class="fnanchor">[517]</a></p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_411" id="Page_411">[411]</a></span></p></div>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="illo411" >
- <img
- class="p0"
- src="images/illo411.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XVIII.</h2>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">Proposals were still going on for a Treaty of Peace between the King
-and the Parliament. His Majesty, from what he heard of dissensions in
-the popular party, felt encouraged to hope for favourable terms. He
-had also an idea that the House of Peers, and some in the Commons,
-really wished for a reconciliation.<a name="FNanchor_518_518" id="FNanchor_518_518"></a><a href="#Footnote_518_518" class="fnanchor">[518]</a> Laud's trial was at the time
-in progress, and the sympathies of the Royalists, of course, were
-with the prisoner. Accordingly, overtures were forwarded, from Oxford
-to Westminster, and, in return, Commissioners were despatched from
-Westminster to Oxford.<a name="FNanchor_519_519" id="FNanchor_519_519"></a><a href="#Footnote_519_519" class="fnanchor">[519]</a> Their treatment, however, on reaching the
-latter city, was not such as to inspire much hope of a prosperous
-issue. The people reviled them as traitors, rogues, and rebels, and
-threw stones into their coaches as they rode to the quarters appointed
-for their entertainment at "the sign of the 'Catherine Wheel,' next
-St. John's College"&mdash;"a mean inn," as Whitelocke describes it, only a
-"little above the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_412" id="Page_412">[412]</a></span> degree of an alehouse."<a name="FNanchor_520_520" id="FNanchor_520_520"></a><a href="#Footnote_520_520" class="fnanchor">[520]</a> The conduct of Charles
-in sending a sealed reply telling the Commissioners they were to carry
-what he pleased to place in their hands, although it should be but the
-<i>Song of Robin Hood and Little John</i>, certainly did not tend to an
-amicable adjustment of affairs; and his duplicity in calling the Lords
-and Commons at Westminster a Parliament, whilst he entered upon record
-in his council book that the calling them so did not imply that they
-were such, proves that his only object was to pacify his opponents for
-a time, that he might do what he liked with them whenever they should
-be again within his power.<a name="FNanchor_521_521" id="FNanchor_521_521"></a><a href="#Footnote_521_521" class="fnanchor">[521]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1645, January.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Treaty at Uxbridge.</i></div>
-
-<p>At length, the preliminaries of a treaty were arranged, and a meeting
-was fixed to take place in the town of Uxbridge in the month of
-January, 1645. The propositions of Parliament related to religion,
-the militia, and Ireland; and the Commissioners were instructed to
-stipulate that the subject of religion should be considered first, on
-the ground of its supreme importance.<a name="FNanchor_522_522" id="FNanchor_522_522"></a><a href="#Footnote_522_522" class="fnanchor">[522]</a> When they assembled, the
-town, selected as the theatre of their negotiations, was divided into
-two parts; the north side of the main street being allotted to the
-Parliamentarians, the south side to the Royalists. So crowded was every
-corner of the place, that some of the distinguished personages were,
-as Whitelocke informs us, "forced to lie, two of them in a chamber
-together in field beds, only upon a quilt, in that cold weather, not
-coming into a bed during all the treaty."<a name="FNanchor_523_523" id="FNanchor_523_523"></a><a href="#Footnote_523_523" class="fnanchor">[523]</a> The house chosen as
-most convenient for deliberation was Sir John Bennet's residence,&mdash;a
-picturesque building at the west end,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_413" id="Page_413">[413]</a></span> still in existence, containing
-a "fair great chamber," with curiously wainscotted walls. Courtesies
-were exchanged between the diplomatists, but it soon plainly appeared
-that two hostile camps had pitched within the precincts of this little
-town. On a market day, just as the business of the treaty was about to
-commence, a lecture had to be preached in the parish church, according
-to established custom. Christopher Love, a young Presbyterian divine,
-full of fervour and zeal, happened then to be officiating as chaplain
-to the garrison at Windsor, and he had just travelled to Uxbridge
-in order to perform there this popular service. Farmers who came to
-sell their corn, and even persons in the train of the noble visitors
-from Oxford, contributed to increase the congregation which crowded
-the church. The preacher's discourse was reported by certain hearers
-to the authorities on the south side of the High Street as being of
-a seditious and intolerable character. On the following morning a
-paper was handed over to the party on the north side of the street,
-complaining of the sermon, and alleging that the preacher had gone so
-far as to declare that the King's representatives had "come with hearts
-full of blood, and that there was as great a distance between this
-treaty and peace as between heaven and hell." They therefore desired
-justice might be executed upon this fomenter of strife. The same day
-saw an answer returned, to the effect that Love was not included in the
-retinue of the Commissioners from London; that they wished all causes
-of offence to be avoided; and that they would report the circumstances
-which had occurred to the Lords and Commons, who, they were quite sure,
-would consider the matter "according to justice."<a name="FNanchor_524_524" id="FNanchor_524_524"></a><a href="#Footnote_524_524" class="fnanchor">[524]</a> So the matter
-dropped.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_414" id="Page_414">[414]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1645, February.</div>
-
-<p>It is curious to find Clarendon lamenting that Uxbridge Church was now
-in the possession of the Presbyterians, and that, according to the
-ordinance just issued, the Directory had there taken the place of the
-Prayer Book. The King's Commissioners, therefore, who would willingly
-have gone to church, were restrained from doing so, and had to observe
-days of devotion in "their great room of the inn," where, as the
-historian states, many who came from town and from the country daily
-resorted.<a name="FNanchor_525_525" id="FNanchor_525_525"></a><a href="#Footnote_525_525" class="fnanchor">[525]</a> The tables were turned; Episcopalians and Presbyterians
-had changed places; and his Majesty's followers found themselves at
-Uxbridge in the ranks of dissent.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Treaty at Uxbridge.</i></div>
-
-<p>Three weary weeks of debate ensued; religion, according to the
-stipulated arrangement, coming first under discussion.<a name="FNanchor_526_526" id="FNanchor_526_526"></a><a href="#Footnote_526_526" class="fnanchor">[526]</a> The four
-grand ecclesiastical propositions which were placed in the forefront
-by the Parliamentary Commissioners were the following: <i>first</i>, that
-the Bill for abolishing Episcopacy, which had passed the two Houses,
-should now receive the Royal sanction; <i>secondly</i>, that the Ordinance
-for the Westminster Assembly should be confirmed; <i>thirdly</i>, that the
-Directory, and the scheme of Church government annexed to it, should
-be enacted for<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_415" id="Page_415">[415]</a></span> the reformation of religion and the accomplishment of
-uniformity; and <i>fourthly</i>, that his Majesty should take the solemn
-League and Covenant, and concur in enjoining it upon all his subjects.
-Touching these several particulars, there may be seen in Dugdale and
-Rushworth a mass of papers, very dull and dry to all appearance now,
-but which had in them abundant light and fire, when they were exchanged
-and read in that large "fair room" at Uxbridge.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1645, April.</div>
-
-<p>Before the debates on religion closed, the King made a very plausible
-shew of concession, by professing his willingness to allow that
-all persons should have freedom in matters of ceremony, and that
-bishops should be bound to consult their presbyters, and constantly
-to reside within their dioceses. He promised, too, that poor livings
-should be improved, pluralities abolished, and ecclesiastical
-jurisdiction reformed.<a name="FNanchor_527_527" id="FNanchor_527_527"></a><a href="#Footnote_527_527" class="fnanchor">[527]</a> Yet, while making these smooth and pleasant
-offers&mdash;calculated, if not to induce the Parliament to come to terms,
-at least to raise the Royal cause to a somewhat higher position in
-public esteem&mdash;his Majesty wrote to his secretary, Nicholas, in the
-following style: "I should think, if in your private discourses, I no
-wise mean in your public meetings with the London Commissioners, you
-would put them in mind that they were arrant rebels, and that their end
-must be damnation, ruin, and infamy, except they repented, and found
-some way to free themselves from the damnable way they are in (this
-treaty being the aptest), it might do good."<a name="FNanchor_528_528" id="FNanchor_528_528"></a><a href="#Footnote_528_528" class="fnanchor">[528]</a> This double dealing
-shews that Charles, in his negotiations with Parliament, fancied he
-had to do with creatures of a kind fit only to be inveigled into traps
-and snares; and it also shews that, at least, he had so much<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_416" id="Page_416">[416]</a></span> of
-Romish morality as consists in not keeping faith with heretics. His
-antagonists felt persuaded of this fact, though they could not put
-their hands so easily on the proofs as subsequent revelations enable us
-to do. But what they did actually discover made them very suspicious
-of his Majesty's proceedings, and induced them to act towards him
-sometimes in a manner which appeared not only ungracious, but
-inexpedient; we, however, now seeing the whole series of events from
-beginning to end, are enabled to discern in some of the most repulsive
-acts of the liberal and popular party the keenest foresight and the
-broadest prudence.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Debates about Ordination.</i></div>
-
-<p>To return from Uxbridge to Westminster.</p>
-
-<p>The Presbyterians, working with the best intentions, striving to reform
-the people of England and to drive out error and evil, had much trouble
-with other matters besides the enforcement of the Directory. Churches
-wanted ministers, for scandalous clergymen had been dismissed and aged
-clergymen had become incapable. Some too had died, and some had removed
-to take charge of other parishes.<a name="FNanchor_529_529" id="FNanchor_529_529"></a><a href="#Footnote_529_529" class="fnanchor">[529]</a> The Oxford University, wholly
-in the hands of Royalists, yielded no candidates for the ministry, and
-Bishops would not ordain persons to serve in the new Establishment. In
-consequence of these circumstances vacancies were irregularly filled
-up, and uneducated persons were wont to thrust themselves into the
-sacred office. Amidst this disorder the Presbyterians, sorrowful on
-the one hand because of such destitution, and displeased on the other
-with the irregularity in such a mode of supply, and at the same time
-mortified by the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_417" id="Page_417">[417]</a></span> taunts of Royalists and Episcopalians, vigorously
-devoted themselves to the business of supplying churches and ordaining
-ministers. In the month of April, 1645, Parliament ordered that no one
-should preach who had not received ordination in the English or some
-other reformed Church, or who had not been approved by the authorities
-appointed for the purpose.<a name="FNanchor_530_530" id="FNanchor_530_530"></a><a href="#Footnote_530_530" class="fnanchor">[530]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1645, April.</div>
-
-<p>It was specially enjoined that this rule should be put in force
-throughout the army, because in some regiments Presbyterian
-ministrations and worship were not held in high esteem; and the
-Lords, who cherished strong Presbyterian sympathies, also directed
-the Assembly to prepare a form according to which clergymen might be
-ordained without the offices of a diocesan bishop. Long and tiresome
-debates arose amongst the Divines in connexion with this latter
-subject;&mdash;Presbyterians, Independents, and Erastians differing from
-each other in the ideas which they entertained of what ordination
-meant. This controversy has been long since buried, and we shall not
-disinter it from amidst the dust of "old diaries" and "grand debates;"
-but the point raised by the Independents, who contended for the right
-of each congregation to choose its own ministers, has some vitality
-for people in these days. Of course the Presbyterians carried the
-question according to their well-known views, and after they had done
-so, Parliament, adopting the decision of the Divines, declared by
-an ordinance, that the solemn setting apart of presbyters to their
-holy office was an institute of the Lord Jesus Christ; that certain
-rules ought to be observed in the examination of candidates; that
-publicity should be given to the testimonial of the examiners; and
-that ordination should be performed by<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_418" id="Page_418">[418]</a></span> the laying on of the hands
-of the presbytery, accompanied by a public fast. It was expressly
-stated at the conclusion of the ordinance that it should stand in
-force for twelve months, and no longer&mdash;a provision which stamped
-the arrangements with something of a tentative character. Until
-presbyteries could be duly organized, the duty of ordination was vested
-in the Assembly; and no wonder that Baillie, in a letter written from
-London in February, 1646, laments the onerous and absorbing engagements
-which this new law entailed upon the Divines.<a name="FNanchor_531_531" id="FNanchor_531_531"></a><a href="#Footnote_531_531" class="fnanchor">[531]</a></p>
-
-<p>As the question of Presbyterian discipline came under discussion, the
-debates in the Assembly increased in energy, learning, and acuteness,
-as well as in prolixity. No person who has read Dr. Lightfoot's notes
-of the proceedings can deny the erudition and controversial acumen of
-the disputants on both sides; and all who have glanced over Baillie's
-lively pages will admit that this battle for great principles was
-waged with sincerity and earnestness. A very important point of
-enquiry arose in the month of April, 1644, Whether "many particular
-congregations should be under one presbytery?" The Independents pressed
-to be heard on the negative side, and spent twenty long sittings in
-advocating their opinion. Goodwin was foremost in the debate, but the
-rest of the dissenting brethren took their turns. The champions well
-acquitted themselves, their enemies being judges. "Truly, if the cause
-were good," wrote Baillie, "the men have plenty of learning, wit,
-eloquence, and above all, boldness and stiffness to make it out; but
-when they had wearied themselves, and over-wearied us all, we found
-the most they had to say against the presbytery, was but curious<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_419" id="Page_419">[419]</a></span>
-idle niceties, yea, that all they could bring was no ways concluding.
-Every one of their arguments, when it had been pressed to the full, in
-one whole session, and sometimes in two or three, was <i>voiced</i>, and
-found to be light unanimously by all but themselves."<a name="FNanchor_532_532" id="FNanchor_532_532"></a><a href="#Footnote_532_532" class="fnanchor">[532]</a> There can
-be little doubt of this. The reasoning of the Independents would of
-course be found wanting when weighed in the Presbyterian balance, and
-the majority of the Assembly would naturally consider their own votes
-an ample refutation of their adversaries' arguments. "They profess,"
-says the same authority in another place, respecting the Independents,
-"to regard nothing at all what all the reformed or all the world say,
-if <i>their sayings be not backed with convincing Scripture or reason</i>.
-All human testimonies they declaim against as a popish argument." The
-simplicity of the writer is perfectly amusing as he thus insensibly
-glides into the position of papal advocates, and tacitly acknowledges
-the authority of general opinion in the Church; on the other hand,
-the firmness and consistency of these genuine Protestants is truly
-admirable, as they resolutely adhere to the only invincible method of
-argument by which the cause of the Reformation can be defended.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Presbyterians and Independents.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1645.</div>
-
-<p>While Independent principles favoured universal toleration, the
-Presbyterians, by advocating the establishment of classes, synods,
-and a general assembly, and by calling on the magistrate to enforce
-the authority of the Church, plainly interfered with the civil rights
-of the people. The thoughtful among the Independents therefore became
-more and more averse to the Presbyterian scheme; they saw that it
-would be fatal to those very liberties for which the nation had so
-valiantly contended<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_420" id="Page_420">[420]</a></span> in the field. Accordingly, we find that Philip
-Nye, in the March of 1644, boldly contended before the Assembly that a
-presbytery was inconsistent with the civil state. This was a galling
-accusation, and the Presbyterian party indignantly cried down the
-assertion as impertinent. Great confusion arose in the Assembly; but,
-undismayed by the combined opposition of a large majority, the champion
-of Independency on the following day renewed the impeachment. It was
-an aggravation of his offence in the eyes of his adversaries, that he
-took advantage of the presence that day of some distinguished noblemen
-and others to make his bold avowal. He would enlighten these personages
-on the great question. He repeated that the liberties for which the
-people fought would be unsafe if Presbyterianism were established.
-Again the Presbyterians endeavoured to silence him. The meeting was in
-a tumult. Some would have expelled him; but the Independents rallied
-round their intrepid friend, declaring their resolution not to enter
-the Assembly again if he should be excluded. Whether, after this scene
-of excitement, during which it is not improbable that Nye manifested
-some warmth of temper, he really became more calm in the advocacy of
-his principles; or whether it was a mere expression of triumph on
-the part of one who helped to form the majority of the convocation,
-and to overcome by clamour the voice of reason, we do not venture to
-determine,&mdash;but the Scotch Commissioner concludes his account of that
-memorable day's proceedings by observing, "Ever since we find him in
-all things the most accommodating man in the company."<a name="FNanchor_533_533" id="FNanchor_533_533"></a><a href="#Footnote_533_533" class="fnanchor">[533]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Committee of Accommodation.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1645, November.</div>
-
-<p>As Presbyterians and Independents thus frequently came<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_421" id="Page_421">[421]</a></span> into collision
-at Westminster, at last a Committee of Accommodation was appointed,
-with the view of healing the differences betwixt these two parties.
-This committee arose out of a suggestion by Oliver Cromwell; and
-the Parliament who appointed it in 1644 directed the committee, in
-case union should be impracticable, to devise a plan for meeting the
-scruples of tender consciences. The committee selected six of their
-number, including two Independents, to draw up propositions for the
-purpose; from which it appears that the Independents claimed for their
-male Church members the power of voting upon ecclesiastical questions,
-and that they contended for the necessity of signs of grace as a
-qualification for membership. These positions were irreconcilable with
-the scheme of their opponents, which placed the Church under the power
-of presbyters, and admitted to communion all who were not scandalous in
-their lives. No method could be devised for combining the Independent
-with the Presbyterian scheme, although the Independents professed
-themselves ready to make the trial; for the Presbyterians determined
-in the first instance that their own form of Church government should
-be settled as a standard, and that until that was done the exceptions
-of the dissentients should not be taken into consideration. As the
-Presbyterians resolutely pushed forward the completion of their own
-model, the dissenting brethren at last abandoned all attempts at
-comprehension, and drew up a remonstrance complaining that they had
-been unfairly dealt with. In the month of November, 1645, the Jerusalem
-Chamber witnessed further debates between the two parties; but the
-question had now reached this point, how far tender consciences,
-which cannot submit to the established ecclesiastical government,
-may be indulged consistently with the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_422" id="Page_422">[422]</a></span> Word of God and the welfare
-of the nation? The Independents pleaded for a full toleration, to
-which the Presbyterians would not consent, and the former could not
-without difficulty be brought to propose any measure of liberty to
-be enjoyed exclusively by themselves; yet urged by their opponents
-to state what they required in their own case, they replied that
-they did not demur to the Assembly's Confession of Faith, and that
-they merely sought liberty to form their own congregations, to have
-the power of ordination, and to be free from Presbyterian authority.
-"In our answer," observes Baillie, "we did flatly deny such a vast
-liberty." All the indulgence conceded was that Independents should not
-be compelled to receive the Lord's Supper, nor be liable to synodical
-censure; and this amount of freedom was made dependent upon their
-joining the parish congregation, and then submitting in all but the
-excepted particulars to the new ecclesiastical government. Baillie,
-who supplies some knowledge of party secrets, informed a friend that
-had not the Presbyterians allowed some indulgence, they would have
-brought upon themselves insupportable odium, and that in making their
-limited offer they were persuaded that it would not be accepted.
-The Independents of course were not content with the result of the
-controversy, and still sought the liberty of forming Churches of their
-own.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Committee of Accommodation.</i></div>
-
-<p>The threadbare argument about the abuse of liberty and the opening of
-a door to all manner of sectaries was zealously urged against any such
-toleration as the Independents claimed. Altar would be set up against
-altar, it was said, the seamless robe of Christ would be rent, and
-the unity of the Church would be destroyed. At last, Burroughs rose
-and declared "that, if their congregations might not be exempted from
-that coercive power of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_423" id="Page_423">[423]</a></span> the classes, if they might not have liberty to
-govern themselves in their own way as long as they behaved peaceably
-towards the civil magistrate, they were resolved to suffer, or go to
-some other place of the world where they might enjoy their liberty.
-But while men think there is no way of peace but by forcing all to be
-of the same mind, while they think the civil sword is an ordinance of
-God to determine all controversies of Divinity, and that it must needs
-be attended with fines and imprisonment to the disobedient; while they
-apprehend there is no medium between a strict uniformity and a general
-confusion of all things;&mdash;while these sentiments prevail there must be
-a base subjection of men's consciences to slavery, a suppression of
-much truth, and great disturbances in the Christian world."<a name="FNanchor_534_534" id="FNanchor_534_534"></a><a href="#Footnote_534_534" class="fnanchor">[534]</a> The
-expression of such wise and beautiful sentiments closed the debates of
-this fruitless Committee.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_424" id="Page_424">[424]</a></span></p></div>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="illo424" >
- <img
- class="p0"
- src="images/illo424.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XIX.</h2>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">The Scotch army had crossed the Tweed in the month of January, 1644.
-Isaak Walton had seen them marching along with their pikes, and
-wearing on their hats this motto, "For the Crown and Covenant of both
-kingdoms,"<a name="FNanchor_535_535" id="FNanchor_535_535"></a><a href="#Footnote_535_535" class="fnanchor">[535]</a> but the quiet angler was not able to understand clearly
-what he beheld. These soldiers proved of far less service to England
-than was expected. The indiscretion of generals in the field involved
-regiments in disaster, and political and religious jealousy at an
-early period sprung up between some English and Scotch commanders.
-Grounds of difference existed, inasmuch as certain of the southern
-captains felt little sympathy with the covenanting zeal of their
-northern allies. Both, however, had begun to find out that the enemy
-was much stronger than they had at first imagined, and Baillie, in
-the month of March, 1644, deplored the persistent attachment of the
-Royalists to Episcopacy and absolute monarchy, and the absence from
-their consciences of all remorse for their past misdoings. Indeed, he
-speaks of so much confidence existing at Oxford, that the popular cause
-was there accounted to have sunk into a hopeless state; and the Scotch
-presbyter himself<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_425" id="Page_425">[425]</a></span> complains that the ways of the Parliament were
-endless and confused, being full of jealousy, and of other faults. The
-Independents, he also says, prevented Church matters from being settled
-as he wished; Antinomians and Anabaptists were on the increase, and, in
-short, things were altogether in a bad condition.<a name="FNanchor_536_536" id="FNanchor_536_536"></a><a href="#Footnote_536_536" class="fnanchor">[536]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Long Marston Moor.</i></div>
-
-<p>The military prospects of the Parliament did not much improve as the
-spring advanced. The patriots longed for something to be done. The
-Earl of Manchester was besieging York, and upon the consequence of the
-expedition in the north, depended the affairs of the Church, scarcely
-less than the affairs of the State. When, on July the 2nd, 1644,
-Cromwell and Leslie met Prince Rupert on Long Marston Moor, it was
-for the purpose of settling an ecclesiastical as well as a political
-question.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1644, July.</div>
-
-<p>The two armies stood face to face on that memorable spot, eyeing each
-other for hours, within musket shot,<a name="FNanchor_537_537" id="FNanchor_537_537"></a><a href="#Footnote_537_537" class="fnanchor">[537]</a> the Parliament horse and
-foot being ranged along the south side of the moor on rising ground,
-amidst fields of standing corn, now tall and wet with rain, whilst the
-King's forces were protected by a deep ditch and hedge in front. When
-the sun was going down over the wide plain the action commenced. At
-first it proved in favour of the Royalists, so much so that the Earl of
-Leven's men fled, and the Scotch might be heard crying, "Waes us, we're
-a' undone!" Forthwith news of victory flew to Oxford, greeted there
-by<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_426" id="Page_426">[426]</a></span> bell-ringing and bonfires, to be only, however, speedily followed
-by very different tidings; for before midnight Cromwell and Leslie
-plucked a victory out of the enemy's hands. They charged a brigade of
-greencoats, and put to the rout the remainder of the Royalist army. The
-chase was continued to within a mile of the walls of York, the dead
-bodies, it was said, lying three miles in length, the moon with her
-light helping somewhat the darkness of the season.<a name="FNanchor_538_538" id="FNanchor_538_538"></a><a href="#Footnote_538_538" class="fnanchor">[538]</a></p>
-
-<p>The part which Cromwell took in this fierce battle gave no little
-triumph to the Independent party, who made the most of the Scotch
-flight, and hardly did justice to General Leslie.<a name="FNanchor_539_539" id="FNanchor_539_539"></a><a href="#Footnote_539_539" class="fnanchor">[539]</a> This vexed the
-Presbyterians, and already the breach between the two assumed a serious
-appearance.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Naseby.</i></div>
-
-<p>Though the victory of Marston Moor was of great advantage to the cause
-of the Parliament, it certainly did not decide the conflict. So far
-from that being the case, the fortunes of war afterwards favoured the
-Royalists. In August the Earl of Essex found himself so circumstanced<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_427" id="Page_427">[427]</a></span>
-in his western campaign that he suddenly capitulated to the King&mdash;an
-untoward event, which naturally called forth the lamentations of the
-Westminster Divines.<a name="FNanchor_540_540" id="FNanchor_540_540"></a><a href="#Footnote_540_540" class="fnanchor">[540]</a> Later still, amongst those persons who were
-anxious thoroughly to humble their High Church adversaries, and to
-bring the King to terms of complete submission, there might have been
-heard complaints to the effect that two summers had passed without the
-nation being saved; that victories gallantly gotten by the army, and
-graciously bestowed by Heaven, had been put into a bag with holes; that
-what was gained one day was lost another, that the summer's victory
-became a winter tale; and that the whole game had to be played over
-again. The secret of this want of complete success was said to be the
-unwillingness of the Presbyterians to crush the Royalists, and their
-desire for such an accommodation of differences as would place their
-own ecclesiastical polity close by the side of the English throne. The
-Independents, therefore, who were loud in making complaints of the
-description just indicated, seeing as they did that the Presbyterian
-scheme threatened the extinction of that religious liberty with which
-their own interests were identified, resolved that there should be
-a revision of the whole war policy on their own side, and an entire
-reformation effected in the character and tactics of the army. Out of
-this determination arose the famous new modelling of the army, and the
-self-denying ordinance. These changes were accomplished in the winter
-of 1644, and the re-organized forces, under Fairfax and Cromwell, were
-ready to take the field by the spring of 1645. When all this had been
-accomplished, hopes revived, but the siege and capture of Leicester
-by the Royalists, at the end of May,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_428" id="Page_428">[428]</a></span> inspired new fears.<a name="FNanchor_541_541" id="FNanchor_541_541"></a><a href="#Footnote_541_541" class="fnanchor">[541]</a> These,
-however, were not of long continuance, and were wholly dissipated by
-the memorable battle in the month of June.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1645, June.</div>
-
-<p>On Saturday, the 14th, in the afternoon, the lines of the new-modelled
-army were drawn across certain fallow fields in front of the village of
-Naseby, whose trim hedges, numerous trees, and solitary windmill are
-quaintly depicted in an old wood engraving inserted in Sprigg's history
-of the battle; whilst in the open country, in front of the Parliament
-troops, the King's forces were stretched out in full array. As at
-Marston Moor, so now at Naseby, victory at first seemed to wait upon
-Prince Rupert; but he, ever hot-headed, lost his advantage by pursuing
-the enemy too far, and came back to find the tide of battle turned
-against him. There had been, during his absence, desperate charges
-amidst the furze of the rabbit warren, and the swords and pistols of
-the Ironsides had proved too much for the well-mounted cavaliers.<a name="FNanchor_542_542" id="FNanchor_542_542"></a><a href="#Footnote_542_542" class="fnanchor">[542]</a>
-This engagement proved decisive beyond question, and its place in
-the history of the Civil Wars is most conspicuous, resembling in
-this respect the locality where the battle was fought. As Dr. Arnold
-observes: "On some of the highest table land in England, the streams
-falling on one side into the Atlantic, on the other<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_429" id="Page_429">[429]</a></span> into the German
-Ocean; far away too from any town, Market Harborough the nearest, into
-which the cavaliers were chased late in the long summer's evening."</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Naseby.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1645.</div>
-
-<p>Fast as a horse could gallop, the news was carried up to London, and
-there for days the talk ran on the standards, the field pieces, the
-much powder and shot, and the royal coach and baggage, with cabinets
-and letters, which had been seized by the conquerors.<a name="FNanchor_543_543" id="FNanchor_543_543"></a><a href="#Footnote_543_543" class="fnanchor">[543]</a> The
-surrender of Leicester to the Parliament resulted from this victory,
-and as a further consequence came the second relief of Taunton.<a name="FNanchor_544_544" id="FNanchor_544_544"></a><a href="#Footnote_544_544" class="fnanchor">[544]</a>
-That town was held on be<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_430" id="Page_430">[430]</a></span>half of the Parliament by Robert Blake&mdash;the
-man who said, when the enemy strove to starve him out, that he had not
-eaten his boots yet, and who had shewn throughout the siege a patience
-which was equalled only by his courage. The remembrance continued fresh
-amongst the Taunton people of the Puritan minister's sermon, preached
-in the grand old church of St. Mary, on the words, "I am the Lord,
-I change not: therefore ye sons of Jacob are not consumed;"&mdash;and of
-the shouts of "deliverance!" "deliverance!" which rang through the
-edifice before the sermon was finished, and which echoed from street
-to street as Welden's squadron of horse dashed through the east gate
-to the market-place;&mdash;nor could any forget the pause which followed in
-the church after the tidings had been heard, when all the congregation
-knelt down and thanked God for their deliverance. And now, again, the
-faith of the inhabitants was rewarded by the arrival of most timely
-succour; for the battle of Naseby set Fairfax free to turn his forces
-southward, and to scatter the forces of Goring, who had been such
-a pest to the county of Somerset. Not only was Taunton effectually
-delivered; but Bristol, Bridgewater, Ilchester, and Langport fell into
-the hands of the Parliament.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_431" id="Page_431">[431]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Sufferings of the Clergy.</i></div>
-
-<p>As the war proceeded, and as blustering Cavaliers galloped over the
-country, singing ribald songs and plundering their neighbours; and as
-Roundheads, equally stern and demure, marched up and down, singing
-psalms and sacking the houses of Royalist malignants, it necessarily
-happened that the clergy were great sufferers in the confusion, for
-they were required to take a side, wherever the soldiers of either
-army came. Those who went not up "to the help of the Lord, to the help
-of the Lord against the mighty," fell under a Puritan malediction,
-very much like that which was imprecated on Meroz. On the other hand,
-such as held back from fighting the battle of their King, were treated
-by Royalists as rebellious scoundrels. Between the two, little peace
-fell to the lot of country ministers where the torch of war happened
-to be kindled. And, indeed, such were the issues at stake, and so
-inextricably were religious questions interwoven with political ones,
-that it seemed next to impossible for any man whose views were not
-hemmed in by the boundaries of his own little parish, not to take part
-in the far-spreading and momentous strife.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1645.</div>
-
-<p>The Puritan who espoused the side of Parliament laid himself open
-to the violence of Royalists. They would attack his house, break
-open his chests and cupboards, take away his little stock of plate,
-cut the curtains from his bed, and steal his linen, even to the
-pillow-cases. Patience, under such circumstances, became a sign of holy
-confessorship, and it was told long afterwards with admiration&mdash;akin
-to that of a Catholic repeating the legend of a saint&mdash;how a good man
-so treated, exclaimed with Job, "The Lord gave, and the Lord hath
-taken away; blessed be the name of the Lord."<a name="FNanchor_545_545" id="FNanchor_545_545"></a><a href="#Footnote_545_545" class="fnanchor">[545]</a> If a cler<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_432" id="Page_432">[432]</a></span>gyman or
-chaplain happened to be discovered as a refugee in any castle or in any
-camp, he would of course be seized as a prisoner of war; and a story is
-told of one such, who was sentenced to be hanged unless he would ask
-pardon of the King; which, if he did, he should have not only his life,
-but a good church-living; whereupon, conscious of his integrity in the
-part he had taken, the stout-hearted man replied&mdash;"To ask pardon, when
-I am not conscious of any offence, were but the part of a <i>fool</i>, and
-to betray my conscience in hope of preferment, were but the part of a
-<i>knave</i>; and if I had neither hope of heaven, nor fear of hell, I would
-rather die an honest man, than live a fool or knave." It was hard to
-crush or to ensnare any one who was made of this kind of mettle; and
-this person, whose name was Balsom, after being delivered from the
-halter, went on preaching to the Royalist garrison, declaring&mdash;"While
-I have a tongue to speak and people to hear, I will not hold my
-peace."<a name="FNanchor_546_546" id="FNanchor_546_546"></a><a href="#Footnote_546_546" class="fnanchor">[546]</a></p>
-
-
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Sufferings of the Clergy.</i></div>
-
-<p>But all Puritans did not adopt the political cause of the Parliament.
-Some, though incensed at the conduct of Archbishop Laud, still clung to
-the fortunes of King Charles. They would never wear a surplice, they
-would never make the sign of the cross; but at any time they would
-cheerfully die for their sovereign and their country. Such individuals
-suffered from the Parliament army almost as much as their brethren
-did from the Royalists. The Rector of Okerton,<a name="FNanchor_547_547" id="FNanchor_547_547"></a><a href="#Footnote_547_547" class="fnanchor">[547]</a> whose reverence
-for the Crown was equalled by his dislike to ceremonialism, was four
-times pillaged by troops of Roundheads, was twice sent to prison,
-and was reduced<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_433" id="Page_433">[433]</a></span> to such straits that he had to borrow a shirt.<a name="FNanchor_548_548" id="FNanchor_548_548"></a><a href="#Footnote_548_548" class="fnanchor">[548]</a>
-Cases also occurred in which ministers disapproved of an appeal to
-arms altogether. A clergyman, who would not keep any days of public
-fasting and thanksgiving&mdash;because, as he said, he would not give
-thanks to God for one man killing another&mdash;was persecuted on that
-account, and was sent to prison by the governor of Boston for keeping
-a conventicle. So all drank of the sorrow-cup by turns; it being
-handed sometimes by one man to another, when both of them were alike
-Puritans. Walker has collected numerous instances of hardship suffered
-by the Royalist clergy during the wars. A distinction is to be made
-between the extravagant statements and vituperative remarks in the
-first part of his most uncharitable book, and such anecdotes as are
-related on the authority of correspondents in the second part. These
-latter partake of a legendary character, and are doubtless coloured
-highly by their authors; but there is no reason why we should discredit
-them altogether; and it is very interesting and instinctive to compare
-them with the traditions of confessorship on the Nonconformist side.
-Mikepher Alphery, rector of Woolley, in Huntingdonshire, was pulled
-out of his pulpit by a file of musketeers, and lived for a week in
-a booth under the trees of his churchyard; Lewis Alcock, rector of
-North-Stoneham&mdash;who seems to have been a "muscular Christian"&mdash;when
-threatened by the Parliament soldiers, brought his bed down into
-the parlour, and with his gun charged, resolved not to give up his
-parsonage except with his life. Eldard Alvey, of Newcastle, had to
-relinquish everything he possessed, and to provide for the safety
-of himself, wife, and seven children, in the night time, whilst his
-two<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_434" id="Page_434">[434]</a></span> curates were threatened with a pistol-shot, if they did not give
-up reading prayers. Daniel Berry concealed himself under a pile of
-faggots, where his pursuers discovered him by thrusting their swords
-into the heap.<a name="FNanchor_549_549" id="FNanchor_549_549"></a><a href="#Footnote_549_549" class="fnanchor">[549]</a> Other similar cases might be mentioned.</p>
-
-
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Sufferings of the Clergy.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1645.</div>
-
-<p>The largest amount of suffering experienced by the clergy belongs
-to the period when men's passions were exasperated by war. Soldiers
-on both sides were the ministers of vengeance. The fiery excitement
-kindled in the battle-field was carried into peaceful homes, which
-became identified with the camp; and ministers of religion, pious,
-faithful, and devoted, might be found, who, if they did not privately
-prompt, failed publicly to disapprove of the persecution of their
-brethren. In many of the biographical sketches supplied by Walker,
-no indications of spiritual religion appear on the part of those
-whose livings were sequestered. By some, too, as is evident from
-the instance just cited, the most determined resistance was offered
-to their persecutors. The spirit of the High Churchman during the
-civil wars comes out occasionally in strong contrast with that of the
-Puritan after the Restoration. Yet we cannot doubt but that on the
-Anglican as well as on the Puritan side there were sufferers, who bore
-their Master's cross; that for His<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_435" id="Page_435">[435]</a></span> sake, from loyalty to what they
-conscientiously regarded as His truth, they bravely endured reproach
-and wrong. It is amongst the mysteries of Divine Providence, that holy
-men in this life have to suffer sometimes in a cause which, although
-by themselves accounted good, is by brethren, equally honest, branded
-as evil; and that thus there comes to be, in ecclesiastical conflicts,
-so much pain, at once conscientiously inflicted, and conscientiously
-endured. No calm thinker can fail to discern the anomaly; and no loving
-heart but must long for that blessed future, when the fruits of such
-strange discipline will be reaped by souls now divided on earth, but
-who will then be united in Heaven amidst the purest charity and the
-humblest joy.</p>
-
-<p>Only ignorance of the history of those times can lead any one to
-suppose that the main ecclesiastical questions at issue were settled
-entirely, or even chiefly by the debates of either divines or of
-statesmen. What occurred far away from the Jerusalem Chamber, and
-from St. Stephen's Chapel, had much to do with the proceedings within
-those walls. Naseby fight struck the last blow in the struggle with
-Episcopacy, and by crushing the Royalist party, rendered the cause
-hopeless; and it also, though in a less obvious manner, materially
-affected the fortunes of Presbyterianism, by controlling its excesses,
-and preventing the concession of its inordinate demands.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_436" id="Page_436">[436]</a></span></p></div>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="illo436" >
- <img
- class="p0"
- src="images/illo436.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XX.</h2>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">The Naseby triumph was won, not by the Scotch army, or by the English
-Presbyterian generals, but chiefly by Cromwell and his Independent
-Ironsides. They sustained the hottest brunt of the battle, their
-charges bore down the brilliant cavaliers; and they, therefore,
-claimed the greenest laurels reaped on that memorable field. They had
-become the sworn opponents of the men who were so busy in laying the
-corner-stones of the new ecclesiastical establishment. Jealousy of
-Presbyterian power was an influence which, combined with a disapproval
-of the mode of carrying on the war, produced the self-denying
-ordinance, by which certain officers of that persuasion were removed
-from command. Not that Cromwell and others had any great distaste
-for Presbyterianism considered in itself, since in doctrinal tenets
-and religious feeling they agreed with the Genevan school; but with
-the exclusiveness and intolerance of its ecclesiastical polity they
-were at issue: and they were determined that, while they had tongues
-to speak and hands to fight, they would not allow a Presbyterian any
-more than an Episcopal Church to trample upon the liberties of other
-denominations. They had fought for religious freedom as their own
-right, and were<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_437" id="Page_437">[437]</a></span> prepared to concede it, with certain limitations,
-to their brethren; nor would they now, in the hour of their success,
-surrender the prize for which they had fought and bled. As the Naseby
-heroes assumed an attitude of resolute opposition to the Presbyterians,
-the effect soon became visible at Westminster.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Unpopularity of the Scotch Army.</i></div>
-
-<p>New elections contributed to alter the relative position of these
-parties. New writs were issued by the Speaker of the House of Commons,
-in August, to fill up vacant seats. Before the end of the year, one
-hundred and forty-six fresh members took the oath; and within twelve
-months eighty-nine more did the same, amongst whom were Blake, Ludlow,
-Algernon Sidney, Ireton, Skippon, Massey, and Hutchinson.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1645.</div>
-
-<p>There was another cause at work in the same direction. The Scotch army
-had been the main pillar of Presbyterian hope. In almost every letter
-which the indefatigable Robert Baillie wrote home to his friends this
-fact appears. No doubt, in the simplicity of his heart, and without any
-consciousness of inconsistency, he could stand up in any Edinburgh or
-London pulpit and take for his text, "The weapons of our warfare are
-not carnal;" and yet, no man was more filled with the idea that the
-success of Presbyterianism in England depended upon Scotch soldiers.
-To take one instance from a sheaf of quotations. "If by any means we
-would get these our regiments, which are called near thirty, to sixteen
-thousand marching men, by the blessing of God, in a short time we might
-ruin both the malignant party and the sectaries. The only strength
-of both these is the weakness of our army. The strength, motion, and
-success of that army, in the opinion of all here, is their certain and
-quick ruin.... It's our only desire to have the favour of God, and
-to hear of the speedy march of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_438" id="Page_438">[438]</a></span> our army."<a name="FNanchor_550_550" id="FNanchor_550_550"></a><a href="#Footnote_550_550" class="fnanchor">[550]</a> But at the time of
-which we now speak the Scotch soldiers had become very unpopular. Our
-laborious correspondent expostulates with the authorities of his own
-country, not only on the dilatoriness of their military movements, but
-on the demoralized condition of their troops; so that, as he said, if
-justice were not done "on unclean, drunken, blasphemous, plundering
-officers," Scotland would "stink in the nose" of England. He was
-frightened to hear what many told him of ravishers, blasphemers, and
-Sabbath-breakers, being left unpunished. No one could be more zealous
-for the discipline of the forces than he who thus discloses his bad
-opinion of their character and his fear of the ruinous consequences.
-Letters in the State Paper Office indicate what ground there was
-for Baillie's apprehensions. These letters complain of the lawless
-behaviour of Major Blair's men, stationed in Derbyshire, who broke open
-houses, beat women, and robbed the carriers as they came to Winkworth
-market. And so it happened, that while the Scotch Presbyterian army,
-which was meant to be England's saviour, was sinking into had repute,
-Cromwell's Independents were being praised up to the very skies.<a name="FNanchor_551_551" id="FNanchor_551_551"></a><a href="#Footnote_551_551" class="fnanchor">[551]</a></p>
-
-<p>The case stood thus. The Scotch and most of the Presbyterians of the
-Westminster Assembly were, on the one side, for putting down the sects,
-and setting up an ecclesiastical rule which should have government
-support without government direction, and exclude from toleration
-systems different from their own; and on the other side were the
-army, the Erastians, and the Independents, who, differing from each
-other in religious<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_439" id="Page_439">[439]</a></span> opinion and character, were politically united,
-forming an irresistible phalanx, which exhibited as its watchwords
-such mottoes as these: "State Control over a State Church;" "For other
-Churches full Toleration." Two questions had to be decided. Should not
-Presbyterianism, established by the civil power, be subject to the
-interference of that power? Should not freedom of worship and polity be
-allowed to sects dissenting from the Establishment? There was also a
-third&mdash;Was Presbyterianism of Divine right?</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>The Power of the Keys.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1645.</div>
-
-<p>Let us see how the three were handled.</p>
-
-<p>I. The question touching "the Power of the Keys" was debated in the
-Assembly, and then in the House of Commons. According to Presbyterian
-doctrine, the keys of the Kingdom of Heaven were committed to the
-ruling officers of the Church. They had power to call before them any
-member, to enquire into his spiritual state, and to suspend him from
-the Lord's Supper, if found unworthy of communion. Church censures,
-however, while independent of the magistrates' authority as to their
-origin, were, in their execution, if necessary, to be supported by the
-magistrates' assistance. The Independents agreed with the Presbyterians
-thus far, that the most careful order ought to be maintained in the
-Church of Christ; but the Independents contended that discipline was a
-duty pertaining to the congregation at large, and that no individual
-should be set aside, or cut off from Christian privileges, except by the
-votes of the community. At the same time, they excluded all magisterial
-interference, and could not accept of any enforcement of their own
-decisions by legal penalties. The Erastians took a very different
-view, and believed that communion ought to be perfectly open, and that
-it should be left to every man's conscience to decide respecting his
-own fitness for receiv<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_440" id="Page_440">[440]</a></span>ing the Lord's Supper. Crimes only, they said,
-deserved social penalties, and these were to be adjudged by civil
-tribunals. The Presbyterians carried their own point in the Westminster
-Assembly. The keys, contrary to the Independent idea, were to be in the
-hands of Church officers, and not to be held by the congregation at
-large. The keys, contrary to Erastian notions, were to be exclusively
-under spiritual, not at all under civil control.</p>
-
-<p>When this question passed from the Assembly to the Commons, and the
-time came for deciding the matter, the conclusion of the Assembly
-was annulled. The House determined, that if any person found himself
-aggrieved by the proceedings of a Presbytery, he might not only appeal
-to a superior Church tribunal, but he might bring his case for final
-adjudication before the High Court of Parliament. Criminal charges were
-reserved entirely for the magistrates' decision, whose certificate was
-necessary for the suspension of offenders. A committee of Lords and
-Commons also had vested in them a discretionary power to adjudge any
-cases of scandal unspecified in the rules for suspension which had been
-drawn up by the Assembly.<a name="FNanchor_552_552" id="FNanchor_552_552"></a><a href="#Footnote_552_552" class="fnanchor">[552]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>The Power of the Keys.</i></div>
-
-<p>The Erastians, who were at this time the leaders of the political
-Independent party in the House of Commons, thus defeated their
-opponents. By fixing the control of ecclesiastical judicature in
-the civil magistracy and in Parliament, they established their own
-distinctive principle, which was utterly subversive of the polity
-advocated by the Presbyterians. The Church was altogether degraded from
-its position as a kingdom not of this world; and also discipline became
-so fettered, that in many cases its exercise proved to be impossible.
-The<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_441" id="Page_441">[441]</a></span> rules prepared by the Assembly, and sanctioned by the Commons,
-appeared sufficiently formidable to fence the Lord's table against the
-approach of improper communicants; yet the very minute specification of
-sundry offences, as in all cases of precise canon law, really presented
-an obstacle in the way of discipline respecting unspecified offences
-against morality and religion. All such minute rules are inherently
-vicious, and are singularly out of harmony with New Testament methods
-of legislation. Moreover, the interference of magistrates and of
-senatorial committees were likely to render these rules inoperative;
-and in cases which the rules did not reach, such interference was not
-calculated to produce ecclesiastical purity.</p>
-
-<p>One object of the Presbyterians was the establishment of a Church of
-incorrupt religion and of undefiled morality. The Puritan Presbyter
-resembled the Anglican Archbishop as an apostle of uniformity; but
-the former thought much more of moral reformation, and much less of
-ritual worship, than the latter. The Church discipline of Presbyterian
-courts came nearer to the Church discipline of Archdiaconal ones than
-many people suppose; but what is truly moral and religious was raised
-by Presbyterians above what is ceremonial in a measure far beyond the
-conception of Romanists or Anglo-Catholics. The old ecclesiastical
-courts were overturned, many cases of immorality were no longer subject
-to jurisdiction; and Presbyterians, who, like Anglicans, treated the
-nation as a Church, aimed by their own system to supply what they
-considered a great defect in the moral government of the people.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1645.</div>
-
-<p>The English Presbyterians essayed to walk in the path of their Scotch
-brethren; and the general conviction of the latter as to the divinity
-of that system must be borne<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_442" id="Page_442">[442]</a></span> in mind. Amongst an equal number of
-persons, where one man in England believed prelacy to be a divine
-institution, a dozen might be found in Scotland, who were not only
-assured that their Church rested upon the foundation of apostles and
-prophets, but were resolved also, in its defence, to go to prison,
-to the gallows, or to the stake. Church power bore in their eyes the
-stamp of Heaven, and owed nothing to Acts and Ordinances of Parliament.
-In Scotland, the Reformation had not been, as in England, mainly the
-revolt of the laity against the clergy. The clergy had led the way,
-like a grand prophet choir, they had headed the host. They had been
-in the van as the nation marched out of Egypt; and Moses did not more
-rejoice over Pharaoh than John Knox had done over the Man of Sin. Some
-will say there was plenty of fanaticism in the Reformation on the
-other side the Tweed; but it must be admitted that there was certainly
-no time-serving. Braver men never trod God's earth; and the sons now
-brought some of their fathers' fire over the border.</p>
-
-<p>But, however admirable the purpose of the Presbyterians might be, the
-means employed for its accomplishment were inappropriate, dangerous,
-and unjust. They were <i>inappropriate</i>, because purity of discipline
-has ever been found impossible in a State establishment, whether it
-be the superior, the ally, or the subordinate of the civil power; for
-a Church which comprehends, or is meant to comprehend, a whole nation
-within its pale, must necessarily be open to great laxity of communion.
-The means, too, were <i>dangerous</i>, because to vest the power of
-discipline, entailing civil consequences, in a body of local officers,
-was to place the social position and interests of individuals at the
-mercy of a few in their own parish, who possibly might be induced
-by unworthy motives to give trouble and annoyance. And the means<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_443" id="Page_443">[443]</a></span>
-also were <i>unjust</i>, because the penal enforcement of uniformity in
-doctrine, worship, and polity, contravened the rights of conscience,
-and deprived all Nonconformists of religious liberty. It was not on
-the side of opposition to strict discipline and pure fellowship that
-religious Independents had any sympathy with the Erastians in their
-anti-Presbyterian warfare. Most earnestly did the former inculcate
-the importance of these very things, and, for the sake of them, were
-prepared to sacrifice many temporal advantages. What they objected
-to was, first, the secular power which the new Church wished to
-manage and employ for its own purposes; and secondly, the intolerance
-towards rival sects with which the supremacy of that Church would be
-connected. The Independents maintained, what wise and thoughtful men,
-though widely removed from Erastian tendencies, have ever since done,
-that if there be an Establishment at all, it is far better that the
-State should be mistress of the Church than that the Church should be
-mistress of the State. No doubt, the political alliance between the
-Erastian and the Independent damaged somewhat the apparent consistency
-of the latter; but in this respect, as to what he suffered, he only
-shared in the common fate of religious persons when entering into
-political combinations; and as to what he did, he only acted like many
-individuals since of eminent conscientiousness; for in fact he was glad
-of help, from whatever quarter it might come, in his endeavours to
-prevent despotism and to resist intolerance.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Toleration.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1645.</div>
-
-<p>II. The question of the keys, if it did not exactly involve, certainly
-approached the question of <i>toleration</i>. At any rate, Church
-censures, when left to the presbytery of a parish, gave little hope
-of religious liberty being conceded to the parishioners. But, beyond
-mere implication and probable contingency, there existed the fact that
-the Pres<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_444" id="Page_444">[444]</a></span>byterian regarded the suppression of opinions and usages
-contrary to his own as an inexorable obligation. In addition to the
-legal enactment of discipline, he asked power to punish sectaries.
-The ministers were ardent in endeavouring to prove the magistrates'
-duty to put down heresy and schism. It formed the theme of numerous
-sermons preached in St. Margaret's to the House of Commons. The City
-Divines, in their weekly meetings at Sion College, debated upon the
-best method of securing that end. The zealots of the party would, if
-possible, have moved the Corporation of London to throw its influence
-into their scale; but, just then, certain political complications
-checked the movement, and deep lamentations over the faithless
-citizens immediately ensued. So far did some of the Londoners go in
-this kind of backsliding, that they even spoke of the Assembly being
-dissolved<a name="FNanchor_553_553" id="FNanchor_553_553"></a><a href="#Footnote_553_553" class="fnanchor">[553]</a>&mdash;an extreme measure, which the Lords Say and Wharton,
-in their jealousy of ecclesiastical encroachments upon the liberties
-of the people, had also proposed in the Upper House.<a name="FNanchor_554_554" id="FNanchor_554_554"></a><a href="#Footnote_554_554" class="fnanchor">[554]</a> At the
-same period, books and pamphlets were written by Prynne and others,
-to establish the claims of the new ecclesiastical polity, and the
-righteousness of treating all sectaries as obstinate offenders.<a name="FNanchor_555_555" id="FNanchor_555_555"></a><a href="#Footnote_555_555" class="fnanchor">[555]</a>
-One of their advocates, in the heat of his eloquence, declared,
-"that to let men serve God according to the persuasion of their
-own consciences is to cast out one devil, that seven worse might
-enter."<a name="FNanchor_556_556" id="FNanchor_556_556"></a><a href="#Footnote_556_556" class="fnanchor">[556]</a> The Scotch were too much interested in the subject, and
-took too prominent a part in the settlement of ecclesiastical affairs
-in England, to be silent at this crisis.<a name="FNanchor_557_557" id="FNanchor_557_557"></a><a href="#Footnote_557_557" class="fnanchor">[557]</a> But the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_445" id="Page_445">[445]</a></span> style of the
-letter which they sent to Parliament ruffled the tempers of many of
-the members, though it received at the time a courteous and dignified
-notice; but two months afterwards, when another address of a similar
-character, yet less offensive in style, came from the same quarter, and
-was published without authority, the Houses voted the "papers false and
-scandalous, and, as such, to be burnt by the hand of the hangman."<a name="FNanchor_558_558" id="FNanchor_558_558"></a><a href="#Footnote_558_558" class="fnanchor">[558]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Toleration.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1645.</div>
-
-<p>The Presbyterian advocates, as they insisted upon the excision of
-heresy and schism by the sword of the State, never attempted to do
-so on grounds of political expediency with the idea, that by hunting
-out heresy and schism they would be getting at serpents of treason
-hidden underneath. Very different were the grounds of their policy
-from some selected by the Anglican Church at the Restoration. Fidelity
-to Christ's crown&mdash;pure zeal for His covenant&mdash;were put forth, and
-sincerely felt in a number of cases, as the main, if not the sole,
-motive of the Presbyterian crusade against hated sects. Perhaps
-sometimes Independents and Presbyterians did not clearly understand
-one another. The former might, at times, seem to countenance the moral
-toleration of error and sin, and to be thinking more of liberty than of
-truth. On the other hand, the Presbyterian polemic might sometimes only
-intend to pour out his fiery wrath upon sympathy with falsehood and
-evil when he denounced toleration; but certainly this was not always
-the case, and it may be added that, generally, he prized truth much
-more than liberty. Neither side seemed to discern that the defence of
-freedom in religion must rest simply<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_446" id="Page_446">[446]</a></span> on the <i>civil right</i> of every
-man to pursue his own course, to declare his own opinions, and to act
-according to his own convictions, so long as he does not interfere
-with his neighbours who wish to do the same. We are prepared to judge
-favourably of the motives of the Presbyterians; but if their motives
-in some degree redeem their character, it must be admitted that men
-holding the opinions of toleration which many at least of that party
-did, though they may act under the influence of the best feelings, are
-very dangerous persons to be at the head of public affairs. If, under
-the idea that they have a mission from Heaven for the purpose, and
-with a desire to promote the glory of God, they set to work to gather
-the tares from amidst the wheat, woe be to the culture of the field
-altogether, and to the growth even of the good grain. He who perfectly
-understood this subject interdicted all such interference, no matter
-how pious the intent, and laid down a law which is utterly inconsistent
-with all intolerance&mdash;"Let both grow together to the harvest." After
-His decision on the subject, for any persons, however wise and good in
-other respects, to attempt the extermination of error and evil by the
-scythe of civil penalties, is sheer fanaticism, whether the endeavour
-be made by a Protestant ecclesiastical court or by a Roman Catholic
-inquisition.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Divine Right of Presbyterianism.</i></div>
-
-<p>III. The doctrine of the <i>Divine right of Presbyterianism</i> was bound
-up with its scheme of discipline and its principle of intolerance. The
-majority of the Westminster Assembly would not rest content with the
-establishment of their Church by the simple decree of Parliament. They
-required it to be recognized by the State as <i>of Divine authority</i>. Not
-only did the Presbyterian say that he believed&mdash;which was consistent
-and proper&mdash;that his own system rested upon the teaching of the New<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_447" id="Page_447">[447]</a></span>
-Testament; but he demanded that the highest power in the realm should
-say the same, and enforce its peculiarities, as requirements clothed
-with a celestial sanction. This doctrine the Independents opposed, on
-the ground that they considered their own Church polity to be nearer
-the Word of God. The Erastians also opposed it, because they did not
-believe in the Divine foundation of any ecclesiastical rule at all.
-Both parties alike opposed it on the principle, that if the State chose
-to endow a Church, the State must be left to do so on its own terms.
-In this way it happened, as it often does in controversy, that parties
-proceeding from different and even opposite points, found themselves
-at length side by side, in honest and hearty alliance, so far as
-related to a resistance of common foe. But it should be borne in mind
-that it was not in the character of religionists that Independents and
-Erastians formed their combination, but in the character of patriots
-and politicians, who were agreed in resisting a body of men whose
-success in the advocacy of intolerance they judged would be as inimical
-to the temporal welfare as it would be destructive to the religious
-liberties of the nation.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1645.</div>
-
-<p>There were debates on the <i>jus Divinum</i> in the Assembly, and sterner
-and more important debates on the same subject in the House of Commons.
-The five brethren argued from Scripture for Congregationalism against
-Presbyterianism; and Whitelocke and Selden employed their learning and
-logic to prove that the Bible did not decide the question one way or
-the other. At length a crisis came. The Presbyterians of the Assembly,
-in concert with their Scotch brethren, complained of the Erastian
-clauses in the Parliamentary ordinance for discipline, and asserted
-the Divine right of the scheme of government. The House of Commons
-declared that the Assembly<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_448" id="Page_448">[448]</a></span> had no right to complain of the decision
-of Parliament, since the Divines had been called together simply to
-give advice, and that with giving advice their functions came to an
-end. Members spoke of the penalties of a <i>præmunire</i>, and held up that
-which has been described as the "fatal spell before which spiritual
-pretensions sunk exorcised, mysterious as excommunication and no less
-terrible in its vagueness."<a name="FNanchor_559_559" id="FNanchor_559_559"></a><a href="#Footnote_559_559" class="fnanchor">[559]</a> At the same time, they called on the
-Assembly to answer certain queries as to the nature and extent of the
-<i>jure Divino</i> claim. This was done simply with the view of putting
-off a serious collision with the Assembly. But whatever want of
-earnestness there might be on the side of Parliament in proposing the
-questions, no want of earnestness is seen on the side of the Assembly
-in answering them. Yet, when the replies were ready in July, 1646, the
-Assembly became afraid of a final rupture, and, under the terror of
-a <i>præmunire</i>, abstained from publishing what they had prepared. The
-Divines of Sion College, however, took up the controversy, and would
-have vigorously pursued it, had not Parliament cut short the matter by
-peremptorily insisting that the ordinances issued in March should be
-obeyed. After relieving their consciences by an explanation of their
-views, these reverend persons submitted<a name="FNanchor_560_560" id="FNanchor_560_560"></a><a href="#Footnote_561_561" class="fnanchor">[561]</a> to the authority which
-they found it impossible to resist.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Westminster Assembly.</i></div>
-
-<p>As we shall not have occasion again to notice the Westminster Assembly,
-it is convenient here to conclude its history. No Convocation ever
-sat so long. Gathered in the summer of 1643, it pursued its work till
-the autumn of 1647, when, the main business of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_449" id="Page_449">[449]</a></span> ecclesiastical
-commission being completed, the Scotch members took their leave.
-But from that time up to the winter of 1648-9, a few of the Divines
-continued to examine ministerial candidates; and afterwards a small
-committee met for the same purpose every Thursday morning, even as late
-as the spring of 1652. Upon the breaking-up of the Long Parliament
-by Oliver Cromwell, this appendage silently disappeared without any
-formal dissolution. Neither before nor since did any convocation of
-the Church in England go over so much ground, and accomplish so much
-work. In this respect it rivals the Council of Trent. The whole range
-of dogmatic divinity, together with ecclesiastical polemics, and
-devotional formularies, came under discussion. Notice has been taken
-of the partial revision of the Thirty-nine Articles, of the Directory
-for worship, and of the humble advice for the ordination of ministers,
-and the settling of Presbyterian government. It is almost needless to
-say that the Westminster Divines prepared a confession of faith. A
-committee, including Reynolds, afterwards Bishop of Norwich, drew up
-this document. They divided themselves into sections, each taking a
-specific topic. When a chapter had been fully prepared it was submitted
-to the Assembly, and then again subjected to minute examination,
-sentence by sentence, and word by word. There were long and tough
-debates on the doctrine of election. Neal says, "All the Divines were
-in the anti-Arminian scheme, yet some had a greater latitude than
-others. I find in my MS. the dissent of several members against some
-expressions relating to reprobation, to the imputation of the active
-as well as passive obedience of Christ, and to several passages in
-the chapters of liberty of conscience and Church discipline; but the
-confession, as far as it related<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_450" id="Page_450">[450]</a></span> to articles of faith, passed the
-Assembly and Parliament by a very great majority."<a name="FNanchor_561_561" id="FNanchor_561_561"></a><a href="#Footnote_561_561" class="fnanchor">[561]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643-52.</div>
-
-<p>The confession consists of thirty-three chapters&mdash;the first on the
-Holy Scriptures, the last on the final judgment. The doctrines of
-Calvinism are sharply defined in an order and in a form which many
-theologians of the present day, substantially Calvinistic, cannot
-adopt. Certain chapters, interspersed with the rest&mdash;the twentieth, on
-Christian liberty and liberty of conscience, the thirtieth, on Church
-censures, and the thirty-first, on synods and councils&mdash;plainly exhibit
-the intolerance of the times in connection with the principles of
-Presbyterian government. As everything which the Assembly did had to be
-submitted to Parliament for its sanction, this theological manifesto
-came under the consideration of that supreme court. The doctrinal
-portions were ratified by the two Houses, but the particulars as to
-discipline were "recommitted;" which, under the circumstances, though
-it did not amount to a formal, yet proved a virtual rejection.<a name="FNanchor_562_562" id="FNanchor_562_562"></a><a href="#Footnote_562_562" class="fnanchor">[562]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Westminster Assembly.</i></div>
-
-<p>Two catechisms, the longer and the shorter, were also prepared at
-Westminster,&mdash;the last of which, with its scripture proofs, was much
-more familiar to the children of Nonconformists in past generations
-than in the present. The Annotations which bear the name of the
-Assembly<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_451" id="Page_451">[451]</a></span> were, in fact, the production of a committee appointed by
-Parliament, including learned men who never belonged to the Assembly
-at all. The Assembly also undertook the revision of psalmody, which
-has obtained less notice than it deserves. Congregations were getting
-tired of Sternhold and Hopkins; consequently Parliament recommended
-there should be a new version. One, by Mr. Rouse, found favour with the
-Commons, and was submitted to the consideration of the Divines, who,
-after a careful perusal and some emendations, pronounced it "profitable
-to the Church, should it be publicly sung." But Mr. Rouse had a rival
-in Mr. Barton, who likewise had prepared a new psalter. He petitioned
-the Lords in favour of his own work, and obtained their patronage. They
-passed a resolution, enquiring of the Divines why Mr. Barton's book
-might not be used as well as others? The Lower House soon afterwards
-decided that Mr. Rouse's psalms and no others should be sung in all
-churches and chapels within the kingdom of England, the dominion of
-Wales, and the town of Berwick-upon-Tweed. The Assembly, in answer to
-the queries of the House of Lords, replied that, if liberty should
-be given to people to sing whatever translation they liked, several
-different books would be used even in one and the same congregation
-at the same time, "which would be a great distraction and hindrance
-to edification." This was such an extraordinary contingency, that
-to contemplate it as at all probable, indicated the existence of an
-astonishing amount of disunion and obstinacy. It is a significant fact
-that, whilst in the Episcopal Church of England, after the imposition
-of the Prayer Book, the choice of a form of psalmody was left to the
-discretion of the clergy and their congregations, the Presbyterians,
-when in power, would not allow such liberty, but endeavoured to secure<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_452" id="Page_452">[452]</a></span>
-uniformity in the worship of praise, such as in the worship of prayer
-they did not even permit.<a name="FNanchor_563_563" id="FNanchor_563_563"></a><a href="#Footnote_563_563" class="fnanchor">[563]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643-52.</div>
-
-<p>The Westminster Assembly has seldom been treated with justice. By
-Episcopal Churchmen, too generally, it is depreciated; and by some
-it is dismissed with a few words of unconcealed contempt. Scotch
-Presbyterians have extravagantly extolled it; and Neal, the Independent
-historian of Puritanism is accused of damning it with faint praise.
-Clarendon speaks of the Assembly in words of scorn; and Walker, still
-more deeply prejudiced, writes against it with wearisome vituperation.
-Milton, who had incurred the censure of the Divines by his doctrine
-of divorce, could not be expected to pronounce an equitable judgment
-on their merits; and we do not wonder at the resentment which burns
-against his censurers through certain magnificently sonorous sentences
-in the third book of his History of England.<a name="FNanchor_564_564" id="FNanchor_564_564"></a><a href="#Footnote_564_564" class="fnanchor">[564]</a> Baxter's words have
-been often quoted on this subject, and though not free from partiality,
-they deserve more than those of any other man to be repeated: "The
-Divines, there congregate, were men of eminent learning and godliness,
-and ministerial abilities and fidelity; and being not worthy to be one
-of them myself, I may the more freely speak that truth which I know,
-even in the face of malice and envy, that, as far as I am able to
-judge by the information of all history of that kind, and by any other
-evidences left us, the Christian world, since the days of the apostles,
-had never a synod of more excellent Divines (taking one thing with
-another) than this synod and the synod of Dort were."<a name="FNanchor_565_565" id="FNanchor_565_565"></a><a href="#Footnote_565_565" class="fnanchor">[565]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_453" id="Page_453">[453]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Westminster Assembly.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1643-52.</div>
-
-<p>This is high praise; but it comes nearer to the truth than the
-condemnatory verdicts pronounced by some others. The godliness of the
-men is proved by the spirit of their writings, and by the history of
-their lives. Their talents and attainments even Milton does not attempt
-to deny. No one would think of comparing any of them with Jeremy Taylor
-in point of eloquence; and in breadth of sacred learning, in a certain
-skilful mastery of knowledge, and in the majesty and grace of polemical
-argument, the best were not equal to Hammond and Pearson. Cosin would
-surpass them all in some branches of study, which they would account
-useless. Certainly, none of them had the sagacious quaintness of Bishop
-Hall, or the inexhaustible wit of Thomas Fuller; but quaintness and
-wit are qualities not needed in theological conferences. Even superior
-eloquence and large accomplishments may, in such case, be dispensed
-with. The Westminster Divines had learning&mdash;scriptural, patristic,
-scholastical, and modern&mdash;enough, and to spare; all solid, substantial,
-and ready for use.<a name="FNanchor_566_566" id="FNanchor_566_566"></a><a href="#Footnote_566_566" class="fnanchor">[566]</a> Lightfoot and Selden were of ponderous but not
-unwieldy erudition; and Arrowsmith and Calamy, though less known to
-literary fame, were ripe and ready scholars. Caryl and Greenhill had
-abundance of knowledge; Dr. Goodwin was, in many respects, the greatest
-Divine amongst them all. Moreover, in the perception and advocacy of
-what is most characteristic and fundamental in the Gospel of Jesus
-Christ, they were, as a body, considerably in advance of some who could
-put in a claim<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_454" id="Page_454">[454]</a></span> to equal, and perhaps higher scholarship. They had a
-clear, firm grasp of evangelical truths. The main defect and the chief
-reproach of the Assembly consisted in the narrowness and severity of
-their Calvinism, and in the fierce and persistent spirit of intolerance
-manifested by the majority.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_455" id="Page_455">[455]</a></span></p></div>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="illo455" >
- <img
- class="p0"
- src="images/illo455.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XXI.</h2>
-
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">The new modelling of the army was a necessary measure, and produced a
-very great moral improvement. Even Hampden had spoken of the insolence
-of the soldiers, and, after the fall of Reading, complaints of their
-conduct reached the Earl of Essex. It was declared that they had grown
-"outrageous," and that they were "common plunderers." According to
-report, they had ransacked five or six gentlemen's houses in a single
-morning. In fact, the Roundheads, in some instances, had grown to be
-as odious as the Cavaliers; and, without better discipline, they were
-threatening to prove a ruin, rather than "a remedy to this distracted
-kingdom." Having claimed an independence incompatible with military
-subjection, these volunteers needed a thorough re-organization, such
-as was accomplished by the new model. Fairfax, in his first march
-after the reform had commenced, resolved on "the punishment of former
-disorders, and the prevention of future misdemeanours." Offenders were
-tried and justice was summarily executed. A "renegado" was hanged <i>in
-terrorem</i> upon a tree at Wallop, in Hampshire, as certain troops were
-marching through that parish; and the next day a proclamation was
-issued, threatening with death any one who should<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_456" id="Page_456">[456]</a></span> dare to commit any
-act of plunder. There is no reason to doubt the testimony of Joshua
-Sprigg, Fairfax's chaplain, that a moral reformation ensued upon the
-adoption of the new military constitution, and that the men became
-"generally constant, and conscientious in duties; and by such soberness
-and strictness conquered much upon the vanity and looseness of the
-enemy."</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1646.</div>
-
-<p>But the state of religion chiefly concerns us. If the church at Oxford
-had been turned into a Royalist camp, the camp of Fairfax and Cromwell
-might now be said to be turned into a Republican Church. Not that there
-existed any organized ecclesiastical government, or any uniformity of
-worship; but, according to the authority just quoted, "the officers,
-many of them, with their soldiery, were much in prayer and reading
-Scripture," an exercise which before they had "used but little." "Men
-conquer better," adds the chaplain, "as they are saints than soldiers;
-and in the countries where they came they left something of God as well
-as of Cæsar behind them&mdash;something of piety as well as pay."<a name="FNanchor_567_567" id="FNanchor_567_567"></a><a href="#Footnote_567_567" class="fnanchor">[567]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Religion in the Camp.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1646.</div>
-
-<p>Richard Baxter spent some time with the army, and has largely recorded
-his opinion of its condition. He found that an "abundance of the
-common troopers," and that many of the officers were honest, sober,
-and orthodox; but he complains of a few proud, hot-headed sectaries,
-amongst Cromwell's chief favourites, who by their "heat and activity
-bore down the rest, or carried them along with them." Baxter, with
-all his large-hearted charity, was not free from prejudice with
-regard to this subject, and his accounts of the "sectaries" must
-therefore be received with caution. He tells us they were hard upon
-the Presbyterian ministers, putting some gall into their<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_457" id="Page_457">[457]</a></span> wit, calling
-them "priest-byters, dry-vines, and the dissembly men." Honest
-soldiers of weak judgments, and little theological knowledge, were
-seduced into a disputing vein, sometimes for state democracy, and
-sometimes for church democracy, sometimes against forms of prayer,
-and sometimes against infant baptism,&mdash;sometimes against set times
-of prayer and the binding themselves to any duty before the Spirit
-moved them, and sometimes about free grace and free will, "and all the
-points of Antinomianism and Arminianism." We are by this reminded of
-the description of the Eastern Church by Gregory, of Nyssa. He tells
-us that knots of people at the street corners of Constantinople were
-discussing incomprehensibilities; in the market-place money-changers
-and shopkeepers were similarly employed. When a man was asked how
-many <i>oboli</i> a thing cost, he started a discussion upon generated and
-ungenerated existence. Enquiries of a baker about bread were answered
-by the assertion&mdash;that the Father is greater than the Son. When
-anybody wanted a bath, the reply was, the Son of God was created from
-nothing.<a name="FNanchor_568_568" id="FNanchor_568_568"></a><a href="#Footnote_568_568" class="fnanchor">[568]</a> With some allowance for the extravagance of the satire,
-and with a change of terms to suit the Commonwealth controversies, the
-description of his countrymen by the Greek preacher may be applied
-to many of the soldiers of the new-modelled army. Here a field
-opened for controversy, adapted to Baxter's subtle and debate-loving
-nature. Honest as the day, with a passionate desire to reform the
-army, he went from tent to tent, with the Bible under his arm, whilst
-his eyes flashed with fire burning in the very depths of his soul.
-Everybody who knows the man will believe him when he says: "I was
-almost<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_458" id="Page_458">[458]</a></span> always, when I had opportunity, disputing with one or other
-of them, sometimes for our civil government, and sometimes for church
-order and government, sometimes for infant baptism, and oft against
-Antinomianism and the contrary extreme." Well armed with theological
-weapons, he was as much in his element with "the sword of the Spirit,"
-cutting down regiments of ghostly errors, as any pikeman or trooper
-could be as he was stabbing an enemy or firing a pistol at his breast.
-Baxter particularly records an encounter he had at Amersham. Bethel's
-troopers, with other sectarian soldiers, accompanied by some of the
-inhabitants of Chesham, had a pitched battle with the Presbyterian
-Divine. He occupied the reading pew, and his antagonists, "Pitchford's
-cornet and troopers," took their place in the gallery: the church being
-filled "with poor, well-meaning people, that came in the simplicity of
-their hearts to be deceived." The debate went on till nightfall; Baxter
-stopping to the very last, lest his retirement should be construed into
-a confession of defeat.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Religion in the Camp.</i></div>
-
-<p>It is remarkable that this champion of orthodoxy assures us that he
-found nearly one half of the religious party either sound in their
-belief, or only slightly tinged with error; and that the other half
-consisted of honest men, who, with kindly and patient help, seemed
-likely to be recovered from their theological mistakes. There were, in
-his judgment, only a few fiery spirits, and they made all the noise
-and bustle. One of the heaviest charges which he brings against the
-sectaries will, in the present day, redound to their honour; for he
-observes: "Their most frequent and vehement disputes were for liberty
-of conscience, as they called it, that is, that the civil magistrate
-had nothing to do to determine anything in matters of religion, by
-constraint or restraint, but every<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_459" id="Page_459">[459]</a></span> man might not only hold, but
-preach and do, in matters of religion, what he pleased&mdash;that the civil
-magistrate hath nothing to do but with civil things, to keep the peace,
-and protect the Churches, liberties."<a name="FNanchor_569_569" id="FNanchor_569_569"></a><a href="#Footnote_569_569" class="fnanchor">[569]</a> In short, it appears that
-the Roundhead army really contained a set of men who anticipated John
-Locke's doctrine of toleration, and something more.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1646.</div>
-
-<p>The chaplain of Fairfax was Joshua Sprigg, an Independent minister,
-already mentioned. Breathing the spirit then prevalent in the camp,
-he advocated the toleration of extreme opinions; but does not appear
-himself to have been a man of extravagant views. His history of the
-army is creditable to his intelligence and judgment; and, though
-tinctured with the peculiar rhetoric of the day, it is singularly free
-from all fanaticism. Another Independent Divine holding a chaplaincy
-under General Fairfax was the celebrated John Owen. The General had
-his head quarters for a time at Coggeshall, where Owen officiated as
-vicar, and in 1648 he preached before his Excellency and the Committee
-two sermons, which are published.<a name="FNanchor_570_570" id="FNanchor_570_570"></a><a href="#Footnote_570_570" class="fnanchor">[570]</a> They commemorate the surrender
-of Colchester, and the deliverance at Rumford; and with an oratorical
-flourish, which has been severely criticised,&mdash;but which really means
-nothing more than that Providence had given success to the arms of
-the Parliament&mdash;the preacher speaks of the God of Marston Moor. The
-accommodation of the passage in Habakkuk&mdash;"God came from Naseby,
-and the Holy One from the West; His glory covered the heavens, and
-the earth was full of His praise," is less defensible&mdash;though the
-excitement of the moment, the flush of victory, and the aspect of a
-military<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_460" id="Page_460">[460]</a></span> audience, may be allowed to mitigate our censure of Owen's
-want of taste on the occasion;&mdash;and taste is hardly to be looked for in
-a military preacher, amidst the throes of a revolution full of fire and
-blood. The martial zeal appearing in some parts of these discourses is
-only a specimen of what blazed up much more fiercely in the addresses
-of other ministers who fulfilled their vocation in garrisons and tented
-fields. What must some of the sermons have been, where there was not
-Owen's learning, judgment, and devoutness to check the orator! And
-let us not here omit to remark, that Owen was true to the principle
-which was the guiding star of the new army, and insisted strongly in
-these sermons upon the iniquity of persecuting men for religion. In
-this respect there were few, if any, of the religious teachers popular
-amongst Cromwell's troops, who did not sympathize with the Coggeshall
-Divine.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Religion in the Camp.</i></div>
-
-<p>It is useless to pick out the names of chaplains now unknown. Many of
-them, no doubt, if we were fully acquainted with their history, would
-be found more respectable and worthy men than were others whom we see
-thrown conspicuously on the surface, to attain by no means an enviable
-notoriety. Hugh Peters is chief of this class. He certainly must have
-been a man of considerable ability to have gained the influence which
-he possessed; and in earlier life he could have been no worse than
-a coarse but energetic preacher, followed by crowds of the common
-people. Escaping to Rotterdam to avoid persecution, he became colleague
-with the learned Dr. William Ames in the pastorate of an Independent
-Church.<a name="FNanchor_571_571" id="FNanchor_571_571"></a><a href="#Footnote_571_571" class="fnanchor">[571]</a> The man<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_461" id="Page_461">[461]</a></span> bore a good reputation then, and, it is said,
-procured £30,000 for the relief of the Irish poor. He also visited New
-England, and for a long time after his return did not give up the idea
-of going back to America. In Sprigg's "History of the Army," Peters,
-who early became a military chaplain, is introduced repeatedly as a
-messenger to Parliament with tidings of victory, for which he received
-handsome rewards. A chaplain might have been better employed than in
-conveying messages of this nature, yet such an occupation was not so
-unsuitable to his sacred character as some other employments in which
-he was engaged; for it is related of him that he acted as a recruiting
-officer in market towns, entered into treaty with Royalist commanders
-for the surrender of garrisons, and even acted as a general of brigade
-against the Irish rebels.<a name="FNanchor_572_572" id="FNanchor_572_572"></a><a href="#Footnote_572_572" class="fnanchor">[572]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1646.</div>
-
-<p>Another individual, less known to posterity, who combined the offices
-of chaplain and captain, was Thomas Palmer, of Nottingham, the account
-of whom by Lucy Hutchinson gives us an insight into a kind of character
-then very common. He had a bold, ready, earnest way of preaching, and
-lived holily and regularly as to outward conversation, whereby he
-obtained a great reputation,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_462" id="Page_462">[462]</a></span> which swelled his vainglorious, covetous,
-contentious, and ambitious spirit. He had insinuated himself so far as
-to make these godly men desire him for their captain, which he had more
-vehement longing after than they, yet would have it believed that the
-honour was rather forced upon him. Being at that time in the castle
-with his family, he came to the governor and his wife, telling them
-that these honest people pressed him very much to be their captain, and
-desiring advice on the subject. They freely told him, that, as he held
-a charge of another kind, they thought it not fit for him to engage in
-this new one, and that he might equally advance the public service and
-satisfy the men who made the request by marching with them simply in
-the character of chaplain. He went away, she said, confused, observing
-that he would endeavour to persuade them to be content; but afterwards
-he informed her that they would not be otherwise satisfied, and so he
-was forced to accept the commission.<a name="FNanchor_573_573" id="FNanchor_573_573"></a><a href="#Footnote_573_573" class="fnanchor">[573]</a></p>
-
-<p>Allowing for the lady's prejudices, her story of Palmer may be admitted
-in the main; and we may add that, in another part of her narrative,
-she mentions four hundred people, whereof "more than half were high
-malignants, who enlisted under one Mr. Coates, a minister and a godly
-man."</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Religion in the Camp.</i></div>
-
-<p>John Saltmarsh, another of the army chaplains, was a somewhat different
-character. He must have been a man of irreproachable spirit, for,
-according to a report preserved by Anthony Wood, "he always preached
-the bonds of love and peace, praying that that might be the cord
-to unite Christians in unity." "He meddled not in the pulpit with
-Presbytery and Independency," but only "laboured<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_463" id="Page_463">[463]</a></span> to draw the soul
-from sin to Christ."<a name="FNanchor_574_574" id="FNanchor_574_574"></a><a href="#Footnote_574_574" class="fnanchor">[574]</a> Yet strange stories are told of him. He had
-visions just before his death. He visited Windsor Castle, where he
-refused to take off his hat to Fairfax and Cromwell, because, he said,
-the Lord was angry with them for committing the saints to prison. After
-administering reproof which was equally distinguished by faithfulness
-and fanaticism, he took his leave, remarking that he had finished
-his errand and must depart never to see the army any more. Returning
-home, cheerful and in health, to his wife at Ilford, he told her he
-had finished his course and must go to his Father; and then lying down
-immediately afterwards upon his bed, he died quietly the next day.
-These facts taken together indicate a disturbed condition of the brain
-just as the soul was about to shake off its mortal coil. But on turning
-to Saltmarsh's "Sparkles of Glory, or Some Beams of the Morning Star,"
-the only book which we have read of his, we notice in it some of the
-clearest expositions of religious liberty which can be found in the
-literature of those times. The spirit of the treatise is singularly
-beautiful, and the teaching of such a man must have been of a healing
-tendency. It is very true he undervalued the baptism of water, and
-depreciated all outward ceremonies&mdash;in fact, entertained many opinions
-in common with Quakers; but he had an intense craving after spiritual
-unity, believing that he found God in lower as well as in higher
-things, in purer as well<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_464" id="Page_464">[464]</a></span> as in more corrupt administrations, and
-expressing "his tenderness and respect towards Episcopalians at home
-and abroad, though he did not approve of their forms." A mystical
-element pervades his books, strongly reminding us of John Tauler; and
-that person is to be pitied who can read the writings of such men
-without deriving interest and edification. Each exhibits an imaginative
-mind, striving eagerly to catch glimpses of the infinite and eternal,
-united to a tremulously sensitive heart, which reacts on the intellect
-and electrically touches it, so as to make every idea quiver with
-emotion. There was an abundance of mysticism in the Parliamentary camp;
-it might and did run into phantasies; but beneath much of what some
-keen men of the world would ridicule as jargon and absurdity, there may
-be felt the pulsations of the old patriarch's desire, "O that I knew
-where I might find <span class="smcap">Him</span>!"</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1646.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Religion in the Camp.</i></div>
-
-<p>The religion of the camp, in which Fairfax and Cromwell had the rule,
-will not be fully understood unless we notice the ministrations of
-those officers who became theological teachers, although they claimed
-no clerical character. By them indeed the distinction between clergy
-and laity was quite broken down. Cromwell, Harrison, Berry, and others,
-preached and prayed in a manner esteemed by many of the soldiers more
-edifying than that of some Presbyterian, or even some Independent
-clergymen. It would be idle to judge of them by rules applicable to
-the arrangements of a standing army of the present day; although few
-now would object to religious efforts for the welfare of soldiers
-such as were employed by the late lamented General Havelock. But,
-nobody can deny that fondness for preaching became a monomania in the
-Parliamentary army. It led to inflammatory harangues, and also to dry
-and distressing diatribes. Ninety-seven<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_465" id="Page_465">[465]</a></span> divisions might be numbered
-in discourses by these sermonizing majors.<a name="FNanchor_575_575" id="FNanchor_575_575"></a><a href="#Footnote_575_575" class="fnanchor">[575]</a> A preference for the
-style of preaching peculiar to such persons, or a prejudice in favour
-of doublet and cuirass over Genevan cloak and bands, or a belief in
-current scandals touching the parochial clergy, made the Roundhead
-soldiers at times disgracefully impatient under the preaching of
-regular ministers:&mdash;as, for example, when Captain Pretty, at Taunton,
-"with much admirable incivility," commanded the Presbyterian, Master
-Shepherd, to come down from the pulpit, publicly charging him with a
-"disorderlie walk."</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1646.</div>
-
-<p>Thank God, by the side of this fanatical folly, and even mixed up with
-it, there may be discovered also much of honest devotion and Christian
-morality. In many a military assembly during the civil wars, gathered
-in town or country church&mdash;or under some canvas roof in the midst of
-a camp&mdash;or in the open air by the hill-side&mdash;or in the depth of a
-valley&mdash;or upon a village green&mdash;or under the shadow of a secluded
-grove&mdash;where some unlettered soldier preached the gospel and prayed
-with his comrades&mdash;though there might be not a little to shock a
-cultivated taste, there would be very much more which was acceptable to
-Him who is a Spirit, and who overlooks much which is annoying to us, if
-men do but worship Him in spirit and in truth. Favourably would these
-simple and irregular forms compare with more orderly and imposing modes
-of religious service in cathedrals and churches and chapels,</p>
-
-<p>
-"Where men display to congregations wide,
-Devotion's every grace except the heart."
-</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_466" id="Page_466">[466]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Those who fought at Marston Moor and Naseby could not have cultivated
-so much communion with the Invisible as they did, without thereby
-gaining strength for carrying the daily burdens and fighting the common
-battles of human life. There is hardly more of poetry than of truth in
-the picture of a Puritan trooper with his helmet on the ground, and his
-sword-belt unfastened, sitting by his tent door in the heat of the day,
-to talk with the angels of God, whom faith in the well-worn book on his
-knee had enabled him to behold:&mdash;or, of another veteran of the same
-class, the night before a great battle, with clasped hands, looking up
-to the bright stars, seeking by prayer the help which he needed from
-the God above them. And all this kind of experience must have made such
-people not only better soldiers, but better men. It might not correct
-those obliquities of vision with which they regarded the character of
-their own cause, and the conduct of its enemies; but, where the great
-questions of the day did not interfere with their judgment and their
-will, prayer and the Bible helped to make them what it was their duty
-to be in the common relationships of human life, in their neighbourly
-charities, and in their habitual behaviour as fathers and husbands,
-as brothers and sons, as friends and citizens. We are convinced that
-multitudes of those who fought for the liberties of their country in
-the civil wars, were not the contemptible fanatics which they are
-frequently represented as being, but noble-hearted men, of whom the
-world was not worthy, and England may well be proud.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Religion in the Camp.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1646.</div>
-
-<p>Some years afterwards, Whitelocke, the Commonwealth Ambassador to
-Christina of Sweden, had a curious conversation with her Majesty,
-respecting the religion of the army. "I have been told," said the
-Queen, "that many officers of your army will themselves pray and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_467" id="Page_467">[467]</a></span>
-preach to the soldiers; is that true?" Whitelocke replied, "Yes, madam,
-it is very true. When their enemies are swearing, or debauching, or
-pillaging, the officers and soldiers of the Parliament's army used
-to be encouraging and exhorting one another out of the Word of God,
-and praying together to the Lord of Hosts for His blessing to be with
-them; who hath shewed His approbation of this military preaching by
-the successes He hath given them." "That's well. Do you use to do so,
-too?" asked the Queen. "Yes," said the Ambassador, "upon some occasions
-in my own family, and think it is as proper for me, being the master
-of it, to admonish and speak to my people, when there is cause, as to
-be beholden to another to do it for me, which sometimes brings the
-chaplain into more credit than his lord." "Doth your General and other
-great officers do so?" she proceeded to enquire. "Yes, madam," returned
-Whitelocke, "very often, and very well. Nevertheless, they maintain
-chaplains and ministers in their houses and regiments; and such as are
-godly and worthy ministers have as much respect and as good provision
-in England as in any place of Christendom. Yet 'tis the opinion of
-many good men with us, that a long cassock, with a silk girdle, and
-a great beard, do not make a learned or good preacher, without gifts
-of the Spirit of God, and labouring in His vineyard; and whosoever
-studies the Holy Scriptures, and is enabled to do good to the souls of
-others, and endeavours the same, is nowhere forbidden by that Word, nor
-is it blameable. The officers and soldiers of the Parliament held it
-not unlawful, when they carried their lives in their hands, and were
-going to adventure them in the high places of the field, to encourage
-one another out of His Word, who commands over all; and this had more<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_468" id="Page_468">[468]</a></span>
-weight and impression with it than any other word could have, and was
-never denied to be made use of but by the popish prelates, who by no
-means would admit lay people (as they call them) to gather from thence
-that instruction and comfort which can nowhere else be found." The
-Queen complimented the theological envoy. "Methinks you preach very
-well, and have now made a good sermon. I assure you I like it very
-well." The politeness of a courtier was not wanting in return. "Madam,
-I shall account it a great happiness if any of my words please you."
-Her Majesty continued to say, "Indeed, Sir, these words of yours do
-very much please me; and I shall be glad to hear you oftener on that
-strain. But I pray, tell me, where did your General, and you, his
-officers, learn this way of praying and preaching yourselves?" "We
-learnt it from a near friend of your Majesty," he added, with truth and
-adroitness, "whose memory all the Protestant interest hath cause to
-honour." "My friend," replied the Queen, "who was that?" "It was your
-father," rejoined Whitelocke, "the great King Gustavus Adolphus, who
-upon his first landing in Germany (as many then present have testified)
-did himself in person upon the shore, on his knees, give thanks to
-God for His blessing upon that undertaking; and he would frequently
-exhort his people out of God's Word; and God testified His great liking
-thereof, by the wonderful successes He was pleased to vouchsafe to
-that gallant King."<a name="FNanchor_576_576" id="FNanchor_576_576"></a><a href="#Footnote_576_576" class="fnanchor">[576]</a> But we must leave the religious exercises of
-Cromwell's army, as our history now requires us to follow King Charles
-to the Scotch camp.</p>
-
-<p>From May to July the Divine right of Presbyterianism formed a salient
-topic of conversation and debate<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_469" id="Page_469">[469]</a></span> amongst citizens and statesmen.<a name="FNanchor_577_577" id="FNanchor_577_577"></a><a href="#Footnote_577_577" class="fnanchor">[577]</a>
-From May to July the same question was agitated at Newcastle between
-King Charles and Alexander Henderson.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Charles I. and Henderson.</i></div>
-
-<p>The backbone of the King's strength having been broken at Naseby,
-and his midland capital being environed with a Parliamentary army,
-the monarch, defeated on all sides, resolved to flee. Though every
-reasonable hope had vanished, still he kept up his spirits&mdash;trusting to
-his own talent for intrigue, to some wonderful interposition of Divine
-Providence, and, above all, to that divinity which "doth hedge a king."</p>
-
-<p>In a state of entire indecision as to whither he should bend his
-steps, the royal fugitive rode out of Oxford, and pursued the road to
-London. A thoughtful journey it must have been; and, at last, as he
-approached the metropolis, at Hillingdon, his heart sunk within him,
-when, pulling his bridle to the left, he galloped off through a cross
-country to the Scotch camp at Newark.<a name="FNanchor_578_578" id="FNanchor_578_578"></a><a href="#Footnote_578_578" class="fnanchor">[578]</a> Arrived there, his treatment
-by those into whose arms he threw his fortunes without his confidence,
-was sufficient to cast him into absolute despair but for that strange
-hopefulness to which we have just referred. Removing with the army from
-Newark to Newcastle, the annoyances of his<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_470" id="Page_470">[470]</a></span> position considerably
-increased.<a name="FNanchor_579_579" id="FNanchor_579_579"></a><a href="#Footnote_579_579" class="fnanchor">[579]</a> In his letters to Queen Henrietta Maria&mdash;his dear
-heart, as he fondly called her&mdash;he complained of being barbarously
-baited and threatened, of new vexations which happened to him every
-day; declaring to her that there never was a man so lonely as he, and
-then with a beautiful touch of tenderness he assured the woman&mdash;really
-the star of his evil fortunes&mdash;that she was his last comfort, and that
-her letters in cypher were around him all day, and under his pillow all
-night.<a name="FNanchor_580_580" id="FNanchor_580_580"></a><a href="#Footnote_580_580" class="fnanchor">[580]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1646, July.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Charles I. and Henderson.</i></div>
-
-<p>Alexander Henderson sought to effect the King's conversion. Sheets and
-sheets of closely-written paper passed between them throughout those
-wearisome months. Each did his best. Day after day, night after night,
-these controversialists read and reflected, wrote and revised, and
-it must be allowed, to the credit of the King, that the intelligence
-and acuteness which he brought to this undertaking appear exceedingly
-respectable, even in comparison with all the accomplishments of his
-clerical antagonist.<a name="FNanchor_581_581" id="FNanchor_581_581"></a><a href="#Footnote_581_581" class="fnanchor">[581]</a> Charles contended for the <i>jus Divinum</i> of
-Episcopacy, and the apostolical succession of bishops; Henderson for
-the <i>jus Divinum</i> of presbyteries and the human origin of prelacy.
-The monarch upheld the authority of the Fathers as interpreters
-of the Bible; the minister the interpretation of Scripture by
-Scripture&mdash;declaring patristic writings and traditions to be unworthy
-of trust. The royal disputant contended that inferior magistrates and
-the people had no power to reform religion; the clerical respondent
-that such persons<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_471" id="Page_471">[471]</a></span> did possess it, and that it became them to exercise
-it when even kings failed to perform their duty. The Prince urged that
-he was bound by his coronation oath to preserve the Church of England,
-and that he could be released only by the voice of the Church itself;
-the Presbyter that Parliament had sufficient authority to remove this
-obligation. His Majesty asked what warrant there was in the Word of
-God for subjects to force the royal conscience, and to make a ruler
-alter laws against his will? The reverend gentleman replied that when
-a man's conscience is misled, he necessarily does that which is amiss,
-and that his duty is to have his conscience better informed, and not
-to move till he has struck a light, and made further discoveries. This
-question involved another, as to the right of the subject to take
-up arms, which, of course, Charles held to be absolutely unlawful;
-whilst Henderson asserted the right of defensive war against unjust
-authority. It is enough to give this summary. Inconclusive arguments
-were advanced on both sides, and each was more powerful in attack than
-he was in defence. Under the circumstances, no good could come out of
-the controversy, for neither of the disputants would concede one jot;
-and what is still more important to be borne in mind is this, that the
-arbitrament of the question between them now rested in other hands.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1646, July.</div>
-
-<p>The Parliament in July again held out propositions for peace. Papers
-duly signed by the clerks of both Houses were formally entrusted to
-the Earl of Pembroke and Montgomery, to the Earl of Suffolk, and to
-other commissioners, attended by Stephen Marshall, who acted as their
-chaplain. They travelled to Newcastle on the 24th of July. Thither they
-and the Scotch commissioners went in their coaches, at two o'clock in
-the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_472" id="Page_472">[472]</a></span> afternoon, to wait upon his Majesty. He resided in a fine old
-house, with ornamented gables, goodly bays, mullioned windows, and a
-door-way guarded by columns&mdash;a mansion now totally demolished, but
-once the pride of Anderson's-place, in that famous town on the banks
-of the Tyne. When the visitors had entered this temporary palace, the
-King came forth into a large chamber which was made use of for the
-chamber of presence, and there stood at the end of a table until each
-had kissed his hand. He intimated his pleasure that they should follow
-him into another room, where the Earl of Pembroke stated that they had
-brought the Parliament's propositions for his Majesty to consider.
-"Have you power to treat?" asked the monarch, anxiously looking at the
-commissioners. "No," they replied; upon which he uttered one of those
-blunt, petulant speeches which did him almost as much damage as his
-proverbial insincerity. "Then, saving the honour of the business, an
-honest trumpeter might have done as much." As the propositions were
-read, the King listened attentively, and at last observed: "Gentlemen,
-I hope you do not expect a very speedy answer, because the business is
-of high concernment." They said their stay was limited to ten days,
-whereupon he promised despatch, and so terminated the interview.
-Mr. Marshall preached the next Sunday before the King, and took as
-the subject of his discourse, Isaiah xxxii. 17, "And the work of
-righteousness shall be peace, and the effect of righteousness quietness
-and assurance forever."<a name="FNanchor_582_582" id="FNanchor_582_582"></a><a href="#Footnote_582_582" class="fnanchor">[582]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Newcastle Treaty.</i></div>
-
-<p>The propositions stipulated, that his Majesty should call in his
-declarations against the Parliament; place the control of the militia
-in its hands for twenty<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_473" id="Page_473">[473]</a></span> years; make void all peerages which had been
-conferred since May the 20th, 1642; punish such delinquents as had
-been proscribed; and disannul the Irish treaty. With these political
-demands others were coupled in relation to the Church. First, his
-Majesty must take the Covenant, and enjoin the same on his subjects;
-next, the ecclesiastical reformation must be completed, and Popery
-for ever crushed. Moreover, the bill, which had been transformed into
-an ordinance for constituting the Westminster Assembly, must receive
-the royal assent; and besides these, other measures, five in number,
-which he had not sanctioned, and which he was desired to confirm,
-were repeatedly mentioned in the negotiations: (1) The abolition of
-the hierarchy; (2) the due observance of the Lord's Day; (3) the
-suppression of innovations; (4) the advancement of preaching; and (5)
-the prevention of non-residence. Such were the objects to which the old
-bills referred, and a new one is mentioned as about to be framed for
-regulating the Universities and Schools of England.<a name="FNanchor_583_583" id="FNanchor_583_583"></a><a href="#Footnote_583_583" class="fnanchor">[583]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1646.</div>
-
-<p>Charles did not at once break with the Presbyterians when these
-proposals were made to him; on the contrary, he professed a
-conciliatory spirit, and kept alive their hopes of his at last making
-some considerable concessions;<a name="FNanchor_584_584" id="FNanchor_584_584"></a><a href="#Footnote_584_584" class="fnanchor">[584]</a> yet all the while he felt a most
-intense antipathy to their whole system. As a staunch Episcopalian,
-he hated Presbyterianism in itself, and he hated it also, and perhaps
-still more, because it touched his royal<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_474" id="Page_474">[474]</a></span> prerogatives, and because,
-if established, it would leave him only the name of a King; since,
-under pretence of a thorough reformation of religion, it would in
-reality take away all ecclesiastical power from the crown. All this he
-had said in letters which he wrote to the Queen; and, in one written
-from Newcastle (September the 7th), six weeks after the Parliamentary
-Commissioners had read their paper to him in the Council-room, he
-thus expresses himself to his "dear heart:"&mdash;"I assure thee that
-(by the grace of God) nothing can be said or done to me which shall
-make me quit my grounds; as, for instance, neither to grant the
-London propositions as they are (without great amendment), or sign or
-authorize the Covenant, without which, I must again tell thee, I am
-more and more assured that nothing can be expected from the Scots."</p>
-
-<p>Allusions in his private correspondence to the Covenant for awhile
-betray no excitement: they are calmly expressed; but at last, doubtless
-harassed by solicitations on that point, enough to try any man's
-temper, he bursts into a violent passion, and writes to his wife in the
-following language: "This damned Covenant is the child of rebellion,
-and breathes nothing but treason, so that, <i>if Episcopacy were to be
-introduced by the Covenant, I would not do it</i>."<a name="FNanchor_585_585" id="FNanchor_585_585"></a><a href="#Footnote_585_585" class="fnanchor">[585]</a> It was impossible
-for him to have said anything stronger than this; and with such
-feelings on the part of the King, the Newcastle Treaty came to an end.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Newcastle Treaty.</i></div>
-
-<p>If a good deal of man&#339;uvering appear in the negotiations with the
-Presbyterians carried on by Charles at Newcastle, there is as much
-downright intrigue with other parties to be discovered in his conduct
-at the same<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_475" id="Page_475">[475]</a></span> time. He inherited some portion of his father's love of
-kingcraft, and he employed to the utmost whatever ability of that
-description he possessed. To repair his broken fortunes, he sedulously
-endeavoured to make tools of the Independents, watching with great
-satisfaction the animosity existing between them and the Presbyterians,
-and hoping, as he says, that one of the factions would so address him
-that he might without difficulty attain his ends.<a name="FNanchor_586_586" id="FNanchor_586_586"></a><a href="#Footnote_586_586" class="fnanchor">[586]</a></p>
-
-<p>And with the one great object of this part of his life in view, he
-was prepared to make terms with the Papists. In a letter from Oxford,
-March the 12th, 1646, addressed to his wife, he speaks of a former
-communication in which he had said: "I will take away all the penal
-laws against the Roman Catholics in England as soon as God shall enable
-me to do it, so as by their means I may have so powerful assistance as
-may deserve so great a favour and enable me to do it; and furthermore
-I now add, that I desire some particular offers by or in the favour
-of the English Roman Catholics, which, if I shall like, I will then
-presently engage myself for the performance of the above-mentioned
-conditions. Moreover, if the Pope and they will visibly and heartily
-engage themselves for the re-establishment of the Church of England and
-my crown (which was understood in my former offer) against all opposers
-whatsoever, I will promise them on the word of a King to give them here
-a free toleration of their consciences."<a name="FNanchor_587_587" id="FNanchor_587_587"></a><a href="#Footnote_587_587" class="fnanchor">[587]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1646.</div>
-
-<p>Of course, all this intriguing involved much duplicity. The collection
-of letters which were written by Charles<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_476" id="Page_476">[476]</a></span> in 1646, and which are
-now published, will be found to exhibit this prominent feature of
-the King's character. Whenever he formally conceded any point, some
-quibbling about words, some dishonest reserve, some loophole out
-of which he might wriggle, is sure to appear in connection with a
-Jesuitical conscientiousness which was ever weaving casuistic theories,
-and starting ethical questions, in order to cover with a veil of
-seemliness the most dishonest and fraudulent acts. Charles was not
-rashly false; he did not heedlessly tell lies; he had undoubtedly
-certain notions of rectitude, which served occasionally to disquiet his
-spirit; and he wished to appear to himself honest and true, even at the
-moment of his wishing to deceive others. His mind, however, in these
-respects, is but a specimen of a large class of persons in this world
-of many-coloured falsehoods and delusions.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_477" id="Page_477">[477]</a></span></p></div>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="illo477" >
- <img
- class="p0"
- src="images/illo477.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XXII.</h2>
-
-
-<div class="sidenote">1646.</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">Before Parliament sent its propositions to Newcastle, it had commenced
-the business of establishing Presbyterianism. The Directory had been
-ordained, and the Prayer Book abolished. Still more was done.</p>
-
-<p>On the 7th of July, 1645, the Westminster Assembly sent up to the
-two Houses a thoroughly-digested and complete scheme of Presbyterian
-government.<a name="FNanchor_588_588" id="FNanchor_588_588"></a><a href="#Footnote_588_588" class="fnanchor">[588]</a> Modified as already represented, the scheme was
-embodied in an ordinance on the 19th of August, establishing a
-Presbyterian polity in the city of London. This ordinance commanded
-that a Congregational Assembly should be formed in each of the city
-parishes, and that a Classical Assembly should be gathered in each
-of the twelve classes, or districts, into which the ecclesiastical
-province of the metropolis was by the ordinance divided. Towards the
-end of September, the Houses decided that certain persons should
-try the fitness of lay elders; the triers being three clergymen and
-six laymen for each class. This was an Erastian arrangement, very
-displeasing, of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_478" id="Page_478">[478]</a></span> course, to the Presbyterians, and, consequently,
-they refused to carry the measure into effect. In the March following
-(1646) it became loaded with an additional and still more objectionable
-provision. Instead of Parliament being constituted simply a final
-court of appeal, it was now to choose certain Lay Commissioners, who
-were to act in the first instance as judges of scandalous offences&mdash;in
-fact, were to have in their hands the entire control of Church
-discipline.<a name="FNanchor_589_589" id="FNanchor_589_589"></a><a href="#Footnote_589_589" class="fnanchor">[589]</a> This was a measure which weighed too heavily on
-Presbyterian forbearance; and, therefore, a compromise followed in
-the month of June, when the Lay Commissioners were withdrawn, and a
-committee of Lords and Commons was appointed to determine such cases of
-scandals and offences as had not been already specified. This plan was
-in accordance with an earlier direction, to the effect that Members of
-Parliament sitting in the Westminster Assembly should be constituted
-a tribunal to decide respecting causes of suspension from the Lord's
-Supper. On the 2nd of October, the county palatine of Lancaster was
-divided into nine classical presbyteries;<a name="FNanchor_590_590" id="FNanchor_590_590"></a><a href="#Footnote_590_590" class="fnanchor">[590]</a> and on the 21st of
-January, 1647, a committee of the two Houses ordered<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_479" id="Page_479">[479]</a></span> that Essex
-should form a province including fourteen classes.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Presbyterian Church Government.</i></div>
-
-<p>Still, presbyteries were not actually formed. In April, 1647, appeared
-resolutions of the Houses, entitled, "Remedies for removing some
-Obstructions in Church Government;" and after this, on the 3rd of
-May, the first Provincial Assembly met in the Convocation House of
-St. Paul's, including about 108 members. Dr. Gouge, the prolocutor,
-opened the meetings by a sermon in his own parish church of St. Anne,
-Blackfriars.<a name="FNanchor_591_591" id="FNanchor_591_591"></a><a href="#Footnote_591_591" class="fnanchor">[591]</a></p>
-
-<p>On the 29th of the January following (1648), another Parliamentary
-ordinance appeared, commanding the committees and commissioners
-throughout the country&mdash;with the assistance of ministers&mdash;to divide
-their respective counties into distinct classical presbyteries; and
-also specifying that the Chancellors, Vice-Chancellors, and heads of
-houses should establish the same in the two Universities, and certify
-the accomplishment of the fact before the 25th of March.</p>
-
-<p>On the 29th of August, a more elaborate order issued from the Lords
-and Commons, to the effect that all parishes and places whatsoever in
-England and Wales should be under the government of Congregational,
-Classical, Provincial, and National Assemblies.<a name="FNanchor_592_592" id="FNanchor_592_592"></a><a href="#Footnote_592_592" class="fnanchor">[592]</a> To see how the
-system thus elaborated upon paper, and thus enforced by successive
-ordinances, worked in this kingdom; or rather, with some exceptions,
-failed to work at all, we must wait till we reach the history of the
-Commonwealth Church in the next volume.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1646.</div>
-
-<p>It is now time to direct attention to the final measures adopted with
-reference to Episcopacy. There remained the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_480" id="Page_480">[480]</a></span> old bill of 1642, which
-had been bandied about between the Parliament and the King, to which
-the latter had never given consent, and which, therefore, according
-to the monarchical constitution of the country, had never become law.
-Virtually it took effect, but constitutionally it had no authority.
-Other measures were in the same predicament. Parliament, therefore,
-in the autumn of 1646, commenced a revolutionary proceeding, which
-really turned England into a republic. The Houses determined that their
-own ordinances should be valid and sufficient. Ecclesiastical changes
-were amongst the first to be ratified by this proceeding. The old bill
-relative to Episcopacy being thrown aside, a new one came before the
-Lords and Commons, and received the sanction of both Houses on the 9th
-of October.<a name="FNanchor_593_593" id="FNanchor_593_593"></a><a href="#Footnote_593_593" class="fnanchor">[593]</a></p>
-
-<p>This ordinance abolished the titles, sequestered the Church property,
-and extinguished the jurisdiction of the hierarchy of England.<a name="FNanchor_594_594" id="FNanchor_594_594"></a><a href="#Footnote_594_594" class="fnanchor">[594]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Ecclesiastical Courts.</i></div>
-
-<p>The name, style, and dignity of archbishop and bishops were to be known
-no more. At one sweep church property belonging to them was transferred
-to other hands. "All counties palatine, honours, manors, lordships,
-stiles, circuits, precincts, castles, granges, messuages, mills,
-lands, tenements, meadows, pastures, parsonages, appropriate titles,
-oblations, obventions, pensions, portions of tithes, parsonages,
-vicarages, churches, chapels, advowsons, donatives, nominations, rights
-of patronage and presentations, parks, woods,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_481" id="Page_481">[481]</a></span> rents, reversions,
-services, annuities, franchises, liberties, privileges, immunities,
-rights of action and of entry, interests, titles of entry, conditions,
-common court leet, and courts baron, and all other possessions," with
-all and every their appurtenances, became vested in ecclesiastical
-commissioners. Another ordinance, bearing date the 16th of November,
-gave authority to the commissioners to sell such property for the
-benefit of the Commonwealth, with a special reservation in favour of
-the <i>jura regalia</i> of the palatine of Durham, and the <i>jura regalia</i>
-of the bishopric of Ely.<a name="FNanchor_595_595" id="FNanchor_595_595"></a><a href="#Footnote_595_595" class="fnanchor">[595]</a> No cathedrals, churches, chapels, or
-churchyards, however, were to be disposed of; neither was anything in
-the ordinance to affect the property of Serjeants' Inn, or Lincoln's
-Inn. Careful provision is made by the ordinance for securing the
-property to purchasers, and for preserving the funds so realized.
-The first of these ordinances also stated that no one was to use any
-archiepiscopal or episcopal jurisdiction; that the sheriffs of counties
-where any felony was to be tried should present to the judge some fit
-person to do such things as, by the office of the ordinary, had used to
-be done, and "that all issues triable by the ordinary or bishop shall
-be tried by jury in usual course."</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1646.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Ecclesiastical Courts.</i></div>
-
-<p>That last line legalized an extensive revolution. Ecclesiastical Courts
-in England, as noticed in our introduction, were of high antiquity
-and of large jurisdiction. From the time of the Conqueror they had
-taken cognizance of church matters and public morals. After the
-Reformation their authority continued. Moral offences, not provided
-for by common law, heresy, schism, and ecclesiastical disobedience,
-questions touching marriage and divorce, together with the proving of
-wills, remained,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_482" id="Page_482">[482]</a></span> as before, subject to the ecclesiastical courts.
-Though interfered with to some extent by the Court of High Commission,
-the old Church Courts retained much of their former business down to
-the time when the Long Parliament was opened. Consistories held in
-provincial cathedrals might be somewhat quiet, but proceedings before
-Archidiaconal tribunals were often exciting enough when enquiries
-were made into village scandals; whilst Doctors' Commons continued a
-centre of the greatest activity. There sat the Consistory Court of
-the Bishop of London, the Prerogative Court of Canterbury, and the
-Court of Arches. The judges and advocates received no small attention,
-and were paid no little reverence, as they appeared in black velvet
-caps and hoods lined with taffeta or miniver; the proctors being
-only a little less dignified with their hoods of lambskin, whilst
-actuaries, registrars, and beadles were busy in their attendance.
-Citations, bills, and answers, proofs, witnesses, and presumptions,
-with all their slow and expensive machinery, were patiently kept at
-work by ecclesiastical lawyers, and were anxiously waited for and
-watched by ecclesiastical and lay litigants. But with the opening of
-the Parliament came a change. Amongst the many <i>jeu d'esprits</i> of
-the time is one belonging to the year 1641, entitled, "The Spiritual
-Courts epitomised in a Dialogue between two Proctors, Busy-Body and
-Scrape-All," with a woodcut on the title page representing the Bishops'
-Court in great confusion.<a name="FNanchor_596_596" id="FNanchor_596_596"></a><a href="#Footnote_596_596" class="fnanchor">[596]</a> Complaints couched in very exceptionable
-phraseology indicate that the Prerogative, the Consistory, and the
-Archdeacon's Courts, which "used to be crowded like money in a usurer's
-bag, are very quiet and peaceable now;" "no more false Latin," no
-more "ten<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_483" id="Page_483">[483]</a></span> pounds for a probate to Mr. Copper-nose, the English
-proctor," "and no more prying into people's actions." An end had come
-to inventories, such as terrified all Bloomsbury, Covent Garden, Long
-Acre, and Beech Lane. No more pretended caveats, and bills which would
-exceed a tailor's. On a curious broadside, entitled, "The Last Will and
-Testament of Doctors' Commons," the same exultation over the decline
-of the courts is rudely and vulgarly expressed in very queer cuts and
-in very bad English. The Court is represented as very aged, and sorely
-shaken both in body and mind by a Westminster ague. That which affected
-Doctors' Commons would shake all the consistorial and commissory courts
-throughout the country.</p>
-
-<p>Ecclesiastical causes necessarily fell into confusion. The ordinance,
-however, of October, would settle the question, and sweep all issues,
-determinable of old by the ordinary or bishop, into the common law
-courts, there to be tried by juries in the usual way. This would effect
-not only a great professional change disastrous to ecclesiastical
-lawyers, and apparent in the deserted yard of Doctors' Commons, but
-would occasion a great social change also. People would now carry
-cases touching marriage and divorce to the sessions or the assizes.
-As to one important point, however, that of wills, the authority of
-the old courts of registration survived the ejection of bishops, and
-the abolition of their order. In the Bishop's principal Registry and
-Consistory Court at Exeter, wills are found in the first case up to
-the year 1653, in the second, up to the year 1650, when a gap occurs
-as far as 1660. In the Archdeacon of Sudbury's Registry, wills also
-are found belonging to 1652, and the years preceding. In the Chapter
-House of York, there are transcripts of wills to 1650, and from 1650
-originals occur. In the Arch<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_484" id="Page_484">[484]</a></span>deaconry of Taunton, wills did not cease
-to be registered till 1649, in the Archdeaconry of Huntingdon, not till
-1653.<a name="FNanchor_597_597" id="FNanchor_597_597"></a><a href="#Footnote_597_597" class="fnanchor">[597]</a> A new law with respect to the probate of wills was passed in
-the last-mentioned year.<a name="FNanchor_598_598" id="FNanchor_598_598"></a><a href="#Footnote_598_598" class="fnanchor">[598]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1646.</div>
-
-<p>The effect, in relation to public morals, of the abolition of Bishop's
-Courts, and of the disuse of those which were Archidiaconal, has been
-too much overlooked. Though the old church discipline, by calling in
-the aid of the civil power, contradicted the spirit of Christianity,
-though it was often completely frustrated, and though for really
-religious ends it proved generally ineffectual; yet it would, in
-some cases, check the immorality of a parish, whatever might be the
-evils&mdash;in the way of slander, injustice, and heart-burning&mdash;which it
-called into existence. And, at any rate, the destruction of a tribunal
-before which people were liable to be cited for unchastity and other
-vices not cognizable by the secular courts, is an important fact in the
-history of those times, and indicates the occurrence of a considerable
-judicial and social revolution. No doubt the Presbyterians, in their
-scheme of discipline, and the Long Parliament, in its acts against
-immorality, endeavoured to supply what they considered a defect, after
-they had accomplished the abolition of the old system.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Payment of Tithes.</i></div>
-
-<p>The ordinance just described only transferred into the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_485" id="Page_485">[485]</a></span> hands of
-commissioners the property and revenues pertaining to bishoprics; it
-did not touch advowsons and tithes in general, or affect parochial
-and other ecclesiastical edifices. The right of presentation to
-livings remained in the hands of patrons, where the right had not been
-forfeited by delinquency, and tithes continued to be claimed as in
-former days; but the method of recovering them had undergone a change.
-Public opinion appears to have become altogether unsettled respecting
-the question of ministerial support.</p>
-
-<p>In the month of November, 1646, "The Moderate Intelligencer" informs
-its readers of a petition from the county of Kent being presented to
-Parliament against the support of ministers by the payment of tithes.
-It was submitted to the legislature that all clergymen should receive
-the same amount of salary, according to the part of England in which
-they resided. These Kentish advisers recommended that in parishes north
-of the river Trent the stipend should be £100 per annum; and that on
-the south side of it ought to amount to £150. The reason alleged for
-equal salaries being paid to all incumbents in each of these districts
-was, that the arrangement would prevent ministers from hunting after
-preferment. The petitioners notice that some people said&mdash;who had
-"little scripture or reason for their opinion"&mdash;that tithes were
-unlawful, and that "men should be at the pleasure of the people," in
-other words, should be left to be provided for on the voluntary system;
-others, it is observed, would, to avoid strife, fain have ministers
-paid their tithes in money, not in kind, and they also advocated the
-repeal of statutes forbidding the clergy to hold farms, or to cultivate
-the practice of husbandry. It is also mentioned that some persons
-advocated a new division of parishes, making them all of the same size.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_486" id="Page_486">[486]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1647.</div>
-
-<p>However truly the newspapers might reflect diversities of opinion on
-this subject, whatever sympathy some puritan farmers or some puritan
-parsons might feel with these inhabitants of Kent, Parliament firmly
-maintained the rights of tithe property. In August, 1647, came forth
-another ordinance,<a name="FNanchor_599_599" id="FNanchor_599_599"></a><a href="#Footnote_599_599" class="fnanchor">[599]</a> confirming the prior one of 1644, and removing
-doubts raised as to whether it extended to ministers inducted by
-parliamentary authority. It mentions appeals brought into Chancery
-for vexation and delay, and ordains that no such appeals should be
-admitted until the party appealing paid into court, or into the hands
-of justices of the peace, the value of the tithes in dispute. This
-ordinance was to continue in force until the first of November, 1648.
-The April of that year brought another ordinance,<a name="FNanchor_600_600" id="FNanchor_600_600"></a><a href="#Footnote_600_600" class="fnanchor">[600]</a> cancelling a
-proviso in the ordinance of 1644, for placing beyond its reach the city
-of London, and committing the enforcement of these ecclesiastical dues
-to the Lord Mayor and justices within their jurisdiction.<a name="FNanchor_601_601" id="FNanchor_601_601"></a><a href="#Footnote_601_601" class="fnanchor">[601]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Church Dues.</i></div>
-
-<p>A newspaper of the 4th of November, 1646, informed the public of a
-bill introduced that day for repairing churches, and for giving power
-to compel people to con<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_487" id="Page_487">[487]</a></span>tribute towards needful and pious works; the
-power to be vested not merely in churchwardens, but in justices of the
-peace. Mention is also made of a committee to meet in the Star Chamber,
-for the purpose of considering what course had best be adopted, whether
-by commitment or otherwise, in order to compel payment from those who
-refused to contribute according to the ordinary assessments. More
-than a year after these reports were printed, the Lords and Commons,
-on the 9th of February, 1647-8, ordained that churchwardens should be
-chosen annually by the inhabitants of every parish and chapelry, on the
-Monday or Tuesday of Easter Week, and that they, with the overseers
-of the poor, should, upon public notice, "make rates or assessments
-by taxation of every inhabitant." Churchwardens were also to receive
-any rents and profits which had been given for repairing parochial
-edifices; and, when churchwardens became negligent of their duties,
-two neighbouring justices of the peace were empowered to interfere,
-and to give order for necessary repairs. The ordinance was not to
-extend to churches "ruined" by the "unhappy wars, extremity of age, or
-other casualties," nor was it to apply to any cathedral or collegiate
-churches, all of which were "to be repaired as formerly they have been
-used and accustomed."<a name="FNanchor_602_602" id="FNanchor_602_602"></a><a href="#Footnote_602_602" class="fnanchor">[602]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_488" id="Page_488">[488]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1645.</div>
-
-<p>Apart from sweeping revolutions in cathedral establishments, the
-colleges of Westminster, Eton, Christ Church, and Winchester
-experienced changes peculiar to themselves. It was provided in 1642
-that none of the revenues assigned for scholars and almsmen should
-be interrupted in consequence of the sequestration of the rents and
-profits of Archbishops and Bishops, Deans and Chapters. In 1645, a
-special ordinance provided both for the college and the collegiate
-church of Westminster, the Deanery being virtually extinct. The Dean
-and prebends had become delinquents, with the exception of Mr. Lambert
-Osbolston, who, whilst being a canon of the cathedral, was also master
-of the school. The school, the almsmen, and the offices, having no
-one to take care of them now that the ecclesiastical corporation
-of the Abbey had been dissolved, Parliament proceeded to nominate
-commissioners, consisting of the Earl of Northumberland and others,
-who were invested with powers similar to those previously possessed by
-the Dean and Chapter. Mr. Osbolston was exempted from the forfeiture
-of the prebendal income, which had been inflicted on all his brethren
-occupying stalls in the Abbey. With the new Commissioner, the Master of
-Trinity College, Cambridge, and the Master of Westminster School, were
-associated in the election of scholars for the latter foundation. The
-Committee was also directed to make allowances out of the revenues of
-the collegiate church to the minister who should perform Divine service
-within its walls.<a name="FNanchor_603_603" id="FNanchor_603_603"></a><a href="#Footnote_603_603" class="fnanchor">[603]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_489" id="Page_489">[489]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Universities.</i></div>
-
-<p>The sequestered estate and profits of the provost of Eton were
-entrusted to Sir H. Cholmeley, without prejudice either to scholars
-or fellows. Dr. Richard Stewart was ejected from the provostship,
-and Francis Rouse appointed in his room.<a name="FNanchor_604_604" id="FNanchor_604_604"></a><a href="#Footnote_604_604" class="fnanchor">[604]</a> After some discussion,
-Parliament left new elections in the hands of the provost and fellows.</p>
-
-<p>Great changes came over the Deanery of Windsor and the Chapel of St.
-George. Spoliation went on without mercy. Precious treasures were
-seized for military uses. The revenues were sequestered, and out of
-them the yearly sum of fifty pounds was voted for any such minister as
-should officiate in the parish church.<a name="FNanchor_605_605" id="FNanchor_605_605"></a><a href="#Footnote_605_605" class="fnanchor">[605]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_490" id="Page_490">[490]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>As the educational uses of Eton, Westminster, and other public
-foundations of the kind, preserved their revenues from confiscation,
-the same also was the case with the two Universities. Their history,
-which we have hitherto passed over, now demands our attention, and
-requires us to go back for a few years.</p>
-
-<p>In the battle which the Parliament had to fight with the heads of
-houses, Cambridge commenced hostilities. In 1642, the Masters and
-Fellows of the Colleges there sent money and plate to the coffers
-of the King at York, "many wishing," says Fuller, "that every ounce
-thereof were a pound for his sake, conceiving it unfitting that they
-should have superfluities to spare whilst their sovereign wanted
-necessaries to spend."<a name="FNanchor_606_606" id="FNanchor_606_606"></a><a href="#Footnote_606_606" class="fnanchor">[606]</a> The University press was employed in
-printing the King's declarations, and the University pulpit was made
-to resound with diatribes against the King's enemies. When a demand
-came for contributions to the Parliament, the University returned
-a blank refusal. The men who thus took part in the opening strife
-subjected themselves of course to the fortunes of war. The kingdom
-being rent in twain, two encampments being pitched face to face, such
-as threw themselves into the one had no friendship to expect from the
-other. Hence there followed imprisonments<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_491" id="Page_491">[491]</a></span> for the plate business,
-and for like belligerent acts. The Masters of St. John's, Queen's, and
-Jesus, were lodged in the Tower, where they were joined afterwards
-by the Vice-Chancellor. Thus far the collision was purely political.
-University men were treated as malignants.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>University of Cambridge.</i></div>
-
-<p>But in January, 1644, another issue was raised. Political delinquency
-being still prominently kept in view, it became associated with
-religious and ecclesiastical criminations. Many complaints&mdash;said
-the ordinance for regulating the University of Cambridge&mdash;were
-made that the service of the country was retarded, that the enemy
-was strengthened, that the people's souls were starved, and that
-their minds were diverted from the care of God's cause by the idle,
-ill-affected, and scandalous clergy. Commissioners therefore were
-empowered to call before them all provosts, masters, fellows, students,
-and members who were scandalous in their lives, or ill-affected to the
-Parliament, or fomenters of the war, or that should wilfully refuse
-obedience to the orders of the two Houses, or desert their ordinary
-places of residence. Persons found guilty of any such offences were to
-suffer the sequestration of their estates and revenues; at the same
-time, ministers approved by the Westminster Assembly were authorized to
-succeed to the vacant posts. The Commissioners had power to administer
-the Covenant under penalties, and to examine and inhibit all persons
-who should obstruct the reformation sought to be accomplished by the
-Parliament and the Assembly. The ordinance evidently placed at the
-mercy of this new Committee every one who, though <i>not scandalous in
-life</i>, should decline the Covenant or oppose the Westminster decisions.
-This document bears date the 22nd of January. On the 30th of the same
-month, an order appeared to make void the places of all officers,
-ministers,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_492" id="Page_492">[492]</a></span> or other attendants upon Chancery, the King's Bench, and
-the Common Pleas, who should be guilty of the same offences.<a name="FNanchor_607_607" id="FNanchor_607_607"></a><a href="#Footnote_607_607" class="fnanchor">[607]</a> The
-ground on which the Presbyterian party now in power chose to place
-the controversy with the authorities at Cambridge and elsewhere is
-sufficiently apparent.</p>
-
-<p>The justice of their final policy ought to be tested by the principles
-upon which it was avowedly based, not by any laxity of method in the
-carrying of it out. It is said that, in several instances, those who
-were entrusted with the execution of the ordinance were very lenient,
-and did not eject all who refused submission; but this does not affect
-the character of the enactment. According to Archbishop Tillotson, most
-of the fellows of King's were exempted through the interest of Dr.
-Witchcot&mdash;an exception which is not at all irreconcilable with Fuller's
-statement&mdash;himself a Cambridge man&mdash;that "this Covenant being offered,
-was generally refused, whereupon the recusants were ordered without any
-delay to pack out of the University three days after their ejection."
-Fuller does not say that the order took effect in all cases.<a name="FNanchor_608_608" id="FNanchor_608_608"></a><a href="#Footnote_608_608" class="fnanchor">[608]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_493" id="Page_493">[493]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>University of Cambridge.</i></div>
-
-<p>A document in the State Paper Office opens a window through which
-one can plainly see how sequestrations went on at Cambridge. Houses
-were rifled, and goods seized. The effects were sold according to
-appraisements. The books of Dr. Cosin, Master of Peter House and Dean
-of Durham, were valued at £247 10s., and must have formed a good
-library for those days. The furniture of Dr. Laney, Master of Pembroke,
-is all inventoried, down to "blankets," "leather chairs," and "fire
-irons." The books of Mr. Heath, of Barnet College, are valued at £14;
-and Mr. Couldham's, of Queen's, at £10. Horses and furniture are
-mentioned, and articles are described as taken away in carts under the
-care of soldiers. Zealous partisans received rewards for information
-relative to concealed property. An infamous soldier was paid for
-divulging the secret where books belonging to his brother might be
-found.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>University of Cambridge.</i></div>
-
-<p>Thus a political offence provoked the anger and occasioned the
-interference of Parliament. But the interference aimed at a religious
-result through a revival of Puritanism. The East-Anglian University,
-true to its<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_494" id="Page_494">[494]</a></span> traditional liberality, fostered that movement towards
-the end of the sixteenth century, as it had promoted the Reformation
-fifty years before. In 1565, the University was restive under the yoke
-of ceremonies, and almost all the men of St. John's came to chapel
-without hoods or surplices.<a name="FNanchor_609_609" id="FNanchor_609_609"></a><a href="#Footnote_609_609" class="fnanchor">[609]</a> When Mildmay had founded Emmanuel
-College (1585), the Queen said: "Sir Walter, I hear you have erected
-a Puritan foundation." He replied: "No, madam; far be it from me to
-countenance anything contrary to your established laws; but I have set
-an acorn, which, when it becomes an oak, God alone knows what will be
-the fruit thereof."<a name="FNanchor_610_610" id="FNanchor_610_610"></a><a href="#Footnote_610_610" class="fnanchor">[610]</a> The fruit proved Puritan to the heart's core;
-and the fact is commemorated in a satire about thirty years afterwards.
-Its unconsecrated chapel, standing north and south, instead of
-orientating after the prescribed fashion, has been pronounced "typical
-of its doctrinal sentiments."<a name="FNanchor_611_611" id="FNanchor_611_611"></a><a href="#Footnote_611_611" class="fnanchor">[611]</a> Sidney, too, was Puritan, and so
-was Catherine Hall, the last so persistently, and to such a degree,
-that it is said not to have contributed one fellow or scholar to the
-number of the ejected in 1644.<a name="FNanchor_612_612" id="FNanchor_612_612"></a><a href="#Footnote_612_612" class="fnanchor">[612]</a> Cambridge had the credit of being
-"a nest of Puritans" in the middle of King James's reign. Perkins and
-Sibbs, ministers of that class, were exceedingly popular with both the
-gownsmen and the townspeople. The University for many years supplied
-by far the majority of the leading Presbyterian Divines;<a name="FNanchor_613_613" id="FNanchor_613_613"></a><a href="#Footnote_613_613" class="fnanchor">[613]</a> and
-four out of the five dissenting<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_495" id="Page_495">[495]</a></span> brethren at Westminster were from
-Cambridge.<a name="FNanchor_614_614" id="FNanchor_614_614"></a><a href="#Footnote_614_614" class="fnanchor">[614]</a> Traces of Puritanism existed in Trinity College even so
-late as 1636. In some tutors' chambers "the private prayers were longer
-and louder by far" than in chapel.<a name="FNanchor_615_615" id="FNanchor_615_615"></a><a href="#Footnote_615_615" class="fnanchor">[615]</a> But, before the civil wars, a
-change in the opposite direction set in. Peter House under Cosin, St.
-John's under Beale, Queen's under Martin, and Jesus under Sterne, were
-becoming more and more centres of Anglo-Catholicism. The influence of
-Laud may be distinctly traced through the last two of these heads of
-houses&mdash;Martin and Sterne having been chaplains to the Archbishop.
-Nor was the Archbishop himself inactive at Cambridge. The reports
-about Trinity just noticed were placed in his hands preparatory to his
-intended visitation in 1636. So far did some go in the anti-Puritan
-movement that, according to report, at the commencement, in July, 1633,
-Dr. Collins eulogized Bellarmine, and Dr. Duncan defended some of his
-theses.<a name="FNanchor_616_616" id="FNanchor_616_616"></a><a href="#Footnote_616_616" class="fnanchor">[616]</a> Complaints were made by Puritans of altars, vestments, and
-Jesuit activity. Organs were erected, and the worship in Peter House
-Chapel incurred the displeasure of the Long Parliament.<a name="FNanchor_617_617" id="FNanchor_617_617"></a><a href="#Footnote_617_617" class="fnanchor">[617]</a> To judge
-of the extent to which anti-Presbyterian views prevailed at Cambridge
-in 1644, we may state that, of residents, it seems about a tenth part
-of the number was ejected.<a name="FNanchor_618_618" id="FNanchor_618_618"></a><a href="#Footnote_618_618" class="fnanchor">[618]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_496" id="Page_496">[496]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The history of Oxford is not altogether like that of Cambridge.
-The source of three religious impulses of very different kinds,
-connected respectively with great theological names of very different
-character&mdash;Wesley, Pusey, and Jowett&mdash;the Midland University, central
-and many-sided in its religious spirit, as it is in its geographical
-position, did much to promote the Reformation, and did something
-to foster Puritanism. It produced Reynolds, the Presbyterian, and
-Owen, the Independent. A Puritan wave stirred the waters of the
-University in 1640. But influence of that kind at Oxford was feeble,
-compared with its sweep at Cambridge; and the Laudian impetus to
-Anglo-Catholicism most strongly marked the elder University. Laud was
-Chancellor of Oxford, and here, of course, his restless brain and
-untiring hands would specially prosecute the favourite business of
-his life. Accordingly, instances of his minute, constant, and zealous
-interference abound throughout his memoirs and papers.<a name="FNanchor_619_619" id="FNanchor_619_619"></a><a href="#Footnote_619_619" class="fnanchor">[618]</a> He had a
-very large share in producing that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_497" id="Page_497">[497]</a></span> opposition to Puritanism and the
-Parliament, which characterized Oxford at the commencement of the civil
-wars.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>University of Oxford.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1646.</div>
-
-<p>Phases of conflict, similar to those in the case of Cambridge, may be
-recognized with greater distinctness in the case of Oxford. We have
-seen already, from our account of the military occupation of the latter
-University by the King, that it assumed an attitude of determined
-defiance towards the Parliament. What would be figurative in reference
-to Cambridge is perfectly literal in reference to Oxford. Colleges
-became barracks, and gownsmen soldiers. The University therefore could
-not be regarded as otherwise than in a state of rebellion against the
-Parliament&mdash;now actually the supreme power. Consequently, when the
-city was taken, the University was treated as a conquered enemy. To
-demand subscription and fealty was the least thing which the conquerors
-could do. To remove from office those who were disaffected was but a
-measure of common prudence. Besides, such a state of demoralization
-had come over the whole institution,<a name="FNanchor_620_620" id="FNanchor_620_620"></a><a href="#Footnote_620_620" class="fnanchor">[620]</a> and war had so driven away
-learning and discipline, that reformation was imperative. Accordingly,
-in September, 1646, Commissioners went down to Oxford. Citations were
-issued requiring officers, fellows, and scholars, to appear at the
-Convocation House, between the hours of nine and eleven o'clock in
-the forenoon. The Presbyterian visitors had worship,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_498" id="Page_498">[498]</a></span> and a sermon,
-which detained them till nearly eleven. A story is related, that the
-Vice-Chancellor, Dr. Fell, had the clock put forward, so that it
-struck the hour before the Commissioners arrived. At all events, as
-the latter were coming in, they were met by the University authorities
-going out, the beadle in attendance, exclaiming, "Make way here for Mr.
-Vice-Chancellor." The visitors did so, when Mr. Vice-Chancellor moving
-his hat, passed by them, saying, "How do ye, gentlemen, 'tis past
-eleven o'clock." After this indignity a new Commission was appointed,
-but the visitors on the second occasion fared no better than their
-predecessors. Their orders were not only disobeyed, but also "despised
-and contemned." The heads of Colleges asked, by "what authority they
-were summoned;" and resolutely refused to give up books and papers,
-the keys of the Convocation House, and the beadles' staves. The
-Proctors protested against the citation they had received as illegal,
-and claimed to be exclusively under the authority of the King and his
-visitors. Patiently persisting in the assertion of its own power,
-Parliament allowed the malcontents to be heard by counsel; after which,
-their answer was pronounced an insult to the authority of the two
-Houses. Fell was then declared to have forfeited, by his contumacy, the
-deanery of Christ Church; but the declaration, when posted on the walls
-of that establishment was torn down and trampled under foot. Mrs. Fell
-also gave much trouble, and being imbued with an obstinacy like her
-husband's, had to be forcibly carried out in her chair, by the hands
-of the soldiers, into the quadrangle. Possession could not be taken
-of Magdalen, All Souls, and other Colleges, without breaking open the
-doors.<a name="FNanchor_621_621" id="FNanchor_621_621"></a><a href="#Footnote_621_621" class="fnanchor">[621]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_499" id="Page_499">[499]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>University of Oxford.</i></div>
-
-<p>There, as in Cambridge, notwithstanding the virulence of the
-opposition, some of the Parliamentarian party were willing to wink at
-evasions of the Covenant. Isaak Walton tells a story of some one who,
-"observing Dr. Morley's behaviour and reason, and enquiring of him, and
-hearing a good report of his morals, was therefore willing to afford
-him a peculiar favour." He proposed that Morley should ride out of
-Oxford as the visitors rode in, and not return until they left again,
-undertaking to secure for him his canonry without molestation. The kind
-offer, though gratefully acknowledged, was respectfully declined.<a name="FNanchor_622_622" id="FNanchor_622_622"></a><a href="#Footnote_622_622" class="fnanchor">[622]</a></p>
-
-<p>An instance of practical gratitude may also be mentioned in connexion
-with the Oxford ejectment. Dr. Laurence, Master of Baliol, and Margaret
-professor, had, during the wars, shewn marked kindness to Colonel
-Valentine Walton, an officer in the Parliament army, who had been taken
-prisoner after Edge Hill fight, and confined at Oxford&mdash;the prisoner
-being indebted to the professor for his release. The obligation
-thus contracted, Walton repaid when Laurence suffered ejectment. He
-settled on his friend a little chapelry called Colne, in the parish of
-Somersham in Huntingdonshire, augmenting its value by adding to it the
-tithes of Colne. This benefice Laurence had become qualified to enjoy,
-by receiving a certificate of the Oxford Commissioners, to the effect,
-that he had<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_500" id="Page_500">[500]</a></span> engaged to observe the Directory in all ecclesiastical
-administrations&mdash;to preach practical divinity to the people&mdash;and to
-forbear teaching any opinions which the reformed church condemned.<a name="FNanchor_623_623" id="FNanchor_623_623"></a><a href="#Footnote_623_623" class="fnanchor">[623]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1646.</div>
-
-<p>After the University in general had been subdued, a few scholars
-continued incorrigible. They abused the new authorities, and scattered
-about the streets scurrilous tracts, entitled, "Pegasus taught to
-dance to the tune of Lachryme"&mdash;"The Owl at Athens"&mdash;"The Oxford
-tragi-comedy," and many more.<a name="FNanchor_624_624" id="FNanchor_624_624"></a><a href="#Footnote_624_624" class="fnanchor">[624]</a> At last, a serjeant, attended by a
-file of musqueteers, published before all the College gates by beat
-of drum a proclamation, that if any persons expelled by the visitors
-should persist in remaining within the precincts of the University,
-they should be taken into custody. And a few days afterwards another
-proclamation appeared, to the effect that if any of the proscribed
-individuals tarried within five miles of the city, he should be deemed
-a spy, and be punished with death. This was enough. Oxford was soon
-cleared of its obnoxious inmates. Probably the University had been
-encouraged in its resistance by the knowledge of the differences
-existing between the Parliament and the army. These differences had
-become so serious, and had been brought so near, that some of the
-soldiers in the Oxford garrison, sympathizing with the army at head
-quarters, refused to obey the order of Parliament. Like King Charles,
-the University hoped to escape under cover of the strife between the
-two parties who had become their conquerors. In that hope, however, the
-University, like the King, proved to be mistaken.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_501" id="Page_501">[501]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>University of Oxford.</i></div>
-
-<p>Looking at the quarrel between the Parliament and the University,
-we must admit that the Parliament had on its side a right such as
-invariably follows victory, and such as always waits on established
-government. But another aspect of this affair remains to be considered,
-corresponding with the second phase of the Cambridge proceedings. What
-was ecclesiastical became mixed up with what was political. Not content
-with requiring obedience to the civil authority, the victors aimed at
-extinguishing all spiritual power in Oxford save their own. If, in
-justification or excuse it be pleaded that this came as a necessity,
-arising out of the civil establishment of religion, then the same
-plea of justification or excuse is valid in relation to the conduct
-of the now ejected, but afterwards restored Prelatists, when they
-turned out Presbyterians and Independents in 1662. The cases, so far
-as ecclesiastical imposition is concerned, appear to be alike. Those
-who think the proceedings of 1662 were unrighteous, and that national
-universities ought not to be subjected to ecclesiastical tests, must,
-if consistent, also think that the proceedings of 1644 and 1647 were
-unrighteous in the very same respects.</p>
-
-<p>To remove men of scandalous life was proper, and nobody could complain
-of the punishment of those who violated university statutes, or wasted
-university property. Persons also who had taken up arms against the
-Parliament might be justly considered liable to some kind of penalty.
-But the articles of enquiry, instead of being confined to such points,
-were extended so as to embrace the neglect of the Covenant, and all
-opposition made to the Directory, or to any doctrine, "ignorance
-whereof doth exclude from the sacrament of the Lord's supper.<a name="FNanchor_625_625" id="FNanchor_625_625"></a><a href="#Footnote_625_625" class="fnanchor">[625]</a>"</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_502" id="Page_502">[502]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1646.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>University of Oxford.</i></div>
-
-<p>This kind of ecclesiastical inquisition served, as it often did, to
-put Parliament in an utterly false position. Armed in this manner,
-the ruling power stood up, not as the shield-bearer of order, but as
-the sword-bearer of persecution. The University availed itself of the
-circumstance, and instead of attempting to justify its resistance
-of the new government&mdash;which would have been a difficult task&mdash;it
-immediately betook itself to the doing of what was easy, and employed
-its ablest pens in drawing up an elaborate paper in Latin and English
-against the imposition of the new spiritual tests. In this way, men who
-only paid the penalty of insubordination were enabled to appear, as if
-carrying in their hands the martyr's palm. The Oxford champions did not
-plead for religious liberty. They did not found their case on any broad
-principle of toleration. They did not assert the rights of conscience,
-or expose the evils of persecution. Sentiments in favour of arbitrary
-government occurred even in this very manifesto, and a good deal of
-the reasoning they employed was one-sided, full of special pleading,
-and altogether unsatisfactory. Yet some of their objections were
-forcible, as when they urged that the adoption of the Covenant would be
-incompatible with their subscription to the Prayer Book, and when they
-complained of Prelacy being ranked with Popery and profaneness. They
-slyly intimated that they thought reform a necessity in Scotland, as
-well as in England, and truly said that the policy of the Parliament
-made the religion of England look like a Parliamentary religion. The
-following remark, which they offered on the fourth article of the
-Covenant, was not more galling than it was just:&mdash;"That the imposing the
-Covenant in this article may lay a necessity upon the son to accuse the
-father, in case he be a <i>malignant</i>, which is contrary to religion,
-nature, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_503" id="Page_503">[503]</a></span> humanity; or it may open a way for children that are sick
-of their fathers, to effect their unlawful intentions, by accusing
-them of malignity; besides, the subjecting ourselves to an arbitrary
-punishment, at the sole pleasure of such uncertain judges as may be
-deputed for that effect, is betraying the liberty of the subject."<a name="FNanchor_626_626" id="FNanchor_626_626"></a><a href="#Footnote_626_626" class="fnanchor">[626]</a></p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_504" id="Page_504">[504]</a></span></p></div>
-
- <div class="figcenter" id="illo504" >
- <img
- class="p0"
- src="images/illo504.jpg"
- alt="" />
- </div>
-
-
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XXIII.</h2>
-
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Presbyterians and Independents.</i></div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap p-left">Oliver Cromwell, in a letter from Bristol, after its surrender in 1645,
-makes this remark:&mdash;"Presbyterians and Independents all have here the
-same spirit of faith and prayer. They agree here, and have no names of
-difference. Pity it is it should be otherwise anywhere." A pamphlet
-entitled "The Reconciler," published in 1646, affords another example
-of the spirit which was thus manifested by the illustrious general,
-and abounds in sensible remarks and salutary reproof applicable to
-both parties. In other places, also, besides Bristol, persons bearing
-these different religious names lived in unity and co-operated in the
-promotion of the spiritual welfare of their fellow-citizens, and in
-other publications besides the "Reconciler," sentiments of candour and
-charity were expressed.<a name="FNanchor_627_627" id="FNanchor_627_627"></a><a href="#Footnote_627_627" class="fnanchor">[627]</a> But, for the most part, the contention
-between Presbyterians and Independents<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_505" id="Page_505">[505]</a></span> was absurdly fierce, and
-numerous tracts appeared on both sides filled with unchristian and
-disgraceful invectives.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1646.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Presbyterians and Independents.</i></div>
-
-<p>The city of Norwich supplies a remarkable instance of this kind of
-strife. Puritanism had strongly established itself there before the
-civil wars, and had borne earnest witness against the innovations of
-the Anglo-Catholics. When Episcopacy had been dethroned, numbers of
-the clergy and citizens shewed themselves zealous in supporting the
-Covenant and the Directory,&mdash;backed, as they were, by an order of
-Parliament bearing the name of the Speaker.<a name="FNanchor_628_628" id="FNanchor_628_628"></a><a href="#Footnote_628_628" class="fnanchor">[628]</a> They endeavoured to
-set up in all the churches which crowded the narrow streets of that
-hive of manufacturing industry on the banks of the Wensum, the new
-model of worship, and to fashion the religion of all the inhabitants
-after the newly authorized type. But Independency had also grown up,
-and was beginning to flourish within the walls; the Church planted in
-1642 presented signs of vigorous vitality, and probably other persons,
-not in religious communion with it, favoured its interests from
-political motives. The Episcopal party remained strong, and succeeded
-in resisting, to some extent,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_506" id="Page_506">[506]</a></span> the reforming policy of their energetic
-Puritan neighbours;<a name="FNanchor_629_629" id="FNanchor_629_629"></a><a href="#Footnote_629_629" class="fnanchor">[629]</a> but the latter, instead of uniting all their
-strength to maintain a common cause against those who were opponents to
-them in common, engaged in a vehement paper war one against another,
-which threw the whole city into a state of feverish excitement. There
-are extant two curious publications, the one entitled "<i>Vox Populi</i>,"
-an organ of the Independents, and the other, bearing the name of "<i>Vox
-Norwici</i>," issued by the Presbyterians. In the Independent "<i>Vox
-Populi</i>," we find the authors maintaining that every man ought to be
-left to the liberty of his own conscience; that the Solemn League and
-Covenant was the same engine of tyranny in the hands of the presbyter
-that the massbook had been in the hands of the priest, or the Book of
-Common Prayer in the hands of the prelate; that immoral ministers were
-allowed to remain in their incumbencies without any attempt to remove
-them; that nothing was heard in parish pulpits but the subject of
-church discipline and ecclesiastical uniformity; that the Presbyterian
-clergy domineered over the Corporation; and that they were actuated
-mainly by self-interest, inasmuch as they had been at one time as
-ready to submit to surplices, tippets, liturgies, and canons, as they
-were now zealous in casting such things away. The object and animus of
-this publication cannot be mistaken; and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_507" id="Page_507">[507]</a></span> the character of the "<i>Vox
-Norwici</i>" is equally intelligible.<a name="FNanchor_630_630" id="FNanchor_630_630"></a><a href="#Footnote_630_630" class="fnanchor">[630]</a> It leaves what the Independents
-had said in reference to the Covenant to be censured by authority, and
-to be confuted by the pens and tongues of learned men. It vindicates
-the character of the Presbyterian ministers, and declares that if in
-their preaching they ever meddled with the topic of discipline and
-uniformity, it was "but a touch and away." It asserts that when they
-attended the court of the City Corporation, it was as petitioners,
-"with their hats in their hands," and that they were, notwithstanding
-the imputations cast upon them, disinterested men, as proved by
-their conduct, and the amount of their preferments. It affirms that
-the covenants of congregational churches&mdash;which had incurred the
-disapproval of Presbyterians&mdash;were vague and useless, and allowed
-people to draw their necks out of Christ's yoke. The tract proceeds to
-maintain that it was owing to the influence of the Presbyterian clergy
-that the magistrates of the city had doubled the poor-rates, so that
-the condition of the lower class had become considerably improved;
-but at the same time it admits that in congregational churches the
-poor were still better off, owing to their small number&mdash;poor members
-not being so easily admitted to such communion as were sisters<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_508" id="Page_508">[508]</a></span> in
-"silk-gowns." And then, as a last sting for their adversaries, the
-Presbyterians add this curious observation: "Besides, you can get so
-many good women to you, that their husbands cannot bear the charge of
-our poor, because their wives prove so chargeable to them."</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1646.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Presbyterians and Independents.</i></div>
-
-<p>It has been pointed out in these pages already how the military
-success of Cromwell, and the unpopularity of the Scotch, together with
-changes in the House of Commons, helped the political Independents to
-curb Presbyterian churchmanship and intolerance. But in those outside
-circumstances, if we may so express it, which materially affected the
-interests lying within the proper sphere of religion, a considerable
-change occurred during the latter part of the year 1646. A lull of
-peace in the midst of the civil wars, through the complete defeat of
-the King's army, and the capture of his strongholds, had deprived
-Cromwell and his soldiers of any further opportunity to increase
-their laurels. The Scotch, having the King in their camp, and being
-engaged in negotiations with Parliament for the payment of arrears,
-occupied an improved position, and further changes in the Lower
-House, altered again somewhat the relative strength of the two great
-parties. The policy of the Presbyterians on political questions, was
-moderation. They were averse to republicanism, and wished to retain
-the old constitution of King, Lords, and Commons. Some of the new
-members with strong revolutionary sympathies, who had entered the
-House in 1645, came by a natural influence to be more moderate when
-called themselves to bear the responsibilities of legislation, and
-when brought into close contact with persons against whom they were
-previously prejudiced. These now felt disposed to side somewhat with
-the Presbyterians.<a name="FNanchor_631_631" id="FNanchor_631_631"></a><a href="#Footnote_631_631" class="fnanchor">[631]</a><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_509" id="Page_509">[509]</a></span> Moreover, new members had been returned by
-constituencies loyal to the King, and they thought they should best
-aid the royal cause by voting with the Presbyterians. Consequently,
-the Independent party lost ground a little in the arena of their
-recent victories,<a name="FNanchor_632_632" id="FNanchor_632_632"></a><a href="#Footnote_632_632" class="fnanchor">[632]</a> and the alteration speedily manifested itself
-in the turn given to ecclesiastical proceedings. The Presbyterians
-availed themselves of their partially recovered supremacy to attack
-once more the hateful sects, and, by the iron foot of penal law, to
-crush out the life of error and evil. On the 26th of May, 1646, the
-Corporation of London, whose courage revived after the debates upon
-"the keys," presented a remonstrance to the Lords and Commons, in
-which they expressed their devotion to the Covenant, gave Parliament
-credit for not desiring to let loose "the golden reins of discipline
-and government," and complained of private and separate congregations
-daily erected in divers parts of the City, and commonly frequented;
-and of Anabaptism, and Brownism, and all manner of schisms, heresies,
-and blasphemies vented by such as, touching the point of Church
-government, professed themselves to be Independents. So that they go
-on to say: "We cannot but be astonished at the swarms of sectaries,
-which discover themselves everywhere, who, if by their endeavours
-they should get into places of profit and trust in martial and civil
-affairs, it might tend much to the disturbance of the public peace
-both of the Church and Commonwealth."<a name="FNanchor_633_633" id="FNanchor_633_633"></a><a href="#Footnote_633_633" class="fnanchor">[633]</a> The Presbyterians made a
-motion that the House would take the matter into consideration, which
-upon a division<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_510" id="Page_510">[510]</a></span> they were able to carry.<a name="FNanchor_634_634" id="FNanchor_634_634"></a><a href="#Footnote_634_634" class="fnanchor">[634]</a> In the winter of 1646,
-the Clergy of London, whose influence was paramount with the citizens,
-made the pulpits ring with invectives against parliamentary delay in
-the work of lifting the Church above the State; and when December came,
-the Lord Mayor and Corporation clamorously beset the House with their
-grievances. Contempt, they said, was put on the Covenant. Heresy and
-schism were still growing. Soldiers usurped the ministry and appeared
-in the pulpit. The petitioners entreated that the Covenant might
-be imposed on the whole nation, under penalties such as Parliament
-might think fit, that nobody should be allowed to preach who was not
-an ordained covenanter, and that separate congregations, which were
-all "nurseries of damnable heretics," might be suppressed.<a name="FNanchor_635_635" id="FNanchor_635_635"></a><a href="#Footnote_635_635" class="fnanchor">[635]</a> Upon
-this appeal a parliamentary declaration appeared in condemnation of
-a lay ministry, of everything derogatory to presbyterian government,
-and of those who should disturb any preachers in holy orders. Shortly
-afterwards, the London clergy, assembling at Sion College, published a
-treatise, entitled, "A Testimony to the Truth of Jesus Christ, and to
-our Solemn League and Covenant, as also against the errors, heresies,
-and blasphemies of these times, and the toleration of them, to which
-is added<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_511" id="Page_511">[511]</a></span> a Catalogue of the said Errors." The ministers of the
-counties of Gloucester, Lancaster, Devon, and Somerset declared their
-concurrence with the London brethren.<a name="FNanchor_636_636" id="FNanchor_636_636"></a><a href="#Footnote_636_636" class="fnanchor">[636]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1646.</div>
-
-<p>Other circumstances contributed to augment the confusion of the times.
-In the newspapers and pamphlets of the latter part of the year 1646
-there are several traces of terrific apprehensions entertained by
-religious people, such as greatly increased the excitement of the
-period. The harvest was late. In October, lamentations appear of
-corn in the north not gathered in, and of vetches still standing in
-the fields. A famine threatened the population; and such a calamity
-appeared the more probable from the continuance in England of the
-Scotch army, which, of course, consumed a large quantity of provision.
-Wailings over heavy rains and floods in the months of November and
-December were of frequent occurrence. "Where are our dry days," it was
-asked, "the divers-coloured bow of heaven? If the weather continue, the
-nation must abandon their walls of stone, and have recourse to walls of
-wood. Heaven weeps for us, yet we cannot weep for ourselves, because we
-have hearts of stone; like the offspring of Deucalion's people, we must
-partake of Deucalion's punishment."</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Supernatural Omens.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1646.</div>
-
-<p>It will help to illustrate the superstitious feelings which mingled
-with such fears if we notice the frequent references to supernatural
-portents about this time. In a curious quarto tract, entitled "Strange
-Signs from Heaven," published in the spring of the same year, we
-read the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_512" id="Page_512">[512]</a></span> following passage:&mdash;"At Brandon, in the county of Norfolk,
-the inhabitants were forced to come out of their houses to behold so
-strange a spectacle of a spire-steeple ascending up from the earth,
-and a pike or lance descending downward from heaven. The Lord in mercy
-bless and preserve His Church, and settle peace and truth among all
-degrees, and more especially among our churchmen! Also at Brandon, in
-the county aforesaid, was seen at the same time, a navy or fleet of
-ships in the air, swiftly passing under sail, with flags and streamers
-hanged out, as if they were ready to give an encounter. In Marshland,
-in the county of Norfolk aforesaid, within three miles of King's Lynn,
-a captain and a lieutenant, with divers other persons of credit, did
-hear in the time of thunder a sound, as of a whole regiment of drums
-beating a call with perfect notes and stops, much admired at of all
-that heard it. And the like military sound was heard in Suffolk upon
-the same day, and in other parts of the Eastern Association. In all
-these places there was very great thunder, with rain and hailstones of
-extraordinary bigness, and round, and some hollow within like rings.
-The Lord grant that all the people of this kingdom may take heed to
-every warning trumpet of His, that we may speedily awaken out of
-our sins, and truly turn to the Lord, fight His battles against our
-spiritual enemies, and get those inward riches of which we cannot be
-plundered, and so seek an inward kingdom of righteousness and peace,
-that we may be more capable in His good time of a settled peace and
-state in the outward kingdom, and all through our Lord Jesus Christ!"</p>
-
-<p>While Heaven was interpreted as frowning upon the earth, people were
-accused of indifference to religious<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_513" id="Page_513">[513]</a></span> duties. A religious newspaper,
-called the "Scottish Dove," described as "sent out and returning the
-28th of October and the 4th of November"&mdash;after quaintly remarking that
-the Dove had rested on the public fast&mdash;goes on to inform the reader
-how the country neglected, slighted, and contemned the ordinance of
-God, and of the Parliament for days of humiliation&mdash;not only in the
-country towns, where ignorant people ordinarily ploughed, threshed,
-hedged, and ditched, but also in the great city of London. Though the
-country was suffering, how thin were the congregations on a fast day!
-How full the cookshops, ordinaries, and taverns! "Do men indeed believe
-there is a God?" asks the indignant editor. Such lamentations remind
-us of similar ones expressed by St. Chrysostom, when comparing the
-scanty attendance at church with the multitudes assembled in places of
-amusement.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>The King at Holdenby.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1647.</div>
-
-<p>Amidst all these fears and complaints, negotiations were continued
-between the Presbyterians in Parliament, and the Scotch authorities
-relative to the payment and the disbanding of their troops and the
-surrender of the King into English hands. When arrangements for the
-purpose had been effected between the two parties, his Majesty, at
-the end of January, 1647, delivered himself up to the Parliamentary
-Commissioners at Newcastle, whence he was conducted to Holdenby House,
-in the county of Northampton&mdash;a stately Elizabethan mansion, which had
-been built by Sir Christopher Hatton&mdash;a retreat, however, certainly not
-selected in consideration of the fallen monarch's feelings, since it
-was within a short ride from Naseby, the scene of his final and most
-inglorious defeat. Notwithstanding this circumstance, he graciously
-expressed himself as glad to come a little nearer to his Parliament;
-and no doubt, with all sincerity, he also<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_514" id="Page_514">[514]</a></span> declared his perfect
-willingness to bid farewell to his northern hosts. His journey was
-retarded by unfavourable weather, yet thousands of spectators greeted
-his approach to the old mansion; whilst bells rang and cannons fired
-"with a gallant echo."<a name="FNanchor_637_637" id="FNanchor_637_637"></a><a href="#Footnote_637_637" class="fnanchor">[637]</a> The English Presbyterians were greatly
-elated on obtaining the charge of the royal person, a prize which, they
-hoped, would bring to them other advantages in its train.<a name="FNanchor_638_638" id="FNanchor_638_638"></a><a href="#Footnote_638_638" class="fnanchor">[638]</a> Charles,
-after reaching Holdenby House, requested to be allowed the attendance
-of his episcopal chaplains. The request was refused. He was informed
-that no one who did not take the Covenant could be permitted to remain
-in his household. It is very well known how his Majesty amused himself
-whilst at Holdenby&mdash;sometimes walking in the pleasant neighbourhood;
-sometimes riding over to a bowling-green a few miles distant. Other
-matters, too, not often noticed by historians, but characteristic of
-the royal prisoner, occupied his attention. As the opening spring
-covered with bright green the Northamptonshire fields, and as the pear
-trees in the orchards of Holdenby exhibited their snowy types of the
-resurrection, the royal and episcopalian churchman naturally desired
-to commemorate the holy festival of Easter, so endeared of old to the
-hearts of Christians.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>The King at Holdenby.</i></div>
-
-<p>"I desire," said Charles, in a paper he wrote at this time, "to
-be resolved of this question: Why the new reformers discharge the
-keeping of Easter? The reason for this query is, I conceive, that
-the celebration of this<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_515" id="Page_515">[515]</a></span> feast was instituted by the same authority
-which changed the Jewish Sabbath into the Lord's Day, or Sunday; for
-it will not be found in Scripture when Saturday is discharged to be
-kept, or turned into Sunday, whereas it must be the Church's authority
-that changed the one and instituted the other. Therefore, my opinion
-is, that those who will not keep this feast may as well return to the
-observation of Saturday, and refuse the weekly Sunday. When anybody can
-shew me that herein I am in error, I shall not be ashamed to confess
-and amend it. Till then, you know my mind.&mdash;C. Rex."</p>
-
-<p>To this, Sir James Harrington&mdash;who had been appointed by Parliament
-to attend upon him at Holdenby&mdash;replied, that the changing of the
-Sabbath and the instituting of Easter were "not by one and the same
-equal authority and ecclesiastical decree, upon which the reason of his
-Majesty's query seems to be built." "The Easter festival is a church
-appointment; but the observance of the Sabbath is according to the
-fourth commandment, and in the New Testament there is evidence of the
-change of the day."<a name="FNanchor_639_639" id="FNanchor_639_639"></a><a href="#Footnote_639_639" class="fnanchor">[639]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1647.</div>
-
-<p>With the King in their keeping, and with a majority still on their side
-in the House of Commons, the Presbyterians were full of confidence,
-and their religious affairs seemed to promise a favourable issue.
-But the army became to them an increasing difficulty. To disband it
-appeared most desirable; but how to accomplish that object was the
-question. The soldiers did not choose to be disbanded. They said
-they were not Turkish janissaries, nor Swiss mercenaries&mdash;not mere
-adventurers of fortune, paid to throw their lances in a cause they
-did not care for&mdash;but Englishmen, who had been struggling<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_516" id="Page_516">[516]</a></span> for their
-rights, fighting in defence of hearth, home, and a free church; and,
-before they laid down their arms, they would know that their country
-had obtained what they and their brave comrades had shed their blood
-to win. They were entitled to be paid before they were dismissed, and
-paid they would be; but, what was more precious to them far than pay,
-they would secure for themselves and their fellow-countrymen liberty
-of conscience. To use Clarendon's words: "Hitherto there was so little
-security provided in that point, that there was a greater persecution
-now against religious and godly men than ever had been in the King's
-government, when the bishops were their judges."<a name="FNanchor_640_640" id="FNanchor_640_640"></a><a href="#Footnote_640_640" class="fnanchor">[640]</a> This is
-exaggeration; yet it was thus that men talked around their camp-fires
-on frosty nights during that memorable winter. The army petitioned
-Parliament in the spring of 1647. Parliament objected to army
-petitions. The petitioners vindicated their rights in this respect; and
-some troopers boldly sent a letter to the honourable House, declaring
-that they would not disband until their requests were granted, and the
-liberties of the subject were placed beyond peril. A debate followed
-this appeal, and speeches were prolonged to a late hour. Denzil Holles,
-the Presbyterian leader, full of that passion and prejudice which often
-blinded his strong intellect and pushed on his resolute will, then
-hastily took a scrap of paper, and wrote across it, as it lay upon his
-knee, a resolution declaring the petition to be seditious, and that to
-support it was treason. Holles' resolution fell like a spark upon an
-open barrel of gunpowder.</p>
-
-<p>This was in the month of April. In March, the House had resolved that
-every officer in garrison, and under<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_517" id="Page_517">[517]</a></span> the command of Fairfax, should
-take the Covenant, and conform to the Church by ordinance established.
-The vote aimed a blow at the Independents, and those who sympathized
-with them&mdash;Cromwell, Blake, Ludlow, Algernon Sidney, Ireton, Skippon,
-and Hutchinson.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Earl of Essex.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1647.</div>
-
-<p>The Presbyterians were now walking in the dark on the edge of a
-pitfall. Their great general, the Earl of Essex, was dead.<a name="FNanchor_641_641" id="FNanchor_641_641"></a><a href="#Footnote_641_641" class="fnanchor">[641]</a> The
-only son of Robert, Queen Elizabeth's favourite, he had enjoyed much
-of his father's popularity. Trained to arms in the Netherlands, he
-became an accomplished soldier of the old school; and, having served
-with distinction in the wars of the Palatinate, he had acquired the
-reputation of a Protestant champion before he was called upon to draw
-his sword within the shores of his native land. His military fame and
-his religious character pointed him out as a Parliamentary commander
-at the outbreak of the civil wars. A moderate Episcopalian in the
-first instance, yet wishing to see bishops excluded from the peerage,
-he glided into Presbyterianism, and at last would have been glad to
-bring about such a settlement of affairs as would give ascendancy to
-that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_518" id="Page_518">[518]</a></span> system without the destruction of monarchical rule. In all
-respects moderate&mdash;fearing a decisive victory, such as would crush the
-King, scarcely less than he feared such a defeat of the Parliamentary
-army as would restore him to his former power&mdash;the history of the
-military career of the Earl of Essex in England was more cautious than
-brilliant, and from first to last abounded in Fabian delays. Nominally
-retaining supreme command of the forces till the year 1645, the
-influence of this nobleman had declined with the siege of Gloucester,
-in 1643.</p>
-
-<p>The surrender of his army in the west, in the autumn of 1644, brought
-a cloud over his military career, though it left untarnished his
-personal honour. The old officers being displaced by the self-denying
-ordinance, Essex had to resign his baton. Without military command,
-he notwithstanding continued to be a man of great influence; which
-personal vanity, as well as higher considerations, prompted him to
-employ. Sympathizing with Presbyterians, and jealous of Independents,
-he incurred Cromwell's displeasure; and Cromwell, after the passing of
-the self-denying ordinance, became disliked by him. Had Essex lived,
-it was thought&mdash;though without sufficient reason&mdash;that he might have
-allayed party feeling and have prevented the terrible catastrophe
-which was not far distant. His death, however, struck at the hopes
-of compromise cherished by his Presbyterian friends, whilst, by that
-event, Cromwell and his party, as Clarendon reports, were wonderfully
-exalted, Essex being the only one "whose credit and interest they
-feared without any esteem of his person."<a name="FNanchor_642_642" id="FNanchor_642_642"></a><a href="#Footnote_642_642" class="fnanchor">[642]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>The King and the Independents.</i></div>
-
-<p>It should also be considered how unwise the Presbyterians had been
-in paying off and dismissing the Scotch army, which, so long as it
-continued on English<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_519" id="Page_519">[519]</a></span> ground, might be reckoned as an ally and a
-defender of the new Church. At least, that army remaining here would
-have served to hold the English one in check, and to render its
-commanders more prudent, if it did not make its men less bold. But
-the march of the Presbyterian regiments over the border left Cromwell
-and his brother officers free from all apprehensions of military
-resistance. The Independents thus became masters of the situation.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1647.</div>
-
-<p>A very bold stroke they in their turn struck at Presbyterian plans,
-when, in the month of June, they sent Cornet Joyce to fetch his Majesty
-from Holdenby House that they might take care of him themselves;<a name="FNanchor_643_643" id="FNanchor_643_643"></a><a href="#Footnote_643_643" class="fnanchor">[643]</a>
-and they almost reconciled him to his new captivity by relaxing the
-restraints which he had endured, and by allowing him to have his own
-chaplains. Sheldon, Morley, Sanderson, and Hammond, now "performed
-their function at the ordinary hours in their accustomed formalities;
-all persons, who had a mind to it, being suffered to be present, to
-his Majesty's infinite satisfaction."<a name="FNanchor_644_644" id="FNanchor_644_644"></a><a href="#Footnote_644_644" class="fnanchor">[644]</a> The restored surplice and
-prayer book were a great comfort to the unhappy prince. The concession
-appears to have resulted from policy; for as the Presbyterians had
-been in treaty with him for the furtherance of their ends, some of the
-Independent officers now thought of effecting their own reconciliation
-on terms of their own. Into the story of the conferences between<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_520" id="Page_520">[520]</a></span>
-Sir John Berkely and the King on the one hand, and between Sir John
-Berkely and certain chieftains of the army on the other, it is not
-our business to enter. We would only say that the sincere purpose
-of Cromwell, in reference to ecclesiastical matters, seems to have
-been to secure toleration, within certain limits, for the religious
-opinions and observances both of the people and of the Monarch, and to
-prevent the exercise of either Episcopalian or Presbyterian tyranny.
-We are inclined to believe that, on such a basis&mdash;with due securities
-for political liberty, and in connection with official arrangements,
-in which, of course, so distinguished a man could not but expect to
-have some conspicuous place&mdash;Cromwell felt not unwilling to aid in
-the restoration of Charles. But the insincerity of the latter and the
-opposition of the republicans prevented the scheme from proceeding far.</p>
-
-<p>Cromwell also aimed at reconciling the factious members of the two
-parties. He invited certain Presbyterians and Independents to dine with
-him at Westminster, and he held conferences with the grandees of the
-House and with the grandees of the army. All this, however, proved to
-be of no effect. Ludlow tells a story of the hero of Naseby, at the end
-of a conference, flinging a cushion at his head and then running down
-stairs, and of his overtaking the general with another cushion, which
-"made him hasten down faster than he desired."<a name="FNanchor_645_645" id="FNanchor_645_645"></a><a href="#Footnote_645_645" class="fnanchor">[645]</a> Ludlow, with all
-his prejudice against Cromwell, was not the man to invent an untruth,
-even in so small a matter; and one may note this flash of fun after
-severe debate, as indicating a genuine Teutonic temperament in the two
-rough soldiers, akin to what we read of in old Norse mythologies, of
-grotesque tricks played by Woden-like chiefs,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_521" id="Page_521">[521]</a></span> and quite in keeping
-with what we know of that Teutonic hero, Martin Luther, who could laugh
-and joke, as well as preach and pray.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Royalist Demonstrations.</i></div>
-
-<p>Although Cromwell could not reconcile ecclesiastical adversaries,
-or come to terms with the captive King, there remained no hope for
-Presbyterian uniformity. Active men in the undisbanded army, true to
-their purpose, still insisted upon securing the right of toleration,
-together with certain other points of a political nature; and, seeing
-that there were Presbyterians at work in the House of Commons with a
-view of thwarting their designs, they boldly impeached eleven of them.</p>
-
-<p>Immense excitement ensued. Trained-bands, apprentices, mariners, and
-soldiers, petitioned that the King might be brought to London, with the
-hope of securing a reconciliation. Riots followed. The House of Commons
-was besieged; and Sir Arthur Haselrig, the political Independent,
-persuaded the Speaker, at the head of a large number of members, to
-leave Westminster, and to fly for protection to the camp. The Speaker,
-having "caused a thousand pounds to be thrown into his coach, went down
-to the army, which lay then at Windsor, Maidenhead, Colnbrook, and the
-adjacent places."<a name="FNanchor_646_646" id="FNanchor_646_646"></a><a href="#Footnote_646_646" class="fnanchor">[646]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1648.</div>
-
-<p>Notwithstanding these extraordinary attempts on the part of the
-opposition, the Presbyterians did not lose their ascendancy in the
-House of Commons.<a name="FNanchor_647_647" id="FNanchor_647_647"></a><a href="#Footnote_647_647" class="fnanchor">[647]</a> Their cause received vigorous and influential
-support from the London ministers. The Corporation also manifested
-similar zeal by taking care to place in all municipal offices
-Presbyterians of a true blue tint. The party further strengthened
-itself in some quarters through its Royalism, and in consequence of
-the repugnance which was felt by numbers<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_522" id="Page_522">[522]</a></span> of people at the growing
-Republicanism of the Independents. Republicanism, besides its inherent
-defects, had the disadvantage of appearing to the practical minds of
-Englishmen as at the best an untried theory, which, whatever advantages
-it might seem to promise, would be found miserably wanting when tested
-by being put into practice.</p>
-
-<p>Outbursts of Royalist violence occurred in the spring of 1648. The
-city of Norwich had a Royalist and Episcopalian mayor, whom the
-Parliament deposed from office, appointing another alderman in his
-place. The citizens who took part with the disgraced chief magistrate
-abused his successor, and threatened to hang the pursuivant and
-sheriff upon the Castle Hill. It being reported that the gentleman
-who had been thus set aside would be carried off by his enemies in
-the night, his friends seized the keys of the many-gated city, and
-assembled in the market-place, giving out as their watchword, "For God
-and King Charles." Large crowds afterwards openly avowed that they
-were for his Majesty, and that they would pluck the Roundheads out of
-the Corporation, and put in honest men who would serve God and go to
-church. The city found itself filled with rioters who were breaking
-windows, entering houses, plundering them of food, wine, and beer, and
-seizing the fire-arms kept in the magazine. All was confusion, and the
-tradesmen shut up their shops. But Colonel Fleetwood's troopers, then
-in the county, were quickly despatched to quell the riot. The rebels
-ran away after being attacked by the soldiers, and retired to the
-Committee House, where the county ammunition was kept. By accident or
-from design ninety-eight barrels of gunpowder there exploded, which not
-only blew up several persons "into the air, but by the violence of the
-shock, which was perceived in the greatest part of the county, many
-windows were shattered in pieces, and much<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_523" id="Page_523">[523]</a></span> mischief done by the stones
-and timber at a great distance."<a name="FNanchor_648_648" id="FNanchor_648_648"></a><a href="#Footnote_648_648" class="fnanchor">[648]</a> A riot of a similar kind happened
-at Bury St. Edmunds.<a name="FNanchor_649_649" id="FNanchor_649_649"></a><a href="#Footnote_649_649" class="fnanchor">[649]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Laws against Heresy.</i></div>
-
-<p>Out of these Royalist demonstrations Parliament made capital at the
-moment of putting them down. On the 28th of April, 1648&mdash;two days
-after the Norwich Corporation had determined on a thanksgiving for
-the suppression of the tumult<a name="FNanchor_650_650" id="FNanchor_650_650"></a><a href="#Footnote_650_650" class="fnanchor">[650]</a>&mdash;the House of Commons carried a
-resolution that the future government of England should be by King,
-Lords, and Commons, and that a treaty should be opened with Charles
-for peace and settlement. What kind of settlement it was to be,
-ecclesiastically considered, the Presbyterian Commons foreshadowed by a
-law made a few days afterwards.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1648.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Newport Treaty.</i></div>
-
-<p>As early as April, 1646, a bill had been in preparation for preventing
-heresies and blasphemies. In the September of that year it had been
-read a first and second time. In the following November the House had
-voted that the penalty for such offences, in certain cases, should be
-death. Subsequent political confusions had arrested for a while the
-progress of this measure, but now, on the 2nd of May, 1648, under the
-renewed ascendancy of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_524" id="Page_524">[524]</a></span> Presbyterianism, an ordinance came forth of the
-following character:<a name="FNanchor_651_651" id="FNanchor_651_651"></a><a href="#Footnote_651_651" class="fnanchor">[651]</a>&mdash;The denial of God by preaching, teaching,
-printing or writing, of His perfections, or of the Trinity, or of
-the two natures of Christ, or of His atonement, or of the canonical
-books of Scripture, or of the resurrection of the dead and a final
-judgment, was to be deemed a capital offence; and the offender was to
-"suffer the pains of death, as in case of felony, without benefit of
-clergy." In case of recantation, he was to remain in prison till he
-found two sureties who would answer for his never again broaching the
-said errors. The ordinance specified a second class of heresies:&mdash;That
-all men shall be saved&mdash;that man by nature hath free will to turn to
-God&mdash;that God may be worshipped by pictures and images&mdash;that there
-is a purgatory&mdash;that the soul can die or sleep&mdash;that the workings
-of the Spirit are a rule of life, although they be contrary to the
-written Word&mdash;that man is bound to believe no more than his reason
-can comprehend&mdash;that the moral law is no rule of Christian life&mdash;that
-a believer need not repent or pray&mdash;that the two sacraments are not
-of Divine authority&mdash;that infant baptism is unlawful or void&mdash;that
-the observance of the Lord's day, as enjoined in this realm, is not
-according to the Word of God&mdash;that it is not lawful to join in public
-or family prayer, or to teach children to pray&mdash;that the churches
-of England are not true churches&mdash;that Presbyterian government is
-anti-Christian&mdash;that the magistracy established in England is unlawful,
-or that the use of arms is not allowable. To publish or maintain
-any of these doctrines, entailed imprisonment until the offender
-found sureties for his not offending any more. In conclusion, it was
-provided that no attainder by virtue of the ordinance should extend
-to a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_525" id="Page_525">[525]</a></span> forfeiture of estates or a corruption of blood. We have given
-this piece of legislation almost entire. It throws light on the nature
-of the errors which at that time were prevalent. The ordinance is
-pointed at Atheism, Infidelity, and Socinianism, also at Pelagianism,
-Universalism, and Popery. It levels its bolts at Quakerism,
-Antinomianism, and Anabaptism. It fixes its eyes on fifth monarchy
-men, and will allow no anti-Presbyterian to escape its vengeance. But,
-in seeking to crush what were mischievous errors, these legislators
-really brought within danger of prison and death a number of persons
-who, though belonging to none of the proscribed sects, yet might refuse
-the exact formulary of belief which the words of the act enjoined.
-A person might devoutly believe in the divinity of Christ, and yet
-he might object to a definition of the Trinity; he might accept the
-Scriptures as Divine, and yet he might doubt the canonicity of certain
-books. Notwithstanding such a man's substantial faith, the ordinance
-threatened him with a felon's doom. Some of the opinions specified were
-merely intellectual, and, socially considered, perfectly innocuous.
-But, supposing a man entertained the very worst sentiments coming
-within the view of this minutely specific law, such an enactment only
-served in the instance of a courageous heresiarch to make him all the
-more obstinate in his misbelief. And then the folly of requiring in
-such cases sureties for good behaviour! No doubt the statesmen who
-thus meddled in the region of religious opinion, proceeded upon other
-principles than those of mere political expediency, and would have
-met all objections based on the inefficacy of their policy for good,
-its social injustice, and its violation of the rights of conscience,
-with this argument&mdash;that the highest duty of the magistrate is simply
-to maintain God's truth irrespective of all consequences; that as a
-defender<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_526" id="Page_526">[526]</a></span> of the Church he is not to bear the sword in vain; and that
-he is to tread in the steps of Israel's heroes, walking through the
-camp of God, Phineas-like, javelin in hand. But however disposed one
-may be to do justice to the motives of these men, as honestly desiring
-to advance the glory of God, it is impossible not to regard proceedings
-like theirs in the instance before us as inspired with a monstrous
-fanaticism.<a name="FNanchor_652_652" id="FNanchor_652_652"></a><a href="#Footnote_652_652" class="fnanchor">[652]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1648.</div>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Newport Treaty.</i></div>
-
-<p>In the month of September, 1648, not long after the ordinance had
-been passed for more effectually settling Presbyterian government,
-boats crossed the water between the Hampshire coast and the Isle of
-Wight, conveying Noblemen, Gentlemen, Divines and Lawyers to take
-part in a new conference with the fallen sovereign.<a name="FNanchor_653_653" id="FNanchor_653_653"></a><a href="#Footnote_653_653" class="fnanchor">[653]</a><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_527" id="Page_527">[527]</a></span> He was
-allowed to have, as assistants in the discussion, certain learned
-Episcopalians, including Juxon, Hammond, and Ussher, who were to stand
-behind his chair; but they were not to speak except when the King might
-wish for their advice, which could be given by them only in another
-room. The Parliament sent down on its own behalf five noblemen, with
-four Presbyterian Divines&mdash;Dr. Seaman, Mr. Caryl, Mr. Marshall, and
-Mr. Vines. The principal topics debated were of an ecclesiastical
-nature&mdash;as on other points the King, being now reduced to the last
-extremity, yielded his consent to the demands of Parliament. He
-took his stand on the merits of Episcopacy, and the demerits of the
-Covenant. His arguments were in the main the same as those which he
-had adduced at Newcastle, and some Episcopalians have thought that the
-royal theologian, in this renewed controversy, derived little benefit
-from his Episcopal advisers.<a name="FNanchor_654_654" id="FNanchor_654_654"></a><a href="#Footnote_654_654" class="fnanchor">[654]</a></p>
-
-<p>Circumstances compelled him now to make large practical concessions.
-He would abolish the hierarchy, except the simple order of bishops.
-He would for the space of three years allow no other ecclesiastical
-government than the Presbyterian, and afterwards would not permit
-any Episcopal rule to be exercised except such as Parliament might
-allow; indeed, he went so far as to say if he could be convinced that
-Episcopacy was not agreeable to the Word of God he would take it
-entirely away. Afterwards he promised that for the next three years he
-would appoint no new Bishops, that Bishops should receive no persons
-into holy orders without the consent of the Presbyters, that another
-form than the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_528" id="Page_528">[528]</a></span> Common Prayer should be used in the royal chapel, and
-that mass should never be said at Court.<a name="FNanchor_655_655" id="FNanchor_655_655"></a><a href="#Footnote_655_655" class="fnanchor">[655]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1648.</div>
-
-<p>Charles at last resolved to make no further concessions. To the three
-demands made by Parliament through the Commissioners, first, for the
-abolition of Bishops, secondly, for the sale of their lands, and
-thirdly, for the use of the Directory by himself, he gave a decided
-denial. If, said he, the Houses thought it not fit to recede from the
-strictness of their demands in these respects, then he would with all
-the more comfort cast himself upon his Saviour's goodness to support
-him and defend him from all afflictions.<a name="FNanchor_656_656" id="FNanchor_656_656"></a><a href="#Footnote_656_656" class="fnanchor">[656]</a></p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Newport Treaty.</i></div>
-
-<p>A Royalist reaction now sprung up amongst the Presbyterians, and the
-former alienation between the army and the Parliament burst into open
-warfare. The army, tired of treaties which made not the slightest
-provision for religious liberty, tired also of one-sided Presbyterian
-zeal, which sacrificed the liberties of the country to the adored ideal
-of a covenanted uniformity, and further tired of long and fruitless
-negotiations, addressed a stern remonstrance to Parliament&mdash;as long too
-as it was stern&mdash;demanding justice upon the misguided monarch.<a name="FNanchor_657_657" id="FNanchor_657_657"></a><a href="#Footnote_657_657" class="fnanchor">[657]</a>
-Then came a declaration of the advance of the army<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_529" id="Page_529">[529]</a></span> towards the
-City of London. Thus threatened, the Presbyterians were put on their
-defence. To submit to the army would be to give up their idol. More
-hope remained for Presbyterianism now in pushing a treaty with the
-King than in yielding to the pressure of the Independents. The courage
-and calmness of the advocates of this policy at such a moment command
-our admiration. Amidst all their fondness for the Covenant, and all
-their aversion to Episcopacy, there appeared a disinterested spirit of
-loyalty to the King's person, and of great anxiety for the preservation
-of the King's life.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1648.</div>
-
-<p>On Monday, December the 4th, after tidings had been received of the
-removal of Charles across the water from Carisbrook to Hurst Castle, by
-officers of the army&mdash;the Commons were in deep debate. They declared
-that the removal had been accomplished without their consent or
-knowledge, and then they grappled with the all-absorbing question,
-whether the royal answers to the propositions of both Houses could
-be considered satisfactory. Whilst Sir Harry Vane, Mr. Corbet, and
-others of the Independent party contended that those answers were not
-satisfactory, the Presbyterians put forth all their remaining strength
-to save his Majesty. Sir Benjamin Rudyard, Sir Harbottle Grimstone, and
-Sir Symonds D'Ewes came to the rescue; but Mr. Prynne stood forward
-as the chief advocate of the false and fallen prince. In a speech,
-continued long after candles had been lighted, he went over the whole
-ground of the long dispute. He could not, as he said, be suspected of
-any undue partiality for his Majesty, seeing that all the royal favour
-he had ever received was shewn in cutting off his ears; but still he
-argued with immense elaboration and great ability that there was enough
-in the results of the recent negotiations to warrant the conclusion of
-a treaty. The political concessions<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_530" id="Page_530">[530]</a></span> which had been made he maintained
-were amply sufficient. Such as were ecclesiastical, he proceeded
-to observe, though they did not meet the Parliament's demands, yet
-went so far as to warrant a hope of a satisfactory issue. For hours
-he continued his speech, and at the end of it the majority&mdash;so the
-orator himself reports&mdash;declared both by their cheerful countenances
-and by their express words that they were abundantly satisfied.
-After the Speaker had taken some refreshments there came a division
-on the question, that the answers of the King "are a ground for
-the House to proceed upon, for the settlement of the peace of the
-kingdom." Ayes, 140, Noes, 104. It was Tuesday morning; the clock had
-now struck nine, and the debate had lasted from the morning of the
-previous day. Although the doors had never been locked, there were
-present in the House at one time as many as 340 members: many of them,
-however, because of age and infirmity, could not remain throughout the
-night.<a name="FNanchor_658_658" id="FNanchor_658_658"></a><a href="#Footnote_658_658" class="fnanchor">[658]</a></p>
-
-<p>Whatever opinion may be formed of the Presbyterian policy, everybody
-must acknowledge that such a debate with the army at the door brought
-out some noble characteristics, and that Prynne shewed himself a brave
-man, with such armed odds against him, thus to stand up for peace with
-Charles, at the moment when his death-knell had begun to be rung in the
-camp. Zeal for Presbyterianism, hatred of Independency, and jealousy
-of the army were powerful motives with this singular person; yet with
-these feelings were blended sentiments of the purest loyalty.</p>
-
-<p>But eloquence proved no match for steel. The Scotch army had set up the
-Covenant; the English army now<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_531" id="Page_531">[531]</a></span> pulled it down. As at the beginning
-of that great mistake, so at the end, force had more influence than
-reason, violence than argument. Pride's purge carried all before it.
-Prynne had not recovered from his exhaustion before the army had
-cleared the House of all opponents. Above one hundred members were
-excluded before the end of December; others withdrew. Thus by one and
-the same blow the fate of monarchy and of Presbyterianism was decided.
-It is vain to talk about constitutionalism at such a crisis. Revolution
-had marched through England gaunt and grim. Its black shadow had
-darkened the land, and now it fell over Parliament itself. The army
-had fought for liberty of conscience, certainly not the least of the
-prizes in dispute, and that being now in jeopardy, a strong hand was
-put forth very unceremoniously to beat down the obstacle which hindered
-its attainment.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Execution of the King.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1649, January.</div>
-
-<p>As it was with Lord Strafford and with Archbishop Laud, so it was
-with King Charles I. The noblest scene in his whole life was the
-last. He appeared to infinitely greater advantage at the bar, and on
-the scaffold, than he had ever done before. His religious demeanour,
-when he came to die, was all which his admirers could wish. Without
-refusing the prayers of Presbyterians and Independents, he availed
-himself of the counsels and devotions of Bishop Juxon; and he said to
-that prelate on his offering some expressions of condolence&mdash;"Leave
-off this, my Lord, we have no time for it. Let us think of our great
-work, and prepare to meet the great God to whom ere long I am to give
-an account of myself, and I hope I shall do it with peace, and that
-you will assist me therein. We will not talk of these rogues in whose
-hands I am. They thirst after my blood, and they will have it, and
-God's will be done. I thank God I heartily<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_532" id="Page_532">[532]</a></span> forgive them, and will
-talk of them no more." In a message to his son, he declared his faith
-in the apostolical institution of Episcopacy, and, as a last request,
-earnestly urged him to read the Bible, which in his own affliction, he
-remarked, "had been his best instructor and delight." He said to his
-attendant, on the morning of his execution, "Herbert, this is my second
-marriage day, I would be as trim to-day as may be, for before night I
-hope to be espoused to my blessed Jesus." "I fear not death, death is
-not terrible to me. I bless my God I am prepared."<a name="FNanchor_659_659" id="FNanchor_659_659"></a><a href="#Footnote_659_659" class="fnanchor">[659]</a> On his way to
-the block he hastened his attendants, remarking that he now went before
-them to strive for a heavenly crown with less solicitude than he had
-often encouraged his soldiers to fight for an earthly diadem.</p>
-
-<p>His words, as he stood with Juxon at his side,<a name="FNanchor_660_660" id="FNanchor_660_660"></a><a href="#Footnote_660_660" class="fnanchor">[660]</a> before the axe
-of the masked executioner, were broken and confused; but he declared
-himself a Christian, and a member of the Church; that he had a good
-cause and a gracious God, and was going from a corruptible to an
-incorruptible crown.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>Execution of the King.</i></div>
-
-<p>The impression which the tragedy produced on two eminent persons has
-been fully recorded. Parr, in his <i>Life of Ussher</i>,<a name="FNanchor_661_661" id="FNanchor_661_661"></a><a href="#Footnote_661_661" class="fnanchor">[661]</a> relates how
-the Irish primate came upon the leads of Lady Peterborough's house,
-"just over against Charing Cross," as the King made his final speech,
-and how, when his Majesty "had pulled off his cloak and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_533" id="Page_533">[533]</a></span> doublet,
-and stood stripped in his waistcoat," and the men in vizards put up
-his hair, the good Bishop, unable to bear the dismal sight, grew pale
-and faint, and would have swooned away had not his servants removed
-him. He could vent his excitement only in prayers and tears; and ever
-afterwards he observed the 30th of January as a private fast. Matthew
-Henry states that his eminently-godly father witnessed the execution,
-and used to tell his children, at Broad Oak, of the dismal groan
-amongst the thousands of the people when the axe fell&mdash;a groan the
-like of which he had never heard before, and hoped he should never
-hear again; and he would also mention the circumstance of one troop of
-horse marching from Charing Cross to King Street, and another from King
-Street to Charing Cross, to disperse the crowd as soon as the awful
-deed was done.<a name="FNanchor_662_662" id="FNanchor_662_662"></a><a href="#Footnote_662_662" class="fnanchor">[662]</a></p>
-
-<p>The execution of Charles, however it may be deplored as
-mischievous, criticised as impolitic, or condemned as unjust, was
-perhaps&mdash;looking at the natural resentments and fears of men under
-the circumstances&mdash;only such a sequel to the civil wars as became
-probable after long experience of the King's invincible duplicity.
-Like Strafford, he had become too dangerous to live; and now it was
-thought that, like Strafford, he must die. Moreover, visions of
-republican bliss dazzled the imagination of a few who believed that
-they would be nearer the attainment of their hopes when the head of
-Charles should have rolled in dust.<a name="FNanchor_663_663" id="FNanchor_663_663"></a><a href="#Footnote_663_663" class="fnanchor">[663]</a> One result, it appears, they
-did not contemplate. They made a martyr of their<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_534" id="Page_534">[534]</a></span> victim, and thus so
-deeply stained their cause in the estimation of the largest portion of
-posterity, that all their patriotism and religious consistency in other
-respects have not sufficed to wipe out the blot.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1649, January.</div>
-
-<p>The Presbyterians ought not to be reproached for the fate of Charles.
-Their statesmen did what they could to prevent it; and their Divines
-courageously protested against his being put to death, as a national
-crime. Nor should the Independents, as a religious sect, be made
-to bear the responsibility. It is true that some of them were
-members of the High Court of Justice&mdash;Bradshaw, the president, and
-Corbet, to mention no others, were in communion with Congregational
-Churches<a name="FNanchor_664_664" id="FNanchor_664_664"></a><a href="#Footnote_664_664" class="fnanchor">[664]</a>&mdash;but there were also Independent ministers who openly
-declared against the sentence; and the silence of others upon the
-subject is no more to be construed into approval than is the silence of
-Episcopalians.<a name="FNanchor_665_665" id="FNanchor_665_665"></a><a href="#Footnote_665_665" class="fnanchor">[665]</a> What extravagant things might be said by such a man
-as the notorious Hugh Peters, or even by John Goodwin&mdash;a different sort
-of person it is true&mdash;ought not to be charged upon the Independents in
-general. Yet some amongst the best of them, it must be acknowledged,
-approved of the deed. Lucy Hutchinson relates the conflicts of her
-husband, shewing how a sense of duty decided him in the part he took
-in the proceeding. Dr. Owen preached before Parliament the day after
-the King was beheaded; and though he does not allude to the event of
-the preceding morning, he preached in a strain not at all consistent
-with any reprobation of it, as an act of injustice.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_535" id="Page_535">[535]</a></span> Although, in our
-opinion, it was a blunder, it has been vindicated even in the present
-day by writers of undoubted piety and honour: no wonder that good men,
-amidst a struggle which we can imperfectly imagine, were impelled to
-do what good men in the serener atmosphere of two centuries later
-deliberately justify.</p>
-
-<div class="sidenote"><i>The Funeral.</i></div>
-
-<div class="sidenote">1649, February.</div>
-
-<p>The King was buried at Windsor on the 9th of February. Thither his
-remains were conveyed by Mr. Herbert and others; some of his faithful
-nobility, accompanied by Bishop Juxon, arriving at the Castle next day.
-They shewed the Governor-General, Whitchcot,<a name="FNanchor_666_666" id="FNanchor_666_666"></a><a href="#Footnote_666_666" class="fnanchor">[666]</a> an authority from
-Parliament for their attendance at the funeral, and requested that the
-body might be interred according to the rites of the Church of England.
-The Governor refused, on the ground that the Common Prayer had been put
-down. To their solicitations and arguments he replied it was improbable
-that the Parliament would permit the use of what it had so solemnly
-abolished, and thus virtually contradict and destroy its own act. To
-which they rejoined: "There was a difference betwixt destroying their
-own act and dispensing with it, or suspending the exercise thereof;
-that no power so bindeth up its own hands as to disable itself in some
-cases to recede from the rigour of their own acts, if they should see
-just occasion." The plea proved unavailing. Whitchcot would not yield.
-As the funeral procession moved from the great hall in the Castle, and
-entered the open air, "the sky was serene and clear; but presently it
-began to snow, and the snow fell so fast that by that time the corpse
-came to the west end of the Royal Chapel, the black velvet pall was
-all white." The sol<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_536" id="Page_536">[536]</a></span>diers of the garrison carried the body to its
-resting-place under the choir. Over the coffin hung a black velvet
-hearse-cloth, "the four labels whereof the four Lords did support. The
-Bishop of London stood weeping by, to tender his service, which might
-not be accepted. Then was it deposited in silence and sorrow in the
-vacant place in the vault (the hearse-cloth being cast in after it)
-about three of the clock in the afternoon."<a name="FNanchor_667_667" id="FNanchor_667_667"></a><a href="#Footnote_667_667" class="fnanchor">[667]</a></p>
-
-
-<div class="footnotes"><h3>FOOTNOTES:</h3>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_1_1" id="Footnote_1_1"></a><a href="#FNanchor_1_1"><span class="label">[1]</span></a> There is a document amongst the State Papers, headed
-"Proceeding to the Parliament of the Most High and Mighty Prince, King
-Charles, on Tuesday, the 3rd of November, 1640, from Whitehall by
-water to Westminster Stairs, and from thence on foot." The document is
-interesting in connection with Clarendon's statement: "The King himself
-did not ride with his accustomed equipage, nor in his usual majesty, to
-Westminster, but went privately in his barge to the parliament stairs,
-and so to the Church, as if it had been to a return of a prorogued or
-adjourned Parliament."&mdash;<i>Hist. of Rebellion and Life</i> (in one vol.),
-68. The paper exhibits the following programme: "Messengers; trumpets;
-the Sergeant-trumpeter alone; Master of the Chancery; the King's Puisne
-Sergeants-at-law; the King's Solicitor and the King's Attorney-General;
-the King's two ancient Sergeants-at-law; Masters of the Requests,
-two and two; Barons of the Exchequer; Justices of the Common Pleas;
-Justices of the King's Bench; Lord Chief Baron of the Exchequer: Master
-of the Rolls; the two Lords Chief Justices; Pursuivants-of-Arms; Privy
-Councillors; Heralds; Lord Finch, keeper of the Great Seal of England,
-and many other lords and gentlemen."</p></div>
-
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_2_2" id="Footnote_2_2"></a><a href="#FNanchor_2_2"><span class="label">[2]</span></a> See <i>Journals of the Lords</i>, to the words of which I have
-closely adhered, and <i>Parliamentary History</i>. (Cobbett), ii. 637.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_3_3" id="Footnote_3_3"></a><a href="#FNanchor_3_3"><span class="label">[3]</span></a> No one can see more clearly than myself the defectiveness
-of these views of the state of parties. We must begin somewhere. To
-go very far back is unsatisfactory, because the glimpses given of
-remote periods must be indistinct and confused, and are apt to convey
-inaccurate impressions. To commence with notices of what took place
-just before our history opens, is also exposed to objection, because it
-leaves out of sight so much which served to prepare for what followed.
-The history of the Commonwealth requires a previous study of the
-history of the Reformation, and that again the history of the Middle
-Ages. Notices of the early Presbyterians, Independents, and Baptists
-will be found in subsequent chapters.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_4_4" id="Footnote_4_4"></a><a href="#FNanchor_4_4"><span class="label">[4]</span></a> This oft-told story rests on the authority of his friend,
-Lord Clarendon.&mdash;<i>Hist. and Life</i>, 928.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_5_5" id="Footnote_5_5"></a><a href="#FNanchor_5_5"><span class="label">[5]</span></a> <i>Stat.</i> 1 <i>Eliz. C.Q.</i>, lv. 3, 15.
-</p>
-<p>
-When the Bills of Supremacy and Uniformity were read a third time
-in the House of Lords (April 26 and 28, 1558), the Bishops of York,
-London, Ely, Wigorn, Llandaff, Coventry and Litchfield, Exon, Chester,
-Carlisle, are mentioned in the Journals as dissentients from both the
-Bills.&mdash;<i>Strype's Annals of the Reformation</i>, i. 87, (Oxford edition.)
-In connection with the history of the Bill of Supremacy in <i>Strype's
-Annals</i> the student should read the history of convocation in <i>Strype's
-Memorials</i>, Vol. i. Chap. xvii. An extraordinary paper in favour of the
-King's supremacy, attributed to Gardiner, is given, p. 209.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_6_6" id="Footnote_6_6"></a><a href="#FNanchor_6_6"><span class="label">[6]</span></a> 8 Eliz. c. 1, "declaring the manner of making and
-consecrating of Archbishops and Bishops of the realm to be good,
-lawful, and perfect."&mdash;<i>Strype's Life of Parker</i>, (Oxford edition) i.
-109-121. See also "paper of arguments for the Queen's supreme power in
-causes ecclesiastical."&mdash;<i>Strype's Life of Whitgift</i>, iii. 213.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_7_7" id="Footnote_7_7"></a><a href="#FNanchor_7_7"><span class="label">[7]</span></a> Selden says so in his <i>Table Talk</i>, 38. Mr. Bruce informs
-me, "I have no doubt that Selden was right. Many great persons holding
-offices in the State and Household were appointed Commissioners by
-reason of their offices, but never attended. The business fell into the
-hands of the Bishops (or rather some three or four of them) and a few
-civilians from Doctors' Commons&mdash;the Judge of the Arches, the Judge of
-the Prerogative Court, and a few other such persons. The sentences that
-I have seen have been signed by from 15 to 20 persons, generally such
-as I have indicated."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_8_8" id="Footnote_8_8"></a><a href="#FNanchor_8_8"><span class="label">[8]</span></a> "Turning her speech to the Bishops, she gave them this
-admonition, 'That if they, the Lords of the clergy (as she called
-them), did not amend, she was minded to depose them, and bade them
-therefore to look well to their charges.'"&mdash;<i>Strype's Whitgift</i>, i.
-393.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_9_9" id="Footnote_9_9"></a><a href="#FNanchor_9_9"><span class="label">[9]</span></a> <i>Strype's Whitgift</i>, i. 391. Whitgift has been called an
-Erastian, and Warburton (<i>Works</i>, xii. 386), on Selden's authority,
-attributes to him the publication of the <i>De excommunicatione</i>, under
-fictitious names of the place and printer. I do not know the ground of
-Selden's statement. The proceedings of Whitgift were inconsistent with
-Erastianism. The famous work of Erastus will be noticed hereafter.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_10_10" id="Footnote_10_10"></a><a href="#FNanchor_10_10"><span class="label">[10]</span></a> <i>Strype's Whitgift</i>, i. 559. See Sir Francis Knolly's
-objection to Bancroft's doctrine, reduced to a syllogistic form (560).
-Knollys had encouraged Parker to oppose the use of burning tapers, and
-of the cross, in the Queen's chapel.&mdash;<i>Strype's Parker</i>, i. 92.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_11_11" id="Footnote_11_11"></a><a href="#FNanchor_11_11"><span class="label">[11]</span></a> Parker was kept up to the mark in enforcing uniformity
-by the Queen, who in this and some other points was more decidedly
-Anglo-Catholic than her Protestant prelates. See her letter to him
-"roundly penned." <i>Strype's Parker</i>, ii. 76.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_12_12" id="Footnote_12_12"></a><a href="#FNanchor_12_12"><span class="label">[12]</span></a> Strype, (in his <i>Annals</i>, i. 106,) says 177. He adds "In
-one of the volumes of the Cotton Library&mdash;which volume seemeth once to
-have belonged to Camden&mdash;the whole number of the deprived ecclesiastics
-is digested in this catalogue: Bishops, 14; Deans, 13; Archdeacons,
-14; Heads of Colleges, 15; Prebendaries, 50; Rectors of Churches, 80;
-Abbots, Priors, and Abbesses, 6; in all, 192. Camden, in his <i>Annals</i>,
-little varies, only reckoning 12 Deans and as many Archdeacons."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_13_13" id="Footnote_13_13"></a><a href="#FNanchor_13_13"><span class="label">[13]</span></a> Paper endorsed&mdash;Dr. Bardesy; "Of my Daughter's Death, 1
-April, 1641;" 1/4 ho. <i>ante</i> ho. 9, post Mer.&mdash;<i>State Papers. Charles
-I. Domestic.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_14_14" id="Footnote_14_14"></a><a href="#FNanchor_14_14"><span class="label">[14]</span></a> <i>Mr. Bruce's Calendar of State Papers, Domestic</i>, 1633-4,
-p. 275; <i>and Preface</i>, xviii.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_15_15" id="Footnote_15_15"></a><a href="#FNanchor_15_15"><span class="label">[15]</span></a> <i>Lathbury's History of Convocation</i>, 253.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_16_16" id="Footnote_16_16"></a><a href="#FNanchor_16_16"><span class="label">[16]</span></a> This is illustrated in the Tractarian movement, as
-appears in <i>Dr. Newman's Apologia</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_17_17" id="Footnote_17_17"></a><a href="#FNanchor_17_17"><span class="label">[17]</span></a> Roger Ascham's application to Cranmer in the reign
-of Edward VI., for a dispensation during Lent is very curious. So
-is the grant of it in the King's name under the Privy Seal, at the
-Archbishop's suggestion.&mdash;See <i>Strype's Cranmer</i>, i. 238, 240.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_18_18" id="Footnote_18_18"></a><a href="#FNanchor_18_18"><span class="label">[18]</span></a> "Many choose to be wanton," it is said, "with flesh
-at that time, rather than at others." February 13.&mdash;<i>State Papers,
-Domestic.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_19_19" id="Footnote_19_19"></a><a href="#FNanchor_19_19"><span class="label">[19]</span></a> See "<i>The Arminian Nunnery</i>, or a brief description and
-relation of the late erected monastical place called the Arminian
-Nunnery at Little Gidding, in Huntingdonshire." 1641. Compare <i>Walton's
-Lives</i>, 335.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_20_20" id="Footnote_20_20"></a><a href="#FNanchor_20_20"><span class="label">[20]</span></a> <i>Rushworth's Historical Collection</i>, ii. 324. No doubt,
-sometimes the charge of Popery was unjustly made, and there is force in
-what Sanderson says in the Preface to his Sermons, p. 74. The passage
-is too long for quotation.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_21_21" id="Footnote_21_21"></a><a href="#FNanchor_21_21"><span class="label">[21]</span></a> See <i>Hale's Precedents and Proceedings in Ecclesiastical
-Courts</i>. Introductory Essay, xxxiv. Compare <i>Hallam's Const. Hist.</i>, i.
-99.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_22_22" id="Footnote_22_22"></a><a href="#FNanchor_22_22"><span class="label">[22]</span></a> See <i>New Canons</i>, iii. to xii., made in 1604.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_23_23" id="Footnote_23_23"></a><a href="#FNanchor_23_23"><span class="label">[23]</span></a> Whitelocke, when Recorder of Abingdon, was accused
-and cited before the Council Table because "he did comply with and
-countenance the Nonconformists there, and refused to punish those who
-did not bow at the name of Jesus, and to the altar, and refused to
-receive the sacrament kneeling at the high altar, &amp;c."&mdash;<i>Whitelocke's
-Memorials</i>, 23.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_24_24" id="Footnote_24_24"></a><a href="#FNanchor_24_24"><span class="label">[24]</span></a> <i>Hale's Precedents in Criminal Causes</i>, xxxix., xliii.;
-compare <i>Hallam's Const. Hist.</i>, i. 180. The extracts from Court
-Books in Hale are my authority for what follows. I may add here that,
-soon after the accession of Elizabeth, the bishops complained of
-interference with their office in discipline, and correction of evil
-manners, by inhibitions obtained from the courts of the Archbishop of
-Canterbury.&mdash;<i>Strype's Parker</i>, i. 161.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_25_25" id="Footnote_25_25"></a><a href="#FNanchor_25_25"><span class="label">[25]</span></a> A clear account of compurgation, transferred from old
-ecclesiastical courts to the Court of High Commission, is given by
-Mr. Bruce in his <i>Preface to the Cal. Dom.</i> 1635-6, xxxi. A man was
-restored "to his good name" by swearing to his own innocence when
-objectors did not appear, and his neighbours, the compurgators, swore
-that he was to be believed.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_26_26" id="Footnote_26_26"></a><a href="#FNanchor_26_26"><span class="label">[26]</span></a> It is very remarkable that this Act, the only one which
-fixes the authority for deciding what heresy is, vests that spiritual
-power in the secular government, only with clerical "assent."&mdash;<i>Stat. 1
-Eliz.</i>, c. 1, s. 36.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_27_27" id="Footnote_27_27"></a><a href="#FNanchor_27_27"><span class="label">[27]</span></a> 1562, July 20. A commission was issued for ecclesiastical
-causes in the diocese of Chester.
-</p>
-<p>
-1576, April 23. A commission was given to Grindal, Archbishop
-of Canterbury, and other bishops, for exercising ecclesiastical
-jurisdiction throughout the nation.&mdash;<i>State Papers</i>, cviii., No. 7.
-</p>
-<p>
-The "proceedings of the Archbishop of York" in 1580 are preserved in
-the State Paper Office, cxli., No. 28. At a private meeting on the
-2nd of August, 1580, held in Richmond, "the Court is informed that
-Robert Wythes, of Copgrave, gentleman, made fast his doors against the
-messenger; that a little damsel was set to attend at the door, who made
-answer he was not at home, and refused to receive the process, so the
-messenger waxed it to the door." Vol. cxli., No. 3.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_28_28" id="Footnote_28_28"></a><a href="#FNanchor_28_28"><span class="label">[28]</span></a> <i>Neal</i>, i. 410, gives a copy of the commission from a MS.
-I have sought in vain for the original. Mr. Bruce informs me it is not
-preserved among the <i>State Papers</i>.
-</p>
-<p>
-<i>Neal</i>, i. 414, explains "all other means and ways they could devise"
-as including the rack. Brodie (<i>British Empire</i>, i. 197) disputes
-this, saying, "Besides that, the rack never was attempted; the other
-clauses distinctly show that it never was contemplated." On carefully
-examining the commission printed in Neal, it will be found that the
-qualifying expressions "lawful," &amp;c., are connected with the infliction
-of <i>penalty</i>, not the business of <i>enquiry</i>. The penalties were to be
-according to law, but that restriction would not necessarily apply
-to the mode of examination. I do not see that Brodie's argument is
-conclusive; still I do not think that the rack was used. The absence,
-however, of the word "lawful" in connection with "ways and means" in
-the first clause is remarkable.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_29_29" id="Footnote_29_29"></a><a href="#FNanchor_29_29"><span class="label">[29]</span></a> <i>Brodie</i>, i. 198. He adds: "Though fines were <i>imposed</i>,
-not one was <i>levied</i> in Elizabeth's time by any judicial process out of
-the Exchequer, 'nor any subject, in his body, lands, or goods, charged
-therewith.'"&mdash;<i>Coke's 4th Inst.</i>, 326, 332; <i>4th Inst.</i>, 331.
-</p>
-<p>
-In various printed books the legality of the Court was questioned. The
-<i>ex officio</i> oath was objected to as a sinister practice of the Romish
-clergy, and contrary to fundamental laws of liberty.&mdash;<i>Burn's High
-Commission</i> (a pamphlet published by J. Russel Smith, 1865), 14.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_30_30" id="Footnote_30_30"></a><a href="#FNanchor_30_30"><span class="label">[30]</span></a> "To you, or three of you, whereof the Archbishop of
-Canterbury, or one of the bishops mentioned in the commission, or Sir
-Francis Walsingham, Sir Gilbert Gerard, or some of the civilians, to be
-one."&mdash;<i>Neal</i>, i. 410.
-</p>
-<p>
-There are subsequent commissions for the diocese of Norwich, 1589; for
-Manchester, 1596, 1597; for England and Ireland, 1600.&mdash;See <i>Rymer</i>,
-Vol. vii. 173, 194; xvi. 291, 400.
-</p>
-<p>
-A commission was issued, 1629, to the Archbishop of Canterbury, &amp;c., to
-exercise all manner of jurisdictions, privileges, and pre-eminences,
-concerning any spiritual or ecclesiastical jurisdiction within the
-realm; also to enquire, hear, determine, and punish all incests,
-adulteries, &amp;c., and disorders in marriage, and all other grievous and
-great crimes.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_31_31" id="Footnote_31_31"></a><a href="#FNanchor_31_31"><span class="label">[31]</span></a> Four folio books of proceedings, from 1634 to 1640, are
-in the State Paper Office. At Norwich there is a book of proceedings
-from 1595 to 1598, and at Durham two volumes of Acts and Depositions
-from 1626 to 1639. These are the only records known to exist.&mdash;<i>Burn's
-High Commission</i>, 44 &amp; 52.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_32_32" id="Footnote_32_32"></a><a href="#FNanchor_32_32"><span class="label">[32]</span></a> See <i>Cal. Dom.</i>, 1633-4, 1634-5. Lady Eleanor Davies
-alias Douglas, (evidently insane) is mulcted to the extent of £3,000
-for certain fanatical pamphlets. Richard Parry has a fine of £2,000
-for disturbance of divine service and profane speeches, mitigated to
-1,000 marks.&mdash;<i>Cal.</i> 1634-5, 176. A fine of £1,000, from Theophilus
-Brabourne, for maintaining and publishing heretical and Judaical
-opinions touching the Sabbath, is repeatedly mentioned, with notices
-of respites, suspension of sentence, and mitigation. A silk weaver
-was committed to the Gate House for fetching a parcel of schismatical
-books. The most preposterous suspicions were entertained, leading
-to outrageous injustice, as in the case of "two poor foolish boys,
-taken amongst others, at Francis Donwell's house, the aleholder, at
-Stepney," for "sitting at the table with Bibles before them." "They
-were, by order of the court, discharged," but not till after many days'
-imprisonment. "They were taken on Sunday last past was fortnight, the
-1st of October, 1635."
-</p>
-<p>
-The following entry occurs relating to Richard Walker Clerk, prisoner
-in the Gate House: "Defendant having lain a twelvemonth in prison for
-preaching a scandalous and offensive sermon here in London, and having
-promised by his subscription to carry himself peaceably and conformably
-to the orders of the Church of England, he was ordered to be enlarged."
-<i>Cal.</i> 1634-5, p. 544.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_33_33" id="Footnote_33_33"></a><a href="#FNanchor_33_33"><span class="label">[33]</span></a> <i>Cal.</i> 1634-5, p. 177, 118, &amp; 110.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_34_34" id="Footnote_34_34"></a><a href="#FNanchor_34_34"><span class="label">[34]</span></a> Some strange specimens of puritan "faithfulness" are
-given; (<i>Cal.</i> 1634-5, p. 319,) but the question arises, were the
-passages we find correctly reported?</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_35_35" id="Footnote_35_35"></a><a href="#FNanchor_35_35"><span class="label">[35]</span></a> Some things appear in the Commission Records strangely
-illustrating the state of society. Sir Richard Strode and Sir John
-Strode, near kinsmen, quarrelled about the possession of an aisle in
-the parish church of Cattistock. Sir Richard came with his lady on
-Easter-day to receive the sacrament armed with a pistol charged with
-powder and small shot, and directed his servant to carry a sword. He
-was also accused of entertaining a degraded minister, who "pronounced
-prayers extempore, and expounded a passage of scripture. On behalf of
-Sir Richard, it was proved that he carried the pistol secretly, and
-that no disturbance ensued."&mdash;<i>Cal.</i>, 1634-5, p. 121.
-</p>
-<p>
-Since writing this Introduction I have been permitted to peruse the
-<i>Rawlinson MS.</i>, A., 128, which affords many new illustrations of the
-proceedings of the High Commission and of the Star Chamber also. I
-shall have occasion hereafter to notice some parts of this <i>MS.</i> The
-whole will be published by the Camden Society.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_36_36" id="Footnote_36_36"></a><a href="#FNanchor_36_36"><span class="label">[36]</span></a> The Court was threatened before the opening of the Long
-Parliament.
-</p>
-<p>
-"We are growing here at London into some Edinburgh tumults, for upon
-Thursday last, the High Commission being kept at St. Paul's, there came
-in very near 2,000 Brownists, and, at the end of the court made a foul
-clamour: and tore down all the benches that were in the consistory,
-crying out they would have no Bishops nor High Commission. I like not
-this preface to the Parliament, and this day I shall see what the Lords
-will do concerning this tumult."&mdash;<i>Laud's Letter</i>, 186. <i>Works</i>, vi.
-585. Oxford edition. <i>Diary, Oct. 22, 1640</i>, iii, 237.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_37_37" id="Footnote_37_37"></a><a href="#FNanchor_37_37"><span class="label">[37]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, i. 423. After Worrall, Laud's chaplain, had
-signed the Imprimatur to Dr. Sibthorpe's famous sermon, 1627, Selden
-told him, "When the times shall change, and the late transactions
-shall be scrutinized, you will gain a halter instead of promotion for
-this book." Worrall withdrew his signature, but Laud appended his
-own.&mdash;<i>Life of Selden</i>, p. 129.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_38_38" id="Footnote_38_38"></a><a href="#FNanchor_38_38"><span class="label">[38]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, i. 594.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_39_39" id="Footnote_39_39"></a><a href="#FNanchor_39_39"><span class="label">[39]</span></a> See <i>Hallam's Constitutional History</i>, i. 456; and
-<i>Eliot's Life</i>, by Forster, i. 246; ii. 398; 409; 450.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_40_40" id="Footnote_40_40"></a><a href="#FNanchor_40_40"><span class="label">[40]</span></a> In <i>Rushworth</i>, ii. 77, is a full account of these
-ceremonies, with notices of Laud's defence. The latter is found more
-fully in the history of his <i>Troubles and Trial</i>. <i>Works</i>, iv. 247. He
-denied he threw up dust, but leaves it to be inferred that he threw
-up ashes. He also contradicted other statements made respecting this
-famous consecration. Whatever exaggeration there might be, enough is
-proved to show the extraordinary superstitiousness of the proceeding.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_41_41" id="Footnote_41_41"></a><a href="#FNanchor_41_41"><span class="label">[41]</span></a> Bunsen's <i>Hippolytus</i>, iv. 197.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_42_42" id="Footnote_42_42"></a><a href="#FNanchor_42_42"><span class="label">[42]</span></a> Wearing a cope in cathedrals at the Communion by the
-principal minister, is, however, prescribed by Canon xxiv.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_43_43" id="Footnote_43_43"></a><a href="#FNanchor_43_43"><span class="label">[43]</span></a> Southey says of Laud, "Offence was taken because the
-University of Oxford, to which he was a most munificent and judicious
-benefactor, addressed him by the titles of His Holiness, and Most Holy
-Father; and because he publicly declared, that in the disposal of
-ecclesiastical preferments, he would, when their merits were equal,
-prefer the single to the married men."&mdash;<i>Book of the Church</i>, 448.
-Laud furnishes an elaborate defence of some of the titles applied to
-him.&mdash;<i>Works</i>, iv. 157.
-</p>
-<p>
-See curious entry in <i>Laud's Diary</i> of a dream he had that he was
-reconciled to the Church of Rome.&mdash;<i>Works</i>, iii. 201. He afterwards
-says (264), "I hope the reader will note my trouble at the dream, as
-well as the dream."
-</p>
-<p>
-Zeal in crushing dissent, appears in a letter addressed to
-justices of the peace, which probably Laud procured from the High
-Commissioners:&mdash;"There remain in divers parts of the kingdom
-sundry sorts of separatists, novalists [<i>sic</i>], and sectaries, as,
-namely,&mdash;Brownists, Anabaptists, Arians, Traskites, Familists, and some
-other sorts, who, upon Sundays and other festival days, under pretence
-of repetition of sermons, ordinarily use to meet together in great
-numbers, in private houses, and other obscure places, and there keep
-private conventicles and exercises of religion, by law prohibited, to
-the corrupting of sundry his Majesty's good subjects, manifest contempt
-of his Highness's laws and disturbance of the Church. For reformation
-whereof the persons addressed are to enter any house where they shall
-have intelligence that such conventicles are held, and in every room
-thereof search for persons assembled, and for all unlicensed books,
-and bring all such persons and books found before the Ecclesiastical
-Commission as shall be thought meet."&mdash;<i>Cal.</i> 1633-4, p. 538.
-</p>
-<p>
-At an earlier period, Laud says:&mdash;"We took another conventicle of
-separatists in Newington Woods upon Sunday last, in the very brake
-where the King's stag should have been lodged for his hunting next
-morning." P.S. to letter of Laud, June 13, 1632.&mdash;<i>State Papers.</i>
-Printed in <i>Laud's Works</i>, vii. 44.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_44_44" id="Footnote_44_44"></a><a href="#FNanchor_44_44"><span class="label">[44]</span></a> Articles for Diocese of Winchester. <i>Laud's Works</i>,
-v. 419-435. Numerous visitation articles, injunctions, and orders
-appear in this volume, highly interesting as illustrations both of the
-Archbishop's minute superintendence, and of the religious life of the
-period.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_45_45" id="Footnote_45_45"></a><a href="#FNanchor_45_45"><span class="label">[45]</span></a> Reprinted in <i>Laud's Works</i>, v. 315, 370.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_46_46" id="Footnote_46_46"></a><a href="#FNanchor_46_46"><span class="label">[46]</span></a> <i>Laud's Works</i>, v. 331.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_47_47" id="Footnote_47_47"></a><a href="#FNanchor_47_47"><span class="label">[47]</span></a> See <i>Cal. Dom.</i>, 1633-4, and Laud's Annual Accounts of
-his province just referred to.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_48_48" id="Footnote_48_48"></a><a href="#FNanchor_48_48"><span class="label">[48]</span></a> There is an extract of a letter in the State Paper
-Office (dated 1633, March 18, from the ambassador at the Hague) in the
-handwriting of Laud's secretary, upon the uncanonical proceedings of
-the English Congregation there.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_49_49" id="Footnote_49_49"></a><a href="#FNanchor_49_49"><span class="label">[49]</span></a> These points receive abundant illustration in <i>Mr.
-Bruce's Calendar</i>, 1633-4, and in his very interesting preface.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_50_50" id="Footnote_50_50"></a><a href="#FNanchor_50_50"><span class="label">[50]</span></a> Laud's power extended even to America. In a special
-commission for the colonies, "the Archbishop of Canterbury and those
-who were associated with him, received full power over the American
-plantations, to establish the government and dictate the laws, to
-regulate the Church, to inflict even the heaviest punishments, and to
-revoke any charter, which had been surreptitiously obtained, or which
-conceded liberties prejudicial to the Royal prerogative."&mdash;<i>Bancroft's
-United States</i>, i. 407.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_51_51" id="Footnote_51_51"></a><a href="#FNanchor_51_51"><span class="label">[51]</span></a> <i>Letter in State Paper Office</i>, Dec. 19, 1633. Most of
-Laud's letters found amongst the State records are printed in the last
-volume of the Oxford edition of his works.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_52_52" id="Footnote_52_52"></a><a href="#FNanchor_52_52"><span class="label">[52]</span></a> Indications of his wonderful activity are to be seen in
-his numerous letters, collected in the Oxford edition of his works, to
-which my references apply. (Vols. vi. and vii.) Laud's enemies have not
-done justice to his abilities. His diary reveals his mental weaknesses,
-but his correspondence and theological writings exhibit his mind under
-a different aspect. Many persons are too prejudiced against Laud to
-think of looking into his <i>Conference with Fisher the Jesuit</i>; but
-whoever will take the trouble of doing so, whatever he may think of
-Laud's line of argument at times, must admit the learning and ability
-displayed in the discussion. No book more clearly shows both the
-resemblance and the difference between Anglo-Catholicism and Popery.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_53_53" id="Footnote_53_53"></a><a href="#FNanchor_53_53"><span class="label">[53]</span></a> We are here reminded of what Dunstan's biographer said
-of him&mdash;"Nec quisquam in toto regno Anglorum esset qui absque ejus
-imperio manum vel pedem moveret."&mdash;<i>Angl. Sac.</i>, ii. 108. Dunstan,
-too, like Laud, descended to the notice and regulation of trivial
-matters. There can be little doubt that Laud, as an ecclesiastical and
-political statesman, was inferior to Dunstan. A man who grasps at such
-extensive influence is sure to be unpopular in England. Sir John Eliot
-accused Buckingham of this ambition, and in the memorable peroration
-to his speech in that nobleman's impeachment, when he instituted a
-parallel between him and the Bishop of Ely, in Richard II.'s reign,
-Eliot included this point&mdash;"No man's business could be done without his
-help."&mdash;See <i>Speech in Rushworth</i>, and <i>Parliamentary History</i>, and
-from his own MS. in <i>Forster's Life of Eliot</i>, i. 551.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_54_54" id="Footnote_54_54"></a><a href="#FNanchor_54_54"><span class="label">[54]</span></a> Diary, Tuesday, April 5, 1625.&mdash;<i>Laud's Works</i>, iii. 159.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_55_55" id="Footnote_55_55"></a><a href="#FNanchor_55_55"><span class="label">[55]</span></a> <i>Strafford's Papers</i>, i. 365.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_56_56" id="Footnote_56_56"></a><a href="#FNanchor_56_56"><span class="label">[56]</span></a> <i>Halliwell's Letters of the Kings of England</i>, ii. 180.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_57_57" id="Footnote_57_57"></a><a href="#FNanchor_57_57"><span class="label">[57]</span></a> Coleridge ranks Jackson with Cudworth, More, and Smith
-as <i>Plotinist</i> rather than <i>Platonist</i> divines.&mdash;See Note, <i>Literary
-Remains</i>, iii. 415.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_58_58" id="Footnote_58_58"></a><a href="#FNanchor_58_58"><span class="label">[58]</span></a> <i>Life of Southey</i>, v. 283.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_59_59" id="Footnote_59_59"></a><a href="#FNanchor_59_59"><span class="label">[59]</span></a> See remarks on this in <i>Bancroft's United States</i>, i.
-284.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_60_60" id="Footnote_60_60"></a><a href="#FNanchor_60_60"><span class="label">[60]</span></a> Aylmer is supposed to be represented anagrammatically
-in the Morell, and Grindal in the Algrind of <i>Spenser's Shepherd's
-Calendar</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_61_61" id="Footnote_61_61"></a><a href="#FNanchor_61_61"><span class="label">[61]</span></a> <i>Strype's Parker</i>, i. 300-345. For measures adopted to
-enforce conformity, see <i>Strype's Parker</i>, i. 420-447. Parker had a
-hard time of it when engaged in this unpopular business. He did not
-receive the support he wished. The Puritans condemned him for doing too
-much, the Queen for doing too little. "An ox," he exclaimed, "can draw
-no more than he can."&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i>, 451.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_62_62" id="Footnote_62_62"></a><a href="#FNanchor_62_62"><span class="label">[62]</span></a> It appears from Foxe that some of the early Protestants
-were very strong believers in predestination.&mdash;See the godly letters
-of John Careless. <i>Foxe's Book of Martyrs</i>, viii. 187-192. Catley's
-edition.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_63_63" id="Footnote_63_63"></a><a href="#FNanchor_63_63"><span class="label">[63]</span></a> <i>Neal</i>, i. 451. For his statement respecting bills
-for reformation he gives MS. authority. <i>Strype's Whitgift</i>, i.
-391, contains the letter to the Queen, dated 24th of March, 1584-5.
-Parry says in <i>Parliaments and Councils</i>, 1584, December 14, "three
-petitions are read touching 'the liberty of godly preachers to exercise
-and continue their ministry, and for the speedy supply of able and
-sufficient men into divers places now destitute of the ordinary means
-of salvation.'" Cobbett supplies a brief account of the debate.&mdash;<i>Parl.
-Hist.</i>, i. 824.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_64_64" id="Footnote_64_64"></a><a href="#FNanchor_64_64"><span class="label">[64]</span></a> Dr. Donne preached a sermon at Paul's Cross on the 14th
-September, 1622, in which he took occasion "for the publication of some
-reasons which His Sacred Majesty had been pleased to give, of those
-directions for preachers which he had formerly set forth."&mdash;<i>Works</i>,
-vi. 191. The preacher declared the King was "grieved with much
-bitterness, that any should so pervert his meaning as to think that
-these directions either restrained the exercise of preaching or
-abated the number of sermons."&mdash;<i>Ib.</i> 220. One is sorry to find such
-a man as Donne excusing James's despotic interference with preaching,
-and to read the absurd eulogium on his royal master's "books." "Our
-posterity shall have him for a father&mdash;a classic father&mdash;such a father
-as Ambrose, as Austin was."&mdash;<i>Ib.</i> 221. Such sycophancy on the part of
-Donne and others greatly tended to prejudice the people against them
-and their teaching.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_65_65" id="Footnote_65_65"></a><a href="#FNanchor_65_65"><span class="label">[65]</span></a> <i>Fuller's Church History</i>, iii. 362.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_66_66" id="Footnote_66_66"></a><a href="#FNanchor_66_66"><span class="label">[66]</span></a> See <i>Cal. Dom.</i>, 1633-4, p. 298.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_67_67" id="Footnote_67_67"></a><a href="#FNanchor_67_67"><span class="label">[67]</span></a> <i>Cal.</i> 1633-4, p. 345.&mdash;The cases of Samuel Ward, Anthony
-Lapthorne, and George Burdett, noted Puritan ministers, are largely
-illustrated in the <i>Cal. Dom.</i> 1634-5, 361, 263, 537. Mr. Bruce notices
-that Ward, who suffered so much from the High Commission Court, appears
-himself as a complainant against certain persons at Ipswich holding
-Antinomian opinions, 1635-6, <i>Pref.</i> xxxvii.
-</p>
-<p>
-Illustrations appear amongst the State Papers of the popularity of
-Puritanism. Dr. John Andrewes writes to the Chancellor of Lincoln,
-(dated June 5, 1634, Beaconsfield) acknowledging a request to preach
-a visitation sermon:&mdash;"He is contented to show his obedience, howbeit
-he knows that any other priest in those parts would be better accepted
-both of laity and the generality of the clergy; and the main reason is,
-because he is not of the new cut, nor anywise inclining to Puritanism,
-wherewith the greatest number (both of priests and people) in those
-parts are foully tainted, insomuch that he is called the most godly
-who can and will be most disobedient to the orders of the Church. He
-enumerates things out of order in his own parish. 1. No terrier of
-Church lands. 2. Elections held in the church. 3. Gadding on Sundays
-to hear Puritanical sermons in other parishes. 4. Few come to church
-on holidays. 5. Many sit at service with their hats on, and some lie
-along in their pews. 6. Many kneel not at prayers, nor bow at the name
-of Jesus, &amp;c. 7. The churchwardens do not levy the 12d. from those who
-absent themselves from divine service."&mdash;<i>Cal. Dom.</i>, 1634-5, <i>June 5</i>,
-p. 64.
-</p>
-<p>
-Complaints were made of people forsaking the parish churches.&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i>,
-p. 149.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_68_68" id="Footnote_68_68"></a><a href="#FNanchor_68_68"><span class="label">[68]</span></a> <i>Cal. Dom.</i>, 1633-4, p. 450.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_69_69" id="Footnote_69_69"></a><a href="#FNanchor_69_69"><span class="label">[69]</span></a> <i>Heylyn's Life of Laud</i>, p. 367.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_70_70" id="Footnote_70_70"></a><a href="#FNanchor_70_70"><span class="label">[70]</span></a> While quite indisposed to attempt defending in the
-Puritans what is indefensible, I would add, they inherited many of
-their faults from the early Protestants. On the whole, I should say,
-the Puritans of the seventeenth century will bear favourable comparison
-with their fathers of the sixteenth, some of whose worst failings arose
-from the bad education received in the Church of Rome before they
-abjured her errors.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_71_71" id="Footnote_71_71"></a><a href="#FNanchor_71_71"><span class="label">[71]</span></a> Irreverence in worship is often regarded as an offence
-characteristic of Puritanism. But popish priests, at the time of
-the Reformation, then loudly complained of irreverence in their
-congregations&mdash;irreverence such as their successors were not guilty
-of.&mdash;<i>Strype's Memorials</i>, i. 213</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_72_72" id="Footnote_72_72"></a><a href="#FNanchor_72_72"><span class="label">[72]</span></a> Neal follows Clarendon in this respect.&mdash;<i>History of
-Puritans</i>, ii. 362.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_73_73" id="Footnote_73_73"></a><a href="#FNanchor_73_73"><span class="label">[73]</span></a> This is Rapin's view.&mdash;<i>History of England</i>, ii. 652,
-adopted by Godwin, in his <i>Commonwealth</i>, i. 64.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_74_74" id="Footnote_74_74"></a><a href="#FNanchor_74_74"><span class="label">[74]</span></a> <i>Tanner MS.</i>, quoted by Sanford.&mdash;<i>Studies and
-Illustrations of the Great Rebellion</i>, p. 159.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_75_75" id="Footnote_75_75"></a><a href="#FNanchor_75_75"><span class="label">[75]</span></a> <i>Strafford's Letters</i>, Vol. i. 463, quoted in <i>Forster's
-Life of Vane</i>, p. 7, as written to the Lord Deputy. The letter is in
-the State Paper Office, calendared as if written to Lord Conway.&mdash;See
-<i>Calendar of Colonial Papers</i>, 1574-1660, p. 214. In the same Calendar,
-p. 211, there is notice of a letter by Vane to his father, in which
-he "requests his father to believe, though as the case stands he is
-judged a most unworthy son, that however jealous his father may be of
-circumventions and plots entertained and practised by him, yet he will
-never do anything that he may not justify or be content to suffer for.
-Is sure, as there is trust in God, that his innocence and integrity
-will be cleared to his father before he dies. Protests his father's
-jealousy of him would break his heart, but as he submits all other
-things to his good God, so does he his honesty. The intention of his
-heart is sincere, and hence flows the sweet peace he enjoys amidst his
-many heavy trials."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_76_76" id="Footnote_76_76"></a><a href="#FNanchor_76_76"><span class="label">[76]</span></a> <i>Forster's Statesmen of the Commonwealth</i>, Vol. iii. 49.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_77_77" id="Footnote_77_77"></a><a href="#FNanchor_77_77"><span class="label">[77]</span></a> Clarendon (<i>Hist.</i> 75) says of Vane's father and mother,
-"they were neither of them beautiful,"&mdash;a statement fully borne out by
-their portraits.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_78_78" id="Footnote_78_78"></a><a href="#FNanchor_78_78"><span class="label">[78]</span></a> <i>Clarendon</i> (<i>Hist.</i> 454).</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_79_79" id="Footnote_79_79"></a><a href="#FNanchor_79_79"><span class="label">[79]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, i. 647.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_80_80" id="Footnote_80_80"></a><a href="#FNanchor_80_80"><span class="label">[80]</span></a> <i>Hist.</i> 74.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_81_81" id="Footnote_81_81"></a><a href="#FNanchor_81_81"><span class="label">[81]</span></a> Compare <i>Nugent</i> and <i>Forster</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_82_82" id="Footnote_82_82"></a><a href="#FNanchor_82_82"><span class="label">[82]</span></a> Hampden was reported at a Visitation for holding a
-muster in Beaconsfield Churchyard, and for leaving his parish church.
-To avoid a suit in the Ecclesiastical Court, he applied privately
-to Sir Nathaniel Brent, and satisfied him by explanation and
-concession.&mdash;<i>State Papers Cal.</i>, 1634-5, p. 250.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_83_83" id="Footnote_83_83"></a><a href="#FNanchor_83_83"><span class="label">[83]</span></a> "The Puritan would be judged by the Word of God; if he
-would speak clearly he means himself; but he is ashamed to say so, and
-he would have me believe him before a whole church, that has read the
-Word of God as well as he." <i>Table Talk</i>, 160.
-</p>
-<p>
-Selden, in the same book (p. 13), while denying the divine right of
-bishops, maintains they "have the same right to sit in Parliament as
-the best Earls and Barons." Yet he signed the Covenant.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_84_84" id="Footnote_84_84"></a><a href="#FNanchor_84_84"><span class="label">[84]</span></a> <i>Life</i>, 923.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_85_85" id="Footnote_85_85"></a><a href="#FNanchor_85_85"><span class="label">[85]</span></a> <i>Life</i>, 936.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_86_86" id="Footnote_86_86"></a><a href="#FNanchor_86_86"><span class="label">[86]</span></a> In the State Paper Office is a letter by Laud, July
-20, 1634, addressed to the King, in which the writer speaks of two
-daughters of the late Lord Falkland being reconciled to the Church of
-Rome, "not without the practice of their mother." He alludes to Lord
-Newburgh's request that she would forbear working on her daughters'
-consciences, and suffer them to go to their brother, or any other safe
-place. The archbishop appears anxious to save them from Popery. The
-letter is printed in <i>Laud's Works</i>, vii. 82, with illustrative notes.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_87_87" id="Footnote_87_87"></a><a href="#FNanchor_87_87"><span class="label">[87]</span></a> He tells us he was stopped in Westminster Hall, and asked
-by a root-and-branch man, "Art thou for us or for our adversaries?" but
-he does not report his answer.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_88_88" id="Footnote_88_88"></a><a href="#FNanchor_88_88"><span class="label">[88]</span></a> Mr. Bruce's interesting introduction to the volume of
-<i>Proceedings, &amp;c.</i>, in connection with the Committee of Religion
-appointed in 1640, (printed by the Camden Society,) gives a minute
-history of the baronet's love adventures.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_89_89" id="Footnote_89_89"></a><a href="#FNanchor_89_89"><span class="label">[89]</span></a> It is stated on the authority of a letter in the
-possession of the Trevor family, that, "to escape detection the
-oppositionists resorted to the place of rendezvous with disguised
-faces." <i>Johnson's Life of Selden</i>, 30.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_90_90" id="Footnote_90_90"></a><a href="#FNanchor_90_90"><span class="label">[90]</span></a> <i>Clarendon's Hist.</i>, p. 69.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_91_91" id="Footnote_91_91"></a><a href="#FNanchor_91_91"><span class="label">[91]</span></a> The appointment of a Committee of Religion was debated
-and delayed in the first Parliament of this reign; One was appointed
-immediately after the assembling of the second&mdash;and also on the meeting
-of the third.&mdash;See <i>Journals</i>, June 25, 1625; Feb. 7, 10, 12, 1625-6;
-March 20, 1627-8.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_92_92" id="Footnote_92_92"></a><a href="#FNanchor_92_92"><span class="label">[92]</span></a> The sentence on Leighton is given by <i>Rushworth</i>, ii. 56.</p>
-
-<p><i>Neal</i>, ii., 218, follows Rushworth and states the particulars of
-Leighton's punishment as being recorded in Laud's Diary. But in the
-Diary, 4th November, <i>Works</i> iii. 212, there is nothing beyond a
-reference to Leighton's degradation in the High Commission Court. Neal
-adds that Laud pulled off his cap, and thanked God for the sentence.</p>
-
-<p>For this anecdote, authority may be found in a curious book, by
-Leighton, entitled <i>An Epitome of the great troubles he has suffered</i>.
-In the course of his narration, after defending himself against the
-charge of being a Conventicle keeper, a libeller, a schismatic,
-a traitor, and a factious person, he says, in relation to his
-trial.&mdash;"The censure was to cut my ears, slit my nose, to brand me in
-the face, to whip me at a post, to stand on the pillory, ten thousand
-pounds fine, and perpetual imprisonment; and all these upon a dying
-man, by appearance</p>
-
-<p>&mdash;instant morientibus ursæ.</p>
-
-<p>
-The censure thus past, the prelate off with his cap, and holding up
-his hands, gave thanks to God, who had given him the victory over his
-enemies."&mdash;pp. 69, 70.
-</p>
-<p>
-"I being put thereafter on the pillory an hour and a half, in frost and
-snow, they inflicted the rest, and would not let me have a coach of my
-own to carry me to the Fleet; but I was forced to be carried by water,
-for I was not able to go. I lay ten weeks under the canopy of heaven,
-in the dirt and mire of the rubbish, having nothing to shelter me from
-the rain and snow, in a very cold season."&mdash;p. 85.
-</p>
-<p>
-In connection with Leighton's statement, the following passage from the
-Rawlinson MS. is worthy of notice:&mdash;"In the Court of High Commission,
-19 April, 1632, the King's Advocate against Joseph Harrison, Clerk,
-Vicar of Sustorke, 'the sentence was presently read by the Archbishop
-of Canterbury, In Dei nomine, Amen, &amp;c., &amp;c., Deum præ oculis
-preponentes, &amp;c.,' at which words I marked some of the Bishops to look
-upward, and put off their hats devoutly." From this passage it would
-appear to have been a practice in the Court, when sentence was passed,
-to pronounce it in the name of God, and for the Commissioners to take
-off their hats in token of reverence when these sacred words were
-uttered. The question arises, did Leighton mistake what was a customary
-act for a special expression of Laud's feeling in this particular case?
-or, did Laud really go out of his way to indicate his gratification
-at the sufferings of Leighton? I must leave the reader to judge for
-himself, who, however, ought to bear in mind Laud's character. Leighton
-gives the following account of his sufferings:&mdash;
-</p>
-<p>
-"The aforesaid censure was executed in every particular in a most cruel
-manner and measure: the executioner was made drunk in the Fleet the
-night before, and also was hardened the very same day with very strong
-water, being threatened to do it with all rigour: and so he did, by
-knife, whip, brand, and fire, insomuch that never a lash he gave with
-a treble cord, but he brought away the flesh, which I shall feel to my
-dying day."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_93_93" id="Footnote_93_93"></a><a href="#FNanchor_93_93"><span class="label">[93]</span></a> Yet, looking at the persecution which the Puritans
-suffered, the same plea will avail for them that has been urged on
-behalf of the early Protestants. "It was, as they thought, like
-exhorting a Caligula and a Nero to clemency, and advising the poor
-subjects to compliment such tyrants, to remind them gently of their
-defects, and humbly to entreat that they would be so good and gracious
-as to condescend to alter their conduct."&mdash;<i>Jortin's Life of Erasmus</i>,
-i. 212.
-</p>
-<p>
-From a <i>Biographical Narration</i>, by Burton, it appears he had been
-Clerk of the Closet to Prince Henry and to Prince Charles. The
-narration contains many curious particulars. There is an important
-letter about Burton, by Bishop Hall, in <i>Forster's Life of Eliot</i>, ii.
-428.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_94_94" id="Footnote_94_94"></a><a href="#FNanchor_94_94"><span class="label">[94]</span></a> <i>Hanbury's Historical Memorials</i>, ii., 52.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_95_95" id="Footnote_95_95"></a><a href="#FNanchor_95_95"><span class="label">[95]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, iv. 207.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_96_96" id="Footnote_96_96"></a><a href="#FNanchor_96_96"><span class="label">[96]</span></a> <i>Forster's Life of Eliot</i>, ii. 84, 562.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_97_97" id="Footnote_97_97"></a><a href="#FNanchor_97_97"><span class="label">[97]</span></a> <i>Forster's Life of Pym</i>, 96.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_98_98" id="Footnote_98_98"></a><a href="#FNanchor_98_98"><span class="label">[98]</span></a> It was a charge against Burton that he carried the sacred
-elements to the communicants on their seats.&mdash;<i>Dow's Innovations</i>, 186.
-<i>Lathbury's History of Convocation</i>, 261.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_99_99" id="Footnote_99_99"></a><a href="#FNanchor_99_99"><span class="label">[99]</span></a> <i>Forster's Life of Pym</i>, 99.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_100_100" id="Footnote_100_100"></a><a href="#FNanchor_100_100"><span class="label">[100]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, iv. 24.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_101_101" id="Footnote_101_101"></a><a href="#FNanchor_101_101"><span class="label">[101]</span></a> <i>Quoted in Sanford's Illustrations</i>, 310.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_102_102" id="Footnote_102_102"></a><a href="#FNanchor_102_102"><span class="label">[102]</span></a> <i>Clarendon</i>, 69. <i>Sanford's Illustrations</i>, 310.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_103_103" id="Footnote_103_103"></a><a href="#FNanchor_103_103"><span class="label">[103]</span></a> Clarendon says Strafford did not come to the House at
-all that day till after his impeachment. I attach little importance
-to Clarendon's statements, when inconsistent with what is said by so
-accurate a man as D'Ewes. From his journal it appears that Strafford
-<i>did</i> go to the House in the morning. <i>Sanford's Illustrations</i>, 310.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_104_104" id="Footnote_104_104"></a><a href="#FNanchor_104_104"><span class="label">[104]</span></a> <i>D'Ewes Journal</i>, <i>Sanford's Studies and Illustrations</i>,
-312.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_105_105" id="Footnote_105_105"></a><a href="#FNanchor_105_105"><span class="label">[105]</span></a> <i>Baillie's Letters and Journals</i>, published by the
-Bannatyne Club, 4to, i. 272. Other minute particulars are taken from
-the same source.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_106_106" id="Footnote_106_106"></a><a href="#FNanchor_106_106"><span class="label">[106]</span></a> See his <i>Journal</i>, 1640, Dec. 18. <i>Works</i>, iii. 238.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_107_107" id="Footnote_107_107"></a><a href="#FNanchor_107_107"><span class="label">[107]</span></a> Burgess and Marshall preached on the occasion from
-Jeremiah l. 5, and 2. Chron. xv. 2. The sermons were published, and
-may be found in the library of the British Museum. They relate to
-covenanting with God, but I do not see that the preachers make any
-reference to the Scotch covenant, though Nalson charges them with
-having had their eye on that symbol all the way through.&mdash;<i>Collection</i>,
-i. 530.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_108_108" id="Footnote_108_108"></a><a href="#FNanchor_108_108"><span class="label">[108]</span></a> November 20. See <i>Commons' Journal</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_109_109" id="Footnote_109_109"></a><a href="#FNanchor_109_109"><span class="label">[109]</span></a> See Journals, February 9, 1625-6, and March 10, 1627-8.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_110_110" id="Footnote_110_110"></a><a href="#FNanchor_110_110"><span class="label">[110]</span></a> It is so regarded by Neal and those who follow
-him.&mdash;<i>History of Puritans</i>, ii. 362.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_111_111" id="Footnote_111_111"></a><a href="#FNanchor_111_111"><span class="label">[111]</span></a> <i>History of England</i>, ii. 653.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_112_112" id="Footnote_112_112"></a><a href="#FNanchor_112_112"><span class="label">[112]</span></a> <i>Journals</i>, November 20. A collection was made after the
-communion, amounting to £78. 16. 2.&mdash;<i>Nalson's Collections</i>, 1. 700.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_113_113" id="Footnote_113_113"></a><a href="#FNanchor_113_113"><span class="label">[113]</span></a> <i>Memorials of English Affairs, Whitelocke</i>, 38. <i>Journal
-of Commons</i>, Nov. 25, 1640, and pamphlets of the period.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_114_114" id="Footnote_114_114"></a><a href="#FNanchor_114_114"><span class="label">[114]</span></a> The minister complained of was John Squire, of whom
-Walker gives an account in his <i>Sufferings of the Clergy</i>, Part i.
-68.&mdash;These illustrations are gathered from <i>Diurnals and other Tracts</i>
-in the Library of the Brit. Museum.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_115_115" id="Footnote_115_115"></a><a href="#FNanchor_115_115"><span class="label">[115]</span></a> <i>Speech of Mr. Rouse in Rushworth</i>, iv. 211. See also
-<i>Speeches of Sir Ed. Dering and Sir John Wray</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_116_116" id="Footnote_116_116"></a><a href="#FNanchor_116_116"><span class="label">[116]</span></a> These particulars, and many more, are found in <i>A
-Certificate from Northamptonshire</i>, 1641. Brit. Mus. The "great
-scarcity of preaching ministers" was early noticed, and a sub-committee
-appointed to consider it.&mdash;See <i>Journals</i>, 19th December, 1640.
-Extracts from the <i>Register of the Archbishop of Canterbury</i>, shew
-that the number of benefices in England was 8,803, whereof 3,277 were
-impropriations, and that the number of livings under £10 was 4,543;
-under £40, 8,659; and that only the remainder, being 144, were of the
-value of £40 and upwards.&mdash;<i>Cal. Dom.</i> 1634-5, p. 381.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_117_117" id="Footnote_117_117"></a><a href="#FNanchor_117_117"><span class="label">[117]</span></a> <i>Lathbury's Hist. of Con.</i>, 246.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_118_118" id="Footnote_118_118"></a><a href="#FNanchor_118_118"><span class="label">[118]</span></a> <i>Nalson</i>, i. 545.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_119_119" id="Footnote_119_119"></a><a href="#FNanchor_119_119"><span class="label">[119]</span></a> This oath "approved the doctrine and discipline of
-government established in the Church of England, as containing all
-things necessary to salvation;" and denied all "consent to alter the
-government of this Church by Archbishops, Bishops, Deans, Archdeacons,
-&amp;c., as it stands now established."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_120_120" id="Footnote_120_120"></a><a href="#FNanchor_120_120"><span class="label">[120]</span></a> <i>Journals of the Commons</i>, Dec. 16, 1640.&mdash;The matter
-came before the House again on the 7th June, 1641.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_121_121" id="Footnote_121_121"></a><a href="#FNanchor_121_121"><span class="label">[121]</span></a> The letter is in <i>Laud's Works</i>, Vol. vi. 584.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_122_122" id="Footnote_122_122"></a><a href="#FNanchor_122_122"><span class="label">[122]</span></a> <i>Laud's Works</i>, vi. 589.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_123_123" id="Footnote_123_123"></a><a href="#FNanchor_123_123"><span class="label">[123]</span></a> <i>Lathbury's Hist. of Convocation</i>, 267.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_124_124" id="Footnote_124_124"></a><a href="#FNanchor_124_124"><span class="label">[124]</span></a> See <i>Letter to Bullinger by Sandys</i>, 1573.&mdash;<i>Zurich
-Letters</i>, 294.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_125_125" id="Footnote_125_125"></a><a href="#FNanchor_125_125"><span class="label">[125]</span></a> <i>Fuller</i>, ii. 504-5.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_126_126" id="Footnote_126_126"></a><a href="#FNanchor_126_126"><span class="label">[126]</span></a> It frequently appears in the records of that period.
-There is a curious example in the introduction to the will of Humphrey
-Fen.&mdash;<i>Cal. Dom.</i>, 1633-4, p. 468.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_127_127" id="Footnote_127_127"></a><a href="#FNanchor_127_127"><span class="label">[127]</span></a> They claimed as precedents the Protestants in Queen
-Mary's time, and the exiles at Geneva, that used a book framed by them
-there.&mdash;<i>Strype's Parker</i>, i. 480.
-</p>
-<p>
-There is at Horningsham, in Wiltshire, an old meeting-house, with a
-large stone in the end wall, bearing date 1566. When the stone was put
-there is not known, and whence it came I cannot learn, but the Rev.
-H. M. Gunn, of Warminster, informs me that, according to tradition,
-some Scotch Presbyterians, disciples of Knox, came over from Scotland
-to build Longleat House for Sir John Thynne, in 1566. The building
-went on for thirteen years, when Sir John died. They refused to attend
-the parish church, and obtained a cottage in which to meet for Divine
-service, with a piece of land attached for a grave-yard. This house,
-Mr. Gunn says, turned into a chapel, has been preserved till now.
-Though originally a Presbyterian, it long since became an Independent
-place of worship.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_128_128" id="Footnote_128_128"></a><a href="#FNanchor_128_128"><span class="label">[128]</span></a> Afterwards Mrs. Hazzard.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_129_129" id="Footnote_129_129"></a><a href="#FNanchor_129_129"><span class="label">[129]</span></a> <i>Records of the Baptist Church</i>, Broadmead, Bristol,
-10-18. See also <i>Cal. Dom.</i>, 1634-5, p. 416, for arguments by Dr.
-Stoughton, on the duty of separation.
-</p>
-<p>
-As women were active in promoting Puritanism, so they had been a
-century before in promoting Protestantism.&mdash;See numerous examples in
-<i>Foxe's Book of Martyrs</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_130_130" id="Footnote_130_130"></a><a href="#FNanchor_130_130"><span class="label">[130]</span></a> <i>Dugdale's Troubles in England</i>, 36, 62, 65.
-</p>
-<p>
-<i>Wood's Athenæ Oxonienses</i>, ii. 347.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_131_131" id="Footnote_131_131"></a><a href="#FNanchor_131_131"><span class="label">[131]</span></a> <i>Parl. Hist.</i>, ii. 674.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_132_132" id="Footnote_132_132"></a><a href="#FNanchor_132_132"><span class="label">[132]</span></a> Bagshawe's own account, in <i>Hanbury's Memorials</i>, ii.
-141.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_133_133" id="Footnote_133_133"></a><a href="#FNanchor_133_133"><span class="label">[133]</span></a> See <i>Cal. Dom.</i>, 1633-4, p. 33 <i>et seq.</i>; also
-<i>Preface</i>, viii.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_134_134" id="Footnote_134_134"></a><a href="#FNanchor_134_134"><span class="label">[134]</span></a> <i>Baillie's Letters and Journals</i>, vol. i. 211-214.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_135_135" id="Footnote_135_135"></a><a href="#FNanchor_135_135"><span class="label">[135]</span></a> <i>Baillie's Letters and Journals</i>, i. 271.
-</p>
-<p>
-<i>The Lords' Journals</i>, Dec. 10, 14, 1640, shew the sensitiveness of
-the House upon what concerned the honour of the Scots and the English
-lords, who favoured them, and in reference to all which indicated
-popish sympathies.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_136_136" id="Footnote_136_136"></a><a href="#FNanchor_136_136"><span class="label">[136]</span></a> The first night they tarried at lodgings, "in the Common
-Garden." Baillie adds: "The city is desirous we should lodge with them,
-so to-morrow I think we must flit."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_137_137" id="Footnote_137_137"></a><a href="#FNanchor_137_137"><span class="label">[137]</span></a> Hallam says: (<i>Const. Hist.</i>, i. 527) The petition was
-prepared "at the <i>instigation</i> of the Scotch Commissioners." Baillie's
-letters do not support this statement. The Scots, however, were very
-early in the field against Laud. <i>Lords' Journals</i>, January 2, 1641.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_138_138" id="Footnote_138_138"></a><a href="#FNanchor_138_138"><span class="label">[138]</span></a> "At London we met with many ministers from most parts of
-the kingdom; and upon some meetings and debates, it was resolved that a
-committee should be chosen to draw up a remonstrance of our grievances,
-and to petition the Parliament for reformation, which was accordingly
-done."&mdash;<i>Clark's Lives</i>, page 8.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_139_139" id="Footnote_139_139"></a><a href="#FNanchor_139_139"><span class="label">[139]</span></a> Cross-grained, twisted. <i>Baillie's Letters</i>, &amp;c., i.
-286.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_140_140" id="Footnote_140_140"></a><a href="#FNanchor_140_140"><span class="label">[140]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, iv. 135.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_141_141" id="Footnote_141_141"></a><a href="#FNanchor_141_141"><span class="label">[141]</span></a> The Somersetshire churchmen expressed themselves in
-moderate terms.&mdash;<i>Hallam's Const. Hist.</i>, i. 527.
-</p>
-<p>
-From Cheshire came two petitions, one signed by Episcopalians, the
-other by Puritans, calling prelates "mighty enemies and secret
-underminers" of the church and commonwealth.&mdash;<i>Nonconformity in
-Cheshire. Introduction</i>, xiv.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_142_142" id="Footnote_142_142"></a><a href="#FNanchor_142_142"><span class="label">[142]</span></a> Amongst the petitions of that period was one by Master
-William Castell, parson of Courtenhall, in the county of Northampton:
-"for the propagating of the gospel in America and the West Indies."
-While condemning the proceedings of Spaniards, and lamenting the
-indifference of English, Scotch, French, and Dutch, the petition
-expresses the desire of the petitioners, "to enlarge greatly the pale
-of the Church;" to make the synagogues of Satan temples of the Holy
-Ghost; "and millions of those silly, seduced Americans, to hear,
-understand, and practise the mystery of godliness." A large number
-of names are appended, approving the petition. The learned Edmund
-Castell, Robert Sanderson (afterwards Bishop of Lincoln), Joseph
-Caryl, and Edmund Calamy, appear in the list, and it is added that the
-petition had the approbation of Master Alexander Henderson, and some
-worthy ministers of Scotland. The union of such different men in this
-missionary endeavour is worthy of notice.&mdash;<i>Anderson's History of the
-Colonial Church</i>, ii. 11.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_143_143" id="Footnote_143_143"></a><a href="#FNanchor_143_143"><span class="label">[143]</span></a> Abridged from <i>Rushworth</i>, iv. 155.&mdash;Baillie says that,
-as to the part about the bishops, there "was no hum; and no applause as
-to the rest."&mdash;<i>Letters</i>, i. 292.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_144_144" id="Footnote_144_144"></a><a href="#FNanchor_144_144"><span class="label">[144]</span></a> No traces of Pym's speech are found in <i>Rushworth</i>,
-<i>Nalson</i>, or <i>Parliamentary Debates</i>. It is not mentioned in <i>Forster's
-Life of the Great Statesmen</i>, or in <i>Sanford's Illustrations</i>. The
-extract I have given is from <i>A Just Vindication of the questioned
-part of the reading of Edward Bagshawe, Esq.</i>, 1660, p. 2-4. The tract
-states that Pym's speech was delivered when the petition was read and
-debated in the House. <i>Hanbury's Memorials</i>, ii. 141.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_145_145" id="Footnote_145_145"></a><a href="#FNanchor_145_145"><span class="label">[145]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, iv. 170-187.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_146_146" id="Footnote_146_146"></a><a href="#FNanchor_146_146"><span class="label">[146]</span></a> 9th Feb., 1641.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_147_147" id="Footnote_147_147"></a><a href="#FNanchor_147_147"><span class="label">[147]</span></a> Quoted in <i>Studies and Illustrations, by Sanford</i>, 319.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_148_148" id="Footnote_148_148"></a><a href="#FNanchor_148_148"><span class="label">[148]</span></a> Mr. Godwin, in his <i>History of the Commonwealth</i>, i.
-58, interprets the resolution as meaning "we are not yet decided to
-maintain Episcopacy." The debate, and even the words themselves, seem
-to me inconsistent with that view.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_149_149" id="Footnote_149_149"></a><a href="#FNanchor_149_149"><span class="label">[149]</span></a> These particulars are taken from the <i>Journal of Sir
-Ralph Verney</i>, a member of the Committee. Lord Nugent, in his <i>Life of
-Hampden</i>, gives some account of this MS.; but Mr. Bruce has published
-the entire notes in a volume of the Camden Society, with many valuable
-remarks.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_150_150" id="Footnote_150_150"></a><a href="#FNanchor_150_150"><span class="label">[150]</span></a> The following extract from the <i>Lords' Journals</i> is an
-illustration:
-</p>
-<p>
-"Mr. Etheridge, minister, and Mr. Carter, the curate, and William Till,
-clerk of the parish, Ben Parsons, Tho. Chadwick, were examined at the
-bar, concerning the riot lately committed in the church of Halstead, in
-the county of Essex; as striking the Book of Common Prayer out of the
-curate's hand as he was baptizing a child at the fount, and kicking it
-up and down the church, and for taking the clerk by the throat, forcing
-him to deliver unto them the hood and surplice, which they immediately
-rent and tore in pieces; and other misdemeanours and outrages were
-committed in the said church, on Simon and Jude's day last, in divine
-service, by Jonathan Poole and Grace his wife." 10th December, 1640.
-</p>
-<p>
-Certain Nonconformists of St. Saviour's parish were complained of to
-the House for illegally assembling for worship. The House directed they
-should be left to the ordinary proceedings of justice, according to the
-course of law. <i>Journals of the Lords</i>, January 16th. See also 19th and
-21st.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_151_151" id="Footnote_151_151"></a><a href="#FNanchor_151_151"><span class="label">[151]</span></a> As the accounts of this committee given by Fuller, Neal,
-and Cardwell, are incomplete in consequence of the writers having
-neglected to consult the Journals of the House of Lords, I subjoin the
-following entries relating to this business:&mdash;
-</p>
-<p>
-<i>10 die Martii, 1640-1.</i>
-</p>
-<p>
-After an order that the Communion-table in every church remain where
-it is accustomed to be, it is ordered, "That these lords following are
-appointed to take into consideration all innovations in the Church
-concerning religion:&mdash;The Lord Treasurer, the Lord Chamberlain,
-Earls of Bath, South'ton, Bedford, Hartford, Essex, Dorset, Sarum,
-Warwick, March, Bristol, Clare, Berks, Dover, and Lord Viscount Say
-and Sele; Bishops of Winton, Chester, Lincoln, Sarum, Exon, Carlile,
-Ely, Bristol, Rochester, Chichester; and Ds. (Dominus), Strange,
-Willoughby de Earseby, North, Kymbolton, Howard de Charlton, Grey de
-Werk, Robarts, Craven, Pawlett, Howard de Escrick, Goringe, Savill,
-Dunsemore, and Seymor.
-</p>
-<p>
-"<i>6 die Martii.</i>
-</p>
-<p>
-"That the Committee for Innovations in Religion do meet on Wednesday
-next, and the committee to have power to send for such learned men as
-their lordships shall please, to assist them.
-</p>
-<p>
-"<i>10 die Martii.</i>
-</p>
-<p>
-"That the Committee for Religion do meet on Friday next, in the
-afternoon, and no other committee to sit that afternoon, and their
-lordships to have power to send for what learned divines their
-lordships shall please, for their better information: as the Lord
-Archbishop of Armagh, Dr. Prideaux, Dr. Warde, Dr. Twiste (Twiss) Dr.
-Hacket, who are to have intimation given them by the Lord Bishop of
-Lincoln to attend the Lords' Committees."
-</p>
-<p>
-The following names, given by Fuller, Collier, and Neal must be taken
-as a list of the sub-committee. Williams, Bishop of Lincoln; Ussher,
-Archbishop of Armagh; Morton, Bishop of Durham; and Hall, Bishop of
-Exeter; Drs. Ward, Prideaux, Twiss, Sanderson, Featley, Brownrigg,
-Holdsworth, Hacket, Burgess, White, Marshall, Calamy, and Hill. Morton
-of Durham does not appear on the list of the Lords' Committee. Cardwell
-places in the list the name of Montague, but I find it mentioned by no
-one else. He is not a likely person to have had anything to do with
-the Committee, and he is probably confounded by Cardwell with Hall,
-who succeeded him in the bishopric of Norwich, being translated, on
-Montague's death, to that see from Exeter.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_152_152" id="Footnote_152_152"></a><a href="#FNanchor_152_152"><span class="label">[152]</span></a> Quoted in <i>Campbell's Lives of the Chancellors</i>, iii.
-187.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_153_153" id="Footnote_153_153"></a><a href="#FNanchor_153_153"><span class="label">[153]</span></a> <i>Hacket's Memorial of Williams</i>, Part ii. 147.
-</p>
-<p>
-Sir N. Brent, in a paper dated September 9, 1634, gives an account of
-his "metropolitical visitation" of Williams's diocese. He describes the
-Communion-table at Lincoln as not decent, and the rail worse; organs
-old and nought; copes and vestments embezzled; ale-houses, hounds,
-and swine kept in the churchyard; Hitchin church and churchyard out
-of order; curate of Stowe accustomed "to marry people with gloves and
-masks on."&mdash;<i>Cal. Dom.</i> In another paper, probably pertaining to 1634,
-Boston seeks to free itself from the suspicions of Puritanism by saying
-that there were 2,000 communicants at church, who, for want of room to
-kneel, were compelled to receive the Lord's Supper standing.&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i>
-p. 422.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_154_154" id="Footnote_154_154"></a><a href="#FNanchor_154_154"><span class="label">[154]</span></a> <i>Fuller's Church History</i>, iii. 415.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_155_155" id="Footnote_155_155"></a><a href="#FNanchor_155_155"><span class="label">[155]</span></a> <i>Laud's Works</i>, iii. 241.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_156_156" id="Footnote_156_156"></a><a href="#FNanchor_156_156"><span class="label">[156]</span></a> The following letter (without signature) illustrates
-this point: "A new Committee for Religion was appointed to have sat
-on Monday in the afternoon last, but there being neither meeting nor
-adjournment, it was left <i>sine die</i>: yet, on Thursday in the afternoon,
-the Bishops of Lincoln, Durham, Winchester, and Bristol met, where the
-assistants, attended by some threescore other divines of inferior rank,
-were present, and many temporal Lords; and many points of doctrine and
-Church service being questioned, among the rest one Lord said, that it
-ought to be put out of the creed '<i>that Christ descended into Hell</i>,'
-which he did not believe. Yesterday in the forenoon, without any
-intimation or notice given to the other committees, the same spiritual
-Lords and divines met at the Bishop of Lincoln's lodging, where, in
-less than two hours, they condemned, (as I am informed by the Bishop
-of Bristol, present), about fifty points in doctrine, what they had
-met with in several treatises and sermons of late printed amongst us.
-They had culled out a passage of my Lord of Canterbury in his Star
-Chamber speech, which they say is, that <i>Hoc est corpus meum</i>, is more
-than <i>Hoc est verbum meum</i>: which the Bishop of Lincoln censured, for
-that <i>verbum</i> did make <i>corpus</i>; but would not further hear, because
-his grace was likely to answer it shortly elsewhere."&mdash;April 10, 1641.
-<i>State Papers, Chas. I. Dom.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_157_157" id="Footnote_157_157"></a><a href="#FNanchor_157_157"><span class="label">[157]</span></a> I say <i>almost</i>, because the practice of sitting, while
-singing hymns, which was common in Nonconforming places of worship when
-I was young, may still linger in some quarters.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_158_158" id="Footnote_158_158"></a><a href="#FNanchor_158_158"><span class="label">[158]</span></a> The following query appears respecting marriage:&mdash;
-</p>
-<p>
-"Whether none hereafter shall have licences to marry, nor be asked
-their banns of matrimony, that shall not bring with them a certificate
-from their Minister that they are instructed in their Catechism."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_159_159" id="Footnote_159_159"></a><a href="#FNanchor_159_159"><span class="label">[159]</span></a> The specified alterations are: "I give thee power over
-my body;" "knowing assuredly that the dead shall rise again;" and "I
-pronounce thee absolved;" instead of the well-known forms so often
-objected to.
-</p>
-<p>
-I have gone fully into an account of what was proposed to this
-Committee, not only because it may have a particular interest for those
-who are active in promoting a revision of the Prayer Book, but because
-there are such diversified statements in relation to the subject in
-our historians. Compare Fuller, Collier, and Neal. Neal presents his
-condensation of the papers with inverted commas, as if placing before
-the reader the original documents. (In other cases, too, he gives
-his own abridgment in this fashion, so as to mislead the student.)
-An entire copy of the proceedings of the Committee may be found in
-<i>Cardwell's Conferences</i>, p. 270, taken from <i>Baxter's Life and Times</i>,
-Part i. 369.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_160_160" id="Footnote_160_160"></a><a href="#FNanchor_160_160"><span class="label">[160]</span></a> <i>Neal</i>, ii. 465.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_161_161" id="Footnote_161_161"></a><a href="#FNanchor_161_161"><span class="label">[161]</span></a> See <i>Journals</i> for March 9th, 10th, 11th, and 22nd.
-<i>May</i> says, "Doctors and parsons of parishes were made everywhere
-Justices of Peace, to the great grievance of the country, in civil
-affairs, and depriving them of their spiritual edification."&mdash;<i>Hist. of
-Long Parliament</i>, 24.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_162_162" id="Footnote_162_162"></a><a href="#FNanchor_162_162"><span class="label">[162]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, iv. 206. This Bill was under discussion in
-the Lords, in October, 1641.&mdash;<i>Nalson</i>, ii. 496.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_163_163" id="Footnote_163_163"></a><a href="#FNanchor_163_163"><span class="label">[163]</span></a> <i>Journals.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_164_164" id="Footnote_164_164"></a><a href="#FNanchor_164_164"><span class="label">[164]</span></a> <i>Clarendon's Hist.</i>, 94.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_165_165" id="Footnote_165_165"></a><a href="#FNanchor_165_165"><span class="label">[165]</span></a> July 1.&mdash;"The Lords, upon the reasons offered by the
-Commons, were satisfied to consent to pass the Bill to take away the
-High Commission Court both here and at York, but argued to have the
-Star Chamber Court not quite taken away, but bounded, limited, and
-reduced to what power it had in Henry VII's time."&mdash;<i>Rushworth</i>, iv.
-304. Both Bills received the royal assent, July 5.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_166_166" id="Footnote_166_166"></a><a href="#FNanchor_166_166"><span class="label">[166]</span></a> The writers were: Stephen Marshall, Edmund Calamy, Thos.
-Young, Matt. Newcomen, and Wm. Spurstow.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_167_167" id="Footnote_167_167"></a><a href="#FNanchor_167_167"><span class="label">[167]</span></a> <i>The Reduction of Episcopacy</i>, which bears Ussher's
-name, was not published till after his death, in 1656. Baxter says in
-reference to it, "I asked him (Dr. Ussher) whether the paper be his
-that is called, <i>A reduction of Episcopacy to the form of Synodical
-Government</i>; which he owned, and Dr. Bernard after witnessed to be
-his."&mdash;<i>Life and Times</i>, part ii. 206.
-</p>
-<p>
-I may here observe that the Archbishop, according to his biographer,
-Elrington, appears always to have spelt his name with a double s.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_168_168" id="Footnote_168_168"></a><a href="#FNanchor_168_168"><span class="label">[168]</span></a> <i>Baillie</i>, i. 351.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_169_169" id="Footnote_169_169"></a><a href="#FNanchor_169_169"><span class="label">[169]</span></a> May 3, 1641. <i>Parl. Hist.</i>, ii. 776.
-</p>
-<p>
-I have here and elsewhere, in giving the substance of speeches, adhered
-to the quaint phraseology employed by the speakers.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_170_170" id="Footnote_170_170"></a><a href="#FNanchor_170_170"><span class="label">[170]</span></a> For the protestation, see <i>Parl. Hist.</i>, ii. 777.
-Alterations were made which throw light on the fears of returning
-popery.&mdash;<i>Verney's Notes</i>, published by the Camden Society, 67-70.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_171_171" id="Footnote_171_171"></a><a href="#FNanchor_171_171"><span class="label">[171]</span></a> Instances of the taking of it are numerous. In the
-<i>Register Book of Wansted</i> it is found with the names of the principal
-inhabitants.&mdash;<i>Lyson's Environs of London</i>, iv. 243.
-</p>
-<p>
-Whitaker, in his <i>History of Richmondshire</i>, mentions an endorsement on
-the Return Roll for the parishes and townships of Bentham, Ingleton,
-Thornton, Sedberg, Dent, and Garsdale:&mdash;"The names of those persons who
-refused to make protestation within Garsdale parcell of the township of
-Dent, viz: George Heber Gent, Abraham Nelson, chapman, who publiquely
-refused before the whole Dale in the Church."&mdash;vol. ii. 363.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_172_172" id="Footnote_172_172"></a><a href="#FNanchor_172_172"><span class="label">[172]</span></a> See <i>Journals of the Commons</i>, May 12th.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_173_173" id="Footnote_173_173"></a><a href="#FNanchor_173_173"><span class="label">[173]</span></a> August 2nd. <i>Parl. Hist.</i> ii, 895. Compare <i>Nalson</i>, ii.
-414-417.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_174_174" id="Footnote_174_174"></a><a href="#FNanchor_174_174"><span class="label">[174]</span></a> <i>Baillie</i>, i. 351. He refers here to the Commons.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_175_175" id="Footnote_175_175"></a><a href="#FNanchor_175_175"><span class="label">[175]</span></a> <i>Hallam's Const. Hist.</i>, i. 524. The sagacious author
-justly remarks&mdash;"And thus we trace again the calamities of Charles to
-their two great sources; his want of judgment in affairs, and of good
-faith towards his people." The Lords passed the Bill on the 8th; the
-royal assent was given on the 10th.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_176_176" id="Footnote_176_176"></a><a href="#FNanchor_176_176"><span class="label">[176]</span></a> <i>Parl. Hist.</i>, ii. 778.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_177_177" id="Footnote_177_177"></a><a href="#FNanchor_177_177"><span class="label">[177]</span></a> <i>Parl. Hist.</i>, ii. 783. May 5. D'Ewes gives another
-amusing version of the story, (under date May 19).&mdash;<i>Sanford's
-Illustrations</i>, 373. Baillie's account is somewhat different.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_178_178" id="Footnote_178_178"></a><a href="#FNanchor_178_178"><span class="label">[178]</span></a> <i>Maitland's London</i>, i. 338.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_179_179" id="Footnote_179_179"></a><a href="#FNanchor_179_179"><span class="label">[179]</span></a> The bitter Presbyterian feeling against Strafford is
-plain enough in Baillie's letters.
-</p>
-<p>
-It belongs not to the scope of this ecclesiastical History to enter on
-the details of the trial, but I cannot resist the temptation to insert
-in the Appendix two letters found in the State Paper Office, giving an
-account of the way in which the bill of attainder was introduced.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_180_180" id="Footnote_180_180"></a><a href="#FNanchor_180_180"><span class="label">[180]</span></a> See Speeches by Lane and St. John (<i>Rushworth's Trial of
-Strafford</i>, 671, <i>et seq.</i>); then read what follows:
-</p>
-<p>
-"It certainly does astonish us that men, however they may have
-condemned the conduct of Strafford, could bring themselves to believe
-that he was guilty of the crime of high treason; for they could hardly
-have been deceived by the wicked sophistry of St. John that an attempt
-to subvert the fundamental laws of the kingdom was high treason at
-common law, and still remains so, or by the base opinion delivered by
-the judges&mdash;that this amounts to high treason under the Statute of
-Edward III."&mdash;<i>Campbell's Lives of the Chancellors</i>, iv. 15.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_181_181" id="Footnote_181_181"></a><a href="#FNanchor_181_181"><span class="label">[181]</span></a> Ussher of Armagh, Juxon of London, Morton of Durham,
-Potter of Carlisle, and Williams of Lincoln.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_182_182" id="Footnote_182_182"></a><a href="#FNanchor_182_182"><span class="label">[182]</span></a> Slightly abridged from <i>Elrington's Life of Ussher</i>,
-213.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_183_183" id="Footnote_183_183"></a><a href="#FNanchor_183_183"><span class="label">[183]</span></a> That such a distinction was suggested seems generally
-admitted. Clarendon attributes it to Williams, (<i>Rebellion</i>, 140.)
-This, considering the historian's prejudice respecting the Archbishop,
-is not perfectly conclusive against Williams, any more than the silence
-of Hacket (<i>Life of Williams</i>, pt. II., i. 161,)&mdash;who only speaks of
-the advice given in common, founded on the distinction between facts
-and law&mdash;is conclusively in his favour.
-</p>
-<p>
-Clarendon is corroborated by the circumstance, that Ussher and Juxon
-were freed from the charge by the King himself (according to the report
-of Sir Edward Walker), and of the remaining prelates Williams was the
-most likely to give such advice as Clarendon mentions.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_184_184" id="Footnote_184_184"></a><a href="#FNanchor_184_184"><span class="label">[184]</span></a> <i>Fuller's Church History</i>, iii. 421.
-</p>
-<p>
-The author says he copied what he gives of Hacket's speech out of his
-own papers. <i>Nalson's Report</i> (ii. 240) seems to be an amplification
-of what is contained in <i>Rushworth</i>, iv. 269. Verney entirely agrees
-with Fuller (<i>Verney Papers&mdash;Camden Society</i>, 75), but only in a few
-particulars with Nalson. Nalson is also wrong in saying Hacket answered
-Burgess. Hacket spoke first. Burgess answered him.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_185_185" id="Footnote_185_185"></a><a href="#FNanchor_185_185"><span class="label">[185]</span></a> <i>Fuller</i>, iii. 422. According to <i>Verney's Notes</i>,
-Burgess speaks of "Choristers and officers as fellows that are
-condemned for felons, and keep ale-houses, and so they may still," 77.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_186_186" id="Footnote_186_186"></a><a href="#FNanchor_186_186"><span class="label">[186]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, iv. 276.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_187_187" id="Footnote_187_187"></a><a href="#FNanchor_187_187"><span class="label">[187]</span></a> <i>Parl. Hist.</i>, ii. 773.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_188_188" id="Footnote_188_188"></a><a href="#FNanchor_188_188"><span class="label">[188]</span></a> <i>Sanford's Illustrations</i>, 363.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_189_189" id="Footnote_189_189"></a><a href="#FNanchor_189_189"><span class="label">[189]</span></a> <i>Nalson</i>, ii. 248.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_190_190" id="Footnote_190_190"></a><a href="#FNanchor_190_190"><span class="label">[190]</span></a> <i>Parry's Parliaments and Councils of England</i>, 353.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_191_191" id="Footnote_191_191"></a><a href="#FNanchor_191_191"><span class="label">[191]</span></a> <i>Sanford's Studies and Illustrations</i>, 364.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_192_192" id="Footnote_192_192"></a><a href="#FNanchor_192_192"><span class="label">[192]</span></a> Dering published an apology in 1642.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_193_193" id="Footnote_193_193"></a><a href="#FNanchor_193_193"><span class="label">[193]</span></a> The following letter by Sydney Bere, secretary to Sir
-Balthazar Gerbier, afterwards to Sir H. Vane, is preserved in the State
-Paper Office.</p>
-
-<p>"Whitehall, 17th June, 1641.</p>
-
-<p>"You will surely have heard that the utter abolishing of the bishops
-and all titular ecclesiastics, with the dependents, hath been agreed
-upon in the House of Commons, and met with less noes in the debate
-than the business of the Earl of Strafford had. This day they voted it
-again, and now it is to be engrossed, a draft of the Act goes herewith.</p>
-
-<p>"The business of the bishops will be of dangerous consequence, they
-being violent and passionate in their own defence, and having engaged,
-as it were, the Lords, by their late votes in their favour, to the
-maintenance of their cause; whereas the Commons seem as resolute to
-pass the Bill for their utter extirpation, and so transmitting it to
-the Lords, according to the custom; and then it may be justly inferred
-the city will prove as turbulent as they were on Strafford's cause."</p>
-
-<p>Sidney Bere became under-secretary upon the appointment of Nicholas, in
-November, to the chief secretaryship of state.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_194_194" id="Footnote_194_194"></a><a href="#FNanchor_194_194"><span class="label">[194]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, iv. 279.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_195_195" id="Footnote_195_195"></a><a href="#FNanchor_195_195"><span class="label">[195]</span></a> <i>Nalson</i>, ii. 529.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_196_196" id="Footnote_196_196"></a><a href="#FNanchor_196_196"><span class="label">[196]</span></a> <i>Journal</i>, June 7, 1641.
-</p>
-<p>
-<i>Verney's Notes</i> bear evidence that the same day the feeling of the
-House was unfavourable to Episcopacy. Monday, 7th June:&mdash;"Sir John
-Griffin, the elder, said, I see it is distasteful to this House to
-speak for the government of the Church."&mdash;<i>Verney Papers</i>, 83.
-</p>
-<p>
-On the same day, in the course of a debate, the subject of
-ecclesiastical canons came again under consideration. Mr. Maynard
-"transmitted the votes about the canons." According to <i>Verney's
-Notes</i>, (84) in which this appears, the debate touched generally on the
-power of the clergy to make canons. No formal resolution or vote is
-recorded.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_197_197" id="Footnote_197_197"></a><a href="#FNanchor_197_197"><span class="label">[197]</span></a> <i>Sanford's Illustrations</i>, 365.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_198_198" id="Footnote_198_198"></a><a href="#FNanchor_198_198"><span class="label">[198]</span></a> <i>Clarendon's Hist.</i>, 110.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_199_199" id="Footnote_199_199"></a><a href="#FNanchor_199_199"><span class="label">[199]</span></a> <i>Parl. Hist.</i>, ii. 822-826.
-</p>
-<p>
-Sir Ralph Verney notices the debate on the 12th, but his notes are
-unfortunately very brief, and run thus:&mdash;
-</p>
-<p>
-"Actions constant at all times to men of one order, 'tis a great sign
-of their malignity.
-</p>
-<p>
-Oil and water may be severed, but oil and wine never.
-</p>
-<p>
-Pledwell's arguments might have been used for the pope as well as for
-other bishops.
-</p>
-<p>
-Vaughan.&mdash;Three things considerable in bishops: election, confirmation,
-consecration.
-</p>
-<p>
-<i>Os Episcopi</i> is a chancellor.
-</p>
-<p>
-<i>Oculus Episcopi</i> is the commissary.
-</p>
-<p>
-<i>Consilium Episcopi</i> is the dean."&mdash;<i>Verney Papers</i>, 94.
-</p>
-<p>
-Letters in the State Paper Office show the excitement produced by the
-Commons' proceedings. Slingsby says, 10th June, "The discourse of all
-men is they must now strike at root and branch, and not slip this
-occasion."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_200_200" id="Footnote_200_200"></a><a href="#FNanchor_200_200"><span class="label">[200]</span></a> <i>Parl. Hist.</i>, ii. 828. <i>et seq.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_201_201" id="Footnote_201_201"></a><a href="#FNanchor_201_201"><span class="label">[201]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, iv. 295.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_202_202" id="Footnote_202_202"></a><a href="#FNanchor_202_202"><span class="label">[202]</span></a> <i>Nalson</i>, ii. 245.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_203_203" id="Footnote_203_203"></a><a href="#FNanchor_203_203"><span class="label">[203]</span></a> White was grandfather of Susannah Annesly, the mother of
-the Wesleys.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_204_204" id="Footnote_204_204"></a><a href="#FNanchor_204_204"><span class="label">[204]</span></a> For cases which came before Dering, see "<i>Proceedings
-principally in the County of Kent, &amp;c.</i>" Edited by the Rev. L. B.
-Barking, with preface by John Bruce, Esq. <i>Camden Soc.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_205_205" id="Footnote_205_205"></a><a href="#FNanchor_205_205"><span class="label">[205]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, iv. 113-123.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_206_206" id="Footnote_206_206"></a><a href="#FNanchor_206_206"><span class="label">[206]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, 194, 195.
-</p>
-<p>
-See <i>Laud's Journal</i>, March 1, p. 240.
-</p>
-<p>
-March 1, Monday.&mdash;"I went in Mr. Maxwell's coach to the Tower. No noise
-till I came into Cheapside. But from thence to the Tower I was followed
-and railed at by the 'prentices and the rabble, in great numbers, to
-the very Tower gates, where I left them, and I thank God he made me
-patient!"&mdash;<i>Laud's Diary.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_207_207" id="Footnote_207_207"></a><a href="#FNanchor_207_207"><span class="label">[207]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, iv. 122-351.
-</p>
-<p>
-Widdrington's speech on presenting the impeachment is a curiosity in
-its way. Amongst other odd things he says of Wren: "Without doubt he
-would never have been so strait-laced and severe in this particular
-(<i>i. e.</i>, his hatred of extempore prayer), if he had but dreamed of
-that strait which a minister, a friend of his, was put into by this
-means. The story is short. A butcher was gored in the belly by an ox;
-the wound was cured; the party desired public thanksgiving in the
-congregation; the minister, finding no form for that purpose, <i>read the
-collect for churching of women</i>."&mdash;<i>Parl. Hist.</i>, ii. 888.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_208_208" id="Footnote_208_208"></a><a href="#FNanchor_208_208"><span class="label">[208]</span></a> <i>Fuller's Church History</i>, iii. 418. See also
-<i>Worthies</i>, ii. 359.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_209_209" id="Footnote_209_209"></a><a href="#FNanchor_209_209"><span class="label">[209]</span></a> <i>Hanbury's Historical Memorials</i>, ii. 97-100.
-</p>
-<p>
-Thomas Wiseman, in a letter (July 1, 1641) <i>State Papers</i>, says of the
-Scotch, "God send us well rid of them, and then we may hope to enjoy
-our ancient peace both of Church and Commonwealth, for till they are
-gone, whatever they pretend, we find they are the only disturbers of
-both."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_210_210" id="Footnote_210_210"></a><a href="#FNanchor_210_210"><span class="label">[210]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, iv. 368.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_211_211" id="Footnote_211_211"></a><a href="#FNanchor_211_211"><span class="label">[211]</span></a> <i>State Papers, Dom., 1641.</i> Letter of Sidney Bere,
-August 18.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_212_212" id="Footnote_212_212"></a><a href="#FNanchor_212_212"><span class="label">[212]</span></a> <i>Idem.</i> Letter of Sidney Bere, August 22.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_213_213" id="Footnote_213_213"></a><a href="#FNanchor_213_213"><span class="label">[213]</span></a> <i>Letter of Bere.</i> August 30th.
-</p>
-<p>
-In a manuscript diurnal, also preserved among the <i>State Papers</i>, it is
-remarked: "Mr. Henderson is in great favour with the king, and stands
-next to his chair in sermon time. His Majesty daily hears two sermons
-every Sunday, besides week-day lectures."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_214_214" id="Footnote_214_214"></a><a href="#FNanchor_214_214"><span class="label">[214]</span></a> Baillie's notices are to the same effect as Bere's: "Mr.
-Alexander Henderson, in the morning and evening before supper, does
-daily say prayers, read a chapter, sing a psalm, and say prayer again.
-The King hears all duly, and we hear none of his complaints for want of
-a liturgy or any ceremonies." <i>Letters</i>, i. 385.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_215_215" id="Footnote_215_215"></a><a href="#FNanchor_215_215"><span class="label">[215]</span></a> <i>Nalson</i>, ii. 683.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_216_216" id="Footnote_216_216"></a><a href="#FNanchor_216_216"><span class="label">[216]</span></a> <i>Parry's Parliaments and Councils</i>, 365.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_217_217" id="Footnote_217_217"></a><a href="#FNanchor_217_217"><span class="label">[217]</span></a> On the 8th September, "upon Mr. Cromwell's motion, it
-was ordered, that sermons should be in the afternoon in all parishes
-of England, at the charge of the inhabitants of those parishes where
-there are no sermons in the afternoon."&mdash;<i>D'Ewes' Journals. Sanford's
-Illustrations</i>, 371.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_218_218" id="Footnote_218_218"></a><a href="#FNanchor_218_218"><span class="label">[218]</span></a> <i>Commons' Journals. Parl. Hist.</i>, ii. 907.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_219_219" id="Footnote_219_219"></a><a href="#FNanchor_219_219"><span class="label">[219]</span></a> <i>Nalson</i>, ii. 483. <i>Parl. Hist.</i>, ii. 910.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_220_220" id="Footnote_220_220"></a><a href="#FNanchor_220_220"><span class="label">[220]</span></a> An attempt was made in the Lower House to revise the
-Prayer Book, but it failed.&mdash;<i>Rushworth</i>, iv. 385.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_221_221" id="Footnote_221_221"></a><a href="#FNanchor_221_221"><span class="label">[221]</span></a> London was in a very troubled state that autumn, as
-appears from a letter by Thomas Wiseman, dated October 7th.&mdash;<i>State
-Papers Dom.</i>
-</p>
-<p>
-"The city is full of the disbanded soldiers, and such robbing in and
-about it that we are not safe in our own houses, yet this day there is
-an order come from the Committee of Parliament to send every soldier
-away upon pain of imprisonment, and leave granted to any of them that
-will to transport themselves for the low countries into the service
-of the States. On Tuesday last the post was robbed between this and
-Theobalds, and the letters to the King and other Lords in Scotland,
-from the Queen and the Lords of the Council, were taken away by fellows
-with vizors on their faces; such an insolence hath not been, however,
-before, and who they were, or who set them to work is suspected, but
-not yet discovered. We have the most pestilent libels spread abroad
-against the precise Lords and Commons of the Parliament, that they
-are fearful to be named. And the Brownists and other sectaries make
-such havoc in our churches by pulling down of ancient monuments, glass
-windows, and rails, that their madness is intolerable; and I think
-it will be thought blasphemy shortly to name Jesus Christ, for it is
-already forbidden to bow to his name, though Scripture and the practice
-of the Church of England doth both warrant and command it."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_222_222" id="Footnote_222_222"></a><a href="#FNanchor_222_222"><span class="label">[222]</span></a> <i>May's History of the Long Parliament</i>, 113-115.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_223_223" id="Footnote_223_223"></a><a href="#FNanchor_223_223"><span class="label">[223]</span></a> See his speeches in <i>Rushworth</i>, iv. 392-394.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_224_224" id="Footnote_224_224"></a><a href="#FNanchor_224_224"><span class="label">[224]</span></a> <i>Parl. Hist.</i>, ii. 924.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_225_225" id="Footnote_225_225"></a><a href="#FNanchor_225_225"><span class="label">[225]</span></a> <i>Parl. Hist.</i>, ii. 919, 920.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_226_226" id="Footnote_226_226"></a><a href="#FNanchor_226_226"><span class="label">[226]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, iv. 438-451.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_227_227" id="Footnote_227_227"></a><a href="#FNanchor_227_227"><span class="label">[227]</span></a> Sidney Bere says in a letter dated 25th Nov., 1641
-(<i>State Papers Dom.</i>): "For the business of the Houses of Parliament,
-they have been in great debates about a Remonstrance, which the House
-of Commons frames, shewing the grievances and abuses of many years
-past. The contestation now is, how to publish it, whether in print
-to the public view, or by petition to his Majesty&mdash;it was so equally
-carried in a division of opinion, that there were but eleven voices
-different. This day is a great day about it, but what the event will be
-I shall not be able to write you by this ordinary. It seems there are
-great divisions between the two Houses, and even in the Commons House,
-which, if not suddenly reconciled, may cause very great distractions
-amongst us. It is the fear of many wise and well-meaning men, who
-apprehend great distempers, which I pray God to direct."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_228_228" id="Footnote_228_228"></a><a href="#FNanchor_228_228"><span class="label">[228]</span></a> <i>Memoirs by Sir Philip Warwick</i>, 201.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_229_229" id="Footnote_229_229"></a><a href="#FNanchor_229_229"><span class="label">[229]</span></a> <i>Forster's Grand Remonstrance</i>, 324. I refer the reader
-to this valuable work for minute particulars respecting this debate.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_230_230" id="Footnote_230_230"></a><a href="#FNanchor_230_230"><span class="label">[230]</span></a> <i>Clarendon. Hist.</i>, 125. Compare <i>Carlyle's Cromwell</i>,
-i. 161.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_231_231" id="Footnote_231_231"></a><a href="#FNanchor_231_231"><span class="label">[231]</span></a> So Queen Henrietta Maria was then commonly called.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_232_232" id="Footnote_232_232"></a><a href="#FNanchor_232_232"><span class="label">[232]</span></a> <i>Nalson</i>, ii. 679-681.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_233_233" id="Footnote_233_233"></a><a href="#FNanchor_233_233"><span class="label">[233]</span></a> <i>Nicholas' Correspondence.</i> <i>Evelyn's Diary</i>, iv. 82.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_234_234" id="Footnote_234_234"></a><a href="#FNanchor_234_234"><span class="label">[234]</span></a> "I observe since my coming to town, a very great
-alteration of the affections of the City, to what they were when I went
-away. They say a great present is to be presented to the King after
-dinner, and a petition such as he will be glad to receive, the contents
-I hear not yet, only one clause for the maintenance of Episcopacy and
-the suppression of schism."&mdash;<i>Robert Slingsby, State Papers Dom., Nov.
-25.</i>
-</p>
-<p>
-Respecting the King's reception, Wiseman says, "I confess it was a
-great one every way, and so acknowledged beyond the precedent of any
-made to former Kings, that history makes mention of, which well suits
-with the goodness, sweetness, and meritorious virtues of so gracious
-a King as ours is. The present mean estate of the Chamber denied the
-form of a gift, but this of the hearts of the citizens and those of
-the better sort, and at this tune so seasonably expressed, was of
-greater import to His Majesty than, for my part, I dare take upon me to
-value."&mdash;<i>2nd Dec., 1641. State Papers, Dom.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_235_235" id="Footnote_235_235"></a><a href="#FNanchor_235_235"><span class="label">[235]</span></a> <i>Nalson</i>, ii. 681. <i>Rushworth</i>, iv. 432.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_236_236" id="Footnote_236_236"></a><a href="#FNanchor_236_236"><span class="label">[236]</span></a> Letter of Thomas Wiseman, addressed to "Sir John
-Pennington, Admiral of his Majesty's fleet for the guard of the Narrow
-Seas."&mdash;<i>State Papers Dom.</i>, 9th Dec., 1641.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_237_237" id="Footnote_237_237"></a><a href="#FNanchor_237_237"><span class="label">[237]</span></a> In the same letter to Sir John Pennington, Wiseman
-says, "His Majesty was pleased, with a return of many thanks for his
-entertainment, to set a mark of his favour by knighting the seven
-aldermen, whereof your cousin the alderman was none, whose ways, as
-you partly know, are rather to please himself than to strive to do any
-acceptable service for the king, if it stand not with the sense of the
-preciser sort of the House of Commons."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_238_238" id="Footnote_238_238"></a><a href="#FNanchor_238_238"><span class="label">[238]</span></a> Sir Ralph Hopton gave a report to the House of the
-interview.&mdash;<i>Parl. Hist.</i>, ii. 942.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_239_239" id="Footnote_239_239"></a><a href="#FNanchor_239_239"><span class="label">[239]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, iv. 452.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_240_240" id="Footnote_240_240"></a><a href="#FNanchor_240_240"><span class="label">[240]</span></a> <i>State Papers Dom.</i> Letters of Robert Slingsby, dated
-(by mistake) 6th Dec., 1641, and properly placed under Jan. 6th,
-1641-2. Slingsby is not perfectly accurate in his account of what took
-place in the House.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_241_241" id="Footnote_241_241"></a><a href="#FNanchor_241_241"><span class="label">[241]</span></a> The High Church Lord Mayor Gourney would not accompany
-them.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_242_242" id="Footnote_242_242"></a><a href="#FNanchor_242_242"><span class="label">[242]</span></a> <i>Nalson</i>, ii. 764.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_243_243" id="Footnote_243_243"></a><a href="#FNanchor_243_243"><span class="label">[243]</span></a> There were other disturbances in London.
-</p>
-<p>
-"For the proceedings of the Parliament, you have them here enclosed
-until Monday, which day there happened some disorder concerning
-the prisoners in Newgate, who being to suffer, and understanding
-the priests condemned with them were not, but in hope of reprieve,
-they found means to seize the jailor's keys, and so made themselves
-master of the prison, but the train bands coming up that same day
-forced them to surrender, and the next they were hanged, not without
-great murmuring of the common people. The saving of the priests is
-yet a point debated in Parliament, and, as I am told, will hardly be
-obtained. In the meantime, these intervenient things add much to the
-distractions and distempers of the time, which I pray God to give a
-better end unto than at present there is any great appearance for to
-hope it." * * *
-</p>
-<p>
-"I am told the House did yesternight vote the printing of the
-Remonstrance."&mdash;<i>State Papers.</i> Letter of Sidney Bere, 16th Dec., 1641.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_244_244" id="Footnote_244_244"></a><a href="#FNanchor_244_244"><span class="label">[244]</span></a> <i>Bramston's Autobiography</i>, published by the Camden
-Society, 82.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_245_245" id="Footnote_245_245"></a><a href="#FNanchor_245_245"><span class="label">[245]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, iv. 463.
-</p>
-<p>
-Cutting the hair short was a Puritan reaction, occasioned by the
-opposite Cavalier fashion of wearing locks profusely long. It is worth
-notice, that the nickname given to Elisha by the boys at the town gate,
-as they watched the prophet passing by, was just the same as that
-given to the Parliamentarians. "Baldhead," is really "<i>roundhead</i>," in
-allusion to shortness of hair at the back of the head.&mdash;<i>Ewald</i>, iii.
-512.&mdash;<i>Smith's Dict. of the Bible</i>, i. 537.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_246_246" id="Footnote_246_246"></a><a href="#FNanchor_246_246"><span class="label">[246]</span></a> The following letter by Captain Slingsby relates to
-this disturbance. It will be noticed that the writer says, "none were
-killed;" but Fuller states one man died of the injuries he received.
-</p>
-<p>
-"I cannot say we have had a merry Christmas, but the maddest one that
-I ever saw. The prentices and baser sort of citizens, sailors, and
-watermen, in great numbers every day at Westminster, armed with swords,
-halberds, clubs, which hath made the King keep a strong guard about
-Whitehall of the trained-bands without, and of gentlemen and officers
-of the army within. The King had upon Christmas-eve put Colonel
-Lunsford in to be Lieutenant of the Tower, which was so much resented
-by the Commons and by the City, that the Sunday after he displaced him
-again and put in Sir John Biron, who is little better accepted than the
-other. Lunsford being on Monday last in the Hall with about a dozen
-other gentlemen, he was affronted by some of the citizens, whereof the
-Hall was full, and so they drew their swords, chasing the citizens
-about the Hall, and so made their way through them which were in the
-Palace Yard and in King's Street, till they came to Whitehall. The
-Archbishop of York was beaten by the prentices the same day, as he was
-going into the Parliament. The next day they assaulted the Abbey, to
-pull down the organs and altar; but it was defended by the Archbishop
-of York and his servants, with some other gentlemen that came to
-them; divers of the citizens hurt, but none killed. Amongst them that
-were hurt one knight, Sir Richard Wiseman, who is their chief leader.
-Yesterday, about fifteen or sixteen officers of the army, standing
-at the Court gate, took a slight occasion to fall upon them and hurt
-about forty or so of them. They, in all their skirmishes have avoided
-thrusting, because they would not kill them. I never saw the Court so
-full of gentlemen. Every one comes thither with their swords. This day
-500 gentlemen of the Inns of Court came to offer their services to the
-King. The officers of the army, since these tumults, have watcht and
-kept a Court of guard in the presence chamber, and are entertained upon
-the King's charge. A company of soldiers put into the Abbey for defence
-of it."&mdash;<i>State Papers</i>, December 30th, 1641.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_247_247" id="Footnote_247_247"></a><a href="#FNanchor_247_247"><span class="label">[247]</span></a> "There has been great store of the scum of the people
-who have gone this holidays to Westminster, to have down Bishops, and
-against Lunsford, who is now dismissed from being Lieutenant of the
-Tower, the King having given him £500 pension per annum, and hath
-invested one Sir John Biron in that place. All things are in much
-distemper, and I fear that they yet will grow worse."&mdash;<i>State Papers.</i>
-Letter of Capt. Carterett to Sir J. Pennington, dated London, 29th Dec.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_248_248" id="Footnote_248_248"></a><a href="#FNanchor_248_248"><span class="label">[248]</span></a> I drew up this account from documents in the Record
-Office, dated the last few days of December, 1641, when I had no
-opportunity of consulting what Mr. Forster says of the disturbances, in
-his careful history of the <i>Arrest of the Five Members</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_249_249" id="Footnote_249_249"></a><a href="#FNanchor_249_249"><span class="label">[249]</span></a> See <i>Rushworth</i>, iv. 695, for examples of exaggeration
-in the royalist statements. This disturbance became a subject of
-controversy between the King and Parliament.&mdash;<i>Rushworth</i>, iv. 710.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_250_250" id="Footnote_250_250"></a><a href="#FNanchor_250_250"><span class="label">[250]</span></a> "Here," says Mr. Forster, "and not in any dispute as to
-whom the powers of the militia should reside with, really began the
-Civil War." <i>Arrest of the Five Members</i>, 66.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_251_251" id="Footnote_251_251"></a><a href="#FNanchor_251_251"><span class="label">[251]</span></a> <i>Hall's Works for Hard Measure</i>, xiii.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_252_252" id="Footnote_252_252"></a><a href="#FNanchor_252_252"><span class="label">[252]</span></a> <i>Fuller's Church History</i>, iii. 431. He gives a copy of
-the protest.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_253_253" id="Footnote_253_253"></a><a href="#FNanchor_253_253"><span class="label">[253]</span></a> See his speech on the 4th of March&mdash;<i>Parl. Hist.</i>, ii.
-1111.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_254_254" id="Footnote_254_254"></a><a href="#FNanchor_254_254"><span class="label">[254]</span></a> <i>Bishop Hall's</i> account in his <i>Hard Measure</i> would seem
-to imply that the King had not seen the paper before it was brought
-under the notice of the Upper House by Lord-keeper Littleton, but it
-is clearly stated (<i>Parl. Hist.</i>, ii. 993) that what Littleton did in
-this matter was by his Majesty's command. "The Jesuitical faction,"
-says a letter of the day, "according to their wonted custom, fomenting
-still jealousies between the King and his people, and the bishops,
-continually concurring with the Popish lords against the passing any
-good Bills sent from the House of Commons thither; and their last plot
-hath been their endeavour to make this Parliament no Parliament, and so
-to overthrow all Acts past, and to cause a dissolution of it for the
-present, which hath been so strongly followed by the Popish party, that
-it was fain to be put to the vote, and the Protestant Lords carried
-it to be a free and perfect Parliament as ever any was before. This
-did so gall the bishops that they made their protestation against the
-freedom of the vote, and the Parliament; and in their protestation
-have inserted such speeches as have brought them within the compass of
-treason, and thus the Council of Achitophel is turned into foolishness.
-The Earl of Bristol and his son have been chief concurrents with them
-in this and other evil councils, for which they have been impeached and
-branded in the House of Commons."&mdash;<i>State Papers</i>, Letter of Thomas
-Smith to Sir J. Pennington, dated York House, 30th Dec., 1641.
-</p>
-<p>
-There are allusions to these proceedings in other letters (<i>State
-Papers</i>) which all blame the bishops for want of wisdom.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_255_255" id="Footnote_255_255"></a><a href="#FNanchor_255_255"><span class="label">[255]</span></a> Hall says, "On January the 30th, in all the extremity
-of frost, at 8 o'clock in the dark evening, are we voted to the Tower.
-The news of this our crime and imprisonment flew over the city, and was
-entertained by our well-wishers with ringing of bells and bonfires."
-<i>Hard Measure.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_256_256" id="Footnote_256_256"></a><a href="#FNanchor_256_256"><span class="label">[256]</span></a> "This day the bishops have made a protestation against
-the proceedings of this Parliament, declaring it no free Parliament.
-This makes a great stir here. The favourers of them think it done too
-soon, the other side do seem now to rejoice that it is done, having
-thereby excluded themselves from it." <i>Slingsby to Pennington. State
-Papers</i>, 30th Dec., 1641.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_257_257" id="Footnote_257_257"></a><a href="#FNanchor_257_257"><span class="label">[257]</span></a> <i>Collier's Ecclesiastical History</i>, ii. 819.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_258_258" id="Footnote_258_258"></a><a href="#FNanchor_258_258"><span class="label">[258]</span></a> <i>Parl. Hist.</i>, ii. 1206. The bishops were: Dr. John
-Williams, Archbishop of York; Dr. T. Moreton, Bishop of Durham; Dr.
-J. Hall, Bishop of Norwich; Dr. Robert Wright, Bishop of Coventry and
-Lichfield; Dr. John Owen, Bishop of St. Asaph; Dr. William Piers,
-Bishop of Bath and Wells; Dr. John Coke, Bishop of Hereford; Dr.
-M. Wren, Bishop of Ely; Dr. Robert Skinner, Bishop of Oxon; Dr. G.
-Goodman, Bishop of Gloucester; Dr. J. Towers, Bishop of Peterborough;
-Dr. M. Owen, Bishop of Llandaff.
-</p>
-<p>
-In <i>Parl. Hist.</i>, ii. 998, Warner is mentioned as Bishop of
-Peterborough, but he was Bishop of Rochester. See list of the thirteen
-impeached in August.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_259_259" id="Footnote_259_259"></a><a href="#FNanchor_259_259"><span class="label">[259]</span></a> <i>Parl. Hist.</i>, ii. 1080.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_260_260" id="Footnote_260_260"></a><a href="#FNanchor_260_260"><span class="label">[260]</span></a> <i>Lords' Journals</i>, Feb. 16th.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_261_261" id="Footnote_261_261"></a><a href="#FNanchor_261_261"><span class="label">[261]</span></a> It is related of this eccentric person that, as master
-of a household, he never allowed the presence of a female servant.&mdash;See
-<i>Worthies of Sussex, by Mark Antony Lower</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_262_262" id="Footnote_262_262"></a><a href="#FNanchor_262_262"><span class="label">[262]</span></a> <i>Harl. MSS.</i> in <i>Lysons</i>, iii. 56.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_263_263" id="Footnote_263_263"></a><a href="#FNanchor_263_263"><span class="label">[263]</span></a> There is a curious letter from Towers, then Dean of
-Peterborough, dated December 30, 1633, in which he seeks to make
-interest with Sir John Lambe, Dean of the Arches, for the succession of
-the bishopric. He says he should be almost as glad to see his friend
-Dr. Sibthorpe in the deanery as himself in the palace. <i>State Papers
-Dom., Chas. I.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_264_264" id="Footnote_264_264"></a><a href="#FNanchor_264_264"><span class="label">[264]</span></a> <i>Walker's Sufferings of the Clergy</i>, part ii. 78. The
-few particulars we have given respecting the bishops rest chiefly on
-his authority.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_265_265" id="Footnote_265_265"></a><a href="#FNanchor_265_265"><span class="label">[265]</span></a> <i>Hacket's Memorial</i>, ii. 226.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_266_266" id="Footnote_266_266"></a><a href="#FNanchor_266_266"><span class="label">[266]</span></a> The following <i>State Papers Dom.</i>, (<i>Chas. I.</i>), was
-written at the same time:&mdash;
-</p>
-<p>
-"Sir&mdash;What passeth in Scotland I presume you have already understood
-from Mr. Bere, so that I shall only say, that I believe the great plot
-there may prove much ado about nothing. Howsoever I am advertised that
-all the distractions thereupon have suddenly composed, which gives
-great hope of his Majesty's return ere it be long. Our Parliament, I
-mean the House of Commons, were very hot in getting the Lords to pass
-a bill which they had voted, and sent up against the bishops; but the
-news of a rebellion in Ireland made them cast that by, and ever since
-Saturday last both Houses have bestowed their time upon this business,
-and at length have concluded to send away the Lord Lieutenant speedily
-with 1,000 men and £50,000 in money, which is to be taken up of the
-city, if they can get it there, for the citizens of the best rank are
-at this time much discontented with the Parliament about protections,
-whereby they are stopped from getting in their debts to their great
-prejudice....</p>
-
-<p class="smcap r1">"H. Cogan.</p>
-
-<p>"<i>Charing Cross, 4th Nov., 1641.</i>"</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_267_267" id="Footnote_267_267"></a><a href="#FNanchor_267_267"><span class="label">[267]</span></a> Letter of Thos. Wiseman, dated 4th Nov., 1641. (<i>State
-Papers Dom., Chas. I.</i>)
-</p>
-<p>
-This letter discloses to us facts which were the subject of many
-a letter, and many a conversation in the autumn of 1641. Public
-indignation was awakened by these atrocities in a way resembling that
-with which we were all sadly familiar at the period of the Indian
-massacre.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_268_268" id="Footnote_268_268"></a><a href="#FNanchor_268_268"><span class="label">[268]</span></a> <i>Mant's History of the Church of Ireland</i>, i. 467, 470.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_269_269" id="Footnote_269_269"></a><a href="#FNanchor_269_269"><span class="label">[269]</span></a> <i>Bramhall's Works</i>, i., <i>letters</i>, p. 79.
-The Lord Deputy's letter in 1634 also gives a lamentable
-description.&mdash;<i>Strafford's Letters</i>, i. 187. See also <i>Petition of
-Irish Convocation</i>.&mdash;<i>Collier</i>, ii. 763.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_270_270" id="Footnote_270_270"></a><a href="#FNanchor_270_270"><span class="label">[270]</span></a> <i>Mant's Church of Ireland</i>, i. 548.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_271_271" id="Footnote_271_271"></a><a href="#FNanchor_271_271"><span class="label">[271]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, iv. 406.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_272_272" id="Footnote_272_272"></a><a href="#FNanchor_272_272"><span class="label">[272]</span></a> For the Roman Catholic view of the case, see <i>Lingard's
-History of England</i>, x. 41.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_273_273" id="Footnote_273_273"></a><a href="#FNanchor_273_273"><span class="label">[273]</span></a> <i>Lister's Autobiography</i>, 7. The places named are on the
-great highway from South Lancashire to Halifax.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_274_274" id="Footnote_274_274"></a><a href="#FNanchor_274_274"><span class="label">[274]</span></a> <i>Calamy's Ejected Ministers</i>, i. 45.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_275_275" id="Footnote_275_275"></a><a href="#FNanchor_275_275"><span class="label">[275]</span></a> <i>Nalson</i>, ii. 647-688. Cogan (servant to some one
-addressed by Nicholas as Rt. Honble.) in a letter dated Charing Cross,
-November 18, 1641, after relating the story told by the tailor of
-White Cross Street, continues&mdash;"he went with all speed to the House of
-Commons, unto whom being with great importunity admitted, he at large
-related all the aforesaid passages, and withal shewed in how many
-places of his cloak and clothes he was run through; and after long
-examination of him they sent him up unto the Lords, who in like manner
-questioned him a long time, and ever since there hath been a great
-coil about the finding out of this matter, by searching of Recusants'
-houses, as my Lord of Worcester's in the Strand, St. Basil Brooke's,
-and others. Now, whether this be a truth or an imposture, time will
-resolve."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_276_276" id="Footnote_276_276"></a><a href="#FNanchor_276_276"><span class="label">[276]</span></a> <i>Nalson</i>, ii. 673. Dering's subsequent history does not
-belong to our pages. It is enough to say he was expelled the House,
-his published speeches were burnt by the hangman, he joined the King,
-and served in the army; and then, after all, made his peace with the
-Parliament.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_277_277" id="Footnote_277_277"></a><a href="#FNanchor_277_277"><span class="label">[277]</span></a> <i>Clarendon</i>, 433.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_278_278" id="Footnote_278_278"></a><a href="#FNanchor_278_278"><span class="label">[278]</span></a> <i>Macaulay's Essays</i>, i. 160.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_279_279" id="Footnote_279_279"></a><a href="#FNanchor_279_279"><span class="label">[279]</span></a> Quoted in <i>Forster's Grand Remonstrance</i>, 172.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_280_280" id="Footnote_280_280"></a><a href="#FNanchor_280_280"><span class="label">[280]</span></a> As to Royalists of the mean and selfish class, see
-<i>Brodie</i>, iii. 344-354.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_281_281" id="Footnote_281_281"></a><a href="#FNanchor_281_281"><span class="label">[281]</span></a> <i>Parl. Hist.</i>, ii. 990.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_282_282" id="Footnote_282_282"></a><a href="#FNanchor_282_282"><span class="label">[282]</span></a> <i>Nalson</i>, ii. 673.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_283_283" id="Footnote_283_283"></a><a href="#FNanchor_283_283"><span class="label">[283]</span></a> <i>Letters</i> of the 13th and 14th of January, in the
-State Paper Office, indicate the excitement of the period, and the
-uncertainty felt about the King's movements.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_284_284" id="Footnote_284_284"></a><a href="#FNanchor_284_284"><span class="label">[284]</span></a> <i>State Papers Dom.</i>, under date January 13, 1642. Parts
-of this letter, of which I have not transcribed the whole, are inserted
-by Mr. Forster in his <i>Arrest of the Five Members</i>. I had intended
-to introduce other interesting letters of that date, but as they are
-already printed by him, I refer the reader to his pages.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_285_285" id="Footnote_285_285"></a><a href="#FNanchor_285_285"><span class="label">[285]</span></a> March 28, 1642.&mdash;A conference was held respecting a
-petition from Kent, which prayed for a restoration of the Bishops, and
-the Liturgy, &amp;c., &amp;c. Some parts of the petition were voted scandalous,
-dangerous, and tending to sedition.&mdash;<i>Lords' Journal.</i>
-</p>
-<p>
-April 21.&mdash;Both Houses made a curious order against
-counter-petitions&mdash;"As no man ought to petition for the Government
-established by law because he has already his wish; but they that
-desire an alteration cannot otherwise have their desires known, and
-therefore are to be countenanced."
-</p>
-<p>
-April 28.&mdash;The Commons, by Mr. Oliver Cromwell, acquaint the Lords
-"that a great meeting is to be held next day on Blackheath, to back the
-rejected Kentish petition." 30&mdash;"The Men of Kent come to the House,
-and again present their petition formerly burnt. Several are committed
-to the Gate House and Fleet."&mdash;<i>Parry's Parliaments and Councils of
-England</i>, 385, 386.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_286_286" id="Footnote_286_286"></a><a href="#FNanchor_286_286"><span class="label">[286]</span></a> This appears from a letter by Slingsby.&mdash;<i>State Papers</i>,
-December 2, 1641.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_287_287" id="Footnote_287_287"></a><a href="#FNanchor_287_287"><span class="label">[287]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, iv. 498.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_288_288" id="Footnote_288_288"></a><a href="#FNanchor_288_288"><span class="label">[288]</span></a> See also <i>Neal</i>, ii. chap. xii., and <i>May</i>, 247-265.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_289_289" id="Footnote_289_289"></a><a href="#FNanchor_289_289"><span class="label">[289]</span></a> July 28, 1642&mdash;The Lords give judgment against John
-Marston, Clerk, who had said&mdash;"The Parliament set forth flams to cozen
-and cheat the country and get their money, &amp;c. He is deprived of all
-ecclesiastical preferments; made incapable hereafter to hold place or
-dignity in Church or Commonwealth; imprisoned in the Gatehouse; and
-ordered to give sureties."&mdash;<i>Parliaments and Councils of England</i>, 396.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_290_290" id="Footnote_290_290"></a><a href="#FNanchor_290_290"><span class="label">[290]</span></a> The Royalists sometimes appealed to Scripture.&mdash;There is
-amongst the <i>State Papers</i>, one containing texts of Scripture relating
-to royal authority:&mdash;1. Pray for the King; 2. Speak not evil of the
-King; 3. Exalt not thyself against the King; 4. The King's confidence
-in God; 5. The King loveth judgment; 6. The King ought to be feared;
-7. God's care of his anointed; 8. Punishment of his adversaries; 9.
-Exhortation to obedience; 10. His triumph and thanksgiving.
-</p>
-<p>
-There is also a paper of arguments in defence of taking up arms in
-maintenance of the true reformed religion:&mdash;From the law of nature.
-From Divine authority out of God's word. From human authority;
-Citations from fathers, &amp;c. From reason. From practice of Reformed
-kirks, France, Holland, Germany, Bohemia, Switzerland, Hungary, and
-Sweden, which had all taken up arms for defence of religion against
-authority. From the custom of Kings in Reformed kirks&mdash;Elizabeth
-against Spain&mdash;James, in his <i>Basilicon</i>, approves reforming of
-Scotland&mdash;Charles sent a naval force to help French Protestants.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_291_291" id="Footnote_291_291"></a><a href="#FNanchor_291_291"><span class="label">[291]</span></a> I may add the following sentence from <i>Hook's Lives of
-the Archbishops of Canterbury</i>, iii. 291:&mdash;"The first lawyer whose
-writings we possess, Bracton, asserts, '<i>Lex omnium Rex</i>.' A king not
-less than a subject may be a traitor."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_292_292" id="Footnote_292_292"></a><a href="#FNanchor_292_292"><span class="label">[292]</span></a> <i>Parl. Hist.</i>, ii. 1168.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_293_293" id="Footnote_293_293"></a><a href="#FNanchor_293_293"><span class="label">[293]</span></a> These papers are given in full by <i>Rushworth</i>, iv.
-624, 722. They are also to be found in <i>Neal</i>, ii. 553, 556, 563, as
-extracts from <i>Rushworth</i>, though much condensed.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_294_294" id="Footnote_294_294"></a><a href="#FNanchor_294_294"><span class="label">[294]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, iv. 733.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_295_295" id="Footnote_295_295"></a><a href="#FNanchor_295_295"><span class="label">[295]</span></a> In the <i>Weekly Intelligencer</i>, October 18, 1642, mention
-is made of a woman called Moll Cutpurse, who wore both, saying she was
-for King and Parliament, too.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_296_296" id="Footnote_296_296"></a><a href="#FNanchor_296_296"><span class="label">[296]</span></a> "<i>Powers to be resisted</i>, or a dialogue arguing the
-Parliament's lawful resistance of the powers now in arms against them,
-and that archbishops, bishops, curates, neuters, all these are to be
-cut off by the law of God, therefore to be cast out by the law of the
-land, etc."&mdash;London, 1643. p. 13.
-</p>
-<p>
-See also John Goodwin's <i>Anti-cavalierisme</i>.
-</p>
-<p>
-That the people have a right to resist their rulers when they do wrong
-was a common opinion amongst Reformers in Mary's reign. See <i>Maitland's
-Essays on Reformation in England</i>, vi.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_297_297" id="Footnote_297_297"></a><a href="#FNanchor_297_297"><span class="label">[297]</span></a> All these particulars are mentioned in pamphlets of
-the King's collection.&mdash;British Museum, years 1642, 1643. Marvels
-and Monsters were rife at the time of the Reformation.&mdash;<i>Maitland's
-Essays</i>, 184.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_298_298" id="Footnote_298_298"></a><a href="#FNanchor_298_298"><span class="label">[298]</span></a> A list of contributors is printed in <i>Choice Notes,
-Historical</i>, p. 55.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_299_299" id="Footnote_299_299"></a><a href="#FNanchor_299_299"><span class="label">[299]</span></a> Such a contribution from William Bridge and his family
-is described in the <i>Yarmouth Corporation Records</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_300_300" id="Footnote_300_300"></a><a href="#FNanchor_300_300"><span class="label">[300]</span></a> Baxter assigns a number of reasons which induced godly
-people to take side with the Parliament.&mdash;<i>Life and Times</i>, part i.
-33. Mrs. Hutchinson, in the <i>Memoirs</i> of her husband, gives amusing
-sketches of some who joined that party for sinister ends, pp. 105-116.
-<i>The Life of Adam Martindale</i>, p. 31, indicates how Royalists sought
-shelter amidst Parliamentarians.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_301_301" id="Footnote_301_301"></a><a href="#FNanchor_301_301"><span class="label">[301]</span></a> It is worthy of remark that Cromwell began his military
-course at about forty, the same age as that at which Cæsar commenced
-his victories. Cæsar, however, when a young man, had served in the
-army, which Cromwell had not. It is a curious parallel that both should
-have been such successful soldiers after so long an engagement in
-peaceful occupations. Both died at the age of about fifty-five.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_302_302" id="Footnote_302_302"></a><a href="#FNanchor_302_302"><span class="label">[302]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, v. 39.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_303_303" id="Footnote_303_303"></a><a href="#FNanchor_303_303"><span class="label">[303]</span></a> A small volume was published containing portions of
-Scripture, and was entitled <i>The Souldier's Pocket Bible</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_304_304" id="Footnote_304_304"></a><a href="#FNanchor_304_304"><span class="label">[304]</span></a> As to the presence of Roman Catholics in the two armies,
-the following passages from Baxter and Hallam should be considered:&mdash;
-</p>
-<p>
-Baxter, whose prejudices against the army must be borne in mind when
-he refers to the subject, only expresses suspicion. "The most among
-Cromwell's soldiers that ever I could <i>suspect</i> for Papists were but a
-few that began as strangers among the common soldiers, and by degrees
-rose up to some inferior offices, and were most conversant with the
-common soldiers; but none of the superior officers <i>seemed</i> such,
-though seduced by them."&mdash;<i>Life and Times</i>, part i. 78.
-</p>
-<p>
-Hallam leans to the idea that the common reports had some foundation.
-He remarks: "It is probable that some foreign Catholics were in the
-Parliament's service. But Dodds says, with great appearance of truth,
-that no one English gentleman of that persuasion was in arms on their
-side.&mdash;<i>Church History of England</i>, iii. 28. He reports, as a matter
-of hearsay, that out of about 500 gentlemen who lost their lives for
-Charles in the civil war, 194 were Catholics. They were, doubtless, a
-very powerful faction in the court and army."&mdash;<i>Hallam's Const. Hist.</i>
-i. 587.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_305_305" id="Footnote_305_305"></a><a href="#FNanchor_305_305"><span class="label">[305]</span></a> <i>Hibbert's History of Manchester</i>, i. 210.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_306_306" id="Footnote_306_306"></a><a href="#FNanchor_306_306"><span class="label">[306]</span></a> "<i>Some Special Passages from Warwickshire.</i>" <i>King's
-Pamphlets, Brit. Mus. Acts and Orders</i>, i. 124.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_307_307" id="Footnote_307_307"></a><a href="#FNanchor_307_307"><span class="label">[307]</span></a> <i>King's Pamphlets, Brit. Mus. Acts and Orders</i>, ii. 124.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_308_308" id="Footnote_308_308"></a><a href="#FNanchor_308_308"><span class="label">[308]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, iv. 783.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_309_309" id="Footnote_309_309"></a><a href="#FNanchor_309_309"><span class="label">[309]</span></a> These were commenced by Mr. Case, of St. Mary Magdalen,
-Milk Street, and afterwards circulated from church to church for the
-convenience of the citizens.&mdash;<i>Neal</i>, ii. 592.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_310_310" id="Footnote_310_310"></a><a href="#FNanchor_310_310"><span class="label">[310]</span></a> Letter of Nehemiah Wharton, dated Aylesbury, August
-the 16th, 1642. Addressed to his much honoured friend, Mr. George
-Willingham, Merchant, at the Golden Anchor, Swithin Lane.&mdash;<i>State
-Papers, Chas. I., Dom.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_311_311" id="Footnote_311_311"></a><a href="#FNanchor_311_311"><span class="label">[311]</span></a> In a letter, dated September 7, Wharton says of
-Northampton, for situation, circuit, stateliness of buildings, it
-exceeds Coventry, but the walls are miserably ruined though the country
-abounds in mines of stone. He also complains of certain soldiers of
-his regiment who discovered their base ends by declaring they would
-surrender their arms unless they received five shillings a man, which
-they said was promised them monthly by the committee. He alludes
-further to dissensions between foot and horse soldiers. In another
-letter he mentions a soldier's winter suit made for him, "edged with
-gold and silver lace," which he hoped he should never stain but in the
-blood of a cavalier.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_312_312" id="Footnote_312_312"></a><a href="#FNanchor_312_312"><span class="label">[312]</span></a> Letter of William Harrison, Berwick, dated 7th Sept.,
-1642, to his good friend Mr. Thomas Davison, at London.&mdash;<i>State Papers,
-Chas. I., Dom.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_313_313" id="Footnote_313_313"></a><a href="#FNanchor_313_313"><span class="label">[313]</span></a> <i>Whitelocke's Memorials</i>, 65.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_314_314" id="Footnote_314_314"></a><a href="#FNanchor_314_314"><span class="label">[314]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, v. 35. <i>Baxter's Life and Times</i>, part i.
-43.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_315_315" id="Footnote_315_315"></a><a href="#FNanchor_315_315"><span class="label">[315]</span></a> <i>Parl. Hist.</i>, ii. 1495-1504.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_316_316" id="Footnote_316_316"></a><a href="#FNanchor_316_316"><span class="label">[316]</span></a> <i>Whitelocke</i>, 65. <i>Sanford's Illustrations</i>, 535.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_317_317" id="Footnote_317_317"></a><a href="#FNanchor_317_317"><span class="label">[317]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, v. 81.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_318_318" id="Footnote_318_318"></a><a href="#FNanchor_318_318"><span class="label">[318]</span></a> November 26th.&mdash;<i>Rushworth</i>, v. 69-71.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_319_319" id="Footnote_319_319"></a><a href="#FNanchor_319_319"><span class="label">[319]</span></a> <i>Parl. Hist.</i>, iii. 59.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_320_320" id="Footnote_320_320"></a><a href="#FNanchor_320_320"><span class="label">[320]</span></a> The speech is printed in the <i>Harleian Miscellany</i>, v.
-224.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_321_321" id="Footnote_321_321"></a><a href="#FNanchor_321_321"><span class="label">[321]</span></a> <i>Calamy's Continuation</i>, ii. 737.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_322_322" id="Footnote_322_322"></a><a href="#FNanchor_322_322"><span class="label">[322]</span></a> Edmund Calamy, the popular clergyman of the
-Commonwealth, was grandfather to the historian of that name.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_323_323" id="Footnote_323_323"></a><a href="#FNanchor_323_323"><span class="label">[323]</span></a> <i>The Loyal Satirist.&mdash;Somers' Tracts</i>, vii. 68.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_324_324" id="Footnote_324_324"></a><a href="#FNanchor_324_324"><span class="label">[324]</span></a> August 3, 1642.&mdash;<i>Rushworth</i>, v. 388.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_325_325" id="Footnote_325_325"></a><a href="#FNanchor_325_325"><span class="label">[325]</span></a> <i>Parl. Hist.</i>, ii. 1465.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_326_326" id="Footnote_326_326"></a><a href="#FNanchor_326_326"><span class="label">[326]</span></a> On the 20th of January Maynard "spoke very earnestly
-that we should not abolish the jurisdiction of bishops until we had
-replaced another government in the Church: which he thought would
-not be very soon agreed upon, some being for a presbytery, some for
-an independent government, and others for he knew not what."&mdash;<i>Harl.
-MSS.</i>, clxiv. p. 1078, A. B. <i>Sanford's Illustrations</i>, 550.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_327_327" id="Footnote_327_327"></a><a href="#FNanchor_327_327"><span class="label">[327]</span></a> See <i>Commons' Journal</i> and <i>Lords' Journal</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_328_328" id="Footnote_328_328"></a><a href="#FNanchor_328_328"><span class="label">[328]</span></a> <i>Baillie's Letters and Journals</i>, ii. 58.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_329_329" id="Footnote_329_329"></a><a href="#FNanchor_329_329"><span class="label">[329]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, v. 399-406. The papers were presented in
-February, 1642-3. The petition bears date 4th of January.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_330_330" id="Footnote_330_330"></a><a href="#FNanchor_330_330"><span class="label">[330]</span></a> <i>Memorials</i>, 67. The safe conduct bears date 28th of
-January, 1642-3.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_331_331" id="Footnote_331_331"></a><a href="#FNanchor_331_331"><span class="label">[331]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, v. 166-169.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_332_332" id="Footnote_332_332"></a><a href="#FNanchor_332_332"><span class="label">[332]</span></a> <i>Hist.</i>, 962.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_333_333" id="Footnote_333_333"></a><a href="#FNanchor_333_333"><span class="label">[333]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, v. 459.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_334_334" id="Footnote_334_334"></a><a href="#FNanchor_334_334"><span class="label">[334]</span></a> <i>Baillie's Letters</i>, ii. 66, 67.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_335_335" id="Footnote_335_335"></a><a href="#FNanchor_335_335"><span class="label">[335]</span></a> <i>Letters and Journals</i>, i. 287.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_336_336" id="Footnote_336_336"></a><a href="#FNanchor_336_336"><span class="label">[336]</span></a> <i>Nalson</i>, ii. 766. Thomas Fuller advocated the calling
-of a synod.&mdash;<i>Life, by Russell</i>, 124.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_337_337" id="Footnote_337_337"></a><a href="#FNanchor_337_337"><span class="label">[337]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, v. 337. <i>Husband</i>, 208.
-</p>
-<p>
-"There must be some laymen in the synod, to overlook the clergy, lest
-they spoil the civil work; just as when the good woman puts a cat into
-the milk house to kill a mouse, she sends her maid to look after the
-cat, lest the cat should eat up the cream."&mdash;<i>Selden's Table Talk</i>,
-169.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_338_338" id="Footnote_338_338"></a><a href="#FNanchor_338_338"><span class="label">[338]</span></a> Hacket, Bishop of Lichfield; Morley, Bishop of
-Winchester; Nicholson, Bishop of Gloucester; Prideaux, Bishop of
-Worcester; Reynolds, Bishop of Norwich.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_339_339" id="Footnote_339_339"></a><a href="#FNanchor_339_339"><span class="label">[339]</span></a> <i>Calamy's Continuation</i>, i. 28.&mdash;Bancroft, on the
-authority of Winthrop, says that the colonial Churches of America were
-invited to send deputies to the Westminster Assembly. But Hooker, of
-Hartford, "'liked not the business,' and deemed it his duty rather to
-stay in quiet and obscurity with his people in Connecticut, than to
-turn propagandist and plead for Independency in England."&mdash;<i>United
-States</i>, i. 417. Did Philip Nye seek to strengthen the Independents in
-the Assembly by inviting brethren from America?</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_340_340" id="Footnote_340_340"></a><a href="#FNanchor_340_340"><span class="label">[340]</span></a> "It was almost implied in the meaning of the word. An
-'&#338;cumenical Synod,' that is an 'Imperial gathering,' from the whole
-οἰκουμένη, or empire (for this was the technical meaning of
-the word, even in the Greek of the New Testament) could be convened
-only by the emperor."&mdash;<i>Stanley's Lectures on the Eastern Church</i>, 80.
-The first council of Arles, inferior only to a General Council, was
-called by the Emperor Constantine.&mdash;<i>Euseb. Hist.</i>, <i>lib.</i> x. <i>c.</i> v.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_341_341" id="Footnote_341_341"></a><a href="#FNanchor_341_341"><span class="label">[341]</span></a> The Divines were allowed by the Parliamentary ordinance
-four shillings a day.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_342_342" id="Footnote_342_342"></a><a href="#FNanchor_342_342"><span class="label">[342]</span></a> Perhaps some one better versed in the controversy
-touching powers of Convocation than I am might shew that, after all,
-the power of decision, and the liberty of discussion in the two Houses,
-do not far exceed what was allowed to the Westminster Assembly. It is
-admitted on all hands that Convocation cannot meet without a royal
-writ, nor make canons without licence, nor publish them without
-confirmation by the Great Seal, and some contend that Convocation may
-not even discuss any matters <i>without royal licence</i>.&mdash;See <i>Lathbury's
-History of Convocation</i>, 112.
-</p>
-<p>
-While I am revising this book for the press, I find the following in
-to-day's <i>Times</i>, January 11th, 1866: "Convocation is nothing more
-whatever than a general commission of enquiry into the affairs of the
-Church empowered to report its opinions to the Crown." Change "Crown"
-into "Parliament," and this passage describes the Westminster Assembly,
-so far as its power was concerned.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_343_343" id="Footnote_343_343"></a><a href="#FNanchor_343_343"><span class="label">[343]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, v. 339. It does not appear clearly whether
-the sermon was delivered in the abbey or the chapel. Rushworth, after
-mentioning the sermon and the presence of the two Houses, says of the
-Divines, "After which they assembled in the said chapel:" as if the
-"Houses" had heard the sermon in some other part of the abbey.
-</p>
-<p>
-I do not find any notice of Twiss's sermon in the list of his works.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_344_344" id="Footnote_344_344"></a><a href="#FNanchor_344_344"><span class="label">[344]</span></a> The Upper House of Convocation met in Henry the
-Seventh's Chapel both in 1572 and in 1640.&mdash;<i>Gibson's Synodus
-Anglicanus.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_345_345" id="Footnote_345_345"></a><a href="#FNanchor_345_345"><span class="label">[345]</span></a> Washington Irving.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_346_346" id="Footnote_346_346"></a><a href="#FNanchor_346_346"><span class="label">[346]</span></a> <i>Fuller's Church History</i>, iii. 448.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_347_347" id="Footnote_347_347"></a><a href="#FNanchor_347_347"><span class="label">[347]</span></a> <i>Neal</i>, iii. 60.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_348_348" id="Footnote_348_348"></a><a href="#FNanchor_348_348"><span class="label">[348]</span></a> <i>Journal of the Assembly.</i> <i>Lightfoot's Works</i>, xiii. 3.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_349_349" id="Footnote_349_349"></a><a href="#FNanchor_349_349"><span class="label">[349]</span></a> This was Mr. John White, of Dorchester, great
-grandfather of John and Charles Wesley.&mdash;See <i>Kirk's Mother of the
-Wesleys</i>, 18.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_350_350" id="Footnote_350_350"></a><a href="#FNanchor_350_350"><span class="label">[350]</span></a> <i>Lightfoot</i>, xiii. 7-9. <i>Hetherington's History of the
-Westminster Assembly</i>, p. 114.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_351_351" id="Footnote_351_351"></a><a href="#FNanchor_351_351"><span class="label">[351]</span></a> This will be inserted in the Appendix.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_352_352" id="Footnote_352_352"></a><a href="#FNanchor_352_352"><span class="label">[352]</span></a> <i>True and faithful Narrative of the Death of Master
-Hampden</i>, quoted in <i>Nugent's Life of Hampden</i>, 363.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_353_353" id="Footnote_353_353"></a><a href="#FNanchor_353_353"><span class="label">[353]</span></a> Scarborough church was stormed in 1644 by the Parliament
-soldiers, and afterwards fortified by them. It is remarkable to find
-church towers so constructed, as to shew they were intended for warlike
-purposes. Melsonby and Middleham, in Yorkshire, and Harlestone, in
-Northamptonshire, are examples.&mdash;<i>Poole's Ecclesiastical Architecture</i>,
-358.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_354_354" id="Footnote_354_354"></a><a href="#FNanchor_354_354"><span class="label">[354]</span></a> <i>Joseph Lister's Narrative</i>, 23. Bradford was taken on
-the 2nd of July.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_355_355" id="Footnote_355_355"></a><a href="#FNanchor_355_355"><span class="label">[355]</span></a> <i>Hist.</i>, 416.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_356_356" id="Footnote_356_356"></a><a href="#FNanchor_356_356"><span class="label">[356]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, v. 287.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_357_357" id="Footnote_357_357"></a><a href="#FNanchor_357_357"><span class="label">[357]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, v. 290. <i>Calamy's Account</i>, ii. 675.
-<i>Palmer's Non. Con. Mem.</i> ii. 467.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_358_358" id="Footnote_358_358"></a><a href="#FNanchor_358_358"><span class="label">[358]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, v. 344.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_359_359" id="Footnote_359_359"></a><a href="#FNanchor_359_359"><span class="label">[359]</span></a> <i>Sanford's Illustrations</i>, 575.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_360_360" id="Footnote_360_360"></a><a href="#FNanchor_360_360"><span class="label">[360]</span></a> <i>David's Annals of Nonconformity in Essex</i>, 535.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_361_361" id="Footnote_361_361"></a><a href="#FNanchor_361_361"><span class="label">[361]</span></a> <i>Vol.</i> ii. 103, &amp;c.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_362_362" id="Footnote_362_362"></a><a href="#FNanchor_362_362"><span class="label">[362]</span></a> Instructions given are inserted in <i>Parl. Hist.</i>, iii.
-151.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_363_363" id="Footnote_363_363"></a><a href="#FNanchor_363_363"><span class="label">[363]</span></a> <i>Baillie</i>, ii. 88, 97.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_364_364" id="Footnote_364_364"></a><a href="#FNanchor_364_364"><span class="label">[364]</span></a> <i>Baxter's Life and Times</i>, p. i. 48.&mdash;He adds that
-this public explication was given by Mr. Coleman, when preaching on
-the Covenant to the House of Lords: "That by prelacy we mean not all
-Episcopacy, but only the form which is here described."
-</p>
-<p>
-On the 12th of September, the Solemn League and Covenant was proposed
-to the Parliament, who, on the 21st, ordered it to be printed.
-</p>
-<p>
-On the 20th, the Lords declared that none shall have command till they
-have taken the Covenant.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_365_365" id="Footnote_365_365"></a><a href="#FNanchor_365_365"><span class="label">[365]</span></a> <i>II. Chron.</i> xv. 12, 14, 15.&mdash;The 15th verse is printed
-with two other texts on the title page of the Solemn League and
-Covenant, published Sept. 22nd, 1643.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_366_366" id="Footnote_366_366"></a><a href="#FNanchor_366_366"><span class="label">[366]</span></a> <i>Cunninghame's History of the Church of Scotland</i>, i.
-315, ii. 81.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_367_367" id="Footnote_367_367"></a><a href="#FNanchor_367_367"><span class="label">[367]</span></a> The Solemn League and Covenant will be inserted in the
-Appendix.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_368_368" id="Footnote_368_368"></a><a href="#FNanchor_368_368"><span class="label">[368]</span></a> <i>Nye's Exhortation</i> was published, and a portion of it,
-extolling the Covenant, may be seen in <i>Hanbury's Memorials</i>, ii. 215.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_369_369" id="Footnote_369_369"></a><a href="#FNanchor_369_369"><span class="label">[369]</span></a> Gouge was a Puritan divine who died in 1653, after being
-minister of Blackfriars nearly forty-six years.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_370_370" id="Footnote_370_370"></a><a href="#FNanchor_370_370"><span class="label">[370]</span></a> In the State Paper Office is the following letter
-written by Falkland in the spring of the year.
-</p>
-<p>
-"Sir,&mdash;If my health were not so ill as yours, with all my business to
-boot, I should not hope to be excused for being so slow in giving you
-thanks for two so great favours. I heartily wish we were in a condition
-of being able to make use of any good inclinations to us beyond sea,
-and perhaps they are the kinder, because they find it safe to be
-so, whilst we are as we are, that is, unable to take them at their
-words, and make use of their kindness. Of Mr. Wightman's commitment I
-never heard before I read your letter: the petition for him is in Mr.
-Secretary's hands, but I will assist it to my power; though I conceive
-it indiscreetly done of the Company to send so obnoxious a person, and
-yet more indiscreetly done of him to be sent, who could not but know
-that he was such. My desire of peace, and my opinion of the way to it,
-agree wholly with yours, for which I congratulate with myself, and wish
-the second followed (but both sides must then contribute) that the
-first might be obtained, and I might then have occasion to congratulate
-with the kingdom too. His Majesty hath commanded me to let you know
-that he is very sensible of your present condition, and that he is
-sorry for nothing more than that his friends (especially so honest and
-deserving a man) should be in danger for being so, and be not able to
-protect them, but that if retiring of yourself hither out of their
-power would stand with your occasions, he assures you, you shall be
-very welcome, but what to advise you, if you stay, I find he knows not,
-and I am sure I know as little. I wish, whether you stay or come, it
-might be in my power to serve you. I assure you, Sir, if there were
-any occasion of doing it by my readiness to catch at, and my diligence
-in pursuing it, you should find what I must now desire you to believe,
-that I am, Sir, your very really humble Servant,</p>
-
-<p class="smcap r1">Falkland.</p>
-
-<p>"18th April."</p>
-
-<p>(Addressed) "For the Right Honourable Sir Thomas Rowe, Knight, one of
-His Majesty's most honourable Privy Council."&mdash;<i>Dom. Car.</i> i., April
-18, 1643.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_371_371" id="Footnote_371_371"></a><a href="#FNanchor_371_371"><span class="label">[371]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, v. 486.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_372_372" id="Footnote_372_372"></a><a href="#FNanchor_372_372"><span class="label">[372]</span></a> <i>Perfect Diurnal</i>, 2nd of Sept., 1643.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_373_373" id="Footnote_373_373"></a><a href="#FNanchor_373_373"><span class="label">[373]</span></a> <i>Baillie's Letters</i>, ii. 99, 113-115.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_374_374" id="Footnote_374_374"></a><a href="#FNanchor_374_374"><span class="label">[374]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, v. 358.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_375_375" id="Footnote_375_375"></a><a href="#FNanchor_375_375"><span class="label">[375]</span></a> "Horses have stood ready in several stables, and almost
-eaten out their heads, for those that were to go with the news to
-Oxford."&mdash;<i>Parliament Scout.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_376_376" id="Footnote_376_376"></a><a href="#FNanchor_376_376"><span class="label">[376]</span></a> The Diurnals which supply these statements are not
-trustworthy.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_377_377" id="Footnote_377_377"></a><a href="#FNanchor_377_377"><span class="label">[377]</span></a> Amongst the <i>State Papers</i> is the following programme,
-or, as it is entituled, "The proceeding" of Mr. Pym's funeral:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p class="center p-left">Two Conductors.<br />
-Servants in Cloaks.<br />
-Friends in Cloaks.<br />
-Esquires.<br />
-Knights.<br />
-Baronets.<br />
-Divines.<br />
-The Preacher.<br />
-<i>The Pennon borne by</i> Mr. Faulconer.<br />
-Rouge Dragon &nbsp; &nbsp; &nbsp; &nbsp; <i>Helm and crest</i>.<br />
-Lancaster &nbsp; &nbsp; &nbsp; &nbsp; &nbsp; &nbsp; &nbsp; &nbsp; <i>Coat of arms</i>.<br />
-<img src="images/fn377.jpg" alt="footnote 377"
-style="height:6em; padding:0 0em 0 0em;" /><br />
-Mr. Alex. Pym, <i>chief mourner</i>.<br />
-Mr. Simons and Mr. Nicholls.<br />
-Mr. Askew.<br />
-Mrs. Symons and Mrs. Katherine Pym, and other Ladies and Gentlemen.<br />
-Then the Lords.<br />
-Then the Speaker of the House of Commons.</p>
-
-<p>An endorsement shews that the three officers of arms allowed by the
-committee for this funeral were appointed £20 apiece, making a sum of
-£60. The following names also appear on the back of the document: Mr.
-Solicitor, Sir Arthur Haslerigge, Sir John Clotworthy, Mr. Knightley,
-Sir Gilbert Gerard, Sir Harry Vane, Mr. Stroud. Probably all these were
-present.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_378_378" id="Footnote_378_378"></a><a href="#FNanchor_378_378"><span class="label">[378]</span></a> Pym defended himself against imputations on his
-religious character, by saying that he had ever been a faithful son to
-the Protestant religion, without the least relation in his belief to
-the gross errors of Anabaptism or Brownism. He had sought a reformation
-of the Church of England&mdash;but not its overthrow. Neither envy nor
-private grudge against the bishops, who were personally inimical
-to him, made him averse to their functions, but only his zeal for
-religion, which he saw injured by the too extended authority of the
-prelates, who should have been upright and humble, "shearing their
-flocks and not flaying them."&mdash;<i>Rushworth</i>, v. 378.
-</p>
-<p>
-Marshall in his <i>Sermon</i> and Baxter in his <i>Saint's Rest</i> would not
-have spoken of Pym as they did, had they not been satisfied that
-charges against his moral character were utterly untrue. Marshall
-includes chastity in the catalogue of his virtues. I can find no proof
-of anything improper in his intimacy with the Countess of Carlisle. For
-extracts from <i>Marshall's Sermons</i>, and the <i>Diurnals</i>, see <i>Forster's
-British Statesmen</i>, vol. ii. 294-302.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_379_379" id="Footnote_379_379"></a><a href="#FNanchor_379_379"><span class="label">[379]</span></a> Baillie says: "The plottings are incessant."&mdash;<i>Letters
-and Journals</i>, ii. 132.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_380_380" id="Footnote_380_380"></a><a href="#FNanchor_380_380"><span class="label">[380]</span></a> This is stated in a curious book, called <i>Magnalia Dei
-Anglicana; or, England's Parliamentary Chronicle</i>, by John Vicars,
-part iii., entitled <i>God's Ark Overtopping the World's Waves</i>, 135. A
-full account of these plots is given from the writer's own point of
-view. Vicars was a violent Presbyterian, and his book is full of party
-prejudice and curious information. Baillie notices these plots pretty
-fully, ii. 137.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_381_381" id="Footnote_381_381"></a><a href="#FNanchor_381_381"><span class="label">[381]</span></a> Mr. Nye and Mr. Goodwin entered into conference with
-Ogle only that they might entrap him. In the Journal of the House
-of Commons, January 26th, 1643-4, it is recorded "that Mr. Goodwin,
-Mr. Nye, with the privity of my Lord General and some members of the
-House, had conference with Ogle&mdash;Resolved, 'that it doth appear upon
-the whole matter, that the King and his council at Oxford do endeavour
-and embrace all ways to raise and ferment divisions betwixt us and our
-brethren of Scotland, and amongst ourselves under the fair pretences
-of easing tender consciences; that during these fair pretences their
-immediate design was the ruin of the kingdom by the destroying and
-burning the magazines thereof; that thanks be returned to Mr. Nye and
-Mr. Goodwin from both Houses.'" We learn from Baillie, ii. 137, that
-<i>John</i> Goodwin is the person here intended.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_382_382" id="Footnote_382_382"></a><a href="#FNanchor_382_382"><span class="label">[382]</span></a> <i>State Papers</i>, April 13, 1651. Bundle 646. Ogle is here
-styled "Colonel."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_383_383" id="Footnote_383_383"></a><a href="#FNanchor_383_383"><span class="label">[383]</span></a> <i>Vicars' Chronicle</i>, iii.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_384_384" id="Footnote_384_384"></a><a href="#FNanchor_384_384"><span class="label">[384]</span></a> <i>Vicars' Chronicle</i>, iii. 128, <i>Baillie</i>, ii. 134, and
-<i>Perfect Diurnal</i>. In the <i>Perfect Diurnal</i> of Thursday, June 19th,
-1645, there is an account of another City feast. After dinner, and
-grace said by Mr. Marshall, both Houses of Parliament, the Assembly of
-Divines, the Aldermen of the City, and all the rest being assembled in
-the hall, they sung the 46th Psalm, and after that they departed.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_385_385" id="Footnote_385_385"></a><a href="#FNanchor_385_385"><span class="label">[385]</span></a> Mr. Bruen, of Tarvin, in the Deanery of Chester, an
-eminent Puritan (born 1560, died 1625) "the ph&#339;nix of his age,"
-distinguished himself as an iconoclast. Finding in his own chapel
-superstitious images, and idolatrous pictures in the painted windows,
-and they so thick and dark that there was, as he himself says, "scarce
-the breadth of a groat of white glass amongst them," took orders to
-pull them down, indeed by the Queen's injunctions utterly to extinguish
-and destroy all pictures, paintings, and other monuments of idolatry
-and superstition, so that there might remain no memory of the same
-in the walls, glass windows, or elsewhere within their churches and
-houses. The Bible and ecclesiastical history are appealed to as further
-authorities. <i>Theodosius abscondit simulacra gentium, omnes enim cultus
-idolorum cultus ejus abscondit; omnes eorum ceremonias obliteravit.
-Ambrosii Orat. in Mort. Theo.</i>&mdash;See <i>Hinde's Life of Bruen</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_386_386" id="Footnote_386_386"></a><a href="#FNanchor_386_386"><span class="label">[386]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, v. 358.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_387_387" id="Footnote_387_387"></a><a href="#FNanchor_387_387"><span class="label">[387]</span></a> <i>Oct 3.</i> <i>P. Diurnal.</i> "The Commons, for the better
-taking away of superstitious ceremonies in churches, as in wearing the
-surplice and the like; which they had noticed (notwithstanding all
-former orders) was still used in sundry places&mdash;especially at the Abbey
-of Westminster&mdash;agreed in a further order, for the taking away of all
-copes and surplices, belonging to the said Abbey of Westminster, and to
-forbid the wearing of them in that or any other church or cathedral in
-England."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_388_388" id="Footnote_388_388"></a><a href="#FNanchor_388_388"><span class="label">[388]</span></a> Laud was at work upon the restoration of St. Paul's
-in 1640, "the whole body was finished with Portland stone excellent
-against all smoke and weather, and the tower scaffolded up to the top
-with purpose to take it all down and to rebuild it more fair." After
-his apprehension "the scaffolds were taken away and sold, with some of
-the lead which covered this famous structure."&mdash;<i>Chamberlayne's Anglica
-Notitia</i>, part ii. 155.
-</p>
-<p>
-In the State Paper Office there is a document by Montague, Bishop of
-Chichester, containing an exhortation to the clergy of his diocese,
-giving thirteen reasons for their contributing to the fund for
-repairing the Cathedral of St. Paul. He dwells upon the dignity of St.
-Paul's as, in a sort, the mother church of the kingdom, and stimulates
-the persons addressed to liberality by a consideration of what was done
-by their predecessors.&mdash;<i>Calendar</i>, 1633-4, 384.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_389_389" id="Footnote_389_389"></a><a href="#FNanchor_389_389"><span class="label">[389]</span></a> <i>1643, May 27.</i>&mdash;Resolved, an ordinance for borrowing
-the plate in all cathedrals superstitiously used upon their altars.
-</p>
-<p>
-<i>1644, April 24.</i>&mdash;Ordered, the mitre and crosier staff found in St.
-Paul's Church to be forthwith sold, and the brass and iron in Henry the
-Seventh's Chapel.&mdash;<i>Parry's Councils and Parliaments.</i>
-</p>
-<p>
-Whatever was now done in St. Paul's, worse things had been done
-there and elsewhere at the time of the Reformation.&mdash;See <i>Strype's
-Cranmer</i>, i. 251. Besides spoiling, embezzling, and taking away
-ornaments, he says, "they used also commonly to bring horses and mules
-into and through churches, and shooting off hand guns." It should be
-recollected, that the Puritans of the seventeenth century were familiar
-with such memories, and that reverence for sacred places had long been
-on the decline.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_390_390" id="Footnote_390_390"></a><a href="#FNanchor_390_390"><span class="label">[390]</span></a> Corporation Records in the Guildhall.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_391_391" id="Footnote_391_391"></a><a href="#FNanchor_391_391"><span class="label">[391]</span></a> <i>Hard Measure</i>, prefixed to <i>Hall's Works</i>, p. xviii.
-The proceedings at Norwich were of an infamous description, yet more
-shameful acts had been perpetrated by the Roman Catholic fathers of
-these very citizens. In 1272, we are told "<i>Quam plures de familia,
-aliquos subdiacanos, aliquos clericos, aliquos laicos in claustro
-et infra septa monasterii interfecerunt; aliquos extraxerunt et in
-civitate morti tradiderunt, aliquos incarceraverunt. Post quæ ingressi,
-omnia sacra vasa, libros, aurum, et argentum, vestes et omnia alia quæ
-non fuerunt igne consumpta depradati fuerunt: monachos omnes, præter
-duos vel tres, a monasterio fugantes.</i>"&mdash;<i>Anglia Sacra</i>, i. 399.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_392_392" id="Footnote_392_392"></a><a href="#FNanchor_392_392"><span class="label">[392]</span></a> The following appears in the records of the Norwich
-Corporation: "Ordered that the churchwardens shall demolish the stump
-cross at St. Saviour's, and take the stones thereof for the use of the
-city."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_393_393" id="Footnote_393_393"></a><a href="#FNanchor_393_393"><span class="label">[393]</span></a> <i>Calamy's Abridgment of Baxter</i>, 24.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_394_394" id="Footnote_394_394"></a><a href="#FNanchor_394_394"><span class="label">[394]</span></a> <i>Memoirs of Colonel Hutchinson</i>, p. 80.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_395_395" id="Footnote_395_395"></a><a href="#FNanchor_395_395"><span class="label">[395]</span></a> This was in spite of orders "to do no injury to the
-church." Before these wars the cathedral suffered through neglect, as
-appears from a draft letter written by Archbishop Laud to the dean and
-chapter, in the name of the King, complaining that the dotations and
-allowances were very mean, and that there was "little left to keep so
-goodly a fabric in sufficient reparation."&mdash;<i>State Papers, Domestic</i>.
-(undated) vol. cclxxxi. 57.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_396_396" id="Footnote_396_396"></a><a href="#FNanchor_396_396"><span class="label">[396]</span></a> Mr. Britton asserts that numbers were removed when the
-cathedral underwent repairs in 1786. Two tons of brass were taken to
-the brazier's shop.&mdash;<i>Winkle's Cathedrals</i>, iii. 43.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_397_397" id="Footnote_397_397"></a><a href="#FNanchor_397_397"><span class="label">[397]</span></a> <i>Poole's History of Ecclesiastical Architecture</i>, p. 260.
-</p>
-<p>
-All the mutilation of statues must not be put down to the Puritan
-account, nor the destruction of the mosaic pavement in the choir. "One
-half of its eastern border was entirely destroyed when the altar-piece
-was put up at the commencement of the last century." The rest but
-narrowly escaped.&mdash;<i>Neale's History and Antiquities of Westminster
-Abbey</i>, p. 20.
-</p>
-<p>
-Oliver Cromwell has been charged with despoiling the tomb of Henry V.,
-but we read in <i>Stowe's Annals</i>: "A royal image of silver and gilt was
-laid upon his tomb, which Queen Catherine his wife caused to be made
-for him; but about the latter end of King Henry VIII., the head of the
-king's image being of massy silver, was broken off and conveyed clean
-away, with the plates of silver and gilt that covered his body." p. 363.
-</p>
-<p>
-It is a common story amongst cathedral vergers, that Cromwell turned
-churches into stables. Like stories are told in the East, with
-judgments superadded. "It was related to us by our Tartar, that about
-fifty years ago, Tamr Pasha turned the church into a stable, <i>and next
-morning all his horses were found dead</i>."&mdash;<i>Badger's Nestorians</i>, i.
-68.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_398_398" id="Footnote_398_398"></a><a href="#FNanchor_398_398"><span class="label">[398]</span></a> It appears from the following entry that when the wars
-were over, the cathedral was desecrated by being made a prison. "That a
-letter be written to the Mayor of Salisbury, to let him know that the
-Council are informed that the Dutch prisoners who were lately sent to
-the town, to be kept there, have done much spoil upon the pillars of
-the cloisters, and to the windows of the library there, being committed
-to custody in that place, and also that by reason that due care hath
-not been had over them, some of them have escaped, &amp;c." <i>October 10,
-1653.</i>&mdash;<i>State Papers, Order Book of Council.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_399_399" id="Footnote_399_399"></a><a href="#FNanchor_399_399"><span class="label">[399]</span></a> Again we may remark that like excesses had been
-committed in Roman Catholic times. In the annals of Rochester, 1264, we
-find: "<i>Portæ, siquidem, ejus circumquque exustæ sunt, chorus ejus in
-luctum, et organa ejus in vocem flentium sunt concitata. Quid pluras,
-loca sacra, utpote oratoria, claustra, capitulum infirmaria, et oracula
-quæque divina, stabula equorum sunt effecta; et animalium immunditiis
-spurcitiisque cadaverum ubique sunt repleta.</i>"&mdash;<i>Anglia Sacra</i>, i. 351.
-</p>
-<p>
-After the Reformation Ridley was prevented from giving Grindal a
-prebend in St. Paul's by the King's Council, who had bestowed it on
-the King, for the furniture of his stable.&mdash;<i>Blunt's History of the
-Reformation</i>, 244.
-</p>
-<p>
-In 1561, according to Strype, the south aisle of the cathedral was used
-for a horse fair.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_400_400" id="Footnote_400_400"></a><a href="#FNanchor_400_400"><span class="label">[400]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, v. 476.
-</p>
-<p>
-Instructions were given for the taking of the Covenant throughout the
-kingdom, "the manner of the taking it to be thus:&mdash;The minister to read
-the whole Covenant distinctly and audibly in the pulpit, and during the
-time of the reading thereof the whole congregation to be uncovered; and
-at the end of his reading thereof, all to take it standing, lifting up
-their right hands bare, and then afterwards to subscribe it severally
-by writing their names (or their marks, to which their names are to be
-added) in a parchment roll or a book, whereinto the Covenant is to be
-inserted, purposely provided for that end, and kept as a record in the
-parish."&mdash;<i>Husband's Collection</i>, 421.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_401_401" id="Footnote_401_401"></a><a href="#FNanchor_401_401"><span class="label">[401]</span></a> <i>Husband's Coll.</i>, 416.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_402_402" id="Footnote_402_402"></a><a href="#FNanchor_402_402"><span class="label">[402]</span></a> <i>Neal</i>, iii. 81.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_403_403" id="Footnote_403_403"></a><a href="#FNanchor_403_403"><span class="label">[403]</span></a> <i>Husband's Coll.</i>, 404.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_404_404" id="Footnote_404_404"></a><a href="#FNanchor_404_404"><span class="label">[404]</span></a> In the State Paper Office are additional instructions,
-(dated March 6th, 1643-4,) to the Earl of Rutland, Sir W. Armyn, Bart.,
-Sir H. Vane, and others, to declare to our brethren of Scotland that
-the Parliament have settled a course for taking the late Solemn League
-and Covenant throughout this kingdom and dominion of Wales, "we do
-hereby give you full power and authority by yourselves, or such as
-you shall appoint, to cause the said League and Covenant to be taken
-throughout the several places and counties where you shall come."
-</p>
-<p>
-Vane, on the scaffold, said, respecting the Covenant: "The holy
-ends therein contained I fully assent to, and have been as desirous
-to observe; but the rigid way of prosecuting it and the oppressing
-uniformity that hath been endeavoured by it, I never approved."
-</p>
-<p>
-Wood states, (<i>Ath. Ox.</i>, ii. 84), that Strode made a motion to the
-effect, "that all those that refused the Covenant, (being certain
-ill-wishers to the laws and liberties of this kingdom,) might,
-therefore, have no benefit of those laws and liberties." He adds, "that
-motion being somewhat too desperate, was waived for the present, and
-took no effect."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_405_405" id="Footnote_405_405"></a><a href="#FNanchor_405_405"><span class="label">[405]</span></a> See <i>Sermon on Solemn League and Covenant, by
-Saltmarsh</i>.&mdash;<i>Tracts in Brit. Mus.</i>, vol. 253.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_406_406" id="Footnote_406_406"></a><a href="#FNanchor_406_406"><span class="label">[406]</span></a> These also are in the British Museum; I think in the
-same volume as the former.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_407_407" id="Footnote_407_407"></a><a href="#FNanchor_407_407"><span class="label">[407]</span></a> Bishop Hall went on ordaining Episcopal clergymen in
-spite of the Covenant. He says: "The synodals both in Norfolk and
-Suffolk, and all the spiritual profits of the diocese were also kept
-back, only ordinations and institutions continued awhile. But after the
-Covenant was appointed to be taken, and was generally swallowed of both
-clergy and laity, my power of ordination was with some strange violence
-restrained; for when I was going on in my wonted course, which no law
-or ordinance had inhibited, certain forward volunteers in the city,
-banding together, stir up the mayor, and aldermen, and sheriffs, to
-call me to an account for an open violation of their Covenant."&mdash;<i>Hard
-Measure, Hall's Works</i>, p. xvii.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_408_408" id="Footnote_408_408"></a><a href="#FNanchor_408_408"><span class="label">[408]</span></a> <i>Memoirs of the Life of Col. Hutchinson</i>, 143-191.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_409_409" id="Footnote_409_409"></a><a href="#FNanchor_409_409"><span class="label">[409]</span></a> <i>Mant's History of the Church of Ireland</i>, i. 580.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_410_410" id="Footnote_410_410"></a><a href="#FNanchor_410_410"><span class="label">[410]</span></a> Eusebius observes, in his Epistle respecting the Nicene
-Creed, that he and his friends did not refuse to adopt the word ὁμοούσιος,
-"<i>peace being the end in view</i>, as well as the not
-falling away from sound doctrine." He excused the damnatory clause,
-simply on the ground that it aggrieved none by prohibiting the use of
-unscriptural phraseology.&mdash;<i>Socrates' Ecc. Hist.</i>, b. i. c. 8.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_411_411" id="Footnote_411_411"></a><a href="#FNanchor_411_411"><span class="label">[411]</span></a> "Epistle" by John Canne, quoted in <i>Hanbury's
-Memorials</i>, iii. 380-386.
-</p>
-<p>
-The following passage occurs in a paper by the Dissenting Brethren
-in 1646, also quoted in <i>Hanbury</i>, iii. 62:&mdash;"This Covenant was
-professedly so attempered in the first framing of it, as that we of
-different judgments might take it, both parties being present at
-the framing of it in Scotland." "It is as free for us to give our
-interpretation of the latitude or nearness of uniformity intended, as
-for our brethren."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_412_412" id="Footnote_412_412"></a><a href="#FNanchor_412_412"><span class="label">[412]</span></a> The following passages illustrate the state of public
-feeling in reference to the Covenant:&mdash;
-</p>
-<p>
-"Men cry shame on the Covenant. Those that took it down cast it up
-again, and those that refuse it have given a world of arguments that
-it is unreasonable, which arguments our Assembly, like dull, ignorant
-rascals, never answered. I know, my Lords, many of our friends never
-took this oath, but they refused it out of mere conscience." ... "I
-hold the Covenanters extremely reasonable. Though some malignants take
-it, yet many refuse it; and, as some who love us do hate the Covenant,
-so some who hate us do take it. Yet our friends who hate it do love to
-force others to it, for their hatred to malignants is more than to the
-Covenant; and, as the one takes it to save his estate, so do others
-give it to make him lose his estate. They both love the estate, and
-both hate the Covenant."&mdash;<i>A learned Speech spoken in the House of
-Peers by the Earl of Pembroke and Montgomery upon the 28th July last,
-taken out of Michael Ouldsworth's own Copy. State Papers, 1647.</i>
-</p>
-<p>
-"All this while I did not take the National Covenant, not because I
-refused to do, for I would have made no bones to take, swear, and
-sign it, and observe it too, for I had then a principle, having not
-yet studied a better one, that I wronged not my conscience in doing
-any thing I was commanded to do by those whom I served. But the truth
-is, it was never offered to me, every one thinking it was impossible
-I could get any charge, unless I had taken the Covenant either in
-Scotland or England."&mdash;<i>Sir James Turner's Memoirs of his own Life and
-Times, published by the Bannatyne Club</i>, 16.
-</p>
-<p>
-Turner was a Royalist.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_413_413" id="Footnote_413_413"></a><a href="#FNanchor_413_413"><span class="label">[413]</span></a> <i>Journals.</i>, Sept. 21st.&mdash;It was resolved by the
-Commons: That the Assembly of godly Divines, who, by Ordinance, July
-1st, 1643, met in King Henry the Seventh's Chapel, shall, in respect of
-the coldness of the said chapel, have power to adjourn themselves to
-the Jerusalem Chamber, in the College of Westminster.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_414_414" id="Footnote_414_414"></a><a href="#FNanchor_414_414"><span class="label">[414]</span></a> For some of this information I am indebted to the
-kindness of the Dean of Westminster.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_415_415" id="Footnote_415_415"></a><a href="#FNanchor_415_415"><span class="label">[415]</span></a> <i>Baillie's Letters</i>, ii. 108, 109.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_416_416" id="Footnote_416_416"></a><a href="#FNanchor_416_416"><span class="label">[416]</span></a> This is stated on the authority of <i>Brook's Lives</i>,
-iii. 15. His account of Twiss's illness is confused, so is <i>Clark's</i>
-(<i>Lives</i>, p. 17,) to which Brook refers.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_417_417" id="Footnote_417_417"></a><a href="#FNanchor_417_417"><span class="label">[417]</span></a> As Erastianism is a word vaguely used, I subjoin the
-principal theses in the <i>Book on Excommunication</i>, by Erastus, and his
-own account of the occasion of his writing it.
-</p>
-<p>
-"Excommunication is nothing else but a public and solemn exclusion from
-the sacraments, especially the Lord's Supper, after an investigation by
-the elders."&mdash;Thesis viii.
-</p>
-<p>
-"In the Old Testament none were debarred from the sacraments on account
-of immorality of conduct."&mdash;Thesis xxiii.
-</p>
-<p>
-"Christ did not hinder Judas, who betrayed Him, from eating the paschal
-lamb."&mdash;Thesis xxviii.
-</p>
-<p>
-"It is not the will of Christ that His kingdom in these lands should be
-circumscribed within narrower limits than He appointed for it anciently
-amongst the Jews."&mdash;Thesis xxxi.
-</p>
-<p>
-"As in the account given of the celebration of the sacraments we see
-no mention is made of excommunication, so neither in the history
-of their institution can anything warranting that practice be
-discovered."&mdash;Thesis xxxvii.
-</p>
-<p>
-"'Tell it to the church' means nothing else than tell it to the
-magistrate of thy own people."&mdash;Thesis lii.
-</p>
-<p>
-"I see no reason why the Christian magistrate at the present day should
-not possess the same power which God commanded the magistrate to
-exercise in the Jewish commonwealth."&mdash;Thesis lxxii.
-</p>
-<p>
-"If then the Christian magistrate possesses not only authority
-to settle religion according to the directions given in the Holy
-Scriptures, and to arrange the ministries thereof, but also, in like
-manner, to punish crimes, in vain do some among us now meditate the
-setting up of a new kind of tribunal, which would bring down the
-magistrate himself to the rank of a subject of other men."&mdash;Thesis
-lxxiv.
-</p>
-<p>
-According to Erastus, an ignorant man, a heretic, or an apostate should
-be excluded from the sacraments. But sins were to be punished by the
-civil magistrate.
-</p>
-<p>
-The theses were handed about in MS., and not published till 1589&mdash;six
-years after the death of the author&mdash;with only the fictitious name
-"Pesclavii," 1589. The work was reprinted at Amsterdam, in 1649. Two
-old English translations exist, published in 1659 and 1682. There is a
-modern one by Rev. R. Lee, D.D., Edinburgh, 1844.
-</p>
-<p>
-The occasion of writing the theses, Erastus says, was a proposition
-that a select number of elders should sit in the name of the whole
-church, and judge who were fit to be admitted to the Lord's Supper,
-which he thought would introduce dangerous divisions.
-</p>
-<p>
-Theodore Beza wrote a reply, published at Geneva, 1590. Selden's views
-of excommunication in his <i>Table Talk</i> (p. 56) are similar to those of
-Erastus, though not so full.
-</p>
-<p>
-Hobbes wrote his <i>Leviathan</i> in 1651, in which he says (pt. iii., ch.
-42, p. 287, London edition), "The books of the New Testament, though
-most perfect <i>rules</i> of Christian doctrine, could not be made <i>laws</i> by
-any other authority than that of kings or sovereign assemblies." His
-doctrine with regard to Christianity is, that socially considered it is
-"good and safe advice," but not obligatory law till the government of a
-country shall make it so. This part of the philosopher's theory runs on
-the same line with Erastianism, only it is pushed further.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_418_418" id="Footnote_418_418"></a><a href="#FNanchor_418_418"><span class="label">[418]</span></a> Altogether there were ten or eleven Independents in the
-Assembly. Baillie mentions Goodwin, Nye, Burroughs, Bridge, Carter,
-Caryl, Philips, and Sterry.&mdash;<i>Letters, &amp;c.</i>, ii. 110.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_419_419" id="Footnote_419_419"></a><a href="#FNanchor_419_419"><span class="label">[419]</span></a> His works have been recently republished. His
-<i>Commentary on the Epistle to the Ephesians</i> illustrates what is said
-here.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_420_420" id="Footnote_420_420"></a><a href="#FNanchor_420_420"><span class="label">[420]</span></a>
-See <i>The Wounded Conscience Cured, &amp;c.,</i> by William Bridge, 1642.</p></div>
-
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_421_421" id="Footnote_421_421"></a><a href="#FNanchor_421_421"><span class="label">[421]</span></a> Baillie remarks: "Liberty of conscience, and
-toleration of all or any religion, is so prodigious an impiety, that
-this religious Parliament cannot but abhor the very naming of it.
-Whatever may be the opinions of John Goodwin, Mr. Williams, and some
-of that stamp, yet Mr. Burroughs, in his late <i>Irenicum</i>, upon many
-unanswerable arguments, explodes that abomination."&mdash;See <i>Tracts on
-Liberty of Conscience</i>, 270.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_422_422" id="Footnote_422_422"></a><a href="#FNanchor_422_422"><span class="label">[422]</span></a> Neal says he died of consumption (<i>Hist.</i>, iii. 377),
-but the following appears in the <i>Perfect Occurrences</i>, 13th November,
-1646:&mdash;"This day Mr. Burrows, the minister, a godly, reverend man,
-died. It seems he had a bruise by a fall from a horse some fortnight
-since; he fell into a fever, and of that fever died, and is by many
-godly people much lamented."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_423_423" id="Footnote_423_423"></a><a href="#FNanchor_423_423"><span class="label">[423]</span></a> P. 190.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_424_424" id="Footnote_424_424"></a><a href="#FNanchor_424_424"><span class="label">[424]</span></a> I do not attempt to vindicate this great man against
-the charge of inconsistency. One side of a subject was everything to
-him while he gazed at it. He had no faculty for harmonizing apparently
-opposite truths, and was apt, as ardent men are, to fall into errors,
-from which his clearly expressed opinion on certain points ought to
-have saved him. Mr. Hallam (<i>Literature of Europe</i>, iii. 112), in whose
-severe judgment of Taylor's inconsistency I cannot coincide, thinks
-that one inconsistent chapter, (the seventeenth) was interpolated after
-the rest of the treatise was complete. This is possible, but it is also
-possible that Taylor when first writing his book might suddenly swing
-from one side to the other, and then come round again. It has been
-said that Taylor forgot his liberality when he became a bishop. His
-biographer, Bishop Heber, attempts to meet this charge.&mdash;<i>Works</i>, i.
-30. It may be added, that the <i>Dissuasive from Popery</i>, published in
-1664, proceeds on the same principles as the <i>Liberty of Prophesying</i>.
-See <i>Dissuasive</i>, part ii. book i.&mdash;<i>Works</i>, x. 383.
-</p>
-<p>
-How Taylor's work was regarded by a Royalist and an Episcopalian may be
-seen in <i>Mrs. Sadleir's Letter to Roger Williams</i>. "I have also read
-Taylor's book of the <i>Liberty of Prophesying</i>, though it please not me,
-yet I am sure it does you, or else I know you would not have wrote to
-me to have read it. I say, it and you would make a good fire. But have
-you seen his 'Divine Institution of the Office Ministerial?'" <i>Life of
-Roger Williams</i>, 99. Mrs. Sadleir was daughter of Sir Edward Coke. A
-writer in the <i>Ecclesiastic</i>, April, 1853, p. 179, remarks: "Whatever
-Taylor may have been thought of since, certainly his contemporaries
-amongst the Church party had no very high opinion of him."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_425_425" id="Footnote_425_425"></a><a href="#FNanchor_425_425"><span class="label">[425]</span></a> Sermon preached before the House of Commons, March 31st,
-1647.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_426_426" id="Footnote_426_426"></a><a href="#FNanchor_426_426"><span class="label">[426]</span></a> <i>Ward's Life of Henry More</i>, 171. I have here confined
-myself to those in the Church of England who advocated toleration,
-pointing out the grounds which they adopted as distinguished from
-those occupied by the Independents. Others, who proceeded in the same
-advocacy on the broadest principles of justice, will be hereafter
-noticed, <i>i.e.</i>, John Goodwin, Leonard Busher, and Sir Henry Vane. Of
-the last of these it may be remarked that so early as 1637 he used
-this memorable language, in New England: "Scribes and Pharisees, and
-such as are confirmed in any way of error, all such are not to be
-denied cohabitation, but are to be pitied and reformed; Ishmael shall
-dwell in the presence of his brethren." (<i>Bancroft's United States</i>,
-i. 390.) The most thorough advocate of intellectual liberty in the New
-World was Roger Williams, who, though in many respects an impracticable
-man, and wanting in catholicity of spirit, appears to have been an
-original and intrepid champion for the political independence of
-theological opinions, as well as a noble minded and disinterested
-leader in colonial enterprise. Milton advocates toleration in his
-<i>Areopagitica</i>, a speech to the Parliament of England for the liberty
-of unlicensed printing, 1644. Harrington's <i>Political Aphorisms</i>, in
-which liberty of conscience is justly placed on a political basis, was
-not published until 1659. Episcopius and Crellius were early advocates
-for toleration. See Hallam's Introduction to <i>Literature of Europe</i>,
-iii. 103, 104.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_427_427" id="Footnote_427_427"></a><a href="#FNanchor_427_427"><span class="label">[427]</span></a> <i>Const. Hist.</i>, i. 612.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_428_428" id="Footnote_428_428"></a><a href="#FNanchor_428_428"><span class="label">[428]</span></a> The petition is largely quoted by Waddington in his
-<i>Surrey Congregational History</i>, p. 32, and the pamphlet, entitled
-<i>Queries of Highest Consideration</i>, is quoted in <i>Hanbury</i>, ii. 246.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_429_429" id="Footnote_429_429"></a><a href="#FNanchor_429_429"><span class="label">[429]</span></a> For proofs and illustrations of this we refer to
-our second volume. In the meanwhile we may observe that in <i>An
-Attestation</i>, published by the Cheshire ministers in 1648, allusion
-is made to some of the Independents as "averse in a great measure
-to such a toleration as might truly be termed intolerable and
-abominable"&mdash;meaning by that universal toleration.&mdash;<i>Nonconformity in
-Cheshire.</i> Introduction, xxvi.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_430_430" id="Footnote_430_430"></a><a href="#FNanchor_430_430"><span class="label">[430]</span></a> <i>Life of Goodwin, by Jackson</i>, 93.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_431_431" id="Footnote_431_431"></a><a href="#FNanchor_431_431"><span class="label">[431]</span></a> <i>A Reply of Two of the Brethren to A. S.</i>, 1644. Quoted
-by Jackson, p. 116. Goodwin states "that the part which treats of
-religious liberty was the production of his own pen."&mdash;<i>Jackson</i>, 57.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_432_432" id="Footnote_432_432"></a><a href="#FNanchor_432_432"><span class="label">[432]</span></a> Baillie, writing to Mr. Spang, May 17th, 1644,
-(<i>Letters</i>, ii. 184,) says: "The Independents here, finding they have
-not the magistrate so obsequious as in New England, turn their pens, as
-you will see in M.S.," (which he had before identified as Goodwin's,
-of Coleman Street,) "to take from the magistrate all power of taking
-any coercive order with the vilest heretics. Not only they praise
-your magistrate who for policy gives some secret tolerance to diverse
-religions, wherein, as I conceive, your Divines preach against them
-as great sinners; but avows that by God's command the magistrate is
-discharged to put the least discourtesy on any man&mdash;Jew, Turk, Papist,
-Socinian, or whatever, for his religion." "The five will not say this,
-but M.S. is of as great authority here as any of them." Yet, though
-this sentiment is by Baillie confined to Goodwin, and expressly said
-not to be shared by the five, it has by some been put into the lips of
-Nye.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_433_433" id="Footnote_433_433"></a><a href="#FNanchor_433_433"><span class="label">[433]</span></a> As I have already observed, Harrington also did this.
-One of his political aphorisms on the subject is admirable, "When civil
-liberty, is entire it includes liberty of conscience. When liberty of
-conscience is entire, it includes civil liberty."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_434_434" id="Footnote_434_434"></a><a href="#FNanchor_434_434"><span class="label">[434]</span></a> <i>Letter from Grindal to Bullinger, June 11th, 1568.
-Zurich Letters, First Series.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_435_435" id="Footnote_435_435"></a><a href="#FNanchor_435_435"><span class="label">[435]</span></a> This is extracted from p. 12 of a small volume entitled
-<i>Historical Papers, First Series, Congregational Martyrs</i>, published by
-Elliot Stock. The document bears internal signs of genuineness, but it
-is not said where the original may be found.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_436_436" id="Footnote_436_436"></a><a href="#FNanchor_436_436"><span class="label">[436]</span></a> <i>Ecce Homo</i>, 16.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_437_437" id="Footnote_437_437"></a><a href="#FNanchor_437_437"><span class="label">[437]</span></a> April 21st, 1581.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_438_438" id="Footnote_438_438"></a><a href="#FNanchor_438_438"><span class="label">[438]</span></a> <i>Fuller's Church Hist.</i>, iii. 62.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_439_439" id="Footnote_439_439"></a><a href="#FNanchor_439_439"><span class="label">[439]</span></a> <i>Strype's Annals</i>, vol. iii. part i. 22-30.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_440_440" id="Footnote_440_440"></a><a href="#FNanchor_440_440"><span class="label">[440]</span></a> <i>Fuller's Church Hist.</i>, iii. 65.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_441_441" id="Footnote_441_441"></a><a href="#FNanchor_441_441"><span class="label">[441]</span></a> <i>Lansdowne M.S.</i>, 115, art. 55. Lord Keeper Bacon had
-a chaplain of Puritan tendencies. See <i>Strype's Parker</i>, ii. 69. Lady
-Bacon shewed her learning and Protestant zeal by translating <i>Jewel's
-Apology</i>,&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i>, i. 354.
-</p>
-<p>
-The Rev. Thomas Hill, late of Cheshunt, informs me:&mdash;"It is undeniable
-that there was a congregation of Separatists as early as the days
-of Elizabeth, in the neighbourhood of Theobalds. One or more of the
-ministers suffered persecution and imprisonment, but I do not think
-it improbable that the influence of Cecil, Lord Burleigh, who then
-resided at Theobalds, may have afforded some degree of protection to
-the Nonconformists of the neighbourhood."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_442_442" id="Footnote_442_442"></a><a href="#FNanchor_442_442"><span class="label">[442]</span></a> <i>Hanbury</i>, i. 38. <i>Harl. Miscellany</i>, ii. 21.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_443_443" id="Footnote_443_443"></a><a href="#FNanchor_443_443"><span class="label">[443]</span></a> <i>Strype's Annals</i>, iv. 245. <i>Hanbury</i>, i. 85.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_444_444" id="Footnote_444_444"></a><a href="#FNanchor_444_444"><span class="label">[444]</span></a> Published by Camden Society.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_445_445" id="Footnote_445_445"></a><a href="#FNanchor_445_445"><span class="label">[445]</span></a> This is the name written in the MS., no doubt intended
-for <i>Greenwood</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_446_446" id="Footnote_446_446"></a><a href="#FNanchor_446_446"><span class="label">[446]</span></a> Letter from Thomas Phillips to William Sterrell, April
-7, 1593. <i>State Papers, Dom.</i> The bracketed portions are underlined in
-the original, the writer desiring, in a postscript, that the passages
-so marked, should be "disguised with cipher."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_447_447" id="Footnote_447_447"></a><a href="#FNanchor_447_447"><span class="label">[447]</span></a> <i>Strype's Annals</i>, iv. 186. <i>Hanbury's Mem.</i>, i. 90. The
-Archbishop referred to was Whitgift. Rippon died in 1592.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_448_448" id="Footnote_448_448"></a><a href="#FNanchor_448_448"><span class="label">[448]</span></a> "He was a person most excellently well read in
-theological authors, but withal was a most zealous Puritan, or, as his
-son Henry used to say, the first Independent in England."&mdash;<i>Wood's Ath.
-Oxon.</i>, i. 464.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_449_449" id="Footnote_449_449"></a><a href="#FNanchor_449_449"><span class="label">[449]</span></a> Jacob's book, printed at Middleburgh, 1599, was
-entitled: <i>A Defence of the Churches and Ministry of England. Written
-in two Treatises against the Reasons and Objections of Mr. Francis
-Johnson and others of the Separation called Brownists.</i> Johnson replied
-in an <i>Answer to Master H. Jacob, his Defence, &amp;c.</i> 1600.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_450_450" id="Footnote_450_450"></a><a href="#FNanchor_450_450"><span class="label">[450]</span></a> <i>Hanbury's Mem.</i>, i. 226.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_451_451" id="Footnote_451_451"></a><a href="#FNanchor_451_451"><span class="label">[451]</span></a> See <i>Hanbury's Mem.</i>, i. 227.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_452_452" id="Footnote_452_452"></a><a href="#FNanchor_452_452"><span class="label">[452]</span></a> His name is spelt in different ways.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_453_453" id="Footnote_453_453"></a><a href="#FNanchor_453_453"><span class="label">[453]</span></a> The church of which Lathrop was minister is said to have
-been formed in Southwark; if so, the fact of its now assembling in
-Blackfriars shews how, in times of persecution, the places of meeting
-were changed according to circumstances. As they had no chapels, and
-were proscribed by law, they met where they could.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_454_454" id="Footnote_454_454"></a><a href="#FNanchor_454_454"><span class="label">[454]</span></a> His name was ordinarily spelt "<i>ten</i>," although it
-stands "<i>tin</i>" in the MS. He was Judge of the Prerogative Court, and
-father of Henry Mart<i>e</i>n.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_455_455" id="Footnote_455_455"></a><a href="#FNanchor_455_455"><span class="label">[455]</span></a> Dr. Thomas Rives was the King's Advocate.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_456_456" id="Footnote_456_456"></a><a href="#FNanchor_456_456"><span class="label">[456]</span></a> In an interesting volume, just published by Dr.
-Waddington, entitled <i>Surrey Congregational History</i>, the following
-entries taken from the records of the High Commission in relation
-to Lathrop and Eaton, at a later date, are inserted, p. 20:&mdash;"June
-12, 1634. John Lathrop, of Lambeth Marsh. Bond to be certified,
-and to be attached, if he appear not on the next Court-day.&mdash;June
-19, 1634. Bond ordered to be certified, and he to be attached for
-non-appearance.&mdash;October 9. Samuel Eaton and John Lathrop to be
-attached for non-appearance, and bonds to be certified.&mdash;February 19,
-1634-5. Samuel Eaton and John Lathrop, for contempt, in not appearing
-to answer articles touching their keeping conventicles. Their bonds
-ordered to be certified, and they attached and committed."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_457_457" id="Footnote_457_457"></a><a href="#FNanchor_457_457"><span class="label">[457]</span></a> <i>The Brownist's Synagogue</i>, 1641.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_458_458" id="Footnote_458_458"></a><a href="#FNanchor_458_458"><span class="label">[458]</span></a> Henry Jacob, probably, is the first who used the term
-independent in relation to a Christian Church. "Each congregation," he
-says, "is an entire and <i>Independent</i> body politic, and endowed with
-power immediately under and from Christ, as every proper Church is and
-ought to be."&mdash;<i>Declaration and Plainer Opening of Certain Points,
-&amp;c.</i>, 1611, p. 13.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_459_459" id="Footnote_459_459"></a><a href="#FNanchor_459_459"><span class="label">[459]</span></a> I am indebted for this and other extracts from the
-Yarmouth Corporation Records to a MS. history of the Yarmouth Church,
-compiled by my friend, the late Mr. Davey, of that town.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_460_460" id="Footnote_460_460"></a><a href="#FNanchor_460_460"><span class="label">[460]</span></a> The words printed in italics are underscored in the copy
-from which these extracts are transcribed.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_461_461" id="Footnote_461_461"></a><a href="#FNanchor_461_461"><span class="label">[461]</span></a> This Confession is described, and extracts from it are
-given in <i>Hanbury</i>, i. 293. It is attributed to Henry Jacob.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_462_462" id="Footnote_462_462"></a><a href="#FNanchor_462_462"><span class="label">[462]</span></a> <i>Hanbury's Memorials</i>, ii. 279-281.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_463_463" id="Footnote_463_463"></a><a href="#FNanchor_463_463"><span class="label">[463]</span></a> <i>Ibid.</i>, ii. 409.
-</p>
-<p>
-In a pamphlet by Katherine Chidley, it is asserted the Separatists
-supported their own poor.&mdash;<i>Hanbury's Memorials</i>, ii. 112.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_464_464" id="Footnote_464_464"></a><a href="#FNanchor_464_464"><span class="label">[464]</span></a> The whole account of Congregationalism in Yarmouth is
-drawn up from the records of the Corporation, and of the Independent
-Church there.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_465_465" id="Footnote_465_465"></a><a href="#FNanchor_465_465"><span class="label">[465]</span></a> See <i>Oxoniana</i>, iv. 188; and copy of the woodcut in
-<i>Knight's Old England</i>.
-</p>
-<p>
-The Parliamentarians made a great mistake in not planting a garrison
-at Oxford, as they might have easily done when the war broke out.&mdash;See
-<i>Whitelocke's Memorials</i>, 63. The shrewd lawyer was not destitute
-of military insight, and justly blames Lord Say, who was opposed
-to the Parliament's taking possession of the city, because of the
-"improbability, in his opinion, that the King would settle there."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_466_466" id="Footnote_466_466"></a><a href="#FNanchor_466_466"><span class="label">[466]</span></a> <i>Macaulay's Hist.</i>, iii. 18.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_467_467" id="Footnote_467_467"></a><a href="#FNanchor_467_467"><span class="label">[467]</span></a> <i>Life of Chillingworth, by P. Des Maizeaux,</i> 277.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_468_468" id="Footnote_468_468"></a><a href="#FNanchor_468_468"><span class="label">[468]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, v. 354.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_469_469" id="Footnote_469_469"></a><a href="#FNanchor_469_469"><span class="label">[469]</span></a> A year afterwards, we find the following statement in
-<i>Perfect Occurrences</i> (June 17, 1644), where after describing the
-cruel spoliation of Abingdon and Worcester by fire by the Cavaliers,
-the news-writer thus continues:&mdash;"I could here insert the platform of
-all their projects, had I room to bring it in, set forth in a picture,
-intended to be sent to Seville, in Spain, and to be hanged in the
-great cathedral there, this day brought before the Parliament, where
-the Queen directs the King to present his sceptre to the Pope, and all
-the Cavaliers with him, and popish leaders with her, rejoicing to see
-it, he having a joyant, [this means perhaps, <i>joyan</i>, <i>a jewel</i>] to
-resemble his Majesty and she the Virgin Mary, and this motto upon the
-cases: '<i>Para Sancta Aña de Sevilla</i>.' This picture is to be hung up
-for public view, and is enough to convince the strongest malignant in
-England."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_470_470" id="Footnote_470_470"></a><a href="#FNanchor_470_470"><span class="label">[470]</span></a> <i>Parl. Hist.</i>, iii. 236.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_471_471" id="Footnote_471_471"></a><a href="#FNanchor_471_471"><span class="label">[471]</span></a> <i>Meditations on the Times</i>, xvii.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_472_472" id="Footnote_472_472"></a><a href="#FNanchor_472_472"><span class="label">[472]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, v. 346.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_473_473" id="Footnote_473_473"></a><a href="#FNanchor_473_473"><span class="label">[473]</span></a> <i>Ussher's Life, by Elrington</i>, 238.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_474_474" id="Footnote_474_474"></a><a href="#FNanchor_474_474"><span class="label">[474]</span></a> <i>Life</i>, by Heber prefixed to his <i>Works</i>, i. 21, and
-another, by <i>Willmott</i>, 112.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_475_475" id="Footnote_475_475"></a><a href="#FNanchor_475_475"><span class="label">[475]</span></a> <i>Memorials of Fuller, by Russell</i>, 142, 148, 151, 153.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_476_476" id="Footnote_476_476"></a><a href="#FNanchor_476_476"><span class="label">[476]</span></a> He however maintained that Episcopacy was Apostolic.
-<i>Life</i>, 299, 300.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_477_477" id="Footnote_477_477"></a><a href="#FNanchor_477_477"><span class="label">[477]</span></a> There are several papers relating to Chillingworth in
-the Lambeth MSS. Nos. 943, 857-935.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_478_478" id="Footnote_478_478"></a><a href="#FNanchor_478_478"><span class="label">[478]</span></a> Yet Cheynell says, while some thought him uncharitable,
-others were of opinion he had been too indulgent in suffering Mr.
-Chillingworth to be buried like a Christian.&mdash;See <i>Life of William
-Chillingworth, by P. Des Maizeaux</i>, for the particulars we have given.
-</p>
-<p>
-It has been stated that Cheynell was deranged, and certainly his own
-account of his conduct towards Chillingworth would indicate that at
-least he was touched. But then, after all this, we find him sent down
-as a visitor to Oxford, and made President of St. John's. Hoadly
-says he was as pious, honest, and charitable as his bigotry would
-permit. Eachard refers to him as a man of considerable learning and
-great abilities.&mdash;<i>Neal</i>, iii. 470. We have introduced this type of
-character, not as common, but as one without which an account of the
-religious phases of the time would be incomplete.
-</p>
-<p>
-In 1658, Hartlib, writing to Pell, observes: "Cheynell is not shot as
-was reported, but certain that he is fallen distracted, and is sent to
-Bedlam."&mdash;<i>Letters in Vaughan's Protectorate of Cromwell</i>, ii. 462.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_479_479" id="Footnote_479_479"></a><a href="#FNanchor_479_479"><span class="label">[479]</span></a> <i>Life of the Rev. John Barwick, D.D.</i>, written in
-Latin by his brother Dr. Peter Barwick, Physician in Ordinary to King
-Charles II., and translated into English by the editor of the Latin
-life. Though a fierce royalist production, and, in some respects,
-untrustworthy, yet it relates several curious facts not elsewhere
-found.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_480_480" id="Footnote_480_480"></a><a href="#FNanchor_480_480"><span class="label">[480]</span></a> 1st April, 1643.&mdash;<i>Husband's Collection</i>, 13.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_481_481" id="Footnote_481_481"></a><a href="#FNanchor_481_481"><span class="label">[481]</span></a> May 16th, and June 10th, 1643. <i>Husband's Collection</i>.
-Laud gives a detailed account of this business in the History of
-his <i>Troubles and Trials</i>.&mdash;<i>Works</i>, iv. 16. The Vicar General was
-Sir Nathaniel Brent, who, when he saw the Presbyterians begin to be
-dominant, sided with them. <i>Wood's Ath. Oxon.</i>, ii. 161.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_482_482" id="Footnote_482_482"></a><a href="#FNanchor_482_482"><span class="label">[482]</span></a> A case of this kind is mentioned in <i>Blomefield's
-History of Norfolk</i>, ii. 424, in a note relating to John Peck, A.M., of
-Hingham.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_483_483" id="Footnote_483_483"></a><a href="#FNanchor_483_483"><span class="label">[483]</span></a> <i>Commons' Journals</i>, 27th of July, 1643. <i>Husband's
-Collection</i>, 311. Persons accused were to have timely notice, in order
-that they might make their defence.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_484_484" id="Footnote_484_484"></a><a href="#FNanchor_484_484"><span class="label">[484]</span></a> The following illustrations are from the volumes in the
-Record Office.&mdash;<i>Dom. Inter.</i>, 1646.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_485_485" id="Footnote_485_485"></a><a href="#FNanchor_485_485"><span class="label">[485]</span></a> In the State Paper Office I find a case submitted to
-Lord Chief Justice Heath, in March, 1644, relative to sueing for
-tithes, in which his lordship gives opinion "that where the bishop, or
-other inferior judge, will not, dare not, or cannot do justice, the
-superior Court may and ought to do it." <i>State Papers, Dom.</i>, 1643,
-March 22nd.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_486_486" id="Footnote_486_486"></a><a href="#FNanchor_486_486"><span class="label">[486]</span></a> See <i>Scobell</i> (1644), 45; (1647), 85; (1648), 110.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_487_487" id="Footnote_487_487"></a><a href="#FNanchor_487_487"><span class="label">[487]</span></a> The Parliamentary Journals testify to various kinds
-of ecclesiastical affairs which came under the notice of the whole
-House, such as allowances to ministers, the collecting of pew-rents,
-contributions in churches for those who suffered in the wars,
-appointments to livings, &amp;c., &amp;c.&mdash;See Entries, August 26th, Sept. 7th,
-11th, 19th, October 14th, and Dec. 16th, 1644.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_488_488" id="Footnote_488_488"></a><a href="#FNanchor_488_488"><span class="label">[488]</span></a> Parliament conferred powers on Lord Fairfax in February,
-1644, whilst he was in the north, and the next month, commissioners
-there received the following warrant:&mdash;
-</p>
-<p>
-"Whereas we are credibly informed that many ministers in the
-several counties of Nottingham, York, bishopric of Durham,
-Northumberland, Cumberland, and Westmoreland, the town and county of
-Newcastle-upon-Tyne, the city and county of the city of York, and the
-town of Nottingham, are not only of scandalous life and conversation,
-but leaving their charges and cures, have withdrawn themselves
-wilfully from the same, and have joined with such forces as are raised
-against Parliament and Kingdom, and have aided and assisted the said
-forces, and that many that would give evidence against such scandalous
-ministers are not able to travel to London, nor bear the expenses of
-such journeys, you have therefore hereby full power and authority
-to call before you, &amp;c., &amp;c., and to eject such as you shall judge
-unfit for their places, and to sequester their livings and spiritual
-promotions, and to place others in their room, such as shall be
-approved, godly, learned, and orthodox divines, &amp;c., &amp;c. And further,
-you shall have power to dispose a fifth part of all such estates as you
-shall sequester for the benefit of the wives and children of any the
-aforesaid persons, &amp;c., &amp;c."&mdash;<i>State Papers, Dom.</i>, March 6th, 1643-4.
-</p>
-<p>
-With the sword of Fairfax, a real Andrea Ferrara, and other relics
-of the Commonwealth, there is preserved at Farnley Hall, Yorkshire,
-the silver matrix of a seal for the licensing of preachers. It shews
-within a circlet of leaves an open Bible, inscribed "The Word of God,"
-with the words running round the edge, "The Seal for the Approbation
-of Ministers." It is engraved in <i>Scott's Antiquarian Gleanings in the
-North of England</i>.
-</p>
-<p>
-See Resolutions in Journals, August 29th, 1644.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_489_489" id="Footnote_489_489"></a><a href="#FNanchor_489_489"><span class="label">[489]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, vi. 212.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_490_490" id="Footnote_490_490"></a><a href="#FNanchor_490_490"><span class="label">[490]</span></a> <i>Great Fight in the Church at Thaxted</i>, 1647. Quoted in
-<i>Davis's Nonconformity in Essex</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_491_491" id="Footnote_491_491"></a><a href="#FNanchor_491_491"><span class="label">[491]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, iv. 113-123.
-</p>
-<p>
-These articles, charging him with introducing Popish innovations into
-Scotland, are given by Laud, together with his replies, in the <i>History
-of his Troubles</i>. <i>Works</i>, iii. 301. Laud's answers are not those of a
-Papist, but those of a thorough Anglo-Catholic. Another set of charges
-was presented against the bishops generally. <i>Works</i>, iii. 379. How
-the thing was talked about in Scotland appears in the <i>History of the
-Troubles in England and Scotland</i> (Ballatyne Club), 275.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_492_492" id="Footnote_492_492"></a><a href="#FNanchor_492_492"><span class="label">[492]</span></a> Laud, in his Diary, March 24, 1642-3, alludes to plots
-to send him and Wren to New England.&mdash;<i>Works</i>, iv. 19.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_493_493" id="Footnote_493_493"></a><a href="#FNanchor_493_493"><span class="label">[493]</span></a> <i>Neal</i>, iii. 176. Laud says, under date January 22,
-1643-4:&mdash;"This day the Thames was so full of ice that I could not go by
-water. It was frost and snow, and a most bitter day. I went, therefore,
-with the Lieutenant in his coach, and twelve wardens, with halberts,
-went all along the streets." "So from the Tower-gate to Westminster I
-was sufficiently railed on and reviled all the way. God, of his mercy,
-forgive the misguided people! My answer being put in, I was for that
-time dismissed; and the tide serving me, I made a hard shift to return
-by water."&mdash;<i>Works</i>, iv. 45.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_494_494" id="Footnote_494_494"></a><a href="#FNanchor_494_494"><span class="label">[494]</span></a> It has been justly remarked that the Greek orators
-were careful to impress upon their audience that, in bringing a
-charge against any one, they were actuated by the strongest personal
-motives. Æschines, in his oration against Ctesiphon, expresses his
-intense personal spite against Demosthenes. Christianity has taught
-us a different lesson, and happily the authority of that lesson is
-acknowledged, and its spirit generally exemplified by the English bar,
-and in the British Senate.
-</p>
-<p>
-With regard to Prynne, let me add that, though his prejudices might
-warp his judgment, he shewed himself throughout his whole life to be
-an honest man. Of his learning, there cannot be two opinions. His
-great work on Parliamentary writs, in four volumes, is pronounced by
-a competent judge to be so admirable, that "it is impossible to speak
-of it in terms of too high commendation."&mdash;<i>Parry's Parliaments and
-Councils</i>, Preface, 21. See also <i>Spilsbury's Lincoln's Inn</i>, 283.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_495_495" id="Footnote_495_495"></a><a href="#FNanchor_495_495"><span class="label">[495]</span></a> See <i>Rushworth</i>, v. 763-780. A fuller account of the
-trial may be found in <i>Neal</i>, iii. 172-242.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_496_496" id="Footnote_496_496"></a><a href="#FNanchor_496_496"><span class="label">[496]</span></a> This is taken, not from Rushworth's report (v. 777), but
-from Laud's own copy of his speech. They differ somewhat.&mdash;<i>Works</i>, iv.
-60.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_497_497" id="Footnote_497_497"></a><a href="#FNanchor_497_497"><span class="label">[497]</span></a> Quoted in <i>Neal</i>, iii. 239.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_498_498" id="Footnote_498_498"></a><a href="#FNanchor_498_498"><span class="label">[498]</span></a> Laud said in his defence: "The result must be of the
-same nature and species with the particulars from which it rises.
-But 'tis confessed no one of the particulars are treason, therefore,
-neither is the result that rises from them. And this holds in nature,
-in morality, and in law."&mdash;<i>Works</i>, iv. 380.
-</p>
-<p>
-In reply to Serjeant Wylde's argument, that the misdemeanours together,
-by accumulation made up treason, Laud's advocate wittily observed:
-"I crave your mercy, good Mr. Serjeant, I never understood before
-this time that two hundred couple of black rabbits would make a black
-horse."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_499_499" id="Footnote_499_499"></a><a href="#FNanchor_499_499"><span class="label">[499]</span></a> <i>Walton's Lives</i>, 390.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_500_500" id="Footnote_500_500"></a><a href="#FNanchor_500_500"><span class="label">[500]</span></a> Heylyn says, in his <i>Life of Archbishop Laud</i> (527),
-that Stroud was sent up to the Lords with a message from the House of
-Commons, to let them know that the Londoners would shortly petition
-with 20,000 hands to obtain that ordinance.
-</p>
-<p>
-The arguments of the Commons in support of the attainder, as presented
-to the Lords, are given in the journals of the latter, under date, <i>Die
-Sabbati, 4 die Januarii</i>.
-</p>
-<p>
-Heylyn (528) states, that only seven Lords concurred in the sentence;
-Clarendon (519), that there were not above twelve peers in the House
-at the time. In the Journals the names of nineteen appear at the
-commencement of the minutes of the sitting.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_501_501" id="Footnote_501_501"></a><a href="#FNanchor_501_501"><span class="label">[501]</span></a> <i>Lives of the Chancellors</i>, iii. 204; <i>Const. Hist.</i>, i.
-577; <i>Hist. of Commonwealth</i>, i. 428.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_502_502" id="Footnote_502_502"></a><a href="#FNanchor_502_502"><span class="label">[502]</span></a> <i>Life of Pocock, by Dr. Twells</i>, 84. See also a curious
-tract respecting Laud in <i>Harleian Miscel.</i>, iv. 450.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_503_503" id="Footnote_503_503"></a><a href="#FNanchor_503_503"><span class="label">[503]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, v. 781. "Let us run with patience that race
-that is set before us, looking unto Jesus the author and finisher of
-our faith, who for the joy that was set before him, endured the cross,
-despising the shame, and is set down at the right hand of the throne of
-God."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_504_504" id="Footnote_504_504"></a><a href="#FNanchor_504_504"><span class="label">[504]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, v. 785.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_505_505" id="Footnote_505_505"></a><a href="#FNanchor_505_505"><span class="label">[505]</span></a> A newspaper notices that:&mdash;Whereas he had been the
-archpatron of those who branded honest men with the name of roundheads
-more than hath been usual, his own head when cut off, though sawdust
-had been laid about the block, "did tumble once or twice about like a
-ball."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_506_506" id="Footnote_506_506"></a><a href="#FNanchor_506_506"><span class="label">[506]</span></a> Henry Rogers.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_507_507" id="Footnote_507_507"></a><a href="#FNanchor_507_507"><span class="label">[507]</span></a> See <i>Bruce's Account of Laud's Berkshire Benefactions</i>.
-</p>
-<p>
-Mr. Bruce, who has had ample means of judging of Laud's character,
-observes:&mdash;"A winking at a little finesse designed to accomplish some
-end, supposed to be for the good of the Church, is all that may be
-brought home to him&mdash;his hands were never defiled by the touch of a
-bribe."&mdash;<i>Calendar of State Papers, Dom., 1635. Preface.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_508_508" id="Footnote_508_508"></a><a href="#FNanchor_508_508"><span class="label">[508]</span></a> Overstrained parallels between Laud and Wolsey were
-drawn in the pamphlets of the day.&mdash;See <i>Harl. Miscell.</i>, iv. 462.
-</p>
-<p>
-I may add that Dunstan and Laud were alike <i>insular</i> men, if that
-term may be used to distinguish them from Becket and Wolsey, both of
-whom had large intercourse with the Continent. Dunstan and Laud were
-narrower in their feeling and character than the other two. I have
-before noticed the resemblance between Dunstan and Laud in point of
-influence.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_509_509" id="Footnote_509_509"></a><a href="#FNanchor_509_509"><span class="label">[509]</span></a> <i>Journals of the Lords</i>, January 4th, 1645.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_510_510" id="Footnote_510_510"></a><a href="#FNanchor_510_510"><span class="label">[510]</span></a> <i>An Anatomy of the Service Book, by Dwalphintramis.</i>
-<i>Southey's Common-place Book</i>, iii. 40.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_511_511" id="Footnote_511_511"></a><a href="#FNanchor_511_511"><span class="label">[511]</span></a> See <i>Christ on the Throne</i>. 1640.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_512_512" id="Footnote_512_512"></a><a href="#FNanchor_512_512"><span class="label">[512]</span></a> A letter by George Gillespie, on the Directory, being
-forwarded to Scotland, shews the difficulty there was in getting it
-passed.&mdash;<i>Baillie</i>, ii., <i>App.</i> 505. He says, May 9th, 1645: "I pray
-you be careful that the Act of the General Assembly, approving the
-Directory, be not so altered as to make it a straiter imposition."
-"Sure I am, the Directory had never past the Assembly of Divines, if it
-had not been for the qualifications in the preface. This is only for
-yourself, except ye hear any controversy about it in your meeting."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_513_513" id="Footnote_513_513"></a><a href="#FNanchor_513_513"><span class="label">[513]</span></a> <i>Baillie's Letters</i>, ii. 271.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_514_514" id="Footnote_514_514"></a><a href="#FNanchor_514_514"><span class="label">[514]</span></a> <i>Scobell</i>, 97.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_515_515" id="Footnote_515_515"></a><a href="#FNanchor_515_515"><span class="label">[515]</span></a> The following should be recorded to Whitelocke's credit.
-1646. Oct. 26. "Indictment in Bucks for not reading the Common Prayer
-complained of. Ordered that an ordinance be brought in to take away
-the statute that enjoins it, and to disable malignant ministers from
-preaching. This was much opposed by me and some others, as contrary
-to that principle which the Parliament had avowed of liberty of
-conscience, and like that former way complained of against the bishops
-for silencing of ministers."&mdash;<i>Memorials</i>, 226. The diarist here shews
-that the use of the Prayer Book was not considered by the Royalists to
-be legally abolished.
-</p>
-<p>
-I may here add that Whitelocke was not a party man. He sympathized
-with Presbyterian leaders in wishing to save the monarchy, but he
-co-operated with Independents in advocating religious liberty.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_516_516" id="Footnote_516_516"></a><a href="#FNanchor_516_516"><span class="label">[516]</span></a> <i>Mant's History of the Church of Ireland</i>, i. 587-594.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_517_517" id="Footnote_517_517"></a><a href="#FNanchor_517_517"><span class="label">[517]</span></a> <i>Lathbury's History of Convocation</i>, 497.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_518_518" id="Footnote_518_518"></a><a href="#FNanchor_518_518"><span class="label">[518]</span></a> <i>Clarendon's Hist.</i>, 515.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_519_519" id="Footnote_519_519"></a><a href="#FNanchor_519_519"><span class="label">[519]</span></a> While the Oxford Lords were in London on the embassy,
-there was, according to the Diurnal, entitled <i>Perfect Occurrences</i>,
-December 28, a great auditory to hear the chaplain preach and read
-prayers. After the sermon, it is said, the people were very merry, and
-a young lady and gentleman went dancing by the river side, and fell
-in&mdash;"good for them to cool their courage in frosty weather."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_520_520" id="Footnote_520_520"></a><a href="#FNanchor_520_520"><span class="label">[520]</span></a> <i>Whitelocke</i>, 112. The entire propositions for peace may
-be seen in <i>Parl. Hist.</i>, iii. 299.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_521_521" id="Footnote_521_521"></a><a href="#FNanchor_521_521"><span class="label">[521]</span></a> <i>King's Cabinet opened.</i>&mdash;<i>Neal</i>, iii. 250.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_522_522" id="Footnote_522_522"></a><a href="#FNanchor_522_522"><span class="label">[522]</span></a> <i>Parl. Hist.</i>, iii. 339.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_523_523" id="Footnote_523_523"></a><a href="#FNanchor_523_523"><span class="label">[523]</span></a> <i>Memorials</i>, 127.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_524_524" id="Footnote_524_524"></a><a href="#FNanchor_524_524"><span class="label">[524]</span></a> All the documents during the attempts at a treaty are
-given by Dugdale in his <i>Short View of the late Troubles</i>.
-</p>
-<p>
-A full account is also given by <i>Rushworth</i>, v.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_525_525" id="Footnote_525_525"></a><a href="#FNanchor_525_525"><span class="label">[525]</span></a> <i>Clarendon's Hist.</i>, 521.
-</p>
-<p>
-Secretary Nicholas writes to the King, 5th of February, 1644: "This
-morning we are to observe the fast, according to your Majesty's
-proclamation; but it must be done here in the inn, for we cannot be
-permitted to have the Book of Common Prayer read in the church here,
-and we resolve not to go to any church where the Divine service
-established by law may not be celebrated." "You have done well, but
-they barbarously," Charles writes in the margin. But in the prayer
-appointed by the King the war is described as "unnatural," and the
-Almighty is entreated "to let the truth clearly appear, who those are
-which, under pretence of the public good, do pursue their own private
-ends." It was not likely the Parliament would allow that prayer to be
-used.&mdash;<i>Nicholas' Correspondence, Evelyn</i>, iv. 136.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_526_526" id="Footnote_526_526"></a><a href="#FNanchor_526_526"><span class="label">[526]</span></a> The other chief subjects were the militia and Irish
-affairs.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_527_527" id="Footnote_527_527"></a><a href="#FNanchor_527_527"><span class="label">[527]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, v. 818.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_528_528" id="Footnote_528_528"></a><a href="#FNanchor_528_528"><span class="label">[528]</span></a> <i>Evelyn</i>, iv. 137.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_529_529" id="Footnote_529_529"></a><a href="#FNanchor_529_529"><span class="label">[529]</span></a> In the British Museum there is a petition, presented
-in the year 1647, complaining of many hundreds of towns and villages
-destitute of any preaching ministry, by occasion whereof ignorance,
-drunkenness, profaneness, disaffection, &amp;c., abound.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_530_530" id="Footnote_530_530"></a><a href="#FNanchor_530_530"><span class="label">[530]</span></a> <i>Husband's Col.</i>, 645.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_531_531" id="Footnote_531_531"></a><a href="#FNanchor_531_531"><span class="label">[531]</span></a> See ordinance dated November the 8th, 1645, in
-<i>Rushworth</i>, vi. 212, and <i>Baillie's Letters</i>, ii. 349.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_532_532" id="Footnote_532_532"></a><a href="#FNanchor_532_532"><span class="label">[532]</span></a> <i>Letters and Journals</i>, ii. 145.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_533_533" id="Footnote_533_533"></a><a href="#FNanchor_533_533"><span class="label">[533]</span></a> <i>Letters and Journals</i>, ii. 146.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_534_534" id="Footnote_534_534"></a><a href="#FNanchor_534_534"><span class="label">[534]</span></a> <i>Neal</i>, iii. 309.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_535_535" id="Footnote_535_535"></a><a href="#FNanchor_535_535"><span class="label">[535]</span></a> <i>Lives</i>, 380.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_536_536" id="Footnote_536_536"></a><a href="#FNanchor_536_536"><span class="label">[536]</span></a> <i>Baillie's Letters</i>, ii. 157.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_537_537" id="Footnote_537_537"></a><a href="#FNanchor_537_537"><span class="label">[537]</span></a> The religious feelings of the two armies are thus stated
-by an eyewitness:&mdash;"Consider the height of difference of spirits; in
-their army the cream of all the Papists in England, and in ours, a
-collection out of all the corners of England and Scotland of such as
-had the greatest antipathy to Popery and tyranny."&mdash;<i>Sanford</i>, 597. He
-gives a careful account of the battle.
-</p>
-<p>
-For the state of feeling in general after the victory, see <i>Baillie</i>,
-ii. 201, <i>et seq.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_538_538" id="Footnote_538_538"></a><a href="#FNanchor_538_538"><span class="label">[538]</span></a> I adopt some of the words quoted by Sanford.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_539_539" id="Footnote_539_539"></a><a href="#FNanchor_539_539"><span class="label">[539]</span></a> There was one of the Royalist soldiers at Marston
-Moor wounded in the shoulder by a musket ball, who afterwards became
-Archbishop Dolbon, of York, 1683-1686. The following incident is
-interesting:&mdash;"Mary, daughter of Sir Francis Trappes, married Charles
-Towneley, of Towneley, in Lancashire, Esquire, who was killed at the
-battle of Marston Moor. During the engagement she was with her father
-at Knaresborough, where she heard of her husband's fate, and came upon
-the field the next morning in order to search for his body, while the
-attendants of the camp were stripping and burying the dead. Here she
-was accosted by a general officer, to whom she told her melancholy
-story. He heard her with great tenderness, but earnestly desired her to
-leave a place where, besides the distress of witnessing such a scene,
-she might probably be insulted. She complied, and he called a trooper,
-who took her <i>encroup</i>. On her way to Knaresborough she enquired of the
-man the name of the officer to whose civility she had been indebted,
-and learned that it was Lieutenant-General Cromwell."&mdash;<i>Sanford</i>, 610.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_540_540" id="Footnote_540_540"></a><a href="#FNanchor_540_540"><span class="label">[540]</span></a> See <i>Lightfoot's Journal</i>, September 9, 1644.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_541_541" id="Footnote_541_541"></a><a href="#FNanchor_541_541"><span class="label">[541]</span></a> Here we may mention that it is probable that John
-Bunyan was at that time in the Royalist army, and that while he was
-fighting for the King the incident occurred so often related of his
-post being occupied by a comrade who could handle a musket better than
-he could do, and who, on account of his superior skill and bravery,
-unfortunately received a fatal carbine shot which otherwise might have
-killed our matchless dreamer. Nobody can say what the world lost by
-that poor fellow's death, but everybody knows what the world gained by
-John Bunyan's preservation.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_542_542" id="Footnote_542_542"></a><a href="#FNanchor_542_542"><span class="label">[542]</span></a> For a full account of the battle of Naseby see
-<i>England's Recovery, by Joshua Sprigg</i>, 1647. It is he who reports the
-complaints we have noticed. See p. 6 of his interesting narrative.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_543_543" id="Footnote_543_543"></a><a href="#FNanchor_543_543"><span class="label">[543]</span></a> There is an interesting letter by Cromwell, dated
-July 10, 1645, giving an account of the Naseby fight, reprinted in
-<i>Sanford</i>, p. 625, from pamphlets in Lincoln College, Oxford. As
-the letter is not in <i>Carlyle</i> (2nd edition), I give the following
-extract:&mdash;"Thus you see what the Lord hath wrought for us. Can any
-creature ascribe anything to itself? Now can we give all the glory to
-God, and desire all may do so, for it is all due unto Him. Thus you
-have <i>Long Sutton</i> mercy added to <i>Naseby</i> mercy; and to see this,
-is it not to see the face of God? You have heard of Naseby; it was
-a happy victory. As in this, so in that, God was pleased to use His
-servants; and if men will be malicious, and swell with envy, we know
-who hath said&mdash;'If they will not see, yet they shall see and be ashamed
-for their envy at his people.' I can say this of Naseby, that when I
-saw the enemy draw up, and march in gallant order towards us, and we
-a company of poor ignorant men, to seek how to order our battle, the
-general having commanded me to order all the horse. I could not (riding
-alone about my business) but smile out to God in praises, in assurance
-of victory, because God would, by things that are not, bring to nought
-things that are, of which I had great assurance, and God did it. Oh,
-that men would therefore praise the Lord, and declare the wonders that
-He doth for the children of men!"</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_544_544" id="Footnote_544_544"></a><a href="#FNanchor_544_544"><span class="label">[544]</span></a> Nevertheless, Royalist hopes were unquenched as late as
-the month of September, 1645.
-</p>
-<p>
-"If you consider," it is said in an anonymous letter of that date, in
-the State Paper Office, "the strange extremities we were then in, the
-progress which we have made, and our wonderful success at last in the
-relieving of Hereford and chasing away the Scots, at a time when, in my
-conscience, within one week there had been a general revolt of South
-Wales (which is now likely to be entirely settled), you will think that
-it promises to us and portends to the rebels a strange revolution in
-the whole face of affairs; and if to this you add the miracles done by
-the same time by my Lord Montrose, in Scotland (who hath made himself
-entirety master of that kingdom), you will have reason to join with
-me in the confidence, that we shall have, by God's blessing, as quick
-a progress to happiness as we have had to the greatest extremities. I
-must confess, for my part, that these miracles, besides the worldly joy
-they give me, have made me even a better Christian, by begetting in me
-a stronger faith and reliance upon God Almighty, than before; having
-manifested that it is wholly His work, and that He will bring about His
-intended blessings upon this just cause, by ways the most impossible to
-human understanding, and consequently teach us to cast off all reliance
-upon our own strength."
-</p>
-<p>
-This letter is dated September the 9th, 1645, and is addressed to Lord
-Byron.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_545_545" id="Footnote_545_545"></a><a href="#FNanchor_545_545"><span class="label">[545]</span></a> <i>Life of Dod.</i>&mdash;<i>Brooks' Lives</i>, iii. 4.</p></div>
-
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_546_546" id="Footnote_546_546"></a><a href="#FNanchor_546_546"><span class="label">[546]</span></a> <i>Brook</i>, iii. 80.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_547_547" id="Footnote_547_547"></a><a href="#FNanchor_547_547"><span class="label">[547]</span></a> <i>Wood</i>, ii. 89, says this was <i>Aulkryngton</i>, commonly
-called Okerton, near Banbury, in Oxfordshire; but I cannot find in
-Topographical Dictionaries any mention of such a place.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_548_548" id="Footnote_548_548"></a><a href="#FNanchor_548_548"><span class="label">[548]</span></a> <i>Brook's Lives</i>, iii. 10. See also p. 63.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_549_549" id="Footnote_549_549"></a><a href="#FNanchor_549_549"><span class="label">[549]</span></a> <i>Walker's Sufferings</i>, part ii. 183-185, 193.
-</p>
-<p>
-I have lighted on the following scraps in newspapers of the day:&mdash;
-</p>
-<p>
-Mr. Bullinger, of Lincolnshire (sometime chaplain to a Regent of the
-King), grandchild to the old bishop, being newly returned from France,
-where he hath lately been, is sent up by the Committee of Dover, very
-poor, in a gray suit, and neither cloak to his back nor money in his
-purse; and yet he scruples the taking of the Covenant, and desires time
-to consider of it. His examinations were this day taken.&mdash;<i>Perfect
-Occurrences</i>, 18th of December, 1646.
-</p>
-<p>
-A story is told of a singing man from Peterborough, who went to
-Wisbeach, as clerk, and then read the burial service, when he was
-insulted in the rudest manner, and knocked down, the poor fellow crying
-out, "I am a Covenanter."&mdash;<i>Moderate Intelligence</i>, January, 1647.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_550_550" id="Footnote_550_550"></a><a href="#FNanchor_550_550"><span class="label">[550]</span></a> <i>Letters</i>, ii. 274.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_551_551" id="Footnote_551_551"></a><a href="#FNanchor_551_551"><span class="label">[551]</span></a> <i>Letters</i>, ii. 298, 299.
-</p>
-<p>
-Baillie complains of the growing influence of the Erastians.&mdash;<i>Ibid.</i>,
-311, 318, 320.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_552_552" id="Footnote_552_552"></a><a href="#FNanchor_552_552"><span class="label">[552]</span></a> These rules are given in <i>Rushworth</i>, vi. 210.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_553_553" id="Footnote_553_553"></a><a href="#FNanchor_553_553"><span class="label">[553]</span></a> <i>Baillie's Letters and Journals</i>, ii. 362, <i>et seq.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_554_554" id="Footnote_554_554"></a><a href="#FNanchor_554_554"><span class="label">[554]</span></a> <i>Ibid.</i>, 344.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_555_555" id="Footnote_555_555"></a><a href="#FNanchor_555_555"><span class="label">[555]</span></a> <i>Godwin</i>, ii. 10.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_556_556" id="Footnote_556_556"></a><a href="#FNanchor_556_556"><span class="label">[556]</span></a> <i>Neal</i>, iii. 311.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_557_557" id="Footnote_557_557"></a><a href="#FNanchor_557_557"><span class="label">[557]</span></a> See <i>Letter to Parliament</i>, in <i>Rushworth</i>, vi. 234.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_558_558" id="Footnote_558_558"></a><a href="#FNanchor_558_558"><span class="label">[558]</span></a> <i>Baillie</i>, ii. 367. For the Parliament's notice of what
-the Scots had said, see <i>Declaration</i>, in <i>Rushworth</i>, vi. 257. The
-notice is only in the way of general allusion.</p></div>
-
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_559_559" id="Footnote_559_559"></a><a href="#FNanchor_559_559"><span class="label">[559]</span></a> <i>Froude's History of England</i>, vii. 340.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_560_560" id="Footnote_560_560"></a><a href="#FNanchor_560_560"><span class="label">[560]</span></a> <i>Neal</i>, iii. 330.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_561_561" id="Footnote_561_561"></a><a href="#FNanchor_561_561"><span class="label">[561]</span></a> <i>Neal</i>, iii. 381. <i>Hetherington's History of the
-Westminster Assembly</i>, 300.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_562_562" id="Footnote_562_562"></a><a href="#FNanchor_562_562"><span class="label">[562]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, vii. 1035. At a conference between the
-Lords and Commons, on March 22nd, 1648, the latter declared their
-consent to the doctrinal parts, with the desire that the same be "made
-public, that this kingdom and all the reformed Churches of Christendom
-may see the Parliament of England differ not in doctrine." It is
-added, "particulars in discipline are recommitted." Of the confession
-of faith the title was altered to "<i>articles of faith</i>, agreed upon
-by both Houses of Parliament, as most suitable to the former title of
-the Thirty-nine Articles." The Covenant was legally enforced, but the
-Westminster Confession never was. Only part of it, under the title of
-<i>Articles</i>, ever became law at all.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_563_563" id="Footnote_563_563"></a><a href="#FNanchor_563_563"><span class="label">[563]</span></a> <i>Baillie</i>, iii., <i>Appendix</i>, 537, <i>et seq.</i> A full
-account is there given of Rouse's revised version, 1646, in connexion
-with the present Scotch version, published in 1650, p. 549.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_564_564" id="Footnote_564_564"></a><a href="#FNanchor_564_564"><span class="label">[564]</span></a> <i>Prose Works</i>, vol. ii., 40.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_565_565" id="Footnote_565_565"></a><a href="#FNanchor_565_565"><span class="label">[565]</span></a> <i>Life and Times</i>, part i. 73.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_566_566" id="Footnote_566_566"></a><a href="#FNanchor_566_566"><span class="label">[566]</span></a> Hallam speaks of the Assembly as "perhaps equal
-in learning, good sense, and other merits, to any Lower House of
-Convocation that ever made a figure in England."&mdash;<i>Const. Hist.</i>, i.
-609.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_567_567" id="Footnote_567_567"></a><a href="#FNanchor_567_567"><span class="label">[567]</span></a> <i>Sprigg's England's Recovery</i>, 326.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_568_568" id="Footnote_568_568"></a><a href="#FNanchor_568_568"><span class="label">[568]</span></a> <i>Opera</i>, iii. 466.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_569_569" id="Footnote_569_569"></a><a href="#FNanchor_569_569"><span class="label">[569]</span></a> <i>Life and Times</i>, part i. 53-56.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_570_570" id="Footnote_570_570"></a><a href="#FNanchor_570_570"><span class="label">[570]</span></a> <i>Owen's Works, edited by Russell</i>, xv. 96.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_571_571" id="Footnote_571_571"></a><a href="#FNanchor_571_571"><span class="label">[571]</span></a> I find the following reference to Peters in the State
-Papers:&mdash;
-</p>
-<p>
-"Dec. 10.&mdash;The fifteen articles and covenant of Hugh Peters, minister
-of the English congregation in Rotterdam, stated in an indorsement,
-which is in the handwriting of Sir William Boswell, to have been
-proposed to that congregation before their admission to the communion.
-The following are examples of these articles: '1. Be contented with
-meet trial for our fitness to be members. 2. Cleave in heart to the
-truth and pure worship of God, and oppose all ways of innovation and
-corruption. 3. Suffer the Word to be the guider of all controversies.
-10. Meditate the furthering of the Gospel at home and abroad, as
-well in our persons as with our purses. 11. Take nearly to heart our
-brethren's condition, and conform ourselves to these troublesome times
-in our diet and apparel, that they be without excess in necessity. 14.
-Put one another in mind of this covenant, and as occasion is offered,
-to take an account of what is done in the premises.'"&mdash;<i>Calendar of
-State Papers, Domestic</i>, 1633-4, p. 318.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_572_572" id="Footnote_572_572"></a><a href="#FNanchor_572_572"><span class="label">[572]</span></a> The imputations on Peters's moral character were no
-doubt malicious falsehoods.&mdash;<i>Brook's Lives</i>, iii. 350.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_573_573" id="Footnote_573_573"></a><a href="#FNanchor_573_573"><span class="label">[573]</span></a> Abridged from <i>Life of Colonel Hutchinson</i>, 151.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_574_574" id="Footnote_574_574"></a><a href="#FNanchor_574_574"><span class="label">[574]</span></a> <i>Ath. Oxon.</i>, ii. 287.
-</p>
-<p>
-The Westminster Assembly condemned certain positions in Saltmarsh's
-writings, as well as in the writings of Dr. Crisp, and Mr. John Eaton,
-for their Antinomian tendencies.&mdash;See <i>Neal</i>, iii. 68. Neal does not
-say what the passages were. Edwards, in his <i>Gangræna</i>, part i., 25,
-26, gives a list of their tenets, but we place little dependence on
-his accusations. It is very likely, however, that Saltmarsh might lay
-himself open to the charge of Antinomianism. We have not seen his book
-on <i>Free-grace</i>, in which perhaps the dangerous tenets he was charged
-with are to be looked for.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_575_575" id="Footnote_575_575"></a><a href="#FNanchor_575_575"><span class="label">[575]</span></a> As an example of the kind of preaching by these officers
-we may mention a tract entitled "<i>Orders given out&mdash;the word Stand
-fast</i>, as it was lately delivered in a farewell sermon, by Major Samuel
-Kem, to the officers and soldiers of his regiment in Bristol, November
-8th, 1646." The discourse is full of military allusions.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_576_576" id="Footnote_576_576"></a><a href="#FNanchor_576_576"><span class="label">[576]</span></a> <i>Journal of the Swedish Embassy</i>, 1653-4.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_577_577" id="Footnote_577_577"></a><a href="#FNanchor_577_577"><span class="label">[577]</span></a> <i>Neal</i>, iii. 330.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_578_578" id="Footnote_578_578"></a><a href="#FNanchor_578_578"><span class="label">[578]</span></a> This is the account in <i>Ashburnham's Narrative</i>, ii. 72.
-Rushworth says the King came to Brentford and Harrow, and then went to
-St. Albans, vi. 267. Ashburnham's is, no doubt, the correct story.
-</p>
-<p>
-Hacket tells the following story in the <i>Life of Archbishop Williams</i>:
-"His Majesty, unwilling to stay to the last in a city begirt, by the
-persuasion of Mons. Mountrevile, went privily out of Oxford, and
-put himself into the hands of his native countrymen and subjects at
-Newcastle. 'What,' says Mr. Archbishop, when he heard of it, 'be
-advised by a stranger, and trust the Scots; then all is lost.' It was
-a journey not imparted to above ten persons to know it, begun upon
-sudden resolution against that rule of Tacitus: '<i>Bona consilia morâ
-valescere</i>.'"&mdash;<i>Memorial of Williams</i>, ii. 222.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_579_579" id="Footnote_579_579"></a><a href="#FNanchor_579_579"><span class="label">[579]</span></a> There is an important memorandum for Lord Balcarras
-"anent the King's coming to the Scots' army," in <i>Baillie's Letters and
-Journals</i>, ii. 514. <i>Appendix.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_580_580" id="Footnote_580_580"></a><a href="#FNanchor_580_580"><span class="label">[580]</span></a> <i>Charles I. in 1646.</i> Letters published by the Camden
-Society.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_581_581" id="Footnote_581_581"></a><a href="#FNanchor_581_581"><span class="label">[581]</span></a> <i>Neal</i>, iii. 336-347.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_582_582" id="Footnote_582_582"></a><a href="#FNanchor_582_582"><span class="label">[582]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, vi. 319.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_583_583" id="Footnote_583_583"></a><a href="#FNanchor_583_583"><span class="label">[583]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, vi. 309.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_584_584" id="Footnote_584_584"></a><a href="#FNanchor_584_584"><span class="label">[584]</span></a> <i>Mercurius Civicus</i>, Oct. 8-15, 1646.
-</p>
-<p>
-"By letters from Scotland we were this day advertised that the Estates
-of Edinburgh have sent up their determination to the Commissioners at
-Worcester House. One, 'That Presbyterian government be established, as
-that which will suit best with monarchy.'"
-</p>
-<p>
-It was commonly said at Newcastle, that his Majesty would take the
-Covenant.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_585_585" id="Footnote_585_585"></a><a href="#FNanchor_585_585"><span class="label">[585]</span></a> <i>Charles I. in 1646</i>, 63, 86.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_586_586" id="Footnote_586_586"></a><a href="#FNanchor_586_586"><span class="label">[586]</span></a> <i>Charles I. in 1646</i>, 6, 11. See also Ogle's letter,
-printed in this volume, p. 306.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_587_587" id="Footnote_587_587"></a><a href="#FNanchor_587_587"><span class="label">[587]</span></a> <i>Ibid.</i>, 24. In reading Charles's correspondence we
-observe that, whatever may be said of fanatical ideas of providence
-entertained by Puritans, ideas equally fanatical were entertained by
-the King.&mdash;See <i>Mr. Bruce's Introduction to the volume of Letters</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_588_588" id="Footnote_588_588"></a><a href="#FNanchor_588_588"><span class="label">[588]</span></a> See Journals under date. Godwin, in his <i>Commonwealth</i>,
-ii. 66, 236, 246, after a careful examination of the Journals on the
-subject, explains distinctly the series of enactments with regard to
-the establishment of Presbyterianism.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_589_589" id="Footnote_589_589"></a><a href="#FNanchor_589_589"><span class="label">[589]</span></a> <i>Baillie</i>, ii. 357. "They have passed an ordinance,
-not only for appeal from the General Assembly to the Parliament, for
-two ruling elders, for one minister in every church-meeting, for no
-censure, except in such particular offences as they have enumerat; but
-also, which vexes us most, and against which we have been labouring
-this month bygone, a court of civil commissioners in every county, to
-whom the congregational elderships must bring all cases not enumerat,
-to be reported by them, with their judgment, to the Parliament or
-their Committee. This is a trick of the Independents' invention, of
-purpose to enervate and disgrace all our Government, in which they have
-been assisted by the lawyers and the Erastian party. This troubles us
-exceedingly. The whole Assembly and ministry over the kingdom, the body
-of the city, is much grieved with it; but how to help it, we cannot
-well tell. In the meantime, it mars us to set up anything; the anarchy
-continues, and the vilest facts do daily encrease."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_590_590" id="Footnote_590_590"></a><a href="#FNanchor_590_590"><span class="label">[590]</span></a> <i>Husband</i>, 919.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_591_591" id="Footnote_591_591"></a><a href="#FNanchor_591_591"><span class="label">[591]</span></a> <i>Neal</i>, iii. 385.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_592_592" id="Footnote_592_592"></a><a href="#FNanchor_592_592"><span class="label">[592]</span></a> <i>Scobell</i>, (1647-8,) 139, 165.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_593_593" id="Footnote_593_593"></a><a href="#FNanchor_593_593"><span class="label">[593]</span></a> 1646. October the 8th.&mdash;On the question in the Lords
-for passing the ordinance, "the votes were even, so nothing could
-be resolved on at this time." Only nine earls and five barons were
-present. October the 9th.&mdash;"And the question being put, 'Whether to
-agree to the said ordinance as it was brought up from the House of
-Commons?' Audit was agreed to in the affirmative." Seven earls and five
-barons were present.&mdash;<i>Lords' Journals.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_594_594" id="Footnote_594_594"></a><a href="#FNanchor_594_594"><span class="label">[594]</span></a> <i>Husband's Collection</i>, 922.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_595_595" id="Footnote_595_595"></a><a href="#FNanchor_595_595"><span class="label">[595]</span></a> <i>Husband</i>, 934.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_596_596" id="Footnote_596_596"></a><a href="#FNanchor_596_596"><span class="label">[596]</span></a> Printed in <i>Harleian Miscellany</i>, iv. 419.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_597_597" id="Footnote_597_597"></a><a href="#FNanchor_597_597"><span class="label">[597]</span></a> This information respecting wills is drawn from Sir H.
-Nicholas' <i>Notitia Historica</i>, 144-205. In the month of November, 1644,
-an ordinance of Parliament appointed Sir Nathaniel Brent a Presbyterian
-master or keeper of the Prerogative Court of Canterbury, in the room of
-Dr. Merrick, a Royalist Episcopalian.&mdash;<i>Husband</i>, 582.
-</p>
-<p>
-In the Windsor churchwardens' accounts an instance occurs of money
-paid in 1651-2 for searching the Prerogative Court for the Countess of
-Devonshire's will, then lately deceased.&mdash;<i>Annals of Windsor</i>, ii. 267.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_598_598" id="Footnote_598_598"></a><a href="#FNanchor_598_598"><span class="label">[598]</span></a> We shall describe this law in the next volume. It should
-be noticed that the ordinance of 1646, respecting bishops, said nothing
-about deans and chapters, or archdeacons. How they were afterwards
-dealt with will also be seen hereafter.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_599_599" id="Footnote_599_599"></a><a href="#FNanchor_599_599"><span class="label">[599]</span></a> <i>Scobell</i>, 129.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_600_600" id="Footnote_600_600"></a><a href="#FNanchor_600_600"><span class="label">[600]</span></a> <i>Ibid.</i>, 146.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_601_601" id="Footnote_601_601"></a><a href="#FNanchor_601_601"><span class="label">[601]</span></a> In September, 1647, the certificate of certain
-Cheshire justices touching a refusal to pay tithes to a Puritan,
-Mr. Smith, of Tattenhall, came before the committee. Some Royalist
-Episcopalians took encouragement, in their refusal, from two petitions
-of the sequestered clergy to the King and Sir Thomas Fairfax. It is
-certified, "from the said justices, that they conceive the ordinance
-of Parliament for payment of tithes cannot be put by them into
-execution without bloodshed." The Serjeant-at-Arms is commissioned
-to bring these delinquents "in safe custody to answer their said
-contempt."&mdash;<i>Nonconformity in Cheshire</i>, 472.
-</p>
-<p>
-The objections to paying tithes at that period went much further
-than such objections as are urged by Paley.&mdash;<i>Moral and Political
-Philosophy</i>, book vi., iii. A corn-rent, as he suggests, or such
-commutation of tithes as is now adopted, would not have met the
-objections. A fixed and uniform stipend paid by the State was widely
-desired.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_602_602" id="Footnote_602_602"></a><a href="#FNanchor_602_602"><span class="label">[602]</span></a> <i>Scobell</i>, 139.
-</p>
-<p>
-"1646, 15th December.&mdash;It is ordered that Mr. Tooley, &amp;c., shall treat
-with the dean and prebends about mending the windows and repairing
-the cathedral church, and to consider whether it be fit to remove
-the pulpit to the former place where it stood or not, and to examine
-whether there be £100 a year appointed for the repairing of the church,
-and how much thereof is in arrear."
-</p>
-<p>
-"1647.&mdash;8th November. It is ordered that the sheriffs shall give
-entertainment to the preachers who come to preach at the cathedral
-in such manner as the former sheriffs did, and that they shall give
-like allowance for the same as they did."&mdash;Extracted from the <i>Norwich
-Corporation Records</i>.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_603_603" id="Footnote_603_603"></a><a href="#FNanchor_603_603"><span class="label">[603]</span></a> <i>Husband</i>, 758. The following minutes are extracted from
-a MS. volume of proceedings in the library of Sion College, London.
-</p>
-<p>
-December, 1644. At a meeting of the governors of the school and
-almshouses of Westminster:&mdash;
-</p>
-<p>
-Whereas the governors of the schools and almshouses of Westminster,
-have, by their former order, nominated and appointed Mr. Strong to be
-minister of the Abbey Church, Westminster, in the room and place of Mr.
-Marshall, and in regard Mr. Marshall cannot well perform the service
-any longer, without inconveniency to him; it is ordered that the said
-Mr. Strong be desired to undertake the service so soon as possibly he
-can, and he is to have the allowance of £200 and a house; being the
-same allowance as the said Mr. Marshall had for his pains, to be taken
-therein. And the trustees are to pay him the same £200 and quarterly by
-even and equal portions. The first payment to commence from the time he
-shall begin the service, and to continue till he shall leave it.
-</p>
-<p>
-At a committee of the Lords and Commons for the College of Westminster,
-sitting in the dean's house, the 3rd March, 1645-6:&mdash;
-</p>
-<p>
-After reciting the ordinance of the 18th of November the committee "do
-nominate and appoint Mr. Philip Nye, minister of God's Word, to preach
-the term lecture in the said collegiate church, and receive the yearly
-stipend and allowance for the same. And the Reverend General of the
-said College for the time being is hereby authorized and required to
-pay the same unto the said Mr. Philip Nye, at such time as the same
-hath been heretofore usually paid, and we do further nominate and
-appoint the said Mr. P. Nye to preach the lecture upon every Lord's
-day in the morning, at seven of the clock, for which he shall receive
-such allowance as hereafter shall be settled and appointed by this
-committee."
-</p>
-<p>
-9th July, 1646.&mdash;By an order of this date, Mr. Nye was to have £50 a
-year, to be paid quarterly.
-</p>
-<p>
-<i>Same day.</i>&mdash;Mr. Marshall, Mr. Palmer, Mr. Herle, Dr. Staunton, Mr.
-Nye, Mr. Witaire (?), and Mr. Strong, were appointed to the morning
-lecture constantly to be performed every day of the week.
-</p>
-<p>
-July 13th.&mdash;Mr. John Bond, preacher at the Savoy in the Strand, was
-appointed one of the seven morning lecturers for the Abbey on the week
-day.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_604_604" id="Footnote_604_604"></a><a href="#FNanchor_604_604"><span class="label">[604]</span></a> <i>Commons' Journals</i>, December 2nd, 1643.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_605_605" id="Footnote_605_605"></a><a href="#FNanchor_605_605"><span class="label">[605]</span></a> <i>Annals of Windsor</i>, ii. 205.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_606_606" id="Footnote_606_606"></a><a href="#FNanchor_606_606"><span class="label">[606]</span></a> <i>Hist. of the University of Cambridge</i>, 233. "The
-Colleges have already sent to the King £6,000, and are now about to
-send their plate to make shrines for Diane's temple. Magdalene College
-plate, beginning the march, was seized on by Parliament authority,
-and is deposited in the Mayor's custody. St. John's College conceived
-a better secrecy by water, and that way conveyed their plate; but
-having intelligence of discovery, they landed it in the night into a
-dung-cart, and returned it to the College. It is said now they expect
-a convoy of horse. King's College refused to send plate, the Master
-affirming that it is directly against their oath, binding them in
-express words, not to alienate the plate of the College. If he be not
-deceived in his judgment, it will be a problem for the rest of the
-masters."&mdash;<i>Tanner MSS.</i> 63, p. 116. <i>Sanford's Illustrations</i>, 514.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_607_607" id="Footnote_607_607"></a><a href="#FNanchor_607_607"><span class="label">[607]</span></a> <i>Husband's Collections</i>, 415, 416.
-</p>
-<p>
-"The Masters of Queen's, Jesus, and St. John's, were sent up to London,
-and led through the midst of Bartholomew Fair in a leisurely manner, to
-the endangering of their lives, up as far as Temple Bar, and so back
-through the City to the Tower, on purpose that they might be hooted
-at and stoned by the rabble."&mdash;<i>Coles' MSS.</i>, vol. vii., quoted in
-<i>Akerman's Hist. of University</i>, i. 260.
-</p>
-<p>
-The Master of Queen's, and some others, are said to have been put on
-board a ship at Wapping, where they suffered much, and were then sent
-to prison. It is impossible to determine the exact truth amidst the
-exaggerated statements by Walker. Hot-headed party men always overshoot
-the mark, and bring discredit even on the truths they tell.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_608_608" id="Footnote_608_608"></a><a href="#FNanchor_608_608"><span class="label">[608]</span></a> <i>Hist. of Cambridge</i>, 236. Sancroft did not take the
-Covenant. The following extract from a letter of his to Dr. Holdsworth,
-Master of Emmanuel, is very curious:&mdash;"Ah! Sir, I know our Emmanuel
-College is now an object of pity and commiseration. They have left us
-like John Baptist's trunk when his head was lopped off, because of
-a vow or oath (or Covenant, if you will) that went before, or like
-Pompey's carcase upon the shore; so <i>stat magni nominis umbra</i>. For my
-part, <i>tædet me vivere hanc mortem</i>. A small matter would prevail with
-me to take up the resolution to go forth any whither where I might not
-hear <i>nec nomen, nec facta Pelopidarum</i>. Nor need we voluntarily give
-up our stations. I fear we cannot long maintain them. And what then?
-Shall I lift up my hand? I will cut it off first. Shall I subscribe my
-name? I will forget it as soon. I can at least look up through this
-mist and see the hand of my God holding the scourge that lashes; and
-with this thought I am able to silence all the mutinies of boisterous
-passions, and to charm them into a perfect calm. Sir, you will pardon
-this disjointed piece: it is the production of a disquieted mind;
-and no wonder if the child resembles its parent. My sorrow, as yet,
-breaks forth only in abrupt sighs and broken sobs."&mdash;<i>D'Oyley's Life of
-Archbishop Sancroft</i>, i. 32.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_609_609" id="Footnote_609_609"></a><a href="#FNanchor_609_609"><span class="label">[609]</span></a> <i>Strype's Life of Parker</i>, i. 390.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_610_610" id="Footnote_610_610"></a><a href="#FNanchor_610_610"><span class="label">[610]</span></a> <i>Fuller's History of Cambridge</i>, 205.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_611_611" id="Footnote_611_611"></a><a href="#FNanchor_611_611"><span class="label">[611]</span></a> <i>Thorndike's Works</i>, vol. vi., Oxford edition. Note by
-Editor, 170. <i>Pure</i> Emmanuel occurs in Corbet's satirical poem, 1615.
-It was commonly so styled.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_612_612" id="Footnote_612_612"></a><a href="#FNanchor_612_612"><span class="label">[612]</span></a> <i>Halley's Life of Goodwin</i>, prefixed to <i>Works</i>, vol.
-ii. of Nichol's edit., p. 23. But Brownrigg, in 1645, was put out of
-the Mastership of Trinity Hall.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_613_613" id="Footnote_613_613"></a><a href="#FNanchor_613_613"><span class="label">[613]</span></a> Cartwright, Travers, Calamy, Seaman, Doolittle, S.
-Clarke, and W. Jenkyns, came from Cambridge. Out of seventy-seven
-Puritan names in <i>Brook</i>, I find forty-seven belonging to Cambridge,
-and thirty to Oxford.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_614_614" id="Footnote_614_614"></a><a href="#FNanchor_614_614"><span class="label">[614]</span></a> The four were Goodwin (Catherine), Burroughs, Bridge
-(Emmanuel), and Sydrach Sympson. Nye was an Oxford man.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_615_615" id="Footnote_615_615"></a><a href="#FNanchor_615_615"><span class="label">[615]</span></a> <i>Cooper</i>, quoted in <i>Notes to Thorndike</i>, vol. vi. 177.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_616_616" id="Footnote_616_616"></a><a href="#FNanchor_616_616"><span class="label">[616]</span></a> <i>Calendar of State Papers, Chas. I.</i>, 1633-4,
-<i>Domestic</i>, July 22, p. 150.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_617_617" id="Footnote_617_617"></a><a href="#FNanchor_617_617"><span class="label">[617]</span></a> <i>Thorndike's Works</i>, vi. 169.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_618_618" id="Footnote_618_618"></a><a href="#FNanchor_618_618"><span class="label">[618]</span></a> Cooper gives 2,091 University residents in 1641, but
-says it does not include the whole.&mdash;<i>Thorndike</i>, vi. 165. Walker
-reports nearly 200 masters and fellows as ejected, besides inferior
-scholars. Some of the ejected heads of houses were men of moderate
-opinions.&mdash;<i>Neal</i>, iii. 116.
-</p>
-<p>
-Newcome, in his <i>Autobiography</i>, Cheetham Society, speaks of the
-bitter feuds between the new and the old fellows in 1645. He judged
-the supporters of the Parliament to be the most religious, "religion
-being as little favoured" by many of their opponents as the Puritans
-themselves were (p. 7).</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_619_619" id="Footnote_619_619"></a><a href="#FNanchor_619_619"><span class="label">[619]</span></a> They are far too numerous and varied for me to classify
-or indicate. See historical account of all material transactions
-relating to University.&mdash;<i>Laud's Works</i>, vol. v., part I.
-</p>
-<p>
-The following scrap of a newspaper shews the care taken by the
-Parliament for the support of the University, and also the feeling
-existing at Oxford against the Parliament:&mdash;
-</p>
-<p>
-"Ordered that the Committee for the Ordinances of regulating the
-University shall consider of a fitting maintenance for the masters
-and heads of houses in both Universities. They also ordered that a
-committee should sit constantly for giving a competent maintenance to
-the late bishops until they had despatched that business.
-</p>
-<p>
-"The House being informed that there were monuments standing in Christ
-Church, in Oxford, on which were epitaphs engraven abusive to the
-Parliament, and giving just cause of distaste to many good men well
-affected to it, as particulary on the monument of Sir Henry Gage and
-Sir William Penniman, it was ordered that the epitaphs on the said
-monuments should be razed and effaced."&mdash;<i>Weekly Intelligencer</i>, April
-15th, 1647.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_620_620" id="Footnote_620_620"></a><a href="#FNanchor_620_620"><span class="label">[620]</span></a> In the autobiography of Arthur Wilson, an Oxford
-student, in 1631, this passage occurs relative to the moral state of
-the University:&mdash;
-</p>
-<p>
-"That which was most burdensome to me in this my retirement was the
-debauchery of the University. For the most eminent scholars of the
-town, especially of St. John's College, being of my acquaintance, did
-work upon me by such endearments as took the name of civilities, (yet
-day and night could witness our madness), and I must confess, the whole
-time of my life besides did never so much transport me with drinking as
-that short time I lived at Oxford, and that with some of the gravest
-bachelors of divinity there."&mdash;<i>Peck's Desiderata Curiosa</i>, ii. 470.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_621_621" id="Footnote_621_621"></a><a href="#FNanchor_621_621"><span class="label">[621]</span></a> <i>Walker</i>, part i. 127; <i>Neal</i>, iii. 446-453.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_622_622" id="Footnote_622_622"></a><a href="#FNanchor_622_622"><span class="label">[622]</span></a> <i>Walton's Lives</i>, 388. Morley wrote in the following
-dignified manner to Whitelocke, acknowledging friendly interposition
-on his behalf: "Pray God he, whosoever he be that succeeds me in it,
-may part with it at his death as cheerfully as I do now, and that my
-judges may not have cause to be more sorry for their sentence than
-I am. It is glory enough for me that Mr. Selden and Mr. Whitelocke
-were of another opinion, for being absolved by you two, and mine own
-conscience, I shall still think myself in a capacity of a better
-condition."&mdash;<i>Whitelocke's Memorials</i>, 250.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_623_623" id="Footnote_623_623"></a><a href="#FNanchor_623_623"><span class="label">[623]</span></a> <i>Wood's Ath.</i>, ii. 215.
-</p>
-<p>
-Walton, so called (though he wrote his name Wauton), married Cromwell's
-sister Margaret, and was one of the Commissioners of the High Court of
-Justice.&mdash;<i>Noble's Protectorate House</i>, ii. 224.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_624_624" id="Footnote_624_624"></a><a href="#FNanchor_624_624"><span class="label">[624]</span></a> <i>Neal</i>, iii. 456.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_625_625" id="Footnote_625_625"></a><a href="#FNanchor_625_625"><span class="label">[625]</span></a> <i>Scobell</i>, (1647), 116.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_626_626" id="Footnote_626_626"></a><a href="#FNanchor_626_626"><span class="label">[626]</span></a> <i>Neal</i>, iii. 438.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_627_627" id="Footnote_627_627"></a><a href="#FNanchor_627_627"><span class="label">[627]</span></a> The following sentence appears in a newspaper of the
-period:&mdash;
-</p>
-<p>
-"There are many amongst us who are called Independents, but what some
-say of them, I doubt not that they will prove honest men and peaceable
-for ought that I can see&mdash;experience gives them a better report than
-rumour."&mdash;<i>Papers from the Scotch Quarters.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_628_628" id="Footnote_628_628"></a><a href="#FNanchor_628_628"><span class="label">[628]</span></a> The following letter, dated September 25th, 1645, was
-addressed to the mayor and aldermen of Norwich:&mdash;
-</p>
-<p>
-"Gentlemen&mdash;The Parliament being desirous above all things to establish
-truth and righteousness in these kingdoms, towards which the settlement
-of a church government is very conducible, hath resolved to settle
-a presbyterial government in the kingdom. For the better effecting
-whereof you are required, with the advice of godly ministers and
-others, to consider how the county of the city of Norwich may be
-most conveniently divided into distinct classical Presbyteries, and
-what ministers and others are fit to be of each classis, and you are
-accordingly to make such divisions and nominations of persons for
-each classical Presbytery. Which divisions and persons so named for
-every division you are to certify to the House with all expedition. W.
-Lenthall, Speaker."&mdash;<i>Blomefield's History of Norwich</i>, i. 391.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_629_629" id="Footnote_629_629"></a><a href="#FNanchor_629_629"><span class="label">[629]</span></a> This appears from a petition presented by the
-Presbyterians to the mayor, in April, 1648, for a more thorough
-reformation, and complaining that faithful ministers were slighted,
-ejected ministers of the Church of England preferred, old ceremonies
-and the service book constantly used, and the directory not observed.
-The petitioners also prayed for a more thorough execution of the
-ordinances against superstition and idolatry, and specified as needing
-to be defaced a crucifix on the cathedral gate, another on the roof
-inside by the west door, and a third upon the free-school, as well
-as an "image of Christ upon the parish house of St. George's of
-Tombland."&mdash;<i>Blomefield's History of Norwich</i>, i. 393.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_630_630" id="Footnote_630_630"></a><a href="#FNanchor_630_630"><span class="label">[630]</span></a> <i>Vox Norwici</i>, or the city of Norwich vindicating
-their ministers, wherein the city of Norwich, viz., the court of
-mayoralty and common council, by their act of assembly, the rest of the
-well-affected citizens and inhabitants by the subscription of their
-names hereunto, do vindicate their ministers, Master Thornebacke,
-Master Carter, Master Stinnett, Master Fletcher, Master Bond, Master
-Stukeley, Master Test, and Master Mitchell, from the foul and false
-aspersions and slanders, which are unchristianly thrown upon them in a
-lying and scurrilous libel lately come forth, entitled "<i>Vox Populi</i>,
-or the People's Cry against the Clergy," or rather the voice of a
-schismatic, projecting the discouragement and driving away of our
-faithful teachers, but we hope his lies shall not so, effect it. Jer.
-viii. 30. London, 1646.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_631_631" id="Footnote_631_631"></a><a href="#FNanchor_631_631"><span class="label">[631]</span></a> See <i>Godwin's Commonwealth</i>, ii. 211-220, <i>Memoirs of
-Edmund Ludlow</i>, i. 172.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_632_632" id="Footnote_632_632"></a><a href="#FNanchor_632_632"><span class="label">[632]</span></a> <i>Baillie's Letters and Journals</i>, ii. 512, Appendix.
-Gillespie says, March 30th, 1647:&mdash;"In sum, the Independent party is
-for the present sunk under water in the Parliament, and run down."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_633_633" id="Footnote_633_633"></a><a href="#FNanchor_633_633"><span class="label">[633]</span></a> <i>Parl. Hist.</i>, iii. 475.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_634_634" id="Footnote_634_634"></a><a href="#FNanchor_634_634"><span class="label">[634]</span></a> <i>Journals.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_635_635" id="Footnote_635_635"></a><a href="#FNanchor_635_635"><span class="label">[635]</span></a> <i>Neal</i>, iii. 365. The following is an extract from the
-Petition:&mdash;"That an ordinance be made for the exemplary punishment of
-heretics and schismatics, and that all godly and orthodox ministers may
-have a competent maintenance, many pulpits being vacant of a settled
-minister for want of it; and here (say they) we would lay the stress of
-our desires, and the urgency of our affections." They complain further
-of the "undue practices of Country Committees, of the threatening power
-of the army, and of some breaches in the Constitution, all of which
-they desire may be redressed, and that his Majesty's royal person and
-authority may be preserved and defended, together with the liberties of
-the kingdom, according to the Covenant."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_636_636" id="Footnote_636_636"></a><a href="#FNanchor_636_636"><span class="label">[636]</span></a> <i>Neal</i>, iii. 388.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_637_637" id="Footnote_637_637"></a><a href="#FNanchor_637_637"><span class="label">[637]</span></a> See full account, with authorities, in <i>Baker's
-Northamptonshire</i>, i. 201.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_638_638" id="Footnote_638_638"></a><a href="#FNanchor_638_638"><span class="label">[638]</span></a> "The kingdom shall have peace and truth, the
-Churches uniformity and concord, almost quite lost, Ireland hopes
-of speedy reduction, sectaries and blasphemers shall be bridled
-if not extirpated, and church government with the religion
-established."&mdash;<i>Welcome of the King to Holmby</i> (Holdenby).</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_639_639" id="Footnote_639_639"></a><a href="#FNanchor_639_639"><span class="label">[639]</span></a> <i>State Papers, Dom., Chas. I.</i> 1647. The latter is
-without date.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_640_640" id="Footnote_640_640"></a><a href="#FNanchor_640_640"><span class="label">[640]</span></a> <i>History of Rebellion</i>, 610.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_641_641" id="Footnote_641_641"></a><a href="#FNanchor_641_641"><span class="label">[641]</span></a> The funeral of the Earl of Essex, on the 22nd of
-October, 1646, presented a grand display of military pomp. The Speaker,
-many Aldermen of the City, and Assembly of Divines also followed in
-the procession to the grave. "When they came to the Abbey Church, the
-effigy of the Earl was carried in and laid upon the standing hearse,
-where it was to remain during the pleasure of the House, or as many
-days as intervened between his death and burial. The effigy was roughly
-handled one night. The Abbey being broken into, the head of the image
-was broken, the buff coat was slit, the scarlet breeches were cut, the
-boots were slashed, the bands were torn, and the sword broken."&mdash;See
-<i>Perfect Relation of the Funeral</i>.
-</p>
-<p>
-Mr. Vines, in his sermon at the interment, compared Essex to Abner,
-and observed: "The funeral, for the state of it, overmatches the
-pattern. Here are the two Houses of Parliament, the map of all England
-in two globes, pouring out their sorrows, and paying their kisses of
-honourable farewell to his tutelar sword."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_642_642" id="Footnote_642_642"></a><a href="#FNanchor_642_642"><span class="label">[642]</span></a> <i>History of Rebellion</i>, 610.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_643_643" id="Footnote_643_643"></a><a href="#FNanchor_643_643"><span class="label">[643]</span></a> After leaving Holdenby, during the three days the King
-tarried at Childerley, many doctors, graduates, and scholars of the
-University repaired thither, "to most of whom the King was pleased to
-give his hand to kiss; for which honour they returned their gratulatory
-and humble thanks with a <i>Vivat Rex</i>." He was also visited by Fairfax,
-Cromwell, Ireton, Skippon, Lambert, Whalley, and other officers of the
-Parliament army, some of whom kissed his hand.&mdash;<i>Wood's Ath. Oxon.</i>,
-ii., <i>fasti</i> 81.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_644_644" id="Footnote_644_644"></a><a href="#FNanchor_644_644"><span class="label">[644]</span></a> <i>Clarendon</i>, 613.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_645_645" id="Footnote_645_645"></a><a href="#FNanchor_645_645"><span class="label">[645]</span></a> <i>Ludlow's Memoirs</i>, vol. i. 240.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_646_646" id="Footnote_646_646"></a><a href="#FNanchor_646_646"><span class="label">[646]</span></a> <i>Ludlow</i>, vol. i. 207.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_647_647" id="Footnote_647_647"></a><a href="#FNanchor_647_647"><span class="label">[647]</span></a> <i>Clarendon</i>, 616.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_648_648" id="Footnote_648_648"></a><a href="#FNanchor_648_648"><span class="label">[648]</span></a> <i>Blomefield's Hist. of Norwich</i>, i. 394, 395.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_649_649" id="Footnote_649_649"></a><a href="#FNanchor_649_649"><span class="label">[649]</span></a> <i>Journals of Lords</i>, May the 19th. <i>Rushworth</i>, vii.
-1119. At Bury, the cry was "For God and King Charles."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_650_650" id="Footnote_650_650"></a><a href="#FNanchor_650_650"><span class="label">[650]</span></a> 1648, 26th of April.&mdash;"It is thought fit and agreed
-that Tuesday next shall be set apart and kept as a solemn day of
-thanksgiving for God's deliverance of this city from the rebellious
-company of people that did rise against them upon Monday last, and
-that Mr. Carter be desired to preach in the forenoon, and Mr. Collings
-in the afternoon, both at the Cathedral, and that they shall have
-20s. a piece, and that the great guns shall be shot off, and that the
-aldermen shall be in scarlet and attended with the livery, and that the
-churchwardens and overseers of every parish do go from house to house
-to take the benevolence in writing of every person that will give for
-the relief of the poor who are in want, to be delivered unto the Court
-of Mayoralty, to be by them distributed."&mdash;<i>Corporation Records.</i></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_651_651" id="Footnote_651_651"></a><a href="#FNanchor_651_651"><span class="label">[651]</span></a> <i>Scobell</i>, 149.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_652_652" id="Footnote_652_652"></a><a href="#FNanchor_652_652"><span class="label">[652]</span></a> <i>Vindication of the Ordinance against Heresies, &amp;c.</i>,
-1646.&mdash;In which the example of Geneva in putting Servetus to death is
-cited with approval, and is adduced as an argument in defence of the
-ordinance.&mdash;
-</p>
-<p>
-The <i>Scottish Dove</i> defends the <i>Ordinance against Heresies, &amp;c.</i>, as
-a great work, very necessary, heresy being of the flesh, and therefore
-to be punished by the magistrate. A complaint is made in a pamphlet
-entitled, <i>Oaths unwarrantable</i>, (June, 1647,) that multitudes of men
-well-affected to the Parliament were indicted and punished for not
-coming to their parish churches, though there were no statutes to
-authorize punishment for such neglect, except the act of uniformity,
-which had been repealed. "Though I stay seven years from church,"
-says the writer, "and constantly meet in private houses, there is
-by Parliament's principles neither law nor ordinance in force for
-any judge or justice of the peace to indict me, or any other, or any
-otherwise to molest or trouble me."</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_653_653" id="Footnote_653_653"></a><a href="#FNanchor_653_653"><span class="label">[653]</span></a> The following prayer for the King was used at Paris,
-September, 1648:&mdash;
-</p>
-<p>
-"O Almighty and most gracious Lord God, the Ruler of princes when they
-are on their thrones, and their Protector when they are in peril, look
-down mercifully from heaven, we most humbly pray Thee, upon the low
-estate of thine anointed, our King. Comfort him in his troubles, defend
-him in his danger, strengthen him in his good resolutions, and command
-thine angels so to pitch their tents round about him, that he may be
-defended from all those that desire his hurt, and may be speedily
-re-established in the just rights of his throne, through Jesus Christ
-our Lord. Amen." Made by Dr. Steward, 1648. MS. copy in <i>Pamphlets</i>,
-vol. xxxv.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_654_654" id="Footnote_654_654"></a><a href="#FNanchor_654_654"><span class="label">[654]</span></a> See <i>Short's Sketch of the Church</i>, ii. 154.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_655_655" id="Footnote_655_655"></a><a href="#FNanchor_655_655"><span class="label">[655]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, vii. 1302, 1321. Godwin, in his <i>History
-of the Commonwealth</i>, ii. 481, has exposed with unsparing justice the
-duplicity of Charles at this moment in the treaty which he was then
-forming with the Scotch.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_656_656" id="Footnote_656_656"></a><a href="#FNanchor_656_656"><span class="label">[656]</span></a> <i>Rushworth</i>, vii. 1334.
-</p>
-<p>
-It is unnecessary to do more than indicate that the Commissioners
-replied to this document, (November the 20th, 1648,) still urging the
-three points, but explaining the Directory, as setting down the matter
-of prayer, only leaving words to a minister's discretion. To this
-Charles gave a final reply, November the 21st, adhering to Episcopacy
-and the inalienability of church lands. As to the Directory&mdash;having
-observed its latitude according to their explanation&mdash;he was willing
-to waive his objections. The King's final reply is not given in
-<i>Rushworth</i>, but it may be found in the <i>Parl. Hist.</i>, iii. 1130.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_657_657" id="Footnote_657_657"></a><a href="#FNanchor_657_657"><span class="label">[657]</span></a> <i>Parl. Hist.</i>, iii. 1077.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_658_658" id="Footnote_658_658"></a><a href="#FNanchor_658_658"><span class="label">[658]</span></a> The speech is given in <i>Parl. Hist.</i>, iii. 1152-1239;
-the pages are closely printed. Though so very long it is well worth
-reading.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_659_659" id="Footnote_659_659"></a><a href="#FNanchor_659_659"><span class="label">[659]</span></a> <i>Memoirs of the Two Last Years of K. Charles I., by Sir
-Thomas Herbert</i>, 124.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_660_660" id="Footnote_660_660"></a><a href="#FNanchor_660_660"><span class="label">[660]</span></a> <i>Whitelocke</i>, 375. It has been stated that Juxon's
-spiritual assistance was permitted at the intercession of Hugh
-Peters&mdash;a thing in itself very unlikely. Godwin asserts it, and refers
-generally to Whitelocke and Rushworth as his authorities; I suppose p.
-370 of the <i>Memorials</i> is intended. Rushworth ascribes the intercession
-to a member of the army.&mdash;Vol. vii. 1421. In most accounts of the last
-days of Charles, the references are unsatisfactory.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_661_661" id="Footnote_661_661"></a><a href="#FNanchor_661_661"><span class="label">[661]</span></a> Prefixed to <i>Ussher's Letters</i>, p. 72.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_662_662" id="Footnote_662_662"></a><a href="#FNanchor_662_662"><span class="label">[662]</span></a> <i>Life of Philip Henry</i>, by his son. There is amongst the
-Harleian MSS. in the British Museum an affecting letter on the subject,
-by Dr. Sanderson, written a few days after the King's execution.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_663_663" id="Footnote_663_663"></a><a href="#FNanchor_663_663"><span class="label">[663]</span></a> It must be remembered that Vane, St. John, and Algernon
-Sidney, were of opinion that to depose Charles would be better than to
-behead him.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_664_664" id="Footnote_664_664"></a><a href="#FNanchor_664_664"><span class="label">[664]</span></a> Bradshaw was a member of the Church under the pastoral
-care, first of Mr. Strong, and then of Mr. Rowe, ministers of
-Westminster Abbey. Miles Corbet was member of the Church at Yarmouth,
-under the pastoral care of William Bridge.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_665_665" id="Footnote_665_665"></a><a href="#FNanchor_665_665"><span class="label">[665]</span></a> <i>Neal</i>, iii. 537. See what he says, 547-554, respecting
-the authors of the King's death.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_666_666" id="Footnote_666_666"></a><a href="#FNanchor_666_666"><span class="label">[666]</span></a> The Governor's name is spelt in at least six different
-ways by various historians. We have adopted the spelling of Clarendon.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_667_667" id="Footnote_667_667"></a><a href="#FNanchor_667_667"><span class="label">[667]</span></a> See <i>Fuller's Church History</i>, iii. 502; Herbert, in
-<i>Wood's Ath. Oxon.</i>, ii. 705; <i>Clarendon's Hist. of Rebellion</i>, 692;
-and <i>Gentleman's Magazine</i>, vol. xlii.</p></div></div>
-
-
-<p class="transnote">Transcriber's Note:<br />
-
-1. Spelling errors have been silently corrected.<br />
-
-2. The Corrigenda for this volume have been corrected.</p>
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<pre>
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Ecclesiastical History of England,
-from the Opening of the Long Parli, by John Stoughton
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY ***
-
-***** This file should be named 62837-h.htm or 62837-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/6/2/8/3/62837/
-
-Produced by Emmanuel Ackerman, Karin Spence and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by The Internet Archive)
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/author1.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/author1.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 5e4db4d..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/author1.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/author2.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/author2.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 992d12b..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/author2.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/big_right_bracket.png b/old/62837-h/images/big_right_bracket.png
deleted file mode 100644
index ce6eb7c..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/big_right_bracket.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index f75c648..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/fn377.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/fn377.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index a8ffe0b..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/fn377.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/illo001.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/illo001.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 85b2fd9..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/illo001.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/illo059.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/illo059.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 449904b..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/illo059.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/illo079.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/illo079.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 9ff62e2..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/illo079.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/illo099.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/illo099.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 6908f18..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/illo099.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/illo118.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/illo118.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index dfc82b6..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/illo118.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/illo131.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/illo131.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 63481e2..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/illo131.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/illo160.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/illo160.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index b6644d8..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/illo160.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/illo176.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/illo176.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 8b8aef4..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/illo176.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/illo186.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/illo186.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 19a10b2..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/illo186.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/illo207.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/illo207.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index ae0261d..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/illo207.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/illo223.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/illo223.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index f6afdb9..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/illo223.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/illo246.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/illo246.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 7d2c927..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/illo246.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/illo270.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/illo270.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index fb0c35b..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/illo270.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/illo301.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/illo301.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index c14551c..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/illo301.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/illo348.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/illo348.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 4130f8a..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/illo348.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/illo372.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/illo372.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 84bb193..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/illo372.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/illo385.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/illo385.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 5dd3773..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/illo385.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/illo394.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/illo394.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 8947dc8..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/illo394.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/illo411.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/illo411.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index c33f358..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/illo411.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/illo424.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/illo424.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index b3033b3..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/illo424.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/illo436.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/illo436.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 7afa1c8..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/illo436.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/illo455.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/illo455.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 931c076..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/illo455.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/illo477.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/illo477.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 642e127..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/illo477.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/illo504.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/illo504.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 2c058bd..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/illo504.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/illo_ix.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/illo_ix.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 69841b6..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/illo_ix.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/illo_v.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/illo_v.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index a50723d..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/illo_v.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/illo_xvii.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/illo_xvii.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 10030d6..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/illo_xvii.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/title1.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/title1.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 7127dca..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/title1.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/title2.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/title2.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index b879363..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/title2.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/title2a.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/title2a.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index e730a37..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/title2a.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62837-h/images/title2b.jpg b/old/62837-h/images/title2b.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 526ec90..0000000
--- a/old/62837-h/images/title2b.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ